summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-27 16:33:46 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-27 16:33:46 -0800
commit93fdce433231e126f3d954b78b0b14ab1ea71188 (patch)
tree081b0b0519603924edc85d959725163ccfc3b799
parentf8e6eb0c9d0af3b912e7d5f4015ab85475479ddc (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/60774-0.txt17264
-rw-r--r--old/60774-0.zipbin375756 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60774-h.zipbin462450 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60774-h/60774-h.htm24755
-rw-r--r--old/60774-h/images/cover.jpgbin47689 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 42019 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0788a54
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #60774 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/60774)
diff --git a/old/60774-0.txt b/old/60774-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 4ce23fe..0000000
--- a/old/60774-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,17264 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of History of the Reformation in Europe in the
-time of Calvin, Volume 3 (of 8), by Merle d'Aubigne
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: History of the Reformation in Europe in the time of Calvin, Volume 3 (of 8)
-
-Author: Merle d'Aubigne
-
-Release Date: November 24, 2019 [EBook #60774]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HISTORY OF REFORMATION IN EUROPE, VOL 3 ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Brian Wilson, David Edwards, Colin Bell, Chris
-Pinfield and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's note:
-
-Obvious printer errors have been corrected. Hyphenation has been
-rationalised. Inconsistent spelling (including accents and capitals) has
-been retained.
-
-Small capitals have been replaced by full capitals. Italics are
-indicated by _underscores_. Transliterated Greek is indicated by
-+plus signs+.
-
-Running headers, at the top of each right-hand page, have been converted
-into Sidenotes and moved in front of the paragraphs to which they refer.
-
-The anchor for Footnote 615 is missing and has been inserted at a likely
-position.
-
-
-
-
- THE
- REFORMATION IN EUROPE
- IN THE TIME OF CALVIN.
-
- VOL. III.
-
- LONDON
- PRINTED BY SPOTTISWOODE AND CO.
- NEW-STREET SQUARE
-
- HISTORY
- OF
- THE REFORMATION IN EUROPE
- IN THE TIME OF CALVIN.
-
- BY J. H. MERLE D'AUBIGNÉ, D.D.
-
- AUTHOR OF THE
- 'HISTORY OF THE REFORMATION OF THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY' ETC.
-
- 'Les choses de petite durée ont coutume de devenir fanées, quand elles
- ont passé leur temps.
-
- 'Au règne de Christ, il n'y a que le nouvel homme qui soit florissant,
- qui ait de la vigueur, et dont il faille faire cas.'
-
- CALVIN.
-
- VOL. III.
- FRANCE, SWITZERLAND, GENEVA.
-
- LONDON:
- LONGMAN, GREEN, LONGMAN, ROBERTS, & GREEN.
- 1864.
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-
-The time at which this volume appears would seem to require a few words
-of introduction.
-
-A day which closes a great epoch in the history of modern times, will
-soon be called to the remembrance of Protestant Christians. The
-registers of the Consistory of Geneva for the year 1564, bear under the
-name of Calvin these simple words:
-
-_Allé à Dieu le Sabmedy 27 de May, entre huit et neuf heures du soir._[1]
-
-The author of this volume, having been invited by the Evangelical
-Alliance to deliver an address on _The Reformation and the Reformer of
-Geneva_, during the Œcumenical Conference held at Geneva in September,
-1861, observed, in the course of his preparatory work, this important
-date, and proposed to the assembly that on the tercentenary of the
-Reformer's death, Geneva and the Reformed Churches in general, should
-return thanks publicly to God that he had raised up John Calvin in the
-sixteenth century, to labour at the reformation of the Church, by
-re-establishing Holy Scripture as the supreme authority, and grace as
-the only means of salvation. The members of the Conference, about two
-thousand in number, adopted the resolution by acclamation.[2]
-
-As Christian Protestants were preparing to celebrate the anniversary,
-the author desired to contribute something according to his ability
-towards reviving the memory of the great doctor. Almost at the very time
-when the idea of this Protestant festival occurred to his mind, he
-proposed to describe in a special work, _The Reformation of Europe in
-the time of Calvin_. Having published the first two volumes more than a
-year ago, he looked forward to issuing another before the 27th May, and
-he now presents it to the public. May it occupy its humble place among
-the memorials destined to commemorate the Lord's work.
-
-The persecuting jesuitry of the seventeenth century, and the superficial
-incredulity of the eighteenth, have calumniated the great Reformer of
-the West. Times have changed, and the nineteenth century is beginning to
-do him justice. His works, even those still in manuscript, are sought
-after and published; his life and character, his theology and influence,
-are the object of numerous studies which in general bear the stamp of
-fairness; and even distinguished painters have found the subject of
-their finest pictures in his life.
-
-We entertain no blind admiration for him. We know that he has sometimes
-used bitter language. We acknowledge that, sharing in the faults of his
-century, or rather of ten centuries, he believed that whatever infringed
-on the respect due to God ought to be punished by the civil power, quite
-as much as anything that might be injurious to the honour or the life of
-man. We deplore this error. But how can any one study with discernment
-the Reformer's letters and other writings, and not recognise in him one
-of the noblest intelligences, one of the most elevated minds, one of the
-most affectionate hearts, and in short, one of those true Christian
-souls who unreservedly devote themselves to duty? An eminent scholar,
-whom Scotland still laments—Dr. Cunningham, the successor of
-Chalmers—said, in a work published a short time before his death,
-'Calvin is the man who, next to St. Paul, has done most good to mankind.'
-
-No doubt he will always have his enemies. A journal of high character
-and great circulation in Germany, speaking of a libel (_Schmæhschrift_
-is the word used), published some time ago against Calvin, asks 'From
-what camp does it proceed—from jesuitical Romanism or atheistical
-libertinism?' It is, indeed, from these quarters that the enemies of the
-Reformer principally come; but we acknowledge that a man may be opposed
-to Calvin, and yet not belong to either of these schools.
-
-Let us not disquiet ourselves, however, about such attacks; Calvin's
-Master has said, _If they do these things in a green tree, what shall be
-done in the dry?_[3]
-
-The author of the present volume thinks that the best way of doing
-justice to his memory, is to make him known. The reader will meet in
-this work with many sayings and doings of this great man, which are not
-to be found in other histories. If a writer had the good fortune to lay
-before the German public some unknown trait of Luther's life, all
-Germany would be taken up with it. Shall we be more indifferent to the
-life of our great Reformer? Certainly there are more striking actions in
-the life of Luther, who so easily gains possession of our hearts; but we
-may ask whether there are not features in the life of Calvin, which are
-less frequent in that of the Wittemberg doctor; the manner, for
-instance, in which the young doctor of Noyon, wherever he happens to be
-(at Angoulême, Poitiers, &c.), is at once surrounded by distinguished
-men, whom he wins over to the truth?
-
-The author desires, however, to remind some of his readers, that this
-book is not the history of Calvin. The title expresses that clearly
-enough: _History of the Reformation_ IN EUROPE _in the time of Calvin_.
-It is the second series of a work of which the _History of the
-Reformation of the Sixteenth Century_, was the first. The reformation of
-the Western nations, of which Calvin was the soul, having a special
-character, we thought it our duty to devote a special work to it; but we
-shall not confine ourselves to relating the facts of the Reformation in
-which Calvin took a direct part. One portion of the fourth volume will
-describe the Reformation in England, from the fall of Wolsey. We purpose
-also to continue retracing the leading features of the Reformation in
-Germany, as we have already done in the first two volumes of this work,
-in which the alliance of Smalkalde, the peace of Nuremberg, the
-emancipation of Wurtemberg, and other analogous events have found their
-place.[4] It is the Reformation as a whole which the author desires to
-delineate.
-
-After speaking of France and Calvin, the author relates, in the present
-volume, facts which concern Latin Switzerland (Suisse Romande), the
-Waldensian villages of Piedmont, and finally Geneva.
-
-He does not think it proper to pass by unnoticed certain reproaches
-which the first two volumes have brought upon him. 'It is a strange
-idea,' some have said, 'to devote so much space to Geneva. Is it not
-doing too much honour to a little city of a few thousand souls? History
-requires great people and mighty personages. We meet with these at least
-around Luther; but in Geneva, we find none but humble syndics and petty
-citizens.'
-
-True, it is so. In this part of our history we have to deal with a
-little city and a little people; and even in this democratic age, there
-are persons who will put up with nothing but electors and kings. May we
-be permitted to reply that what is small, as regards outward
-appearances, is sometimes important as regards moral influence. This is
-a truth often reverted to in Holy Scripture: _The ships, though they be
-so great, yet are they turned about with a very small helm_.[5]
-
-This portion of our narrative contains two parts: one is devoted to a
-man—Calvin; the other to a city—Geneva. These two existences seem in the
-eyes of many persons to evolve separately, as if they were never to
-meet. But there is a close relation between them: from the very
-beginning they are destined to unite. Each is energetic, though without
-parade, and their alliance will in some future day double their
-strength. When Calvin and Geneva are one, many men and nations will feel
-their powerful and salutary influence. It is a marriage that will
-produce a numerous and active posterity. Whatever the friends of worldly
-greatness may say, this union, when it took place, was an event of more
-importance to the human race, than that which led a panegyrist of
-Louis XIV. to exclaim, in reference to a celebrated event—
-
- Les Bourbons, ces enfants des dieux,
- Unissent leurs tiges fécondes![6]
-
-The idea expressed above will not be generally accepted. The smallness
-of the scene which it unfolds will prevent the second work from
-interesting so much as the first. And yet there have been critics who
-have felt the importance of the history of Geneva. May we be permitted
-to give a few examples?
-
-The _London Review_ says: 'For the narrowness of the field—a small
-city—the variety of characters presented may well astonish us. The
-dew-drop is big enough to hold an image of the heavens and earth; and a
-city closely studied mirrors an empire. The story is crowded with
-incidents and surprises, with heroic deeds and endurance, and also with
-foul deeds and shames.' Some reviewers have gone so far as to place the
-facts of the second work above those of the first. The _New York
-Observer_ says: 'The story of the times in which the Swiss Reformation
-was wrought is surrounded with a sublimity, romantic grandeur, and
-interest that attach to no part of the great German movement under
-Luther.'
-
-We omit the remarks of other journals, particularly of the _Saturday
-Review_, which rejoices to see 'the Genevese champions of liberty
-brought to light.' We must, however, quote one more, the _Patriot_,
-which says: 'Geneva is one of the smallest and one of the most heroic
-cities of Europe. Had it been predicted, its history would have been
-incredible. Geneva defied not only the Duke of Savoy and the Pope, but
-the Emperor Charles V., and dared also his scarcely less powerful rival
-Francis I.; and in spite of them all it won, first, its political and
-then its religious liberties, and not for itself only but for Northern
-Europe. More than once it was the Thermopylæ of Protestantism and
-freedom, bravely held by an heroic little band scarcely more in
-comparison with those who sought to destroy them than the three hundred
-men of Leonidas in comparison with the Persians.'
-
-But if the opinions of some were favourable to the little city, the
-criticisms of others were not so; and as the author will again speak of
-Geneva in this volume, and (God willing) in others, he desires to say a
-word of explanation with reference to these objections.
-
-If the work is found uninteresting, the fault must be ascribed to the
-historian, not to the history. The talent of one of the great masters of
-history would have prevented all reproach; but the workman damaged the
-work. Can the present generation have become so fastidious as to cease
-to feel interest in what is great and beautiful of itself, and to need
-all the refinements of style in order to revive its morbid tastes?
-
-Geneva is a republic, and this, perhaps, may also have told against our
-narrative. Some persons have fancied that when the author spoke of
-liberty, he meant liberty in the republican form alone, and that may
-have displeased them. But that is a mistake; the author has always had
-in view that constitutional liberty which includes all modern liberties,
-and not any particular form of it. He even believes that the monarchical
-form is the most favourable to the liberties of a great nation. It has
-been his lot to see side by side, a republic without liberty and a
-monarchy in which all were free.
-
-The coldness, however, of some readers for the annals of a little
-people, proceeds in the main from another cause. There are in reality
-two histories: one which is external and makes much noise, but whose
-consequences are not lasting; the other, which is internal, has but a
-mean appearance, like the seed when it germinates; and which
-nevertheless bears most precious fruit. Now what pleases the general
-public is a narrative in which great armies manœuvre; while, on the
-other hand, what touches the author is the movement of the soul, of
-strong characters, enthusiastic outbursts, the low estate of humble and
-tranquil hearts, holy affections, life-giving principles, the faith
-which gains victories, and the Divine life which regenerates nations—in
-a word, the moral world. The material world, physical and appreciable
-forces, parks of artillery and glittering squadrons, possess but a
-secondary interest in his eyes. Numerous cannons (it is true) give more
-smoke; but to those external powers, which destroy life, he prefers the
-internal powers which elevate the soul, warm it for truth, for liberty,
-and for God, and cause it to be born again to life everlasting. If these
-internal forces are developed in the midst of a little people, they
-possess all the more attraction for him.
-
-If humble heroes are not popular, shall I therefore leave their noble
-actions in obscurity? Shall I limit myself henceforward to bringing
-princes and kings on the stage, with statesmen, cardinals, armies,
-treaties, and empires? No: I cannot do so. I shall have to speak,
-indeed, of Francis I. and Charles V., of Anne Boleyn and Henry VIII.,
-and other great personages; but I shall still remain faithful to little
-people and little things. It is indeed a petty city whose struggles I am
-relating; but it is the city that for two centuries made head against
-Rome, until she had resigned the task entrusted to her into the hands of
-more powerful nations—England, Germany, and America. Let the liberals
-despise her who at this very time most enjoy the fruits of her severe
-struggles.... Be it so.... As for me, I have not the courage to follow
-them. I call to mind the refugees she has entertained ... the asylum
-they found there, and which their children still enjoy ... and I desire
-to pay my debt. Oh! if she would only understand that she cannot exist
-with honour in the future, unless, while loving liberty, she loves the
-Gospel more than everything else.
-
-Let me say a few words more on the principles which have guided me in
-composing this history. What it is necessary for us to study above all
-things is, in my opinion, the beginnings. The formation of beings, the
-origin of the successive phases of humanity, possess in my eyes an
-importance and interest far surpassing the exhibition of what these
-things have afterwards become. The creative epoch of Christianity, in
-which we contemplate Christ and His apostles, is to me far more
-admirable than those which succeeded it. Similarly the Reformation,
-which is the creation of the evangelical world in modern times, has
-greater attractions for me than the Protestantism which comes after. I
-take a pleasure in watching life in its commencement. When the work is
-done, its _summa momenta_ are over. In the first lines of the first
-volume of my first work, I said that I should follow this rule. I shall
-not be reproached for remaining faithful to it.
-
-An objection has been raised that this history is too full of details. I
-might reply that it is not good to leave facts in vagueness; that they
-must be analysed and described. The surrounding circumstances can alone
-give an accurate knowledge of events, and impress on them the stamp of
-reality. The author may here quote an authority which no one will
-dispute. He remembers, that being in Paris at M. Guizot's, just as the
-first volume of the _History of the Reformation_ appeared—about thirty
-years ago—that illustrious writer said to him: 'Give us DETAILS, the
-rest we know.' We do not think that many of our readers will fancy they
-know more than he does.
-
-Another conviction also exercises some influence on the character of my
-narrative. It seems to me that the study of the unknown has a peculiar
-charm. Geneva and its struggles for liberty and the Gospel, are a _terra
-incognita_, except to its citizens and a few men of letters. When
-historians describe ancient or modern times—for example, the Revolution
-of the Netherlands, of England, or of France,—they can only say a little
-better what others have already said before them. Perhaps there is some
-advantage in exploring a virgin soil—in adding new facts to that
-treasury which ought to be the wisdom of nations. The author is not,
-however, blind to the truth there may have been in some of the
-criticisms upon his work—and while following the principles he has laid
-down, he will endeavour to profit by them.
-
-He had hoped to publish the third and fourth volumes together this year.
-Having been forced to pass the winter of 1862-63 at Nice, with
-injunctions to abstain from work, he publishes one only now; but the
-next, God willing, will not be long delayed.
-
-On returning from Nice, the author passed through Piedmont, partly to be
-present at a synod in the Waldensian valleys, which reminded him of the
-one described in this volume; and partly to make researches among the
-General Archives of the kingdom at Turin. The valuable collections there
-contained were liberally thrown open to him, and he was able to select
-and transcribe some precious documents hitherto unknown, of which, as
-will be seen, he made immediate use. While thanking the various persons
-who have been useful to him in his researches, the author desires also
-to express his acknowledgments to the translator of this work, Dr. H.
-White, who has spared no pains in conveying to the English reader a
-faithful and animated copy of the original. The translation has been
-carefully revised by the author with great care, line by line and word
-by word, and some changes, not in the French edition, have been
-introduced.
-
-Will this work obtain a success similar to that which attended the
-former one? That treated of the Reformation in Germany, with Luther as
-its hero; this treats especially of the Reform in Western Europe, with
-Calvin as its head. The scene of the latter being nearer home, ought to
-have more interest for British readers; or shall a new-born passion for
-Germany and the Germans make them look with indifference on all that
-does not directly concern the country of Luther?... France, Holland,
-England, Scotland, Switzerland should possess some attraction for them.
-The history, hitherto almost unknown, of the Reformation of Geneva is
-not only attractive in itself, it is also of importance with regard to
-England. Geneva is the representative of a Christian system, of a great
-doctrine,—that of the supreme authority of Holy Scripture, and of the
-pure Gospel. The final triumph of this doctrine is of the greatest
-consequence for the English churches. A well-known British theologian of
-our day has said: 'Two systems of doctrine are now, and probably for the
-last time, in conflict—the Catholic and the _Genevan_.'[7]
-
-May this work be of some little use in determining the issue!
-
- LA GRAVELINE, EAUX VIVES:
- _Geneva, May 1864_.
-
-[1] Went to God between the hours of eight and nine o'clock in the
-evening of Saturday 27th May.
-
-[2] Conférences de Genève en 1861, i. pp. 390, 391.
-
-[3] Luke, xviii. 31.
-
-[4] See Book ii. ch. xxi. xxii. xxvi. xxxi. xxxiii.
-
-[5] Epistle of St. James, iii. 4.
-
-[6] 'Those children of the gods, the Bourbons, unite their fruitful
-races.'
-
-[7] Dr. Pusey, _Letter to the Archbishop of Canterbury_.
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
- OF
- THE THIRD VOLUME.
-
-
- BOOK IV.
- TIMES OF HOSTILITY TO THE REFORM IN FRANCE.
-
- CHAPTER I.
- CALVIN, THE FUGITIVE, IN HIS RETREAT AT ANGOULÊME.
- (NOVEMBER AND DECEMBER 1533.)
-
- Rights of Conscience, claimed by Protestants, repudiated by Rome—Calvin
- in Flight—Accepts the Cross—Tillet's House, Rue de Genève—The Library—A
- new Phase—Doxopolis—The quiet Nest—Calvin's Studies—The Forge in which
- Vulcan prepares his Bolts—Men who rank themselves among Beasts—Calvin
- attacks them—Noble intercourse of Friendship
- PAGE 1
-
- CHAPTER II.
- THE EXILE TURNS PREACHER.
- (DECEMBER 1533 AND JANUARY 1534.)
-
- The Greek of Claix—Men of Mark gather round him—Conferences at
- Gérac—Prayer and the Search for Truth—Those who believe and those who
- know—Calvin supplies Sermons for the Priests—He preaches in Latin
- 15
-
- CHAPTER III.
- CALVIN AT NÉRAC, WITH ROUSSEL AND LEFÈVRE.
- (WINTER 1533-34.)
-
- Religious Awakening in the South—Margaret arrives at Nérac—Evangelical
- movement around her—Refugees, the Poor, and Children—Calvin goes to
- Nérac—Roussel's Concessions and Calvin's Firmness—A candid old
- Man—Lefèvre predicts Calvin's Future—A Lesson received by Calvin—He
- rebukes the unequally yoked
- 23
-
- CHAPTER IV.
- A DRAMATIC REPRESENTATION AT THE COURT OF NAVARRE.
- (WINTER 1533-34.)
-
- The Lord's Supper at Pau—Opposition of the King of Navarre—The Mystery
- of _The Nativity_—A Carpenter and a young Jewess—They are ill-received
- at Bethlehem—They Lodge in a Stable—The Lord sends His Angels—Joseph
- returns, and worships the Child—Amusing Interlude—Conversation between
- the Shepherds—The Angels announce the Nativity—Shepherds and
- Shepherdesses go to Bethlehem—The Shepherds discover the
- Child—Adoration—Satan appears—He denies the Incarnation—Satan
- conquered, and Christ triumphs—Effects produced by the Mystery
- 32
-
- CHAPTER V.
- CALVIN AT POITIERS, AT THE BASSES-TREILLES, AND IN
- ST. BENEDICT'S CAVE.
- (SPRING 1534.)
-
- Calvin and Du Tillet at Poitiers—Calvin at the University—Awakening and
- Renewal—Friends and Enemies—Calvin's successful Teaching—Invited to the
- Lieutenant-General's—Conversation about Luther and Zwingle—Garden of
- the Basses-Treilles—The first Calvinist Council—Calvin's Grotto—Earnest
- Prayer—Calvin speaks against the Mass—Interruption—Appeal—The Lord's
- Supper
- 51
-
- CHAPTER VI.
- CALVIN AND HIS DISCIPLES BEGIN THE EVANGELISATION OF FRANCE.
- (SPRING 1534.)
-
- Calvin and the four Brothers St. George—They desire to remain Abbots,
- although Evangelical—They sacrifice a brilliant Position—France on the
- point of awaking—The Missionaries sent out—Babinot and Vèron—The
- Reformation and the Young—The Reformation and Science—How Faith and
- Science should unite—Abusive Language against Calvin—Calvin leaves
- Poitiers—His Letter to the Church of Poitiers—He will not be the Pope's
- Vassal—Poitiers regrets Calvin—Calvin resigns his Benefices—His
- Influence at Noyon
- 65
-
- CHAPTER VII.
- THE EVANGELICAL CHRISTIANS OF PARIS IN 1534.
- (SUMMMER 1534.)
-
- Progress of the Gospel in France—Calvin arrives in Paris—Martyrdom of
- Pointet—Milon the Paralytic—His Gaieties and his Fall—His
- Conversion—His Christian Life—Du Bourg, the Draper—Valeton, the
- Receiver of Nantes—Giulio Camillo and his Machine—Contrary Opinions of
- Sturm and Calvin—A Scholar and a Bricklayer—Catelle—A characteristic of
- Calvin
- 79
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
- CALVIN'S FIRST RELATIONS WITH THE LIBERTINES AND WITH SERVETUS.
- (SUMMER 1534.)
-
- The Spirituals or Libertines—Calvin a Conservative—Murder and
- Theft—Calvin begins the Struggle—False Liberality of the
- Spirituals—Treatise against the Libertines—Servetus—He desires to win
- Calvin and France—Calvin and Servetus on the Trinity—Luther, Zwingli,
- and Bucer against Servetus—A Discussion appointed—Servetus stays
- away—_Psychopannychia_—Character of Calvin's Divinity—His Happiness at
- La Forge's—Determines to leave Paris—The Travellers robbed—They arrive
- at Strasburg
- 92
-
- CHAPTER IX.
- THE PLACARDS.
- (OCTOBER 1534.)
-
- Temporisers and Scripturists—Feret sent by the Christians of Paris to
- consult Farel—Movement in Switzerland—Farel writes the
- Placards—Examined by the Paris Christians—Shall they be
- published?—Posting of the Placards—Their Contents—Their Violence
- neutralises their Success
- 100
-
- CHAPTER X.
- THE KING'S ANGER.
- (AUTUMN 1534.)
-
- Commotion caused by the Placards—A New Missive—Placard posted on the
- King's Door—His Indignation—The King's Orders—Anguish of the
- Reformed—Morin lays his Plans—The Sketch-maker betrays his
- Brethren—Arrests—Valeton and his Books are taken—Du Bourg and the
- Paralytic seized—Numerous Arrests—Duprat and De Tournon excite the
- King—Grief of Queen Margaret—She intercedes in Roussel's Favour—Beda
- accuses the King—_Mass of Seven Points_—The Queen's Preachers before
- the King
- 123
-
- CHAPTER XI.
- EXPIATIONS AND PROCESSIONS.
- (END OF 1534 AND BEGINNING OF 1535.)
-
- Milon's Martyrdom—Du Bourg at the Stake—Poille's Sufferings and
- Courage—Terror and Emigration—Quality of the Fugitives—Hardships of the
- Flight—Roussel, Berthaud and Courault—The King urged to
- persecute—Preparations for the Procession—The Procession—Calvin on the
- Relics—Penitence of the King—The Two Januaries 21
- 140
-
- CHAPTER XII.
- ELOQUENCE AND TORTURES OF FRANCIS I.
- (JANUARY 21, 1535.)
-
- Dinner at the Bishop's—The King's Speech—Effects of the King's
- Rhetoric—The Procession on its Return—The Strappado—Martyrdom of
- Valeton—Torture at the Halles—Proclamations and Punishments—La Forge
- and other Martyrs—La Gaborite—The Holy Candle—The King's Motives—France
- prepared for the Reform—Sturm's Sorrow—His Letter to Melanchthon—
- Luther's Sentiments—The King's Hatred—His Letter to the Germans
- 157
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
- CALVIN AT STRASBURG, WITH ERASMUS, AND AT BASLE.
- (SUMMER AND AUTUMN 1534.)
-
- Calvin's Mission—Strasburg—The College and Matthew Zell—The Pastor's
- Wife—Bucer and Capito—Deficiencies in the Strasburg Divines—Calvin
- leaves Strasburg—Erasmus—His Interview with Calvin—Catherine Klein at
- Basle—Peter Ramus on Calvin—Inward Work in Calvin—Cop at Basle—Grynæus
- and Calvin—Fabri—Calvin exhorts to Peace—Translations of the Bible
- 177
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
- INSTITUTES OF THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION.
- (WINTER 1534.)
-
- News of the Paris Martyrs—Calvin advocates Compassion—Fresh
- Victims—Indignation in Germany—Oswald Myconius—His first Sermon—His
- Opinions on the Martyrdoms—Du Tillet's Anguish—Effect of these
- Cruelties on Calvin—Determines to plead the Cause of his
- Brethren—Theology restored—The Reformation is a Creation—The
- _Institutes_—A Consciousness of Divinity within us—Cavillers and
- Testimony of the Holy Ghost—Expiation—Faith and Charity—The Flame in
- the Heart—Assurance of Victory—Grace is everything—God does not ordain
- Evil—Morality restored in Religion—The Church—Appreciation of the
- _Institutes_
- 194
-
- CHAPTER XV.
- CALVIN ADDRESSES THE KING AND DEPARTS FOR ITALY.
- (AUGUST 1535.)
-
- The Martyrs Cornon and Brion—Letter to the King—The Evangelical
- Doctrine is Truth—Truth Attacked and not Defended—Reign of
- Brigandage—The Invincible Doctrine—Cause of the zeal of the Monks—Is
- the Doctrine new?—Testimony of the Fathers—State of the World—Where the
- True Church is to be found—Satan quiet or active—Tortures and
- Patience—Printing of the _Institutes_—Calvin starts for Italy—His
- Motives for going
- 216
-
-
- BOOK V.
- STRUGGLES OF THE REFORMATION.
-
- CHAPTER I.
- EFFORTS IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.
- (1521.)
-
- Uses of Opposition—Conciliation needful—Stagnation and new
- Struggles—Vaud and Geneva—Farel—His Portrait—Greatness of the
- beginnings of the Reform—The General prepares for Conquest—Fabri visits
- Farel—Farel desires to return to the Combat—The Indulgence Seller at
- Orbe—Farel preaches the Pardon of the Saviour—Friar Michael aroused
- against him—His first and second Sermon—Hollard gives the lie—He is
- severely beaten
- 232
-
- CHAPTER II.
- PLOT OF THE WOMEN AGAINST REFORM; FAREL'S PREACHING.
- (1531.)
-
- The Bailiff of Berne arrives at Orbe—The Monk in Prison—Romain
- compelled to run for his Life—Beaten by the Women—Intercession in the
- Monk's favour—Farel arrives at Orbe—Tumult—Plot of the Women—Friar
- Michael's Examination—Michael liberated and Farel preaches—Singular
- Congregation—Procession and Sermon—Farel preaches on Penance,
- Indulgences, Confession, Images, and a Worldly Life—Farel hard to
- please with regard to the Ministry
- 248
-
- CHAPTER III.
- A NEW REFORMER AND AN IMAGE-BREAKER.
- (1531.)
-
- Pierre Viret goes to Paris—Converted and returns to Orbe—His
- Struggles—Conversion of his Parents—Farel and Viret—Viret preaches at
- Orbe—The Peter, Paul, and John of Switzerland—Conversion of Elizabeth
- d'Arnex—Conversion of a Priest—The Lord's Supper at Orbe—All the Images
- thrown down—Arrest of the Priests—The Banneret appeals to the
- People—Release of the Priests—The Iconoclasts imprisoned
- 262
-
- CHAPTER IV.
- THE BATTLES OF GRANDSON.
- (1531-32.)
-
- Malady of petty Questions—Farel's Wisdom—How he raised Recruits—
- War—cries of the Reformers—Farel marches to Battle—Battle of Grandson
- in 1476—Farel turned out by the Grey Friars—Struggle in the Benedictine
- Convent—The Church opened to the Reformers—The Reformers
- imprisoned—Reinforcements from Yverdun and Lausanne—The Grey-Friar's
- Sermon—Fresh Struggle beginning—The Sentinel-Monks—Conspiracy of the
- devout Women-Conversion of the Monks—Christmas Festival at
- Orbe—Disorders of the Catholics—Council of the Reformed—First Act of
- Religious Liberty
- 276
-
- CHAPTER V.
- THE WALDENSES APPEAR.
- (1526 TO OCTOBER 1532.)
-
- The Waldenses enquire about the Reform—Deputation to Œcolampadius—
- Confession of the Barbes—Origin of the Waldenses—Marriage—Work—The
- Mass—Natural Strength—Brotherly Love of Œcolampadius—Proposals for a
- Synod—Martyrdom of Masson—Farel's Danger—His Journey and Arrival in the
- Valleys—Conversations—Opening of the Synod—Election and Works—Farel's
- Opinions gain ground—Discussion on Compromises—Harmony between the
- Waldensians and Reformers—Old Waldensian manuscripts—Translation of the
- Bible determined upon—Farel desires to go to Geneva
- 293
-
- CHAPTER VI.
- PLANS OF THE EMPEROR, THE DUKE OF SAVOY, AND THE BISHOP
- AGAINST GENEVA.
- (1530-1532.)
-
- Bellegarde arrives at Augsburg—His Audience with Charles V.—The
- Emperor's Anxieties—His Answer—Bellegarde's Letter to the Duke of
- Savoy—His Designs against Geneva—Revolutionary Measures—The Bishop
- sends his Secretary to Geneva—His constant Agitation and Anger—His
- displeasure against B. Hugues—Charles V. orders Geneva to expel the
- Sectarians—The _Zwing-Uri_ of Geneva—Freedom in sight
- 312
-
- CHAPTER VII.
- THE REFORMERS AND THE REFORMATION ENTER GENEVA.
- (OCTOBER 1532.)
-
- Farel and Saunier go to Geneva—Farel consults Olivetan—Farel calls upon
- the Huguenot Leaders—They go to hear Farel—He shows them their
- Deficiencies—Farel and his Hearers—Sensation in the City—His second
- Lecture and its Effects—The Women of Geneva opposed to the Reform—Farel
- before the Town Council—The Council divided—The name of Berne protects
- him—The Episcopal Council deliberates—Conspiracy against Farel—Farel
- summoned before Clergy
- 328
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
- THE REFORMERS ARE EXPELLED FROM GENEVA.
- (OCTOBER 1532.)
-
- Farel before the Episcopal Council—Speech of the Official—Veigy's
- Invectives—Farel's Answer—A clerical Tumult—Syndic Hugues
- interposes—Danger of Farel and his Friends—Olard tries to shoot
- Farel—Farel turned out of Geneva—A Storm—A Priest tries to stab
- Farel—He is protected by the Magistrates—Farel's Departure
- 343
-
- CHAPTER IX.
- A JOURNEY TO THE VALLEYS OF PIEDMONT, AND STRUGGLES NEAR
- NEUCHÂTEL.
- (END OF 1532.)
-
- Farel desires to send Froment to Geneva—Recollections of their common
- Dangers—Olivetan requested to translate the Bible—He fears the
- Critics—Olivetan departs for the Valleys—An inhospitable Woman—Olivetan
- and his three sick Friends—A Monk of St. Bernard—Olivetan in the
- Valley—Neuchâtel—A Fight in the Church—Decree of the Council—A strange
- Christmas Festival—The Curé heads the Battle—A Christmas
- Sermon—Locle—The Oxen of the Brenets
- 356
-
- CHAPTER X.
- THE SCHOOLMASTER AND CLAUDINE LEVET.
- (NOVEMBER AND DECEMBER 1532.)
-
- Froment departs for Geneva—Bad Reception at first—Desires to leave the
- City—His Prospectuses—Great Success—Froment teaches—Difference between
- Rome and the Reform—The bewitched Paula takes Claudine to hear
- Froment—Claudine crosses herself and listens—Shut up three Days and
- three Nights with the Gospel—Her Conscience finds Peace—Her Conversion
- and Interview with Froment
- 373
-
- CHAPTER XI.
- FORMATION OF THE CHURCH. FRIENDS AND OPPONENTS.
- (MIDDLE TO THE END OF DECEMBER 1532.)
-
- The Bishop's Anger—Progress of the Gospel—Claudine lays aside her
- costly Attire—The Ladies of Geneva—Conversion of many of them—Little
- Assemblies—The Church without form and the Church formed—A Monk
- preaches the Gospel—Th. Moine and a Sermon at the Madeleine—Four
- Huguenots demand a Disputation—Discussion with the Vicar—The Armed
- Priests—Tumult at the Madeleine—The Vicar of St. Germain's—Froment
- forbidden to preach—St. Sylvester's Eve
- 388
-
- CHAPTER XII.
- THE SERMON AT THE MOLARD.
- (NEW YEAR'S DAY, 1533.)
-
- Crowd at Froment's Lodgings—He is called to preach at the
- Molard—Invites the People to pray—His Text—Sermon at the Molard—The
- Interruption—The False Prophets—God the sole Judge—The Magistrates
- interfere—Froment's Escape and Concealment—Meeting of the
- Council—Serious posture of Affairs—Froment assaulted—Forced to leave
- Geneva
- 403
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
- HOLY SCRIPTURE AND THE LORD'S SUPPER AT GENEVA.
- (JANUARY AND FEBRUARY 1533.)
-
- Romish Reaction—Friar Bocquet sent away—Baudichon de la Maisonneuve—
- Evangelical Meetings—Two kinds of Protestantism—Olivetan's
- Work—Translation of the Bible—The Word and the Sacrament—Guerin—First
- Sacrament at Pré l'Evêque—Guerin forced to leave—The Two Winds
- 423
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
- FORMATION OF A CATHOLIC CONSPIRACY.
- (LENT, 1533.)
-
- Olivetan's Remonstrance and Exile—Preparations of the Clerical Party—De
- la Maisonneuve at Berne—Berne demands Freedom of Worship—Two Hundred
- Catholics before the Council—They ask for Justice—Agitation against the
- Lutherans—The Conspirators assemble—Secret Plots—Speeches of the
- Leaders—Solemn Oath—Catholics meet at St. Pierre's Church—The Reformed
- at Maisonneuve's—Goulaz and Vandel exhort to Peace—Vandel wounded
- 434
-
- CHAPTER XV.
- FIRST ARMED ATTACK OF THE CATHOLICS UPON THE REFORMATION.
- (MARCH 28, 1533.)
-
- The Catholics prepare to fight—The Standards of the King go forth—The
- Troops are formed—An Alarm—Muster at the Molard—The three Corps—The
- Artillery and the Banner—The Prayer of the Nuns—Agitation in the City—A
- cruel husband—Reinforcement of Women and Children—Scene at
- Maisonneuve's—Consolation and Prayer—Fight between Philippe and
- Bellessert—The St. Gervaisians retire—Claudine Levet pursued—Plan to
- burn out the Huguenots—Peigy's Troop change their Road—The Reformed in
- Line of Battle—The Cannons planted—The Trumpet sounds—Tears and Prayers
- 448
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
- TRUCE BETWEEN THE TWO PARTIES.
- (FROM MARCH 28 TO MAY 4, 1533.)
-
- Mediation of the Friburgers—Their Language to the Syndics and the
- Priests—A Consultation—Joy and Murmuring—Plan of
- Reconciliation—Articles of Peace—Dominican Song of Victory—The
- Sacrament on Holy Thursday—Alarm of the Catholics—The Dominican at St.
- Pierre's—Embassy to Berne—Is followed by Maisonneuve—His Speech to the
- Council of Berne—The Syndic is Dumb
- 470
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
- SECOND ATTACK, IN WHICH THE LEADER PERISHES.
- (MAY 4, 1533.)
-
- War of the Tongue—Huguenots depart for Lyons—Festival of the Holy
- Winding-Sheet—High Mass—Importance of the Struggle—Ideas become Acts—A
- Holiday Evening ends in a Brawl—An Agent of the Clergy excites the
- Crowd—Marin de Versonay—The Tocsin sounds—Wernli arms for the
- Fight—Decisive Moment—His Appeals—His first Challenge—Skirmish in the
- Dark—Wernli heads the Fight—His Death—How the Night was spent
- 486
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
- THE CANON'S DEATH MADE A WEAPON AGAINST THE REFORM.
- (MAY TO JULY 1533.)
-
- The Corpse discovered—Distress of the Catholics—Arrival of Wernli's
- Relations—The Burial—A Miracle—Preparations to crush the Reform—The
- Bishop at Arbois—The Pope orders him to return to Geneva—His
- Indecision—Determines to go—Importunity of the Mamelukes' Council—A
- Coup d'Etat necessary—Two Victories to be won—Friburg demands the Trial
- of Wernli's Murderers—Declaration of Religious Liberty
- 503
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
- CATASTROPHE.
- (BEGINNING OF JULY 1533.)
-
- Preparations to receive the Bishop—His Entrance—The Bishop at the
- General Council—Agitation—The Magistrates consult the Charters—The
- Bishop's despotic Intentions—Proscriptions—The Huguenots
- entrapped—Escape of many—One of their Wives imprisoned—Strange Request
- of the Bishop—Levet's Flight—He is pursued and taken—Various
- Rumours—The Bishop cites the Prisoners before him—Attacks on the
- Huguenots—The Courage of the Genevese—Elders of Geneva before the
- Bishop—The Bishop persists in his Illegality—Firmness of the
- Genevese—The Friburgers call for Vengeance—G. Wernli's Speech—Refusal
- of the Two Hundred—Arguments for the Temporal Power—Opposition to
- Absolute Power—The Prisoners in their Dungeons—Impatience of the
- Mamelukes—Attempt to murder Curtet—Dangers accumulating—Geneva and
- Calvin—Triumph and Tribulation—Hope
- 516
-
-
-
-
- HISTORY
- OF THE
- REFORMATION IN EUROPE
- IN THE TIME OF CALVIN.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK IV.
- TIMES OF HOSTILITY TO THE REFORM IN FRANCE.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
- CALVIN, THE FUGITIVE, IN HIS RETREAT AT ANGOULÊME.
- (NOVEMBER AND DECEMBER, 1533.)
-
-
-Religion needs liberty, and the convictions inspired by her ought to be
-exempt from the control of the Louvre and of the Vatican. Man's
-conscience belongs to God alone, and every human power that encroaches
-on this kingdom and presumes to command within it is guilty of rebellion
-against its lawful sovereign. Religious persecution deserves to be
-reprobated, not only in the name of philosophy, but above all in the
-name of God's right. His sovereign Majesty is offended when the sword
-enters into the sanctuary. A persecuting government is not only
-illiberal, it is impious. Let no man thrust himself between God and the
-soul! The spot on which they meet is holy ground. Away, intruder! Leave
-the soul with Him to whom it belongs.
-
-These thoughts naturally occur to us as we approach an epoch when a
-persecuting fanaticism broke out in France, when scaffolds were raised
-in the streets of Paris, and when acts of terrible cruelty were
-enthusiastically applauded by a royal cortége.
-
-These rights of conscience, which we record, are not new. They date
-neither from our century, nor from the sixteenth. The Saviour
-established them when he said: '_Render unto Cæsar the things which are
-Cæsar's, and_ UNTO GOD THE THINGS THAT ARE GOD'S.' Since that hour they
-have been maintained by many courageous voices. During three centuries
-the martyrs said to the pagan emperors: 'Is it not an irreligious act to
-forbid my worshipping the God whom I like, and to force me to worship
-the god whom I dislike?'[8] In the fourth century Athanasius and Hilary
-told the Arian princes: 'Satan uses violence, he dashes in the doors
-with an axe ... but persuasion is the only weapon truth employs.'[9] In
-later years, when the barbarians desired to bend the Church under the
-weight of brute force, the hitherto servile clergy declared as loudly as
-they could that religious doctrine did not fall under the dominion of
-the temporal sword.
-
-[Sidenote: ROME, A PERSECUTING POWER.]
-
-When, therefore, in the bloody days of the Reformation, the power of
-Rome, uniting in some countries with the power of the princes, wished to
-constrain men's souls and force them to submit to its laws, the
-evangelical christians, by claiming liberty in their turn, only asserted
-the great principle of Jesus Christ formerly adopted by the Church
-herself. But, strange to say! this principle which she had found so
-admirable, when she had to employ it in self-defence, became impious
-when it was appealed to in order to escape from her persecutions. Such
-inconsistencies frequently occur in the history of fallen humanity. We
-must call them to remembrance though it be with sorrow. There have
-always existed many generous persons in the bosom of catholicity who
-have protested with horror against the frightful punishments by which it
-was attempted to make our forefathers renounce their faith; and there
-are still more now, for the laws of religious liberty are gradually
-becoming established among nations. But we must never forget that two
-centuries of cruel persecution was the welcome the world gave to the
-Reformation. When the day of St. Bartholomew saw the streets of the
-capital of the Valois run with blood,—when ruffians glutted their savage
-passions on the corpse of that best and greatest of Frenchmen,
-Coligny—immense was the enthusiasm at Rome, and a fierce shout of
-exultation rang through the pontifical city.[10] Wishing to perpetuate
-the glory of the massacre of the huguenots, the pope ordered a medal to
-be struck, representing that massacre and bearing the device:
-_Hugonotorum strages_. The officers of the Roman court still sell (as we
-know personally) this medal to all who desire to carry away some
-remembrance of their city. Those times are remote; milder manners
-prevail, but it is the duty of protestantism to remind the world of the
-use made by the court of Rome, on emerging from the middle ages, of that
-_pre-eminence_ in catholic countries, which she contends belongs to her
-always, and which she is still ready to claim 'with the greatest
-vigour.' Resistance to this cruel pre-eminence cost the Reformation
-torrents of the purest blood; and it is this blood which gives us the
-right to protest against it.
-
-Before we describe the scenes of horror that defiled the streets of
-Paris at this period, we must follow in his flight that young doctor,
-who, though illustrious in after years, was now the victim of
-persecution.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The feast of All Saints being the day when the university celebrated the
-opening of the academical year, Calvin (as we have seen), through the
-channel of his friend Cop the rector, had displayed before the Sorbonne
-and a numerous audience the great principles of the Gospel. University,
-monks, priests had all been excited, scandalised, and exasperated;
-parliament had interfered; and Cop and Calvin were obliged to flee.
-
-That man whose hand was one day boldly to raise the standard of the
-Gospel in the world, whose teaching was to enlighten many nations, and
-whose eloquence was to stir all France; that man who was yearly to send
-forth from Geneva some thirty or forty missionaries, and whose letters
-strengthened all the Churches; that man, still young, pursued by the
-lieutenant-criminal and his sergeants, had been forced to steal out of
-his chamber into the street and disguise himself in strange garments;
-and in the beginning of November, he found himself in the back streets
-on the left bank of the Seine looking on every side lest there should be
-any one on his track. He had never been more tranquil than at the moment
-when struck by this sudden blow. Francis I. resisted the insolence of
-the monks; the Sorbonne had been compelled to disavow their most
-fanatical acts; many Lutherans were able to preach the Gospel freely to
-those around them; a reforming movement seemed spreading far and wide
-through France ... when suddenly the lightning darted forth and struck
-the young reformer. 'I thought I should be able to devote myself to
-God's service without hindrance,' said he in his flight; 'I promised
-myself a tranquil career; ... but at that very moment, what I expected
-least, namely persecution and exile, were at the door.'[11]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN'S FLIGHT]
-
-Calvin did not regret, however, the testimony he had borne to the truth,
-and resigned himself to exile. Far from resembling the unbroken horse
-(to use his own expression) who refuses to carry his rider, he
-voluntarily bowed his shoulders to the cross.[12] _Never tire in the
-middle of your journey_, was his maxim always.[13] Yet as he travelled
-along those rough byroads of the Mantois, he often asked himself what
-this severe dispensation was to teach him. Was he to retire from Paris
-and renounce the idea of making that city the centre of his christian
-activity? That would, indeed, be a hard trial for him. His people seemed
-to be waking, and he must leave them!... Still he kept on his way. On
-arriving near Mantes, he went to the residence of the Sire de Haseville,
-to whom he was known, and there remained in hiding several days. He then
-resumed his journey, either because he thought himself too near his
-enemies, or because his host was afraid.
-
-Calvin took the road to the south; he crossed the charming plains and
-valleys of Touraine, entered the pasturages and forests of Poitou, and
-thence turned his steps towards Saintonge and the Angoumois.[14] This
-latter province was the end of his journey. On a hill at whose foot the
-Charente 'softly flowed,' stood the cathedral, the old castle and city
-of Angoulême, the birth-place of Margaret of Navarre. Calvin entered the
-gates of this antique town, and made his way to one of the principal
-streets, which afterwards received in his honour the name it still
-bears—_Rue de Genève_. In that street was a large mansion whose
-principal apartment was a long gallery in which more than four thousand
-volumes, printed or manuscript, were collected: it was one of the most
-valuable private libraries then existing in France.[15] The fugitive
-halted before this house. Learned works were doubtless well calculated
-to attract him; but he was animated by another motive also. This mansion
-belonged to the family of Du Tillet, whose members were reckoned among
-the most learned in the kingdom. The father and two of his sons were
-detained in Paris by their duties in the Chamber of Accounts, at the
-Louvre and in parliament; but another son, Louis, canon of the
-cathedral, was at Angoulême, and lived alone in that large house, when
-he was not at his parish of Claix. Louis was Calvin's friend,[16] and it
-was the remembrance of this gentle, mild, and rather weak young man,
-whose disposition was very engaging, that had induced the fugitive to
-bend his steps towards the Angoumois.
-
-[Sidenote: DU TILLET'S HOUSE AND LIBRARY.]
-
-Calvin stopped in front of his friend's house and knocked at the door,
-it opened, and he went in: we cannot say whether he found the canon
-there or not, but at all events the latter was filled with joy when he
-heard of the arrival of the young doctor, whose 'great gifts and grace'
-he admired so much, and whose intimacy had been so sweet to him. Calvin
-told him how he had been obliged to flee from the attacks of the
-parliament, and of the danger to which those who gave him refuge were
-exposed. But Du Tillet thought himself the happiest of men, if he could
-but shelter his friend from the search of his enemies. Once more he was
-about to enjoy those spiritual and edifying conversations which he had
-so often regretted and could never forget.[17] Even the persecution of
-which Calvin was a victim made him all the dearer to his friend; and
-Louis introduced him into the vast gallery, installed him in the midst
-of the most eminent minds of all ages, whose celebrated works loaded the
-numerous shelves, and established him, as in a safe retreat, in that
-beautiful library which seemed prepared for the lofty intelligence and
-profound studies of the theologian.
-
-Calvin, who needed retirement and repose, felt happy. 'I am never less
-alone than when alone,' he used to say.[18] At one time, he gave thanks
-to God; at another, taking the precious volumes from the shelves around
-him, he opened and read them, assuaging the thirst for knowledge which
-consumed him. A learned retreat, like that now given him, was the dream
-of his whole life. Pious reflections crowded into his heart, and if
-during his flight he had felt a momentary darkness, the light now shone
-into his soul. 'The causes of what happens to us are often so hidden,'
-he said in after times, 'that human affairs seem to turn about at
-random, as on a wheel, and the flesh tempts us to murmur against God,
-because he sports with men, tossing them here and there like balls, ...
-but the issue shows us that God is on the watch for the salvation of
-believers.'[19]
-
-[Sidenote: DOXOPOLIS.]
-
-A new epoch, a new phase, was beginning for Calvin: he was leaving
-school, he was about to enter upon life, and a pause was necessary. The
-future reformer, before rushing into the storms of an agitated career,
-was to be tempered anew in the fire of the divine Word and of prayer.
-Great struggles awaited him: the Church was waking up from the slumber
-of death, throwing back the winding-sheet of popery, and rising from the
-sepulchre. One universal cry was heard among all the nations of the
-West. At Worms, a monk had demanded the Holy Scriptures of God in
-presence of the imperial diet; a priest had demanded them at Zurich;
-students had demanded them at Cambridge; at Spire, an assembly of
-princes had declared that they would hear nothing but the preaching of
-that heavenly Word; and its life-bearing doctrines had been solemnly
-confessed at Augsburg in the presence of Charles V. Germany,
-Switzerland, England, the Low Countries, Italy—all Europe, in a word,
-was stirred at the sight of that new faith which had come forth from the
-tomb of ages.... France herself was moved. How could a young man so
-modest, so timid, who feared so much all contact with the passions of
-men—how could Calvin battle for the faith, if he did not receive in the
-retirement of the wilderness the baptism of the Spirit and of fire?
-
-And this baptism he received. Alone and forced to hide himself, he
-experienced an inward peace and joy he had never known before. 'By the
-exercise of the cross,' he said, 'the Son of God receives us _into his
-order_, and makes us partakers of his glory.' Accordingly he gave a very
-extraordinary name to the obscure town of Angoulême: he called it
-_Doxopolis_, the city of glory, and thus he dated his letters. How
-pleasant and glorious this retirement proved to him! He had found his
-Wartburg, his _Patmos_, and unable any longer to hide from his friends
-the happiness he enjoyed, he wrote to Francis Daniel of Orleans: 'Why
-cannot I have a moment's talk with you?' he said, 'not indeed to trouble
-you with my disputes and struggles; why should I do so? I think that
-what interests you more just now is to know that I am well, and that, if
-you take into account my known _indolence_, I am making progress in my
-studies.'[20] Then after speaking of Du Tillet's kindness, of his own
-responsibility, and of the use he ought to make of his leisure ... the
-joy which filled his heart ran over, and he exclaimed with thankfulness:
-'Oh! how happy I should think myself, if the peace which I now enjoy
-should continue during the time of my retirement and exile.[21] The
-Lord, whose providence foresees everything, will provide. Experience has
-taught me that we cannot see much beforehand what will happen to us. At
-the very moment when I promised myself repose, the storm burst suddenly
-upon me. And then, when I thought some horrible den would be my lot, a
-quiet _nest_ was unexpectedly prepared for me.[22]... It is the hand of
-God that hath done this. Only let us trust in him, and he will care for
-us!' Thus the hunted Calvin found himself at Angoulême, under God's
-hand, like a young storm-driven bird that has taken refuge in the nest
-under the wing of its mother.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN'S LABOURS.]
-
-The young canon took the liveliest interest in the fate of his guest,
-and hoped to see the hospitality he showed him bear precious fruits for
-learning and the Gospel. Calvin, too humble to believe that Du Tillet's
-cares had any reference to himself, ascribed them solely to his friend's
-zeal for knowledge and the cause of Christ; it seemed to him that he
-could never repay such kindness but by constant labour, and that was all
-he ever had to give. 'My protector's kindness,' he said, 'is sufficient
-to stimulate the indolence of the laziest of men.[23] Cheer up, then!
-let me make an effort, let me struggle earnestly. No more
-carelessness!'[24] Then he shut himself up in Du Tillet's library,
-gathered round him the books he wanted, and said: 'I must give all my
-attention to study; this thought is constantly pulling me by the ear.'
-If he took a moment's leisure, he felt 'his ear pulled,' that is to say,
-his conscience was troubled; he hurried to his books, and set to work
-with so much zeal, 'that he passed whole nights without sleeping and
-days without eating.'[25] This was his _indolence_!
-
-A great idea was at that time growing in his heart. Parliament accused
-and even burnt his brethren for pretended heresies. 'Must I be silent,'
-he said, 'and thus give unbelievers an opportunity of condemning a
-doctrine they do not know? Why should not the Reformed have a confession
-to lay before their adversaries?'[26] As he examined Du Tillet's
-library, he came upon certain books which seemed to him to bear
-particularly on the existing state of suffering among evangelical
-christians. He saw that apologies had formerly been presented to the
-Emperor Adrian by Quadratus and Aristides, to Antoninus by Justin
-Martyr, and to Marcus Aurelius by Athenagoras. Ought not the friends of
-the Reformation to present a similar defence to Francis I.? If Calvin's
-mouth is shut, he will take up the pen. God was then setting him apart
-for one of the great works of the age. He did not indeed compose his
-_Christian Institutes_ at this time, even under the elementary form of
-the first edition, but he meditated it; he searched the Scriptures; he
-drew out the sketch, and perhaps wrote some passages of that work, the
-finest produced by the Reformation. And hence one of the enemies of the
-Reform, casting a severe look on the learned library of the Du Tillets,
-was led to exclaim: 'This is the forge where the new _Vulcan_ prepared
-the bolts that he was afterwards to scatter on every side.... That is
-the factory where he began to make the nets that he afterwards fixed up
-to catch the simple, and from which a man must be very clever to get
-out. It was there that he wove the web of his _Institutes_, which we may
-call the _Koran_ or the _Talmud_ of heresy.'[27]
-
-[Sidenote: MATERIALISTS.]
-
-While Calvin was writing his first notes, he heard some strange rumours.
-Men spoke to him of certain materialists in whose opinion the soul died
-with the body. At first he hesitated as to what he should do. 'How,' he
-asked, 'can I join battle with adversaries of whose camp and arms and
-tactics I know nothing, and of whom I have only heard some confused
-murmur?'[28] Another consideration checked him. Allied to them were
-Christians who, while rejecting these errors, said that _time_ did not
-exist for the soul separated from the body, and that the moment of death
-was followed instantly by the moment of resurrection. 'I should not like
-these good people to be offended against me,' he said. Calvin refused to
-fire a shot against his enemies lest he should wound his brethren.
-
-But one day he was told of enormous and degrading sophisms. These
-teachers said to their followers: 'God has not placed in man a soul
-different from that of the beast. The soul is not a substance; it is
-only a quality of life, which proceeds from the throbbing of the
-arteries or the motion of the lungs. It cannot exist without the body,
-and perishes with it, until man rises again whole.'[29] Calvin was
-thunderstruck. To be a man and to rank yourself among beasts, seemed to
-him foolish and impious. 'O God!' he exclaimed, 'the conflagration has
-increased, and thrown out flakes which, spreading far and wide, have
-turned to burning torches.... O Lord, extinguish them, we pray thee, by
-that saving rain which thou reservest for thy Church!'[30]
-
-It was this gross materialism which absorbed Calvin's attention at
-Angoulême. He saw the evil which these teachers might do the Reform, and
-shuddered at the thought of the dangers which threatened the simple.
-'Poor reeds tossed by every wind,' he exclaimed, 'whom the slightest
-breath shakes and bends, what will become of you?'... Then addressing
-the materialists he said: 'When the Lord says that the wicked kill the
-body but _cannot kill the soul_, does he not mean that the soul survives
-after death?[31] Know you not that, according to Scripture, the souls of
-the saints stand before the throne of God, and that white robes were
-given unto every one of them?'[32] Then resorting to irony, he
-continued: 'Sleepy souls, what, I pray, do you understand by these
-_white robes_? Do you take them for _pillows_ on which the souls recline
-that are condemned to die?'[33] This mode of arguing was not rare in the
-sixteenth century. Calvin, agitated by these errors, took up his pen,
-and committed to paper the reflections which he published shortly after.
-
-Calvin loved to repose from these struggles on the bosom of friendship.
-In the society of Du Tillet at Angoulême he found once more the charms
-which that of Duchemin had procured for him at Orleans. All his life he
-sought that noble intercourse, those _offices_, those kindnesses which
-friendship procures.[34] Even when deep in study, he loved to see the
-library door open, a well-known face appear, and a friend sit down by
-his side. Their conversations had an inexpressible sweetness for him.
-'We have no need,' said the young canon, 'of those secrets which
-Pythagoras employed to produce an indissoluble friendship between his
-disciples. God has planted a mysterious seed between our souls, and that
-seed cannot die.'[35]
-
-[8] 'Adimere libertatem religionis, interdicere optionem divinitatis,'
-&c. Tertullianus, _Apol._ cap. xxiv.
-
-[9] Athanasius, _Hist. Arian._ § 3.
-
-[10] 'Quis autem _optabilior_ ad te nuncius adferri poterat, aut
-nos ipsi quod _felicius_ optare poteramus principium pontificatus
-tui, quam ut primis illis mensibus _tetram illam caliginem_, quasi
-exorto sole, _discussam_ cerneremus?'—_Mureti Orat._ xxii.
-
-[11] 'Cum promitterem mihi omnia tranquilla, aderat foribus quod minime
-sperabam.'—Letter to Francis Daniel.
-
-[12] Calvin, _Harmonie Evangélique_.
-
-[13] Calvin, _Lettres Françaises_, published by Jules Bonnet, i. p.
-349.
-
-[14] 'In agrum Santonicum demigrans.'—Beza, _Vita Calvini_.
-
-[15] 'Conclavi quodam in Tilii ædibus, plus quatuor librorum, tam
-impressorum quam manuscriptorum, millibus instructo.'—Flor. Rémond,
-_Hist. Heres._ ii. p. 248.
-
-[16] See Vol. II. book ii. ch. xx.
-
-[17] _Corresp. de Calvin et de Du Tillet_, published by M. Crottet,
-p. 30.
-
-[18] 'Nunquam minus solum esse quam quum solus esset.'—Flor. Rémond,
-_Hist. Heres._ ii. p. 247.
-
-[19] Calvin, _Institutes_, bk. i. ch. xvii.
-
-[20] 'Et pro ea quam nosti desidia, nonnihil studendo proficere.'—Berne
-MSS. vol. 450, Calvin to Fr. Daniel. _Doxopolis._
-
-[21] 'Si id temporis quod vel exilio, vel secessui destinatum est, tanto
-in otio transigere datur, præclare mecum agi existimabo.'—Ibid.
-
-[22] 'Nidus, mihi, in tranquillo componebatur præter opinionem.'—Ibid.
-
-[23] 'Sane inertissimi hominis ignaviam acuere posset patroni mei
-humanitas.'—Berne MSS. vol. 450, Calvin to F. Daniel. _Doxopolis._
-
-[24] 'Mihi conandum est, serioque contendendum.'—Ibid.
-
-[25] 'Tam somni quam cibi omnino oblitus.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist.
-Heres._ ii. p. 247.
-
-[26] 'Debere nobis in promptu esse fidei confessionem ut cam proferamus
-quoties opus est.'—Calvin, _Opp._ v. pars 4ta, p. 34.
-
-[27] 'In hac officina Vulcani....telam exorsus ad capiendos simplicium
-animos....Alcoranum vel Talmud.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ ii.
-p. 246, and French edition, liv. vii. ch. ix.
-
-[28] _Opusc. Franç._ de Calvin, p. 3. This letter is not in the
-Latin edition.
-
-[29] 'Vim duntaxat vitam esse, aiunt, quæ ex spiritu arteriæ aut
-pulmonum agitatione ducitur.'—_Psychopannychia_, Op. Lat. p. 1.
-
-[30] _Opusc. Franç._ p. 2, Preface.
-
-[31] Ibid. p. 12. _Opusc. Lat._ p. 5.
-
-[32] Revelation vi. 11, vii. 9.
-
-[33] 'O spiritus dormitorii! Quid vobis sunt stolæ albæ? Pulvinaria
-scilicet in quibus ad somnum decubent?' _Opusc. Lat._ pp. 10, 11,
-15.
-
-[34] Montaigne, _Essais_, liv. i. ch. xxvii.
-
-[35] Correspondance de Calvin avec Du Tillet, pp. 29, 34, 48.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
- THE EXILE TURNS PREACHER.
- (DECEMBER 1533 AND JANUARY 1534.)
-
-
-By degrees, however, Calvin came out of his retirement. Shut up in his
-library, he began to sigh for country air, like Luther in the Wartburg.
-He went out sometimes, alone or with his friend, and rambled over the
-hills and quiet meadows watered by the Charente. The neighbourhood of
-Angoulême did not present the grandeur he was one day to find on the
-shores of the Leman; but to him everything in creation was beautiful,
-because he saw the Creator everywhere. He could even be profoundly
-touched by the beauties of nature: 'In the presence of the works of
-God,' he said, 'we are overcome with astonishment, and our tongues and
-senses fail us.'[36] Not far from the city was a vineyard belonging to
-the canon, to which Du Tillet one day conducted his friend. The
-delighted Calvin returned there frequently; the remembrance of these
-visits still lingers in those parts, and the vineyard still goes by the
-name of _La Calvine_.[37]
-
-About this time their circle was increased: John Du Tillet, afterwards
-bishop of Meaux, arrived at Angoulême. He too became attached with his
-whole heart to Calvin: the latter, wishing to make himself useful to the
-two brothers, offered to teach them Greek, and while teaching them to
-read the New Testament, he led them to seek Christ. John listened
-greedily to the young doctor's words; hence he was long suspected by the
-Romanists, and having published in 1549 a very old manuscript, ascribed
-to Charlemagne, _Against Images_—the _Libri Carolini_ are known to be
-opposed to them—he occasioned loud murmurs: 'A man who has been Calvin's
-pupil,' said the famous Cardinal du Perron, 'cannot well have any other
-opinion.'[38]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AT CLAIX.]
-
-These lessons, begun at Angoulême, were continued at Claix, where Du
-Tillet used to spend a part of the year. People asked in the village who
-that short, thin, pale young man was, who looked so serious and meek,
-and whom they often met with the Du Tillets. The best informed said that
-he gave them lessons in Greek. This study was a thing so extraordinary
-in the Angoumois, that the country people, ignorant of the professor's
-name, called him the _Greek of Claix_, or the _little Greek_. Some of
-the better people of the neighbourhood of Claix occasionally met the
-friends: they entered into conversation, and, says a contemporary, 'all
-who loved learning esteemed the young scholar;'[39] his knowledge of the
-classics, his taste so fine and accurate, attracted them to him. Certain
-friends of the Du Tillets, ecclesiastics of good family, men of letters
-and of feeling, soon shared this admiration of his virtues and his
-talents: they were Anthony de Chaillou, Prior of Bouteville, the Abbot
-of Balsac (near Jarnac), the famous De la Place, the Sieur de Torsac,
-Charles Girault, and others. Calvin's appearance, his simple dress and
-modest look interested these good men at first sight; and that clear and
-penetrating glance which he preserved until the last, soon revealed to
-them the keen intelligence and uprightness of the young _Greek_. They
-conceived the most hearty affection for him. They loved to hear him
-speak of the Saviour and of heaven, and yielded to his evangelical
-teaching without a thought of being faithless to that of the Church.
-This was the case with many Catholics at that time. They did not find in
-Calvin the things that make fine talkers in the world—'nonsense, merry
-jests, bantering, jokes, and all sorts of foolery, which pass away in
-smoke,'[40] but the charms and profitableness of his conversation
-captivated all who heard him. De la Place in particular received a deep
-impression: 'I shall never forget,' he wrote years after, 'how your
-conversation made me better, when we were together at Angoulême. Oh!
-what shall I give you in this mortal life for the immortal life that I
-then received?'[41]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN'S FRIENDS.]
-
-The frequent visits paid to the _Greek_ by persons of consideration were
-soon remarked by the clergy; on the other hand, Bouteville desired to
-substitute more regular conferences for these simple conversations. He
-lived at the castle of Gérac, situated in a less frequented
-district.[42] 'Come to my house,' he said to his friends, 'and let each
-of us state freely his convictions and objections.' Calvin hesitated
-about going: 'he was fond of solitude, and spoke little in company;' but
-the thought of bringing his friends to the Gospel decided him.
-
-[Sidenote: CONFERENCES AT GÉRAC.]
-
-One day, therefore, the modest doctor appeared in the midst of the Prior
-of Bouteville's guests; one idea had absorbed him on the road to Gérac.
-He thought that 'truth is not a common thing; that it rises far above
-the capacity of the human understanding, and that we ought to purchase
-it at any price.' At last when he joined his friends, after mutual
-greetings had been exchanged, he spoke to them of the subject that
-filled his heart. He opened the Bible, placed his hand on it, and said,
-'Let us find the truth!'[43]... 'The whole conference,' says Florimond
-Rémond, a staunch Catholic, 'had no other object but _the investigation
-of truth_, a phrase which he had generally in his mouth.' Calvin,
-however, did not set himself up as an oracle: addressing the conscience,
-he showed that Christ answered all the wants of the soul; the
-conversation soon became animated, his friends bringing forward
-objections. He never was at a loss; 'having a marvellous facility,' they
-said, 'in penetrating suddenly the greatest difficulties and clearing
-them up.' The visitors of Gérac departed joyfully to their homes.
-
-After these conferences, Calvin returned quietly to his retreat, and
-prayed for those to whom he had spoken and for others besides. 'If
-sometimes we are cold in prayer,' he said, 'let us at once remember how
-many of our brethren are sinking under heavy burdens and grievous
-troubles; how many are oppressed by great anguish in their hearts and in
-all extremity of evils.... We must have hearts of iron or steel, if such
-sluggishness in prayer cannot then be expelled from our bosoms.'[44]
-
-Calvin felt the necessity of giving a solid foundation to the faith of
-his friends. 'A tree that is not deeply rooted,' he said, 'is easily
-torn up by the first blast of the storm.' He then committed to paper, as
-we have said, the first ideas of his _Christian Institutes_. One day, as
-he was starting for Gérac, he took his notes with him, and read what he
-had just written to the circle assembled in the castle.[45] He did this
-several times afterwards; but the notes served merely as a text on which
-he commented with much eloquence. 'No one can equal him,' they said, 'in
-loftiness of language, conciseness of arrangement, and majesty of
-style.' He was not content with stating this doctrine or that: His fine
-understanding grasped the organic unity of the Christian truths, and he
-was able to present them as a divine whole.[46] It was no doubt the cry
-of his conscience which had led him to seek salvation in the Holy
-Scriptures; but he had not been able to study, compare, and fathom them
-without his understanding becoming enlightened, developed, and
-sanctified. The moral faculty is that which is first aroused in the
-Christian; but it immediately provokes the exercise of the intellectual
-faculties. The citizens of the kingdom of God are not those who know,
-but those who believe; not the learned, but the regenerated. A church in
-which the intellectual faculty is above the moral faculty, does not bear
-the stamp of the Protestant and Christian principle; but every church in
-which the divine faculty of the understanding is neglected, and where
-learning is viewed with distrust, will easily fall into deplorable
-error.
-
-Calvin's explanations, so deep and yet so clear, were not without their
-use. Du Tillet, Chaillou, De la Place, Torsac, and others mutually
-expressed their admiration and joy after the young doctor had retired;
-then, at their homes and apart from the world, they meditated on the
-consoling truths they had heard. Many of the most notable men of the
-district were won over to evangelical convictions.[47] The Prior of
-Bouteville, in particular, showed from that time so much faith and
-zeal—he was, after Calvin's departure, so much the father and guide of
-those who had received the seed of truth, that he was called throughout
-the province: 'The Lutherans' Pope.'[48]
-
-Calvin's sphere widened gradually: he wrote to those to whom he could
-not speak;[49] and ere long his friends asked why they should keep for
-themselves alone the bread of life on which they fed?... One of them
-giving utterance to this thought to the young doctor added: 'But you can
-only reach the people in the churches.' It was scarcely possible that
-Calvin, a fugitive from Paris, could visit the churches of the Angoumois
-as an evangelical missionary. 'Compose some short Christian exhortations
-for us,' said his friends to him, 'and we will give them to
-well-disposed parish priests to read to their congregations.'[50] He did
-so, and humble clerks read these evangelical appeals from their pulpits,
-as well as they could. Thus Calvin preached through the mouths of
-priests to poor villagers, as he had addressed the imposing Sorbonne by
-the mouth of the rector.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN PROVIDES SERMONS.]
-
-This encouraged certain church dignitaries, especially the prior, who
-were at once his disciples and his patrons. If Calvin could not preach
-in French, why should he not teach in Latin? They surrounded the young
-doctor, representing to him that Latin, the language of the Roman
-Church, could not occasion any scandal, and asked him to deliver some
-Latin orations before the clergy. Calvin, firmly convinced that the
-reform ought to begin with the teaching of the priest, preached several
-Latin sermons in St. Peter's Church.[51] In this way he inaugurated his
-career as a reformer. All this could not be done without giving rise to
-murmurs. The faithful followers of Rome complained of him, of the prior,
-of all his friends, and this opposition might become dangerous. 'Fatal
-instrument,' says a Romanist with reference to Calvin's stay in the
-Angoumois, 'which was destined to reduce France to greater extremities
-than the Saracens, the Germans, the English, and the house of Austria
-had done.'[52] He was not, however, the only one who was assisting in
-this excellent work.
-
-[36] Calvin, _Psaumes_, ch. civ.
-
-[37] Drelincourt, _Défense du Calvinisme_, p. 40; Crottet,
-_Chron. protest_. p. 96.
-
-[38] _Perroniana._
-
-[39] 'Ut erat omnibus qui litteras amabant carus.'—Flor. Rémond,
-_Hist. Heres._ ii. 246.
-
-[40] 'Sornettes, plaisantes rencontres, railleries, brocards, et toutes
-niaiseries, lesquelles s'en vont en fumée.'
-
-[41] 'Neque enim sum immemor quantum me meliorem reddideris.'—De la
-Place to Calvin. Geneva MSS.
-
-[42] 'In arce quadam, non procul ab oppido Engolismensi sita.'—Flor.
-Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ ii. p. 247.
-
-[43] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ (French ed. liv. vii. p. 389;
-Lat. ed. liv. vii. p. 251.)
-
-[44] Calvini _Opp._ Ephes. vi.
-
-[45] 'Ibi _Institutiones_ suas Calvinus depromebat quantum quoque
-die scripsisset ipsis recitans.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ ii.
-p. 247.
-
-[46] 'Theologiæ suæ mysteria revelabat atque explicabat.'—Ibid.
-
-[47] 'Complures auctoritatis viros in suam sententiam pertraxit.'—Flor.
-Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ ii. p. 247.
-
-[48] 'Butevillani prior lutheranorum papa postea cognominatus.'—Ibid.
-
-[49] Du Perron, in the _Perroniana_, mentions several of Calvin's
-letters preserved by the Du Tillets.
-
-[50] 'Amico cuidam cujus rogatu breves quasdam admonitiones Christianas
-scripsit.'—Beza, _Vita Calvini_, Lat. p. 4; French, p. 15. Bayle
-(sub voce _Calvin_) thinks that Du Tillet was the friend of whom
-Beza speaks; perhaps it was Chaillou.
-
-[51] 'Semel atque iterum in æde S. Petri obivit.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist.
-Heres._ ii. p. 251, &c. Crottet, _Chron. protest._ p. 97.
-
-[52] Varillas, _Hist. des Révolutions Religieuses_, ii. p. 459.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
- CALVIN AT NÉRAC WITH ROUSSEL AND LEFÈVRE.
- (WINTER OF 1533-34.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: RELIGIOUS AWAKENING IN THE SOUTH.]
-
-While Francis I. was endeavouring to stifle the Reformation in the north
-of France, it was spreading in the south, and many souls were converted
-in the districts bordering the Pyrenees. Evangelical Christians of other
-countries, some of whom were ministers, had taken refuge there, and
-'towns and villages were _perverted_ suddenly by hearing a single
-sermon,' says a Roman Catholic historian. On certain days, the simple
-peasants and even a few townspeople, arriving by different paths, would
-meet in a retired spot, in the bed of some dried-up torrent or in a
-cavern of the mountain. They had often to wait a long time for the
-preacher; the priests and their creatures forced him to make a wide
-circuit; sometimes he did not come at all. 'Then,' says a Catholic,
-'women might be seen trampling on the modesty of their sex, taking a
-Bible, reading it and even assuming the boldness to interpret it, while
-waiting for the minister.'
-
-At this epoch the Queen of Navarre arrived in the south. The noise
-caused in 1533 by the rector's sermon and Calvin's disappearance, had
-induced her to quit St. Germain for the states of her husband. Her
-brother the king was then at a distance from Paris; her nieces with
-their governesses, Mesdames de Brissac and De Montreal, and the somewhat
-gloomy and oppressive etiquette which prevailed at the court of Queen
-Eleanor of Portugal, was not much to the taste of the lively and
-intelligent Margaret of Navarre. She therefore started for Nérac. Two
-litters with six mules, three baggage mules, and three or four carriages
-for the queen's women[53] entered the city, and took the road that leads
-to the vast Gothic castle of the D'Albrets. It was a very scanty retinue
-for the sister of Francis I.
-
-[Sidenote: QUEEN MARGARET AT NÉRAC.]
-
-Margaret alighted from her litter, and was hardly settled in her
-apartments before she felt quite happy, for she had escaped at last from
-the pomps and struggles of the court of France. She laid aside her showy
-dresses and her grand manners; she hid the majesty of her house beneath
-a candour and friendliness that enchanted all who came near her. Dressed
-like a plain gentlewoman, she quitted the castle, crossed the Baise
-which flows through the city, and rambled along the beautiful walks of
-the neighbourhood, having for companions only the seneschaless of Poitou
-or one of her young ladies of honour. But she had come for something
-more than this. Having fled far from the palaces and cities where the
-persecuting spirit of Rome and of the parliament was raging, she
-occupied herself more particularly in giving a fresh impulse to the
-evangelical movement in the southern provinces. Her activity was
-inexhaustible. She sent out _colporteurs_ who made their way into
-houses, and while selling jewellery to the young women, presented them
-also with New Testaments, printed in fine characters, ruled in red and
-bound in vellum with gilt edges. 'The mere sight of these books,' says
-an historian, 'excited a desire to read them.' Around the queen
-everybody was in motion, labouring and murmuring like a hive of bees.
-'Margaret,' says the king's historiographer, 'was the precious flower
-that adorned this parterre, and whose perfume attracted the best spirits
-of Europe to Bearn, as thyme attracts honey-bees.'[54]
-
-The queen might often be seen surrounded by a troop of sufferers, to
-whom she showed the tenderest respect. These were the refugees: Lefèvre
-of Etaples, Gerard Roussel, converted priests and monks, and a number of
-laymen, obliged to leave France, which they had been able to do, thanks
-to the queen who had assisted their flight. 'The good princess,' said a
-Catholic, 'has really nothing more at heart than to get those out of the
-way whom the king wishes to deliver up to the severities of justice. If
-I attempted to give the names of all those whom she has saved from
-punishment, I should never finish.'[55]
-
-The Christians exiled for the Gospel did not make her forget the
-wretched of her own country. One day, when Roussel was describing to her
-the unfortunate situation of a poor family, Margaret said nothing; but
-returning to her chamber, she threw a Bearnese hood over her shoulders,
-and, followed by a single domestic, went out by a private door, hastened
-to the sufferers, and comforted them with the tenderest affection.[56]
-
-She took pleasure in founding schools. Roussel, her chaplain, would
-visit the humble room in which the children of the people were learning
-to read and write, and going up to them would say: 'My dear children ...
-the death of Christ is a real atonement. There is no sin so small as not
-to need it, or so great that it cannot be blotted out by it.[57] Praying
-to God,' he would add, 'is not muttering with the lips: prayer is an
-ardent and serious converse with the Lord.'[58]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AND ROUSSEL.]
-
-There was one feature, however, in this awakening in the south which, in
-Calvin's eyes, rendered it imperfect and transitory, unless some remedy
-were applied to it. There was in it a certain halting between truth and
-error. The pious but weak Roussel manifested a lamentable spirit of
-compromise in his teaching. Wearied with the struggles he had gone
-through, he sheltered himself under the cloak of the Catholic Church. He
-did not pray to the Virgin, he administered the Holy Sacrament in two
-kinds; but he celebrated a kind of mass—a mournful and yet touching
-instance of that mixed Christianity which aimed at preserving
-evangelical life under catholic forms.
-
-Calvin at Angoulême was not far from Nérac, and his eyes were often
-turned to that city. He longed to see Lefèvre before the old man was
-taken from the world, and was uneasy about Roussel, whom he feared to
-see yielding to the seductions of greatness. One of the christian
-thoughts that had laid the strongest hold on his mind, was the
-conviction that the wisdom from on high ought to reject every compromise
-suggested by ambition or hypocrisy.[59] Ought he not to try and bring
-back Roussel into the right path from which he appeared to be wandering?
-Calvin left Du Tillet's house probably about the end of February, and
-called upon Roussel as soon as he arrived at Nérac.
-
-The most decided and the most moderate of the theologians of the
-sixteenth century were now face to face. Calvin, naturally timid and
-hesitating, 'would never have had the boldness so much as to open
-his mouth (to use his own words); but faith in Christ begot such a
-strong assurance in his heart, that he could not remain silent.' He,
-therefore, gave his opinion with decision: 'There is no good left in
-Catholicism,' he said. 'We must re-establish the Church in its ancient
-purity.'[60]—'What is that you say?' answered the astonished
-Roussel; 'God's house ought to be purified, no doubt, but not
-destroyed.'[61]—'Impossible,' said the young reformer; 'the edifice is
-so bad that it cannot be repaired. We must pull it down entirely, and
-build another in its place.'[62]—Roussel exclaimed with alarm: 'We must
-cleanse the Church, but not by setting it on fire. If we take upon
-ourselves to pull it down, we shall be crushed under the ruins.'[63]
-
-Calvin retired in sorrow. Type of protestant decision in the sixteenth
-century, he always protested freely and boldly against everything that
-was contrary to the Gospel. He displayed this unshakeable firmness not
-only in opposition to catholic tendencies, but also against
-rationalistic ideas. It would not be difficult to find in Zwingle, in
-Melanchthon, and even in Luther, some sprinkling of neology, of which
-the slightest traces cannot be found in Calvin.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AND LEFÈVRE.]
-
-Nérac, as we have said, sheltered another teacher—an old man whom age
-might have made weaker than Roussel, but who under his white hair and
-decrepid appearance concealed a living force, to be suddenly revived by
-contact with the great faith of the young scholar. Calvin asked for
-Lefèvre's house: everybody knew him: 'He is a little bit of a man, old
-as Herod, but lively as gunpowder,' they told him.[64] As we have seen,
-Lefèvre had professed the great doctrine of justification by faith, even
-before Luther; but after so many years, the aged doctor still indulged
-in the vain hope of seeing Catholicism reform itself. 'There ought to be
-only one Church,' he would frequently repeat, and this idea prevented
-his separation from Rome. Nevertheless, his spiritualist views permitted
-him to preserve the unity of charity with all who loved Christ.
-
-When Calvin was admitted into his presence, he discerned the great man
-under his puny stature, and was caught by the charm which he exercised
-over all who came near him. What mildness, what depth, what knowledge,
-modesty, candour, loftiness, piety, moral grandeur, and holiness, had
-been said of him![65] It seemed as if all these virtues illuminated the
-old man with heavenly brightness just as the night of the grave was
-about to cover him with its darkness. On his side, the young man pleased
-Lefèvre, who began to tell him how the opposition of the Sorbonne had
-compelled him to take refuge in the south, 'in order,' as he said, 'to
-escape the bloody hands of those doctors.'[66]
-
-Calvin endeavoured to remove the old man's illusions. He showed him that
-we must receive everything from the Word and from the grace of God. He
-spoke with clearness, with decision, and with energy. Lefèvre was
-moved—he reflected a little and weeping exclaimed: 'Alas! I know the
-truth, but I keep myself apart from those who profess it.' Recovering,
-however, from his trouble, he wiped his eyes, and seeing his young
-fellow-countryman 'rejecting all the fetters of this world and preparing
-to fight under the banner of Jesus,' he examined him more attentively,
-and asked himself if he had not before him that future reformer whom he
-had once foretold:[67] 'Young man,' he said, 'you will be one day a
-powerful instrument in the Lord's hand.[68]... The world will
-obstinately resist Jesus Christ, and everything will seem to conspire
-against the Son of God; but stand firm on that rock, and many will be
-broken against it. God will make use of you to restore the kingdom of
-heaven in France.'[69] In 1509 Luther, being of the same age as Calvin
-in 1534, heard a similar prophecy from the mouth of a venerable doctor.
-
-Yet, if we may believe a catholic historian, the old man did not stop
-there. His eyes, resting with kindness on the young man, expressed a
-certain fear. He fancied he saw a young horse which, however admirable
-its spirit, might dash beyond all restraint. 'Be on your guard,' he
-added, 'against the extreme ardour of your mind.[70] Take Melanchthon as
-your pattern, and let your strength be always tempered with charity.'
-The old man pressed the young man's hand, and they parted never to see
-each other again.
-
-Did Calvin see the Queen of Navarre also? It does not appear that
-Margaret was living at Nérac at that time; but he had some relations
-with her. It has been said that she felt an interest in his exile;[71]
-and it is possible that she had some share in the resolution he soon
-formed of quitting the south. She may have assured him that he had
-nothing to fear in Paris, if he committed no imprudence. But we have
-found nothing certain on these points.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN REBUKES THE UNEQUALLY YOKED.]
-
-For the present, Calvin returned to Du Tillet's. The visits made to
-Roussel and Lefèvre had taught him a lesson. He comprehended that it was
-not only souls blindly submissive to Rome that incurred imminent danger;
-he conceived the liveliest alarm for those minds which floated between
-the pope and the Word of God, either through weakness or want of light.
-He saw that as the limit between the two churches was not yet clearly
-traced, some of those who belonged to Rome were lingering beneath the
-fresh and verdant shades of the Gospel, while others who ought to belong
-to the Reformation still wandered beneath the gothic arches of Romish
-cathedrals and prostrated themselves at the foot of Romish altars. This
-state of things—possibly approved of by many—Calvin thought dangerous,
-and his principles going farther, he undertook 'to rebuke freely (as he
-says) those who yoked with unbelievers, keeping them company in outward
-idolatry.'[72]
-
-[53] Brantôme, _Capitaines illustres_, p. 235.
-
-[54] Olhagaray, _Hist. de Foix_, &c. p. 505.
-
-[55] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ viii. ch. ii.
-
-[56] Sainte Marthe, _Oraison funèbre de la Reine de Navarre_.
-
-[57] MSS. fol. 2. Schmidt, p. 131.
-
-[58] MSS. fol. 89 _a_, 177 _b_.—Ibid. pp. 145, 157.
-
-[59] Calvini _Opp._ James iii. 17.
-
-[60] 'Ecclesia in pristinam puritatem restituenda propositum ei aperuit,
-inquiens nihil omnino sani in catholica superesse ecclesia.'—Flor.
-Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ ii. p. 272.
-
-[61] 'Non destruendam sed fulciendam.'—Ibid.
-
-[62] 'Vetus illud ædificium planissime esse dejiciendum, et novum
-instruendum.'—Ibid.
-
-[63] 'Ejusdem ruinis sepultum.'—Ibid.
-
-[64] Bayle, _Dictionnaire critique_, sub voce.
-
-[65] 'Eruditione, pietate, animi generositate nobilissimus.'—Bezæ
-_Icones_.
-
-[66] 'Ut vix illorum manus cruentas effugerit.'—Bezæ _Icones_.
-
-[67] 'Futurum augurant.'—Beza, _Vita Calvini_.
-
-[68] 'Insigne instrumentum.'—Ibid.
-
-[69] 'Cœlestis in Gallia instaurandi regni.'—Ibid.
-
-[70] Ne perfervidum hoc ingenium omnia misceret atque everteret.'—Flor.
-Rémond, ii. p. 272.
-
-[71] Freer's _Life of Marguerite_, ii. p. 120.
-
-[72] 'Rédarguer librement ceux qui s'accouplant avec les infidèles, leur
-tenaient compagnie en idolâtrie externe.'—Calvin, _Comm. in 2 ad
-Cor._, cap. vii.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
- A DRAMATIC REPRESENTATION AT THE COURT OF NAVARRE.
- (WINTER OF 1533-34.)
-
-
-Henry and Margaret having quitted Nérac for Pau, where they intended
-passing the winter, had reached those picturesque heights, separated by
-a ravine, on which the city stands, and had entered the castle. The
-queen had found pleasure in adorning it with the most magnificent
-gardens then known in Europe, and liked to walk in them, conversing with
-Cardinal de Foix, the Bishop of Tarbes, and many other distinguished
-persons who admired her wit and grace. And yet these ecclesiastics often
-caused her 'much vexation.' Surrounded by persons who made a regular
-report to Francis I., watched by the king her husband and the
-dignitaries of the Church who were at her court, this pious but weak
-woman bent under the weight. She began the day by attending morning
-service in the catholic church of the parish; then in the afternoon she
-privately collected in her chamber the evangelical members of her court,
-and the little band of exiles, with a few men and women of the people
-who, coming forward awkwardly, took their seats timidly on the handsome
-furniture of the queen. Roussel, Lefèvre, or some other minister,
-delivered an exhortation, and the little assembly separated, feeling
-that God had really been present in the midst of them.[73]
-
-[Sidenote: THE LORD'S SUPPER AT PAU.]
-
-One day some of these humble believers desired to partake of the Lord's
-Supper. The queen was embarrassed: she did not dare celebrate it in the
-church, nor even in her own room, lest one of the cardinals should enter
-suddenly.... After some reflection Margaret thought she had found what
-was wanted. Under the terrace of the castle there was a large hall
-called _the Mint_, a secret underground place that could be approached
-without attracting notice. By the queen's orders her servants privately
-carried a table there, covered it with a white cloth, and placed a basin
-on it containing 'a few slices of plain bread,' and by its side some
-cups full of wine 'instead of chalices.'—'Such are their altars!'
-ironically exclaims the catholic historian.
-
-On the appointed day, the believers, silent and agitated, came and took
-their places not without fear of being discovered. The queen, forgetting
-the pomps of the Louvre, sat down among them as a simple Christian.
-Roussel appeared, but not in sacerdotal costume, and stood in front of
-the table. 'Those who believe that there is nothing but an empty sign in
-the Sacrament,' he said, 'are not of the school of faith.'[74] He took
-common bread, says the indignant catholic narrator, 'and not little
-round wafers stamped with images.'—'Remember,' continued Roussel with a
-grave voice, 'that Christ suffered and died for us.' He then handed
-round the cup 'without making the sign of the cross!' The worshippers,
-deeply moved, bore a heavenly expression on their faces and felt the
-presence of the Lord: 'The same Christ dwelt in the minister and in the
-people.' No spy nor cardinal appeared, and the communicants, after
-presenting an offering for the poor, withdrew in peace.[75]
-
-Notwithstanding its secresy, this celebration was talked about in the
-castle. The King of Navarre was quite annoyed at it. A thoughtless,
-changeable, and ever violent man, and liable to occasional worldly
-relapses, he began to grow impatient at his wife's piety, and especially
-at the 'feastings in the cellar.' He was habitually in a bad humour, and
-found fault with all that Margaret did.
-
-One day as he returned to the castle from a hunting-party, he asked
-where the queen was. He was told that a minister was preaching in her
-chamber. At these words the king's face flushed. A faithful servant ran
-to warn the queen: ministers and hearers escaped by a back way, and they
-had hardly left the room, when Henry entered abruptly. He stopped,
-looked round him, and seeing only the queen, agitated and trembling, he
-struck her in the face, saying: 'Madame, you desire to know too much.'
-He then left her indignant and confounded. This affront offered to the
-dignity of the royal family of France did not pass unnoticed: Francis
-'scolded Henry d'Albret soundly,' says Brantôme.[76]
-
-[Sidenote: THE MYSTERY OF THE NATIVITY.]
-
-Margaret, eager to win over her husband and to be agreeable to her
-court, resolved to have a representation of some biblical dramas.
-Possibly she might by this means reach those who would not come to the
-sermons. She took for her subject _The Birth_ _of the Saviour_, and
-having completed her poem distributed the parts among certain noble
-maidens. These biblical representations, which displeased Calvin,
-because of their theatrical form, and the Romish clergy because of their
-evangelical truths, charmed the middle party, and as they belong to the
-religious history of the epoch, we cannot pass them by unnoticed.
-Margaret fitted up the great hall of the castle as a theatre. The
-scenery was prepared, and shortly after Christmas placards announced the
-representation of 'The Nativity of Jesus Christ.'[77]
-
-When the day came the hall was crowded. In the front rank of the
-amphitheatre sat the king and queen, the latter wearing a plain dress
-trimmed with marten's fur and a Bearnese hood. Near them were the
-Cardinals De Grammont and De Foix with other members of the clergy.
-Around the royal pair were Margaret's inseparable maids of
-honour—Mademoiselle de St. Pather, the usual distributor of her alms,
-Mademoiselle de la Batenage, Blanche de Tournon, Françoise de Clermont,
-Madame d'Avangour, the greatest 'eaves-dropper' of the court, the
-chancellor, chamberlains, and almoners. Her ten stewards, her esquires
-and thirty-eight maids, her seventeen secretaries, and her twenty
-valets-de-chambre were most of them present.[78] The invited strangers
-occupied seats according to their rank. A first representation has
-rarely excited more curiosity.
-
-[Sidenote: THE MYSTERY-PLAY.]
-
-The first act begins. The scene is placed at Nazareth, in the house of a
-poor carpenter. A man in the prime of life and a young woman are talking
-together. A proclamation has just been published in the market-place
-ordering every one to go to the city of their family to be registered.
-But these poor people belong to Bethlehem, and Bethlehem is a long way
-from Nazareth. The woman is soon to become a mother, and the man is
-uneasy about the consequences of the journey. The young Israelitish
-woman, whose calm meek features indicate the serenity of a pious soul,
-says to him:
-
- ... Us no danger shall come nigh,
- For He whose power o'ershadowed me,
- Holds in his hand both fruit and tree.[79]
-
-The scene changes, and we are at Bethlehem. It is quite dark, but a few
-lights are visible through the windows of the houses. The same man and
-woman—they are Joseph and Mary—have just arrived from Nazareth after a
-fatiguing journey. Joseph, still anxious, begins:
-
- It is late and already night ...
- Let us approach the nearest light.
-
-He knocks at the door, and asks to be admitted. The owner of the house
-looks contemptuously on them and says that he lodges none but rich
-people. Joseph goes a little farther on and knocks at another door:
-
- Will you please lodge my wife and me?
- For the poor woman, as you see,
- Is near her time.
-
-This man looks as contemptuously upon them as the other, and answers
-that he takes in none but noblemen. Joseph, still undiscouraged, points
-out a third man to his wife and says:
-
- Here is a man with pleasant look.
-
-He speaks to him, but the man is a _bon vivant_, and is annoyed by the
-care-worn appearance of the travellers. 'I like,' he says,
-
- Dances, sports, women, good-cheer ...
- No kill-joys are wanted here.
- Pass on, my friends;
-
-Joseph, with a deep sigh:
-
- Onward then, and God will tell
- Where he pleases we should dwell.
-
-But wearied by the journey, and uneasy about her condition, Mary begins
-to change countenance:
-
- Woe's me, I feel the hour draw near
- For the long-looked-for fruit t'appear.
-
-At these words, the startled Joseph looks round him, and discovering at
-last a poor stable, which the wind penetrates on every side, he presses
-Mary to enter it:
-
- I will take care
- To shelter you from every hurtful air.
-
-He settles the young woman as comfortably as he can in the rude shed,
-and prepares to go into the town to get what she requires.
-
- MARY.
-
- Go, go, my friend: I shall not be alone,
- For where God is, there also is my home.
-
-Mary remaining alone offers up a touching prayer to her heavenly Father;
-then, yielding to her fatigue, she lies down upon the straw and falls
-asleep.
-
-The scene changes to heaven. The eyes of the Lord, which 'look upon the
-sons of men,' are turned upon the earth, and are fixed with kindness on
-Mary, whose sleep is gentle and peaceful. Then as the great moment
-approaches, He orders the angels to leave heaven and announce to mankind
-the news of a great joy. He gives each of them a message; some are to go
-to Mary, others to Simeon. The humblest of them says:
-
- ... And I, Lord ...
- I will go seek the least of all,
- And tell him how _great_ he has become
- Since the great one has become small.
-
-Hymns of praise immediately resound through heaven:
-
- Glory to Thee, Almighty Lord!
-
-And the angels depart upon their mission.
-
-The scene changes, and we are once more in the stable at Bethlehem. Mary
-awakes and is still alone. Her heart is agitated by the most astounding
-thoughts: the mystery of God which she discerns surprises and confounds
-her.
-
- Strange! a virgin ... yet a mother
- Of a son above all other,
- Very God and very man!
- Emanuel! of the Father dearest Son ...
- May my hands be joined with thine?
- May thy lips be touched by mine?
-
-At this moment the angels sent by God arrive: they enter the wretched
-stable, filling it with their glory, and each salutes the poor virgin of
-Nazareth in his own fashion. One of them says:
-
- All hail, happy dame,
- Mother of the Son thou lov'st so dearly!
-
-Another, whose character appears to be humility, addresses the new-born
-child:
-
- Little child, pray spare me not ...
- Though I'm small I shall delight
- To wait upon you day and night,
- To wash you or to warm your bed.[80]...
-
-At this point Joseph returns with the provisions he has bought; he is
-distressed at his inability to receive becomingly this child of heaven,
-but resolving to give all that he has, he advances towards the stable.
-On a sudden he stops in surprise ... he looks ... a divine light fills
-the humble shed, and shines all around.
-
- What a strange gleam
- There comes from within!
- I'm like a man in a maze:
- I am quite sure
- I never before
- Saw such a glorious blaze.
-
-He stops at the threshold and looks in. The angels have disappeared, and
-he says:
-
- Mary, I see,
- Has not lost her glee,
- Her face with joy runs o'er ...
- But why does she stare,
- This virgin dear,
- So constantly on the floor?
-
-Joseph looks more carefully, as he stands motionless at the door, and
-discovers Jesus who has just been born:
-
- Yes! 't is the child!
-
-The honest carpenter does not know what to do; he dares not approach,
-and yet he cannot remain apart; a struggle takes place in his soul.
-
- Here will I stay ...
- No! I must go in.
-
-At last Joseph comes forward: he looks at the child, and kneeling humbly
-before him, worships and kisses him.
-
- With this kiss I would cool
- My heart with charity burning.
- What a charming child,
- So handsome and mild,
- And that's the truth, I assure you.
-
-Mary is uneasy: she looks at the child, so weak and tender, and is
-distressed at having nothing to wrap him in,
-
- For the night is cold.
-
- JOSEPH.
-
- I shall light this taper.
-
-He then lights the lamp.
-
- Where shall we put him? In the manger here ...
- No better place in all the inn.
-
-This was the end of the first act. The spectators expressed the interest
-they felt in the drama, at once so serious and so holy; and even the
-Cardinals De Grammont and De Foix found nothing in it contrary to the
-doctrines of the Church. As that was a time when people were very fond
-of diversion, joke and jest followed. Several comic characters appeared
-in the interlude, especially a poor monk, who was the soul of the
-farce.[81] This was not Margaret's composition: even the catholics did
-not charge her with it. The jesters retired at last, and the drama
-proceeded.
-
-The scene represented the fields round Bethlehem, where shepherds and
-shepherdesses were keeping their flocks during the watches of the night.
-One shepherd worn out with labour, another with 'hunting the wolf,' had
-fallen asleep; some shepherdesses followed their example; but one
-shepherd and one shepherdess were awake and communicating their thoughts
-to each other.
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- A something keeps me wide awake;
- My usual sleep I cannot take.
- It is not my flock, I'm sure,
- For the fold is quite secure;
- In my heart a joy I feel
- And I seem good news to hear ...
- Meanwhile I shall turn my eyes
- To the star-bespangled skies.
-
-He contemplates the firmament.
-
- FIRST SHEPHERDESS.
-
- What seest thou, brother, when thine eye
- Thou turn'st admiring to the sky?
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- I admire the great Creator
- Who hath made all things, and we
- Are his temple....
-
- FIRST SHEPHERDESS.
-
- Tell me, shepherd, what He promised
- To the patriarchs who waited
- Patiently for ages?...
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- He has promised the Messiah,
- His true Son, through whom alone
- Life to us has been restored,
- And salvation.
-
- FIRST SHEPHERDESS.
-
- Would to God the hour was nigh!
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- Come, Lord, and no longer tarry!
-
-Suddenly a bright light shines over the fields of Bethlehem, and a
-heavenly voice says:
-
- Shepherds, awake, arise!
- Behold the happy day,
- When God by works for ever new
- Shall his great love display.
-
-The sleeping shepherds and shepherdesses awake; they look about them and
-perceive the angels surrounded with a heavenly glory.
-
- FIRST SHEPHERD.
-
- Heavens! what means this brightness here?
- I am almost numbed with fear.
-
- SECOND SHEPHERDESS.
-
- By this clear and glorious light
- My weak eyes are dazzled quite.
-
- FIRST ANGEL.
-
- Gentle shepherds, do not fear,
- I am come your hearts to cheer,
- With glad tidings....
- For to you upon this morn
- The Saviour Jesus Christ is born.
- As 'twas writ; and this the sign
- How to know the child divine;
- Wrapped in swaddling bands, the Son
- Has a manger for a throne....
- The Jesus whom the Lord has sent
- To fulfil his covenant.
-
-All the angels then sing the hymn of praise:
-
- Glory be to God most high.
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- Let us haste and feast our eyes
- Where the hope of mortals lies.
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- In a hut so mean and poor,
- If we cannot pass the door,
- We can through some crevice spy[82]
- Where our Lord and King doth lie.
-
-The shepherds and shepherdesses converse as they go on the reception
-they will give to the Messiah, with a simplicity that may appear
-excessive, but which is not devoid of grace and genuineness.
-
- FIRST SHEPHERD AND SHEPHERDESS.
-
- Let us from our plenty bear
- Presents to their scanty fare.
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- Here's a cheese I'll take with me
- In this basket.
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- And you see,
- This great bowl of milk I'll carry,
- And I hope 'twill please sweet Mary.
-
- FIRST SHEPHERD.
-
- I shall give this cage and bird.
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- I this faggot, for, my word!
- The weather's cold.
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- This rude toy,
- This rustic flute will please the boy.
-
- FIRST SHEPHERDESS.
-
- I will kiss his very cheek....
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- Nay! 't is honour sure enough
- But to kiss him in the foot.[83]
-
-Shepherds and shepherdesses all leave the fields and hurry to Bethlehem.
-
-The scene again changes to this town, where the shepherds and
-shepherdesses arrive and look for the place where the child lies.
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- In this house with paint so gay
- The holy child would never stay.
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- Nor in this palace would he rest,
- But rather in some humbler nest.
-
- FIRST SHEPHERDESS, _searching carefully_.
-
- There's a place in this rude rock;
- Can it be the honoured spot?
-
-Shepherds and shepherdesses draw near, and looking through the cracks in
-the wall of the poor stable, discover Mary and Jesus. The second
-shepherd exclaims with rapture:
-
- There's the child ... and there's the mother....
-
- THIRD SHEPHERDESS.
-
- See how mild
- Hangs on his mother's breast the child.
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- Call yon man to ope the door....
- (_to Joseph_) Hola! master....
-
- JOSEPH.
-
- What means that noise without?
-
- FIRST SHEPHERD.
-
- The true fruit of heaven we seek.
-
- MARY.
-
- If God hath this great fact revealed,
- By us it must not be concealed;
- For to believers we the Christ must show:
- Open the door....
-
- JOSEPH, _opening the door_.
-
- You can come in.
-
-The shepherds and shepherdesses approach respectfully, and puny as the
-child appears, they recognise in him the height of the eternal Majesty,
-and worship him:
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- ... Thou art the promised seed
- To Adam after his misdeed.
- Abraham and David on this relied,
- And both alike were justified.
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- The eye beholds a weak and powerless child;
- But faith which comes of knowledge bids us bow
- In honour and in adoration at his feet,
- As the true God.
-
-After the adoration of the shepherds, the shepherdesses, a little
-curious, surround Mary and enter into conversation with her.
-
- THIRD SHEPHERDESS.
-
- How is't no costly robes he owns:
- Silver and gold and precious stones?
-
- MARY.
-
- Simplicity he liketh best,
- Nor will he in choice clothes be dressed.
-
-The first streaks of dawn begin to appear.
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- The day is near ... I must begone.
-
- FIRST SHEPHERDESS, _approaching Mary_.
-
- May I just give his little toe
- One single kiss before I go.[84]
-
- THIRD SHEPHERDESS.
-
- Our hands have touched, our eyes have seen,
- The Lamb who takes away our sin.
-
-The shepherds and shepherdesses then present their humble offerings.
-
- FIRST SHEPHERD.
-
- Serving thee we'll live and die,
- For without thee life is naught.
-
-The second act being finished, a new interlude was introduced to make
-the spectators merry. The jesters reappeared and recited several
-rondeaux, always containing some piquant and unexpected joke, which
-called forth the laughter of the audience. The burden of the _virelais_
-(poems composed of very short lines, and with two rhymes) usually turned
-on some monk, which greatly diverted the spectators. The cardinals and
-the catholics who took pleasure in the drama were annoyed by the
-satires.[85]
-
-The third act began. Satan, who was making the tour of the world,
-arrived over the fields of Bethlehem, whither the shepherds had
-returned, and absorbed in his own thoughts, said to himself:
-
- I have reigned until this hour
- And subdued earth to my power;
- With God above have warred unceasing,
- And my triumphs are increasing.
-
-The shepherdesses, to whom he was invisible, expressed their joy in
-hymns:
-
- Shepherdesses, maidens fair,
- Listen to the song we sing:
- Tidings of great joy we bring,
- That take away all mortal care.
-
-Satan stopped and listened: becoming alarmed, he exclaimed:
-
- This is a hymn that chills my blood ...
- What tidings have they heard?
-
-The shepherdesses, still unconscious of Satan's presence, continue
-singing:
-
- Hail! to the Virgin-born,
- Hail! to the Lord and Son,
- Who in this happy morn,
- The veil of earth puts on.
- Loud praise to God be given
- Who makes us heirs of heaven.
-
-Satan listening, and still more uneasy:
-
- To learn this secret, how I've toiled!
- Shall it be hidden from me now?
-
-He disguises himself, and approaches the shepherds under the form of a
-great lord, and says to them:
-
- Whence come you?
-
- FIRST SHEPHERD.
-
- From seeing Christ, the Saviour of mankind,
- By whom in God we are regenerate.
- Will you not go and see him, mighty lord?
- I'll show the way.
-
- SATAN.
-
- Can this be true, or is it all a dream?
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- Go and see for yourself....
-
- SATAN.
-
- God from his throne on high
- For this world does not care....
- I am its king ... yes, I....
- . . . .
- Come with me and make good cheer ...
- But you must believe no mo'
- That God can ever stoop so low.
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- He is my father, brother, all ...
- I am his from head to foot.[86]
- God is for me, and no false one
- Shall this heavenly faith uproot.
-
- SATAN.
-
- Fools and madmen! are ye gods?...
-
- FIRST SHEPHERD.
-
- To the Son we leave the glory
- Of being God. Enough for us
- To be whatso'er he pleases,
- And to know that He's the great I AM.
-
- SATAN.
-
- _Can you understand the Scriptures?_
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- _With all humbleness we read them._
-
- SATAN.
-
- Were he your father as you call him,
- Would he leave you thus accursed,
- Suffering poverty and want?
- Blind ones, open wide your eyes!
- Have you ever known a rich man
- Leave his son, like field untilled?
- Sons of God, indeed! whose store
- Are cold and hunger, rags, and all that's poor.
-
- SECOND SHEPHERD.
-
- More we suffer, more our joys redouble;
- For all your pleasures we'll not give a double.[87]
-
- THIRD SHEPHERD.
-
- In our hearts the Christ doth dwell
- Who has conquered death and hell.
-
-At these words Satan becomes confused; he calls to mind his former
-defeats, and knowing that the Son of God must crush him under his feet,
-exclaims in terror:
-
- Murdered Lamb, who didst expel
- Me and mine from heaven to hell....
- Thou still pursuest, and no place
- Can hide me from thy angry face.
-
-Then the mysterious voice of God is heard again proclaiming the victory
-of the new-born child:
-
- Satan's tyrant reign is o'er;
- By the spotless Lamb 'tis ended,
- Who to suffer on the cross
- For us sinners has consented....
- At my right the Lamb shall sit ...
- Angels sing the Lamb exalted
- High o'er all, and Satan quelled.
-
-Then the angels sing the song of triumph, which ends the play:
-
- Glory be to God on high,
- Who our greatest enemy,
- Satan, hath o'erthrown.
- Honours to the Lamb express
- By whom all the blessedness
- Of the Father is made known.
-
-The representation was finished and every one retired in admiration. The
-king was grateful for this condescension in his wife, and Margaret took
-advantage of it to induce him to listen to a few sermons. 'From the
-comedy he went to the preaching, which took place in the queen's
-chamber,' says a contemporary historian.[88]
-
-All were not equally satisfied with these representations. Cardinals De
-Grammont and De Foix withdrew from the court, while the stricter
-christians asked if it was lawful to introduce angels and even God
-himself on the stage. If Calvin had gone on from Nérac to Pau, and had
-been present, not far from the cardinals, at this mystery-play, he would
-no doubt have blamed such performances, which he termed 'christianity in
-disguise.'
-
-It is time to follow the reformer.
-
-[73] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ lib. vii. cap. iii.
-
-[74] MS. de la Biblioth. impér., No. 7021, fol. 146. Schmidt,
-_Roussel_, p. 151.
-
-[75] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ lib. viii. cap. xii.
-
-[76] Brantôme, _Mémoires_. De Coste, _Reines illustres_. Matthieu,
-_Hist. de François I._
-
-[77] This drama, which we have been forced to abridge, will be found in
-the _Marguerites de la Marguerite_, tom. i. pp. 148-206.
-
-[78] _Marguerite d'Angoulême_, par le comte de la Ferrière-Percy,
-pp. 9, 13.
-
-[79] In translating the extracts for this poem, no attempt has been made
-to give a polish to the verses, which was not found in the original.
-
-[80]
-
- Petit enfant, ne veuillez épargner
- Moi très-petit ... car, soit pour vous baigner,
- Ou pour chauffer vos draps en votre lit,
- À vous servir je prendrai grand délit (_délice._)
-
-[81] 'Qui pro primo esset.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ vii. cap.
-iii.
-
-[82] Il y aura quelque fente ou crevasse.
-
-[83] C'est assez au talon.
-
-[84]
-
- Madame, au moins, son petit bout d'orteil
- Pour le baiser.
-
-[85] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Heres._ vii. cap. iii.
-
-[86] Je suis à lui de l'un à l'autre bout.
-
-[87]
-
- Plus nous souffrons, plus notre joie redouble;
- De vos plaisirs ne donnons pas un _double_.[87a]
-
-[87a] The _double_ was the sixth part of a _sou_.
-
-[88] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ vii. cap. iii.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
- CALVIN AT POITIERS, AT THE BASSES-TREILLES, AND IN ST. BENEDICT'S CAVES.
- (SPRING 1534.)
-
-
-Calvin meditated leaving the South. He had found a retreat in the hour
-of danger; but as the storm seemed to blow over, he could go at last
-from the place where he had been hidden, and resume a career that had
-been so roughly interrupted. He was not at ease in Angoulême. On the one
-hand the conversion of Du Tillet and some of his friends gave rise to
-rumours among the clergy and people; and on the other, certain
-traditional elements that Margaret and some of his hearers at Gérac
-desired to retain, were displeasing to the reformer. Altars, images,
-holidays dedicated to Mary and the saints, confessors and
-confession—none of these things appeared to him scriptural, and he
-sighed for the time when he could make the evangelical principle prevail
-in all its integrity. He was in the habit of saying: 'Above all things
-we must confess our Lord fully, without shrinking from anything
-soever.'[89]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN'S PROJECTS.]
-
-Where should he go? His thoughts led him first to Poitiers, whence he
-proposed to visit Orleans, Paris, and then Germany and Switzerland, to
-study and gain knowledge by intercourse with the reformers. In their
-conversations at Gérac the Sieur de Torras had often spoken of Pierre de
-la Place, who was then studying at Poitiers. Calvin would also meet
-there with Charles le Sage, regent of the university, like himself a
-native of Noyon. One consideration restrained him: Could he leave Du
-Tillet? 'Where you go, I will go,' said the young canon; 'my heart is
-filled with the faith that animates you.'[90] The idea of enjoying
-Calvin's society at every moment, and of seeing in Switzerland and
-Germany the noble-hearted men who were reforming the Church, filled him
-with joy.[91]
-
-The two friends departed: Calvin under the name of Charles d'Espeville,
-and Du Tillet under that of Hautmont, which seems to have been borne by
-some members of his family. They arrived (probably about the end of
-March 1534) in those plains and heaths of Poitou where so many great
-battles had been fought, and where a humble combatant was approaching to
-engage in nobler contests. Few provinces in France were so well
-prepared. Abelard, who had lived in these western districts, had left
-behind him some traces of the doubts set forth in his celebrated
-treatise, _Sic et Non_ (Yes and No),[92] on the doctrines of the Church.
-Here too a writer, unconnected with the Reform, had attacked the
-_papomania_, and the clergy, who formed (it was said) a third part of
-the population, exasperated the two others by their avarice and
-irregularities.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AT POITIERS.]
-
-Calvin stayed at Poitiers with Messire Fouquet, prior of Trois-Moutiers,
-a learned ecclesiastic, and a friend of the Du Tillets, who had a house
-there. The university was flourishing, it possessed learned professors,
-and had a famous library. The desire of understanding—a feeling
-springing up everywhere in France—was particularly felt here. The prior
-of Trois-Moutiers conversed with his two guests on the public
-disputations that were going on in the university. This excited Calvin's
-attention: he went to the hall, sat down on one of the benches, and
-listened attentively. No one, as he looked at this stranger, would have
-supposed that under those pale, unattractive features was hidden one of
-the heroes who change the face of the world in the name of truth alone.
-Beneath much quibbling and idle trash the young doctor could see flashes
-of light here and there. After the disputation, he called upon those
-combatants from whom he had heard the language of christianity; he
-stated his own ideas, and ere long the beauty of his genius and the
-frankness of his language won them over. Calvin and these generous men
-became friends and visited each other; at length, says an historian,
-'they began to take walks together without the city,'[93] and as they
-walked along the banks of the little river Clain, or rambled over the
-fields, the young doctor spoke to them openly of Christ and of eternity.
-
-They did not trouble themselves, indeed, with scholastic theology and
-metaphysical formulas: Calvin aimed at the conquest of their souls. He
-required in every one the formation of a new man, and cared about
-nothing else. In the midst of the disheartening weaknesses and immense
-necessities of fallen humanity, a great spiritual restoration must be
-carried out; the hour had come, and to accomplish the work it needed
-special men invested with power from on high. Calvin was one of these
-strong men, whom God has sent to the aid of human decay. At the moment
-of the awakening, after the slumber of the Middle Ages, the heavenly
-Father bestowed new creative forces on mankind. The Gospel, then
-restored to the world, possessed a beauty which attracted men's souls,
-and an authority which wrought in them an absolute obedience: these are
-the two regenerating elements. All over Europe prophets arose among the
-people, but they did not prophesy at their own impulse. Above them was
-the sovereign, free, living, supernatural God who worked in them with
-supreme power.
-
-Calvin was about to begin at Poitiers a work of regeneration. Indeed no
-long time elapsed before numerous hearers crowded round him. Some were
-offended by his words; and there were some who, looking only for
-disputations and sophistry, tormented the young doctor with their
-accustomed insolence; while others opposed the heretic 'with dilemmas
-and cunning catches.' Others, again, who thought themselves masters of
-the world, turned their backs on him, 'as if he were an ordinary
-mountebank.' Calvin, surprised at such resistance, 'instead of
-entangling himself in useless disputes,' seriously thrust aside these
-frivolous subtleties, and 'put forward what is true.'[94]
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN'S FRIENDS.]
-
-But if the doctrine he announced met with enemies, it also met with
-friends. The word of God perpetually separates light from darkness in
-the spiritual world, as it did at the time of the creation of heaven and
-earth. Generous men gathered eagerly round the young and powerful
-doctor. These were Albert Babinot, jurist, poet, and law-reader; Anthony
-Veron, procureur to the lower court; Anthony de la Dugie, doctor-regent;
-Jean Boisseau de la Borderie, advocate; Jean Vernou of Poitiers, the
-Sieur de St. Vertumien, and Charles le Sage, doctor-regent, a man of
-great esteem, who possessed the entire confidence of Madame, the king's
-mother.[95] One of these distinguished men especially won Calvin's
-heart: it was Pierre de la Place, a native of Angoulême, a friend of Du
-Tillet, afterwards president of the Court of Aids, and one of the St.
-Bartholomew martyrs. But Le Sage, another of these eminent men, kept
-himself rather aloof; he was from Noyon, and was not very anxious to put
-himself in the train of the son of the old episcopal secretary;
-moreover, he believed sincerely in the miracle of transubstantiation.
-
-This group of distinguished men, which now gathered round Calvin at
-Poitiers, as formerly at Angoulême, fixed the attention of those who had
-any intercourse with him. Calvin's attractive power, which is somewhat
-doubted in the present day, struck even his enemies. 'Knowledge as well
-as virtue,' says one of them on this occasion, 'soon wins love, and
-eminent minds, whether for good or evil, require little time to become
-known. Calvin, having retired to Poitiers, soon met with good store of
-friends.'[96] He met them at the university, went to see them at their
-houses, courted their society, and spoke freely of the knowledge of
-God.[97] On many points they thought from the very first like him. When
-he complained 'that they worshipped stocks and stones, prayed to the
-dead, trusted in vain things, and desired to serve God by idle
-ceremonies,'[98] everybody agreed with him, even Le Sage. But the young
-doctor went still farther. Doubtless he condemned 'a rugged austerity;
-he recommended people to be _loving_ (aimables) and kind to their
-neighbours.'[99] But at the same time, he was true, even at the risk of
-displeasing. Being present one day when some sincere catholics were
-defending the doctrine of transubstantiation, Calvin unhesitatingly
-declared, that we must receive Christ, even his body and blood, by
-faith, by the spirit which gives life, and not by a sensual eating with
-the mouth. Le Sage exclaimed, quite shocked, that this was the opinion
-of the heretic Wickliffe, and even La Place 'stopped short in alarm, at
-seeing so great a falling off from the religion in which he had been
-strictly bred.'[100] Calvin was cut to the heart.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AT THE LIEUTENANT-GENERAL'S.]
-
-But if he lost some friends, he gained others. The chief magistrate of
-Poitiers, Lieutenant-general Pierre Regnier de la Planche, desired to
-see him, and invited him to dine with De la Dugie, Babinot, Véron,
-Vernou, and other acquaintances. Calvin accepted the invitation, which
-caused some astonishment. 'This innovator,' said the catholics, 'desires
-to court the magistrates, in order that they may give him importance by
-their condescension.' Calvin never made any such calculations, but he
-was 'burning with great zeal to extend the glory of the Lord on every
-side.' He was received with respect, and took his seat at the table;
-during dinner the conversation turned, it would seem, on mere
-common-places. As soon as the meal was over, the company rose and went
-into the garden. It was in this place, known as the _Basses Treilles_,
-that the Sieur de la Planche often received his friends. That
-magistrate, Calvin, Babinot, and the other guests conversed as they
-walked, and the master of the house, turning the conversation on Luther
-and Zwingle, blamed the reformers, and especially their opinions on the
-mass. 'This was a frequent topic of conversation,' says a writer of the
-sixteenth century, 'not only among the learned, but among the common
-people, and was even talked of at table.' Calvin, who was well informed
-and prepared, entered upon the subject and explained the chief points.
-'Luther saw the truth,' he said, 'but he is like those who are walking
-through a long and winding road; they perceive afar the dim glimmer of a
-lamp, by means of which they can grope their way along the path they
-must follow. Zwingle approached the light, but like those who rush too
-hastily to good, he went beyond it.'[101] Then wishing them to
-understand what there was in the Lord's Supper, he stated more in detail
-the idea of the presence of Christ, a real one no doubt, but to be
-received by faith and not by the mouth: thus taking a middle position
-between Zwingle and Luther. These discourses, being as clear as they
-were forcible, convinced the lieutenant-general and the friends he had
-assembled. Calvin was requested to commit them to writing, which he did,
-adds the historian, with an eloquence that brought him new disciples.
-Regnier de la Planche was gained to protestantism, and his son Louis
-subsequently took part in the struggles against the Guises. It was he
-whom Catherine de Medici perfidiously interrogated one day in her
-closet, whilst the Cardinal of Lorraine was hidden behind the tapestry.
-
-[Sidenote: GARDEN OF THE BASSES-TREILLES.]
-
-Henceforth the garden of the Basses-Treilles became a favourite resort
-with Calvin: he was accustomed to go there freely and openly. There,
-like Socrates in the garden of Academe, the young christian Plato and
-his friends sought for truth.[102] The truth which the Reformation was
-then restoring to the world, was of quite a different order, and of far
-greater power than that of the Greek philosophers. Wherever its voice
-was heard, the idea of a clerical priesthood disappeared, the
-prerogatives of monastic life vanished, and a personal, individual,
-living Christianity took their place. The divine revelations were given
-to laymen in their mother-tongue, and the sacraments, stripped of their
-pretended magical virtues, exercised a spiritual influence over the
-heart. Such were the principles professed by Calvin in the garden of the
-lieutenant-general. As he walked up and down beneath the pleasant shade,
-he spoke to his friend of the heavenly Father, of his only Son, of
-grace, and of eternal life. His disciples, as they listened, imagined
-that all things were about to become new, and said to one another that
-now at last a barren formalism in the church would give way to a living
-power—a breath from heaven. The catholics of Poitiers were distressed.
-'As our first parents,' they said, 'were enchanted in a garden, so it
-was in the lieutenant-general's garden of the Basses-Treilles that this
-handful of men were cajoled and duped by Calvin, who easily made a
-breach in the souls of those who listened to him.' This is a remarkable
-confession.
-
-One day a meeting was held there at which Calvin and his friends
-consulted about what France needed most. The answer was easy: the
-Gospel. But France, alas! rejected it. They did not confine themselves
-to this topic, and Calvin was anxious to substitute in the church the
-spirit for the form, life and reality for ritual observances. He
-acquitted himself worthily of his task, and taking up the principal
-point explained specially his spiritual doctrine on the Saviour's
-presence. 'This,' says the catholic historian, 'was the first Calvinist
-council held in France.'[103] The word 'council' is too ambitious, but
-it was a meeting that bore fruit. The living faith which inspired the
-young doctor gained over a few rebellious spirits. De la Place, who
-raised numerous objections at first, but who was a man of common sense
-and 'good conscience,' thought that he might possibly be mistaken. 'The
-seed fallen into his heart began to grow, and it put forth fruit in the
-season God had ordained.'[104]
-
-The agitation which Calvin excited in Poitiers, the admiration of some,
-the uneasiness of others, grew stronger every day. The friends of the
-Gospel began to run some risk by meeting together. If certain fanatics
-should make themselves masters of the populace, the garden of the
-Basses-Treilles might be attacked, and the police, under colour of
-restoring order, might even go so far as to arrest the stranger. There
-were often false alarms. Calvin's friends determined to look for some
-solitary place where they might assemble in peace. One of them having
-pointed out a _wilderness_ in the adjacent country—a number of deep and
-isolated caverns which would shelter them from all investigations,—they
-determined to go thither in little bands, and by different roads.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN'S GROTTO.]
-
-The next day the project was put in execution. Calvin set out with two
-or three others; they traversed the pretty suburb of St. Benedict, took
-a picturesque footpath, and after about an hour's walking, arrived at a
-wild-looking spot in front of the ruins of a Roman aqueduct. Beneath
-them flowed the tranquil waters of the Clain: thickly wooded rocks,
-containing caverns of various depths, raised their imposing masses above
-the stream. Calvin was charmed with the solitude. Gradually others
-arrived, and the assembly was soon complete. Calvin and his friends
-entered one of the largest of these caves. They were usually known as
-the caves of St. Benedict or the Croutelles, but this one was called,
-and has ever since borne the name of Calvin's grotto.[105]
-
-The reformer took his stand on the highest ground; his disciples
-gathered round him, some of them leaning against the rock;[106] and in
-the midst of a solemn silence he began to teach them, expounding what
-was grandest of all—preaching Christ to them. This was a topic to which
-he was constantly reverting. 'Better be deprived of everything and
-possess Christ,' he said one day. 'If the ship is in danger, the sailors
-throw everything overboard, that they may reach the port in safety. Do
-likewise. Riches, honours, rank, outward respect—all should be
-sacrificed to possess Christ. He is our only blessedness.' Calvin spoke
-with much authority;[107] he carried away his readers, and was himself
-carried away. On a sudden feeling his spiritual weakness, and the need
-they all had of the Holy Ghost, he fell on his knees beneath those
-solitary vaults; all the assembly knelt with him, and he raised to the
-throne of God a prayer so touching and so earnest, that all who heard
-him fancied themselves transported to heaven.[108]
-
-These pilgrimages to St. Benedict's caves were soon observed;
-ill-disposed persons might follow the little groups on their way to the
-meeting, and surprise the assembly. Calvin's friends resolved to change
-their place of meeting frequently, sometimes going to a village, at
-others to an isolated country-house.[109] The inhabitants of the
-neighbourhood would join the little flock, and the preacher would bring
-forward that christian truth which enlightens the world and man. When
-they separated, he gave books to every one, 'and even prayers written
-with his own hand.'
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN ON THE MASS.]
-
-Calvin's opposition to the mass gave greater offence every day; the
-catholics charged him with the crime of daring to deny that the priest
-offered Christ himself in sacrifice, as an expiatory victim for the sins
-of the people. He was moved by these observations, but not shaken. One
-day when he and his friends were assembled in the cavern, he extolled
-the sacrifice of the cross offered _once_, according to Scripture, and
-then spoke so forcibly against the mass, that it was not possible, said
-earnest catholics, to hear him without shuddering. It is true that
-Calvin did not spare this Romish ceremony. He sometimes called it a
-'mere monkey-trick and burlesque.' 'I call it a monkey-trick,' he said,
-'because they mock the supper of the Lord, just as a monkey imitates
-clumsily whatever he sees others do.[110] I call it a burlesque, because
-the nonsense and gestures they introduce are better adapted to a
-stage-play than to so holy a mystery.'[111] There were in the cave some
-who believed sincerely in transubstantiation, and who habitually
-attended mass with pious sentiments. Calvin's words—although they may
-not have been literally those we have copied—wounded and vexed them, and
-Le Sage, abruptly interrupting him, exclaimed: 'Our Lord, very God and
-very man, is really and substantially under the appearance of the bread
-and the wine.... In all ages, wherever men have known Christ, the
-sacrifice of the mass has been offered up.' Surprised at this bold
-outbreak, Calvin asked himself if he had committed a crime in setting
-the Word of God above the traditions of Rome. He kept silence for a few
-moments, and then lifting his hand and putting it on the Bible that lay
-open before him, he exclaimed earnestly: 'This is my mass!'[112] Then
-uncovering his head and placing his fur cap on the table, he lifted his
-eyes to heaven, and said with emotion: 'O Lord, if in the day of
-judgment Thou desirest to punish me because I have deserted the mass, I
-will say to Thee: O God, Thou hast not commanded me to celebrate it.
-Behold Thy Law.... Behold Thy Holy Scripture.[113]... Thou didst give it
-us to be our guide, and I can find no other sacrifice in it than that
-which was accomplished on the altar of the cross.' The hearers separated
-in great excitement, touched with the reformer's faith at once so simple
-and so strong, and it was with new convictions that some of them
-retraced the solitary paths that conducted them to Poitiers.
-
-From that time many persons manifested a desire to receive the Supper
-according to the Lord's institution. The various ceremonies, the
-incense, the choral chants satisfied them no longer; they wished to have
-a simple and real communion with the Saviour. A day was therefore
-appointed, and they assembled in one of the caves of St. Benedict.[114]
-The minister read the Word of God, and called upon the Lord to pour out
-His Spirit on the little flock. He broke the bread and handed round the
-cup; and then invited the worshippers to communicate mutually such
-reflections and experiences as might be useful to the faith.[115] These
-simple exhortations after the Supper were continued for some time in the
-reformed Church.
-
-[89] _Lettres françaises de Calvin_, i. p. 119.
-
-[90] 'Tilius haustis animo Calvini opinionibus.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist.
-Hérés._ ii.
-
-[91] 'Miro desiderio eos videndi incensus, qui catholicæ ecclesiæ bellum
-indixerant.'—Ibid.
-
-[92] See M. Cousin's excellent edition.
-
-[93] Varillas, _Hist. des Rév. rel._, ii. p. 473.
-
-[94] 'Riotes et cavillations ... arguments cornus et surprises
-subtiles ... comme s'il était un bailleur de sornettes ordinaires ...
-au lieu de s'entortiller dans des contestations superflues ... il
-mettait en avant ce qui est ferme.'
-
-[95] 'Magnæ existimationis vir, præsertim apud regis matrem.'—Flor.
-Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 251.
-
-[96] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. des Hérésies_ (éd. fr.), p. 890.
-
-[97] P. de Farnace, _Brief Recueil de la Vie de Messire P. de la
-Place_, p. 11 sqq. Bayle's _Dict. Hist._ sub voce 'De la Place.'
-
-[98] Calvin, _Lettres Françaises_, i. pp. 70-71.
-
-[99] Calvin on James, iv. 17.
-
-[100] P. de Farnace, _Brief Recueil_, p. 11 sqq.
-
-[101] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ vii. cap. xi. Rémond exaggerates
-Calvin's opinion about Luther and Zwingle.
-
-[102] 'Inter sylvas Academi quærere verum.'—Horace.
-
-[103] 'In horto illo primum calvinisticum celebratum fuit concilium in
-Gallia.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 252.
-
-[104] De Farnace, _Vie de la Place_, p. 11.
-
-[105] La grotte de Calvin. See Crottet, _Chronique protestante_, p.
-105; and A. Lièvre, _Hist. du Protestantisme du Poitou_, i. p. 23.
-
-[106] 'In locis secretis frequenter convenerunt.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist.
-Hérés._ ii. p. 253. Rémond declares that he had spared no pains to
-trace out all Calvin's career in France. 'In conquirendis variis quæ eo
-pertinent documentis, nulli labori peperci.' This has not prevented him
-from occasionally seasoning his narrative with abuse and calumny.
-
-[107] Flor. Rémond, ibid. vii. cap. xi.
-
-[108] 'Precem magna vehementia et devotione.'—Ibid. ii. p. 252.
-
-[109] 'Per pagos etiam et villas.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii.
-p. 253.
-
-[110] 'Quod sicut simiæ hominum opera perperam, ita hi sacram cœnam
-imitantur.'—Calvini _Opusc. lat._ p. 123.
-
-[111] 'Histrionicam actionem appello quod ineptiæ gestusque histrionici
-illic visuntur.'—Calvini _Opusc. lat._ p. 123.
-
-[112] 'Monstrato Bibliorum codice, dixisse: Hæc est missa mea.'—Flor.
-Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 261.
-
-[113] 'Ecce enim hic legem tuam.'—Ibid.
-
-[114] 'In locis illis secretis prima calvinistica cœna celebrata
-fuit.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 253.
-
-[115] 'Non ipse solum explicabat, sed aliorum sententias
-requirebat.—Ibid.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
- CALVIN AND HIS DISCIPLES BEGIN THE EVANGELISATION OF FRANCE.
- (SPRING 1534.)
-
-
-It was necessary to begin the conversion of France on a larger scale.
-Might not that country, whose agitations have often disturbed Europe,
-and which never trembles but all around it is shaken—become, if it
-received the Gospel, a centre of light and a powerful means of
-strengthening the nations in justice and peace? That would no doubt have
-happened, had it become protestant. Calvin, by labouring thirty years
-for Geneva and France, laboured for the whole Christian world. He made
-the first experiment at Poitiers, and (if we may use the word) began
-that glorious evangelising campaign, which he was to direct until the
-close of his life.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AND THE ST. GEORGES.]
-
-Not content with evangelising the city, the young and zealous doctor
-visited the castles, abbeys, and villages of the neighbourhood. In the
-castle of Couhé, a few leagues south of Poitiers, there lived a
-patriarchal family of great influence in Upper Poitou: it was that of
-Guichard de St. George, baron of Couhé, and Anne de Mortemer his wife.
-At their death they left four sons, who had early learned to keep God's
-commandments. Ponthus, abbot of a Benedictine convent, was the best
-known of the four brothers: 'He is a liberal and munificent man,' people
-said, 'a patron of learning and learned men, whom he welcomes
-heartily.'[116]
-
-[Sidenote: EVANGELICAL ABBOTS.]
-
-A rumour of the meetings held at Poitiers reached Ponthus; being
-intimate with some of Calvin's disciples and occasionally receiving them
-at his table, he begged them to bring the young doctor, and from that
-day Calvin became one of his guests, according to a tradition preserved
-in the province.[117] Although the conversations he had with the abbot
-did not convert him, they made him take pleasure in the Gospel, and he
-soon asked himself why this astonishing young man should not preach in
-the Benedictine church? To address a learned and religious community
-pleased the young doctor's mind. The abbot announced to his monks that a
-Picard, brought up in the university of Paris and the holder of a
-benefice at Noyon, would preach in the abbey-church. Accordingly Calvin
-went into the pulpit and declared that whosoever had a firm and lively
-faith in the grace of Christ was saved. Some of his hearers were
-startled at a doctrine which made the Romish priesthood of no use. 'What
-a perverse doctrine!' they said; 'why does the abbot allow this Picard
-to preach it in his church?'[118]
-
-On the other hand the Abbot St. George was delighted with the young
-man's sermons, but hesitated to take the decisive step. The Benedictine
-abbeys were independent, powerful, and rich; the monks generally
-belonged to noble families, and surpassed the other religious orders in
-intelligence, morality, and extensive familiarity with classical and
-christian learning. Ponthus felt a difficulty in leaving the quiet life
-he led in his abbey, or in sacrificing his rich benefice, and exposing
-himself to the vengeance of the laws.... He entertained the idea of
-reconciling the Church with the world, according to the system
-patronised by Margaret of Navarre. He would remain an abbot, but he
-would be a christian abbot like Roussel, and although wearing his
-friar's dress in the pulpit, he would preach the Gospel from it. Ponthus
-made the experiment, and his sermons caused a great deal of talk. The
-astonished hearers exclaimed: 'Why the abbot of Valence (it was the name
-of his monastery) is preaching the rudiments of heresy.'[119] Guichard,
-St. George's third brother, abbot _in commendam_ of Bonneveau, erelong
-shared the convictions of Ponthus, and professed them like him, but
-without giving up his benefice. The murmuring grew louder throughout the
-district. 'Look,' said the catholics, 'the men who are caught in
-Calvin's web still cling to their cloisters and do not forsake the
-altars. The abbots stick to their flesh-pot (_marmite_), and dress
-themselves in catholic robes although they are secret Lutherans. They
-discharge their functions without showing what they are.'[120]
-
-Ponthus felt ill at ease, his honest soul did not long permit him to
-halt on both sides. He sacrificed a brilliant position, dismissed his
-monks, set some to study and others to learn trades; and then, feeling
-convinced as Luther did, that a forced celibacy is a disorder invented
-by men, and that marriage is the order of God, he took a wife. The abbot
-of Valence (says an historian) was the first abbot in France who lifted
-the mask and showed himself an open Lutheran. His brothers followed the
-example he had set them. The Sieur de l'Orillonière, son of the eldest
-(the baron of Couhé) was the first of the family to give his blood for
-the protestant cause. Thus did the four brothers, full of zeal for the
-Reformation, prepare for themselves and for their children a life of
-suffering, combat, and exile, but also of faith, hope, and peace.[121]
-
-[Sidenote: THREE MISSIONARIES SENT OUT.]
-
-When Calvin saw this movement of life going on around him, he thought of
-France. Would she remain behind Germany and Switzerland?... No. France
-will awake ... she is already waking; erelong she will receive the
-Gospel in its holy purity, and will increase in morality, in light, and
-in liberty: such were his hopes. But for their realisation, men were
-needed who, being regenerate themselves, should be fellow-workers with
-God in this new creation. Calvin asked himself whether some of the
-converts of Poitiers were not called to this work? Alas! what a small
-company for so large a kingdom! How great the weakness of the Gospel
-compared with the magnificence of Rome! 'God acts thus,' he said, 'in
-order to strip us of all pride. And therefore he chooses the weak ones
-of this world to confound the strong. If the iron grows red in the
-fire,' he added, 'it is that it may be forged.'[122] He wished to forge
-it and to make serviceable instruments out of it. One day being at the
-usual meeting, he said: 'Is there any one here willing to go and give
-light to those whom the pope has blinded?'[123] Jean Vernou, Philip
-Véron, and Albert Babinot stood forward. Calvin had not forgotten the
-Angoumois where he possessed beloved friends; thither and into the
-adjacent provinces he will first send his missionaries and commence the
-evangelisation of France: 'You, Babinot, will go into Guyenne and
-Languedoc,' he said; 'Philip Véron, you will go into Saintonge and
-Angoumois; and you, Jean Vernou, will stay at Poitiers and the
-neighbourhood.' Calvin and the other brethren did not think that these
-missionaries required regular theological studies; had they not received
-the necessary gifts from God, 'neither more nor less than if He had
-given them with His own hand?'[124] But they had need to be recommended
-to the almighty grace of God. They therefore prayed together, and Calvin
-called upon the Lord to accept the services of these pious men. He told
-them to go and proclaim the Gospel, not in the name of any man, but in
-the name of the Lord, and because God commanded it. A collection
-provided for the expenses of this mission, and the evangelists departed.
-
-Babinot having reached the banks of the Garonne and entered Toulouse,
-resolved to address in the first place the young noblemen who were
-studying there. A learned man (he had lectured at Poitiers on the
-_Institutes_ of Justinian), he was firm, upright, zealous in the faith,
-and at the same time very gentle, so that he was called _the Goodfellow_
-(Bonhomme). Many students were brought to the light by him. He next
-began to visit several little flocks in the neighbourhood, and
-celebrated the Lord's Supper with them after the manner which the man of
-God (as he called Calvin) had taught him.[125] 'He went through the
-country, praying secretly here and there in humble conventicles.' A
-regent or schoolmaster of Agen, named Sarrasin, having permitted him to
-speak in his school, was himself converted to the Gospel, and
-immediately began to teach the Word of God, but not so as to attract
-observation.
-
-Véron, who was as remarkable for his activity as Babinot for his
-gentleness, carried also into every place the news of the truth: he
-spent more than twenty years in this occupation.[126] He walked on foot
-through Poitou, Anjou, Angoumois, Saintonge, and even Guyenne. 'I
-desire,' he said, 'to gather up the stray sheep of the Lord.' Wherever
-he went, he invited souls to come to the good shepherd, _who giveth his
-life for the sheep_; and those who could distinguish the voice of the
-shepherd from that of the wolf, and see the difference between the call
-of God and the inventions of men, answered and entered into the fold.
-And hence he was called the Gatherer (_ramasseur_). 'Of a truth,' said
-Cayer the priest, 'this Gatherer marches out and does not leave a corner
-of our province, where he does not go sounding his way, to try and make
-some prize.'[127] On arriving in any town or village, he inquired for
-the best disposed persons, entered their houses, and sought to instruct
-them in the truth. He had taken with him some of Calvin's manuscripts,
-and when he desired to strengthen his hearers' souls, he would take them
-out of his pocket-book, and show them, saying that they were the
-writings of a great man; and then, after reading a few extracts, he
-would return them carefully to their place. 'The _gatherer_,' said
-fervent Roman-catholics, 'shows these papers as a great curiosity, as if
-they were Sibylline verses.'[128]
-
-[Sidenote: THE REFORM AND THE YOUNG.]
-
-These evangelists especially addressed the young. Calvin would not have
-religious instruction neglected, or subordinated to secular instruction:
-it should have its separate place. He believed that all culture, but
-especially religious teaching, ought to begin with early youth; that the
-soul then possesses a power of receiving and appropriating what is set
-before it, that it never will have again; and that if the seeds of a
-religious life are not sown and do not germinate in the heart of the
-child, the man will perish wholly. He had said to the three evangelists:
-'Let your first attention be always to the professors and
-schoolmasters.'[129] The zealous catholics observed this method. 'See!'
-they said, 'as youth is easily led astray, they hide the _minister_
-under the cloak of the _magister_ (master).'[130] Calvin's friends thus
-instilled their doctrines into the schools of Guyenne. Sarrasin
-converted another schoolmaster named Vendocin, who became so firm a
-Christian, that he preferred to be burnt over a slow fire to abjuring
-Calvinism.[131]
-
-The men who devoutly adhered to the formulas of Rome were grieved when
-they saw the young so readily receiving the evangelical doctrine. At
-Bordeaux and Toulouse, at Angoulême and Aden, in the cloisters, in the
-law-courts, and even in the market-places, the loudest complaints were
-made. 'These _Mercuries_ (the name they gave to Calvin's missionaries)
-are doing much mischief in the schools,' they said. 'As soon as the
-captains of the young (i.e. the masters) are conquered, the little
-soldiers march under their colours. The _young_ heads of _young_ folks
-are more easily disturbed by the heretic _aconite_ than the old. They
-rush into danger, without examining it; and they are lost before they
-are aware of it. They embrace these new doctrines with such courage that
-many, who have only down on their chins, expose themselves to voluntary
-death, and thus lose both soul and body.'[132]
-
-[Sidenote: THE REFORMATION AND SCIENCE.]
-
-While Babinot and Véron were traversing the south, John Vernou held firm
-at Poitiers, and aroused the students. The Reformation is fond of
-learning: it looks upon science as the friend of religion. Faith, it
-says, does not require of Christians to know only what is learnt by
-faith, or not to know scientifically what they ought to learn. It
-desires that we should know, and know well. But on the other hand, it
-believes that true science cannot require of the adept to despise the
-truths that faith reveals. It is essential to the progress of humanity
-that there should always be a good understanding between faith and
-science. And accordingly the Reformation calls upon them to be united.
-Unhappily, disagreement is possible and even easy. The philosopher and
-the christian fall with great facility into a lamentable onesidedness,
-which makes the former despise religion, and the latter science. In
-order that faith and science should seek each other and unite, the moral
-element should prevail in those who are engaged with both. If it is
-weakened, religion easily produces fanatics, and science unbelievers: a
-moral torpor, the sleep of conscience is in every age the great and only
-explanation of these two lamentable errors. As soon as the conscience is
-awakened, as soon as that holy light is kindled in man, there is no
-longer any fanaticism or incredulity. Such were Calvin's thoughts. His
-disciple Vernou endeavoured like himself to unite faith with science in
-the university of Poitiers, and scattered among the youth who frequented
-it (as history tells us) the seeds of Christian doctrine.
-
-Calvin's three missionaries, Babinot, Véron, and Vernou, were soon
-famous throughout the west of France, and the wrath of the clergy of all
-ranks, and even of laymen of note, knew no bounds. The college
-professors hunted in their Homers for terms of abuse to heap on these
-heralds of God's word. 'These three worthy apostles,' they said, 'are
-the agents of the decrees of the arch-heretic Calvin and the firebrands
-of France.... Look at them ... these are the men that want to reform the
-world.... Wretched Thersites, miserable Irus, Ithacan beggars ... who
-set themselves up as the equals of Ajax and Achilles.... They were born
-yesterday, like gourds, and yet they trace their genealogy, as if they
-were descended from the apostles!' Ulysses, as we know, killed the
-beggar Irus with a blow of his fist. These disdainful and bitter critics
-remembered this, and hoped that the kings of France would give a
-death-blow to the Reform. They dealt the blow, but protestantism was not
-slain.
-
-When Calvin was subsequently settled at Geneva, Babinot, Véron, and
-Vernou paid him a visit. They were delighted to find the Christian
-professor surrounded with respect, and were never tired of listening to
-him from whose lips they had heard at Poitiers the first words of life.
-They did not, however, stay with him. Babinot and Véron returned to the
-west of France to continue to propagate the Gospel there, which they did
-until their death. As for Vernou, he was seized while crossing the
-mountains of Savoy, and was burnt alive at Chambery, confessing Jesus
-Christ his Saviour.[133] Let us return to Poitiers.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN LEAVES POITIERS.]
-
-The prior of Trois-Moutiers, with whom Calvin was staying, was one of
-those who, though fond of learning and the Gospel, did not wish to break
-with the Church. The conversations at the Basses-Treilles, the
-'manducations' in the caves of St. Benedict, the evangelisation of the
-city and country ... all made him uneasy. He was alarmed at the thought
-that the officers might knock at his door some day, and that the
-_heretic_ would be taken in his house. He therefore advised Calvin to
-continue his journey. The reformer had ended his task; he was now to
-turn his steps elsewhere; he bade his friends farewell. As he left them,
-he could say like his Master: _What will I, if the fire be already
-kindled?_ Calvin established the date of the Reformation at Poitiers,
-when, writing at a later period to the Church which assembled in that
-city, he said: 'Do not go astray from the doctrine which you have
-received _in part from us_, since it has pleased God to make use of _our
-labour_ for your salvation.'[134] Although removed, he still continued
-to be the director of that Church. 'I know full well that you are
-_spied_ (guêtés) by the enemy,' he wrote to them; 'but let not the fear
-of persecution hinder you from seeking the pastures of life.... There is
-a middle line between temerity and timidity.... Remain tranquilly
-(_coyement_) in your hiding-place; but beware, my brethren, that you do
-not shut the door against those who desire to come to the kingdom of
-God.'[135]
-
-One thought absorbed him at the time he left Poitiers. It was the month
-of April 1534; on the 10th of July he would be twenty-five years old. A
-regulation of the Church, confirmed by the Council of Trent, fixed this
-as the age at which those who have received the tonsure were promoted to
-the priesthood. In early youth he had received the tonsure, that symbol
-of sacerdotal royalty, borrowed (St. Jerome tells us) from the pagan
-priests of Isis and Serapis;[136] and his age now summoned him to enter
-holy orders. He did not want for friends who advised him to remain in
-the Church for its reformation; the chapel of Gesine at Noyon, and the
-cure of Pont l'Evêque awaited him, and many other doors would open
-before him. He was invited to come and put himself in due order. But
-Calvin shrank in alarm from the idea of enrolling himself among the
-pope's soldiers. 'If I make myself the pope's vassal,' he said, 'how can
-I conscientiously fight against the papists?... The sovereign majesty of
-God would be offended!... I would sooner give up not only one benefice,
-but a hundred, even of the most brilliant.[137] O cursed wealth of the
-Church! There is not a single penny of it that is not defiled with
-cheating, sacrilege, and robbery!' There was no ecclesiastical dignity
-to which a mind so preeminently administrative might not aspire. But
-Calvin was convinced that to save the Church it was necessary to
-sacrifice Rome. Two paths lay before him: one broad and easy, the other
-narrow and difficult: his choice was not doubtful. 'The Gospel,' he
-said, 'is more than all the riches, honour, and ease of this world.... I
-am ready to give up everything that withdraws me from it.'
-
-Calvin left Poitiers, accompanied by his faithful Du Tillet, who for two
-years scarcely ever quitted him. The young canon was one of those honest
-but weak natures who have absolute need of a support, and who not
-knowing how to find it in the word of God, seek it in strong men. He
-therefore attached himself to the young reformer, as the vine to the
-elm. Alas! the day was to come, when terrified by persecution, and
-unable to make up his mind to break with the Church, he would cling to
-the papacy and take that for his support.
-
-[Sidenote: IMPRESSION HE LEFT AT POITIERS.]
-
-A surprising transformation had been effected in Poitiers, and Calvin
-left behind him many regrets and tears. 'Oh! would to God that we had
-many Calvins!' wrote Charles de Ste. Marthe, one of the professors of
-the university. 'I am distressed that you have been taken from us; I
-envy the country where you are, and my only consolation is that our
-university is now filled with pious and learned men. Pray to God that,
-by the Spirit of Christ, we may worthily proclaim the Gospel, in the
-midst of our enemies and even in the midst of the flames.'[138]
-
-Calvin passed through Orleans, went on to Paris, and then proceeded to
-Noyon, where he arrived at the beginning of May. He immediately informed
-his relations and the bishop that he had come to resign his benefices.
-We may imagine the astonishment of his friends. What! let slip the
-opportunity of doing so much good in the Church! Renounce important
-offices to join an obscure sect! It seemed the act of a madman; but
-nothing could bend his unshakeable resolution.
-
-On Monday, May 4, 1534, in the presence of the grand vicar of
-Monseigneur the bishop and count of Noyon, of his chancellor, and of the
-notary of the chapter, Calvin resigned the chapel of Gesine in favour of
-Master Anthony de la Marlière, and his cure in favour of another
-ecclesiastic of Noyon. It would even appear that he sold his patrimonial
-property at the same time.[139]
-
-Having broken the last ties that bound him to the Roman Church, Calvin
-began to speak with greater freedom to those around him of the Gospel.
-
-He had found in his father's house two brothers and a sister, Anthony,
-Charles, and Mary: these were the first persons he invited to Christ, in
-affectionate and pious conversations. He then turned to some members of
-the episcopal clergy and other inhabitants of Noyon. He put his hand (to
-use his own expression) on those who were running elsewhere, 'to stop
-them short.' Anthony and Mary were the first to answer to him. Charles
-resisted longer; he received however at that time a seed in his heart
-which germinated afterwards.
-
-A canon, named Henry de Collemont, some other clergymen, and a few of
-the citizens, appear to have lent an ear to the pious and eloquent words
-of their young fellow-citizen. However, he was anxious to return to the
-capital, and about the end of May he was in Paris, where fresh struggles
-awaited him.
-
-[116] Théodore de Bèze, _Hist. des Eglises ref._ i. p. 63.
-
-[117] Lièvre, _Hist. des Protestants du Poitou_, i. p. 38.
-
-[118] 'Hic Calvino in ecclesiæ navi suæ perversa dogmata prædicare
-permisit.'—_Gallia christiana_ in loco. See also Lièvre, p. 38.
-
-[119] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ vii. p. 919.
-
-[120] Ibid.
-
-[121] This family has reckoned, even to our own days, men decided for
-the Gospel. The interview of Armand-Louis de St. George, Count of
-Marsay, with Voltaire, in his château of Changins, near Geneva, is well
-known. Appointed British resident in that city in 1717, he acquired the
-rights of citizenship (_France Protestante_, under _Saint
-George_). The present head of the family, Count Alexander de St.
-George, for many years president of the Evangelical Society of Geneva,
-took an active part in the liberation of the Madiai and in other
-christian works.
-
-[122] 'Calvinus interim, ferrum sibi in igne esse intelligens.'—Flor.
-Rémond, _Hist. Hérés_, ii. p. 253.
-
-[123] 'Ut miseris papistis oculos aperiendi provinciam
-susceperint.'—Ibid.
-
-[124] Calvin, _Harmonie évangélique_.
-
-[125] 'Manducationem quæ a viro illo Dei tradita erat celebrabat.'—Flor.
-Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 252.
-
-[126] Ibid. lib. vii. cap. xii.
-
-[127] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ vii. cap. xii.
-
-[128] Ibid. cap. xi.
-
-[129] Ibid.
-
-[130] Ibid.
-
-[131] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ lib. vii. cap. xi.
-
-[132] Ibid. cap. xi.
-
-[133] Crespin, _Martyrol._ A. Lièvre, _Hist. des Protest. du
-Poitou_.
-
-[134] Calvin à l'Eglise de Poitiers, _Lettres Françaises_, tom. ii.
-p. 12. See also Lièvre, _Hist. des Prot. du Poitou_, tom. i. p. 33.
-
-[135] Calvin aux fidèles de Poitiers, _Lettres Françaises_, i. p.
-433.
-
-[136] 'Rasis capitibus sicut sacerdotis Isidis atque Serapidis.'—Hieron.
-xiii. _in Ezech._ cap. xliv.
-
-[137] 'Optimis et splendidis sacerdotiis, se protinus abdicat.'—Calvini
-_Opusc. lat._ p. 90.
-
-[138] Lettre de Ste Marthe à Calvin, found by Jules Bonnet in the
-library at Gotha (MSS. no. 404).
-
-[139] Desmay, _Vie de Calvin hérésiarque_, pp. 48, 49. Levasseur,
-_Annales de Noyon_, pp. 1161, 1168. Drelincourt, p. 171. We possess
-a deed by which Calvin sells to one of the king's mounted sergeants his
-field of the Tuilerie for the sum of 10 livres tournois.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
- THE EVANGELICAL CHRISTIANS OF PARIS IN 1534.
- (SUMMER 1534.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: PROGRESS OF THE GOSPEL IN FRANCE.]
-
-Calvin found Paris very different from what he had left it, when he had
-quitted it in such great haste eight months before. The times seemed
-favourable to the Gospel. The King of England, although remaining
-catholic at heart, had resolved to emancipate himself from the dominion
-of Rome: this event had created a great sensation throughout Europe, and
-men asked whether Francis I. would not imitate 'his good brother.' He
-did not seem far from it. At that time he was uniting with the
-protestant princes of Germany, he was restoring one of them to his
-states, and laying before the French clergy articles of faith drawn up
-by the author of the _Confession of Augsburg_. Calvin knew of these
-strange acts of the monarch, and it was partly this which had induced
-him to return to Paris. Francis I. was not the only person in France who
-felt new aspirations. There was in all classes a leaning towards a
-reformation. The learned called for liberty of thought, and desired to
-see the reign of the monks come to an end. Certain statesmen wished to
-deliver France from the enslaving influence of Rome, even while
-maintaining its catholicity. William du Bellay, the king's most active
-minister, called Bucer the reformer, 'an excellent professor of the best
-theology;'[140] and wrote to him: 'Everything bids us be hopeful: the
-king's taste for a better learning (that is, for the Holy Scriptures)
-increases day by day.'[141] Bucer himself, who was full of hope,
-communicated it to his friends: 'The pope's reign is falling very low in
-France,' he wrote, 'and many people long for Jesus Christ.'[142] The
-clergy became uneasy, and a Franciscan friar complained that 'the heresy
-of Luther having entered France, had already covered so much ground, as
-almost to call itself her mistress, even in Paris.'[143] Noblemen and
-men of letters, citizens, students, and many of the lower classes hailed
-the Reformation as the commencement of a new day. 'All who have any
-sense,' it was said, 'whatever be their age or sex, when they hear the
-truth preached, forsake bigotry.'
-
-Such were the circumstances under which Calvin came to reside in Paris
-at the house of his friend La Forge, at the sign of the _Pelican_, in
-the Rue St. Martin. The pious tradesman and his wife received him with
-the most cordial hospitality, and fearing lest he should again expose a
-life so precious to the Church, they conjured him not to trust too much
-to what was said about the king's disposition, and to beware of teaching
-in public, if he would not risk his life.[144] The flame of persecution
-which appeared extinct, might break out again at any moment.
-
-[Sidenote: MARTYRDOM OF POINTET.]
-
-One martyrdom, of which he was told all the particulars, was well
-calculated to enforce these rules of prudence. Calvin did not find in
-Paris that strong and decided christian, Pointet the surgeon, whom he
-had often seen at the meetings.[145] The monks, whom this bold man had
-reprimanded so soundly for their immoralities, had raised a clamour
-against him; Leclerc, the priest of St. André-des-Arts, had prosecuted
-him; he had been imprisoned in the Conciergerie and condemned to be
-burnt after being strangled. This was paying very dearly for the lessons
-of morality he had given the friars. Before the hour of execution, the
-gaoler had taken him into the prison chapel, and left him there with a
-monk before an image. The confessor began to exhort him: 'Kneel down
-before that image and ask pardon for your sins.' Seeing that his
-penitent remained motionless, he seized him by the neck to force him
-upon his knees. But Pointet, who was naturally of a 'violent temper,'
-thrust the monk back roughly, saying: 'Satan, begone, and do not tempt
-me to turn idolater.' The confused and exasperated confessor ran hastily
-out of the chapel, and going to the criminal chamber told the president
-and his two assessors what had passed, and begged them to come and bring
-the man to reason. 'He is a madman, he is out of his senses,' exclaimed
-the magistrates, as they accompanied the confessor. These three
-individuals, who had just condemned Pointet to be strangled, having
-repeated the invitation which the monk had given him, the prisoner, who
-was annoyed by this persecution, treated them as he had treated the
-monk; he called them 'bloodthirsty wretches, murderers, robbers, who
-unjustly and against all reason put to death the children of God!' The
-three judges, excited and terrified in their turn, hurried back to the
-court, and there, heated by passion, they increased the severity of the
-sentence, adding that Pointet should have his tongue cut out before
-anything else was done to him. Had not that tongue called them
-murderers? It was hoped that he would now show himself more tractable,
-but they were mistaken. The steadfast christian could not speak, but he
-refused to make the least sign of recantation, and to bend his head
-before an image. The enemies of truth (as the chronicle styles them)
-seeing this, had recourse to a fresh aggravation of the sentence: they
-condemned him to be burnt alive, 'which was done as cruelly as they
-could devise.' This death produced a deep impression on the minds of the
-evangelical christians of Paris.[146]
-
-Calvin, yielding to the representations of his friends, resolved to
-substitute 'private admonitions' for preaching at the assemblies, and
-began by visiting the humble christians whom he had heard spoken of at
-La Forge's.
-
-[Sidenote: THE PARALYTIC.]
-
-In the street which lay between the two gates of the law courts, there
-was a shoemaker's shop. On entering it, no one was seen but a poor
-hunchback, crippled in all his limbs, except the tongue and the arms.
-This paralytic creature was the shoemaker's son, and by name
-Bartholomew. 'Alas!' said his father, Robert Milon, to those who
-expressed their compassion at the sight, 'he was not always so; he was
-quite another person in his youth, endowed with excellent gifts both of
-body and mind.'[147] In fact, Bartholomew was once the handsomest man of
-the parish, very clever, and full of liveliness and imagination. He had
-abused these gifts; he had followed his impassioned disposition, and had
-launched into life, indulging in all the lusts of youth, in foolish
-amours and other kinds of irregularities with which young folks
-willingly defile themselves. Continually carried away by his impetuous
-temper, he equally courted pleasures and quarrels, he rushed into the
-midst of the strife as soon as any discussion arose, and displayed
-unparalleled temerity in all his disputes. He got up balls and concerts,
-despised the things of God, turned the priests into ridicule, and
-laughed at pious men. Everybody in the quarter talked about Berthelot
-(as he was called) and of his exploits; some with admiration, others
-with fear. All the young men looked up to him as their leader.
-
-[Sidenote: MILON'S CONVERSION]
-
-One day, while giddily indulging in his ordinary diversions, he met with
-a fall and broke his ribs. As he would not apply any remedy, the
-mischief grew worse; the various parts of his body 'died little by
-little,' and he was entirely paralysed. What a change in his life! Poor
-Bartholomew, who had been so proud of his beauty, now weak, brokendown,
-deprived of the use of his limbs, unable any more to associate with his
-friends, was obliged to keep in his father's shop all day long. He was
-deeply distressed, not only by the severe pains he suffered, but more by
-the sight of his deformity. Sitting near the window, he had no other
-amusement than to watch the passers-by, and his temper being still the
-same, or rather soured by his misfortunes, he was not sparing of his
-sarcasms. One day, seeing one of the evangelicals passing before the
-shop, he began to insult him, and 'to scoff at the terrible majesty of
-God.'—'Holloa! Lutheran!' he called out, adding all sorts of taunts. The
-christian stopped; he was touched when he saw the pitiful condition of
-the wretched individual who insulted him, and going up to him, said
-affectionately: 'Poor man, why do you mock at the passers-by? Do you not
-see that God has _bent your body in this way in order to straighten your
-soul_?'[148] These simple words struck Milon: he had never thought that
-his _soul_ was _bent_ as well as his body. 'Can it be true,' he asked,
-'that God has made these misfortunes fall upon me, in order to reform
-his misguided creature?' He lent an ear to the Lutheran, who spoke with
-him, and gave him a New Testament, saying: 'Look at this book, and a few
-days hence you will tell me what you think of it.' Milon took the
-Gospel, opened it, and having begun, says the chronicler, 'to taste the
-fruit of this reading, he continued at it night and day.' This little
-volume was enough for him: he had no need of any teacher. The sword of
-the Word of God pierced to the bottom of his heart, and his past life
-terrified him. But the gospel consoled him: 'It was to him like a loud
-trumpet sounding the praise of the grace of Christ.' Milon found the
-Saviour: 'Mercy has been shown me,' he said, 'in order that the love of
-God which pardons the greatest sinners, should be placed as on a hill,
-and be seen by all the world.' He had now a curb that restrained him,
-and prevented him from 'indulging in abuse, quarrels, bickerings,
-squabbles and contentions.' The wolf had become a lamb. Bartholomew
-imparted the riches he had found in the book of God to his father, to
-the other members of his family, and to all the customers who visited
-the shoemaker's shop. There was not a room in Paris that offered a
-spectacle at once so interesting and so varied.
-
-Bartholomew's christian charity became as inexhaustible as his worldly
-skill had once been fertile in inventing amusements. He devoted entirely
-to God the restless activity which he had lavished on the world. At
-certain hours of the day, the poor young man, 'unequalled in the art of
-writing,' would collect the children of the neighbourhood round his bed
-and dictate to them a few words of the Bible, teaching them how to form
-their letters properly. At other times he thought of the necessities of
-the poor, and laboured diligently with his own hands: 'etching with
-aquafortis on knives, daggers, and sword-blades,' he executed many
-unusual things for the goldsmiths. He spent the proceeds of his labour
-in supporting several needy persons who possessed a knowledge of the
-Gospel. He had also a fine voice, and played on several instruments
-'with singular grace;' accordingly, every morning and evening he
-consecrated to the praise of the Lord those gifts which he had formerly
-dedicated to pleasure, accompanying himself as he sang psalms and
-spiritual songs. People came from all quarters to this shop, which was
-situated in the centre of Paris: some came 'by reason of the excellent
-and rare things he did;' others 'visited him to hear his singing.' A
-large number were attracted by the great and sudden change that had
-taken place in him. 'If God has bestowed these gifts on me,' said the
-poor paralytic, 'it is to the end that His glory should be magnified in
-me.' He meekly taught the humble to receive the Gospel, and if any
-hypocrites presented themselves, 'he took them aside, and launched on
-them the thunderbolts of God.' 'In short,' adds the chronicler, 'his
-room was a true school of piety, day and night, re-echoing with the
-glory of the Lord.'
-
-[Sidenote: DU BOURG AND VALETON.]
-
-At some distance from this spot, but near De la Forge's, at the entrance
-of the Rue St. Denis, at the corner of the boulevard, was a large
-draper's shop, the _Black Horse_, belonging to John du Bourg. This
-tradesman was a man of independent character, who liked to see, to
-understand, and to judge for himself: he had never frequented the
-schools or even had much conversation with the evangelicals, but for all
-that, says the chronicle, he had not been denied the wisdom from heaven.
-By means of the Holy Scriptures, which he read constantly, and in which
-he humbly sought the truth, he had received from God the knowledge of
-those 'glad tidings which (as it was said) the wise cannot obtain by
-their own wisdom.' Forthwith he had begun to spread it around him with
-an unwearying activity, which astonished his neighbours. 'That ardour,
-which makes a great show at the beginning,' said some of his relatives,
-'will soon end in smoke, like a fire of tow as the proverb says.' They
-were mistaken; the Word had sunk into his heart, and taken such deep
-root there, that it could not be plucked out. The priests had intrigued,
-kinsfolk had clamoured, and customers had deserted him, but 'neither
-money nor kindred could ever turn him aside from the truth.'[149]
-
-While his old friends were growing distant, new ones were drawing near
-him. A receiver of Nantes, Peter Valeton by name, was often seen
-entering his shop. Like Du Bourg, he was 'a man of sense and credit,'
-but while the tradesman had been instructed in solitude by the Holy
-Ghost, the receiver had come to a knowledge of the Gospel 'by means of
-some good people with whom he associated,'[150] and then the study of
-the New Testament had confirmed his faith. He did not stop here. Being
-in easy circumstances, and fond of books, he bought all the writings of
-the reformers he could procure. If there was one in any bookseller's
-back shop, he would catch it up, pay for it instantly, hide it under his
-cloak, for fear the volume should be seen, and hurry home with it. On
-reaching his room, he would place it at the bottom of a large chest or
-trunk, the key of which he always carried with him. Then as soon as he
-had a spare moment, he would close his door, reopen the chest, take out
-the precious book, and read it eagerly. He listened if any person was
-coming, for though he was a faithful soul, he was still weak in the
-faith, and was afraid of the stake.
-
-All these pious men joyfully welcomed those who showed any love for the
-Gospel. There was sometimes present at their meetings a Picard
-gentleman, by name John le Comte, belonging to the household of the
-Amirale de Bonnivet, widow of the celebrated favourite of Francis I. He
-was born at Etaples in 1500, had attached himself to Lefèvre, his
-fellow-townsman, followed him into Briçonnet's service, and only left
-him to enter Madame de Bonnivet's family, as tutor to her three sons.
-Constantly attending the meetings of the little Church, he often spoke
-at them, and every one appreciated his knowledge of Scripture (he could
-read them in Hebrew), his sound theology, and his talent in expounding
-the truth. We shall meet with him again in Switzerland.
-
-[Sidenote: GIULIO CAMILLO.]
-
-Another rather singular person attracted the attention of the assembly
-by his dark complexion, his gloomy look, and mysterious air. He was a
-celebrated Italian, Giulio Camillo of Forli (in the States of the
-Church), philosopher, orator, poet, astrologer, philologist, and
-mythologist, of great skill in the cabalistic science,[151] who
-pretended to hold intercourse with the elementary beings, and had
-laboured forty years in constructing a machine in the form of a theatre,
-full of little niches, in which he lodged all our faculties and many
-other things besides, and by means of which he pretended to teach all
-the sciences. Francis I. having invited him to Paris, Camillo exhibited
-to him, and explained, his wonderful machine, at which the king was
-delighted, and gave him 500 ducats. Although taciturn and dreamy, he
-courted the society of pious men. Paleario speaks of him in his
-letters,[152] and he became intimate in Paris with Sturm, who willingly
-received into his house the learned of all countries. The latter was
-charmed to see a scholar, invited from Italy by the king, and of whom
-all the world was talking, inclining towards the Gospel; and one day,
-writing to Bucer, he said: 'Camillo professes not only profound science
-but admirable piety also.... God often does something by means of men of
-this sort; who, when their will is equal to their means, become great
-patterns.'[153] Camillo knocked at the door and came in while Sturm was
-writing. Sturm showed him the letter, and the Italian wrote at the foot:
-'Would to God that my mind were in my hands, or that it could flow from
-my pen!... If you could see it you would certainly recognise it as your
-own.'[154] It would appear that Camillo was deceived. He was a man of
-original mind, desirous of learning everything new, including the
-Reformation; but there was some quackery in him. If his famous machine
-did nothing for the progress of science, it advanced his fortunes, which
-was a compensation in his eyes. Calvin was less pleased with him than
-Sturm; the eagle eye of the reformer was not deceived. The Italian's
-gloomy air seemed to hide some unbelief or heresy. 'If spiritual joy
-reign not in our hearts,' he said, 'the kingdom of God is not in
-us.'[155]
-
-Many other well-known persons visited the friends of the Gospel in
-Paris; among them were Des Fosset, afterwards lieutenant-general of
-Berry, Jacques Canaye, subsequently a famous advocate before the
-parliament, besides other lawyers, noblemen, royal servants, tradesmen,
-and professors. Persecution made them known, and we shall have to name
-many of them among the exiles and martyrs.[156]
-
-Besides these adult laymen, a number of scholars or students was
-observed at the evangelical meetings. Among them was a boy of Melun,
-Jacques Amyot by name, 'of very low origin,' says Beza, picked up in the
-streets of Paris by a lady, who, wishing to turn him to account, made
-him attend her sons to college and carry their books. Amyot, who was to
-be one of the most celebrated writers of the age, soon showed a
-wonderful aptitude for Greek literature; he had even learnt to know
-something of the Gospel. He was to change hereafter, to take orders, to
-forget what he had learnt, and even to become 'a very wretched
-persecutor;'[157] but at this time he was considered to be a friend of
-the new doctrine.
-
-It was the common people, however, that were most numerous at these
-conventicles. One of them, Henry Poille, a poor bricklayer from a
-village near Meaux, told a friend one day 'that he had come to a
-knowledge of the truth in the school of Meaux, thanks to Bishop
-Briçonnet. Alas!' he added, 'the bishop has been overcome since then by
-the enemies of the cross.'
-
-Even the most necessitous persons were active in good works. A poor
-woman named Catelle had turned school-mistress out of love for children.
-'It would be too cruel a thing,' she said, 'to exclude those of tender
-age from God's grace!'
-
-But of all these evangelical christians of Paris no one had more zeal
-than De la Forge. 'He never spared his goods for the poor,' says the
-chronicler.[158] He had the Bible printed at his own expense, and along
-with the alms which he distributed he would always add a kind word, and
-often a Gospel or some other pious book.
-
-[Sidenote: A CHARACTERISTIC OF CALVIN.]
-
-Calvin was not however equally pleased with everything in Paris. He
-willingly recognised the beauty of the city, but was terrified at seeing
-fearful abysses and (as he called them) 'the depths of hell' side by
-side with its magnificent palaces. He felt 'extreme sadness' at the
-sight. An immense movement was then being accomplished all over the
-world. As the sun of spring brings up the seed sown in the earth—the
-tares as well as the good seed—the sun of liberty that was beginning to
-shine quickened not only the germs of truth, but sometimes also those of
-error. Calvin's soul was deeply grieved at this; but he did not stand
-still. He had received from God the call to oppose all false doctrines,
-and was preparing to do so. This is one of the main features of his
-character. To the very last he combated the pride of those who wish to
-know everything; the rage for subtleties, mystical pretensions,
-immorality, unitarian doctrines, the deism which denies the
-supernatural, and the pantheistic and atheistic theories. In Paris he
-met with all these aberrations. His principal means of combating error
-was to put forward the truth; yet he thought it useful sometimes to have
-conversations and even conferences with his adversaries, of which we
-shall see some examples.
-
-[140] 'Melioris theologiæ professor eximius.'—Strasburg MS. (June 20,
-1534).
-
-[141] 'Etiam rex ipse, cujus animus erga meliores litteras in dies magis
-ac magis augetur.'—Ibid.
-
-[142] 'Pulchre inclinabat regnum Papæ in Gallia. Ad Christum multi
-adspirabant.'—Ibid.
-
-[143] 'S'y était fait place déjà fort large, jusqu'à presque se dire
-maitresse, mêmement de Paris.'—Fontaine, _Hist. cath. de notre
-Temps_, (Paris) p. 188.
-
-[144] 'Magnum vitæ periculum.'—Beza, _Vita Calvini_.
-
-[145] See Vol. II. of this History, bk. ii. chap. xxxii.
-
-[146] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 107 verso.
-
-[147] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 112 verso.
-
-[148] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 113.
-
-[149] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 113 verso.
-
-[150] Ibid. p. 113.
-
-[151] Tiraboschi, _Lettere italiane_, vii. p. 315.
-
-[152] Palearii _Op._ lib. i. ep. xvii.
-
-[153] 'Per ejuscemodi homines, sæpe Deus aliquid facit, qui quum quantum
-possunt tantum velint, magno solent esse exemplo.'—Strasburg MS.
-Schmidt, _G. Roussel_, p. 220.
-
-[154] 'Utinam animus esset nunc in manibus atque in calamo.'—Ibid.
-
-[155] Calvin, _in_ _I. Epist. ad Thessal._
-
-[156] See below, chap. xi.
-
-[157] Th. de Bèze, _Dict. Eccles._ p. 11. _France protestante_, art.
-_Amyot_.
-
-[158] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 113.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
- CALVIN'S FIRST RELATIONS WITH THE LIBERTINES AND SERVETUS.
- (SUMMER 1534.)
-
-
-De La Forge willingly received all pious strangers visiting Paris. One
-day Calvin saw at his friend's table certain individuals who, he
-fancied, had something singular about them. His eyes were fixed on them
-and he tried to make them out. One of them, named Coppin, from Lille, a
-man of the people and of no education, but with boldness greater than
-his ignorance, raised his voice, affected a sententious style, and spoke
-like an oracle. 'Verily,' said Calvin, 'a fool never has any doubts.' A
-little farther on sat Quintin from Hainault, who seemed to have more
-education, and certainly more cunning. He assumed airs of superiority,
-an imposing tone of voice, and expressing himself ambiguously, gave
-himself the air of a prophet. 'The latter seems to me a big rogue,' said
-Calvin of him.[159] Quintin was usually accompanied by a few disciples,
-ignorant and fanatical persons who repeated all he said; they were
-Bertrand des Moulins, Claude Perceval, and others. These bold and
-adventurous sectarians having nothing and never working, looked out
-wherever they went for some good-natured person who would keep them in
-their idleness by supplying them with victuals and drink. They crept
-into the house by meek enticing ways, making no display at first of
-their particular doctrines, reserving these for the initiated only. They
-strove to win over all who listened to them, and to that end spoke
-continually of the Holy Ghost, and tried to make men believe that they
-were His apostles. Simple souls allowed themselves to be caught. They
-would have believed they had committed the unpardonable sin, if they had
-not looked upon these people as saints.
-
-[Sidenote: THE SPIRITUALS OR LIBERTINES.]
-
-One day when there was a large party at De la Forge's, Quintin began to
-publish his doctrines. Whatever was the subject of conversation, the
-_spirit_ immediately appeared. Calvin lost all patience: 'You are like
-those country priests,' he said, 'who, having but one image in their
-church, make it serve for five or six saints. He is either St. James, or
-St. Francis, or St. Basil, and the priest receives as many offerings as
-there are saints.'[160] Sometimes, however, these 'spirituals,' as they
-were called, betrayed themselves, and let their fanatical opinions slip
-out. 'There are not many spirits,' said Quintin, 'there is only one
-spirit of God, who is and lives in all creatures. It is this sole spirit
-which does everything;[161] man has no will, no more than if he were a
-stone.'[162]
-
-Such language surprised Calvin. He examined the strange prophets, and
-discovered several capital errors in them. 'The Holy Spirit is our
-reason,' said some, 'and that Spirit teaches us that there is neither
-condemnation nor hell.'—'The soul,' said others, 'is material and
-mortal.'—'God is everything,' said Quintin, 'and everything is God.'
-Immoral doctrines were combined with this system. Calvin's conscience
-was terrified: he had risen up for the purpose of destroying a
-worm-eaten framework that men had built round the temple of God, and now
-rash hands were presuming to destroy the temple itself. He wished to
-destroy the superstitious traditions of so many ages, only to set the
-Divine truths of the apostolic times in their place; and all of a sudden
-he found himself face to face with men who desired no other God but
-nature, and would change the world into a vast wilderness. Calvin did
-not separate from Rome in order to be less christian, but to be more so.
-He resolved, therefore, to attack those who under the cloak of
-Protestantism suppress the mysteries of faith; to combat with the same
-severity both pope and sectarians, and if he undertook to destroy the
-fables of men, he would try still more to preserve the revelations of
-God. Had not Luther cried out when speaking of these would-be
-spirituals: 'It is the devil who seeks to turn you aside from the
-truth.... Turn your backs upon the drivellers!'[163] Various
-circumstances which were then taking place under Calvin's eyes, made him
-understand more clearly the necessity of opposing these threatening
-doctrines with the utmost energy.
-
-[Sidenote: A MURDER AND A THEFT.]
-
-One day a man had been murdered in the streets of Paris; a great crowd
-had gathered round his body, and a pious Christian exclaimed: 'Alas! who
-has committed this crime?' Quintin, who was there also, made answer
-immediately, in his Picard _patois_: 'Since you want to know, it was
-_me_!' The other said to him with surprise: 'What! could you be such a
-coward?' 'It was not me, it was God.' 'What!' exclaimed the man, 'you
-impute to God a crime which He punishes?' Then the wretched man,
-'discharging his poison more copiously,' continued: 'Yes, it's thee,
-it's me, it's God; for what thee or me does, it is God who does it; and
-what God does, we do.'[164] Another analogous circumstance occurred in
-the house of Calvin's friend. De la Forge had a servant to whom he paid
-high wages; this man robbed his master, and ran away with the money. A
-shoemaker of the neighbourhood, who held Quintin's opinions, having gone
-to the shop the same day, found the tradesman very uneasy: 'The man who
-has committed such a base action,' he said, 'might easily take advantage
-of my credit, and borrow in my name.' Whereupon, as Calvin relates, the
-shoemaker immediately began to flap his wings, and was up into the
-clouds, exclaiming: 'It is blaspheming God to call this action base; ...
-seeing that God does everything, we ought to reckon nothing bad.' Some
-days later, this philosopher was himself robbed by a servant.
-Immediately forgetting all his spiritual knowledge, he rushed out of the
-house 'like a madman,' to search after the thief, and on reaching De la
-Forge's, was lavish of his abuse against the culprit. De la Forge
-ironically repeated to him his own words: 'But you accuse God,' he said,
-'since it is He who did it.' The shoemaker sneaked of abashed, 'like a
-dog with his tail between his legs.'[165]
-
-[Sidenote: FALSE LIBERTY OF THE SPIRITUALS.]
-
-Calvin began the contest. It was not with philosophy, or speculation, or
-apologetics, that he fought these pretended spiritualists. 'God,' said
-he, 'enlightens us sufficiently in Scripture; it is our want of knowing
-them thoroughly that is the cause and source of all errors.'[166] He
-attacked Quintin and pressed him hard. He quoted the commandments of God
-against theft and murder: 'You call God impure,' he said, 'a thief and a
-robber,[167] and you add that there is no harm in it.[168] Who, I pray,
-has condemned impurity, theft, murder, if God has not?'... Quintin, who
-was generally very liberal with passages from Scripture, answered with a
-smile: 'We are not subject to the letter which killeth, but to the
-Spirit which giveth life.... The Bible contains allegories, myths which
-the Holy Spirit explains to us.'[169] 'You make your Scripture a nose of
-wax,' said Calvin, 'and play with it, as if it were a ball.'[170]—'You
-find fault with my language because you do not understand it,' said
-Quintin.—'I understand it a little better than you do yourself,'
-retorted Calvin; 'and I see pretty plainly that you desire to mislead
-(_embabouiner_) the world by absurd and dangerous trifling.'
-
-The 'spirituals' were by turns protestant or catholic as suited them.
-Their manner of seeing accorded very well with their pantheism, and they
-would have been quite as much at their ease among the Hindoos and the
-Turks. This broadness, which misled the moderate party, offended Calvin.
-One day, when Quintin said with unction: 'I am just come from a solemn
-mass, celebrated by a cardinal.... I have seen the glory of
-God,'[171]—'I understand you,' said Calvin, rather coarsely; 'in your
-opinion, a canon ought to continue in his luxury, and a monk in his
-convent, like a pig in a sty.'[172]
-
-The pantheists made proselytes. 'By dint of intrigue and flattery, they
-attracted the simple ignorant poor, whom they made as lazy as
-themselves.' They tried to make way with the learned and the great, and
-even to creep into the hearts of princes. Their high pretensions to
-spirituality staggered weak minds, and the convenient principle by which
-every man ought to remain in the Church to which he belonged, even were
-it sunk in error, made timid and irresolute characters lean to their
-side. A priest, who had become Quintin's head champion, succeeded in
-deceiving the excellent Bucer by means of the false appearance he put
-on; and ten years later, an elect soul, Margaret, was dazzled and
-deceived by their hypocritical spirituality. About 4,000 were led astray
-in France.
-
-Calvin was not one of those individuals 'who remain in doubt and
-suspense;' from the very first he detected pantheism and materialism
-under the veils with which these men sought from time to time to conceal
-their errors, and boldly pointed them out. His uprightness and frankness
-presented a very striking contrast to their dissimulation and cunning.
-'They turn their cloak inside out at every moment,' he said, 'so that
-you do not know where to hold them. One of the principal articles of
-their creed is that men ought to counterfeit, whilst even the heathens
-have said "that it is better to be a lion than a fox."'[173]
-
-He found that their doctrines were impious and revolutionary. To
-confound God with the world was (he thought) to take from the world the
-living personal God who is present in the midst of us; and consequently
-to expose not only the Reformation and Christianity but the whole social
-system to utter ruin. The conduct of these pretended 'spirituals' was
-already sufficient in his eyes to characterise and condemn their system.
-'What has metamorphosed Quintin and his companions from tailors into
-teachers,' said Calvin, 'is that, preferring to be well fed and at their
-ease to working, they find it convenient to gain their living by
-prating, as priests and monks do by chanting.'[174]
-
-It was not until later that Calvin wrote his excellent treatise against
-the libertines;[175] but, says Theodore Beza, 'it was then (during his
-stay in Paris) that he first encountered those teachers who revived in
-our times the detestable sect of the Carpocratians, abolishing all
-difference between good and evil.'[176] He encountered a probably still
-more dangerous doctrine.
-
-[Sidenote: SERVETUS.]
-
-About that time a stranger, whose proceedings were rather mysterious,
-used to appear at rare intervals in the little circles of Paris. Many
-persons spoke highly of him. They said, he could not be reproached with
-any immoral tendencies, while his subtle understanding, his brilliant
-genius, his profound knowledge of natural science, and his fiery
-imagination, seemed as if they would make him one of the most surprising
-and influential leaders of the epoch. This was Michael Servetus, a man
-of the same age as Calvin. Born at Villenueva in Arragon, he had studied
-the law at Toulouse, and afterwards published a daring work entitled,
-_On the Errors of the Trinity_. He put himself forward as a teacher of
-truth and a thorough reformer. The great mysteries of faith were to give
-way to a certain pantheism, enveloped in mystical and Sabellian forms.
-It was not Roman-catholicism alone which he desired to reform, but the
-evangelical reformation also, substituting for its scriptural and
-practical character a philosophic and rationalistic tendency.
-
-In order to accomplish this transformation of protestantism, Servetus
-began by associating with the reformers of German Switzerland and of
-Germany. Œcolampadius, having examined him, declared that he could not
-count him a christian unless he acknowledged the Son as partaking
-through all eternity of the real Godhead of the Father. Melanchthon was
-alarmed at hearing his doctrines: 'His imagination is confused,' he
-said; 'his ideas are obscure. He possesses many marks of a fanatical
-spirit.[177] He raves on the subjects of Justification and the
-Trinity.... O God! what tragedies this question will occasion among our
-posterity!'[178]
-
-We may easily understand the painful impression Servetus made on these
-two men, the most tolerant of the sixteenth century. He was, as we have
-said, a mystic rationalist; but rationalism and protestantism, which
-many persons confound together, are two opposite poles. Nothing excited
-the indignation of the reformers more than this pride of human reason
-which pretends unaided to explain God, and to accomplish without his
-help the moral renovation of man. The Spanish doctor, finding himself
-thus rejected by the German divines, quitted those parts sore vexed and
-exclaiming: 'May the Lord confound all the tyrants of the Church!
-Amen.'[179] He went to Paris under the name of Michael de Villeneuve.
-
-Servetus had an object in going to France. If he succeeded in planting
-his standard in that mighty country, near that university which had been
-for so many ages the queen of intelligence, his triumph (he thought)
-would be secure. He willingly left Germany to the Germans. That French
-nation which has the prerogative of universality, which succeeds in
-everything, which is so intelligent, so frank, so communicative, so
-practical and so active—he will select to be the organ of the second
-Reformation. Servetus thought the French reformers more daring than
-those of Saxony. He had heard of a young doctor of great ability, who
-desired to carry the reform farther than Luther, and he thought he had
-found his man. But he was mistaken; that man was far above his empty
-theories.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN AND SERVETUS ON THE TRINITY.]
-
-Calvin could not and would not have any other God than Him who gives us
-life, who has ransomed us, and who sanctifies us—the Father, God above
-us; the Son, God for us; the Holy Ghost, God in us. This threefold
-relation with God, which Scripture revealed to him and which entirely
-satisfied his inward longings, forced him to recognise a _difference_ in
-God; but on the other hand, _unity_ being essential to the Deity, he was
-bound to maintain it at any cost, and he thus felt himself constrained
-to embrace the idea of a divine Trinity. Against this doctrine Servetus
-levelled his bitterest sarcasms. The Spaniard rejected what he
-denominated an 'imaginary Trinity;' he called those who believed in it
-'tritheists,' or even atheists, and abused them in coarse language.
-'Jesus is man,' he said; 'the Godhead was communicated to Him by grace,
-but He is not God by nature. The Father alone is God in that
-sense.'[180] He invited Calvin to a conference; puffed up and charmed
-with his own system, he fancied himself certain to convince the
-reformer, and flattered himself with the hope of making him his
-fellow-labourer.
-
-The task was not an easy one. The object of the Reformation was to raise
-a spiritual temple, wherein troubled souls might find a refuge; and
-Calvin saw rash hands presuming to make it a receptacle for every error,
-and, in his own energetic language, 'a den for murdering souls.' He
-stood forth, therefore, to maintain the apostolic doctrine, and
-contended that Christ, who called himself the _only_ Son of God, was a
-_son_, not like believers, in consequence of adoption; not like the
-angels, because of their communion with the Lord; but in the proper
-sense: and that if the son of a man has the nature of a man like his
-father, Jesus, the only Son of God, has in like manner the nature of
-God.
-
-It was a question that seriously occupied many minds at this period.
-Servetus did not stand alone; other doctors, as Hetzer, Denck, Campanus,
-and Joris, had professed analogous errors. One universal cry was heard
-among the reformers when they saw Christ's divinity attacked.
-Luther had declared that 'this little spark would cause a great
-conflagration;'[181] Zwingle had demanded that 'this false, wicked, and
-pernicious doctrine' should be opposed by every means;[182] and even the
-moderate Bucer, forgetting his christian gentleness, had gone so far as
-to declare from the pulpit that 'a man like Servetus deserved to have
-his bowels plucked out and his body torn to pieces.'[183] Calvin
-resolved to accept Servetus's invitation. These two young men, born in
-the same year, gifted each of them with marvellous genius, unshakeable
-in their convictions, are about to enter the lists. What blows they will
-deal each other! What a struggle! Which will come off conqueror? If
-Luther, Zwingle, and Bucer are so animated, what will Calvin be? He was
-the one who showed the most moderate sentiments with regard to Servetus.
-Alas! why did he not continue so to the last? 'I will do all in my power
-to cure Servetus,' he said.[184] 'If I show myself in public, I know
-that I expose my life; but I will spare no pains to bring him to such
-sentiments, that _all pious men may be able to take him affectionately
-by the hand_.'[185] Justice requires that we should take account of
-these feelings of Calvin with regard to Servetus.
-
-[Sidenote: A DISCUSSION APPOINTED.]
-
-The discussion was therefore resolved upon, and a certain number of
-friends were invited to be present. The time and place were settled, and
-when the day arrived, Calvin quitted De la Forge's house, and,
-proceeding down the Rue St. Martin to the Rue St. Antoine, found himself
-at the appointed hour at a house in this latter street, which had been
-selected for the colloquy. Servetus had not come, and Calvin waited for
-him; still the Spaniard did not appear, and the Frenchman was patient.
-What was the cause of his delay? Had Lieutenant-criminal Morin obtained
-information of the meeting, and was he preparing to catch the two young
-leaders by one cast of his net? After waiting for some time to no
-purpose, Calvin withdrew.[186] Servetus, who lived as a catholic in the
-midst of catholics, and made no scruple of taking part in the worship of
-the Roman church, probably feared that a public discussion with Calvin
-would make him known, and expose him to serious danger.[187]
-
-Servetus's challenge was not however without consequences. He had called
-Calvin into the lists, he had made him the champion of the doctrine of
-the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost; the opportunity of answering this
-challenge occurred twenty years later at Geneva. If the struggle had
-then been confined to a learned discussion between these two great
-minds, it would have been right enough; Servetus himself had challenged
-it. But the ideas of the times, from which Calvin (even while seeking a
-relaxation in the form) could not free himself, led to one of those
-distressing calamities, so frequent during a long series of ages in the
-annals of Rome, but of which, God be thanked! there is only this one
-instance in those of the Reformation.
-
-Calvin did not fight only with the tongue: he was then hurrying on the
-printing of his first theological work. It was the book written against
-those who said 'that the soul was only the motion of the lungs, and that
-if it had been endowed with immortality at the creation, it had been
-deprived of it by the fall.'[188] 'Let us put down those people,' he
-said, 'who murder souls without appearing to inflict any wounds:' and
-with this view he had composed a work on the _Immortality of the Soul_,
-the title given it in a letter he wrote to Fabri.[189] It is to be
-regretted that he afterwards substituted the rather awkward one of
-_Psychopannychia_, 'the night or sleep of the soul;' as the first
-indicates the subject more clearly. At the same time also he combated
-the opinion of those 'good men,' as he calls them,[190] who believed
-that the soul slept until the judgment-day. The first edition of this
-work, which bears the date of Paris 1534, came out probably immediately
-after Calvin had left that city or shortly before his departure.
-
-[Sidenote: CHARACTER OF CALVIN'S DIVINITY.]
-
-This work gave him a place apart in the ranks of the reformers. In this
-his earliest theological treatise he displayed the character that
-distinguished him, and which those who surrounded him had already been
-able to recognise in his conversations. His theology would not be
-negative, but on the contrary exceedingly positive. His first work does
-not combat the errors of Rome. He stands forth as the defender of the
-soul, the advocate of christian spiritualism. He will be, as a great
-historian has said, 'the man called to build the Lord's citadel, of
-which Luther had laid the foundation.'[191] The force of conviction, the
-weight of proof, the power with which he employed the Scriptures, the
-simplicity and clearness of style, struck every reader. We shall not
-speak here of Calvin as a writer: we have done so elsewhere.[192] There
-might, however, be discerned in this work a defect of which Calvin never
-entirely cured himself: it contained energetic disdain and bitter
-invective. He saw this himself; he did more, he moderated these
-expressions in a second edition. 'I said certain things in it,' he
-wrote, referring to the first, 'with a bitterness and severity which may
-have offended certain delicate ears.[193] I have therefore struck out
-some passages, added others, and changed many.' This did not prevent his
-falling into the same fault again, which, it must be acknowledged, was
-that of the age.
-
-In spite of his frequent discussions, Calvin was happy in the house of
-De la Forge. Accustomed to a frugal life, he was little affected by the
-abundance of all sorts of good things by which he was surrounded; but
-the piety of the family delighted him much. He loved to see the master
-distributing the Gospel, relieving the poor, and listening to the
-interpretation of God's word, and took pleasure in his christian
-conversation. 'Most assuredly,' he said, 'true happiness is not
-circumscribed within the narrow limits of this frail life, and yet God
-promises also to believers a happy life, even in this pilgrimage and
-earthly dwelling-place, so far as the state of the world permits.'[194]
-But the happiness of this blessed household was not to be of long
-duration. Lieutenant-criminal Morin was ere long to enter it, throw the
-wife into prison, lead the husband to the scaffold, and change the
-happiness of a peaceful christian family into sorrow, groans, and tears.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN RESOLVES TO LEAVE PARIS.]
-
-Would De la Forge be the only victim? Would the first blows be aimed at
-him? Would they not be aimed at Calvin, the author of that bold address
-which had thrown both city and university into confusion? Could the
-friend of Rector Cop long remain in the capital without once more
-exciting the attention of his enemies? A great persecution was about to
-burst forth, and if Calvin had been living in the Rue St. Martin at that
-time, he would doubtless have been seized along with the pious
-tradesman, burnt like the other martyrs, and the history of his life
-would have shrunk to a paragraph in the simple annals of Crespin's
-_Martyrs_. But the Father in heaven did not permit that _this sparrow
-should then fall to the ground_. Calvin had powerful motives which urged
-him to leave France. His time in Paris was so taken up with visits,
-interviews, and other business, that he sank under the burden, without
-being able to discharge what he looked upon as his first duty. He was
-called to be a teacher rather than a mere preacher of the Gospel. To
-accomplish the great task he had set himself, he needed repose, leisure,
-and study, besides interviews and conferences with other theologians. He
-adopted a great resolution. 'I shall leave France,' he said, 'and go to
-Germany in order to find in some obscure corner the quiet refused to me
-elsewhere.'[195]
-
-Du Tillet had determined to accompany him. The two friends made their
-preparations; they procured two horses and two servants; and one day
-towards the end of July Calvin bade farewell to the pious tradesman who
-had been as a brother to him. Their clothes were packed away in
-portmanteaus, in one of which they hid their money, and then they were
-fastened on the crupper; and so the travellers departed, the masters on
-horseback, the servants on foot.
-
-'On reaching the frontier,' says a catholic historian, 'Calvin could not
-restrain his emotion; he lifted up his voice in distress that France
-rejected the men whom God sent her, and even tried to murder them.'[196]
-This exclamation appears rather doubtful, and the historian who reports
-it is not always accurate. Still it is possible and not unnatural.
-
-The travellers having entered Lorraine, stopped at Delme near Nancy,
-where they halted and walked about the town. During this time one of
-their servants, who knew where the money had been hidden, took advantage
-of their absence, placed the valise on the best of the two horses, and
-rode away as fast as he could. When Calvin and Du Tillet returned, they
-discovered the robbery. They wished to pursue the thief, but could not
-catch him.[197] The two friends were greatly embarrassed, when the other
-servant approached and offered them ten crowns which he had with him.
-They accepted his offer and were able to reach Strasburg.
-
-If Calvin had remained in his own country, he would never have been able
-to fulfil the career to which he was called; he had no other prospect
-but the stake. And yet, he will indeed be her reformer.... True, he
-quitted her, but a divine hand fixed him as near as possible to that
-land of his affections and of his sorrows. From the picturesque valley,
-whence the Rhone continually pours its waves into France, God was about
-to scatter by Calvin's means, throughout all the provinces of that great
-kingdom, the living waters of the Gospel of Christ.
-
-[159] _Calvin contre les Libertins._ _Opusc. franç._ p. 652;
-_Opusc. lat._ p. 510.
-
-[160] _Opusc. franç._ p. 664; _Opusc. lat._ p. 520.
-
-[161] Ibid. p. 666; ibid. p. 523. 'Unicum esse spiritum Dei qui sit et
-vivat in omnibus creaturis.'
-
-[162] 'Nullam homini voluntatem tribuunt, ac si esset lapis.'—_Opusc.
-lat._ p. 669.
-
-[163] Luth. _Ep._ iii. p. 62.
-
-[164] 'Cest _ty_, c'est _my_, c'est Dieu; car ce que _ty_
-ou _my_ faisons, c'est Dieu qui le fait.'
-
-[165] _Opusc. franç._ p. 662; _Opusc. lat._ p. 518.
-
-[166] Calvin, _Matth._ xxii. 29.
-
-[167] 'Deum latronem, furem, scortatorem.'—_Opusc. lat._ p. 530.
-
-[168] 'Nigrum in album commutare.'—Ibid.
-
-[169] _Opusc. franç._ p. 663; _Opusc. lat._ p. 519.
-
-[170] 'Scriptura nasus cereus fiat, aut instar pila, sursum deorsumque
-agitetur.'—_Opusc. lat._ p. 519; _Opusc. franç._ p. 663.
-
-[171] 'Se gloriam Dei videre.'—_Opusc. franç._ p. 688; _Opusc.
-lat._ p. 547.
-
-[172] 'Tanquam porci in hara stertere.'—_Opusc. lat._ p. 541;
-_Opusc. franç._ p. 688.
-
-[173] _Opusc. lat._ p. 501. 'Præstabilius sit leoni quam vulpeculæ
-similem esse.'
-
-[174] Ut quemadmodum sacerdotes et monachi cantillando, sic ipsi
-garriendo vitam quærerent.'—_Opusc. franç._ p. 652; _Opusc.
-lat._ p. 511.
-
-[175] 'Adversus fanaticam et furiosam sectam libertinorum, qui se
-_spirituales_ vocant, instructio,' &c.—_Opusc. lat._ p. 506.
-
-[176] Théod. de Bèze, _Hist. Eccles._ i. p. 9.
-
-[177] 'In Serveto multæ notæ fanatici spiritus.'—_Corp. Ref._ ii.
-p. 660.
-
-[178] 'Bone Deus! quales tragœdias excitabit hæc quæstio ad
-posteros.'—Ib. p. 630.
-
-[179] 'Perdat Dominus omnes ecclesiæ tyrannos! Amen.'—_Christ.
-Restitutio._
-
-[180] 'Declarat Christum esse Deum, non natura sed specie, non per
-naturam sed per gratiam.'—_De Trinitatis Erroribus_, 1531, fol. 12.
-
-[181] Luther, _Ep._ iv. p. 423.
-
-[182] Trechsel, _Protestant. Anti-trinit._ i. p. 100.
-
-[183] 'Pro suggestu pronuntiavit dignum esse qui avulsis visceribus
-discerperetur.'—Calvin, _Ep. et Resp._ p. 154.
-
-[184] 'Obtuli meam operam ad cum sanandum.'—Calvin, _Op._ viii. p.
-511.
-
-[185] 'Nec per me stetisse quominus resipiscenti manum pii omnes
-porrigerent.'—_Ibid._
-
-[186] 'Diutius quidem sed frustra expectavit.'—Beza, _Vita
-Calvini_.
-
-[187] Trechsel, _Die Protestant. Anti-trinit._ i. p. 110.
-
-[188] 'Qua ruina immortalitatem suam perdiderit.'—_Opusc. lat._ p.
-19.
-
-[189] Calvinus Libertino (Fabri). Neuchatel MSS.
-
-[190] 'Nonnullos bonos viros.'—_Opusc. lat. Psychopan. Lectoribus._
-
-[191] Johannes von Müller.
-
-[192] For Calvin's influence on the French language see my _History of
-the Reformation_, vol. iii, bk. xii. ch. xv.
-
-[193] 'Quædam paulo acrius atque etiam asperius dicta quæ aures
-quorundam delicatulas radere fortasse possent.'—_Calvinus
-Libertino._
-
-[194] Calvin, _Psaumes_, 128.
-
-[195] 'Relicta patria, Germaniam concessi, ut in obscuro aliquo angulo
-abditus, quiete denegata fruerer.'—_Præf. in Psalm._
-
-[196] Varillas, _Hist. des Rév. rel._ ii. p. 490.
-
-[197] Beza, _Vita Calvini_.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
- THE PLACARDS.
- (OCTOBER 1534.)
-
-
-Calvin had hardly left Paris when the clouds gathered over the little
-church of the metropolis. 'There was no year,' says a chronicler of the
-sixteenth century, speaking of 1534, 'when such great marvels happened
-in divers countries; but of all these marvels none is more worthy to be
-remembered than that which caused it to be named _the year of the
-placards_.'[198]
-
-The christians of Paris met together frequently in one another's houses.
-'The Lord,' said they, 'commands His disciples to go forth and scatter
-the doctrine of salvation into all corners of the world.' The hive was
-swarming, as it had recently done at Poitiers. Le Comte, whom we have
-mentioned, quitted his friends, and after many dangers reached Morat, to
-assist Farel in his evangelical work.[199] Another Lutheran, whose
-journey was to be productive of disastrous results, followed the same
-road not long after.
-
-[Sidenote: TEMPORISERS AND SCRIPTURISTS.]
-
-There were, as we have seen, two distinct parties among the evangelical
-christians of France: the _temporisers_ and the _scripturists_. They
-sometimes came in contact, and each of them resolutely defended their
-own views. The _temporisers_ looked to Margaret, to the king her
-brother, and to alliances with Henry VIII. and the Protestants of
-Germany. Knowing that Francis I. detested the monks, they hoped, with
-the help of the Du Bellays, to give France a moderate reform, and
-desired to do nothing that might offend him. They waited.
-
-As for the _scripturists_, that is to say, the evangelicals of the
-school of Calvin, diplomacy made them feel uneasy; the king's protection
-annoyed them, and the idea of recognising the bishops and the pope
-alarmed them. They saw all kinds of superstition following in the train
-of the hierarchy, and they were determined to resist stoutly everything
-that might bring back the _idols_ to the temple of God.
-
-[Sidenote: FERET SENT TO CONSULT FAREL.]
-
-As the two parties could not come to an understanding, they determined
-to send one of their number to Switzerland, in order to obtain the
-opinion of Farel and the other refugees. Should they wait or should they
-act?—such was the question they put. They selected for that consultation
-a simple, pious, intelligent Christian, by name Feret, who belonged to
-the royal pharmacy: he accepted the mission and departed. No one
-suspected at that time that this journey would lead to an explosion that
-would shake the capital, terrify France, and perhaps destroy the cause
-of the Reformation.
-
-Feret proceeded to Switzerland. He had hardly crossed the Jura when a
-striking spectacle met his eyes. Everything was in commotion, as in a
-hive of bees. Farel, Viret, Saunier, Olivetan, Froment, Marcourt,
-Hollard, Le Comte, and others besides, coming from Dauphiny, Basle,
-Paris, Strasburg, or belonging to the country, were boldly preaching the
-evangelical doctrine everywhere. At Neufchatel all _idolatry_ had been
-removed from public worship; and the same had been done at Aigle, and in
-its four _mandements_. Orbe, Grandson, and the Pays de Vaud were
-beginning to make up their minds; Geneva was tottering; the old
-Waldenses of Piedmont were holding out their hands to the new reformers.
-In many places they were even 'destroying the altars and breaking down
-the images,' according to the command in Deuteronomy.[200] What a
-contrast with the timid precautions of the christians of Paris! Feret
-was quite struck with it, and that alone was an answer.
-
-He explained to the christians to whom he was accredited the very
-different state of things at Paris; he described the difficulties of
-France and the two parties that existed among the reformed, and asked
-for their advice. Farel and his friends held that a subject ought not to
-rise in rebellion against his lord, but if the king of France commanded
-anything forbidden by the King of heaven, it was necessary to obey him
-who was the master of the other. These decided christians rejected all
-those medleys of the Gospel and popery that Francis I., Margaret of
-Navarre, Du Bellay, and even Melanchthon (as it was said) desired.
-'These two (the Gospel and the pope) cannot exist together,' they said,
-'any more than fire and water.' The mass especially, that main point of
-the Romish doctrine, must, in their opinion, be abolished. If the papal
-hierarchy was the tree whose deadly shade killed the living seeds of the
-Word, the mass was its root. It must be plucked up, and thus prevented
-from stretching its fatal branches any longer over the wide field of
-Christendom. The writing and posting of placards were proposed.
-
-What indeed could be done? Oppression kept the boldest voices silent. It
-was necessary to draw up an energetic protest against error, and place
-it at the same moment, if possible, before the eyes of all France. Farel
-undertook the task; he could not write without making use of 'his
-trenchant style and thundering eloquence.'[201] He reflected on the
-evils that afflicted his country. Indignation guided his daring pen; his
-style was uneven, harsh perhaps, but masculine, nervous, and full of
-fire. At length the evangelical protest was written, and Farel laid it
-before his brethren, who accepted it, believing that it would be _like a
-hammer that breaketh the rock in pieces_. The document was taken to the
-printer's, and came out in two forms: in placards to be posted up
-against the walls, and little tracts that were to be dropped in the
-streets.[202] The sheets were packed up and intrusted to the care of
-Feret, who departed with the precious bales containing 'the thunderbolt
-forged on Farel's anvil.'[203] No one stopped him at the frontier; he
-traversed Franche-Comté, Burgundy, and Champagne without difficulty, and
-arrived in Paris.
-
-[Sidenote: DISCUSSION ABOUT THE PLACARDS.]
-
-The evangelical christians of the capital, impatient to receive news
-from Switzerland, assembled hastily, and Feret laid the placard before
-them. Those energetic words, written at the foot of the Jura, seemed
-strangely bold when they were read under the walls of the Sorbonne, and
-at the gates of the Louvre. That brave and pious minister, Courault,
-came forward in the meeting as the organ of the 'men of judgment,' as
-they were afterwards called. 'Let us beware of posting up these
-placards,' he said; 'we shall only inflame the rage of our adversaries
-thereby, and increase the dispersion of believers.' But on the other
-hand, those who were alarmed at the steps taken by Francis I. to unite
-the pope and the Gospel were delighted. 'Let us be cautious of so
-squaring our prudence,' they said, 'that it does not make us act like
-cowards. If we look timidly from one side to the other to see how far we
-can go without exposing our lives, we shall forsake Jesus Christ.' In
-their view it was of importance to confess the Lord in the sight of
-France, and in order to do so, they were ready, like the martyrs of old,
-to encounter death. Many of the opposite party gave way, and the
-publication of the placard was resolved on. These sincere Christians
-were so firmly convinced of the divinity of their doctrine, and so full
-of faith, that they expected an intervention from God—not a miraculous
-one indeed, but an extraordinary one—'a rushing mighty wind from
-heaven,' and 'cloven tongues like as of fire,' which should kindle all
-hearts. They thought that God would by this declaration open to France
-the gate of His spiritual treasures.
-
-The consultation continued. Where should they circulate this paper?
-asked some. 'All over Paris,' was the reply:—'All over France,' answered
-others. They were not unknown individuals who deliberated thus: the
-wealthy tradesman, Du Bourg, and his friends were there, and if
-Bartholomew Milon could not act, at least he gave advice which was to
-cost him dear. The warmest friends of the Reformation shared the work
-between them: each man had his district, his province. 'They portioned
-out the kingdom in order to do _the same in every city_,' says the
-catholic Fontaine; and the night of the 24th of October was appointed
-for this daring enterprise.[204] The placards were divided among those
-who were to post them up or to distribute them. Knowing that unless God
-made the truth enter into the heart, they would do nothing but _beat the
-air in vain_,[205] these pious men exhorted one another to 'pray to God
-with fervent zeal.' Then every man returned home, carrying with him a
-bundle of placards and a parcel of tracts.
-
-[Sidenote: THE PLACARDS POSTED UP.]
-
-When the night came, the selected men left their houses, carrying the
-printed sheets in their hands; and each one did his duty in his quarter,
-silently and mysteriously. The fervent christian who thus hazarded his
-life, took, however, certain precautions; he listened to hear if any one
-were coming, hastily stuck the bill on the wall, and then glided
-noiselessly away to some other place, where he posted up another. In a
-short time the streets, market-places, and crossways were covered with
-the evangelical proclamation, some being fixed even on the walls of the
-Louvre. As the day appeared, most of these daring men returned home; but
-others hid themselves, and from a distance watched to see what would
-happen.
-
-A few persons began to come out of doors; they went up to the large
-handbills and stopped to examine them. Gradually a crowd was formed,
-some friars approached: hundreds of persons of every class collected
-round the strange placards. They were read aloud, remarks were made upon
-them, and the most diverse sentiments were expressed; many persons gave
-vent to indignation and threats; some approved, the greater part were
-astounded. The crowd was particularly large in the streets of St. Denis
-and St. Honoré, in the Place Royale, in the city, at the gates of the
-churches, and of the Sorbonne and the Louvre. Let us read this terrible
-handbill, as it was read in the streets of the capital. The public of
-our age will find it too severe and possibly too long, and we must
-abridge it a little; but the men of the sixteenth century read it to the
-end, and notwithstanding its defects, its action was powerful. Like the
-shock of an earthquake, it made all France tremble. It began with a
-solemn invocation:—
-
- TRUTHFUL ARTICLES
- CONCERNING THE HORRIBLE, GREAT, AND UNBEARABLE ABUSES
- OF THE POPISH MASS,
- INVENTED DIRECTLY
- AGAINST THE HOLY SUPPER OF OUR LORD,
- THE ONLY MEDIATOR AND ONLY SAVIOUR, JESUS CHRIST.
-
-'I invoke heaven and earth in witness of the truth against that proud
-and pompous popish mass, for the world (if God does not apply a remedy)
-is and will be by it totally desolated, ruined, lost, and undone; seeing
-that in it our Lord is outrageously blasphemed, and the people blinded
-and led astray. Which ought not to be borne any longer.
-
-'In the first place, every believing christian ought to be very certain
-that our Lord and only Saviour, Jesus Christ, the great bishop and
-pastor ordained of God, has given His body and soul, His life and blood
-for our sanctification, by a perfect sacrifice. To renounce this
-sacrifice as if it were insufficient, to replace it by a visible
-sacrifice, namely, the mass, as if Christ had not fully satisfied for us
-the justice of His Father, and as if He were not the Saviour and
-Mediator, would be a terrible and damnable heresy.
-
-'The world has been, and in many places still is, filled with wretched
-high-priests, who, as if they were our redeemers, set themselves in
-Christ's place, and pretend to offer an acceptable sacrifice to God for
-the salvation both of the living and the dead: do not these people make
-the apostles and evangelists liars, and do they not even belie
-themselves, since they chant every Sunday at vespers that Jesus Christ
-is a _priest for ever_?...
-
-'Yes, by the great and admirable sacrifice of Jesus Christ all outward
-and visible sacrifice is abolished. Christ, says the Epistle to the
-Hebrews (which I entreat everybody to read diligently), _was offered
-once for all.—By one offering he hath perfected for ever them that are
-sanctified._ Christ offered _once_ and not _often_.... If the sacrifice
-is perfect, why should it be repeated?... Come forward then, ye priests,
-and answer if ye can!
-
-'That is not all. By this unhappy mass the whole world has been plunged
-into a common idolatry. Are we not given to understand falsely that
-under the forms of bread and wine Jesus Christ is corporeally, really,
-and personally contained, in flesh and bone, as long, broad, and entire
-as when He was alive?... And yet Holy Scripture and our faith teaches us
-the contrary, that Jesus Christ, after his resurrection, ascended into
-heaven. St. Paul writes to the Colossians, _Seek those things which are
-above, where_ CHRIST SITTETH ON THE RIGHT HAND OF GOD. Listen: St. Paul
-does not say: Seek Christ who is in the mass, or in the sanctuary, or in
-the box, or in the cupboard. He says: Seek Christ _who is in heaven_. If
-the body is in heaven, it is not on earth; and if it is on earth, it is
-not in heaven. A real body can never be in more than one place at a
-time, where it occupies a certain space of a certain size. It is
-impossible for a man twenty or thirty years old to be hidden in a bit of
-dough like their wafer.
-
-'Augustin knew this well when he wrote: "Until the world comes to an
-end, _the Lord is on high_; but His divinity is everywhere."[206] And so
-did Fulgentius, when he wrote: "The Lord was absent from heaven,
-according to his human nature, when he was on earth; and _he left the
-earth when he ascended to heaven_. But as for the divine nature, it
-never quitted heaven when he came down to earth, and did not leave the
-earth when he ascended to heaven."[207]
-
-'When any one of us says: _Lo, here is Christ, or there_! the priests
-say: We must believe him. But Christ says: _Believe it not_. At the
-moment of the communion they chant _Sursum corda_, Lift your hearts on
-high; but they do the contrary, and exhort us to seek Christ not _on
-high_, but in their hands, in their boxes, and in their cupboards.
-
-'Nay, further, these blind priests, adding error to error, teach in
-their madness, that after they have breathed upon or spoken over the
-bread, which they take between their fingers, and also over the wine
-that they put in the chalice, there remains neither bread nor wine, but
-that Jesus Christ is there alone by _transubstantiation_.... Big and
-monstrous words ... doctrine of devils, opposed to all Scripture.
-I ask these cope-wearers, Where did they find that big word
-TRANSUBSTANTIATION?... St. Matthew, St. Mark, St. John, St. Paul, and
-the old Fathers never spoke of it. When they made mention of the Lord's
-Supper, those holy writers openly and simply called the bread and wine,
-_bread_ and _wine_. St. Paul does not say: Eat the body of Jesus Christ;
-but: Eat this _bread_. Ah! Scripture employs no deception, and there is
-no pretence in it. The bread is therefore bread.
-
-'Presumptuous enemies of the Word of God, shameless heretics, they are
-not satisfied with pretending to enclose the body of Jesus Christ in
-their wafer; but see into what absurdities their superstition leads
-them. They are not ashamed to say that the body of Jesus Christ may be
-eaten by rats, spiders, and vermin.... Yes, there it is printed in red
-letters in their missals, in the twenty-second Item, beginning thus: If
-the body of the Lord be eaten by mice and spiders, be reduced to
-nothing, or be very much gnawed, or if the maggot is found whole
-inside ... let it be burned and placed in the reliquary!
-
-'O earth! why openest thou not to swallow up these horrible blasphemers?
-O hateful men! Is that gnawed body really the body of Jesus Christ, the
-Son of God?... Would the Lord suffer Himself to be eaten by mice and
-spiders? He who is the bread of angels and of all the children of God,
-has been given us to feed vermin? Him, who is incorruptible, at the
-right hand of God, will you make liable to worms and rottenness? Did not
-David write the contrary, prophesying his own resurrection?... Wretches!
-were there no other evil in all your infernal theology than the
-irreverence with which you speak of the precious body of Jesus, are you
-not blasphemers and heretics?... yea, the greatest and most enormous the
-world has ever seen.
-
-'Kindle, yes, kindle your faggots, but let it be to burn and roast
-yourselves.... Why should you kindle them for us? Because we will not
-believe in your idols, in your new Gods, in your new Christs, who let
-themselves be eaten by vermin, and in you also, who are worse than
-vermin.
-
-'What mean all these games you play round your God of dough, toying with
-him like a cat with a mouse? You break him into three pieces ... and
-then you put on a piteous look as if you were very sorrowful; you beat
-your breasts ... you call him the Lamb of God, and pray to him for
-peace. St. John showed Jesus Christ ever present, ever living, living
-all in one—an adorable truth! but you show your wafer divided into
-pieces, and then you eat it, calling for something to drink.... What
-would any man say who had never witnessed such monkey tricks?... Did St.
-Paul or St. John ever eat Christ in that manner? and would they
-acknowledge such mountebanks as the servants of God?
-
-'Finally the practice of your mass is very contrary to the practice of
-the Holy Supper of Jesus Christ!... Certainly, there is no marvel in
-that, for there is nothing common between Christ and Belial.
-
-'The Holy Supper of Jesus Christ reminds us of the great love with which
-He loved us so that He washed us in His blood. It presents to us on the
-part of the Lord the body and blood of His Son, in order that we should
-communicate in the sacrifice of His death, and that Jesus should be our
-everlasting food. It calls us to make protest of our faith, and of the
-certain confidence we have of being saved, Jesus having ransomed us. By
-giving to all of us only one bread it reminds us of the charity in which
-we, being all of the same spirit, ought to live. That Holy Supper, being
-thus fully understood, rejoices the believer's soul, in all humility,
-and imparts to him all gentle kindness and loving charity.
-
-'But the fruit of the mass is very different. By it the preaching of the
-Gospel is prevented. The time is occupied with bell-ringing, howling,
-chanting, empty ceremonies, candles, incense, disguises, and all manner
-of conjuration. And the poor world, looked upon as a lamb or as sheep,
-is miserably deceived, cajoled, led astray—what do I say? bitten,
-gnawed, and devoured as if by ravening wolves.
-
-'By means of this mass they have laid hands on everything, destroyed
-everything, swallowed up everything. By its means they have disinherited
-princes and kings, lords and shopkeepers, and all whom we could name,
-dead or alive.... O false witnesses, traitors, robbers of the honour of
-God, and more hateful than the devils themselves!
-
-'In short, the truth chases them, the truth alarms them, and by truth
-shall their reign shortly be destroyed for ever.'
-
-Such was the proclamation posted up in Paris and all over France. We
-trace in it, we must confess, the coarseness of the language of the
-sixteenth century, and especially in a passage which must have greatly
-stirred the anger of the clergy, where the placard, in speaking of the
-pope and cardinals, priests and monks, calls them false prophets,
-wolves, seducers, and gives them other names besides, which are rarely
-employed in our days except in the bulls of the Roman pontiffs. We
-discover in this writing the antipapistical spirit in all its
-unreflecting force. Certainly, when it says that the true Supper of
-Christ 'rejoices the believer's soul, and imparts to him all gentle
-kindness and loving charity,' we taste the savour of the Gospel; but,
-generally speaking, this manifesto is an engine of war with a brazen
-head. If we transport ourselves to the early days of the Reformation, we
-can understand that it was necessary to employ vigorous battering-rams
-to beat down the old and apparently unshakeable walls of popery. Every
-line in this placard reveals to us the warm-hearted, but also 'the
-impetuous and eloquent Farel, frank, decisive, intrepid among men, who
-had the admirable heart of the knight without reproach, with his thirst
-for danger, and was the Bayard of the battles of God.'[208] The work
-resembles the workman.
-
-While conceding something to the times in which the placard was written
-and posted up, we may ask whether that act proceeded solely from a
-movement of the mind free from every tinge of human passion, and was one
-of the arms that the apostles would have employed. In any case it seems
-to us certain that more moderate language would really have been
-stronger, and more surely have attained its end. This is what the event
-will show.
-
-[198] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 3. Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._
-viii. ch. v.
-
-[199] Ruchat, _Hist. Réf. Suisse_, tom. iii. p. 132, after a MS. journal
-of Jean le Comte.
-
-[200] Chap. vii. 5.
-
-[201] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. III.
-
-[202] Ibid.
-
-[203] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ liv. vii. chap. v. In the Latin
-edition we read: 'Famoso libello a Farello, ut creditur,
-composito.'—p. 228.
-
-[204] This is the date given in the _Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris_,
-p. 440. Fontaine, in his _Histoire Catholique_, gives the 18th October.
-
-[205] Calvin, _passim_.
-
-[206] 'Sursum Dominus est.'—Aug. _Ep. ad Dardanum_.
-
-[207] 'Secundum humanam substantiam dereliquerat terrain cum ascendisset
-in cœlum.'—Fulg. _ad Thrasimundum_, lib. ii.
-
-[208] Michelet, _Hist. de France_; the volume entitled 'La Réforme.'
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
- THE KING'S ANGER.
- (AUTUMN 1534.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: A NEW MISSIVE.]
-
-The terrible placard posted up during the night in Paris and over a
-great part of France, 'in every corner,' says Sturm,[209] produced an
-immense sensation. The people were agitated, the women and the weak
-alarmed, and the magistrates filled with indignation.[210] But the
-adversaries of popery did not relax their blows. At almost the same time
-there appeared another treatise 'against the pope's traffickers and
-taverners.' This writing, which was less evangelical, was rather in the
-mocking spirit of Erasmus. 'Everything must subserve the cupidity of the
-priests,' it said; 'heaven, earth, and hell, time, all creatures animate
-and inanimate, wine, bread, and oil, flax, milk, butter, cheese, water,
-salt, fire, and fumigations.... From all these they knew how to
-extract ... silver and gold. And the dress of the dealer adds to the price
-of his wares, for a mass by an abbot or a bishop costs more than one by a
-curate or a friar. Like women of ill fame, they sell their shame all the
-dearer the gayer the ornaments they wear.'[211] The agitation increased
-hourly; priests and friars, scattered among the groups of citizens and
-people, fomented their anger, increased their terror, and circulated
-false reports. 'The heretics,' it was said, 'have resolved to surprise
-the catholics during divine service, and to murder men, women, and
-children without mercy.' An absurd imputation, invented, says a Romish
-historian, to make the reformers odious. It was believed all the same,
-and horrible rumours began shortly to circulate among the crowd. 'A
-frightful plot has been laid against the State and the Church. This
-placard is the signal; the heretics intend to fire the churches and
-palaces, massacre the catholics, abolish the monarchy, and reduce the
-kingdom to a desert.... Death to the Lutherans!'
-
-Nowhere was the fury so great as at the Sorbonne among the doctors: the
-first outbreak of their anger was incredibly violent.'This action,' says
-the chronicler, 'led them into such fury that their former violence
-seemed tolerable. No tempest ever equalled it in severity.'[212] The
-thunderbolt was destined, however, to be launched from a different
-quarter.
-
-Francis I., who was then at Blois, had for some time felt a certain
-uneasiness with regard to the Reform. One day in 1534, when he was
-complaining of the pope to the nuncio, and insinuating that France might
-easily imitate the example of Henry VIII., 'Frankly, sire,' replied the
-nuncio, 'you will be the first to suffer; the religion of a people
-cannot be changed without their next demanding the change of the
-prince.' It had been of no use to tell Francis that neither the German
-princes, nor Henry VIII. himself, had been dethroned by the Reformation:
-the nuncio's words had sunk like an arrow into his heart.
-
-[Sidenote: THE PLACARD ON THE KING'S DOOR.]
-
-Blois was not exempt from the evangelical movement, and the Reform had
-made its way among the choristers of the royal chapel: it was one of
-these who was commissioned to post up the placards in that city. Being
-of a daring and enthusiastic temperament, this individual resolved to
-post the protestant manifesto in the castle itself, to which he had easy
-access.[213] Entering it at a favourable moment, he crept with his
-handbills as far as the king's chamber, and being satisfied that there
-were no servants or courtiers in the gallery, he fastened the paper to
-His Majesty's door, and then retired hastily.[214] This imprudent and
-guilty action, for it was disrespectful, was to be cruelly atoned for.
-
-Montmorency and the Cardinal de Tournon appeared in the morning before
-the king as was their custom. They had the ear of Francis I., and had
-long been looking for an opportunity to deal a desperate blow at the
-Reformation. Just as these two personages were about to enter the king's
-closet, they caught sight of the placard posted on the door; they
-stopped and read it, and taking the matter seriously, not without
-reason, they tore down the paper angrily, and carried it in to their
-master.[215] Nothing in the world could excite him so much as an attack
-like that: his royal dignity was in his eyes almost as sacred as the
-Divine majesty. He trembled and turned pale; he took the paper and then
-gave it back, and disturbed by such unheard-of audacity, he ordered them
-to read it.
-
-[Sidenote: THE KING'S INDIGNATION.]
-
-It was what Tournon wanted. He read the document to the king, dwelling
-on the most irritating passages; but the prince could not hold out to
-the end. The insult offered to his person, the impression which such a
-public scandal might produce on his allies, and especially on the pope,
-the reflection that at the very moment when he was preparing the
-reconciliation of protestants and catholics, a few fanatics should stir
-up all the passions of the priests and the people, and cause his pacific
-designs to fail—all this exasperated his mind more than the attack upon
-the mass. Those who were about him took advantage of the opportunity,
-and represented the affair as one of high-treason. Montmorency and De
-Tournon drove the bolt deep into the king's heart. 'He burst into a
-transport of passion,' wrote Sturm to Melanchthon; 'he was so inflamed,'
-says the _Book of Martyrs_;[216] 'he put himself in such a rage,' says
-Theodore Beza; 'he became so hot that everybody trembled about him,'
-says the catholic Fontaine.—'Let all be seized without distinction,' he
-exclaimed, 'who are suspected of _Lutheresy_. I will exterminate them
-all.'
-
-The event caused a great agitation; nothing else was talked of, and
-every one described it in his own manner. 'Do you know,' said some,
-'that the king, in the very height of his passion, taking his
-handkerchief from his pocket, pulled out a placard, which fell at his
-feet: some clever fellow had slipped the copy in.' 'You may believe it,
-if you like,' says Fontaine, estimating this popular story at its real
-value. The whole household of the castle was immediately on the alert to
-discover the author of the misdeed, which was no hard matter. The
-Lutheran opinions of the chorister were known to many; he was arrested,
-put in chains, and sent to Paris to be tried.[217]
-
-But the king's wrath was not to be confined to this man. The crime had
-been committed everywhere, the punishment must be inflicted everywhere.
-'Write and order the parliament to execute strict justice,' said the
-king; 'and tell the lieutenant-criminal that, to encourage him, I
-increase his salary by six hundred livres a year for life.[218] Let
-inquisition be made forthwith through all the realm for the people who
-are such enemies of God.'
-
-The parliament had not waited for the king's orders. On the morrow of
-the famous day, the 26th October, the chief president, Pierre Lizet,
-convened all the chambers, and the crowded court, being moved and
-indignant, ordered a minute search and processions to be made. The
-trumpets sounded, the people assembled, and an officer of the parliament
-proclaimed: 'Whosoever shall give information as to the person or
-persons who stuck up the said placards, he shall receive from the court
-a reward of one hundred crowns; and all who conceal them shall be
-burnt.'[219]
-
-All this while the evangelical christians, and especially those who had
-set fire to the mine, alarmed at the terrible explosion it had made,
-remained hidden and silent in their houses. They knew Morin's skill in
-discovering his victims and inventing tortures; a dark future saddened
-their countenances. Then were heard among them groans, and regrets, and
-mournful deliberations. 'What shall we do?' they said. Take
-flight!—What! leave home, and family, and country without knowing where
-to go?... How gloomy the future! But is it not better to lose all these
-than to lose your life?... Such were the heart-rending conversations
-held almost everywhere.[220] Fathers and wives and children conjured
-with tears those whom they loved to get out of the way of the king's
-anger. Some of them, indeed, did leave their homes by night and
-flee.[221] Many of those who had not posted the placards, but who were
-known by the frank confession of their faith, thought that the danger
-could not concern them.... The unhappy people hesitated and delayed, and
-many of them paid dearly for their imprudent security.[222]
-
-[Sidenote: THE BRETHREN BETRAYED.]
-
-The lieutenant-criminal, a great opponent of the religious movement, and
-a man of very dissolute life, of rare audacity in catching criminals,
-and remarkable subtlety in entrapping them by their answers,[223] was
-meditating the plan of his campaign. His vanity, his greed, his
-hatred—all his passions were engaged in the business. He desired to
-catch all the heretics together by one cast of his net. But how? A
-bright idea struck him: by seizing one man, he hoped to take all the
-rest. 'You know that shop where they sell sheaths and other such
-articles, in the Rue de la Vannerie leading to the Grève,' he said to
-one of his officers. 'Go and arrest the sheath-maker and bring him to
-me.'—'Sheath-maker,' he said, 'you are one of the heretics, and what is
-worse, you are their _convener_, I know full well. It is you, do not
-deny it, who inform them of the places where their secret meetings are
-to be held. I have a wish to assemble them; you will lead me to their
-houses.' The poor man, understanding what he meant, tremblingly refused
-to commit such treason. The lieutenant-criminal ordered a scaffold to be
-got ready. As soon as the officials had left the room, Morin turned to
-the sheath-maker: 'It is you that conduct the people to church, and it
-is quite fair that you should begin the dance.' The wretched man
-trembled. What a frightful alternative! How could he go to those whom he
-was wont to summon to the temple of God, in order to deliver them to the
-flames? There was a terrible struggle in his soul, but the fear of God
-was overcome, the light of reason extinct, all regard for honour put
-aside. 'Satan entered into Judas,' and he sought how he could betray his
-brethren. Believing himself 'on the point of being burnt,' says Beza, he
-promised all he was asked.[224]
-
-Paris was all in commotion. The streets were hung with drapery,
-processions were made, and in order to wipe out the insult offered to
-the mass, the _Corpus Domini_ was carried solemnly through every
-parish.[225] Morin took advantage of this agitation to conceal his
-proceedings. The treacherous sheath-maker went before him, pale and
-trembling; sergeants followed him at a little distance, and this cruel
-company glided silently through the streets. The sheath-maker stopped
-and pointed to a door: Morin entered. The startled family protested
-their innocence in vain. The lieutenant ordered the poor creatures to be
-manacled, and then continued his pitiless course. 'He spared no house,
-great or small,' says the chronicler, 'not even the colleges of the
-university of Paris.'
-
-[Sidenote: VALETON AND HIS BOOKS SEIZED.]
-
-By degrees the news of this horrible expedition spread through the
-capital; anguish seized not only the friends of Farel, but all who were
-not fanatical adherents of Rome, and even the mere followers of learning
-or of pleasure, who had no taste for the Reformation. 'Morin made all
-the city quake,'[226] for no one knew that he might not be among the
-number of the suspected. In many houses a look-out was kept, to observe
-whether the terrible troop was coming. Nicholas Valeton the receiver,
-who kept near the window, saw Morin approaching; hurriedly turning away,
-he said to his wife: 'Here he is, take the chest of books out of my
-room.... I will run and meet him; I will speak to him and detain him, so
-as to give you time.' The startled young woman took the books and
-hastily thrust them into a hiding-place. 'Arrest this man,' said the
-lieutenant-criminal, immediately he saw Valeton; 'let him be put into
-close confinement.' He then went upstairs and searched every corner, saw
-the empty chest, but found nothing. Being impatient to interrogate his
-prisoner, he did not stop, but proceeded straight to the prison whither
-he had been taken. He could not entrap him. The receiver, being a clever
-man, eluded all his questions. The lieutenant began to grow nervous;
-thinking to himself that the receiver had influence, and was a man
-likely to bear him a grudge, he resolved to destroy him by proceeding
-more craftily.[227] The empty chest recurred to his mind; it must have
-contained something that had been removed at his approach. He
-immediately returned to the house of the accused, and standing near the
-chest, said in a natural tone: 'Madame, your husband has confessed that
-he kept his books and secret papers in this trunk. Besides, we are
-agreed; I desire to behave mercifully towards him; if you give a certain
-sum of money and tell me where the books are, I swear to you before God
-that your husband shall suffer no prejudice.' The wife, who was 'young,
-thoughtless,' and much disturbed by what had taken place, suffered
-herself to be caught by this trick. Morin put so many 'crafty and subtle
-questions,' that trusting in his promise, she told him everything.
-'Good!' thought the lieutenant-criminal, 'he wished to hide his books
-from us, because he felt himself guilty of heresy.' Having seized them,
-he left the house, and putting the papers in a place of safety, went to
-look for other victims.
-
-If there was one man in Paris who could not be suspected of having fixed
-up the placards, it was the poor paralytic: he could hardly leave his
-bed. That was of no consequence; and Bartholomew Milon was one of the
-first towards whose house Morin turned his steps. He had had him in his
-prisons before this; 'but,' says the _Book of Martyrs_, 'the Lord had
-delivered him to make him serve for the consolation of his people in
-this bitter season.' The lieutenant-criminal knew the shoemaker's shop
-very well; it was noted down in his books. He entered, like one out of
-his mind and foaming with rage, into the room where poor Berthelot was
-lying. 'Come, get up!' he cried, looking fiercely at him. Bartholomew,
-'not being terrified by the hideous face of the tyrant,' replied, with a
-sweet smile: 'Alas! sir, it wants a greater master than you to make me
-rise.'—'Take this fellow away,' said the brute to his creatures, and
-after ordering them to carry with them a piece of furniture in which the
-paralytic kept his papers, he continued his inglorious campaign.
-
-[Sidenote: ARRESTS.]
-
-The lieutenant-criminal now proceeded towards the gate of St. Denis, to
-the sign of the _Black Horse_, and entered the shop of the wealthy
-tradesman, Du Bourg. When they caught sight of him, all who had any
-employment there were startled; but although they loved their master
-well, no one stirred to defend him. The draper's wife, daughter of
-another rich tradesman named Favereau, was not so tranquil: bursting
-into tears and shrieking, she conjured the cruel Morin not to take her
-husband away. Nothing could soften him, and he arrested Du Bourg. 'He is
-one of those who pasted up the papers at the corners of the streets,'
-said the lieutenant, and took him away. Next came the turn of the poor
-bricklayer, Poille, who was captured in his wretched hut.
-
-After them many persons without distinction of rank or sex were shut
-up—those who had condemned the placards as well as those who had
-approved of them. Informers were not wanting; they were given a fourth
-part of the property of the accused, and accordingly these _quadruplers_
-(as they were called)[228] were indefatigable in hunting out victims;
-each of them could be accuser and witness in one. It was a reign of
-terror, and all good people were astounded at it.
-
-The Sorbonne took advantage of this furious tempest to be avenged on
-Margaret and to punish her friends. That princess had quitted Béarn at
-the beginning of summer to be present at the marriage of her
-sister-in-law, Isabella of Navarre, with Viscount de Rohan, and had
-obtained her brother's permission for Roussel, who was with her, as well
-as Courault and Berthaud, to preach in Paris. These moderate men were
-strongly opposed to the act accomplished in the night of the 25th
-October; they were thrown into prison all the same. As there was no
-apprehension of offending the king's allies, many Germans were roughly
-seized, catholics as well as protestants; it was enough to have a
-transrhenane accent to be suspected of heresy.
-
-In the meantime Francis I. arrived in Paris. Cardinals, Sorbonne,
-Parliament, all the ardent friends of Roman-catholicism, outvied each
-other in zeal to confirm 'this wise and good prince'[229] in his
-religion, which had been somewhat shaken. They must take advantage of
-the crisis to detach him from his alliances with the English and the
-Saxons. Now was the time for striking the blow and for severing these
-guilty ties. Cardinal de Tournon was particularly indefatigable and
-continually calling for punishments. When Du Chatel, bishop of Tulle,
-declared his opposition to sanguinary measures: 'Your tolerance has a
-suspicious look,' said De Tournon; 'it is unbecoming a true son of the
-Church.'—'I am acting like a bishop,' answered Du Chatel, firmly, 'and
-you like a hangman.' But nothing could check either the Cardinal or
-Duprat. They said to Francis: 'Carefully preserve the honour which
-Pius II. gave our kings when he said: The kings of France have this
-peculiarity, that they preserve the catholic faith and the honour of
-churchmen;' and added: 'We prevent the spreading of a fire, by knocking
-down the houses which it has first touched, and even the adjoining ones;
-do likewise, Sire; order those to be exterminated utterly and without
-reserve, who rebel against the Church. Kindle the fires and erect
-gibbets for the use of the Lutherans.'[230]
-
-A new act of madness (as some historians relate, but which we can hardly
-believe) inflamed the king's wrath still further. The very night of his
-arrival, we are told, the placards reappeared and were stuck on the
-gates of the Louvre. Nay more; it is asserted that as Francis I. was
-going to bed, he found the document under his pillow. The historian who
-records these things is very prone to exaggeration,[231] and I am
-inclined to think that such stories are mere fables invented by the
-enemies of the Reform, its friends being just then too terrified to show
-such boldness.
-
-[Sidenote: MARGARET'S SORROW.]
-
-No one was more alarmed and more agitated than Margaret. Nothing was
-more opposed to her nature than the style of the placards; and in
-reality they were not only an attack against Rome, but a protest against
-the conciliatory catholic system of the Queen of Navarre. Those who
-protested in this way bore a certain resemblance (not reckoning their
-Christianity) to a well-known character in literature: they condemned
-alike the fanatic Romanists and the spiritual Catholics—
-
- Les uns, parcequ'ils sont méchants et malfaisants,
- Et les autres, pour être aux méchants complaisants.[232]
-
-The queen had not the slightest suspicion of the blow that was
-preparing; and at the very moment when she believed the Gospel to be on
-the point of gaining the victory, everything seemed ended for it in
-France. Her brother's anger, the hard look he turned upon her, for
-perhaps the first time, alarmed this princess who had, it is true, a
-strong understanding, but also a heart easily moved and even timid. She
-shed floods of tears: she had no doubt that the whole affair was the
-result of a plot contrived between the Sorbonne and Cardinal de Tournon.
-'My lord,' she said to the king, 'we are not sacramentarians. These
-infamous placards have been invented by men who wish to make the
-responsibility of their abominable manœuvre fall upon us.'[233]
-
-She resolved to do everything to save Roussel at least; the very thought
-that he might be burnt terrified her. Why had she not left him at Pau?
-Seeing the unusual coldness of the king, she commissioned the perfidious
-Montmorency to present her petition. 'They are occupied at this moment,'
-she wrote to him, 'with completing their case against Master Gérard; I
-hope the king will find him deserving something better than the
-stake.... He has never held an opinion tainted with heresy. I have known
-him for five years, and if I had seen anything suspicious in him, I
-should not have put up so long with such poison. I entreat you, fear not
-to speak in my behalf.'[234]
-
-Montmorency, far from being disposed to do what the queen asked,
-endeavoured to ruin not only Roussel, but also Margaret herself; while
-Cardinals Duprat and De Tournon helped him to insinuate into the king's
-mind that his sister had some share in the matter of the placards. The
-coldness, the harshness even of Francis I. towards Margaret, increased
-daily; heartbroken, and unable to bear up any longer, she left Paris
-hastily.
-
-[Sidenote: BEDA ACCUSES FRANCIS.]
-
-Some went further than Duprat and De Tournon, and would have made their
-vengeance fall upon the king himself. The impetuous Beda, that tribune
-of the Sorbonne, who forgot neither his exile nor his imprisonment,
-sought an opportunity of revenging himself on the prince who had
-disgraced him. He hated Francis cordially; to do him an injury for the
-mere pleasure of doing it was his ambition. Not satisfied with ascribing
-the placards to Queen Margaret, he would accuse the king himself. Going
-into the pulpit, he preached a sermon against that prince full of
-invective. 'If it is not the king who had these bills posted up,' he
-said, 'at least he is responsible for them. The favour he shows the
-heretics, and his alliance with the King of England, are the cause of
-all this mischief.' This time the priest was mistaken in fancying
-himself more powerful than the sovereign. Being accused before the
-parliament of high-treason,[235] Beda was thrown into prison, condemned
-to do penance in front of the church of Notre Dame, and to be confined
-for the rest of his days in the abbey of St. Michael, where he died.
-Thus perished in obscurity this furious forerunner of the League.
-
-The revolutionary fury of the Romish champion softened Francis a little:
-finding himself accused as well as his sister, he recalled her to Paris.
-The queen, whose courage was as easily revived as it was cast down,
-arrived at the Louvre full of hope, not doubting that she would win over
-the king to the golden mean she loved so dearly. But she found Francis
-less accessible than she had fancied, and still showing signs of his
-ill-humour. But this did not stop her: imprudent and violent men had
-wished to abolish the mass by means of a fanatical placard, she will try
-to attain the same end by gentler and more prudent means. 'You want no
-church and no sacraments,' said the king to her, abruptly. The queen of
-Navarre replied that, on the contrary, she wanted both; and profiting by
-the opportunity for carrying out her plan, she represented to her
-brother that it was necessary to unite the whole of Christendom into one
-body with the bishop of Rome at its head; and that for this object, the
-priests should be brought to give up voluntarily certain scholastic
-doctrines and superstitious practices which stripped the ritual of the
-Church of its primitive beauty. Then, taking from her pocket a paper
-which Lefèvre had drawn up at her request, during her stay in the south,
-she presented it to the king: it was the confession of faith known as
-the _Mass of Seven Points_. 'The priest will continue to celebrate
-mass,' said Margaret to her brother, 'only it will always be a _public
-communion_; he will not uplift the host; it will not be adored; priests
-and people will communicate under both kinds; there will be no
-commemorations of the Virgin or of the Saints; the communion will be
-celebrated with ordinary bread; the priest, after breaking and eating,
-will distribute the remainder among the people. Further, priests will
-have liberty to marry.'[236] When Francis had heard the seven points of
-his sister's mass, he asked her what was left of the Roman mass? Then
-the queen, taking him on his weak side—glory—represented to him that by
-means of this compromise he would unite all sects, and restore the
-Catholic unity which had been broken for so many centuries. Was it not
-the greatest honour to which a prince could aspire?
-
-[Sidenote: THE QUEEN'S PREACHERS BEFORE FRANCIS.]
-
-Francis I. appeared to be shaken, but yet he saw great difficulties. The
-queen begged him to send for Roussel and the two Augustine monks,
-Courault and Berthaud: 'They will show you, I have no doubt,' she said,
-'that the thing is practicable.' The king was curious, says an
-historian, and accepted the offer. The three evangelicals were taken
-from their prison and conveyed to the Louvre, where the queen presented
-them to her brother. She was full of joy: the matter of the placards,
-which threatened to ruin everything, might possibly be the means of
-saving everything. She was deceived. When Francis talked with her, it
-was no trouble to be like a kind brother with a sister; but in the
-presence of the two friars and Roussel he was a master. These persons
-displeased him: the zeal with which they pointed out the errors and
-abuses of the mass irritated him, and he sent them back hurriedly to
-prison. Men more zealous than they were, had already left their dungeons
-for the scaffold.
-
-[209] 'Per universam fere Galliam nocte in omnibus angulis affixerunt
-manibus.'—_Corp. Ref._ ii. p. 855.
-
-[210] 'Perturbatus hac re populus, territæ multorum cogitationes,
-concitati magistrates.'—Ibid. p. 856.
-
-[211] 'Qua quidem in re, nihil differunt a meretricibus.'—See the
-writing _In pontificios mercatores et caupones_.—Gerdes, iv. p.
-103.
-
-[212] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 112 verso.
-
-[213] _Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris_, published by Lalanne, p.
-449.
-
-[214] Fontaine, _Hist. Catholique_.
-
-[215] 'Ante regis conclave.'—_Corp. Ref._ ii. p. 856.
-
-[216] Crespin's _Martyrologie_.
-
-[217] _Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris_, p. 449.
-
-[218] Fontaine, _Hist. Cath._ _Journal d'un Bourgeois de
-Paris_, p. 452.
-
-[219] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 112 verso.
-
-[220] Crespin, _Martyrol._ folio 112 verso.
-
-[221] 'Quidam mature sibi consulentes aufugerunt.'—_Corp. Ref._ ii.
-p. 856.
-
-[222] 'Qui ad se ea pericula spectare non putabant, qui non contaminati
-erant eo scelere, hi etiam in partem pœnarum veniunt.'—Ibid.
-
-[223] Théod. de Bèze, _Hist. Ecclés._ p. 10.
-
-[224] Théod. de Bèze, _Hist. Ecclés._ p. 10.
-
-[225] _Journal d'un Bourgeois_, p. 44.
-
-[226] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 112.
-
-[227] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 113.
-
-[228] 'Delatores et quadruplatores publice comparantur.'—Sturm to
-Melanchthon, _Corp. Ref._ ii. p. 856.
-
-[229] Florimond Rémond.
-
-[230] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ vii. ch. v.
-
-[231] Varillas.
-
-[232] 'The one, because they are wicked and evil-doers; the others
-because they gratify the wicked.'—_Le Misanthrope._
-
-[233] MSS. Bibl. imp. F. Supplément, No. 133.
-
-[234] _Lettres de la Reine de Navarre_, i, p. 299.
-
-[235] 'Beda conjectus est in carcerem accusatus criminis læsæ
-majestatis.'—Cop to Bucer, 5th April, 1535.
-
-[236] _France Protestante_, art. _Marguerite_. Freer, _Life of
-Marguerite d'Angoulême_, ii. p. 142.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
- EXPIATIONS AND PROCESSIONS.
- (END OF 1534 AND BEGINNING OF 1535.)
-
-
-An expiation was required for the purification of France—solemn
-ceremonies, sacrifices, and the stake. Nothing must be wanting to the
-expiatory work.
-
-Du Bourg, Milon, Poille, and their friends were lying in prison, waiting
-for the day when they were to appear before their judges. The poor
-paralytic had remained as calm as in his father's shop: he was even
-calmer. Formerly, when friends or kindred, well accustomed to lift him,
-had taken him in their arms, he had cried out with the pain he felt in
-every limb. But now, in prison, he bore it all without pain, and 'the
-roughest handling seemed tender.' Receiving unknown strength from God,
-he was tranquil and joyful under tribulation. That holy patience spread
-peace in the hearts of his companions in misfortune. 'It is impossible
-to tell the consolation he afforded them,' says the chronicler. They all
-found themselves in a dark road which led to a cruel death, but this
-poor man walked before them like a torch, to guide and gladden them with
-its soft light.
-
-The day of trial arrived: it was the 10th of November, a fortnight after
-the placards. Seven prisoners were taken to the Châtelet: entering that
-ancient building, where some remains of Cæsar's walls are still to be
-seen, they appeared before the criminal chamber, and the king's advocate
-in his scarlet robe called for a severe sentence. The poor paralytic
-could not be accused of running about the city to fasten up the
-handbills; he was convicted all the same of having some at his father's
-shop. Justice was at once prompt and cruel. These virtuous men were all
-condemned to have their property confiscated, to do public penance, and
-to be burnt alive at different places, and on different days. The court
-thought that by spreading the punishments, they would extend the terror
-more widely. The sentence was confirmed by the parliament.[237]
-
-[Sidenote: MARTYRDOM OF MILON.]
-
-On the 13th November, three days after the sentence, one of the turnkeys
-entered the cell of the paralytic, and lifting him in his arms like a
-child, carried him to a tumbril; the procession then took its way
-towards the Grève. As he passed before his father's house, Milon greeted
-it with a smile. He reached the place of execution, where the stake had
-been prepared. 'Lower the flames,' said the officer in command: 'the
-sentence says he is to be burnt _at a slow fire_.' This was a cruel
-prospect, still he uttered none but words of peace. He knew that to
-believe and to suffer was the life of a Christian; but he believed that
-the grace of suffering was still more excellent than the grace of faith.
-The enemies of the Reformation, who surrounded the burning pile,
-listened to the martyr with surprise and respect. The evangelicals were
-deeply moved, and exclaimed: 'Oh! how great is the constancy of this
-witness to the Son of God, both in his life and in his death!'[238]
-
-The next day it was the turn of Du Bourg, the tradesman of the Rue St.
-Denis. The wealth he had enjoyed during his life, the tears of his wife,
-the solicitations of his friends, had been ineffectual to save him. He
-was a man of decided character: when he had posted up the placard, he
-had done so boldly, although he knew that the act might cost him his
-life, and he stepped into the tumbril with the same courage. When he
-arrived in front of Notre Dame, he was made to alight; a taper was put
-into his hand and a cord round his neck, and he was then taken in front
-of the fountain of the Innocents, in the Rue St. Denis, quite near his
-house—he might have been seen from the windows—after which his hand was
-cut off. The hand that had fixed up the terrible protest against Rome
-fell to the ground, but the man stood firm, believing that 'if those who
-do battle under earthly captains push forward unto the death, although
-they know not what will be the issue, much more ought Christians who are
-sure of victory to fight until the end.' Du Bourg was taken to the
-Halles and there burnt alive.[239]
-
-[Sidenote: POILLE's SUFFERINGS AND COURAGE.]
-
-On the 18th it was Poille's turn. That old disciple of Briçonnet's
-showed as much firmness as his master had shown weakness. The mournful
-procession took its way towards the Faubourg St. Antoine, and halted
-before the church of St. Catherine: it was here the stake had been
-prepared for the edification of the believers of that district. Poille
-got down from the cart, his features indicating peace and joy; in the
-midst of the guard and of the surrounding crowd, he thought only of his
-Saviour and his crown. 'My Lord Jesus Christ,' he said, 'reigns in
-heaven, and I am ready to fight for him on earth unto the last drop of
-blood.' This confession of the truth at the moment of punishment,
-exasperated the executioners. 'Wait a bit,' they said, 'we will stop
-your prating.' They sprang upon him, opened his mouth, caught hold of
-his tongue and bored a hole through it; they then, with refined cruelty,
-made a slit in his cheek, through which they drew the tongue, and
-fastened it with an iron pin.[240] Some cries were heard from the crowd
-at this horrible spectacle: they proceeded from the humble christians
-who had come to help the poor bricklayer with their compassionate looks.
-Poille spoke no more, but his eyes still announced the peace which he
-enjoyed. He was burnt alive.
-
-The punishments followed one another rapidly; many other sentences had
-been delivered. On the 19th November, a printer who had reprinted
-Luther's works, and a bookseller who had sold them, were taken together
-to the Place Maubert. The poor creatures had probably only thought it a
-good speculation; they were however burnt at the stake. On the 4th
-December a young clerk underwent the same punishment in front of Notre
-Dame. On the following day, a young illuminator, a native of Compiègne,
-who worked in a shop near the Pont St. Michel, died on the pile
-constructed at the foot of that bridge. Sometimes it was deemed
-sufficient 'to flog the accused naked,' to confiscate their property,
-and to banish them.[241]
-
-[Sidenote: MORE FUGITIVES.]
-
-The terror was universal. All who had kept up any relations with the
-victims, or had occasionally frequented the meetings, were uneasy and
-troubled. There was great agitation in the evangelical houses: flight
-seemed the only refuge, and many made preparations for their departure.
-
-Although we have spoken of the evangelical christians, we have not named
-them all. There were some whose profession, without being as public as
-that of Du Bourg, De la Forge, and Milon, was yet quite as sincere; many
-of them made themselves known at this time. Of this number were several
-nobles: the Seigneur of Roygnac and his wife, the Sieur of Roberval,
-lieutenant to the marshal of La Marche; the Seigneur of Fleuri in
-Brière, the Damoiselle Bayard, widow of Councillor Porte—all took the
-road of exile deeply sorrowing.[242] Trouble and alarm had penetrated
-even into the offices of the State: many government officers, Elouin du
-Lin, receiver to the parliament of Rouen, and William Gay, receiver of
-Vernay, being forced to choose between their livings and their
-consciences, abandoned their posts and fled. Among the fugitives were
-many who would not have been looked for among the converted. Master
-Pierre Duval, treasurer of the privy purse, touched by grace divine in
-the midst of the revels which came under his management, and his
-secretary, René, also a convert, resolved to sacrifice those allurements
-of the world, which vanish with life, and fly from the terrible wrath of
-their master. Another Duval (John), probably of the same family as
-Pierre, keeper of the lodge in the forest of Boulogne, which served as a
-hunting rendezvous for the court, had been reached by the Word of God in
-the midst of his stags and falcons, just as his cook, William Deschamps,
-had been. In like manner, the Gospel had entered the Hôtel des Finances:
-two clerks of the Treasury had begun to seek for the _treasure in
-heaven_; their names were Claude Berberin and Leon Jamet, of Sansay in
-Poitou. All these men disappeared suddenly; some lay hid in remote
-villages where they had friends; some went to Basle, others to
-Strasburg. Jamet, a friend of Clement Marot (who has addressed to him
-four of those burlesque epistles known as _coq-à-l'âne_, and then in
-great vogue), went to Italy, and took refuge at the court of the Duchess
-René of Ferrara, who made him her secretary; and Clement himself, who
-had already had more than one encounter with the law, for his hatred of
-all constraint and not for his faith, got frightened also, and
-accompanied his friend beyond the Alps.
-
-Side by side with these noblemen and servants of the king were found
-more lowly men on every road in France. The trades connected with
-typography (printers, booksellers, and binders) formed the most numerous
-contingent in these bands of fugitives. The Reformation had gained many
-followers among the masters and their workmen, and it was sufficient to
-have printed, bound, or sold any of Luther's works, to be burnt alive.
-Master Simon Dubois, John Nicole, the Balafré (the surname alone has
-come down to us)—all of them printers, were in flight. Andrew Vincard,
-the bookseller; Cholin and Jerome Denis, master-binders; and one Barbe
-d'Orge, furbisher of books to the court, had disappeared. Master
-goldsmiths, engravers; John Le Feuvre, a cutter of block-books (he may
-perhaps have cut certain designs representing Christ and Antichrist,
-which had been distributed along with the placards); a cooper, a
-carpenter, a shoemaker; Girard Lenet, a painter; John Pinot, who kept an
-inn, called the _Key_, on the Grève, notorious for lodging Lutherans;
-the sister of the paralytic Milon, who could not bear to remain in the
-city where her brother had been burnt—all these were flying far from
-Paris.[243]
-
-Dauphiny was the province of France which had contributed most to the
-evangelical brotherhood of Paris. Master Thomas Berberin, Pasqualis,
-François, Gaspard Charnel, and a young friar named Loys de Laval, were
-all from Dauphiny, and returned hastily to their picturesque home.
-
-[Sidenote: QUALITY OF THE FUGITIVES.]
-
-Several other fugitives were monks: there were brother Gratian and
-brother Richard, both Augustines; brother Nicholas Marcel, a Celestine;
-the precentor Jehannet, surnamed _the preacher_; and Master John le
-Rentif, a secular priest, popularly known as the _prêcheur de
-bracque_,[244] so called, probably, because having thrown off his
-sacerdotal gown, he preached in breeches. In this fugitive flock there
-was one black sheep, the famous doctor of divinity, Peter Caroli. The
-Sorbonne had stopped his lectures at the college of Cambray for having
-said: 'Nothing keeps us more from the knowledge of God than images; and
-it is better to give sixpence to the poor than to a priest for a mass.'
-He left for Switzerland, where his presence was not very highly
-appreciated. 'At that time also went out Caroli,' says Beza, 'carrying
-with him the same spirit of ambition, of contradiction, and of lewdness;
-a man whom the spirit of God had not sent, but whom Satan had brought to
-hinder the Lord's work.'
-
-The colleges, also, where the evangelical light was beginning to
-illuminate some of the masters and pupils, supplied several fugitives.
-Professors on whom the severity of parliament would have fallen, rose
-up, bade farewell to their pupils, sorrowfully went out of their
-studies, and disappeared. Master John Renault, principal of a college at
-Tournay; Master Mederic Sevin; Master Mathurin Cordier, Calvin's mentor
-and friend, had quitted Paris in haste, without taking leave of their
-colleagues. All classes of society had furnished representatives to that
-body which was hurrying from the capital along every road. These noble
-Christians were often treated ignominiously in their flight: many had
-pity on them, but others insulted them. They were sometimes obliged to
-hide themselves in stables or in the woods; worn out by poverty and
-hunger, clothed in 'coarse and dirty garments,' the better to elude
-their enemies; but the peace of faith consoled them; they had been
-unwilling to deny Christ; they had preferred, as Calvin says, to
-renounce the life of this world to live for ever in heaven, and the hope
-of a glorious resurrection prevented them from fainting.[245]
-
-Margaret shed many tears in secret, and her silent sorrow spoke
-eloquently to her brother. Presently she risked a few prayers in behalf
-of her friends, Roussel, Courault, and Berthaud. The king was still
-irritated against them; but the love he felt for his sister prevailed.
-He ordered the three doctors to be taken out of prison and put in a
-convent: the dungeon was changed to a cell, which was some slight
-relief; and a sharp reprimand was given to each of them. Roussel
-declared that he had no desire to break with the Church, and retired to
-his abbey at Clairac.[246] The feeble Berthaud, whom the punishments had
-frightened, resumed his monastic dress without any reserve, and died in
-the cloister; but the aged and intrepid Courault remained firm. In vain
-did the king send him back to the convent; in vain was the monk's frock
-put on him, and a chaplet in his hands; he kept silent, but at the first
-opportunity, some days only after he had been sent to the cloister, he
-escaped, and, although almost blind, took the road which Farel and
-Calvin had already trodden, and reached Basle.
-
-[Sidenote: THE KING URGED TO PERSECUTE.]
-
-This pardon, almost a disgrace to the king who granted it, was the only
-and the last expression of Francis's pity; after having given way to his
-sister, he gave way to the courtiers, the cardinals, the Sorbonne, and
-parliament. The king's indulgence to the three doctors served but to
-hasten the terrible persecutions that were about to begin in France. The
-people, especially at Paris, ignorant and superstitious, and not
-imagining there could be any other religion than that which they had
-been taught, were astonished, disturbed, and uneasy at seeing the great
-number of men and women won to the Gospel; they were even touched by the
-serenity of the martyrs. The chiefs of the ultramontane party, alarmed
-at the agitation which was gradually spreading all over the capital, and
-desirous of strengthening the faith of the masses, began to solicit the
-king very earnestly. They reminded him of the paper against the mass,
-and called for severer punishments and more striking satisfaction; they
-represented to him that 'the inhabitants of Paris were much disturbed by
-the multitude of those who had gone astray from the faith.'[247] They
-seemed to see the waves of Luther's doctrine impetuously advancing from
-Germany, and on the point of breaking over France. At all risks a dyke
-must be raised up sufficient to stop them. 'Sire,' they said, 'transmit
-faithfully to your successors that glorious title of eldest son of the
-Church which you have received from your forefathers.... You know how
-greedy the French mind is for novelties,[248] and where may that lead
-us.... Give a public proof of your attachment to the faith.' Francis had
-not forgotten the placard fastened by night to the door of his chamber,
-and that evangelical remonstrance seemed in is eyes a scandalous libel
-aimed at his majesty. Let there be more burnings then.... But it is
-desirable that they should be accompanied with unusual pomp. By a royal
-law and constitution, it was ordered that they should pray to the
-Almighty for the destruction of heresy, and to that end there should be
-a solemn procession and an expiatory sacrifice. Francis intended to
-crown it with acts of barbarity.
-
-All Paris was astir: the streets were hung with drapery,
-_reposoirs_[249] were erected, the most magnificent dresses were
-preparing in the palace, and the victims in the dungeons were counted.
-Francis had many motives for giving a grand spectacle and accompanying
-it with bloody interludes: public policy was not without a share in
-them. He wished to silence the evil tongues that were raving about his
-friendly relations with Henry VIII. and the good grace with which he had
-received the ambassador from the Grand Turk; he wished to draw down the
-blessings of heaven upon his arms; he wished to show that if he
-protected sound learning, he despised fanatical writings, and detested
-the anonymous libels circulated at the same time as the placards, the
-_Seven Assaults_, the treatise _Against the pope's traffickers_, and a
-host of others. But the wrath that had seized him at seeing the criminal
-handbill on his own door, particularly called for a terrible revenge,
-and that without delay.
-
-The 21st January, 1535, arrived. Early in the morning a large crowd of
-citizens and people from the surrounding country filled the streets;
-even the roofs of the houses were covered with spectators. This curious
-and agitated multitude still further augmented the general emotion: many
-citizens of Paris had never seen anything like it before. 'There was not
-the smallest piece of wood or stone, jutting from the walls, that was
-not occupied, provided there was room on it for anybody, and the streets
-seemed paved with human heads.' The innumerable concourse admired the
-tapestry with which the houses were hung, the _reposoirs_, the pictures
-filled with splendid mysteries. The people gathered particularly before
-representations of the _Holy Host_, of the _Jew_ (probably the Wandering
-Jew), 'and others of very great singularity.' Before the door of each
-house was a lighted torch, 'to do reverence to the blessed sacrament and
-the holy relics.'[250]
-
-[Sidenote: THE PROCESSION OF RELICS.]
-
-The procession began at six in the morning. First came all the crosses
-and banners of the several parishes; then followed the citizens, two and
-two, each with a torch, and the four mendicant orders, with the priests
-and canons of the city. Never had so many relics been seen before. It
-was not only living men who figured that day in the streets of the
-capital to do honour to the mass; but there were St. Philip, St. Marcel,
-St. Germain, St. Mery, St. Honoré, St. Landry, St. Opportuna, St.
-Martin, St. Magloire, and many others, who, whole or in part, were
-paraded before the people. The crowd regarded these ancient relics with
-devout admiration: 'There's the body of the saint!... there are his
-shoes and his breeches!'
-
-Thus spoke the devout; but what effect did these superstitions produce
-on enlightened men? What would Calvin, in particular, have said, that
-great friend of the worship in spirit and in truth paid to God alone? He
-had left Paris some months since; but had he been there still, at the
-moment of the procession, at De la Forge's or any other house before
-which it passed, what would have been his feelings? These we learn from
-one of his writings, in which he treats of all the relics displayed at
-this time before the Parisians. This is the proper moment for showing
-what he thought of these pretended relics of saints. Irony is a weapon
-to be sparingly used in religious matters; we find it employed, however,
-more than once in the Bible, for instance where Elijah speaks to the
-prophets of Baal.[251] Calvin might therefore make use of it; but he was
-not naturally given to humour, and a profound seriousness underlies his
-irony.
-
-The holy bodies followed each other along the streets of the capital.
-The admiration of the citizens increased at every moment; they believed,
-as each relic passed them, that they were looking at an object unique in
-the world. 'The marvel is not so great,' said Calvin subsequently. 'We
-have not only _one_ body of each of these saints, but we have _several_.
-There is one body of St. Matthew at Rome, a second at Padua, and a third
-at Treves. There is one of St. Lazarus at Marseille, another at Autun,
-and a third at Avallon.'[252]
-
-Soon the canons of the Holy Chapel came in sight, wearing their copes:
-no church in Christendom possessed such treasures. 'Here is the Virgin's
-milk!'—'Indeed,' said Calvin, 'there is not a petty town or wretched
-convent where they do not show us this milk. If the Virgin had been
-nursing all her life, she would hardly have been able to supply such an
-abundance!'[253]
-
-'There is our Lord's purple robe,' said the people; 'and the linen cloth
-he tied round him at the Last Supper, and his swaddling clothes!'—'They
-would do better,' said Calvin, 'to seek for Christ in his word, his
-sacraments, and spiritual graces, than in his frock, little shirt, and
-napkin.'[254]
-
-'There is the crown of thorns!' was soon the cry. The sensation produced
-by this venerated object was all the greater, and the struggles of the
-people to get near it all the stronger, because it had never before been
-seen in the processions.—'It is no rarity,' said Calvin. 'There are two
-of these crowns at Rome, one at Vincennes, one at Bourges, one at
-Besançon, one at Albi, one at Toulouse, one at Mâcon, one at Cléry, one
-at St. Flour, one at St. Maximin, one at Noyon, one at St. Salvador in
-Spain, one at St. Jago in Gallicia, and many others in other places
-besides. To make all these crowns and gather all these thorns, they must
-have cut down a whole hedge.'[255]
-
-'Here comes the true cross!' Again there was a rushing and shouting,
-citizens and strangers crushing one another,—'It is not the only one,'
-said the reformer, 'there is no petty town or paltry church where they
-do not show you pieces; and if all were collected together, there would
-be a load for a great barge, and three hundred men could not carry
-it.'[256]
-
-Next appeared a silver-gilt shrine, which attracted universal attention:
-it contained the relics of St. Genevieve, the patron saint of Paris; it
-was the last anchor in the midst of the tempest, and was never brought
-out except when France was in great peril. The butchers of Paris had
-offered to carry this precious amulet, and had prepared themselves for
-it by a fast of several days: they moved along barefoot and dressed in
-long shirts. Around this somewhat ferocious group there was a continual
-movement. 'There she is, the holy virgin of Nanterre,' was the cry. 'She
-saved our forefathers from the fury of Attila, may she save us from
-Luther's!' The people threw themselves upon the relic: one wished to
-touch it with his cap, another with his handkerchief, a third with the
-tip of his finger, some even more daring tried to kiss it. _Kiss the
-Son, lest he be angry, and ye perish from the way, when his wrath is
-kindled but a little._[257]
-
-After the relics came a great number of cardinals, archbishops, and
-bishops, with coped and mitred abbots. Then, under a magnificent canopy,
-the four pillars of which were borne by the king's three sons and the
-Duke of Vendome, first prince of the blood, came the host carried by the
-bishop of Paris, and adorned as if it had been the Lord in person.
-
-[Sidenote: PENITENCE OF THE KING.]
-
-Then appeared Francis I., without parade, bareheaded and on foot,
-holding a lighted taper in his hand,[258] like a penitent commissioned
-to expiate the sacrilege of his people. At each _reposoir_ he gave his
-taper to the Cardinal of Lorraine, joined his hands and knelt down,
-humbling himself, not for his adulteries, his lies, or his false
-oaths—of these he did not think-but for the audacity of those who did
-not like the mass. He was followed by the queen, the princes and
-princesses, the foreign ambassadors and all the court, the chancellor of
-France, the council, the parliament in their scarlet robes, the
-university, the other corporations, and the guard. All walked two and
-two, 'exhibiting every mark of extraordinary piety.' Each man carried a
-lighted torch in profound silence. Spiritual songs and funereal airs
-alone interrupted from time to time the quiet of this gloomy and slow
-procession.
-
-In this way it traversed the different quarters of the capital, followed
-by an immense crowd of people, and the inhabitants of each street,
-standing in front of their houses, fell on their knees as the host went
-by. The crowd was so great that bodies of archers, with white staves in
-their hands, posted in every street, could scarcely keep open a passage
-for the procession.[259]
-
-At length they arrived at the church of Notre Dame; the sacrament was
-placed on the altar; mass was sung by the Bishop of Paris, and all
-imaginable homage was paid to the host in order to atone for the insults
-offered to it by the placards. From Notre Dame, the king and the princes
-returned to the bishop's palace.
-
-There are days of evil omen in history. There is one especially that it
-is sufficient to name to fill the mind with sorrow and mourning ...
-fatal date which solemnly inaugurated in France the epoch of persecution
-and martyrdom. On the _twenty-first of_ _January, 1535_, a king of
-France, surrounded by his court and ministers, his parliament and
-clergy, was about to devote to death with all due ceremony the humble
-disciples of the Gospel. What the Valois began, the Bourbons continued,
-and the most illustrious of them carried out on a vast scale the system
-of galleys and of burning piles. Alas! there are dates which coincide in
-a striking and pitiless manner. Four hundred and fifty-eight years later
-there was another _twenty-first of January_. The simplest, the meekest,
-the most generous of the Bourbons, condemned by misguided men to suffer
-death, ascended the scaffold erected in a public place in Paris; he
-received the death-blow on the _twenty-first of January_, 1793. We do
-not presume to explain history; we do not say that the innocent
-Louis XVI. paid the penalty of his predecessor's crimes, and that God
-ordained the expiation commanded by Francis I. to be followed by
-another. But the coincidence of these two dates startled us, and we
-could not avoid stopping to contemplate them with a holy fear.
-
-[237] _Journal d'un Bourgeois_, p. 414.
-
-[238] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 43.
-
-[239] _Journal d'un Bourgeois_, p. 445.
-
-[240] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 113 verso.
-
-[241] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 113 verso.
-
-[242] _Chronique du Roi François I._ p. 130. This manuscript, published
-by M. Guiffrey in 1860, has described several new facts.
-
-[243] _Chronique du Roi François I._ pp. 130-132.
-
-[244] The breeches-preacher; comp. Italian _brache_.
-
-[245] The list of those who were noted by the officers of justice as
-having fled from Paris, of which the Bourgeois de Paris speaks in his
-_Journal_, p. 446, is given more completely in the _Chronique de
-François I._ pp. 130-132.
-
-[246] Gerardus Rufus ... decreto regio absolutus.'—Cop to Bucer,
-Strasburg MS.
-
-[247] _Chronique du Roi François I._ p. 113.
-
-[248] 'Quam avido novitatis ingenio essent Galli.'—Flor. Rémond,
-_Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 229.
-
-[249] These are temporary altars set up in the streets, and at which the
-procession of the _Corpus Christi_ halts 'to repose the Holy
-Sacrament.'
-
-[250] _Chronique du Roi François I._ p. 114.
-
-[251] 1 Kings xviii. 27.
-
-[252] Calvin, _Opusc. franç._ pp. 750-751.
-
-[253] _Calvin, Opusc. franç._ p. 745.
-
-[254] Ibid. pp. 727 and 736.
-
-[255] Ibid. pp. 736, 742.
-
-[256] Ibid. p. 734.
-
-[257] Psalms ii. 12.
-
-[258] Gamier, _Hist. de France_, xxiv. p. 556.
-
-[259] 'Innumera denique plebis multitudine.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist.
-Hérés._ ii. p. 229. See also the _Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris_;
-Fontaine, _Hist. Catholique_; Maimbourg, _Hist. du Calvinisme_; and the
-_Chronique de François I._
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
- THE ELOQUENCE AND TORTURES OF FRANCIS I.
- (21ST JANUARY 1535.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: DINNER AT THE BISHOP'S.]
-
-[Sidenote: THE KING'S SPEECH.]
-
-All was not over: they had had the comedy (as it appeared to some); they
-were now to have the oratorical address, and then the tragedy. In order
-to stifle the Reformation, something more was wanted than relics,
-chanting, and images: blood must be shed. But first of all there should
-be a speech from the throne. We do not doubt the sincerity of the king
-in his oratorical movements. The personal offence that had been done to
-him, and the obstacles raised by the placards to his political plans,
-most assuredly engrossed him more than the cause of Catholicism; but
-all this was mixed up in his mind, and he was eloquent. The
-ambassadors,[260] the court, the parliament, the Bishop of Paris
-attended by the most distinguished of his clergy, the rector of the
-university with his principal doctors, the provost of the merchants, the
-sheriffs, and a great number of the leading officers and merchants of
-the city had received orders to assemble after dinner in the bishop's
-great hall. They expected a speech from the king, an event of no
-frequent occurrence in those times, which made them all the more
-impatient. Ere long Francis I. entered: his countenance was serious,
-sad, and even gloomy. His children, the other princes of the blood, the
-cardinals and great officers of state surrounded the throne, whence the
-king could be seen and heard by the whole assembly. He took his seat and
-said:[261] 'Messieurs, be not surprised if you do not see in my face
-that look which is usual to me, and that joy which animates me whenever
-I meet you. Do not marvel if the tricks of eloquence are foreign to my
-speech. I do not come to talk to you of myself; we have to treat this
-day of an offence done to the King of kings. It is proper that I should
-assume another style and language, another look and countenance, for I
-do not speak to you as a king and a master speaks to his subjects and
-his servants, but as being a subject and servant myself, and addressing
-those who are fellow-servants with me of our common King, of the Master
-of masters, who is God Almighty. What honour, what reverence, what
-obedience do we not owe to that great King!... What obligations does not
-this kingdom, more than any other, owe to Him, seeing that for thirteen
-or fourteen hundred years He has maintained it in peace and tranquillity
-with its friends, and in victory against its enemies! And if, sometimes,
-for sins committed against His divine goodness, He has wished to visit
-us with punishment in temporal things, He has done it with so little
-severity, that He has never exceeded the chastisement which a kind and
-gracious father may use towards the faults of a humble and obedient son.
-But as for spiritual things, which touch the Holy Catholic faith, God
-has never forsaken France so far as to let her stray ever so little from
-it; and He has shown her this favour, that, by common accord, she has
-enjoyed the privilege of being the only power that has never nurtured
-monsters, and which, above all others, bears the name and title of Most
-Christian.... So much the more ought we to feel grief and regret in our
-hearts, that there should be at this time in France men so wicked and
-wretched as to desire to soil that noble name,—men who have disseminated
-damnable opinions, who have not only assaulted the things which our
-great King desires to be honoured, and acted so evilly that they do not
-leave to others the power of doing worse, but have all at once attacked
-Him in the holy sacrament of the altar. People of low condition, and
-less learning, wicked blasphemers, have used with regard to that
-sacrament, terms rejected and abhorred by every other nation. So that
-our realm, and even this good city of Paris, which from the time when
-letters were transported hither from Athens, has always shone in sound
-and holy learning, might remain scandalised, and its light be
-obscured.... Wherefore we have commanded that severe punishment be
-inflicted on the delinquents, in order that they may be an example to
-others, and prevent them from falling into the like damnable opinions.
-And we entreat the misguided ones to return into the path of the Holy
-Catholic faith, in which I, who am their king, with the spiritual
-prelates and temporal princes, persevere.... Oh! the crime, the
-blasphemy, the day of sorrow and disgrace! Why did it ever dawn upon
-us?'
-
-'There were few of all the company,' says the chronicle, 'from whose
-eyes the king did not draw tears.' After a few minutes' silence,
-interrupted by the exclamations and sighs of the assembly, the king
-resumed: 'It is at least a consolation that you share my sorrow. What a
-disgrace it will be if we do not extirpate these wicked creatures!...
-For this reason I have summoned you to beg you to put out of your hearts
-all opinions that may mislead you; to instruct your children and your
-servants in the Christian doctrine of the Catholic faith; and if you
-know any person infected by this perverse sect, be he your parent,
-brother, cousin, or connection, give information against him. By
-concealing his misdeeds, you will be partakers of that pestilent
-faction.' The assembly gave numerous signs of assent; the king saw the
-devotion, zeal, and affection visible in their faces. 'I give thanks to
-God,' he resumed, 'that the greatest, the most learned, and undoubtedly
-the majority of my subjects, and especially in this good city of Paris,
-are full of zeal for the Catholic religion.' Then, says the chronicle,
-you might have seen the faces of the spectators change in appearance,
-and give signs of joy; acclamations prevented the sighs, and sighs
-choked the acclamations. 'I warn you,' continued the king, 'that I will
-have the said errors expelled and driven from my kingdom, and will
-excuse no one.' Then he exclaimed, says our historian, with extreme
-anger: 'As true, Messieurs, as I am your king, if I knew one of my own
-limbs spotted or infected with this detestable rottenness, I would give
-it you to cut off.... And further, if I saw one of my children defiled
-by it, I would not spare him.... I would deliver him up myself, and
-would sacrifice him to God.'[262]
-
-[Sidenote: EFFECTS OF THE ROYAL RHETORIC.]
-
-At these words the king stopped: he was agitated and wept. The
-spectators, affected by the sight of this new Abraham, burst into tears.
-After the interruption necessarily occasioned by this moving scene, Du
-Bellay, bishop of Paris, and John Tronson, Lord of Couldray on the Seine
-and prevost of the merchants, approached, and kneeling before the king,
-thanked him for his zeal—the first in the name of the clergy, the other
-on behalf of the citizens—and swore to make war against heresy.
-Thereupon all the spectators exclaimed, with voices broken by sobbing:
-'We will live and die for the Catholic religion.' The author of the
-_Chronicle of Francis I._, who was probably present in the assembly,
-dwells upon the emotion caused by the monarch's address: 'We may clearly
-show by this,' he says, 'that the speech of an eloquent and powerful man
-may lead men's hearts at his will; for there was not a man in all the
-company, whether native or foreigner, who did not more than once change
-countenance, according to the different affections the words
-expressed.'[263]
-
-Other emotions, those of anguish and terror, were next to be aroused.
-After displaying his eloquence, the king was about to display his
-cruelty. 'Francis, always in extremes,' says a very catholic
-historian,[264] 'did not disdain to pollute his eyes with a spectacle
-full of barbarity and horror.' On the road between St. Genevieve and the
-Louvre, two scaffolds had been prepared, one at the Marksman's Cross in
-the Rue St. Honoré, and the other at the Halles. Some of the most
-excellent men that France possessed were about to be burnt after
-suffering atrocious tortures. Altars, galleries, and inscriptions had
-been placed on the bridges and in the streets. On the bridge of Notre
-Dame, around a fountain, surmounted by a large crucifix, these lines
-were inscribed:
-
- Ipsi peribunt, tu autem permanebis. (Ps. cii.)
- Inimicos ejus induam confusione. (Ps. cxxxii.)
- Videbunt in quem transfixerunt. (John xix.)[265]
-
-A little farther on stood an altar with an invocation to the Virgin and
-all the saints to give help, strength, and grace against the attacks of
-the enemies of the host. In other places were four stanzas in French,
-each of which ended with this line:
-
- France florit sur toutes nations.[266]
-
-The king with his family, the nobles, and the rest of the procession,
-having resumed his march, made his first halt at the Marksman's Cross.
-Morin, the cruel lieutenant-criminal, then brought forward three
-evangelical christians destined to be burnt 'to appease the wrath of
-God.' They were the excellent Valeton, receiver of Nantes; Master
-Nicholas, clerk to the registrar of the Châtelet, and another.[267] The
-people were so excited by the procession, and by the cries raised in
-every quarter, and even by the throne, against the reformers, that, when
-the martyrs appeared, they rushed furiously upon them to snatch them
-from the hangman's hands, and tear them to pieces. The guard drove them
-back, and the disciples of the Gospel were preserved for a more
-frightful death.
-
-[Sidenote: THE STRAPPADO.]
-
-The first who came forward was that brave man and respectable Christian,
-Nicholas Valeton, who had always 'kept good company.' The king had been
-struck with the circumstance of the hiding of his books, and ordered
-them to be burnt with him. Valeton stood in front of the pile. With a
-sort of refined cruelty, the wood with which he was to be burnt had been
-taken from his own house; but this kind of irony did not affect him.
-Another object attracted his attention: it was a kind of gallows, formed
-of two poles, one fixed firmly in the ground, the other fastened to it
-cross-wise, one end of which was raised at will by means of a cord
-fastened to the other. The receiver looked calmly at this instrument of
-punishment, to which they were about to fasten him to make him soar into
-the air. Merely to burn these humble Christians would have been too
-simple: the employment of the _strappado_ was to provide the people with
-a more varied and more diverting spectacle. The priests knowing that
-Valeton was a man of credit, and that he was moreover rather a novice in
-heresy, desired to gain him: they approached him and said: 'We have the
-universal Church with us, out of it there is no salvation; return to it,
-your faith is destroying you.' This faithful Christian replied: 'I only
-believe in what the prophets and the apostles formerly preached, and
-what all the company of saints believed.' The attacks were renewed in
-vain. 'My faith has a confidence in God,' he said, 'which will resist
-all the powers of hell.' The good people who were scattered among the
-crowd admired his firmness,[268] and the thought that he left a bereaved
-wife behind him touched many a heart.
-
-The punishment began. The hangman bound his hands which he fastened to
-the end of the strappado; the sufferer was then raised in the air, his
-arms alone sustaining the whole weight of his body. The pile over which
-he was suspended was then set alight, and they proceeded to their cruel
-sport. The executioners let the unhappy Valeton fall plump into the
-midst of the flames; then, reversing their movements, they raised the
-martyr into the air only to let him fall again into the fire.[269] 'Make
-the wretches feel that, they are dying,' a cruel pagan emperor had said;
-a king of France carried out this order, and enjoyed it with all his
-court, somewhat as savages do when they burn their prisoners. After
-several turns at this atrocious sport had amused the king, the priests,
-the nobles, and the people, the flames caught hold of the martyr from
-his feet to the cord that bound his hands, the knot was burnt, and this
-upright witness to Christ fell into the fire where his body was reduced
-to ashes. This inhuman punishment was next applied by order of the _most
-christian_ king to the two other martyrs. When the torture had lasted
-long enough, the executioner cut the rope, if the fire had not consumed
-it, in order that the victim might fall at last into the flames.[270]
-
-[Sidenote: TORTURES AT THE HALLES.]
-
-Francis I. and his courtiers were not yet satisfied. 'To the Halles! to
-the Halles!' was the cry, and a mass of curious people rushed thither,
-knowing that the executioners had prepared a second entertainment of a
-similar kind. The king and his train had scarcely arrived, when they
-began to set the frightful strappado in motion. A man known and highly
-esteemed throughout the quarter, a rich fruit-merchant of the Halles,
-had been fastened to it, and after him two other evangelical Christians
-were served in the same way. Francis and his court witnessed the
-convulsions of the sufferers and could smell the stench of their burning
-flesh. There were, no doubt, among the spectators many individuals
-feeling for the sufferings of others, but, surprising to say, there was
-not a sign of compassion: the best of them suppressed the most
-legitimate emotions. It was everybody's duty to think that, as a jesuit
-says, 'the king wished to draw down the blessing of heaven, by giving
-this signal example of piety and zeal.'[271]
-
-Francis returned satisfied to the Louvre: the courtiers around him
-declared that the triumph of holy Church was for ever secured in the
-kingdom of France. But the people went still farther; they displayed a
-cruel joy; the deaths of the heretics had furnished them with an unknown
-enjoyment.... It was long before the thirst for blood then awakened in
-them was assuaged. They had just played the first act of a drama which
-was to be followed by others bloodier still, the most notorious of which
-were the massacres of St. Bartholomew, and, with a change of victims,
-the massacres of September 1792. Certain enraptured clerks thought that
-Francis I. surpassed Charles V., and exclaimed:
-
- 'Cæsar edit edicta, Rex edit supplicia.[272]
-
-Francis I. and his officers felt, however, some little vexation: certain
-victims were wanting. They sought everywhere for nobles, professors,
-priests, and industrials suspected of protestantism, whom they could not
-find. A few days after these executions, on the 25th January, the sound
-of the trumpet was heard in all the cross-ways, and the common crier
-'cited seventy-three Lutherans to appear in person. In default thereof,
-they were declared to be banished from the kingdom of France, their
-goods confiscated, and themselves condemned to be burnt.' These were the
-fugitives whom we have already pointed out. None of them appeared to the
-summons; but one of them wrote to the king:[273]
-
- They call me Lutheran—a name
- I have no right to bear.
- Luther for me did not come down from heaven;
- For me no Luther hung upon the cross
- For all my sins; nor was I in his name
- Baptised, but in the name of Him alone
- To whom th' eternal Father grants whate'er we ask—
- The only name in heaven by which the world,
- This wicked world, salvation can attain.
-
-But the king was far from pardoning. Four days after this publication
-(29th January) he issued an edict, 'for the extirpation of the Lutheran
-sect which has swarmed and is still swarming in the realm, with orders
-to denounce its followers.'[274] At the same time he addressed a
-circular letter to all the parliaments, enjoining them to give 'aid and
-prisons' in order that the heresy should be promptly extirpated.[275]
-Lastly, the 'father of letters' issued an ordinance declaring the
-_abolition of printing_ all over France under pain of the gallows.[276]
-This savage edict was not carried out: it is, however, an index of the
-spirit by which the enemies of the Reformation were animated.
-
-[Sidenote: PROCLAMATIONS AND PUNISHMENTS.]
-
-Francis I., after having thus made some excursions into the sphere of
-Charles V.—the _proclamations_, returned into his own—the _punishments_.
-Du Bellay interceded for the German protestants, and the king sent them
-back to their own country; but, feeling his hands free as regarded his
-own subjects, he sent fresh victims to the stake. On the 16th February,
-Calvin's friend, the rich and pious trader, La Forge, about sixty years
-of age, was dragged in a tumbril to the cemetery of St. John. 'He is a
-rich man,' said some compassionate spectators; 'a good man that has
-given away much in alms.' It did not matter: they burnt him alive. Three
-days later a goldsmith and a painter were mercifully (for Francis wished
-to see the arts flourish) stripped and flogged, deprived of their goods,
-and banished. Many Lutheran women were banished also. On the 26th
-February, a young Italian, named Loys de Medicis, perished in the flames
-at the end of St. Michael's bridge; and his wife 'died in her bed of
-grief at such infamy.' Shortly afterwards it was the turn of a scholar,
-a native of Grenoble, who had posted up some of the placards in the
-night. On the 13th March, it was that of the chorister of the royal
-chapel who in his rash zeal had fastened the protest to his Majesty's
-door; he was burnt near the Louvre. On the 5th May, a _procureur_ and a
-tailor were dragged on a hurdle to the porch of Notre Dame, whence they
-were taken in a tumbril to the pig-market 'and there hanged in chains,'
-which were not consumed so soon as ropes. The same day, a shoemaker of
-Tournay, banished from that city because he belonged to the sect of
-Luther, died in a similar way, 'without repenting.'
-
-About the same time two journeymen, natives of Tours, and ribbon
-weavers, arrived in Paris 'from Almayne,' bringing with them a Lutheran
-book. 'Landlord,' said one of them imprudently, 'take care of this book
-while we go into town, and do not show it to anybody.' The innkeeper
-whose curiosity was thus aroused, turned the book round and round, tried
-to read it, and at last, unable to hold out any longer, went and showed
-it to a priest. The latter having opened it, exclaimed: 'It is a
-damnable book!' The landlord informed against the travellers; Morin had
-the two friends arrested ... their tongues were cut out, and they were
-burnt 'alive and contumacious.'[277]
-
-[Sidenote: LA GABORITE.]
-
-Paris did not enjoy alone these cruel spectacles: piles were kindled in
-many cities of France. A poor girl, Mary Becaudelle, surnamed the
-Gaborite, had just returned to Essarts in Vendée, her native place,
-after being in service at Rochelle with a master who had taught her the
-Gospel. A grey-friar happened to be preaching in her little town and she
-went to hear him. After the sermon, she said to him: 'Father, you do not
-preach the Word of God,' and pointed it out to him. Ashamed at being
-taken to task by a woman, the friar, who was alone, resolved to get
-himself reprimanded a second time, but before witnesses. The plot was
-arranged. The friar having insulted the doctrine of grace, the terrified
-Gaborite exclaimed: 'If you insult the Gospel, the wrath of God will be
-against you.' She was condemned to the stake shortly after, and endured
-her punishment with such patience as to cause great admiration.'[278]
-
-About the same time two or three men were keeping watch, during the
-night, in the chapel of the Holy Candle, at Arras in Artois. There was a
-candle there, to which the devout used to sing hymns, because the
-priests told them that it had been sent from heaven and was never
-consumed. 'That is what we will see,' said these evangelicals: Nicholas,
-surnamed the _Penman_, 'a man of good sense and well taught in holy
-learning,' Jean de Pois and Stephen Bourlet, 'who had both received much
-instruction from Nicholas.' One day they took their station round the
-candle, determined not to fall asleep. The substitution generally
-effected by the adepts at night, while the doors were closed, not having
-been made, on account of these inquisitive men, the perpetual candle
-came to an end and went out, like any other candle. Then Nicholas and
-his friends calling in 'the poor idolaters,' showed them that there was
-nothing left of their heaven-descended relic but the end of a burnt-out
-wick. 'As the reward of their discovery these three Christians received
-the crown of martyrdom together.'[279]
-
-The persecution spared no one. It was often sufficient for an enemy to
-accuse a person of having a liking for the Gospel, when immediately the
-police laid their hands on him. This was not the king's intention: he
-had ordered that the judges should inquire whether 'enmity, pique, or
-revenge gave rise to false accusations;' but the magistrates were not so
-scrupulous. The terror was universal. 'One sees nothing in Paris,' said
-a catholic eye-witness, 'but gibbets set up in various places, which
-surely terrify the people of the said Paris, and those of other places
-who also see gallowses and executions.'[280] Mezeray, while describing
-these events, says: 'But for ten that were put to death, a hundred
-others sprang up from their ashes.'[281]
-
-The enemies of the Reformation, feeling that the moment was decisive,
-redoubled their efforts to destroy it. The French, save a certain
-numerous class submissive to the clergy, were disposed to receive it.
-They went to church, indeed, but the majority of the population would
-willingly have embraced a religion in which the priest did not interpose
-between man and God. 'Alas!' said the more fervent, 'if the king does
-not interfere to save the Church, all the warmth of the French for the
-catholic religion will soon be turned into ice.'[282]
-
-[Sidenote: THE KING'S MOTIVES.]
-
-The king had a special motive in supporting popery. A striking
-transformation was going on in France as well as in other parts of
-Europe; limited monarchy was changing into absolute monarchy. Francis I.
-thought that men who set God above the king, and died rather than invert
-the order of these two powers, were very dangerous to despotism, and he
-swore that, though he courted this religion without his kingdom, he
-would crush it within. Alas! the task was but too easy. Many were only
-superficially gained. Nobles without high-mindedness or independence;
-men of letters who jeered at obscurantism, but who had not tasted the
-Gospel; ignorant and timid crowds turned their backs upon the Word of
-God when the flames of the burning piles rose into the air.
-
-[Sidenote: STURM'S LETTER TO MELANCHTHON.]
-
-Terror spread through the ranks of the friends of the Reformation.
-Sturm, who was deeply engaged with literature and philosophy,
-broken-hearted at the sight of all these woes, abandoned his labours.
-Many of the martyrs were his friends, and had eaten at his table.
-Dejected, disturbed in the midst of the lessons he gave at the Royal
-College (which the celebrated Ramus attended), having constantly before
-his eyes the murderous flames which had reduced to ashes those whom he
-loved, it seemed to him that barbarism was about to extinguish the torch
-of learning, and once more overrun society, hardly awakened from its
-long sleep. He condemned the placards; in his opinion, the Reformation
-should make its way by a learned exposition of its doctrines, and not by
-attacking popular superstitions; but at the sight of the punishments, he
-thought only of the victims. He turned towards Germany where he had so
-many friends, where there was possibly less decision than in France, but
-a deeper and more inward faith; he thought of Melanchthon, sat down at
-his desk, and as if he were in the presence of that tender-hearted man,
-poured all his sorrows into his bosom. 'If the letters which I have
-sometimes written you on the affairs of this country have been agreeable
-to you,' he said, 'if you then desired that all should go well for good
-men,—oh! what uneasiness, what anxiety, must not your heart feel in this
-hour of furious tempests and extreme danger![283] We were in the best,
-the finest position, thanks to wise men; and now behold us, through the
-advice of unskilful men, fallen into the greatest calamity and supreme
-misery. I wrote you last year that everything was going on well, and
-what hopes we entertained from the king's equity. We congratulated one
-another; but alas! extravagant men have deprived us of those propitious
-times. One night in the month of October, in a few moments, all over
-France, and in every corner, they posted with their own hands a placard
-concerning the ecclesiastical orders, the mass, and the eucharist—one
-would think they were rehearsing a tragedy[284]—they carried their
-audacity so far as to fasten one even on the door of the king's
-apartments, wishing by this means, as it would seem, to cause certain
-and atrocious dangers. Since that rash act, everything has been changed;
-the people are troubled, the thoughts of many are filled with alarm, the
-magistrates are irritated, the king is excited, and frightful trials are
-going on. It must be acknowledged that these imprudent men, if they were
-not the cause, were at least the occasion of this. Only, if it were
-possible for the judges to preserve a just mean! Some, having been
-seized, have already undergone their punishment; others, promptly
-providing for their safety, have fled; innocent people have suffered the
-chastisement of the guilty. Informers show themselves publicly; any one
-may be both accuser and witness.[285] These are not idle rumours that I
-write to you, Melanchthon; be assured that I do not tell you all, and
-that in what I write I do not employ the strong terms that the terrible
-state of our affairs would require. Already eighteen disciples of the
-Gospel have been burnt, and the same danger threatens a still greater
-number. Every day the danger spreads wider and wider.[286] There is not
-a good man who does not fear the calumnies of informers, and is not
-consumed with grief at the sight of these horrible doings. Our
-adversaries reign, and with all the more authority, that they appear to
-be fighting in a just cause, and to quell sedition. In the midst of
-these great and numerous evils there is only one hope left—that the
-people are beginning to be disgusted with such cruel persecutions, and
-that the king blushes at last at having thirsted for the blood of these
-unfortunate men. The persecutors are instigated by violent hatred and
-not by justice. If the king could but know what kind of spirit animates
-these bloodthirsty men, he would no doubt take better advice. And yet we
-do not despair. God reigns, he will scatter all these tempests, he will
-show us the port where we can take refuge, he will give good men an
-asylum _where they will dare speak their thoughts freely_.'[287]
-
-[Sidenote: LUTHER'S LETTER.]
-
-This letter to Melanchthon is important in the history of the
-Reformation. Liberty of speech and of religious action is what
-protestantism claimed in France; and in claiming these liberties for
-itself, it secured them for all. We may imagine what an impression this
-letter produced at Wittemberg. Melanchthon, who received it, and even
-Luther himself, blamed a certain excess of vivacity in the French
-reformers; but, like Sturm, they recognised in them disciples of the
-Divine Word. A few days after, Luther writing to his friend Link,
-complained of the evil times in which they lived, and especially of the
-kings. 'With the exception of our prince (the Elector of Saxony),' he
-said, 'there is not one whom I do not suspect. You may understand by
-this language how little love and zeal for the Word of God there is in
-this world. For the present, sing, I pray you, this psalm: _Expectans
-expectavi Dominum_, I waited patiently for the Lord. It is through glory
-and disgrace, through stumblings and strayings, through the righteous
-and the wicked, through devils and angels, that we come to Him who alone
-is good, alone is without evil.[288] Therefore, dear brother, I conjure
-you lend no ear to any discourse, and have no other conversation than
-what you have with _Him_. There are many excellent people among men, but
-alas! they have less patience than stern justice. God help us!... He
-permits the devil to be strong, and how weak he makes us! God puts us to
-the proof. To trust in a man, were he even a prince, is not conformable
-with piety; but to fear a man is shameful and even impious in a
-Christian. May Christ, our life, our salvation, and our glory, be with
-you and all yours!' Luther did not name Francis I. in this letter, but
-it is well known that of all princes the king of France was the one in
-whom he had the least hope. He was not mistaken.
-
-From this time Francis I. no longer showed the same favour to learning,
-and especially to evangelical learning. The excommunication launched
-against Henry VIII., the schism which followed, the hope of seeing
-Paul III. embroiled with Charles V., and other motives besides, made him
-incline once more towards Rome. But the placards were the principal
-cause of this change. His wrath was unappeasable; he was determined to
-abolish these new doctrines which were paraded even on the gate of his
-palace. His indignation broke out in the midst of his courtiers and
-cardinals, bishops and councillors of parliament. Nay more, he laid it
-even before the protestant princes of Germany. Writing to them on the
-15th February, he said: 'The enemy of truth has stirred up certain
-people who are not fools but madmen, and who have incurred the guilt of
-sedition and other antichristian actions. I am determined to crush these
-new doctrines; and to check this disease, which leads to frightful
-revolts, from spreading further. No one has been spared whatever his
-country or his rank.'[289]
-
-Such were the king's intentions. Protestantism, and with it liberty,
-perished in France, but God was mighty to raise them up again.
-
-[260] The _Chronique de François I._ p. 121, mentions among the
-ambassadors those of the emperor, of the King of England, of Venice, and
-of other princes, lordships, cities, marquises, counts, and barons of
-Germany, Italy, and elsewhere.
-
-[261] This speech of which Theodore Beza and Mezeray speak in their
-histories is found in the _Chronique de François I._, published by
-Guiffrey in 1860, and the Registers of the Hôtel de Ville quite bear out
-the _Chronique_.
-
-[262] _Chronique du Roi François I._ p. 125.
-
-[263] Ibid. p. 126.
-
-[264] Garnier, _Hist. de France_, xxiv. p. 540.
-
-[265] 'They shall perish, but thou shalt endure.'—'His enemies will I
-clothe with shame.'—'They shall look on him whom they pierced.'
-
-[266] 'France flourishes above all nations.'
-
-[267] _Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris_, p. 447.
-
-[268] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 113 verso.
-
-[269] 'Ad machinam alligati et in altum sublati, deinde in ignem e
-sublimi dimissi, et rursum adducti.'—Sleidanus, fol. 136.
-
-[270] 'Carnifice demum abscindente funem, in subjectam flammam
-corruebant.—Sleidanus, fol. 136.
-
-[271] L. P. Daniel, _Hist. de France_, v. p. 654.
-
-[272] 'The Emperor issues edicts, the King punishes.'—Ribier, _Lettres
-d'Etat_, i. p. 358.
-
-[273] Clement Marot, _Epître au Roi_.
-
-[274] Isambert, _Anciennes Lois_, xii. p. 402.
-
-[275] This circular will be found in the _Bulletin de la Société de
-l'Histoire du Protestantisme français_, i. p. 328.
-
-[276] Sismondi, _Hist. des Français_, xvi. p. 455. See also
-Garnier, Rœderer, &c.
-
-[277] _Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris_, p. 451.
-
-[278] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 114.
-
-[279] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 113 verso et fol. 114.
-
-[280] _Chronique du Roi François I._ p. 129.
-
-[281] Mezeray, _Hist. de France_, ad ann. 1535.
-
-[282] 'Gallorum ardorem erga catholicam religionem in glaciem abiturum
-fuisse.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 230.
-
-[283] 'In turbulentissimis maximeque periculosis tempestatibus.'—_Corp.
-Ref._ ii. p. 855.
-
-[284] The meaning of the Latin is not very clear: 'Et tragicis
-exclamationibus.'
-
-[285] 'Cuilibet simul et testi et accusatori in hac causa esse
-licet.'—_Corp. Ref._ ii. p. 856.
-
-[286] 'Serpunt quotidie latius pericula.'—Ibid.
-
-[287] 'Qui aliquando libere quod cogitant audebunt dicere.'—_Corp.
-Ref._ ii. p. 857.
-
-[288] 'Per gloriam et ignominiam ... per diabolos et angelos.'—Lutheri
-_Epp._ iv. p. 603.
-
-[289] Rex Galliæ ad principes protestantium. We have only the German
-translation of this letter. _Corp. Ref._ ii. p. 834.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
- CALVIN AT STRASBURG, WITH ERASMUS, AND AT BASLE.
- (SUMMER AND AUTUMN, 1534.)
-
-
-While evangelical light seemed on the point of extinction in France, one
-of her sons was going to kindle a torch on the banks of the Rhine, and
-afterwards on those of the Rhone, which would spread its bright rays far
-and wide. Calvin had arrived at Strasburg.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN'S MISSION.]
-
-He who was to be the true doctor of the Reformation, its great captain,
-was then in search of knowledge and of arms in order to teach and to
-fight: this, as we have said, was the principal motive that induced him
-to leave France. Like all noble characters who have played an important
-part in history, Calvin felt his vocation. He wished to labour at the
-renewal of the Church; and in order to do this, he must interpret Holy
-Scripture, and explain the body of Christian doctrine. Hitherto he had
-preached the Gospel like an ordinary believer; he had sown the Word in a
-few insulated fields—at Orleans, Bourges, Angoulême, Noyon, and Paris;
-now (without his being conscious of it) a wider sphere was opening
-before him; and he was going to learn the truth of Christ's declaration:
-_the field is the world_. There was a void space in Christendom, and God
-called him to fill it. He was to create the new, the living theology of
-modern times. France, where scholasticism was the only theological
-science, did not suffice him; he was going towards Germany and
-Switzerland, where the love and study of holy learning had arisen with
-power. He saw from afar the lights that sparkled on the banks of the
-Rhine, and on the plains of Saxony; and, like a traveller who catches
-sight of a beacon in the midst of the darkness, he hurried towards the
-places whence those distant rays reached his eye. A child of light, he
-was seeking the light.
-
-[Sidenote: THE COLLEGE AND MATTHEW ZELL.]
-
-The free city of Strasburg possessed an intelligent middle-class and
-wise magistrates. The revival of learning had begun there in the
-fifteenth century; shortly after Luther had published his theses at
-Wittemberg, the echo of the great reformer's voice was heard in that
-city of the Rhine. Elementary schools were immediately established;
-monks who had left their convents, and priests who were disenchanted
-from their ancient superstitions, aided by pious and devout artizans,
-undertook the education of the children. A Latin college was founded in
-1524, where the canons of St. Thomas and other learned Christians had
-begun a superior kind of instruction. The new life then spreading
-through the Church, circulated vigorously in Strasburg; it fermented in
-a more especial manner in Capito, Bucer, and Hedio. They conversed
-together, communicating to each other the faith by which they were
-animated: it was the spring sap pushing forth blossoms and giving
-promise of fruit. Capito eloquently expounded the books of the Old
-Testament; Bucer explained those of the New with much wisdom; Hedio
-taught history and theology; Caselius, Hebrew; and Herlin, the art of
-speaking. Professor John Sturm, then at Paris, and the friend of
-Melanchthon, was about to be put at the head of the educational work in
-his native city.[290]
-
-There was a pious man at Strasburg, whose house was known to all
-Christian travellers, and especially to the exiles. He was Matthew Zell,
-pastor of the church of St. Lawrence. When Calvin and Du Tillet arrived
-in the capital of Alsace, they were in great distress, having been
-robbed of their money as we have seen. In this imperial city with all
-its beautiful buildings, over which soars the magnificent cathedral,
-they knew not where to go. The name of Zell was familiar to Calvin, as
-well as his generous hospitality; he knocked at his door, we are told,
-and was cordially received. Calvin and Zell were very different
-characters; but they appreciated each other, and when the reformer was
-settled at Geneva, he did not neglect to salute Zell in his letters to
-Bucer.[291] Zell was a man of practical and conciliatory spirit, and did
-not trouble himself much with theological discussions; he cared only for
-his dear parishioners, and was very popular. Bucer thought even too much
-so. 'Matthew alone has the people with him,' he said.[292] To this day
-his name is mentioned with affection in Alsace.
-
-As early as 1521 he preached the Gospel at Strasburg, and with such
-unction and zeal, that an immense crowd surrounded his pulpit. Being a
-man of generous disposition, he boldly defended those who were called
-heretics: 'Do you know why they are attacked?' he said, 'because their
-enemies are afraid that the indulgences and purgatory which they condemn
-will bring them in no more money.'[293] Prosecuted by his bishop in
-1523, he defended himself with spirit,[294] and escaped with losing his
-post of confessor to the prelate.
-
-[Sidenote: THE PASTOR'S WIFE.]
-
-Calvin and Du Tillet soon noticed his partner, Catherine Schulz,
-daughter of a carpenter in the city, a clever, intelligent, active, firm
-woman, who had managed to obtain the ascendant over everyone, and a
-little too much so over her husband. The young reformer saw in her one
-of the types of the Christian woman, who cumbereth herself, who
-receiveth the prophets honourably, but who, while doing good, sometimes
-values herself more highly than she does others.[295] Catherine's soul
-was troubled for a long time; she doubted of her salvation. At last the
-voice of Luther reached her, and brought her peace. 'He persuades me so
-thoroughly of the ineffable goodness of Jesus Christ,' she exclaimed,
-'that I feel as if I were dragged from the depths of hell, and
-transported into the kingdom of heaven. Day and night I will now tread
-the path of truth.'[296]
-
-From that hour Catherine resolutely dedicated herself to the practice of
-good works. The pastor of St. Lawrence often had a large number of
-persecuted christians seated round his table, and kept them in his house
-for many weeks. One night he received 150 pious men from a little town
-of Brisgau, who, having left their homes in the middle of the night, had
-arrived in great distress at Strasburg. Catherine found means to lodge
-fourscore of them in the parsonage, and for a month had fifty or sixty
-of them daily at her table. Even when her house was full, she displayed
-the most unceasing activity abroad. Caring neither for dress nor worldly
-recreations, the pastor's wife visited the houses of the poor, nursed
-the sick, wrapped the dead in their grave-clothes, comforted the
-prisoners, and organised collections in favour of the refugees. _She was
-never weary in well-doing._
-
-In the midst of her zeal, however, she took too much credit to herself.
-One day, recounting her merits, she said: 'I have conscientiously
-assisted my beloved Matthew in his ministry and in the management of his
-house. I have loved the company of the learned. I have embraced the
-interests of the Lord's Church. Hence all the pastors and a great number
-of distinguished men testify their affection and respect for me.'
-Catherine did not know all that these 'distinguished men' thought of
-her; the colour would have mounted to her cheeks could she have seen a
-certain letter from Bucer to Blaurer, of the 16th November 1533, in
-which that celebrated Strasburg doctor complains of Zell's wife, 'who is
-so over head and ears in love with herself;' or if that letter of the
-3rd of February 1534 had been brought to her, in which her husband's
-friend wrote of her: 'Catherine, like all of us, is too fond of
-herself.'[297]
-
-At the time of Calvin's arrival in Strasburg, Bucer was much tormented
-by Catherine's spirit of domination; perhaps he should have understood
-that her defects were but the exaggeration of her good qualities. He
-complained of her influence over her husband: 'Matthew Zell is certainly
-pious,' he said, 'but ... he is ruled by his wife.'[298] Another time he
-said: 'He ought to preach faith more fully, more earnestly, but ... his
-wife drives him to care for nothing but works.'[299] The zealous Bucer,
-who was so often journeying to reconcile Christians and Churches, could
-not endure that Zell should think only of his parish, should see nothing
-but his dear Strasburg, and ascribed even that to Catherine. 'Oh,' said
-he, 'if Matthew were but more zealous for the unity of the Church!' And
-yet Bucer esteemed him highly, and called him 'a God-seeking man, and of
-upright heart.' Zell and Catherine were in those Reformation times a
-Christian pair, worthy to figure in history, notwithstanding their
-failings. Perhaps, however, Calvin recollected Catherine's character
-when he reckoned patience and gentleness among the foremost qualities he
-should look for in a wife.[300]
-
-Calvin already knew by reputation the eminent men who were living in
-Strasburg. He was never tired of seeing and hearing them, both at their
-own houses and at Matthew Zell's. He admired in Bucer, with whom he had
-corresponded, and whom he afterwards called his father,[301] a noble
-heart, a peaceful spirit, a penetrating mind, and an untiring activity.
-Capito was not less attractive to him. Calvin knew that, disgusted with
-the intrigues of the court, he had left the elector of Mentz, and in
-1532 had gone to Strasburg in search of evangelical liberty, and from
-that hour had watched with interest the movements of the Gospel in
-France. He was, therefore, impatient to see a man who, by the extent of
-his learning and the nobility of his character, held the first rank in
-the learned city where he resided; and fortunately Capito, who went to
-Wisbaden towards the end of August 1534, was still at Strasburg when the
-reformer passed through it. All these doctors joyfully saw France
-bringing her tribute at last to the work of Christian instruction. They
-were struck with Calvin's seriousness, with the greatness of his
-character, the depth of his thoughts, and the liveliness of his faith;
-and the young doctor, for his part, drank in with delight that perfume
-of learning and piety, which exhaled from the conversation and life of
-these men of God.
-
-[Sidenote: DEFICIENCIES IN THE THEOLOGIANS.]
-
-One thing, however, checked him: in his opinion the Strasburg reformers
-observed too strict a middle path, and sometimes sacrificed truth to
-prudence. Calvin was troubled at this; by not breaking completely with
-Rome, were they not preparing the way to return to it? He was all the
-more alarmed, as the young canon of Angoulême had a great inclination
-for this middle way. Calvin, who would have desired to put Du Tillet in
-connection with decided reformers, saw the three doctors of Strasburg,
-and especially Bucer, holding out their hands to Melanchthon to reunite
-popery and the Reformation. Could he have led him into a snare?... 'I
-find learning and piety in Bucer and Capito,' he said one day, 'but they
-force me to desire in them firmness and constancy. We must be _liberal_,
-no doubt, but not so as to spend the wealth of another. And what
-precautions ought we not to take, when it is a question of spending
-God's truth?... He did not give it us that we should contract it in any
-way.'[302] True, these words are found in a document of later date; but
-already the wavering Du Tillet was approaching the gulf into which he
-was to fall.
-
-Calvin made up for his disappointments by devoting himself lovingly to
-the French refugees at Strasburg. He consoled them, succoured them, and
-gave them very trusty counsel.[303] To strengthen his exiled
-fellow-countrymen was the work of his whole life. 'We must be
-_strangers_ in this world,' he said, 'even if we do not quit the _nest_.
-But blessed are those who, rather than fall away from the faith, freely
-forsake their homes, and leave their earthly comforts to dwell with
-Christ.[304]
-
-Calvin did not remain long at Strasburg. Did he fear the influence of
-that city upon his friend? or did he find too many occupations and
-disturbances which prevented his giving all his time to the work to
-which he wished to dedicate himself? I think so, but there was something
-else. He understood that instead of receiving knowledge from the hand of
-others, he must personally work the mine of Scripture and dig up the
-precious gems that it contained. He wished, like the bee, to extract a
-store of the purest honey from the abundance of the flowers of the
-divine Word. He had had enough of travelling, of disagreements, of
-struggles, and of persecution ... his soul longed for solitude and quiet
-study. 'O God,' said he, 'hide me in some obscure corner, where I may at
-last enjoy the repose so long denied me.'[305] Calvin departed for
-Basle.
-
-[Sidenote: ERASMUS.]
-
-Erasmus, as we know, had long resided in that city. Calvin desired to
-see him. He was beyond all doubt much more a man of compromises than
-Bucer; and from timidity, rather than principle, he inclined to the side
-of the papacy. He was, however, a great scholar; had he not published
-the New Testament in Greek? Having left Basle, at the moment of the
-triumph of the Reformation there, he happened just at this time to be at
-Friburg in Brisgau, on the road from Strasburg to Switzerland. Could
-Calvin pass so near the town where he lived who had '_laid the egg_' of
-the Reformation, and not try to see him? A writer of the sixteenth
-century has given an account of the interview between these two men
-who—one in the department of letters, the other in that of faith—were
-the greatest personages of the day.
-
-Bucer desired to accompany Calvin and introduce him to Erasmus.[306] The
-precaution was almost necessary: the old doctor was _ratting_, wishing
-to die in peace with Rome. Paul III. had hardly been proclaimed pope,
-when he who had kindled the fire offered his good services to him, in
-order to maintain the faith and restore peace to the Church.[307] His
-letter quite charmed the crafty pontiff. 'I know,' Paul answered, 'how
-useful your excellent learning, combined with your admirable eloquence,
-may be to me in rescuing many minds from these new errors.'[308] The
-pope even had some idea of sending Erasmus a cardinal's hat.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN MEETS ERASMUS.]
-
-Calvin had not chosen his time well, yet Erasmus received him, though
-not without some little embarrassment. The young reformer, impatient to
-hear the oracle of the age, began to ask him numerous questions on
-difficult points.[309] Erasmus, fearing to commit himself, was reserved,
-and gave only vague answers. His interlocutor was not discouraged. Had
-not the scholar of Rotterdam said that the only remedy for the evils of
-the Church was the intervention of Christ himself?[310] That was
-precisely Calvin's idea, and therefore following it up, he explained his
-convictions with considerable energy. Erasmus listened with
-astonishment. He perceived at last that the young man would not only go
-farther than himself but even than Luther, and would wage a merciless
-war against all human traditions. The scholar to whom the pope had
-offered the Roman purple became alarmed; he looked at Calvin with
-astonishment, put an end to the conversation, and approaching Bucer,
-whispered in his ear: _Video magnam pestem oriri in Ecclesia contra
-Ecclesiam_.[311] Erasmus broke with the French reformer as he had broken
-with the German reformer. The two visitors withdrew. We believe the
-account of this interview to be authentic, in opposition to Bayle who
-carries his sceptical spirit everywhere. Calvin might have been proud of
-this opinion of Erasmus. His censure might appear to him praise, and his
-praise censure, as the poet says.[312] Luther had said: 'O pope, I will
-be thy pestilence and death!' Calvin and Du Tillet arrived at Basle.
-
-That city possessed a university with distinguished scholars, good
-theologians, and celebrated printers; but Calvin did not knock at any of
-their doors. In a bye-street there lived one Catherine Klein, a pious
-woman, who took delight in serving God, and loved to wash the feet of
-the saints, as the Gospel says. It was her house the young doctor
-sought. Coming to the banks of the Rhine, the two friends crossed the
-famous bridge which unites Little Basle to the old City, and knocked at
-this pious woman's door. Here Calvin found 'the obscure corner' he had
-so longed for.[313] Catherine received him with frankness and soon
-learnt the worth of the man she had in her house. She was not one of
-those women who from vanity 'toy and coquet,' to use Calvin's own
-words;[314] but of those who having the fear of God before their eyes,
-are honest and chaste in their appearance.[315] Distinguished by her
-virtues and piety, she loved to listen to Calvin, and never grew weary
-of admiring the beauty of his genius, the holiness of his life, the
-integrity of his doctrines, and the zeal with which he applied, day and
-night, to study.[316] Calvin seemed like a lighted candle in her house;
-and thirty years later, receiving as a lodger a man who was to be one of
-the victims of the St. Bartholomew—Peter Ramus—this estimable woman took
-pleasure in describing to him the reformer's mode of life.[317] The
-illustrious philosopher, uniting his voice with that of the aged
-Catherine, and standing in the very chamber that Calvin had occupied,
-apostrophized the reformer, as 'the light of France, the light of the
-Christian Church all over the world.'[318]
-
-In the early part of his stay at Basle, Calvin appears to have seen
-nobody but his hostess and his inseparable friend Louis du Tillet. He
-avoided all acquaintanceships that might have led to his being
-recognised, and he went out but seldom.[319] Sometimes, however, he and
-his friend would climb the hills which rise above the Rhine, and
-contemplate the magnificence of that calm and mighty river, whose waters
-are ever flowing onwards, with nothing to interrupt their majestic
-course.
-
- Labitur et labetur in omne volubilis œvum.[320]
-
-[Sidenote: INWARD WORK IN CALVIN.]
-
-It was not fear of persecution that led Calvin to hide himself; he was
-in a free city. But he had need to put himself out of the reach of the
-strange winds of doctrine that were then rushing over the world, and of
-all the sensations of one of the most troubled periods of history. He
-wished to withdraw himself from earthly noises, and hear only the voice
-of God and the music of heaven. Rapid emotions, now sorrowful, now
-joyful, continually repeated, as he had so often felt in Paris,
-neutralised each other and left nothing in his heart. He wished to fix
-his looks on high, and give the thoughts which descended to him from
-heaven the time to lay firm hold upon his mind, and become transformed
-into a strong and unchangeable affection, which would become the soul of
-his whole life. He had already learnt much; but it was not sufficient
-for him to learn, he must create: that was the vocation he had received
-from his Master, and to that end he must concentrate all the strength of
-his intelligence and of his heart. When God desires to form the ripe ear
-of corn, he proceeds slowly and silently, but powerfully. The little
-seed is hardly thrown into the ground when the manifold forces of
-different agents combine to fecundate the germ. During the coolness of
-the night or the heat of the day, the earth imparts her juices, the rain
-enriches it, and the sun-warms it.... Such was the inner process then
-going on in the reformer. Divine and human forces were combining to
-bring to maturity all the germs of beauty and strength that God had
-deposited in his heart, will, and understanding, and to render his
-genius capable of undertaking and accomplishing a great work in the
-world. Calvin felt that he needed silence and concentration. Destined to
-become one of God's mightiest instruments for his age and all ages to
-come, it was necessary for him to live alone with God, that he should
-have God in him, and that the divine warmth should so melt and purify
-all his natural energies, as to fit him for the accomplishment of his
-immense task. 'Ah!' said he, without thinking of himself, 'God wishing
-to publish his law by Moses, led him to Sinai and took him into his
-heavenly closet.'[321] Many of God's ministers have, after Moses, been
-thus prepared for the work of their office. Luther had been carried away
-to the Wartburg: Basle was Calvin's Wartburg, still more than Angoulême.
-
-He had, however, one acquaintance, or rather an intimate friend in that
-city. This was Nicholas Cop, ex-rector of the university of Paris, and
-now a refugee at Basle. How could Calvin, who had been the innocent
-cause of his exile, remain long within the same walls without seeing
-him? While preserving his incognito with respect to the public, he
-called upon his dear fellow-soldier, and the latter saw that pale
-familiar face enter his room. The friends now visited each other and
-conversed together; but mystery for some time longer shrouded the person
-of the young reformer.
-
-[Sidenote: GRYNÆUS AND CALVIN.]
-
-One day, however, Calvin spoke to Cop of an eminent man then in Basle.
-This was Simon Grynæus, Melanchthon's schoolfellow, who in 1529 had
-escaped with difficulty from the violent attacks of the papists of
-Spire, and had been invited to Basle to take Erasmus's place. 'Well
-versed in Latin, Greek, philosophy, and mathematics,' said Melanchthon,
-'he possessed a mildness of temper that was never put out, and an almost
-excessive bashfulness.'[322] And yet he has been compared 'to the
-splendour of the sun that overpowers the light of the stars.'[323]
-
-Calvin knew Grynæus by repute; he met him, and was captivated by his
-amiable and gentle disposition. Grynæus, on his side, loved Calvin, and
-the two scholars often shut themselves up together in their room. 'I
-remember well,' wrote Calvin to Grynæus in after years, 'how we used to
-talk in private on the best mode of interpreting Scripture.'[324]—'The
-chief merit in an interpreter,' said the Basle professor, 'is an easy
-brevity without obscurity.' It is the rule Calvin followed. At this
-time, under the direction of Grynæus, he studied Hebrew literature more
-thoroughly.[325]
-
-Calvin's residence at Basle soon became known, even to strangers, and
-the unseasonable visits which interfered with his studies and which he
-so much dreaded, began again. One day a total stranger called upon
-him.[326] He came (he said) on the part of one Christopher Libertet,
-surnamed Fabri, a student of Montpelier, who had quitted medicine for
-the ministry, and whom we shall meet again in Switzerland as Farel's
-fellow-labourer. 'Fabri has desired me to inform you,' said the unknown,
-'that he does not entirely approve of certain passages in your book on
-the _Immortality of the Soul_.' This message from a student, delivered
-by a stranger, might have offended Calvin. His work was a great success.
-The power of conviction stamped on it, the weight of the proofs, the
-force of the arguments drawn from Scripture, its lucidity of style, its
-richness of thought, the glow of light that shone round every word of
-the author—all these things subjugated its readers. But the enthusiasm
-of some of his friends did not blind the author to the imperfections of
-his work. With touching humility he answered Fabri, who had not long
-left school: 'Far from being displeased at your opinion, your simplicity
-and candour have delighted me much.[327] My temper is not so crabbed as
-_to refuse to others the liberty I enjoy myself_.[328] You must know,
-then, that I have almost entirely re-written my book.' This letter is
-signed _Martinus Lucianus_, the name probably that Calvin went by at
-Basle. The date, _Basle, 11th September_ (the contents show that the
-year must be 1534), is an important mark in the reformer's life.
-
-Visits were not the only troubles that disturbed Calvin's solitude. His
-incognito had hardly ceased before he was attacked by anxieties from
-every quarter. The discords which broke out in France and Switzerland
-filled him with sorrow. 'I exhort you with all my soul, you and the
-brethren, to keep the peace,' he wrote to Fabri. 'In order to maintain
-it, let us make all the greater efforts, the more Satan endeavours to
-destroy it. I have been filled with indignation at hearing of the new
-troubles stirred up by a man from whom I should have suspected nothing
-of the sort. He has vomited the poison with which he was swollen during
-a long period of dissimulation; and after darting his sting, he has run
-away like a viper.' Was this man Caroli?—I cannot say.
-
-[Sidenote: TRANSLATIONS OF THE BIBLE.]
-
-In his retirement on the Wartburg, Luther had translated the New
-Testament. Calvin engaged in a similar task at Basle. On March 27, 1534,
-a translation was published by Pierre de Wingle at Neuchâtel: it was a
-small folio, printed in double columns, and was from the pen of Lefèvre
-of Etaples, but had undergone a revision with regard to certain
-expressions which still retained a Romish colouring. It would appear
-that this edition was suppressed, either because it had been made
-without resorting to the original texts, or because Wingle himself was
-dissatisfied with it.[329] He was soon to publish a more perfect
-version, in which Calvin assisted while at Basle. We shall have occasion
-to speak of this in connection with Calvin's cousin, Olivetan, the
-principal translator. Another work—which was to be the great work of his
-life—soon occupied the young reformer.
-
-[290] Schmidt, _Jean Sturm_, ch. iii.
-
-[291] Calvin to Bucer, 150 et. 1541.
-
-[292] 'Matthias qui solus adhuc populum habet.'—Bucerus Blauerero, 18th
-Jan. 1534.
-
-[293] Rœrich, _Reform in Elsass_, i. p. 133.
-
-[294] _Christliche Verantwortung._
-
-[295] Calvini _Opp._
-
-[296] Fueslin, Beyträge, p. 196. Lehr, _Matth. Zell._ p. 67.
-
-[297] 'Quæ furit sese amando,—Etsi amat (ut nos omnes) sua impensius.'
-See Rœhrich, _Mittheilungen_, iii. p. 132.
-
-[298] +Gunaikokratoumenos+.—Bucerus Blaurero, 16 Nov. 1533.
-
-[299] 'Ad opera uxor eum detrudit.'—Ibid. Jan. 1534.
-
-[300] Letter to Farel, dated Strasburg, May 19, 1539.
-
-[301] Letter to Bucer, October 15, 1541.
-
-[302] Calvin to Du Tillet, _Lettres Françaises_, i. pp. 4, 54. See also
-the _Correspondence_ published for the first time by M. Crottet, p. 25.
-
-[303] Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 272.
-
-[304] Calvin, _Lettres Françaises_, i. p. 272.
-
-[305] 'Quiete diu negata fruerer.'—Calvin, _Præf. in Psalm._
-
-[306] 'Cum Calvinus a Bucero ad Erasmum adductus esset.'—Flor. Rémond,
-_Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 251.
-
-[307] 'In causam ecclesiæ tranquillandæ.'—Paulus papa Erasmo; Erasmi
-_Ep._ p. 1539.
-
-[308] 'Ad novos errores ex multorum animis abscindendos.'—Ibid.
-
-[309] 'De intricatis aliquot religionis capitibus sermonem cum ipso
-contulit.'—Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 251.
-
-[310] 'Nec ulla superest medendi spes, nisi Christus ipse vertat
-aminos'.—Erasmi _Op._
-
-[311] I see a great pestilence rising in the Church against the
-Church.—Flor. Rémond, _Hist. Hérés._ ii. p. 251. 'Ad Bucerum
-Calvinum demonstrans dixisse fertur.'—Ibid.
-
-[312] Whose praise is censure and his censure praise.
-
-[313] 'Ut in obscuro aliquo angulo abditus.'—(Calv. _Præf. in
-Psalm._)
-
-[314] 'Mignardent et folâtrent.'
-
-[315] Calvinus, _in Timoth._ 1. ch. ii.
-
-[316] 'Catherina Petita lectissima matrona sanctitate singularis ingenii
-mirifice captus.'—_Ramus_, Basilea, 1571. See also the _Life of Peter
-Ramus_, by Mr. Ch. Waddington, who was the first to direct attention to
-this interesting passage, p. 194.
-
-[317] 'Tum Calvini hospita sæpe ac jucunde mihi narravit.'—_Ramus_,
-Basilea, 1571.
-
-[318] 'Lumen Galliæ, lumen christianæ per orbem terrarum ecclesiæ.—Ibid.
-
-[319] 'Cum incognitus Basileæ laterem.'—Calv. _Præf. in Psalm._
-
-[320] 'It flows and shall flow on for ever.'—Horace, _Ep._, bk. I.
-Ep. ii.
-
-[321] Calvin, in _Matth._ iv. 1.
-
-[322] 'Pudore pene immodico.'—Erasmi _Ep._ p. 1464.
-
-[323] 'Solis radiantis splendor cæterorum siderum lumen obscurat.'—Bezæ
-_Icones_.
-
-[324] Calvin, _Dédicace de l'Épître aux Romains_.
-
-[325] 'Sese hebraicis litteris dedit.'—Beza, _Vita Calvini_.
-
-[326] 'Jam mihi a nescio quo sermo injectus.'—Calvin to Libertet.
-
-[327] 'Tantum abest ut tuo judicio offensus fuerim.'—Ibid.
-
-[328] 'Neque enim ea est mea morositas.'—Ibid.
-
-[329] It would seem that the only copy extant is that in the library of
-Neuchâtel.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
- INSTITUTES OF THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION.
- (WINTER 1534.)
-
-
-Calvin had not been long in Basle when dreadful news arrived which
-deeply agitated the inhabitants of that reformed city, and especially
-Calvin himself. It was reported that in consequence of some
-controversial placards which had been posted up in Paris, and throughout
-France, the king's anger had broken all bounds, that the evangelicals
-were persecuted, that the Châtelet directed the inquisition ... and that
-the burning piles were preparing. Cop, Du Tillet, Calvin, and other
-refugees conversed about these mournful events. Du Tillet blamed the
-violent language of the placards; Calvin seems to have kept silence on
-this point—at least in his famous epistle to Francis I. he does not
-disavow the placards, which it would have been wise to do, if he had
-decidedly blamed them. Days and weeks went by in the midst of continual
-uneasiness; the air seemed big with storms, and terrible explosions from
-time to time startled every compassionate heart.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN'S PLEA FOR COMPASSION.]
-
-At the end of November, Calvin heard of the successive deaths of
-Berthelot, Du Bourg, Paille, and several others whom he had known. How
-often he had sat at Du Bourg's table, how often conversed with the poor
-cripple!... Calvin, in his emotion, was greatly surprised at those who
-could find no tears for such sorrows. 'Let us reject that mad
-philosophy,' he said in after years, 'which would make men entirely
-unfeeling that they may be wise. The stoics must have been void of
-common sense, when they trampled on the affections of man.... There are
-fanatics even now who would like to introduce these dreams into the
-Church, who ask for a heart of iron, who cannot support one little tear,
-and yet, if anything happens to them, against their will, they lament
-perpetually.... The affections which God has placed in human nature are
-not more vicious of themselves than He who gave them. Ought we not to
-rejoice in God's gifts? Why, then, should we not be permitted to feel
-sorrow when they are taken from us? Let believers lament, therefore,
-when one of their relations or friends is taken away by death, and let
-them be sad when the Church is deprived of good men. Only, as we know
-that life is given us in Christ Jesus, let our sorrow be moderated by
-hope.'[330]
-
-One day, probably in December or January, Calvin saw an old man arrive:
-he was half blind, and felt his way as he walked towards him. It was
-Courault, who, liberated from prison by Margaret's influence, had
-escaped from the convent where he had been shut up. It was a great joy
-to the young doctor to see this venerable Christian again, whose death
-three years later was to overwhelm him with such deep distress. The
-refugees surrounded Courault, and wanted to know the terrible news from
-Paris. He had not witnessed the punishments, but he could describe them,
-and cries of sorrow rose from every heart. Courault was soon followed by
-other fugitives. For some weeks there was a little repose; the sky was
-heavy and threatening, but silent.
-
-On a sudden the tempest burst out again, the bolts fell furiously and
-consumed many other victims. About the end of January 1535 the news of
-the martyrdoms of the 21st of that month reached Basle. Calvin's soul
-was perpetually agitated by these atrocious persecutions. 'Alas!' he
-exclaimed, 'in France they are burning many faithful and holy
-people!'[331] He saw them fastened to the _estrapade_, swinging in the
-air, plunged into the flames, and then drawn out to be plunged into them
-again.... 'With what furious rage the enemies of God are transported,'
-he said; 'but though horrible curses and execrable reproaches are hurled
-upon the Christians from every side, they continue to repose firmly on
-the grace of Jesus Christ, having confidence that they will be safe even
-in death.'[332]
-
-Calvin was not the only person to feel these keen emotions. 'As gibbets
-were set up in various parts of the kingdom,' says Mézeray, 'and
-_chambres ardentes_ were instituted, the Lutheran preachers and those
-who had listened to them took flight, and in a few months there were
-more than a hundred refugees who carried their sorrows and their
-complaints to the courts of the German princes.'[333] Their tales
-excited great indignation in Germany. True, the martyrs were often
-calumniated, but in many cities the refugees from beyond the Rhine were
-able to refute the falsehoods of their enemies. The true Christians were
-not deceived, and they recognised the victims as their brethren.[334]
-This was a consolation to the reformer. 'The news having spread to
-foreign nations,' he said, 'these burnings were counted very wicked by a
-large number of Germans, and they felt great bitterness against the
-authors of such tyranny.'[335]
-
-[Sidenote: OSWALD MYCONIUS.]
-
-The 'bitterness' was still greater at Basle. Among those who shared
-Calvin's sorrow was Oswald Myconius, the friend of Zwingle, antistes or
-president of the Church, for whom the reformer entertained an affection
-that lasted all his life. He called him 'his very excellent, most
-esteemed brother, and very respected friend.'[336] Myconius, as we have
-stated elsewhere,[337] was a distinguished philosopher and pupil of
-Erasmus and Glareanus: while residing at Zurich, he had taught the
-classics, and among his pupils was Thomas Plater; but the disastrous
-battle of Cappel had made him renounce this duty. At the moment when
-Plater, outstripping the fugitives, who were hurrying from the fight,
-was about to enter the city, he encountered Myconius, who was pacing
-backwards and forwards before the gates, full of anguish at the thought
-of the dangers incurred by Zwingle, Zurich, and the Reformation.... The
-professor had hardly caught sight of his pupil, when, running up to him,
-he asked: 'Is Master Ulrich dead?' 'Alas! yes,' answered Plater.
-Myconius, struck to the heart, stood motionless, and then, with profound
-sorrow, exclaimed: 'I can live at Zurich no longer.' Plater, who had had
-nothing to eat for twenty-four hours, went home with Myconius, who gave
-him food, and then sat down by him, silent and oppressed by the weight
-of his thoughts. At last Myconius took him into his room, and said to
-him, with consternation: 'Where must I go?'... The pastor of St. Alban's
-church at Basle had also fallen on the mountain of Zug. 'Go to Basle,
-and become minister there,' said Plater.[338] Shortly after this the
-professor and his pupil set out on foot for Basle, where they arrived
-after many adventures and alarms.
-
-A few days later Myconius was called upon to preach the _Council
-Sermon_, which was delivered at six in the morning. 'When I entered his
-room on the morning of the appointed day,' says Plater, 'I found him
-still in bed. "Father," said I, "get up; you have your sermon to
-preach." "What! is it to-day?" said Myconius, and jumped out of bed.
-"What shall be the subject of my sermon? Tell me." "I cannot." "I insist
-upon your giving me a subject." "Very well; show whence our disaster
-proceeded, and why it was inflicted on us." "Jot that down upon a piece
-of paper." I obeyed, and then lent him my Testament, in which he placed
-the memorandum I had just written. He went into the pulpit, and spoke
-eloquently before an audience of learned men, attracted there by the
-desire to hear a man who had never preached before. All were filled with
-wonder, and after the sermon I heard Doctor Simon Grynæus say to Doctor
-Sulterus (who at that time belonged to us): "O Sulterus, let us pray God
-for this man to stay among us, for he may do much good." '[339]
-
-[Sidenote: SYMPATHY WITH CALVIN.]
-
-Myconius was nominated pastor of St. Alban's, and was soon after called
-to replace Œcolampadius as president of the Church at Basle. He had
-entertained some illusions with regard to Francis I. A Frenchman, a
-strong partisan of that king, had persuaded him that Francis was not
-ill-disposed towards the Gospel; that if he dissembled his sentiments,
-it was only because of the prelates of his kingdom; and that if he once
-obtained the possessions in Italy which he coveted, it would be seen
-that he had not much liking either for the pope or the papists.[340]
-Myconius was struck with indignation and grief, when he heard of the
-barbarous executions with which that prince had feasted the eyes of the
-citizens of Paris. He could sympathise all the more with Calvin, as,
-although a man of mild and temperate disposition, he shared in the
-decided and energetic opinions of the author of the placards. 'Why sew
-new patches on so torn a garment?' he said, speaking of popery. 'We
-should never meet the dragon but to kill him.'[341] A great unity of
-sentiment drew Calvin and Myconius together in the disastrous times of
-which we are speaking. The burning stakes of Paris drove them farther
-from Rome, and bound them closer to the Gospel.
-
-There were minds, however, upon which persecution produced a very
-different effect. Amid all this indignation and sorrow, Du Tillet
-remained shut up in himself and silent. The gentleness of the Word of
-God attracted him, but the bitterness of the cross terrified him. He had
-quitted everything with joy, believing that a general reform of the
-Church would be carried out promptly; but when he saw a mortal combat
-beginning between the Gospel and popery, 'he felt a deep emotion, he
-lost his rest,' as he tells us himself, 'and suffered inexpressible
-trouble and anguish of mind.' Each of the punishments at Paris added to
-the doubts and agitation of that candid but weak nature. He seemed to
-fear schism only, but the prospect of persecution and reproach had some
-share in his alarm. 'He did not understand,' as Calvin says, 'that while
-bearing the cross we keep Christ company, so that all bitterness is
-sweetened.' He kept himself apart, he passed days and nights filled with
-torture. 'I have been lonely, and without rest for the space of three
-years and a half,' he wrote to his old friend in 1538.[342] His intimacy
-with the reformer was changed, and three years later he was to cause him
-a sorrow as great, nay greater, no doubt, than that which Calvin had
-felt when he heard of the deaths of the martyrs.
-
-The intrigues of the agents of Francis I. began to be attended with
-success. They displayed inconceivable activity to mislead public
-opinion. They spoke, wrote, and distributed everywhere 'certain little
-books full of lies, in which it was said that the king had behaved
-harshly to none but rebels, who desired to disturb the State under the
-cloak of religion.' Men, and often the best of men, are unhappily prone
-to believe evil. Germany began to cool down; even at Basle many people
-were deceived; and although they did not believe all the calumnies
-circulated against the martyrs, the impression still remained. 'If a few
-sectarians have been punished,' said many good men, 'they are
-anabaptists, who, far from taking the Word of God for the rule of their
-faith, follow only their own corrupt imaginations, and have at bottom no
-other doctrine but a contempt of the higher powers. We cannot defend the
-cause of a handful of seditious people who desire to overthrow
-everything, even political order.'[342a]
-
-[Sidenote: EFFECT OF THE MARTYRDOMS ON CALVIN.]
-
-Shut up with his books in the room he occupied at Catherine Klein's,
-Calvin thought day and night of these cruel accusations, and his noble
-soul felt indignant not only that the children of the heavenly Father
-should be forced to suffer atrocious punishments, but that it was
-attempted to defame their characters. 'These court practisers,' he said,
-'load the holy martyrs after their death with undeserved blame and vile
-calumnies, and endeavour to hide the disgrace of this shedding of
-innocent blood under cowardly disguises. They thus put poor believers to
-death, and no one is able to have compassion on them.'[343] The young
-doctor saw himself between two rivers of blood—that of his brethren
-already immolated, and that of other Christians who would certainly be
-immolated in their turn. He had not been able to prevent the death of a
-Milon and a La Forge; but he would at least try to turn away the sword
-that threatened other lives. 'If I do not oppose it righteously and to
-the best of my ability,' said Calvin, 'I shall fairly be called cowardly
-and disloyal on account of my silence.' He will speak, he will rush
-between the executioners and their victims. A heavenly word rang through
-his soul: _Open thy mouth for the dumb in the cause of all such as are
-appointed to destruction_.[344] He therefore formed one of those
-resolutions which, in a character such as his, are unalterable. 'I will
-obey Him who speaks to me from on high,' he said. 'I will reply to the
-wicked tales that are circulated against my brethren; and as similar
-cruelties may be practised against many other believers, I will
-endeavour to touch foreign nations with some compassion in their favour.
-Such was the reason,' he adds, 'which moved me to publish the
-_Institutes of the Christian Religion_.'[345] Never had noble book so
-noble an origin. Justin Martyr, Athenagoras, and Tertullian had written
-their _Apologies_ by the light of the stakes of the second century;
-Calvin wrote his by the light of those of the sixteenth. The publication
-of the _Christian Institutes_ was the pitiful cry of a compassionate
-soul at the sight of those who were going to the stake.
-
-[Sidenote: THEOLOGY RESTORED.]
-
-Calvin had long meditated the great subject which then absorbed him—the
-system of Christian faith; and his book was to be the finest body of
-doctrine ever possessed by the Church of Christ. During four centuries,
-reckoning from the twelfth, minds of the highest order had formulated
-abstract systems, in which scholastic rationalism and ecclesiastical
-authority were habitually combined; they had wasted their strength in
-running after expositions, contradictions, resolutions, conclusions, and
-interminable _pros_ and _cons_; theology was lost in an arid wilderness.
-It was about to come out of it in order to enter into new lands. But it
-was not a trifling matter to make Christian science pass from death to
-life, from darkness to light. It required an awakened conscience, a
-heart thirsting for righteousness, a high intelligence, and a powerful
-will boldly to break through all the _chains_,[346] to scatter to the
-winds the _sentences_ and the _sums_ which the schoolmen had painfully
-woven out of their brains or out of traditions that were often impure,
-and to set up in their place the living rock of the heavenly Word on
-which the temple of God is to be built.
-
-Calvin was the man called to this work. Until his time, dogmatics, when
-passing from one period to another, had always advanced in the same
-direction, from abstraction to abstraction. But suddenly the course was
-changed; Calvin refused to tread the accustomed road. Instead of
-advancing in the way of the schoolmen towards new developements of a
-more refined intellectualism, he turned eagerly backwards, he heard the
-voice of conscience, he felt the wants of the heart, he ran whither
-alone they can be satisfied, he traversed fifteen centuries. He went to
-the gospel springs, and there collecting in a golden cap the pure and
-living waters of divine revelation, presented them to the nations to
-quench their thirst.
-
-The Reformation was not simply a change in the doctrine or in the
-manners or in the government of the Church: it was a creation. The first
-century had witnessed the first Christian creation, the fifteenth
-century witnessed the second.
-
-Luther, by the power of his faith, was the principal organ of this new
-creation. Freeing himself from the thick darkness that had hung over
-mankind for so many centuries, he had with holy energy hurled his
-lightnings and thunderbolts in every direction around him, so that all
-the horizon was lighted up. Calvin appeared; he gathered up these
-scattered flames, and made them into an immense fire; and while the
-gleams of the primitive creation of the Church had been confined almost
-entirely within the limits of the Roman world, the fires of the new
-creation are spreading to the ends of the earth.
-
-Calvin retired within himself to meditate on the work to which God
-called him; he turned a deep glance into those depths of Scripture which
-he had so often sounded. Holding the torch of the Spirit, he summoned
-before him the great Persons of the Christian economy, not to make them
-figure, as the schoolmen had done, in a learned fencing-match, but to
-elicit from them the fundamental truths of faith, and plant the golden
-columns of the temple of light and life.
-
-[Sidenote: THE INSTITUTES.]
-
-The _Institutes of the Christian Religion_ is Calvin's great
-achievement; it is Calvin himself, and we must therefore describe it.
-History, indeed, generally narrates the actions performed by the arm of
-the soldier or the negociations of the diplomatist; but the work that
-Calvin then accomplished, by spiritual force, far exceeds in the
-importance of its consequences all that has ever been done by the pens
-of the ablest statesmen or the swords of the bravest warriors. Let us
-describe, therefore, this 'action' of a nature apart. 'Curious minds,'
-as Calvin calls them, will perhaps pass over these pages: we regret it,
-but we must write them all the same.
-
-'The whole sum of wisdom,' said the great doctor of modern times at the
-beginning of his work, 'is that by knowing _God_, each of us knows
-_himself_ also; and these two facts are bound to each other by so many
-ties, that it is not easy to discern which goes before and produces the
-other.'
-
-In fact, Calvin, when addressing man, shows him first of all _God
-himself_—wonder of wonders!—_in man_. 'God,' says he to man, 'has
-stamped in you a knowledge of himself, and he continually refreshes this
-memory in you, as if he poured it out drop by drop. We have _a
-consciousness of divinity graven so deeply on our minds_, that we cannot
-erase it. The rebellion even of the wicked bears testimony of this, for
-while combating madly to throw off the fear of God, that fear remains
-inevitably clinging to them, as if it were in the marrow of their
-bones.' But after ascribing to man the exquisite privilege of bearing
-the name of God within him, Calvin immediately brings a severe charge
-against the human race. 'Alas! we shall hardly find _one_ in a hundred
-that cherishes this divine seed in his heart. Some through curiosity fly
-away in vain speculations; others vanish in foolish superstitions;
-others, finally, deprive God of his office as judge and governor, shut
-him up idle in heaven, and thus remain without God in the world.... What
-is to be done? Shall we toss and tumble continually, carried hither and
-thither by many erroneous levities?'[347]
-
-Calvin then takes man by the hand, and wishing him to know the eternal
-mysteries, places him before a vast spiritual mirror, the Holy
-Scriptures, where all invisible things appear in their living reality.
-Thus distinguishing himself from all the doctors of catholicism who had
-spoken for ten centuries, he puts in the fore-front, in an absolute
-manner, the full sufficiency and sovereign authority of the Word of God.
-
-'God,' said he, 'has opened his sacred mouth, to make known that he is
-the God whom we should adore. When a handsome book in well-formed
-characters is set before those who have weak eyes, or before decrepit
-old men, they can hardly read two words consecutively; but if they take
-a magnifying glass, forthwith they read everything distinctly. If we
-wish to see clearly, let us take Holy Scripture: without it we have but
-a confused and partial knowledge of God in our minds; but that drives
-away all obscurity in us, and shows us clearly God's heart.'
-
-Already in the time of Calvin there were certain doctors who would strip
-the Bible of its inspiration and christianity of its supernaturalism.
-'There are, I know full well,' he said, 'despisers, and cavillers, and
-mockers, who attack the Word, and if I had to fight out this quarrel
-with them, it would not be difficult for me to silence their cackling.
-But in addition to all the proof that reason brings, there is one above
-all others. It is necessary that the same Spirit which has spoken by the
-mouth of the prophets should enter our hearts, that he should touch them
-to the quick, and convince them that the prophets have faithfully
-declared what had been enjoined them from on high.'[348] The testimony
-of the Holy Ghost—that is the proof of proofs.
-
-Calvin then turns to man, the self-worshipper, who puts himself in the
-place of God, and reveals to him the sin that is in him. 'Come down
-now,' he says, 'come down and consider thyself. Learn to know this sin,
-derived from Adam and dwelling in us, like a glowing furnace,
-perpetually throwing out flames and sparks, and the fire of which not
-only burns the senses, but pollutes all that is most noble in our
-souls.' There is no means by which man can escape of himself from this
-wretchedness of his nature. 'If thou pretendest to rise by thy own
-strength, thou standest on the end of a reed ... that snaps
-immediately.'[349]
-
-Then Calvin shows man where his salvation is to be found, and describes
-with grandeur the work of expiation. 'While our condemnation holds us
-surprised, trembling, and startled before the judgment seat of God, the
-penalty to which we were subject has been laid on the innocent. All that
-can be imputed to us in the sight of God is transferred upon Jesus
-Christ. The divine founder of the Kingdom has suffered in the place of
-the children of the Kingdom.... Our peace can be found only in the
-terrors and agony of Christ our Redeemer.'[350]
-
-But how does this work, accomplished _out_ of man, act _in_ man?... Such
-is the great question the Reformer sets himself. Divine faith which lays
-hold of the righteousness of Christ _upon the cross_ gives birth at the
-same moment to the holiness of Christ _in the heart_. 'Man has no sooner
-embraced the atonement with a faith full of confidence,' he says, 'than
-he experiences an unalterable peace in his conscience. He possesses a
-spirit of adoption, which makes him call God _my Father!_ and which
-procures him a sweet and joyful communion with the heavenly Father.
-Immediately the least drop of faith is put into our souls we begin to
-contemplate the face of God, kind and favourable to us. True, we see it
-from afar, but it is with an undoubting eye, and we know that there is
-no deception.'
-
-A new question is here started. The young doctor is asked: Is man saved
-by charity or without it? He makes answer: 'There is no other faith
-which justifies save that which is united with charity; but it is not
-from charity that it derives the power to justify. Faith justifies only
-because it puts us in communication with the righteousness of Christ.
-Whosoever confounds the two righteousnesses (that of man and that of
-God) hinders poor souls from reposing on the sole and pure mercy of God,
-plaits a crown of thorns for Jesus Christ, and turns his sacrifice to
-ridicule.'
-
-Here Calvin puts forward the grand idea which characterises the
-Reformation effected by his teaching; namely, _that it is only the new
-man which we should value_. After insisting as much as any doctor on the
-work that Christ does _without us_, he insists more than any on the work
-Christ must do _within us_. 'I exalt to the highest degree,' he says,
-'the conjunction that we have with our Chief,—the dwelling he makes in
-our hearts by faith,—the sacred union by which we enjoy him. It is
-necessary that we should perceive in our lives a melody and harmony
-between the righteousness of God and the obedience of our souls.'
-
-But Calvin observed that many humble, timid christians were distressed
-because they experienced only a weak faith. These he consoles, and the
-images he employs are picturesque: 'If any one, shut up in a deep
-dungeon,' he says, 'received the light of the sun obliquely and
-partially, through a high and narrow window, he would not certainly have
-a sight of the full sun, yet he would not fail to receive a certain
-quantity of light and to enjoy its use. In the same way, though we are
-shut up in the prison of this earthly body, where much obscurity
-surrounds us on every side, if we have _the least spark_ of God's light,
-we are sufficiently illuminated and may have a firm assurance.'
-
-May not that flame be extinguished, ask christians hesitatingly. 'No,'
-said Calvin, 'the light of faith is never so extinct that there does not
-remain some glimmer. The root of faith is never so torn from the heart,
-that it does not remain fastened there, although it seems to lean to
-this side or that.' 'Faith,' he exclaimed (and he had often felt it),
-'faith is an armed man within us to resist the attacks of the evil
-one.... If we put faith in the front, she receives the blows and wards
-them off. She may indeed be shaken, as a stalworth soldier may be
-compelled by a violent blow to step backwards. Her shield may receive
-damage so as to lose its shape, but not be penetrated; and even in this
-extremity the shield deadens the blow, and the weapon does not pierce to
-the heart.'
-
-After consoling the timid and uplifting the wounded, this extraordinary
-man, who speaks with the firmness of one of the captains of the army of
-God, exhorts the soldiers of Christ to be brave: 'When St. John promises
-the victory to our faith, he does not mean simply that it will be
-victorious in _one_ battle, or in _ten_, but in _all_. Be full of
-courage then. To fluctuate, to vary, to be tossed to and fro; to doubt,
-to vacillate, to be kept in suspense, and finally to despair ... that is
-not having confidence. We must have a solid support on which we can
-rest. _God has said it_, that is enough. Being under the safeguard of
-Christ, we are in no danger of perishing.'[351]
-
-Calvin turning to Rome seeks for the origin of its errors and
-superstitions, and finds it in the pelagianism with which it is tainted.
-Grace in all its fulness,—grace from the first movement of regeneration
-until the final accomplishment of salvation, was the keynote of all
-Calvin's theology; and it is also the powerful artillery with which he
-batters the Roman fortress. Like St. Paul in the first century, like St.
-Augustine in the fifth, Calvin is the _Doctor of grace_ in the
-sixteenth. This is one of his essential features. 'The will of man,' he
-said, 'cannot of itself incline to good. Such a movement, which is the
-beginning of our conversion to God, Scripture entirely attributes to the
-Holy Ghost. A doctrine not only useful, but sweet and savoury through
-the fruit it bears; for those who do not know themselves to be members
-of the peculiar people of God, are in a continual trembling.... No doubt
-the wicked find in it a matter to accuse and cavil at, to disparage and
-ridicule ... but if we fear their petulance, we must keep silence as to
-our faith, for there is not a single article which they do not
-contaminate with their blasphemies. Christ (he continues) wishing to
-deliver us from all fear in the midst of so many deadly assaults, has
-promised that those who have been given him by his Father to keep, shall
-not perish.'[352]
-
-At this period Calvin hears a clamour raised against him. He is accused
-of maintaining that God predestines the wicked to evil, and he replies
-at once by reprobating such an impious doctrine. 'These mockers jabber
-against God,' he says, 'alleging that the wicked are unjustly condemned,
-since they execute only what God has determined.... Not so,' he
-exclaims; 'far from having obeyed God's command, the wicked by their
-lusts rebel against it as far as in them lies. There must be no fencing
-with God; there must be no saying, with Agamemnon in Homer, speaking of
-evil: It is not _I who am the cause_, but Jupiter and Fate.'[353]
-
-Calvin next hastens to show the fruits of faith: 'We have given the
-first rank to doctrine,' he said, 'but to be useful to us, it must
-_penetrate into the soul, pass into the manners and regulate the actions
-of our life_.... Since the Holy Ghost consecrates us to be temples of
-God, we must take pains that the glory of God fills the temple.... We
-know those babblers who are content with having the gospel on their
-lips, whilst it ought to sink to the bottom of the soul, and we detest
-their babbling.'
-
-Calvin had carefully studied the condition of the Church during the
-Middle Ages: what had he found there?... The separation of religion and
-morality: a government, official doctrines, ceremonies, but all stripped
-of moral life. At that time religion was a tree stretching its branches
-wide into the air, but there was no sap flowing through them. To restore
-a lively faith in religion, and through faith a holy morality was the
-reformer's aim. He said: 'God _first impresses on our hearts the love of
-righteousness_, to which we are not inclined by nature; and then he
-gives us a certain rule, which does not permit us to go astray.'[354]
-Accordingly, a morality, unknown for ages, became not only in Geneva,
-but wherever Calvin's doctrine penetrated, the distinctive feature of
-the Reformation.
-
-An important thought, however, still absorbs him. He wishes not only to
-effect certain reforms in certain articles, but to constitute the
-Church. In Calvin's estimation the Church is in an especial manner the
-whole assembly of the children of God; but he acknowledges also, as
-having a right to this name, the visible assembly of those who, in
-different parts of the world, profess to worship the Lord: 'A great
-multitude, in which the children of God are, alas! but a handful of
-unknown people, _like a few grains on the threshing-floor under a great
-heap of straw_. Our rudeness, our idleness, and the vanity of our minds
-require external helps (he added), and for that reason God has
-instituted pastors and teachers.'[355]
-
-[Sidenote: APPRECIATION OF THE INSTITUTES.]
-
-That was a solemn time for Calvin, when in the room he occupied at
-Catherine Klein's, he finished his _Institutes_. In after years pious
-Christians entered her house with respect, and one of them, Peter Ramus,
-being there in 1568, five years after the reformer's death, exclaimed
-with emotion: 'Here were kindled the torches that shed so great a light!
-Here those illustrious _Christian Institutes_ were composed; and here
-Calvin gave himself up wholly to heavenly vigils!'[356]
-
-The _Christian Institutes_ in its earliest form was a simple defence,
-explaining briefly _law_, _faith_, _prayer_, _the sacraments_,
-_Christian liberty_, and the nature of the _Church and State_. But the
-French refugees at Geneva, and even distant protestants, continually
-solicited Calvin to set forth the whole Christian doctrine in his book;
-and accordingly it received numerous additions.[357]
-
-The _Christian Institutes_ are a proof that christian love prevailed in
-Calvin's mind: indeed, he wrote for the justification of _believers, his
-brethren_. However, by defending the reformed, he explained and
-justified the Reformation itself. What are its principles? The formative
-principle of faith and of the Church is, with him as with Luther, the
-sovereign Word of God; but he asserts it with more decision than his
-predecessor. Calvin is anti-traditional: he will have nothing to do with
-host, or font, or festivals and other ceremonies preserved by Luther. He
-did not _reform_ the Church, he _re-formed_ it; he created it anew.
-Zwingle also was scriptural, as opposed to tradition; yet Calvin's
-theology is different from his; that of the Zurich doctor was specially
-exegetic, while that of the Geneva doctor was specially dogmatic. If
-from the formative principle we pass to that which theologians call the
-material principle, namely, that which distinguishes the nature and very
-essence of its doctrine, we find that it is at heart the same in Luther
-and Calvin—gratuitous salvation; but the former, clinging to Christian
-_anthropology_, laid down as a fundamental article, the justification by
-faith of the regenerate man; whilst Calvin, clinging particularly to
-_theology_, to the doctrine of God, proclaimed first of all, salvation
-by the sovereignty of divine grace.
-
-Calvin's polemics, in his _Institutes_, are essentially positive. Like a
-master in the midst of artists, who are endeavouring to draw the same
-picture, Calvin traces his outline with a bold hand, distributes the
-light and shade, and succeeds in making an admirable work. And from that
-time his rivals have only to look at it, to acknowledge the
-imperfections of their own, with all their want of proportion and
-extravagance.... Calvin destroys what is ugly, but he first creates the
-beautiful.
-
-The _Institutes_ were admired by the finest spirits of the age. Montluc,
-bishop of Valence, called Calvin the greatest theologian in the world. A
-French writer of our day, who does not belong to the Reform, but is a
-correct and profound thinker,[358] has characterised the _Institutes_
-'as the first work of our times which presents an orderly arrangement of
-materials, with a composition thoroughly appropriate and exact;' and has
-distinguished Calvin himself, 'as treating in a masterly manner all the
-questions of Christian philosophy, and as rivalling the most sublime
-writers in his great thoughts on God, whose style (he adds) has been
-equalled, but not surpassed, by Bossuet.'
-
-[330] Calvin, _Actes_, viii. 2.
-
-[331] Calvin, _Préface des Psaumes_.
-
-[332] Calvin, _Actes_, vii. 59.
-
-[333] Mézeray, _Hist. de France_, ii. p. 981. The _chambres ardentes_
-were tribunals that pronounced the penalty of the stake against heresy.
-
-[334] 'Grave passim apud Germanos odium ignes illi excitaverunt.'—Calvin
-_in Psalm._
-
-[335] Calvin, _Préface aux Psaumes_.
-
-[336] Letters of Calvin to Myconius, March. 14, and April 17, 1542.
-
-[337] See my _History of the Reformation in the Sixteenth Century_,
-books viii. and xi.
-
-[338] _Vie de Thomas Plater_, published by M. E. Fick, Doctor of
-Laws.
-
-[339] _Vie de Thomas Plater_, published by E. Fick.
-
-[340] 'Videbis quid amicitiæ sit remansurum cum papa et
-papisticis.'—_Myconius ad Bullingerum_, March 1534.
-
-[341] 'Cum draconi non aliter est congrediendum, nisi ut penitus
-occidatur.'—Ibid. in post. epist.
-
-[342] Du Tillet to Calvin, September 7, 1538.
-
-[342a] 'Turbulentos homines qui totum ordinem politicum
-convellerent.'—Calvin _in Psalm._ See also Beza, _Hist. eccles._, p. 14,
-and _Vie de Calvin_, p. 19.
-
-[343] Calvin, _Préface des Psaumes_.
-
-[344] Proverbs xxxi. 8.
-
-[345] _Préface des Psaumes._
-
-[346] 'Catenæ Patrum.'
-
-[347] _Institution_, liv. i. ch. i, ii, iii, iv.
-
-[348] _Institution_, liv. i. ch. vi. and vii.
-
-[349] Ibid. liv. i. ch. i.; liv. ii. ch. ii. and iii.
-
-[350] Ibid. liv. ii. ch. xvi. and xvii.
-
-[351] _Institution_, liv. iii. ch. ii.; liv. ii. ch. xii, xix, xx;
-liv. xiii. ch. iii, iv, v.
-
-[352] _Institution_, liv. ii. ch. iii; liv. iii. ch. xxi, xxii,
-xxiii.
-
-[353] Ibid. liv. i. ch. xvii, xviii.
-
-[354] _Institution_, liv. iii. ch. vi.
-
-[355] Ibid. liv. iv. ch. i.
-
-[356] 'Hic tanti luminis faces primum incensæ, &c.'—_Ramus_,
-Basilea, 1571.
-
-[357] The successive additions are easily seen in the first volume of
-Calvin's Works just published in Brunswick by three Strasburg divines,
-MM. Baum, Cunitz, and Reuss. We there find the different editions of the
-_Institutes_, and the passages peculiar to each are printed in larger
-type. We refer to the _Synopsis_ in six columns of the editions of
-1536-1539-1543/5-1550/54-1559, &c. In its first form the _Institutes_
-consisted of six chapters only; in the last, of eighty, divided into
-four books. Our selections have been made from the complete edition.
-
-[358] M. Nisard.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
- CALVIN ADDRESSES THE KING AND DEPARTS FOR ITALY.
- (AUGUST 1535.)
-
-
-The object of the _Christian Institutes_ was to make known to
-Christendom, and particularly to the protestants of Germany, the
-doctrines professed in France by the men whom the king was putting to
-death. But was that all he had to do? Calvin thought he saw something
-more pressing still. His representations, instead of passing through
-Germany, might be addressed direct to the king. In his anguish and
-solitary meditations, he had often asked himself why he should not do it
-directly and publicly?... It was no doubt a great enterprise for a
-persecuted and almost unknown young man to address that powerful
-monarch, who was mercilessly throwing his best subjects into the flames.
-Calvin did not at first entertain so bold a project. Later, he said to
-the king: 'I thought of nothing less than writing things to be laid
-before your Majesty.'[359] But the lamentable spectacle presented by
-France was night and day before his eyes. And knowing that the same fate
-was hanging over the heads of all who desired no other mediator but
-Christ, was it right for him to be silent?
-
-In truth, the glare of the burning piles was reappearing in France. A
-pious husbandman of Bresse, 'much exercised in the word of God,' by name
-John Cornon, was arrested in his native village in the month of May and
-taken to Macon. When brought before his judges, he spoke with such faith
-and courage, that they were astonished and confounded. Accordingly at
-the end of June, he was bound to a hurdle, dragged to the place of
-execution, and there burnt alive.[360] Shortly after this, one Dennis
-Brion, a man zealous for the gospel, was put to death during 'the great
-days' of Angers, in order to terrify the crowds who flocked thither from
-all parts for these festivals.[361] The flames which burnt these pious
-confessors might perhaps shortly burn other men of God, whom Calvin
-desired to save at any cost. He therefore determined to write to the
-king, dedicating his book to him.... A bold step!
-
-[Sidenote: LETTER TO THE KING.]
-
-'Sire,' he said, 'you are yourself a witness by what false calumnies our
-doctrine is everywhere defamed. Have you not been told that it tends to
-nothing else but to ruin all kingdoms and governments, to disturb the
-peace, to abolish all law, to confiscate lordships and possessions, and,
-in a word, to throw everything into confusion? And nevertheless you hear
-only the least part of these outrages. Horrible stories are circulated
-against us, for which, if they were true, we should richly deserve to be
-hanged a thousand times over.'
-
-What Calvin undertook to do was not merely to show that the evangelical
-doctrine of the Reformation has the right to exist side by side with the
-Roman Catholic doctrine. This philosophical and Christian stand-point
-was not that of the sixteenth century. If the evangelical doctrine has a
-right to exist, it is (said Calvin, boldly) because it is the truth. He
-desired to gain over both king and people to those convictions, which in
-his opinion were alone capable of enlightening and of saving them.
-
-'Our defence,' he said, 'does not consist in disavowing our doctrine,
-but in maintaining it to be true. Truth deprives her adversaries of the
-right to open their mouths against her. And for this reason, Sire, I
-pray you to obtain full information of a cause which hitherto has been
-treated with impetuous fury rather than with judicial gravity.... Do not
-think that I am striving here in my own private defence, in order to
-return to my native country. Verily, I bear it such human affection as
-is right, but things are now so arranged, that I am not greatly
-distressed at being kept out of it.... No, Sire, I undertake the common
-cause of all believers, and even that of Christ himself, a cause now so
-rent and trodden down in your kingdom, that it seems desperate.... No
-doubt, Christ's truth is not lost and scattered; but it is hidden away
-and buried, as if deserving of all ignominy. The poor Church is driven
-out by banishment, consumed by cruel deaths, and so terrified by threats
-and terrors, that she dares not utter a word. And yet the enemies of
-truth are not satisfied. They insist with their accustomed fury on
-beating down the wall which they have already shaken, and in completing
-the ruin they have begun.'
-
-Here Calvin asks if no one is taking up the defence of these persecuted
-Christians.... He looks ... alas! the evangelicals are silent, the queen
-of Navarre scarcely raises her timid voice, and diplomatists are
-persuading the Germans that the evangelicals of France are fanatics and
-madmen ... every one trembles.... 'Nobody,' he exclaims, 'nobody comes
-forward to oppose this fury. If even any should wish to appear to favour
-the truth, they confine themselves to saying that we should in some way
-pardon the _ignorance_ ... the _impudence_ of these simple folks. Thus
-they treat God's most sure truth as _impudence_ and _ignorance_. Those
-whom our Lord has so esteemed as to impart to them the secrets of his
-heavenly wisdom, they call _simple folks_! who permit themselves to be
-easily deceived, so ashamed are they of the Gospel.'
-
-Who then shall take the cause of truth in hand?...
-
-'It is your business, Sire,' said Calvin to the king, 'not to avert
-either your ears or your heart from so just a defence. A great matter is
-at stake. We have to learn how God's glory shall be maintained on earth,
-how his truth shall retain its honour, and how Christ's kingdom shall
-remain in its integrity.... A matter truly worthy of your ears, worthy
-of your government and of your royal throne!... The idea which makes a
-true king, is that the king knows himself to be a true minister of God
-in the management of his kingdom. A reign which has not God's glory for
-its aim, is not a reign but a mere brigandage.'
-
-Calvin had hardly spoken thus when he seemed to see Francis refusing to
-turn aside from his brilliant fêtes to lend his ears to the meanest of
-his subjects. The king listens to Montmorency, to Tournon ... he hastens
-to meet the Duchess d'Etampes; he even welcomes artists and men of
-letters; but these miserable religionists ... never!
-
-'Sire,' said Calvin, 'do not turn away in disdain of our meanness.
-Verily, we confess that we are poor despicable folks,—miserable sinners
-before God, reviled and rejected before men.... Nay, if you like it, we
-are the scum of the earth or anything more worthless still, that can be
-named. Yes, we have nothing left in which we can glory before God,
-except his only mercy ... and nothing before men, except our weakness!'
-
-But the apologist immediately lifts up his head with holy pride:
-
-'Nevertheless,' he says, 'our doctrine must remain exalted, invincible,
-and far above all the power and glory of the world. For it is not ours,
-but that of the living God and his Christ, whom God has made King to rule
-from sea to sea, and from the rivers unto the ends of the earth, ... and
-whose magnificence the prophets have foretold, saying that he shall
-overthrow kingdoms strong as iron and brass, and shining like silver and
-gold.'
-
-Here the advocate of his brethren hears an objection from their enemies.
-He sees them clustering round Francis, and incessantly repeating to him
-that _these folks_, even while putting forward the Word of God, are only
-its _perverse corruptors_.... 'Sire,' he continues, 'you can judge for
-yourself, by reading our confession (the _Institutes_) to what an extent
-the reproach is nothing but wicked calumny and brazen impudence. What is
-more conformable with the christian faith, than to acknowledge ourselves
-stripped of all virtue to be clothed with God? empty of all good to be
-filled with Him? the slaves of sin to be freed by Him? blind, to have
-our sight restored by Him? lame, that He may make us walk? weak, to be
-supported by Him? in a word, to put off from us all manner of glory,
-that He alone may be glorified?... Ah! we do not read of men being
-blamed for drinking too deeply at the fountain of living waters; on the
-contrary, the prophet bitterly reproves those who have hewed out broken
-cisterns that can hold no water.'[362]
-
-Calvin even attempted—and a hopeless attempt it was—to touch the king's
-heart: 'Consider, Sire, all parts of our cause. We are persecuted, some
-of us are kept in prison, others are scourged, others forced to do
-penance, others banished, others escape by flight.... We are in
-tribulation, insulted, treated cruelly, looked upon as outlaws, and
-accursed.... And for what?... Because we place our hope in the living
-God, and believe that life everlasting is _to know the only true God and
-Jesus Christ whom he hath sent_.'
-
-Calvin knew very well, however, that the victory would not be easy. He
-had seen the priests closely, in the capital, in cities of second rank,
-and in the country. He fancied he could hear the cries raised by the
-curés in their parishes, and the monks in their convents. Wishing,
-therefore, to enlighten the king, he did so in a rather coarse manner,
-after the fashion of the times. 'Why,' he asked, 'do our enemies fight
-so stoutly and so sternly for the mass, purgatory, pilgrimages, and such
-rubbish?' ... Because the belly is their God, and the kitchen their
-religion. Because, although some treat themselves delicately and others
-starve upon crusts, they all eat out of the same pot which, without
-these branches to warm them (the mass, purgatory, &c.) would not only
-grow cold, but freeze entirely.'
-
-Calvin was not ignorant however that the really dangerous enemies of the
-Reformation were not those priests and friars whom Erasmus and so many
-others had often flagellated to the great delight of the king. He
-imagined he saw haughty nobles, fanatical priests and doctors entering
-the king's closet, and pouring their perfidious accusations into his
-ear. 'I hear them,' he says, 'they call our doctrine _new_.... Verily, I
-have no doubt it is _new_, so far as they are concerned, seeing that
-even Christ and his gospel are quite new to them. But he who knows that
-this preaching of St. Paul's is old, namely, that _Christ died for our
-sins and was raised again for our justification_, finds nothing new
-among us. True, it has long been hidden and unknown, but the crime must
-be laid to the wickedness of man; and now that by God's goodness it is
-restored to us, it ought at least to be received into its ancient
-authority.'
-
-Here the enemies persist: they claim the old doctors of the Church as
-being in their favour. This was the strongest argument in the eyes of
-Francis, who affected a certain respect for ancient christian
-literature. Calvin was familiar with the writings of the doctors: he had
-studied them night and day at Angoulême, Paris, and Basle. 'The Fathers
-have been mistaken, just like other men,' he said, 'but these good and
-obedient sons (the Romish friars) adore the errors of the Fathers, and
-put out of sight what they have said aright, as if they had no other
-care but to pick out the rubbish from among the gold.... And then they
-attack us with loud clamours as despisers of the Ancients. Far from
-despising them, we could prove from their testimony the greater part of
-what we are now saying. But those holy persons often differ from each
-other and sometimes contradict themselves. They ought not to tyrannise
-over us. It is Christ alone whom we must obey wholly and without
-exception. Why do not our adversaries take the Apostles for their
-Fathers, since it is their landmarks and theirs only that we are
-forbidden to remove? And if they desire the landmarks of the Fathers to
-be observed, why do they, whenever it suits their pleasure, overleap
-them so audaciously?'
-
-Further than this, Calvin makes use of these doctors; he does not fear
-them, on the contrary, he appeals to them. He calls them all up to make
-them defile before the king and bear testimony against the doctrines of
-Rome.
-
-'It was a Father, Epiphanius, who said that it was a horrible
-abomination to see an image of Christ or of any saint in a christian
-temple.
-
-'It was a Father, Pope Gelasius, who said that the substance of the
-bread and wine dwells in the sacrament of the Holy Supper, as the human
-nature dwells in our Lord Jesus Christ, united to his divine essence.
-
-'It was a Father, Augustine, who called it a rash theory to assert any
-doctrine without the clear testimony of Scripture.
-
-'It was a Father, Paphnutius, who maintained that the ministers of the
-Church ought not to be forbidden to marry, and that chastity consisted
-in having a lawful wife.
-
-'It was a Father, Augustine, who contended that the Church ought not to
-be preferred to Christ, because whilst ecclesiastical judges, being men,
-may be mistaken, Christ always judges righteously.... Ah! if I wished to
-reckon up all the points in which the Roman doctors reject the yoke of
-the Fathers, whose obedient children they call themselves, months and
-years would pass away in reading the long roll.... And then they reprove
-us for going beyond the ancient boundaries!'
-
-Calvin did not forget that he was speaking to a prince. Struck with the
-condition of the world at this important moment, when old superstition
-and new doubts, old disorders and new immoralities, ambitions, war, and
-desolations, were all conflicting together, he called loudly for a
-remedy; and being convinced that the Reformation alone could save
-society, he exclaimed: 'Oceans of evil are deluging the land. New
-plagues are ravaging the world. Everything is falling into ruins. We
-must despair of human affairs, or put them to rights, even if it be by
-violent remedies. And yet men reject the remedy.... Ah! God's
-everlasting truth alone ought to be listened to in God's kingdom.
-Against it neither proscription, nor lapse of years, nor ancient
-customs, nor any compact whatever, avails anything.'
-
-'But the Church,' say his adversaries. 'If we are not the Church, where
-was it before you?' 'Alas!' answered Calvin, 'how often has not the
-Church suffered eclipse, been deformed and oppressed by wars, seditions,
-and heresies.... Does not St. Hilary reprimand those who, blinded by an
-unreasoning respect, did not observe what sores were sometimes hidden
-under a fair outside. You seek the Church of God in the beauty of its
-buildings. But know you not that there it is that Antichrist will set up
-his throne? Mountains, woods, and lakes, prisons, wildernesses, and
-caves—these are to me safer and more trustworthy; for there prophesied
-the prophets, who had withdrawn to them. God, seeing that men were
-unwilling to obey the truth, permitted them to be buried in deep
-darkness, and the form of a true Church to be lost, while still
-preserving those who belonged to it, hidden and scattered here and
-there. If you are willing, Sire, to give up a part of your leisure, and
-to read my writings ... you will see clearly that what our adversaries
-call a Church is a cruel gehenna, a slaughter-house of souls, a torch, a
-ruin.'
-
-Finally, the young doctor, knowing that the cardinals were continually
-repeating to Francis I., 'See what contentions, troubles, and
-disturbances the preaching of this doctrine has brought with it,' gave
-an answer to that vulgar accusation which is rather striking and
-original: 'The Word of God,' he says, 'never comes forward without
-Satan's rousing himself and fighting. A few years ago, when everything
-was buried in darkness, this lord of the world played with men as he
-list, and like a Sardanapalus, took his pastime in peace. What could he
-do but sport and jest, seeing that he was then in tranquil possession of
-his kingdom? But since the light shining from on high has chased away
-the darkness, the prince of this world has suddenly thrown off his
-lethargy and taken up arms. First, he resorted to force in order to
-oppress truth; then, to stratagem to obscure and extinguish it. Oh! what
-perversity to accuse the Word of God of the seditions stirred up against
-it by fools and madmen!
-
-'Ah! Sire, it is not us who stir up troubles, it is those who resist the
-goodness of God. Is it likely that we, whose mouths have never uttered a
-seditious word; whose lives, while we lived under your sceptre, were
-always simple and peaceful, should plot the overthrowing of kingdoms?...
-Now, even that we are expelled, we cease not to pray to God for the
-prosperity of your reign.
-
-'If there be any who, under colour of the gospel, stir up tumults; if
-there be any who wish to conceal their carnal licence by asserting the
-liberty and grace of God: there are laws and punishments ordained to
-purge these offences. But let not God's gospel be blasphemed by the
-evil-doings of the wicked.'
-
-Calvin thus brings his letter to a conclusion: 'Sire,' he said, 'I have
-set before you the iniquity of our calumniators. I have desired to
-soften your heart, to the end that you would give our cause a hearing. I
-hope we shall be able to regain your favour, if you should be pleased to
-read without anger this confession which is our defence before your
-Majesty. But if malevolent persons stop your ears; if the accused have
-not an opportunity of defending themselves; if impetuous furies,
-unrestrained by your order, still exercise their cruelty by imprisonments
-and by scourging, by tortures, mutilation, and the stake ... verily,
-as sheep given up to slaughter, we shall be reduced to the last
-extremity. Yet even then we shall possess our souls in patience,
-and shall wait for the strong hand of the Lord. Doubtless, it will be
-stretched forth in due season. It will appear armed to deliver the poor
-from their afflictions, and to punish the despisers who are now making
-merry so boldly.
-
-'May the Lord, the King of Kings, establish your throne in righteousness
-and your seat in equity.'
-
-Such was the noble and touching defence which a young man of twenty-six
-addressed to the king of France. He heard from afar the mournful cries
-of the victims; and his soul being stirred with compassion and
-indignation, he appeared as a suppliant before the voluptuous prince who
-was putting them to death.
-
-After finishing an address of such rare eloquence, Calvin wrote the
-date—_Basle, 1st August, 1535_, and then hastened to get the manuscript
-printed.[363]
-
-[Sidenote: PRINTING OF THE INSTITUTES.]
-
-There was a house at Basle, on the heights of St. Pierre, known by the
-sign of the _Black Bear_, where there was a printing office belonging to
-Thomas Plater, the Valaisan. Calvin often went there. Plater, who had
-come to Basle with Myconius, as we have seen, was at first a student,
-then a professor, and finally 'the large sums gained by the
-printers,'[364] had given him the desire to become a printer also. When
-Calvin was looking for a publisher for his _Institutes_, the learned
-Grynæus recommended Plater to him. The latter had the honour of printing
-that work, and from that time Calvin kept up an occasional intercourse
-with this singular man. When, some years later, Felix Plater, the son of
-Thomas, who was going to study medicine at Montpelier, passed through
-Geneva, Calvin, to whom he brought a letter from his father, called him
-_my Felix_, and received him with much cordiality. 'I heard him preach
-on Sunday morning,' said the young man in his memoirs; 'and there was a
-great crowd of people.'[365]
-
-It was, as we have said, in August 1535, that Calvin handed Thomas
-Plater his epistle to Francis I. to be printed. He had written it in
-French, and the French edition bears the date of the 1st of August; but
-he immediately translated it into Latin and printed this version on the
-23rd of the same month, which is the date of the Latin edition.[366] It
-is probable that the epistle to Francis I. was printed in both
-languages, and that the French text was sent to the king, and the Latin
-to the German doctors, in September 1535.
-
-Did Francis ever receive the letter? Did he listen to this admirable
-apology? It is certain that his heart was not softened. It is even
-possible that the pleasures and policy of the monarch made him
-contemptuously throw aside this appeal from one of the poorest of his
-subjects. However, nothing prevents us from believing that the king did
-read it, for the style alone was worthy of a monarch's notice. Calvin's
-friends, and even Calvin himself, hoped much from it. 'If the king would
-but read that excellent letter,' said one of them, 'a mortal wound (or
-we are greatly mistaken) would be inflicted on that harlot of
-Babylon.'[367] But was an ambitious, false-speaking, and libertine king
-competent to understand the noble thoughts of the reformer?
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN STARTS FOR ITALY.]
-
-Calvin having published his appeal to Francis I., and perhaps ended the
-correction of the proofs of the _Institutes_, thought of leaving Basle.
-These publications would make a sensation; it would be known that
-Catherine Klein's lodger was their author, and Calvin would find himself
-courted and sought after.... 'It is not my object to display myself and
-to acquire fame,' he said.[368] The fear of becoming famous induced him,
-therefore, to get out of the way. He had, however, other reasons, for
-quitting Basle: he felt himself drawn towards Italy. Shortly after, on
-the 23rd August 1525, 'Calvin, having discharged his debt to his
-country,' says Theodore Beza, set off with Du Tillet, shrinking from
-eulogiums, thanks, and approbation, just as another man would shrink
-from threats and violence.
-
-[Sidenote: CALVIN'S JOURNEY TO ITALY.]
-
-The two friends rode side by side, but their itinerary has not been
-preserved. There are, as every one knows, many passes over the Alps, but
-that which Calvin chose is as unknown to us as that of Hannibal—though
-certainly not to be compared with it. It has been supposed that the
-travellers took the road along the shores of the lake of Geneva. If they
-passed through Switzerland, and purposed crossing the St. Bernard (as a
-manuscript of the 17th century states), or the Simplon, or even Mount
-Cenis, Calvin must have stood for the first time on the margin of those
-beautiful waters. Be that as it may, he was going to pass the Alps. 'He
-had a wish,' as Theodore Beza tells us, 'to know the Duchess of Ferrara,
-a princess of exemplary virtue.' But other motives impelled the young
-reformer. He desired to see Italy: _Italia salutanda_, as his friend
-tells us. This desire of 'saluting' Italy, so common to the inhabitants
-of the rest of Europe from the time when the Roman republic subjected
-the nations, and which exists still in our days, Calvin felt like any
-other man.
-
-But what did he go in search of!... Whilst he was climbing the Alps and
-contemplating for the first time their immense glaciers and eternal
-snows, what thoughts filled his mind? There was some talk then of a
-council; had that event, which seemed near at hand, anything to do with
-his journey? As Vergeria had gone from Italy to Germany, in order to
-support the dominion of the pope, did Calvin wish to go from Switzerland
-to Italy, in order to assail it? Or attracted by the almost evangelical
-reputation of Contarini, Sadolet, and other prelates, did he long to
-converse with them? Did he feel the necessity of seeing closely that
-papacy, with which he was to deal all his life, and did he propose to
-study, like Luther, its scandals and abuses? Did he wish to carry back
-the gospel to that very country to which Paul had taken it? Or was he
-only attracted by classical recollections, by the learning and
-civilisation of that illustrious peninsula? There was a little of all
-these inducements, probably, in Calvin's wish. He desired to visit the
-land of heroes, martyrs and scholars, of Renée of Ferrara, and ... of
-the popes. _Italia salutanda._ But his chief thought, we cannot doubt,
-was to teach the principles of the Reformation, to proclaim to Italy
-that Christ had come to destroy sin, and had opened a way to the
-heavenly Father for all who seek him. A catholic historian says that the
-young reformer 'had conceived the design of withdrawing from their
-obedience to the pope the people nearest to his throne.'[369] There is
-some exaggeration in this statement, but the substance is true.
-
-Calvin crosses the torrents, ascends the sloping valleys of the Alps,
-climbs yonder high mountains which rise like impassable walls, and moves
-courageously towards those Italian lands, where the men of the
-Reformation are soon to be drowned in their blood, where persecution
-certainly attends him, and perhaps ... death. It matters not: onward he
-goes. We might say, after an historian, that like Mithridates, he
-desires to conquer Rome in Rome.
-
-Let us leave him for a moment and turn towards those countries whither
-he will come again, once more crossing the Alps, on his escape from the
-prisons of Italy. After wandering over the adjacent regions, let us
-direct our steps towards that city which is struggling so manfully with
-bishops and princes, where courageous forerunners are about to prepare
-the way for him, and which is to become, through the torch that will be
-lighted there some day by the hand of Calvin, the most powerful focus of
-the European Reformation.
-
-[359] Dedication of the _Institutes_.
-
-[360] Crespin, _Martyrol._ fol. 116.
-
-[361] Drion, _Hist. Chron._ i. p. 25.
-
-[362] Jeremiah, ii. 13.
-
-[363] See the Dedicatory Epistle at the beginning of all the editions of
-the _Institutes_.
-
-[364] _Vie de Thomas Plater, écrite par lui-même_, p. 110.
-
-[365] Autobiography of Felix Plater, son of Thomas.
-
-[366] Decimo Calendas Septembris.—Latin edition, at the head of the
-_Institutes_.
-
-[367] 'Magnum meretrici Babylonicæ vulnus illatum.'—Beza, _Vita
-Calvini_.
-
-[368] _Préface des Psaumes._
-
-[369] Varillas, _Hist. des Hérésies_, ii. p. 994.
-
-
-
-
- BOOK V.
- STRUGGLES OF THE REFORMATION.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
- EFFORTS IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.
- (1521.)
-
-
-Struggles, political or religious, are the normal state of society and
-the life of history. Their necessity in a christian point of view is
-established by the highest of authorities: _I am not come to bring peace
-upon earth but the sword_, said the Saviour of men;[370] and one of his
-disciples sixteen centuries later, developing his master's words, added:
-'As the greater part of the world is hostile to the gospel, we cannot
-confess Christ without encountering opposition and hatred.'[371]
-
-[Sidenote: USES OF OPPOSITION.]
-
-This thought would be saddening indeed, did not experience and Scripture
-teach us that opposition is often a means of developement; that the
-gifts of God to man easily perish if nothing revives them; that
-contradiction, resistance, and trial (thanks to the care of divine
-providence) tend to civilise nations, and preserve to Christianity the
-truth, morality, and life it has received from on high.
-
-Whence proceeds this moral influence of contradiction? A principle never
-evolves all that it contains, says a school, except by coming in
-collision with a contrary principle. In effect, the blow which a soldier
-receives on the battle-field adds to his valour. The inflexible
-obstinacy of Rome in upholding all abuses, excited Luther to display
-with more energy the great principles of the Reformation. And at Geneva,
-it was because the huguenots had to contend perpetually against a mean
-despotism in the State and an incorrigible corruption in the Church,
-that their souls groaned after liberty and a better religion.
-
-Yet contradiction is not all that is necessary: there must be
-reconciliation afterwards. The twofold opposition of the huguenots
-(high-minded as it was) against civil and religious despotism, would
-have been ruined by its excess and would have ruined Geneva, if it had
-not been moderated afterwards. It was not good for the State that 'no
-one was willing to obey.'[372] It was not good for religion that
-opposition to popery should consist in walking about the churches during
-mass. Modern times needed, from their very cradle, authority in the
-bosom of a free people, and pure doctrine in the bosom of a living
-Church. God gave both to Geneva, and he did so essentially through the
-Reformation.
-
-Care must be taken, however, that we go not too far in the way of
-accommodation. The Reformation must make no concessions to popery.
-Whenever it has gone down that easy incline, it has left its calm
-heights and fallen among quagmires which have endangered its purity and
-existence.
-
-But that was the conciliation which had to be carried out in those
-times, and which ought still to be attempted in the Christendom of our
-times. Between negative protestantism and Roman-catholicism there is a
-middle path. On the one hand the gospel ought to supply this negative
-protestantism with what is deficient in it, and on the other to take
-away from Romanism whatever is erroneous in it. The huguenots, in part
-at least, were transformed in the city of Calvin by the great principles
-of the Reformation. It was by the potent virtue of the gospel that this
-little city, which had been only an Alpine burgh, was so marvellously
-metamorphosed and became in Europe the capital of a great opinion.
-
-One circumstance, however, tended to compromise its future. The Reform
-triumphed, but not without losing strength, for the sword struck foul in
-the struggle. 'If a man strive for mastery, he is not crowned, except he
-strive lawfully.'[373] Calvin understood better than the other reformers
-the spirituality and independence of the Church; and yet giving way to
-the general weakness, he had recourse to the secular arm to maintain
-discipline, and was unable to prevent the death of Servetus. That fatal
-stake did more injury to truth than to falsehood. From that hour, the
-doctrine lost its power, a stain soiled its flag, and error seized the
-advantage of slipping into the ranks of those who were summoned to
-combat her. Eminent minds were seen abandoning the doctrines of the
-Reformation, chiefly on account of the civil intolerance by which they
-were defended. And thus a more or less culpable stagnation followed the
-powerful activity and glorious battles of the primitive days of the
-Reformation. There were no more combats round the expiatory cross, the
-eternal Word, the fall, grace, and regeneration. No more struggles, and
-therefore no more life. The christian fortress that Calvin had erected
-having been assailed for two centuries, shaken and dismantled, was on
-the point of being razed to the ground; when fortunately the struggles,
-entirely spiritual struggles, began again, and religion was saved by
-them. When God, after ploughing Europe in the early part of this century
-with the terrible share of a conqueror, awoke it from its long sleep, he
-remembered Geneva, and revived there as in other places doctrine and
-life. That city and all Christendom are now challenged again to the old
-struggles, and also to new ones, in which faith shall triumph over
-absolute thoroughgoing negations, which not only deprive man of the
-grace and adoption of the children of God, but deny also the
-immateriality and immortality of the soul.
-
-[Sidenote: VAUD AND GENEVA.]
-
-We shall not begin with the struggles of the Reformation in Geneva, but
-with those which were fought in a country beautifully situated between
-the lakes and the mountains,—the Pays de Vaud. The country was not
-large, its cities were not populous, and the names of the men who
-struggled there do not occupy an important place in the annals of
-nations. Let us not forget, however, that there are two kinds of
-history: the stage of one is a brilliant circle, of the other a humble
-sphere. The actors in the former are great personages, in the latter men
-of low esteem in their own day. But is not the least sometimes the
-greatest of these two kinds of history? Are not events of small
-dimensions geometrically similar to great ones? Have they not often a
-deeper moral significance and a wider practical influence? With truth it
-may be said of the struggles of Vaud and Geneva: _Magnam causam in
-parvum locum concludi_, a great cause is here confined within narrow
-limits. The scenes, so modest and obscure, so full of decision and life,
-which this history presents, have probably done more to found the
-kingdom of truth and liberty, than the disputes and wars of powerful
-potentates. Such a thought as this has been expressed, even in Paris. A
-contemporary writer, after tracing in his history of the sixteenth
-century an outline of the portentous future threatened by the intrigues
-of the papacy, regains his courage with the words: _Europe was saved by
-Geneva_.[374]
-
-All the reformers have been men of strength; but while Luther and Calvin
-have particularly contended for the principles and doctrines of the
-Reformation, others, like Knox and Farel, applying themselves to the
-practice, have specially undertaken to win certain countries or cities
-to the gospel. The men of God, in all ages, have done both these things;
-but not one of them has combined the two, like St. Paul. There were two
-men in that apostle, the doctor and the evangelist. Calvin was the great
-doctor of the sixteenth century, and Farel the great evangelist: the
-latter is one of the most remarkable figures in the Reformation.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL.]
-
-A catholic in his youth, fanatic in abstinence and maceration, Farel had
-embraced salvation through grace with all the living ardour of his soul,
-and from that hour everything appeared to him under a new face. His
-desire to enlighten his contemporaries was intense, his heart intrepid,
-his zeal indefatigable, and his ambition for God's glory without bounds.
-A difficulty never stopped him; a reverse never discouraged him; a
-sacrifice, even were it that of his life, never alarmed him. He was not
-a great writer; in his works we meet occasionally with disorder and
-prolixity; but when he spoke he was almost without an equal. The
-energetic language which transported his hearers had been derived from
-the writings of the prophets and apostles; his doctrine was sound, his
-proofs strong, his expressions significative. Poets are made by nature,
-orators by art, but preachers by the grace of God; and Farel had the
-riches of nature, of art, and of grace.[375] He never stopped to discuss
-idle or frivolous questions, but aimed straight at the conscience, and
-exhibited before those who listened to him the treasures of wisdom,
-salvation, and life that are found in the Redeemer. Full of love for
-truth and hatred for falsehood, he inveighed energetically against all
-human inventions. In his eyes the traditions of popery were a gulf in
-which horrible darkness reigned, and hence he laboured to extricate
-souls from it and plant them in the soil of God's Word. His manly
-eloquence, his lively apostrophes, his bold remonstrances, his noble
-images, his action frank, expressive, and sometimes threatening, his
-voice that was often like thunder (as Beza tells us), and his fervent
-prayers, carried away his hearers. His sermon was not a dissertation but
-an action, quite as much as a battle is. Every time he went into the
-pulpit, it was to do a work. Like a valiant soldier he was always in
-front of the column to begin the attack, and never refused battle.
-Sometimes the boldness of his speech carried by storm the fortress he
-attacked; sometimes he captivated souls by the divine grace he offered
-them. He preached in market-places and in churches, he announced Jesus
-Christ in the homes of the poor and in the councils of nations. His life
-was a series of battles and victories. Every time he went forth, it was
-_conquering and to conquer_.[376]
-
-It is very true, as we have said, that the cities where he preached were
-not large capitals; but Derbe, Lystra, and Berea where St. Paul
-preached, were little towns like Orbe, Neuchâtel, and Geneva. Most
-assuredly the Acts of the Reformation are not the Acts of the Apostles;
-there is all the difference between them which exists between the
-foundation of Christianity and its reformation; but notwithstanding the
-inferiority of the sixteenth century, the labours of the reformers have
-a claim upon the interest of all those who love to contemplate the
-humble origin of the new destinies of mankind. Is there, after the
-establishment of Christianity, anything greater than its Reformation?
-Have not those weak movements which began in the petty spheres in which
-Farel and Calvin lived, gone on widening from age to age? Are they not
-the origin of that new religious transformation which, notwithstanding
-the declamations and the triumphant cries of unbelievers, is now going
-on in every nation of the earth? The source of the Rhone is but a thread
-of water which would pass unnoticed elsewhere; but the traveller who
-stands at the foot of the huge glaciers which separate the mountains of
-the Furka and the Grimsel, cannot look unmoved at that little stream,
-which, issuing imperceptibly from the earth, is to become a mighty
-river. The thought of what it is to be inspires the friend of nature and
-of history in this sublime solitude with emotions more profound than
-those excited by its copious and monotonous waters at Lyons, Beaucaire,
-or Avignon. It is for this reason we dwell longer upon the origin of the
-Reformation.
-
-[Sidenote: PREPARATIONS FOR VICTORY.]
-
-A general who desires to capture an important city, first makes sure of
-his position and occupies the surrounding country: and so Farel,
-desirous of winning Geneva to the gospel, first set about enlightening
-the neighbouring people. His operations were not strategic certainly; he
-thought only of converting souls; and yet his labours in the Vaudois
-towns and villages admirably prepared the way for his successes among
-the huguenots. We have already seen what he did at Aigle, Neuchâtel, and
-elsewhere;[377] we must now follow him into other parts of that
-picturesque country, enclosed between the pointed citadels of the Alps
-and the undulating lines of the Jura, whose waters flow—some by the lake
-of Neuchâtel, the Aar and the Rhine to the North Sea, others by the lake
-of Geneva and the Rhone to the Mediterranean: a symbol of the spiritual
-waters which, issuing from the same hills, were soon to bear light and
-life to the peoples of the north and of the south.
-
-[Sidenote: FABRI JOINS FAREL.]
-
-Farel was inactive (a singular thing!) at the moment when we are going
-to see him prepare betimes for the conquest of Geneva. Wounded near
-Neuchâtel by a riotous crowd, he had been placed in a boat, and carried
-across the lake to Morat, as we have said in a former work.[378] His
-friends in that town had welcomed him with emotion, and kept watch
-around his bed. Condemned to repose, 'shivering with cold, spitting
-blood,' and scarcely able to speak, he was communing in silence with his
-God when he saw a young Dauphinese of good appearance, Christopher Fabri
-by name, enter his room. This Frenchman, of whom we have already spoken,
-had studied medicine at Montpelier, and there received the first rays of
-the gospel. Having started for Paris, in order to complete his studies
-in that city, he met with some friends of the truth at Lyons, who told
-him of all that was going on at Neuchâtel and its vicinity. Fabri was
-greatly moved, and being a man of lively, prompt, and decided character,
-he suddenly changed his route, calling, and life, and instead of going
-on to Paris turned his steps to Geneva, and thence to Morat.
-
-On arriving at that town, the student enquired after Farel, and on
-presenting himself at the house, was admitted into the room where the
-reformer was lying. Modestly approaching the bed, he said to him: 'I
-have forsaken everything, family, prospects, and country, to fight at
-your side, Master William. Here I am; do with me what seems good to
-you.' Farel looked at him kindly, and ere long appreciated the young
-man's lively affection and boundless devotion. He saw that they both had
-the same faith, the same Saviour. As he was unmarried, he looked upon
-Fabri as a son whom God had sent him,[379] and henceforward had frequent
-Christian conversations with him, in which he sought to train him for
-the ministry of the gospel. Farel would have liked to keep him always at
-his side; but he loved Jesus Christ more than the tenderest son is
-beloved; and accordingly, after a short but delightful intercourse he
-asked the converted Dauphinese to go and preach the gospel at Neuchâtel.
-Fabri, who had not expected so early a separation, exclaimed with tears:
-'O master, my sorrow is greater to-day than when I left father and
-mother, so sweet have been my conversations with you!' He obeyed,
-however.
-
-Farel was never content with sending others to battle; he burned to
-return to it in person, and to lead to the heavenly King, whose servant
-he was, all the population which, enclosed between the Alps and the
-Jura, spoke the language of his country. He thought that if the
-intelligent people placed at the gates of France were won over to the
-divine Word, they would become a focus to cast the light of the gospel
-into that kingdom, and an asylum where the Christians persecuted by
-Francis I. might find a refuge.
-
-A town lying at the foot of the lower slopes of the Jura attracted his
-thoughts during his solitary hours at Morat: this was Orbe. The ancient
-city of Urba, built, it is said, in the same century as Rome, was
-situated on the Roman way that led from Italy to Gaul. Being rebuilt
-later some little distance off, the kings of the first race of France,
-as the people of Orbe boasted, had taken up their residence there, as
-if, immediately after crossing the Jura, they had exclaimed at the
-ravishing prospect of the Alps: 'It is enough! we will stop here.' A
-torrent issuing from the lakes that are found in the high Jurassic
-valleys plunges into the gigantic clefts of the mountain, and after
-pursuing a subterranean and mysterious career, reappears on the other
-slope, towards the plain, whence descending from one fall to another, it
-gracefully sweeps round the beautiful hill on which the town of Orbe is
-situated, surrounded with vineyards, gardens, and orchards, 'with all
-kinds of plants and good things.'[380]
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL PREACHES AT ORBE.]
-
-A dealer in indulgences, attracted by this wealth, was just at this time
-noisily selling his pardons for every offence. Farel, still detained at
-Morat, hearing the sound of his _drum_, as Luther says, made an effort
-to walk: he left the latter town, and proceeded to Orbe. On the next
-market-day, being determined to resist the new Tetzel, he quitted his
-inn and went to the market-place, where he found the indulgence-seller
-offering his wares with much shouting. The monk, whose eye was always on
-the watch, soon noticed in the middle of the crowd a little man with a
-red beard and piercing eyes who caused him some uneasiness. Farel,
-approaching slowly, took his place quietly before the stall and said to
-the quack, just as an ordinary purchaser would have done, but with
-concentrated anger: 'Have you indulgences for a person who has killed
-his father and mother?' Without waiting for an answer, and wishing to
-undeceive the superstitious crowd, he boldly stept on the basin of the
-public fountain, and began to preach as if he were in the pulpit. The
-astonished market-people left the monk and gathered round the new
-orator, whose sonorous voice entreated the multitude to ask pardon of
-the Saviour instead of buying indulgences from the monk. As the priests
-and the devout were exceedingly irritated at both preaching and
-preacher, Farel could not remain at Orbe; but a few drops of living
-water had gushed forth, and some souls had had their thirst quenched by
-them. A tradesman, Christopher Hollard by name, and one Mark Romain, a
-schoolmaster, were converted to the gospel at this time.
-
-The whole town was in commotion, and the sisters of St. Claire, as
-bigoted as those of Geneva, entreated their confessor to preach against
-heresy. Such a request had great weight and must be attended to, for
-these sisters were held in great consideration. Philippina of Chalons,
-Louisa of Savoy, recently canonised at Rome, and Yoland, grand-daughter
-of St. Louis, had assumed the veil in this convent. The struggle might
-take place more freely in Orbe than in many other Vaudois towns. The
-Sires of Chateau-Guyon, who possessed the lordship at the time of the
-war between Switzerland and Burgundy, having taken the part of Charles
-the Bold, had been deprived of their possessions by the League, and the
-suzerainty adjudged in 1476 to the cantons of Berne and Friburg. The
-municipal magistrates, chosen from the principal burgesses or nobles of
-the city, were good catholics; but the superior authority belonged to a
-bailiff, living at Echallens, and who was by turns a Friburger or a
-Bernese. Now Berne was zealous for the Reform. The friar-confessor, full
-of confidence in himself, smiled at the flattering request the nuns of
-St. Claire had made him, and having no mistrust of his eloquence, he
-said to the banneret, the Sire de Pierrefleur: 'I shall _create_ these
-Lutherans _anew_ in the faith, as they were before.' Noble de
-Pierrefleur, a fervent catholic but a man of good sense, who knew the
-firmness of the reformers and saw Berne in the background, did not
-believe that the new _creation_, with which the monk flattered himself,
-was such an easy thing, and answered: 'I am far from your opinion,
-father, for such people have more obstinacy than knowledge, and great is
-the folly of those who desire to remonstrate with them.'[381]
-
-[Sidenote: FRIAR MICHAEL'S SERMON.]
-
-Michael Juliani (for that was the friar's name) was not to be stopped by
-this opinion, and he gave notice of his sermons against the Reform,
-which were talked about all over the city. The bells rang; priests,
-monks, and devotees filled the church, and even those suspected of
-Lutheranism attended. The orator was filled with joy at the sight of the
-unusual crowd, and his head was turned. Had not his patron saint, the
-archangel Michael, armed with a golden spear, trampled Satan under his
-feet; and should he not gain a similar victory? Losing all moderation,
-he began to extol in the most pompous terms Rome, the priesthood, and
-celibacy, and to attack the reformers with violence and abuse. Five or
-six Lutherans were noticed in the church, pen in hand, writing down all
-the father said on a piece of paper which they held on their knees. When
-the sermon was over, the offended bailiff of Diesbach, the grand
-banneret and other notables, displeased with the presumptuous discourse,
-accosted the friar and begged him to desist from abusive language and to
-preach simply the doctrines of the Church. But in the eyes of certain
-devout folks, the greater Michael's abuse, the greater his eloquence.
-
-The confessor, delighted at his success, and thinking, as they did in
-many convents, that knowledge is a sign of the children of the devil
-(Farel had studied at the university of Paris), and ignorance that of
-the children of God, went into the pulpit again on the 25th March, and
-took for his text: _Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the
-kingdom of heaven_. 'Sirs,' he exclaimed, 'the poor in spirit here
-referred to are the priests and friars. They have not much learning, I
-confess, but they have what is better; they are mediators between man
-and God, worshippers of the Virgin Mary, who is the treasure-house of
-all graces, and friends of the saints who cure all diseases.... What
-then can those want who listen to them? But who are the people who say
-they are justified by faith? who are they who throw down the crosses on
-our roads and in our chapels?... Enemies of Christ. What are those
-priests, monks, and nuns who renounce their vows in order to
-marry?—Unclean, impure, infamous, abominable apostates before men and
-before God.'[382]
-
-The friar was continuing in this strain, when suddenly a loud noise was
-heard in the church. The evangelicals present had been excited at the
-very commencement of the discourse; at first they had restrained
-themselves, and then whispered to each other; but when the monk began to
-insult those who thought (as the Bible says) that _marriage is
-honourable to all men_, one of them, unable to contain himself, stood up
-and before the whole assembly repeated twice and with sonorous voice,
-the words: 'You lie!'... The orator stopped in amazement, and everybody
-turned towards the quarter whence these words proceeded. They saw a man
-of middle age standing there greatly agitated. It was Christopher
-Hollard, who had been converted by Farel's first sermon, and who
-combined an honest heart with a violent character. His brother, John
-Hollard, the late dean of Friburg, had embraced the Reformation and
-married; Christopher, fancying the monk was reflecting on his brother,
-had hastened to protest, rather coarsely, it must be acknowledged, but
-with the frankness of an honest heart, which sees the commandment of God
-blasphemed.
-
-[Sidenote: HOLLARD IMPRISONED.]
-
-This exclamation had hardly resounded through the church, when a great
-uproar, caused by the people, drowned the Lutheran's voice. The men who
-were present would have rushed from their places upon the disturber; but
-the women who filled the nave were before them. 'All with one accord
-fell upon the said Christopher, tore out his beard and beat him; they
-scratched his face with their nails and otherwise, so that if they had
-been let alone, he would never have gone out of the said church, which
-would have been a great benefit for poor catholics.'[383] Thus spoke the
-grand banneret, who had lost, as it would seem, a little of the
-moderation he had shown on other occasions. The castellan, Anthony
-Agasse, was not of his opinion: he wanted the culprits, if there were
-any, to be punished by the law and not by the populace; and rushing into
-the midst of this savage scene, he rescued Hollard from the hands of the
-furies, and threw him 'into a dungeon to avoid a greater scandal.'
-
-[370] Matthew, x. 34.
-
-[371] Calvin _in loco_.
-
-[372] Bonivard, _Chronique de Genève_, passim.
-
-[373] 2nd Timothy, ii. 5.
-
-[374] Michelet, _Hist. de France au seizième siècle_.—_La Réforme_,
-pp. 483, 484, 518.
-
-[375] Ancillon, _Vie de Farel_, ch. xi.
-
-[376] Revelation, vi. 2.
-
-[377] _Hist. of the Reformation of the sixteenth century_, vol. iv.
-bk. xv. ch. iv, vii, viii, and ix.
-
-[378] _Hist. of the Reformation_, vol. iv. bk. xv. ch. ix.
-
-[379] Choupard MS.
-
-[380] See the manuscript _Mémoires du Sire de Pierrefleur, grand
-banneret d'Orbe_, p. 2, published by M. Verdeil in 1856.
-
-[381] _Mémoires du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 13.
-
-[382] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, pp. 24-28.
-
-[383] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 16.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
- PLOT OF THE WOMEN AGAINST REFORM; FAREL'S PREACHING.
- (1531.)
-
-
-The Reformation brought great benefits to women. The divine Word which
-it placed in their hands, and which it desired to see in their hearts,
-would free them from the dominion of the priest to put them under that
-of the Saviour; give them that meek and peaceful spirit which (as Calvin
-says) becomes their sex; and substitute for a religion of external
-practices an inner, holy, and useful life. However, the women, attached
-to their priests and ceremonies, and who are easily aroused, were often
-opposed to the Reform, of which we shall have instances.
-
-Hollard's mother was not of this number. Strongly attached to her son,
-she gave way to her maternal sorrow. Her son a prisoner, her son without
-a protector, her son exposed to the vengeance of the exasperated
-Roman-catholics—thoughts like these caused her the deepest anxiety. She
-could think of nothing but saving him, ready to incur any danger, and to
-brave even the anger of the enemies of the gospel. The bailiff of Berne,
-she said to herself, alone can save Hollard. He lives at Echallens, in a
-castle, surrounded with his officers; he is a haughty Bernese, a cold
-diplomatist perhaps.... It matters not; the poor woman will go and
-implore his help. Romain will not abandon her; if there are any
-difficulties, any dangers, he will be near her; he will protect the
-mother and deliver the son. Madame Hollard and the schoolmaster set off
-together for Echallens, and presenting themselves at the castle, inform
-the bailiff of Diesbach of the monk's insulting address and its
-consequences.... O happiness! the Bernese magistrate is moved, grows
-angry, and departs immediately. The lord-bailiff felt that the friar's
-insults were the cause of all the disorder; that by denouncing the
-married priests and monks as apostates and villains, he had attacked the
-gospel and the Reformation, recognised by My Lords of Berne; and that
-the friar was the person to be blamed.
-
-[Sidenote: FRIAR MICHAEL ARRESTED.]
-
-Arriving the same day about four o'clock, Diesbach would not go to the
-guildhall or the castellan's; but sitting down in the open air near the
-old castle,[384] he sent his officers to fetch Friar Juliani. The
-sergeants carefully searched the convent and several houses without
-finding the monk, who was hiding in the house of a woman named 'Frances
-Pugin, instructress of girls in all virtue and learning.' Being informed
-of the search, he took courage, left the house, and went straight to the
-bailiff, who was still seated in front of the castle, waiting the result
-of his enquiries. Friar Michael saluted him respectfully; but the lord
-of Diesbach, rising up, caught him by the hand and said: 'I arrest you
-in the name of My Lords,' and then, taking him to the prison, 'drew
-Hollard out of his hole and put the said friar in his place.' Such were
-the energetic proceedings of Berne.
-
-[Sidenote: ROMAIN IS ILL-TREATED.]
-
-Mark Romain, as pleased at having rescued his friend, 'as if he had
-gained a thousand crowns, and thinking he had achieved a master-piece,'
-says a contemporary, was going quietly home. Meanwhile the people,
-alarmed at the arrival of the bailiff and the imprisonment of the monk,
-had assembled in the market-place, and spoke of flinging the
-schoolmaster into the river to punish him for having gone to fetch the
-Sieur de Diesbach. Unfortunately Mark Romain came in sight just at this
-moment. The townspeople, 'seeing him come joyfully along,' pointed him
-out to one another. 'There he is,' they said, and began to cry: 'Master,
-come here!' Romain, observing the tumult, passed suddenly from joy to
-fear and took to flight, all following in pursuit. They gained upon him:
-he looked from side to side to see if some door would not open to
-receive him, but all remained closed. Arriving in front of the church,
-he rushed into it; but had hardly set his feet inside, when he stopped
-in astonishment. The women who had desired to tear Hollard to pieces
-were in the church, as well as some men, on account of the _Salve
-Regina_ which was said daily at five in the afternoon. Kneeling before
-the altar, with clasped hands and eyes turned to the ground, they were
-invoking the _Queen of heaven_: 'Hail, queen of mercy; we send up our
-groans to thee! O thou who art our advocate, save us!' At the moment
-when Romain entered, the women turned their heads and caught sight of
-him; being suddenly changed into furies, they rushed upon him, as they
-had done before upon Hollard, 'caught him by the hair, threw him on the
-ground, and beat him.' The women were the champions of Catholicism in
-Orbe. The grand banneret looked on quietly at this execution. 'I saw the
-whole affair,' he said, 'and I did not think the schoolmaster would ever
-get out alive.' Pierrefleur took care not to go to his help, and the
-blows continued to fall on poor Romain, until one of his friends
-arrived. 'I am certain,' says the banneret, who had seen all this
-without being moved, 'that had it not been for the assistance he
-received from this Lutheran, he would never have gone out of the place
-until he was dead.'[385] We read in Scripture of people who ceased not
-to beat St. Paul; Romain, who experienced 'this riotous and cruel rage,'
-was afterwards a minister of the gospel. He was now going through his
-apprenticeship.
-
-A mob had collected round the castle in which Friar Michael was
-confined, and angry voices were heard loudly demanding his liberty. At
-this moment the bailiff of Diesbach came out to return to his place of
-residence, having Hollard by his side, whom he was going to restore to
-his mother. When he saw the crowd he was much astonished, for 'all were
-crying out and demanding their good father.' 'Why have you arrested
-Friar Michael?' asked some. 'Why have you delivered Christopher?' asked
-others. 'By order of My Lords of Berne,' answered the imperturbable
-bailiff; and then added, pointing to the lofty walls of the castle, 'If
-you can set him at liberty, you may take him ... but I advise you
-not.'[386] 'We will be bail for our good father, body for body, goods
-for goods,' exclaimed the burgesses; but the bailiff kept on his way
-without answering them.
-
-The Sieur of Diesbach had hardly arrived at the great square, when he
-perceived the ladies and other women of the city waiting for him, their
-hearts full of sorrow and anguish. They all fell on their knees 'with
-many tears,' and stretching their hands towards him exclaimed: 'Mercy
-for the good father! set him at liberty!' These cries softened the
-Bernese, he stopped and could hardly speak for emotion. He made them
-understand, however, that it was not in his power to liberate Juliani,
-and then returned home, for 'the hour was late.'[387]
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL ARRIVES AT ORBE.]
-
-The principal catholics now assembled to consider what was to be done. A
-priest put in prison in Orbe, for a strictly Romish sermon.... What a
-scandal! They resolved to appeal from the heretical Bernese bailiff to
-the Friburgers who were good catholics. The grand banneret volunteered
-for this important mission, and next day Noble P. de Pierrefleur and
-Francis Vuerney set out for Friburg, where they related everything to
-the council. The lords and princes of that city were much 'concerned and
-vexed,' and a deputation composed of Bernese and Friburgers received
-instructions to arrange the difference. But this measure, far from
-diminishing the struggle, was destined to increase it. As the deputation
-passed through Avenches, a Roman city older than the Cæsars, they fell
-in with Farel, who for more than a month had been preaching the gospel
-there, amid its ruined aqueducts and amphitheatres, and had met with
-nothing but lukewarmness. Without hesitation the evangelist left
-Avenches, and departing with the Bernese arrived at the banks of the
-Orbe, whither the noise of battle attracted him. No ruins were to be
-seen there: but seven churches and twenty-six altars testified to the
-ancient splendour and Romish fervour of the city.
-
-It was the 2nd of April, Palm-Sunday. Mass had been celebrated, the
-various offices had been said, even to vespers. Farel, who had stayed
-quietly in doors, observing that the service was over, left his inn
-'with presumptuous boldness.' His friends followed him, idlers flocked
-round him, the devout ran after, and a crowd of men, women, and children
-soon filled the church with a great noise. Then 'without asking leave of
-any one, Farel went into the pulpit to preach.' But he had scarcely
-opened his mouth, when everybody, 'men, women, and children, hissed,
-howled, and stamped with all sorts of exclamations to disconcert him.
-Dog, they cried; lubber, heretic, devil, and other insults: it was a
-glorious noise.' 'You really could not have heard God's thunder,' said
-Pierrefleur. Farel, who was accustomed to tumult, as a soldier to the
-whistling of the bullets, continued his address. Anger got the better of
-some of them. 'Seeing that he would not desist, they grew riotous,
-surrounded the pulpit, pulled him out of it, and would even have
-proceeded to blows.' The confusion was at its height, when the bailiff,
-'fearing that worse would follow,' rushed into the midst of the crowd,
-took the reformer by the arm, and escorted him to his lodging.
-
-The mixed commission was empowered to restore peace to this agitated
-city; but as for Farel he had but one idea: _Woe to me if I do not
-preach the gospel_. If he cannot preach it in the church, he will do so
-in the open air. On the following day (Monday) he left the house of his
-entertainer at six in the morning, and proceeding towards the great
-square, began to preach. There was nobody present; it mattered not; he
-thought that his powerful voice would soon collect a good assembly. But
-satisfied with the victory of the evening before, the inhabitants of
-Orbe had said to themselves that they would leave the preacher alone: he
-had not a single hearer.[388] That was not, however, the only reason: a
-plot was concerting against Farel—a women's plot naturally; for the men
-in general were cold in comparison with the other sex.
-
-There was a noble dame at Orbe, a native of Friburg, Elizabeth, wife of
-Hugonin, lord of Arnex, an honest and devout woman, but enthusiastic,
-violent, and fanatical. Elizabeth, being persuaded that the death of the
-reformer would be a very meritorious work, had assembled at her house
-some other bigoted women, had addressed them, and worked upon them, so
-that they had agreed to beat the reformer and even kill him: they only
-waited for an opportunity. The same day at four in the afternoon a city
-council was held at which the deputies of Berne and Friburg and even
-Farel also were present. When the council was over, the reformer came
-out: it was the moment that Elizabeth and her accomplices, informed of
-the circumstance, had selected to carry out their plot. A gentleman,
-Pierre de Glairesse, knowing the danger the evangelist ran, quitted the
-council after him, and begged permission to accompany him. Meanwhile the
-women who had left their houses were waiting for Farel in the middle of
-a street through which he must necessarily pass. Approaching them
-without any mistrust, they fell upon him unawares, 'and took him by the
-cloak _so gently_,' says the chronicler ironically, 'that they made him
-stagger and fall.' They then attempted to ill-treat him and beat him;
-but Pierre de Glairesse rushing in between them, took him out of their
-hands, and said, bowing to them very politely: 'Your pardon, ladies; at
-present he is under my charge.' They all let go of him, and Glairesse
-conducted him to the inn where My Lords of Berne awaited him.
-
-[Sidenote: FRIAR MICHAEL EXAMINED.]
-
-While Elizabeth was trying to kill the reformer, her husband, William of
-Arnex, as bigoted as herself, was pleading the cause of the monk. The
-mediators had ordered that Friar Michael should be put on his trial. He
-was taken to the castle in agitation and alarm, and the lords of Berne,
-bringing a criminal charge against him, said: 'You asserted that the
-poor in spirit are the monks.'
-
-_Friar Michael_: 'I deny it.'
-
-'You said that to resist the pope, the bishops, and other ecclesiastics
-is resisting the commandment of God.'
-
-_Friar._ 'I deny saying it in those terms.'
-
-'You said that few follow the new law, except a heap of lascivious
-monks.'
-
-_Friar._ 'I deny having said it in that way, and I named nobody.'
-
-'You said that when priests marry, the women they take are not their
-wives but their harlots, and that their children are bastards.'
-
-_Friar._ 'I confess it.'
-
-'You said that Mary was the treasure-house of graces.'
-
-_Friar._ 'I did.'
-
-'You said the saints, like St. Anthony, expel and cure certain
-diseases.'
-
-_Friar._ 'I did.'
-
-'You said that those who deny that the books of the Maccabees form part
-of Holy Scripture, are heretics.'
-
-_Friar._ 'I did.'
-
-'You said that those who have adopted the new law have no good in them,
-and deny the articles of faith.'
-
-_Friar._ 'I did not.'[389]
-
-This mixture of denials and confessions disarmed the judges. They
-listened to the solicitations of D'Arnex and set Juliani at liberty. The
-Bernese, however, bound him to preach in future nothing but the Word of
-God. 'Most honoured lords,' exclaimed the poor friar, 'I have never
-preached anything that is not found in the holy gospel, in the epistles
-of St. Paul, or in some other part of Holy Scripture.' Friar Michael,
-confounded at not gaining a triumph as striking as that of his patron
-with the brilliant helmet, and fearing lest he should be sent back to
-prison, thought only of saving himself. He entered the convent for a
-short time, and then fled into Burgundy,[390] The deputies returned home
-and Farel remained.
-
-Shortly after Easter there came a mandate from Berne ordering that
-whenever Farel desired to preach, he should be given a hearing, support,
-and favour. As soon as the mandate had been read, the people, without
-waiting for the opinion of the Council, exclaimed, 'Let him go about his
-business, we do not want him or his preaching.' The lords of Berne
-answered that Farel was to be free to speak, but that no inhabitant was
-constrained to hear him. The evangelist gave notice that he would preach
-on the Saturday after Quasimodo, at one o'clock, when he would expose
-Juliani's errors.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL'S STRANGE CONGREGATION.]
-
-The catholics, not content with the permission given them to keep away,
-determined to organise a reception for Farel that should disgust him for
-ever with preaching. As soon as the minister entered the church the
-strangest of congregations met his eyes: all the brats (_marmaille_) of
-the place were assembled; lying in front of the pulpit and all round it,
-the children pretended to be asleep, snoring and laughing in their
-sleeves. Farel observing three persons who appeared to be serious, went
-into the pulpit and said, pointing to the little ragamuffins: 'How many
-weapons Satan has provided to hinder our cause! Never mind, we must
-surmount every obstacle.' Being determined to refute Friar Michael, he
-began his discourse; but on a sudden the children started to their feet,
-as sharp-shooters lying flat behind the bushes start up at the approach
-of the enemy, and salute him with their fire. The young scamps exerted
-their lungs, howling and shouting with all their might, and at last
-quitted the church with a horrible uproar. 'Nobody was left but the
-minister, quite amazed. And this was the first sermon preached in the
-town of Orbe,' says the grand banneret maliciously.[391]
-
-The next day, Sunday, there was a great procession. Priests, monks, and
-all the parish, chanting as loud as they could, proceeded according to
-custom to St. George's, outside the town. Farel profited by the
-departure of the enemy to seize upon the place, and the last parishioner
-had hardly crossed the threshold of the church, when he entered it,
-followed by his friends, went up into the pulpit, and loudly declared
-the truth. Ten evangelicals, Viret, Hollard, Secretan, Romain, and six
-of their friends, composed the whole of his congregation. Meanwhile the
-procession was on its way back. First appeared the children two and two,
-then the exorcist with the holy water and the sprinkler, then came the
-priests, magistrates, and people, all singing the litany. The children,
-seeing the minister in the pulpit, and remembering the lesson they had
-received, rushed into the church, whistling, howling, and shouting as on
-the evening before. The priests and people who followed them made
-threatening motions, and Farel, understanding that the storm was about
-to burst, showed a moderation he did not always possess, came down from
-the pulpit and went out.[392]
-
-The clergy exulted: they ascribed Farel's retreat to weakness and fear,
-and said openly in the city: 'The minister cannot refute the articles of
-faith established by Juliani.' 'Indeed,' answered the Bernese bailiff,
-'you have heard the monk and you now complain that you have not heard
-the minister.... Very good! you shall hear him. It is the will of the
-lords of Berne that every father of a family be required to attend his
-sermon under pain of their displeasure.'
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL ON PENANCE.]
-
-They dared not disobey, and the church was thronged. Filled with joy at
-the sight of such a congregation, Farel ascended the pulpit: never had
-he been clearer, more energetic and more eloquent. He passed in review
-all the subjects of which Juliani had treated; at one time attacking the
-pardons which the Romish Church sells to credulous souls, at another the
-doctrine which assigns the keys of heaven to St. Peter. 'The key of the
-kingdom of heaven,' he said, 'is the Word of God—the Holy Gospel.' One
-day Farel spoke of the stupid practices imposed upon catholics under the
-name of penance. 'The penance which God demands,' he said, 'is a change
-of heart, life, and conversation.'[393] Another day he battled with
-indulgences: 'The pope's pardons take away _money_,' he said, 'but they
-do not take away _sin_. Let every christian be aware that nobody can
-escape the anger of God, except through Jesus.'[394] He thundered
-against auricular confession: 'Confession in the priest's ears which the
-pope commands,' he said, 'helps him to learn the secrets of kings and
-aids him in catching countries and kingdoms. But how many souls have
-been cast into hell by it! how many virgins corrupted! how many widows
-devoured! how many orphans ruined! how many princes poisoned! how many
-countries wasted! how many large establishments of men and women given
-up to debauchery.... O Heaven, unveil these accursed horrors! O Earth,
-cry out! Creatures of God, weep; and do thou, O Lord, arise!'[395]
-
-Farel, without possessing the iconoclastic ardour which Hollard
-displayed ere long, was indignant at the worship paid to the images of
-the saints, and strove against them with the arms of the Word. 'The
-people,' he said, 'set candles before the saints who are out of this
-world and have nothing to do with them.... While if those saints were
-alive and had need of a light to read the Gospel by, instead of giving
-them candles, you would tear out their eyes!' ... Then scandalised at
-the disorderly living of the world and the Church, the christian orator
-exclaimed: 'Farces full of scoffing, filth, and ribaldry: obscene and
-idle songs, books full of vanity, lewdness, falsehood and blasphemy,
-wicked and illicit conversations ... all this is suffered openly.... But
-the New Testament which contains the doctrine and passion of Christ is
-forbidden, as if it were the Koran of Mahomet, or a book of witchcraft
-and enchantment.... O Sun, canst thou pour thy light on such countries?
-O Earth, canst thou give thy fruits to such people? And thou, O Lord
-God, is thy vengeance so slow against such a great outrage? Arise, O
-Lord, and let the trumpet of thy holy Gospel be heard unto the ends of
-the earth.'[396]
-
-Although the catholics were indignant, and not without reason, at the
-order from Berne, which obliged them to attend the sermons opposed to
-their faith, the reformer preached without difficulty the first and
-second day; but on the third, the alarmed priests harangued their flocks
-and thundered from their pulpits against the heretical discourses; and
-from that time Farel counted few hearers in the church besides the
-friends of the Gospel. The bailiff had the good sense not to observe
-this disobedience.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL'S CARE FOR THE MINISTRY.]
-
-The surrounding districts compensated Farel for the contempt of Orbe.
-His reputation having spread into the neighbouring villages, the people
-eagerly desired to hear him. Receiving message after message, and
-touched at the sight of these worthy peasants knocking at his door, he
-wrote to Zwingle: 'Oh! how great is the harvest! No one can describe the
-ardour the people feel for the Gospel, and the tears I shed when I see
-the small number of reapers.'[397] Several of the evangelicals of Orbe
-asked to be sent out to preach, but Farel, thinking them not ripe
-enough, refused. There were some who took offence at this, but it did
-not move Farel. 'It is better to offend them,' he said, 'than to offend
-God.'
-
-Saint Paul said: _Lay hands suddenly on no man_. Farel and the other
-reformers desired that the minister should honour his ministry. He
-required above all things a converted heart, but that was not enough. It
-is a bad sign when the Church admits into the number of those who are to
-point out the gate of salvation, either men who have not passed through
-it or who have not the gift of the Word, or are deficient in wisdom. But
-if the leaders of the Church are faithful, God will send them true
-ministers.
-
-[384] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 17.
-
-[385] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 19.
-
-[386] Ibid. p. 20.
-
-[387] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 19.
-
-[388] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, pp. 21, 22.
-
-[389] 'Negat dixisse.'—_Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, pp. 24-28.
-
-[390] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, pp. 21-32.
-
-[391] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 35.
-
-[392] Ibid.
-
-[393] _Sommaire_, &c., par G. Farel, p. 191. We give Farel's exact
-expressions on the subjects handled by Juliani, just as they are found
-in his writings, without being able to say that they were precisely
-those he employed on this occasion.
-
-[394] Ibid. p. 125.
-
-[395] Farel, _Sommaire_, pp. 96, 191, 210.
-
-[396] Ibid. p. 154.
-
-[397] 'Quanta sit messis, quis populi ardor in Evangelium, paucis nemo
-expresserit. Sed paucitatem operariorum deflere cogimur.'—_Farellus
-Zuinglio_, Orba, anno 1531. _Ep._ ii. p. 648.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
- A NEW REFORMER AND AN IMAGE-BREAKER.
- (1531.)
-
-
-In 1511 William Viret, a burgess of Orbe, 'cloth-dresser and tailor,'
-had a son born to him whom he named Peter. The boy had grown up in the
-midst of the wool-combers, and had watched his father's workmen as they
-pressed, or glossed, or fulled the cloths as they came from the hands of
-the weavers. But he took no delight in this, for he was not born a
-tradesman. It was the inner man that was to be developed in him: he felt
-within himself a necessity for seeking God, which impelled him towards
-heaven. He sought the society of the best-informed burgesses, and even
-had some relations with the nobles;[398] but the first object of his
-wishes was God. If he took a walk alone, or with one of his brothers
-Anthony and John, along the picturesque banks of the Orbe, through the
-charming country bathed by its waters, and even to the foot of the
-Jura,[399] he looked around him with delight, but afterwards lifted his
-eyes to heaven. 'I was naturally given to religion,' he said, 'of which
-however I was then ignorant.... I was preparing myself for heaven,
-seeing that it was the way of salvation.'[400] He resolved to devote
-himself to the service of the altar, which his father did not oppose,
-townspeople and peasantry alike regarding it as an honour to count a
-priest among their children. Peter, who had a good understanding and
-memory, soon learnt all that was taught in the school at Orbe, and
-turned his eyes towards the University of Paris, that great light which
-twelve years before had attracted Farel's footsteps. His father, whose
-trade had placed him in easy circumstances, consented to send him to
-Paris, whither the boy proceeded in 1523, being then a little over
-twelve years of age. The same year and about the same time John Calvin
-of Noyon, who was two years older than Viret, arrived in the same city
-and entered the college of La Marche. Did these two boys, who were one
-day to be so closely united, meet then, and did their friendship begin
-with their childhood? We have not been able to satisfy ourselves on the
-point.
-
-[Sidenote: VIRET GOES TO PARIS.]
-
-Viret distinguished himself at college by his love of study; 'he made
-good progress in learning;' and also by his devotion to the practices of
-the Roman Church. 'I cannot deny,' he said, 'that I went pretty deep
-into that Babylon.'[401] In one of the last visits he made to Paris,
-Farel seems to have remarked Viret, whose charming modesty easily won
-the heart, and to have helped in freeing the young Swiss from the
-darkness in which he still lay. The Gospel penetrated the soul of the
-youthful scholar of Orbe almost at the same time as it enlightened the
-large understanding of the scholar of Noyon. The mildness of his
-character softened the struggles which had been so fierce in Farel and
-Calvin. And yet he too had to tread the path of anguish to arrive at
-peace. Perceiving a frightful abyss and an eternal night beneath his
-feet, he threw himself into the arms of the Deliverer who was calling
-him: 'While still at college,' he said, 'God took me out of the
-labyrinth of error before I had sunk deeper into that Babylon of
-Antichrist.'[402] The time having arrived when he should receive the
-tonsure, he felt that he must make up his mind: the struggle was not a
-long one; he refused, and was immediately 'set down as belonging to the
-Lutheran religion.'[403] Foreseeing what awaited him, he hastily quitted
-Paris and France, and 'returned to his father's house.' In after years
-he exclaimed: 'I thank God that the mark and sign of the beast were not
-set upon my forehead.'[404]
-
-[Sidenote: VIRET'S STRUGGLES.]
-
-Viret found Orbe greatly changed; the contest then going on between the
-gospel and popery intimidated him at first. His was one of those
-reflective souls which, absorbed by the struggles within, naturally
-shrink from those without. Like other reformers, he had a difficulty in
-quitting the body of catholicity, but a severe conscience obliged him to
-seek truth at any sacrifice. Sometimes the Church of Rome, with all its
-errors and abuses, alone struck his imagination, and he would exclaim
-with emotion: 'It is the stronghold of superstition, the fortress of
-Satan.'[405] Then all of a sudden and before he had time to defend
-himself, the old system of catholicism resumed its power over him, and
-he found himself in anguish and darkness. He struggled and prayed: the
-truth, for a moment hidden, reappeared before his eyes, and he said:
-'Rome asserts that antiquity is truth; but what is there older in the
-world than lies, rebellion, murder, extortion, impurity, idolatry, and
-all kinds of wickedness and abomination?... To follow the doctrine of
-Cain and of Sodom is verily to follow an old doctrine.... But virtue,
-truth, holiness, innocence, and thou, O God which art the Father of them
-all, are older still!'[486]
-
-The priests of Orbe, who were strongly attached to the Romish doctrine,
-seeing the cloth-dresser's son often solitary and full of care, began to
-grow uneasy about him: they accosted him and spoke of the old doctors,
-of the testimony of the saints, of Augustin, Cyprian, Chrysostom, and
-Jerome. These testimonies had much weight in Viret's mind. His head was
-bewildered, his feet slipped, and he was on the point of falling back
-into the gulf, when snatching again at the word of God, he clung to it,
-saying: 'No, I will not believe because of Tertullian or Cyprian, or
-Origen, or Chrysostom, or Peter Lombard, or Thomas Aquinas, not even
-because of Erasmus or Luther.... If I did so, I should be the disciple
-of men.... I will believe only Jesus Christ my Shepherd.'[407]
-
-At length the divine Word delivered Viret from the theocratic dominion
-of Rome, and he then began to look around him.... Alas! what did he see?
-Chains everywhere, prisoners held fast 'in the citadel of idolatry.' He
-felt the tenderest affection for the captives 'Since the Lord has
-brought me _out_' he said, 'I cannot forget those who are
-_within_.'[408] Two of these prisoners were never out of his thoughts:
-they were his father and mother. At one time absorbed by the cares of
-business, at another mechanically attending divine service, they did not
-seek after the one thing needful. The pious son began to pray earnestly
-for his parents, to show them increased respect, to read them a few
-passages of Holy Scripture, and to speak gently to them of the Saviour.
-They felt attracted by his conduct, and the faith he professed took hold
-of their hearts. The grateful Viret was able to say: 'I have much
-occasion to give thanks to God in that it hath pleased him to make use
-of me to bring my father and mother to the knowledge of the Son of
-God.... Ah! if he had made my ministry of no other use, I should have
-had good cause to bless him.'[409]
-
-As soon as Viret met Farel again at Orbe, he immediately became one of
-the evangelist's hearers, and ere long took his father along with him.
-The most intimate union sprung up between these men of God. One
-completed the other. If Farel was ardent, intrepid, and almost rash,
-Viret 'had a wondrously meek temper.'[410] There was in him a grace that
-won the heart, and a christian sensibility that was really touching; and
-yet, like Farel and Calvin, he was firm in doctrine and morals. Farel,
-always eager to send workmen into the harvest, persuaded his friend to
-preach not only in the country but in Orbe itself. The young and timid
-Viret recoiled from the task Farel proposed to him; but the reformer
-pressed him, as others had pressed Luther and Calvin; he believed that
-Viret, who belonged to the city, and was loved by everybody, would
-receive a favourable welcome. The thought of the divine grace, the
-strength of which he knew, decided Viret. 'Let it not be my mouth which
-persuades,' he said, 'but the mouth of Jesus Christ; for it is Jesus
-Christ who pierces the heart with the fiery arrow of his Spirit.'[411]
-
-[Sidenote: VIRET PREACHES AT ORBE.]
-
-On the 6th May 1531 an unusual crowd, not only of townspeople but of
-persons from the neighbourhood, filled the church of Orbe; the son of
-one of the most respected of the burgesses, a child of the place, was to
-enter the pulpit. He was accused of being rather heretical, but he was
-so inoffensive, that nobody would believe it; and besides, many of the
-young folks of Orbe, who had sported with him on the banks of the river,
-wished to see their old playfellow in the pulpit. The congregation, who
-were waiting impatiently, saw the young man appear at last: he was of
-small stature and pale complexion, his face thin and long, his eyes
-lively, and the whole expression meek and winning;[412] he was only
-twenty years old, but appeared to be younger still. He preached: his
-sermon was accompanied by so much unction and learning, his language was
-so persuasive, his eloquence so searching and penetrating, that even the
-most worldly men were attracted by his discourse and hung, as it were,
-upon his lips.[413] The proverb 'No man is a prophet in his own country'
-was not exemplified in Viret's case. The 6th of May was a great day for
-him. All his life through he preserved the recollection of his first
-sermons. Thirty years later he said to the nobles and burgesses of Orbe:
-'Your church was the first in which God was pleased to make use of my
-ministry, when it was still in its youth, and I was very young.'[414]
-
-From that day Viret took his place in that noble army of heralds of the
-Word which the Lord was raising among the nations. His part in it was
-modest but well marked. The college of reformers, as well as the college
-of the apostles, contained the most different characters. As the sap is
-everywhere the same in nature, the Spirit of God is everywhere the same
-in the Church; but everywhere alike each of them produces different
-flowers and different fruits. The ardent Farel was the St. Peter of the
-Swiss Reform, the mighty Calvin the St. Paul, and the gentle Viret the
-St. John.
-
-[Sidenote: CONVERSION OF ELIZABETH D'ARNEX.]
-
-Farel, Viret, Romain, Hollard, and the other evangelicals waited for the
-effects of the preaching at Orbe. They saw clearly 'some slight touches
-and pricks, but few persons had been wounded and pierced to the quick,'
-and so overwhelmed with the feeling of everlasting death, that they
-thought of looking for help solely to the grace of Jesus Christ. All of
-a sudden, and a month only after Farel's arrival, the report of an
-unexpected conversion filled Orbe with astonishment, and became the
-subject of general conversation. It was said—and he who repeated it
-could hardly believe it—that Madame Elizabeth, the wife of the lord of
-Arnex, the very same who had planned the women's conspiracy and so
-severely beaten Farel, was entirely changed; that even her husband, who
-had become bail for Juliani, and had set him at liberty, had changed
-likewise. The bigots of both sexes could not deny the fact. 'Really,'
-they said, 'she has become one of the worst lutherans in the city.' Not
-long after, they made a great noise because at All Saints or some feast
-of Our Lady, Elizabeth had a large wash or other manual labours at her
-house.[415] They shook their heads, shrugged their shoulders, and
-smiled. The evangelicals did not imitate them: they thought, to borrow
-the language of one of their leaders, that though these iron-hearted
-people smiled, it was a forced smile,[416] for they felt as if inwardly
-choking.... They knew that God's word is a hammer, and that there is
-nothing so hard, so massive, or so hidden in the heart of man that its
-power cannot reach.... Had not Paul been a persecutor like Elizabeth and
-Hugonin?
-
-Worse still, at least in the opinion of the catholics, happened ere
-long. One of the ecclesiastics of the place was George Grivay, surnamed
-Calley, an excellent musician who had been appointed precentor. He had
-been trained by a fervent catholic mother, and had received a good
-education in the church.[417] In order to receive further instruction
-his parents had sent him to Lausanne, where he had been made chorister
-and had particularly improved in the knowledge of music. On his return
-to Orbe the nobles and priests had given him a flattering reception; and
-he deserved it, for he enchanted the people by his singing or
-electrified them by his discourses. But on the 10th May 1531, the same
-month in which Viret delivered his first sermon, Grivat had gone up into
-the pulpit and astonished his hearers by preaching the evangelical
-doctrine in the clearest manner. This was too much; his father and his
-brothers were in despair; nobles and friends who had received him so
-well exclaimed in great irritation: 'Have we not given him good wages;
-has not the Church fed and taught him? and now he wants to imitate the
-cuckoo that eats the mother who reared it.'[418]
-
-[Sidenote: LORD'S SUPPER AT ORBE.]
-
-As these successive conversions gave the evangelicals more courage, they
-took an important step. Feeling the necessity of being strengthened in
-the faith by the celebration of the Lord's Supper, they asked for it,
-and Farel, who was then at Morat, immediately returned to Orbe. On
-Whitsunday (28th May) at six in the morning—an hour selected to insure
-tranquillity for the act they were about to perform—he announced to a
-numerous assembly collected in the church the remission of all sins by
-the breaking of Christ's body on the cross; and as soon as the sermon
-was ended, eight disciples came forward to break bread. They were
-Hugonin of Arnex and his wife, C. Hollard and his aged mother, Cordey
-and his wife, William Viret, Peter's father, and George Grivat,
-afterwards pastor at Avenches; many of the evangelicals did not think
-themselves sufficiently advanced in the faith to take part in this act,
-and doubtless Peter Viret was absent. Two of the eight disciples
-modestly spread a white cloth over a bench, on which they placed the
-bread and wine. Farel sank on his knees and prayed, all following his
-prayer in their hearts. When the minister rose up he asked: 'Do you each
-forgive one another?'... and the believers answered Yes. Next Farel
-broke off a morsel of bread for each, saying he gave it them in memory
-of Christ's passion, and after that he handed them the cup. The minister
-and these true disciples possessed by faith the real presence of Jesus
-in their hearts. They had hardly finished when the exasperated priests
-entered the church hastily and sang the mass as loud as they could. The
-next day, Whitmonday, there was a fresh scandal: the evangelicals were
-at work. 'Ha!' said many indignantly; 'they keep no holiday, _except the
-Sunday_!'[419]
-
-If the evangelisation had continued in a peaceful course of christian
-edification, the city would in all probability have been entirely gained
-over; but the Reformation had its 'enfants terribles.' Calvin said in
-vain: 'Those who are wise according to God are modest, peaceable, and
-gentle. They do not conceal vices; they endeavour rather to correct
-them, but provided it be in peace, that is to say, with so much
-moderation that unity remains unbroken. Peaceable and loving
-representations ought not to be laid aside, and those who desire to be
-physicians must not be executioners.'[420]
-
-A fine stone crucifix in St. Germain's cemetery had been thrown down,
-and another, which stood at a cross road near the city, had been
-destroyed: but this had been done at night and it was not known by whom.
-Ere long the ardent reformers grew bolder, and especially Christopher
-Hollard, a true iconoclast of the Reform, who thought more of pulling
-down than of building up. One day, as Farel was preaching before the
-deputies of Berne and Friburg, Hollard flew at an image of the Virgin
-and dashed it to pieces. Another day he threw down the great altar of
-the church of Our Lady. This was not enough.
-
-According to Hollard, whose mind was upright, and even pious, but
-ardent, extreme, and rather deficient in judgment, the Reformation, that
-is to say, the destruction of images and altars, did not go on fast
-enough, and he therefore resolved to carry it out on a grand scale. He
-took twelve companions with him; and these agents of the judgments of
-God (as they thought themselves), going from street to street and from
-church to church, 'pulled down all the altars' in the seven churches of
-the city; twenty-six heaps of rubbish bore witness to their triumph.
-They could say, no doubt, that all worship paid to an image is a relic
-of paganism; but their fault was to suppose that catholics ought to
-adore God, not according to their catholic conscience, but according to
-that of the reformed protestants. The people looked at each other with
-alarm, but said nothing. 'I was greatly astonished,' says De
-Pierrefleur, 'at the patience of the populace.' 'Sir banneret,' observed
-some catholics, 'if we did not feel great loyalty towards our lords of
-Berne, the body of Christopher Hollard would not have touched earth;'
-that is to say, they would have hanged him. These combatants were pretty
-well matched for gentleness. The catholics set up tables in the place of
-the altars, upon which they celebrated mass 'rather meanly.'[421]
-
-[Sidenote: ARREST OF THE PRIESTS.]
-
-The intolerance of Christopher Hollard and of one of his friends, named
-Tavel, threatened to substitute a new tyranny for the ancient tyranny of
-popery. Alas! the protestant clergy have sometimes been known to oppose
-the disciples and doctrines of the gospel, just as the Romish clergy
-would have done. Intolerance is a vice of human nature which even piety
-does not always cure. The priests saying mass at their little tables
-offended Hollard and Tavel. Agasse was no longer governor; he had been
-removed by the influence of Berne, and Anthony Secretan, one of the
-reformed, put in his place. The two fiery Lutherans laid a complaint
-before him against all priests as being murderers (of souls); and
-according to the custom of the age, surrendered themselves prisoners.
-The governor ordered the Roman ecclesiastics to be arrested, which was
-no easy matter, for there were some sturdy fellows among them. Three
-sergeants having attempted to seize Messire Pierre Bovey in the street,
-the stout priest 'dragged them into the passage of a house,' and there
-beat them so that they were glad to escape out of his hands. Having thus
-defended himself like a lion, he remained free; but it was not so with
-Blaise Foret, the curé, who 'went like a sheep straight to prison.' The
-officers put him along with the rest, who were 'well treated at bed and
-board, with permission to go all over the castle.'[422] Some bold
-priests (for they were not all shut up) chanted mass at five o'clock in
-the morning, notwithstanding the prohibition. The catholics attended
-'armed with pikes, halberds, and clubs; and rang the bells as if the
-city were on fire'. Before long the intolerant protestants received a
-severe and well merited lesson.
-
-[Sidenote: RELEASE OF THE PRIESTS.]
-
-The grand banneret Pierrefleur, who was a man of the world, well read,
-of a cultivated mind, charming simplicity, and profound intelligence,
-combined great decision of character with Vaudois good-temper. Being a
-catholic from conviction, and knowing that the majority of the
-inhabitants were for the Roman faith, and disgusted at seeing the
-priests in prison and the faithful compelled to hear mass almost in
-secret, he summoned a general council of the people. 'Will you,' he
-asked them, 'will you have the mass, and live and die in the holy faith,
-like your forefathers? If you do wish it, let every one hold up his
-finger, and if perchance there should be any one of a contrary opinion,
-let him leave the assembly.' Every one raised his finger in token of an
-oath, whereupon the Friburgers sent a herald to Orbe. The priests were
-taken out of prison, and those who had helped to pull down the altars
-were put in their place. There were fifteen in all, and among them was
-Elizabeth's husband, the noble Hugonin of Arnex. They were not so well
-treated at 'bed and board' as the priests had been, but were put on
-bread and water; after three days, however, they were allowed to return
-home.[423] During this time the priests and fervent catholics were
-restoring the altars everywhere. It required more than twenty years for
-the Reform in Orbe to recover from the blow inflicted on it by the
-intolerance of Hollard and his friends. It was not until 1554 that an
-assembly of the people decided by a majority of eighteen votes in favour
-of the establishment of evangelical worship. The priests, nuns, and
-friars then left the city for ever, amid the tears of their
-supporters.[424]
-
-[398] 'Moy qui suis nay, et ay esté dès mon enfance nourry au milieu de
-vous.'—_Ep. de Viret aux nobles et bourgeois d'Orbe_, p. 13.
-
-[399] These districts have been admirably described in a recent
-work—_Horizons prochains_.
-
-[400] _Disputations Chrestiennes_, par Pierre Viret, Geniève, 1544.
-_Préface._
-
-[401] Ibid. _Préface._
-
-[402] _Disputations Chrestiennes. Préface._
-
-[403] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 37.
-
-[404] _Disputations Chrestiennes. Préface._
-
-[405] 'Arcem illam superstitionis et idolatriæ, et Satanæ propugnacula.
-Viret, _De verbi Dei ministerio_, Senatui Lausan. Ep.
-
-[406] _Disp. Chrest._ p. 9.
-
-[407] Ibid. pp. 195-6.
-
-[408] _Disp. Chrest._ Préface.
-
-[409] Viret: _Du vrai ministère de la vraye Eglise de Jésus-Christ_.
-Préface.
-
-[410] Théod. de Bèze.
-
-[411] Viret: _Du vray ministère_, pp. 47, 57.
-
-[412] 'Fuit corpusculo imbecillo, moribus suavis.'—Melchior Adam,
-_Vitæ erudit_.
-
-[413] 'Oris præcipue facundia excellens, ut homines etiam religioni
-minus addictos, faciles tamen auditores habuerit, cum omnes ab ejus ore
-penderent.'—Ibid.
-
-[414] _Du combat des hommes contre leur propre salut_, pp. 7-8.
-
-[415] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, pp. 133-134.
-
-[416] Un ris d'hôtellier.
-
-[417] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 263.
-
-[418] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 41.
-
-[419] We are indebted to the catholic Pierrefleur for these particulars.
-_Mémoires_, p. 44.
-
-[420] Calvin, _Op._ S. Jacques, iv. 18.
-
-[421] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, pp. 41-42, 50-51.
-
-[422] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, pp. 52-53.
-
-[423] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 56.
-
-[424] 'Vicerunt nostrioctodecim suffragiis.'—Viret to Calvin, 11th
-August, 1554. See also Pierrefleur, p. 297.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
- THE BATTLES OF GRANDSON.
- (1531-1532.)
-
-
-Farel's zeal was not cooled by the check he had received at Orbe; he saw
-before him other places that must be evangelised. If he withstood the
-ambitious demands of the new converts who, like Hollard, fancied
-themselves more capable than they really were, and indiscreetly sought
-for consecration to the holy office, he did but seek with more zeal for
-servants of God, who possessed a spirit of strength, charity, and
-prudence. Certain men appeared to him to have been ripened in France by
-persecution. He invited into Switzerland Toussaint, Lecomte,
-Symphoranus, Andronicus, and others. As soon as these brethren arrived,
-he sent them into the harvest;[425] and frequently after fervent prayers
-he seemed to see the whole valley enclosed between the Jura and the Alps
-filled with the living waters of the Gospel. 'Of a truth,' said he, 'if
-we look at the times that have gone before, the work of Christ is
-glorious now.... And yet what roots remain to be torn up before the
-field is ready to receive the divine seed.[426] What works to be
-accomplished, what toils to be endured, what enemies to be overcome!...
-We have need of labourers inured to labour.... I cannot promise them
-mountains of gold,[427] but I know that the Father will never abandon
-His own, and that He will give them an abundant harvest.'
-
-[Sidenote: MALADY OF PETTY QUESTIONS.]
-
-In Farel's heart overwhelming depression often followed close upon the
-fairest expectations. One sorrow especially afflicted him: the malady of
-petty questions seemed threatening to invade the new Church. At all
-times narrow and ill-balanced minds attach themselves to certain details
-in the doctrine of baptism, the Lord's Supper, the ministry, and so
-forth: they are eager about _anise and cummin_[428] and by their minutiæ
-encumber the kingdom of Christ. Farel, who with a holy doctrine and
-unwearied activity combined a wise discernment and a large liberal
-spirit, trembled lest this weakness of little understandings had crept
-into the minds of the ministers to whom he addressed his call. There
-happened to be at Strasburg just then a christian man named Andronicus,
-whom the reformer desired to attract into Switzerland; but he wished to
-know whether he was tainted with formalism or fanaticism—two evils which
-sometimes met on the banks of the Rhine. He resolved to speak frankly to
-him, and his letter shows us his opinion of the ministry: 'Dear
-brother,' he wrote to Andronicus, 'do you possess Christ so as to teach
-Him purely, apart from the empty controversies of _bread_ and _water_,
-_taxes_ and _tithes_, which in the eyes of many constitute
-Christianity?[429] Are you content to require of all that, renouncing
-ungodliness and unrighteousness, they should arm themselves with faith,
-and press to their hearts the heavenly treasure, Christ who sitteth at
-the right hand of the Father? Are you ready to give to all authorities
-what is their due—taxes, tithes—to pay them not only to the ungodly, but
-also to the brethren? Do you seek Christ's glory only? Do you propose
-simply to plant in their hearts the faith that worketh by charity? Are
-you resolved to bear the cross? for, be assured, the cross awaits you at
-the door. If you are ready to bear it, then, dear brother, come
-instantly.' Such was the wise language of the most ardent of the
-reformers.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL'S MODE OF RECRUITING.]
-
-While Farel was thus loudly calling for new workers, he was getting rid
-of the idle and cowardly, promising to all of them fatigue, insult, and
-persecution: it was with such promises that the reformer levied his
-soldiers. 'Do not look for idleness, but for labour,'[430] he said;
-'only after fatigue will you find repose, and you will not reap until
-after you have sown at your own cost. A wide door is opened, but no one
-can enter except those who desire to feed the sheep and not to devour
-them, and who are determined to reply with kindness to the insults with
-which they are assailed. Labour and toil await you.[431] I can promise
-you nothing but trouble.... If you will come with us, know that you are
-entering into a hard service. You will have to fight not against craven
-and disheartened adversaries, but against enemies brimful of decision
-and strength. Be therefore a brave and noble soldier; attack the enemy
-joyfully, and rush into the hottest of the fight, placing your
-confidence in God, to whom alone belong the battle and the victory. It
-is not we who fight, but the Lord.'[432]
-
-But Farel called to the battle in vain: the timid recruits would not
-join the army. He received some little help indeed, but what was that
-for so great a work? Then his appeals grew louder. In the presence of
-the gigantic Alps, this humble man rose like them: his language swelled
-and resembled rather the cry of a soldier struggling in the midst of the
-enemy's ranks, than the sweet and subtle voice of the Gospel of peace.
-'We are in the thick of the fight,' he said; 'the conflict is terrible;
-we are fighting man to man ... but the Lord giveth the victory to his
-own.[433] Take up the sword, set the helmet on your head, buckle on the
-breastplate, hang the shield to your arm, gird your loins; and being
-thus armed with the panoply of God, rush into the midst of the battle,
-hurl the darts, throw down the enemy on every side, and put all the army
-to flight.[434]... But alas! instead of joining the soldiers of Christ,
-instead of rushing into the Lord's battles, you fear the cross, and the
-dangers that lie in wait for you. Preferring your own ease, you refuse
-to come to the assistance of your brethren.... Is that the behaviour of
-a christian?... The Holy Scriptures declare that the Lord will exact a
-severe reckoning for such cowardice.... Beware lest you bury the talent
-you have received.... Call to mind that you must give an account of all
-those souls, whom tyranny holds captive in its gloomy dungeons. You can
-set the light before their eyes, you can deliver them from their chains,
-you must conjure them to throw themselves into the arms of Jesus
-Christ.... Do not hesitate.... Christ must be preferred to everything.
-Do not trouble yourself about what your wife wishes and requires, but
-about what God asks and commands.'[435] More powerful solicitations had
-never been made; there was a new Paul in the world at this time. At last
-Farel's earnestness prevailed. Andronicus and others hastened to him,
-and laboured with him in the country that stretches from Basle and Berne
-as far as Geneva.
-
-[Sidenote: FIRST BATTLE OF GRANDSON.]
-
-Delighted at receiving such helpers, the reformer hastened to fresh
-combats. Every parish, village, and town was to be won to Christ by an
-obstinate struggle. There is no soldier that has fought more battles. We
-can only find a parallel to Farel in the convert of Damascus. He took
-with him De Glautinis, minister of Tavannes, in the Bernese Jura, who
-had come to his help, and quitted Orbe, leaving on his left the
-picturesque gorge of the Jura, where the village of St. Croix lies hid,
-and over which soar the lofty tops of the Chasseron, and turned his
-steps towards Grandson. Ere long he came in sight of the celebrated
-walls of the old castle which stood near the extremity of the lake of
-Neuchâtel. This place, which was about to become an evangelical
-battle-field, had witnessed a far different struggle. Here, in 1476, the
-Swiss had rushed from the heights of Champagne and Bonvillars, while the
-terrible roaring of the bull of Uri portended death, and the cow of
-Unterwald uttered its warning sound.[436] Here they bent the knee in
-presence of the hostile columns, and rising with shouts of '_Grandson!_'
-playing their fearful music, unfurling their ancient banners, and
-guarding them with their long and formidable spears, they charged the
-Burgundians with the rush of the tempest. Vainly did the commander of
-the cavalry, Sire Louis of Château-Guyon, brother of the Prince of
-Orange and of the Lord of Orbe and Grandson,—vainly did he spur his
-large war-horse and charge impetuously at the head of six thousand
-horsemen; vainly did he seize the banner of Schwytz, In der Gruob of
-Berne had given him a death-blow, and the Burgundians, as they saw the
-gigantic warrior fall, were struck with terror. Grandson as well as Orbe
-were lost to the family of that hero, and the sovereignty of the two
-towns passed to the cantons of Berne and Friburg. A panic spread through
-the ranks, and Charles the Bold was forced to fly, leaving behind him
-four hundred silk tents embroidered with gold and pearls, six hundred
-standards, and an immense quantity of plate, money, jewels, and precious
-stones. This vigorous attack and glorious victory, the fame of which
-still remained in that peaceful country, was a type of the work that
-Farel was to accomplish. By his means, Berne was about to strike at
-Grandson as well as Orbe a more formidable enemy than the Lord of
-Château-Guyon.[437]
-
-On the shore of the lake at the entrance of the town stood the vast
-convent of the Gray Friars. Farel and his friend De Glautinis, who
-accompanied him, stopped before its walls and said to each other that to
-this place doubtless the Lord had first directed their steps. They rang,
-entered the parlour, and the superior of the monastery, Friar Guy Regis,
-having asked them what they wanted, they begged him very coolly 'in the
-name of the Lords of Berne,' to grant them the use of the church. But
-Guy Regis, a resolute man and earnest priest, who knew all that had
-happened at Orbe, was offended at such insolence. 'Heretic!' said he to
-Farel. 'Son of a Jew!' exclaimed another monk. The reception was not
-encouraging. The two ministers discussed with some friends of the Word
-of God, what was to be done. 'Go to the priory on the hill,' said the
-latter. 'As you bear a letter from Messieurs of Berne for the prior, the
-monks will not dare refuse you.'
-
-[Sidenote: THE BENEDICTINE CONVENT.]
-
-Accordingly Farel, De Glautinis, and a few of the brethren, proceeded to
-the Benedictine convent. They knocked and the door was opened; several
-monks appeared. As they knew already something about the arrival of the
-missionaries, they looked at them from head to foot, and Farel had
-scarcely asked permission to preach, when a loud uproar arose in the
-cloister. The sacristan hid a pistol under his frock, another friar
-armed himself with a knife, and both came forward stealthily to lay
-hands upon the _heretic_ who (according to them) was disturbing all the
-churches. The sacristan arrived first; pointing the pistol at Farel with
-one hand, he seized him with the other, and pulling him along,
-endeavoured to drag him into the convent, where a prison awaited him. De
-Glautinis observing this, sprang forward to rescue his friend, but the
-other monk, arriving at the scene of combat, fell upon him, flourishing
-his knife. Alarmed by the noise within the cloister, the friends of the
-evangelists, who had remained at the door, waiting to know whether they
-could hear Farel or not, rushed in and tore both him and his comrade
-from the stout arms of the monks. The gates of the monastery were closed
-immediately, and they remained so for a whole fortnight, so great was
-the terror inspired by the reformers.
-
-Farel seeing there was nothing to be done at Grandson just then,
-departed for Morat, beseeching De Glautinis, whom he left behind him, to
-take advantage of every opportunity to proclaim the gospel. The monks
-entrenched within their walls, trembled, deliberated, kept watch, and
-armed themselves against this one man, as if they had an army before
-them. Convent gates and church doors were all close shut. De Glautinis,
-finding that he could not preach in the churches, determined to preach
-in the streets and in private houses; but he had hardly begun when the
-monks, informed by the signals of their agents whom they had instructed
-not to lose sight of the evangelist, made a vigorous sally. Guy Regis,
-the valiant superior of the Gray Friars, the precentor, and all the
-monks came to the place where De Glautinis was preaching, and boldly
-placed themselves between him and his hearers: 'Come,' said the
-superior, 'come, if you dare, before the king or the emperor. Come to
-Besançon, to Dôle, or to Paris; I will show you and all the world that
-your preaching is mere witchcraft. Begone, we have had enough of you.
-You shall not enter the churches.' As soon as this harangue was over,
-the monks capped it by roaring out: 'Heretic, son of a Jew, apostate!'
-The troop having thus fired their volley, hastily retreated within their
-walls.[438]
-
-Some Bernese deputies, who chanced to be at Neuchâtel, hearing what was
-going on at Grandson, went thither without delay. They did not wish to
-force the people to be converted, but they desired that all under their
-rule should hear the gospel without hindrance, and thus have liberty to
-decide with full knowledge for Rome or for the Reformation. When the
-Bernese lords arrived at Grandson, which is not far from Neuchâtel, they
-ordered the conventual churches to be thrown open to the reformers. A
-messenger was sent to Farel, who returned immediately, bringing Viret
-with him, and from the 12th May the three evangelists began to preach
-Sundays and week-days. The monks, surprised, irritated, and yet
-restrained by fear of their dread lords, looked with gloomy eyes on the
-crowd that came to hear the _heresy_. The superior of the Gray Friars,
-who had a great reputation for learning, thought himself called upon to
-resist the reformers. They had hardly left the pulpit when he entered
-it, and thus Farel and Guy Regis attacked and refuted each other,
-struggling, so to say, hand to hand. The evangelist preached grace, the
-monk prescribed works; the former reproached his opponent with
-disobeying Scripture, the latter reproached the other with disobeying
-the Church. The monks went further still: they conjured the magistrates
-to come to the defence of the faith, and the latter outlawed the
-ministers, while the sergeants arrested them. The populace, seeing them
-in the hands of the officers, followed them and covered them with abuse,
-and they were shut up in prison.[439]
-
-Thus the struggle descended to the people and grew all the warmer.
-Parties were formed, bands were organised. The catholics, in order to
-distinguish themselves, stuck fir-cones in their caps, and thus adorned
-stalked proudly through the streets. Their adversaries said to them as
-they passed: 'You insult Messieurs of Berne;' to which they arrogantly
-answered: 'You shall not prevent us.'
-
-[Sidenote: REINFORCEMENT FROM YVERDUN.]
-
-The inhabitants of Yverdun, a neighbouring town, which eagerly espoused
-the cause defended by Guy Regis, organised, not a troop of soldiers, but
-a procession. It quitted the town and passed along the shore of the
-lake; clerical banners instead of military colours waved above their
-heads, sacred chants instead of drums and trumpets filled the air. At
-last this curious reinforcement reached the city where such a fierce
-struggle was going on. The catholics no longer doubted of victory. Men's
-minds grew heated and their passions were inflamed. Farel and his
-friends, having been set at liberty, a black friar named Claude de
-Boneto stuck to the reformer and loaded him with abuse. The latter
-undismayed said: 'Christians, withdraw from the pope who has laid
-insupportable burdens on your back, which he will not touch with the tip
-of his finger. Come to Him who has taken all your burden and placed it
-on his own shoulders. Do not trust in the priests or in Rome. Have
-confidence in Jesus Christ.'[440] The council of Berne took up the
-defence of the evangelist, and condemned friar Boneto.[441]
-
-As the support of Yverdun had produced no effect, help was sent from
-Lausanne. On St. John's day (24th June) a cordelier arrived at Grandson
-to preach in honour of the saint. The church of the Franciscans was soon
-crowded, and Farel and De Glautinis were in the midst of the throng. The
-strange things which the preacher said filled them with sorrow;
-presently the reformer stood up, and (as was the custom of the times)
-began to refute the monk. The latter stopped, and the eyes of the
-assembly were turned upon the minister with signs of anger. The bailiff,
-John Reyff of Friburg, a good catholic, unable to restrain himself,
-raised his hand and struck Farel. This was the signal for a battle.
-Judges, gray friars, and burgesses of Grandson, who had come armed to
-the church, fell upon the two ministers, threw them to the ground, and
-showered blows and kicks upon them. Their friends hastened to their
-help, flung themselves into the midst of the fray, and succeeded in
-rescuing the reformers from the hands of the riotous crowd, but not
-before they had been 'grievously maltreated in the face and other
-parts.' The grand banneret of Orbe saw it, and it is he who tells the
-story.[442]
-
-[Sidenote: THE SENTINELS.]
-
-The evangelicals lost no time: one of them started off at once to see
-the Sieur de Watteville, the avoyer of Berne, who chanced to be at his
-estate of Colombier, three leagues from Grandson. That magistrate went
-to the town, and wishing to put the inhabitants in a position to
-exercise the right of free enquiry, according to the principles of
-Berne, he ordered the cordelier and Farel to preach by turns, and then
-went to the church, attended by his servant, with the view of hearing
-both preachers. But there was something else to be done first. The
-people were still agitated with the emotions of the preceding day, and
-pretended that the reformers wanted to pull down the great crucifix,
-which was much respected by all the city. Two monks, Tissot and Gondoz,
-were distinguished by their zeal for the doctrines of the pope; sincere
-but fanatical, they would have thought they were doing God a service by
-murdering Farel. They had been posted as sentinels to defend the image
-supposed to be threatened. Armed with axes hidden under their frocks,
-they paced backwards and forwards, silent and watchful, at the foot of
-the stairs which led to the gallery where the famous crucifix stood.
-When the Lord of Berne appeared, one of the sentinels, seeing a strange
-face, which had an heretical look about it, stopped him abruptly. 'Stand
-back, you cannot pass this way,' he said, while his comrade rudely
-pushed the Sieur de Watteville. 'Gently,' said the avoyer in a grave
-tone; 'you should not get in such a heat.' The patrician's serving-man,
-exasperated at this want of respect to his master, and less calm than he
-was, caught the cowled sentinel round the body, and feeling the axe
-under his frock, took it away and was about to strike him with it, when
-the Bernese lord checked him. All the monks fled in alarm, and De
-Watteville remaining master of the ground, placed his servant there on
-guard. The latter, stalking up and down with the axe on his shoulder,
-kept watch instead of the monks.
-
-He had been there only a few minutes, when about thirty women, with
-flashing eyes and sullen air, each holding her serge apron gathered up
-in front, made their appearance and endeavoured to get into the gallery.
-Some had filled their aprons with mould from their gardens, and others
-with ashes from their kitchens, and with these weapons they were
-marching to battle. Their plan was not, indeed, to engage in a regular
-fight, but to lie in ambush in the gallery near the pulpit; and then as
-soon as Farel appeared, to throw the ashes into his eyes and the earth
-into his mouth, and so silence the fearless preacher of the Gospel. This
-was their notion of controversy. The troop approached: the avoyer's
-serving-man, firm as became a servant of my lord of Berne, was still
-pacing to and fro, axe in hand. He perceived the feminine battalion,
-immediately saw what was their intention, and advanced brandishing the
-weapon he had taken from the monks. The devotees of Grandson, seeing a
-Bernese instead of a gray friar, were alarmed; they shrieked, let go
-their aprons, suffered the mould and ashes to fall upon the floor of the
-church, and ran off to their homes.
-
-[Sidenote: CONVERSION OF THE MONKS.]
-
-The conspiracies of the monks and of the women being thus baffled, the
-Bernese magistrate did not take advantage of it to make Farel preach
-alone. He wished the balance to be even. The gray friar therefore and
-the reformer quietly took their turns. Tissot and Gondoz, who had
-stopped De Watteville, were imprisoned for a fortnight. The two monks,
-recovering from their passion, began to consider what this _Lutheran
-doctrine_ could be which possessed such stanch adherents. The reformers
-visited them, and showed them much affection. The monks were touched,
-they saw that the heresy of which they had been so afraid was simply the
-all-merciful Gospel of Jesus Christ. They left the prison with new
-thoughts, and two years later, says the banneret, 'they received the
-Lutheran law, were made preachers, one at Fontaines, the other at
-Chavornay, married, and had a large family of children.' In the days of
-the Reformation, as in those of the apostles, it was often seen that
-those who 'kicked against the pricks' obtained mercy and became heralds
-of the faith.[443]
-
-A last tumult was to cause the principles of religious liberty to be
-proclaimed in Switzerland. It occurred at Orbe during the Christmas
-holidays. The catholics, proud of the midnight devotions customary among
-them at that season of the year, insulted the reformed: 'Go to bed,'
-they said; 'while we are singing the praises of God in the church you
-will be sleeping in your beds like swine.'... The reformers, who did not
-like midnight masses with all their profanations, desired to take
-advantage of the evening hours, when the cessation of labour gave an
-opportunity of collecting a large congregation. At seven o'clock on
-Christmas eve they asked the governor for the keys of the church: 'It is
-not sermon time,' he answered, 'and you shall not have them.' They
-rejoined that every hour, except at night, was sermon time; and being
-determined to begin the evening services, they went to the church,
-opened the doors, the preacher got up into the pulpit, and in a moment
-the place was crowded. A few priests or bigots, peeping into the
-building, exclaimed in surprise at the crowd: 'The devil must have sent
-a good many there!' The minister (it may have been Viret) explained the
-great mystery of faith, the coming of the Saviour, and asked his hearers
-if they would not receive him into their hearts. The sermon had lasted
-some time, and the clock struck nine. Immediately the bells rang, and
-the catholics crowded into the church, although there was no service at
-that hour.
-
-The reformed, being unwilling to quarrel, retired home quietly; but a
-mischievous fellow, who had crept into the assembly with the intention
-of exciting the people, began to whisper to his neighbours that the
-heretics were going to destroy everything at St. Claire. This was false,
-but they believed it; the crowd deserted the altars, and, meeting with a
-few reformers in the streets, knocked some down, and broke the heads of
-others; the best known among them had already reached home, but the
-catholic population assembled in front of their houses, and threw stones
-at their windows. Viret departed for Berne with ten of the reformed, in
-order to make his complaint.[444]
-
-[Sidenote: FIRST ACT OF RELIGIOUS LIBERTY.]
-
-A few days later, on the 9th January 1532, two hundred and thirty
-ministers assembled at Berne, among whom was the wise Capito, and formed
-a sort of council. Having most of them left the Romish church, they
-desired liberty not only for themselves, but also for their adversaries.
-The laymen were of the same opinion. Berne, the representative of
-protestantism, agreed with Friburg, the champion of popery, on this
-subject. 'We desire,' said the Bernese, 'that every one should have free
-choice to go to the preaching or to mass.' 'And we also,' said the
-Friburgers. 'We desire that all should live in peace together, and that
-neither priests nor preachers should call their adversaries heretics or
-murderers. 'And we also,' said the Friburgers. 'Nevertheless, we do not
-wish to hinder the priests and preachers from conferring amicably and
-fraternally concerning the faith.' 'Quite right,' said the Friburgers.
-These articles, and others like them—the first monument of religious
-liberty in Switzerland—were published on the 30th January 1532.[445] It
-is to be regretted that this proclamation of the sixteenth century was
-not henceforward taken as a pattern in all christian countries, and in
-Switzerland, where it was drawn up. The order did not for long prevent
-violent collisions.
-
-We shall now leave this quarter, and follow elsewhere the great champion
-of the Word of God, Farel; but we shall return here later. The
-evangelical seed was to be sown still more abundantly in the Pays de
-Vaud, and that soil, which appeared adverse at first, will produce and
-has produced, in our days especially, the finest of fruits.
-
-[425] 'Fratres qui huc venerunt in messem missi sunt.'—Farellus
-Andronico, Jan. 27, 1531. Choupard MSS.
-
-[426] 'Quam difficiles eradicatu supersunt radices, antequam novale
-jaciendo semini sit idoneum.'—Farellus Andronico, Jan. 27, 1531.
-Choupard MSS.
-
-[427] 'Aureos montes polliceri nolo.'—Ibid.
-
-[428] Matthew xxiii. 23.
-
-[429] 'Sine vanis controversiis vel aquæ vel panis aut censuum aut
-decimarum, in quibus pars Christianismum putat.'—Farellus Andronico.
-Choupard MSS.
-
-[430] Non est quod otium expectes sed negotium.'—Farellus Andronico,
-Feb. 12, 1531.
-
-[431] 'Labores plurimi.'—Ibid.
-
-[432] 'Sed in ipso pugnæ æstu, robustos ac plenis viribus hostes alacer
-aggrediaris, collocata in Deum fiducia, cujus est victoria sicut et
-pugna; non enim nos pugnamus, sed Dominus.'—Farellus Andronico. Jan. 27,
-1531. Choupard MSS.
-
-[433] 'Pugnam fervere, cum hostibus consertas manus jungere, victoriam
-suis impartire, sed non citra sudorem.'—Farellus Andronico, April 1531.
-Choupard MSS.
-
-[434] 'In medios hostes prosilire, jacula vibrare, hostes hinc inde
-prosternere ac dissipare.'—Ibid.
-
-[435] 'Nec tantopere curandum quid uxor velit et poscat, sed quæ Deus
-ipse petat et jubeat.'—Farellus Andronico, April, 1531. Choupard MSS.
-
-[436] Warlike musical instruments.
-
-[437] Chronique de Neuchâtel. Chant de bataille, par un Lucernois.
-Müller, _Hist. de la Conféd. Suisse_.
-
-[438] _Chroniqueur_, p. 112.
-
-[439] 'Duræchet, gebalgets, verschmæht.... Gott gelæstert.'—Berne to the
-bailli of Grandson, June 7.
-
-[440] _Sommaire_, etc. p. 181.
-
-[441] The Choupard MS. gives the sentence of Berne under the date of
-17th June 1531.
-
-[442] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 167.
-
-[443] Choupard MSS. Stettler MSS. _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur._
-
-[444] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, p. 74. Ruchat, iii. p. 45.
-
-[445] _Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur_, pp. 82-85. Choupard MSS.
-Ruchat, iii. p. 47.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
- THE WALDENSES APPEAR.
- (1526 TO OCTOBER 1532.)
-
-
-On Friday, 12th July, Farel came from Morat to Grandson, where a quiet
-conference was to be held. Four disciples of the Gospel begged to
-receive the imposition of hands. Farel and his colleagues examined them,
-and, finding them fitted for the evangelical work, sent them to announce
-the Gospel in the neighbouring villages of Gy, Fy, Montagny, Noville,
-Bonvillars, St. Maurice, Champagne, and Concise. But the conference was
-to be occupied with more important business.
-
-[Sidenote: THE WALDENSES.]
-
-For two or three years past a strange report had circulated among the
-infant churches that were forming between the Alps and the Jura. They
-heard talk of christians who belonged to the Reformation without having
-ever been reformed. It was said that in some of the remote valleys of
-the Alps of Piedmont and Dauphiny, and in certain parts of Calabria,
-Apulia, Provence, Lorraine, and other countries,[446] there were
-believers who for many centuries had resisted the pope and recognised no
-other authority than Holy Scripture. Some called them 'Waldenses,'
-others 'poor men of Lyons,' and others 'Lutherans.' The report of the
-victories of the Reformation having penetrated their valleys, these
-pious men had listened to them attentively; one of them in particular,
-Martin Gonin, pastor of Angrogne, was seriously moved by them. Being a
-man of decided and enterprising character, and ready to give his life
-for the Gospel, the pious _barbe_ (the name given by the Waldenses to
-their pastors) had felt a lively desire to go and see closely what the
-Reformation was. This thought haunted him everywhere: whether he
-traversed the little glens which divided his valley, like a tree with
-its branches,[447] or whether he followed the course of the torrent, or
-sat at the foot of the Alps of Cella, Vachera, and Infernet, Gonin
-sighed after Wittemberg and Luther. At last he made up his mind; he
-departed in 1526, found his way to the reformers, and brought back into
-his valleys much good news and many pious books. From that time the
-Reformation was the chief topic of conversation among the barbes and
-shepherds of those mountains.
-
- * * * * *
-
-In 1530 many of them, threading the defiles of the Alps, arrived on the
-French slopes, and following the picturesque banks of the Durance, took
-their way towards Merindol, where a synod of Waldensian christians had
-been convened. They walked on, animated with the liveliest joy; they had
-thought themselves alone, and in one day there had been born to them in
-Europe thousands of brethren who listened humbly to the Word of God, and
-made the pope tremble on his throne. .... They spoke of the Reformation,
-of Luther, and Melanchthon, and of the Swiss as they descended the rough
-mountain paths. When the synod was formed, they resolved to send a
-deputation to the evangelicals of Switzerland, to show them that the
-Waldensian doctrines were similar to those of the reformers, and to
-prevail upon the latter to give them the hand of fellowship. In
-consequence, two of them, George Morel and Peter Masson, set out for
-Basle.
-
-[Sidenote: DEPUTATION TO ŒCOLAMPADIUS.]
-
-On their arrival in that city, they asked for the house of Œcolampadius;
-they entered his study, and the old times, represented by these
-simple-minded worthy barbes, greeted the new times in the person of the
-amiable and steadfast reformer. The latter could not see these brave and
-rustic men standing before him and not feel an emotion of respect and
-sympathy. The Waldenses took from their bosoms the documents of their
-faith, and presented them to the pious doctor. 'Turning away from
-Antichrist,' said these papers, and Masson and Morel repeated the words,
-'we turn towards Christ. He is our life, our truth, our peace, our
-righteousness, our shepherd, our advocate, our victim, our high-priest,
-who died for the salvation of believers.[448] But alas! as smoke goeth
-before the fire, the temptation of Antichrist precedeth the glory.[449]
-In the time of the apostles Antichrist was but a child; he has now grown
-into a perfect man. He robs Christ of the merit of salvation, and
-ascribes it to his own works. He strips the Holy Ghost of the power of
-regeneration, and attributes it to his ceremonies. He leads the people
-to mass, a sad tissue of jewish, pagan, and christian rites, and
-deprives them of the spiritual and sacramental manducation.[450] He
-hates, persecutes, accuses, robs, and kills the members of Jesus
-Christ.[451] He boasts of his length of life, of his monks, his virgins,
-his miracles, his fasts, and his vigils, and uses them as a cloak to
-hide his wickedness. Nevertheless, the rebel is growing old and
-decreasing, and the Lord is killing the felon by the breath of his
-mouth.'[452] Œcolampadius admired the simplicity of their creed. He
-would not have liked a doctrine without life, or an apparent life
-without doctrine, but he found both in the Waldensian barbes. 'I thank
-God,' he told them, 'that he has called you to so great light.'[453]
-
-Ere long the doctors and faithful ones of Basle desired to see these men
-of the ancient times. Seated round the domestic hearth, the Waldenses
-narrated the sufferings of their fathers, and described their flocks
-scattered over the two slopes of the Alps. 'Some people,' they said,
-'ascribe our origin to a wealthy citizen of Lyons, Peter de Vaux or
-Waldo, who, being at a banquet with his friends, saw one of them
-suddenly fall dead.[454] Moved and troubled in his conscience he prayed
-to Jesus, sold his goods, and began to preach and sent others to preach
-the Gospel everywhere.[455] But,' added the barbes, 'we descend from
-more ancient times, from the time when Constantine introducing the world
-into the Church, our fathers set themselves apart, or even from the time
-of the apostles.'[456]
-
-[Sidenote: CONFESSIONS OF THE BARBES.]
-
-In the course of conversation, however, with these brethren, the
-christians of Basle noticed certain points of doctrine which did not
-seem conformable with evangelical truth, and a certain uneasiness
-succeeded to their former joy. Wishing to be enlightened, Œcolampadius
-addressed a few questions to the two barbes. 'All our ministers,' they
-answered on the first point, 'live in celibacy, and work at some honest
-trade.' 'Marriage, however,' said Œcolampadius, 'is a state very
-becoming to all true believers, and particularly to those who ought to
-be in all things _ensamples to the flock_. We also think,' he continued,
-'that pastors ought not to devote to manual labour, as yours do, the
-time they could better employ in the study of scripture. The minister
-has many things to learn; God does not teach us miraculously and without
-labour; we must take pains in order to know.'[457]
-
-The barbes were at first a little confused at seeing that the elders had
-to learn of their juniors; however, they were humble and sincere men,
-and the Basle doctor having questioned them on the sacraments, they
-confessed that through weakness and fear they had their children
-baptised by Romish priests, and that they even communicated with them
-and sometimes attended mass. This unexpected avowal startled the meek
-Œcolampadius. 'What,' said he, 'has not Christ, the holy victim, fully
-satisfied the everlasting justice for us? Is there any need to offer
-other sacrifices after that of Golgotha? By saying _Amen_ to the
-priests' mass you deny the grace of Jesus Christ.'
-
-Œcolampadius next spoke of the strength of man after the fall. 'We
-believe,' said the barbes modestly, 'that all men have some natural
-virtue, just as herbs, plants, and stones have.'[458] 'We believe,' said
-the reformer, 'that those who obey the commandments of God do so, not
-because they have more strength than others, but because of the great
-power of the Spirit of God which renews their will.'[459] 'Ah,' said the
-barbes, who did not feel themselves in harmony with the reformers on
-this point, 'nothing troubles us weak people so much as what we have
-heard of Luther's teaching relative to free-will and predestination....
-Our ignorance is the cause of our doubts: pray instruct us.'
-
-The charitable Œcolampadius did not think the differences were such as
-ought to alienate him from the barbes. 'We must enlighten these
-christians,' he said, 'but above all things we must love them.' Had they
-not the same Bible and the same Saviour as the children of the
-Reformation? Had they not preserved the essential truths of the faith
-from the primitive times? Œcolampadius and his friends agitated by this
-reflection, gave their hands to the Waldensian deputation: 'Christ,'
-said the pious doctor,' is in you as he is in us, and we love you as
-brethren.'
-
-[Sidenote: THE MARTYRED BARBE.]
-
-The two barbes left Basle and proceeded to Strasburg to confer with
-Bucer and Capito, after which they prepared to return to their valleys.
-As Peter Masson was of Burgundian origin, they determined to pass
-through Dijon, a journey not unattended with danger. It was said here
-and there in cloisters and in bishops' palaces that the old heretics had
-come to an understanding with the new. The pious conversation of the two
-Waldensians having attracted the attention of certain inhabitants of
-Dijon, a clerical and fanatical city, they were thrown into prison. What
-shall they do? What, they ask, will become of the letters and
-instructions they are bearing to their co-religionists? One of them,
-Morel, the bearer of this precious trust, succeeded in escaping: Masson,
-who was left, paid for both; he was condemned, executed, and died with
-the peace of a believer.
-
-When they saw only one of their deputation appear, the Waldenses
-comprehended the dangers to which the brethren had been exposed, and
-wept for Masson. But the news of the reformers' welcome spread great joy
-among them, in Provence, Dauphiny, in the valleys of the Alps, and even
-to Apulia and Calabria. The observations, however, of Œcolampadius, and
-his demand for a stricter reform, were supported by some and rejected by
-others. The Waldensians determined therefore to take another step: 'Let
-us convoke a synod of all our churches,' said they, 'and invite the
-reformers to it.'
-
-One July day in 1532, when Farel was at Grandson, as we have seen, in
-conference with other ministers, he was told that two individuals, whose
-foreign look indicated that they came from a distance, desired to speak
-with him. Two barbes, one from Calabria, named George, the other Martin
-Gonin, a Piedmontese, entered the room. After saluting the evangelicals
-in the name of their brethren, they told them that the demand that had
-been addressed to them to separate entirely from Rome had caused
-division among them. 'Come,' they said to the ministers assembled at
-Grandson, 'come to the synod and explain your views on this important
-point. After that we must come to an understanding about the means of
-propagating over the world the doctrine of the Gospel which is common to
-both of us.' No message could be more agreeable to Farel; and as these
-two points were continually occupying his thoughts, he determined to
-comply with the request of the Waldensian brethren. His
-fellow-countryman, the pious Saunier, wished to share his dangers.
-
-The members of the conference and the evangelicals of Grandson gazed
-with respect upon these ancient witnesses of the truth, arriving among
-them from the farther slopes of the Alps and the extremity of Italy,
-where they would have had no idea of going to look for brethren. They
-crowded round them and gave them a welcome, overflowing with love for
-them as they thought of the long fidelity and cruel sufferings of their
-ancestors. They listened with interest to the story of the persecutions
-endured by their fathers, and the heroism with which the Waldenses had
-endured them. They were all ears when they were told how the barbes and
-their flocks were suddenly attacked by armed bands in their snowy
-mountains during the festival of Christmas in the year 1400; how men,
-women, and children had been compelled to flee over the rugged rocks,
-and how many of them had perished of cold and hunger, or had fallen by
-the sword. In one place the bodies of fourscore little children were
-found frozen to death in the stiffened arms of their mothers who had
-died with them.... In another place thousands of fugitives who had taken
-refuge in deep caverns (1488) had been suffocated by the fires which
-their cruel persecutors had kindled at the entrance of their
-hiding-place.[460] Would not the Reformation regard these martyrs as its
-precursors? Was it not a privilege for it thus to unite with the
-witnesses who had given glory to Jesus Christ since the first ages of
-the Church?
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL'S DANGEROUS JOURNEY.]
-
-Some of the Swiss christians were alarmed at the idea of Farel's
-journey. In truth great dangers threatened the reformer. The martyrdom
-of Peter Masson, sacrificed two years before, had exasperated the
-Waldenses of Provence, and their lamentations had aroused the anger of
-their enemies. The bishops of Sisteron, Apt, and Cavaillon had taken
-counsel together and laid a remonstrance before the parliament of Aix,
-which had immediately ordered a raid to be made on the heretics: the
-prisons were filled with Waldensians and Lutherans, real or pretended.
-Martin Gonin, one of the two Waldensian deputies, was in a subsequent
-journey arrested at Grenoble, put into a sack, and drowned in the Isère.
-A similar fate might easily happen to Farel. Did not the country he
-would have to cross depend on the duke of Savoy, and had not Bellegarde
-and Challans laid hands on Bonivard in a country less favourable to
-ambuscades than that which Farel had to pass through? That mattered not:
-he did not hesitate. He will leave these quarters where the might of
-Berne protects him and pass through the midst of his enemies. 'There was
-in him the same zeal as in his Master,' says an historian;[461] 'like
-the Saviour, he feared neither the hatred of the Pharisees, nor the
-cunning of Herod, nor the rage of the people.' He made every preparation
-for his departure, and Saunier did the same.[462]
-
-Just as Farel was about to leave Switzerland, he received unpleasant
-tidings from France, and thus found himself solicited on both sides. He
-wrote to his fellow-countrymen one of those letters, so full of
-consolation and wisdom, which characterise our reformers. 'Men look
-fiercely at you,' he said, 'and threaten you, and lay heavy fines upon
-you; your friends turn their robes and become your enemies.... All men
-distress you.... Observing all modesty, meekness, and friendship,
-persevering in holy prayers, living purely, and helping the poor, commit
-everything to the Father of mercies, by whose aid you will walk, strong
-and unwearied, in all truth.'[463]
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL'S ARRIVAL IN THE VALLEYS.]
-
-Towards the end of August, Farel and Saunier took leave of the brethren
-around them, got on their horses, and departed. Their course was
-enveloped in mystery: they avoided the places where they might be known
-and traversed uninhabited districts. Having crossed the Alps and passed
-through Pignerol, they fixed their eyes, beaming with mournful interest,
-on the lonely places where almost inaccessible caverns, pierced in the
-ragged sides of the mountains, often formed the only temple of the
-Christians, and where every rock had a history of persecution and
-martyrdom. Their place of meeting was Angrogne, in the parish of the
-pious Martin Gonin. The two reformers quitted La Tour, and following the
-sinuosities of the torrent, and turning the precipices, they arrived at
-the foot of a magnificent forest, and then reached a vast plateau
-abounding in pastures: this was the Val d'Angrogne. They gazed upon the
-steep ranges of the Soirnan and Infernet, the pyramidal flanks of mount
-Vandalin, and the gentler slopes upon which stood the lowly hamlets of
-the valley. They found Waldenses here and there in the meadows and at
-the foot of the rocks; some were prepared 'to be a guard for the
-ministers of the good law;' and all looked with astonishment and joy at
-the pastors who came from Switzerland. 'That one with the red beard and
-riding the white horse is Farel,' said John Peyret of Angrogne, one of
-their escort, to his companions; 'the other on the dark horse is
-Saunier.' 'There was also a third,' add the eye-witnesses, 'a tall man
-and rather lame:' he may have been a Waldensian who had acted as a guide
-to the two deputies.[464] Other foreign Christians met in this remote
-valley of the Alps. There were some from the southern extremity of
-Italy, from Burgundy, Lorraine, Bohemia, and countries nearer home.
-There was also a certain number of persons of more distinguished
-appearance: the lords of Rive Noble, Mirandola, and Solaro had quitted
-their castles to take part in this Alpine council. Clergy, senate, and
-people were thus assembled; and as no room could have held the number,
-it was resolved to meet in the open air. Gonin selected for this purpose
-the hamlet of Chanforans, where there is now only one solitary house.
-There, in a shady spot, on the side of the mountain, surrounded by an
-amphitheatre of rugged cliffs and distant peaks, the barbe had arranged
-the rude benches on which the members of this Christian assembly were to
-sit.
-
-Two parties met there face to face. At the head of that which was
-unwilling to break entirely with the Roman Catholic Church were two
-barbes, Daniel of Valence and John of Molines, who struggled for the
-success of their system of accommodation and compliance. On the other
-hand Farel and Saunier supported the evangelical party, who had not such
-distinguished representatives as the traditional party, and proposed the
-definitive rejection of all semi-catholic doctrines and usages. Before
-the opening of the synod the two ministers, finding themselves
-surrounded by numbers of the brethren, both in their homes and under the
-shade of the trees where the assembly was to be held, had already
-explained to them the faith of the Reformation, and several of the
-Waldenses had exclaimed that it was the doctrine taught from father to
-son among them, and to which they were resolved to adhere. Yet the issue
-of the combat appeared doubtful; for the semi-catholic party was strong,
-and described the reformers as foreigners and innovators who had come
-there to alter their ancient doctrines. But Farel had good hopes, for he
-could appeal to Holy Scripture and even to the confessions of the
-Waldenses themselves.
-
-[Sidenote: OPENING OF THE SYNOD.]
-
-On the 12th September the synod was opened 'in the name of God.' One
-party looked with favour on Farel and Saunier, the other on John of
-Molines and Daniel of Valence; but the majority appeared to be on the
-side of the Reformation. Farel rose and boldly broached the question: he
-contended that there was no longer any ceremonial law, that no act of
-worship had any merit of itself, and that a multitude of feasts,
-dedications, rites, chants, and mechanical prayers was a great evil. He
-reminded them that Christian worship consists essentially in faith in
-the Gospel, in charity, and in the confession of Christ. '_God is a
-spirit_,' he said, 'and divine worship should be performed _in spirit
-and in truth_.' The two barbes strove in vain to oppose these views, the
-meeting testified their assent to them. Did not their confession reject
-'all feasts, vigils of saints, water called holy, the act of abstaining
-from flesh, and other like things invented by men?'[465] The worship in
-spirit was proclaimed.
-
-Farel, delighted at this first victory, desired to win another and
-perhaps more difficult one. He believed that it was by means of the
-doctrine of the natural power of man that popery took salvation out of
-the hands of God and put it into the hands of the priests: 'God,' said
-he, 'has elected before the foundation of the world all those who have
-been or who will be saved. It is impossible for those who have been
-ordained to salvation not to be saved. Whosoever upholds free-will,
-absolutely denies the grace of God.' This was a point which Molines and
-his friend resisted with all their might. But did not the Waldensian
-confessions recognise the impotency of man and the all-sufficiency of
-grace? Did not they call the denial of these things 'the work of
-Antichrist?'[466] Farel moreover adduced proof from Scripture. The synod
-was at first in suspense, but finally decided that it recognised this
-article as 'conformable with Holy Scripture.'[467]
-
-Certain questions of morality anxiously occupied the reformer. In his
-opinion the Romish Church had turned everything topsy-turvy, calling
-those works _good_ which she prescribed though they had nothing good in
-them, and those _bad_ which were in conformity with the will of God.
-'There is no good work but that which God has commanded,' said Farel,
-'and none bad but what He has forbidden.' The assembly expressed their
-entire assent.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL'S OPINIONS GAIN GROUND.]
-
-Then continuing the struggle, the firm evangelical doctor successively
-maintained that the true confession of a Christian is to confess to God
-alone; that marriage is forbidden to no man, whatever his condition;
-that Scripture determines only two sacraments, baptism and the Lord's
-Supper; that Christians may swear in God's name and fill the office of
-magistrate; and finally, that they should lay aside their manual
-occupations on Sunday in order to have leisure to praise God, exercise
-charity, and listen to the truths of Scripture.[468] 'Yes, that is it,'
-said the delighted Waldenses, 'that is the doctrine of our
-fathers.'[469]
-
-Molines and Daniel of Valence did not, however, consider their cause
-lost. Ought not the fear of persecution to induce the Waldenses to
-persevere in certain dissimulations calculated to secure them from the
-inquisitive eyes of the enemies of the faith? Nothing displeased the
-reformers so much as dissembling. 'Let us put off that paint,' said
-Calvin, 'by which the Gospel is disfigured, and let us not endeavour
-slavishly to please our adversaries; let us go boldly to work. If we
-permit compromises in some practices the whole doctrine will fall, and
-the building be thrown down.'[470] Farel thought as Calvin did.
-Perceiving this loophole for the two barbes, he urged the necessity of a
-frank confession of the truth. The members of the assembly, pricked in
-their consciences by the remembrance of their former backslidings, bound
-themselves to take no part henceforward in any Romish superstition, and
-to recognise as their pastor no priest of the pope's church. 'We will
-perform our worship,' they said, 'openly and publicly to give glory to
-God.'[470]
-
-The two barbes, who were no doubt sincere, became more eloquent. The
-moment was come that was to decide the future. In their opinion, by
-establishing new principles they cast discredit on the men who had
-hitherto directed the churches. No doubt it was culpable to take part in
-certain ceremonies with an unworthy object, but was it so when it was
-done for good ends? To break entirely with the Catholic Church would
-render the existence of the Waldenses impossible, or at least would
-provoke hostilities which would reduce them completely to silence....
-Farel replied with wonderful energy maintaining the rights of truth. He
-showed them that every compromise with error is a lie. The purity of the
-doctrine he professed, his elevated thoughts, the ardent affection
-expressed by his voice, his gestures, and his looks, electrified the
-Waldenses, and poured into their souls the holy fire with which his own
-was burning. These witnesses of the middle ages called to mind how the
-children of Israel having adopted the customs of people alien to the
-covenant of God, wept abundantly and exclaimed: '_We have trespassed
-against God!_'[471] The Waldenses felt like them, and desired to make
-amends for their sins. They drew up a brief confession in 17 articles,
-in conformity with the resolutions that had been adopted, and then said:
-'We adhere with one accord to the present declaration, and we pray God
-that, of his great charity, nothing may divide us henceforward, and
-that, even when separated from one another, we may always remain united
-in the same spirit.' Then they signed their names.[472]
-
-The agreement was not however universal. During the six days' discussion
-several barbes and laymen might have been seen standing apart, in some
-shady place, with gloomy air and uneasy look, talking together on the
-resolutions proposed to the synod. At the moment when every one was
-affixing his signature to the confession, the two leaders withheld
-theirs, and withdrew from the assembly.
-
-[Sidenote: OLD WALDENSIAN MANUSCRIPTS.]
-
-During the discussion, and even before it, Farel and Saunier had had
-several conversations and conferences with the Waldenses, in the course
-of which the barbes had displayed their old manuscripts, handed down
-from the twelfth century, as they said: the _Noble Lesson_, the _Ancient
-Catechism_, the _Antichrist_, the _Purgatory_, and others. These
-writings bore the date of A.D. 1120, which probably was not disputed by
-Farel. One line of the _Noble Lesson_ seems to indicate this as the
-period when it was composed.[473] Since then, however, more recent dates
-have been assigned to the other writings, especially to the
-_Antichrist_, and even to the _Noble Lesson_. In any case, however,
-these documents belong to a time anterior to the Reformation.[474] The
-Waldensians displayed with peculiar pride several manuscript copies of
-the Old and New Testament in the vulgar tongue. 'These books,' they
-said, 'were copied correctly by hand so long ago as to be beyond memory,
-and are to be seen in many families.' Farel and Saunier had received and
-handled these writings with emotion; they had turned over the leaves,
-and 'marvelling at the heavenly favour accorded to so small a people,'
-had rendered thanks to the Lord because the Bible had never been taken
-from them.
-
-They did not stop there: Farel addressing the synod, represented to them
-that the copies being few in number they could only serve for a few
-persons: 'Ah!' said he, 'if there are so many sects and heresies, so
-much trouble and confusion now in the world, it all comes from ignorance
-of the Word of God. It would therefore be exceedingly necessary for the
-honour of God and the well-being of all christians who know the French
-language, and for the destruction of all doctrines repugnant to the
-truth, to translate the Bible from the Hebrew and Greek tongues into
-French.'[475]
-
-No proposal could be more welcome to the Waldenses; their existence was
-due to their love of Scripture, and all their treatises and poems
-celebrated it:
-
- The Scriptures speak and we must believe. Look at the Scriptures from
- beginning to end.[476]
-
-Thus spoke the _Noble Lesson_. They agreed 'joyfully and with good heart
-to Farel's demand, busying and exerting themselves to carry out the
-undertaking.' The proposition was voted enthusiastically, and the
-delighted reformers looked with emotion and joy at this faithful and
-constant people, to whom God had entrusted for so many ages the ark of
-the new covenant, and who were now inspired with fresh zeal for his
-service.[477]
-
-The hour had come for them to separate. John of Molines and Daniel of
-Valence went to Bohemia, and joined the Waldenses of that country; the
-pastors returned to their churches, the shepherds to their mountains,
-and the lords to their castles. Farel mounted his white horse, Saunier
-his black one; they shook hands with the Waldenses who surrounded them,
-and descending from Angrogne to La Tour, bade adieu to the valleys.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL'S VIEWS ON GENEVA.]
-
-Where should they go? What would be the next work undertaken by
-Farel?... Geneva had long occupied his thoughts, and as he crossed the
-Alps he had before him in spirit that city with its wants and its
-inhabitants, especially those who were beginning to 'meditate on Jesus
-Christ.'[478] Already, before his departure for Italy, Farel had
-conceived the plan of stopping at Geneva on his return, and with that
-intent had even received from my lords of Berne some letters of
-introduction addressed to the leading Huguenots. 'I will go to them
-now,' he said, 'I will speak to them, even if there is nobody that will
-hear me.'[479]
-
-This idea, which never quitted him, was the beginning of the Reformation
-of Geneva.
-
-[446] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 2.
-
-[447] Leger, _Hist. des Eglises Vaudoises_, p. 3.
-
-[448] 'Que Christ es la nostra vita, e verita, e paçs, e justitia, e
-pastor.' _Confession de Foi des Vaudois._
-
-[449] 'Enayma lo fum vai derant lo fuoc.'—_L'Antichrist._
-
-[450] 'Priva lo poble de l'espiritual e sacramental manjament.'—
-_L'Antichrist._
-
-[451] 'El eyra, e persec, e acaisonna, roba e mortifica li membre de
-Christ.'—Ibid.
-
-[452] 'Lo Segnor Jesus occi aquest felon.'—Ibid.
-
-[453] Letter from Œcolampadius, 13 Oct. 1530.
-
-[454] Anno 1170.
-
-[455] 'Suis omnibus venditis, officium apostolarum usurpavit.'—Stephanus
-de Barbone, a dominican monk of Lyons, in 1225.
-
-[456] 'Aliqui enim dicunt quod duraverit a tempore Sylvestri, aliqui a
-tempore apostolorum.'—Reinerius, 1250, _contra Waldenses_, ch. iv.
-
-[457] Scultet, ii. p. 294. Ruchat, ii. p. 320.
-
-[458] Latin paper of the barbes, 15th question. Ruchat, ii. p. 324.
-
-[459] 'Nisi per spiritum sanctum reparemur, nihil vel velimus vel agamus
-boni.'—_Œcolampadii Confessio_, art. 1.
-
-[460] See the histories of Léger, Perrin, Muston, Monastier, &c.
-
-[461] Ancillon.
-
-[462] Choupard MSS. Léger, 2me partie, p. 7, etc. Monastier, i. pp. 167,
-201. Kirchhofer, _Farel's Leben_, p. 153.
-
-[463] Letter of 26 July 1532. Choupard MSS.
-
-[464] Gilles, p. 40. Monastier, i. p. 201. We learn from the _Apologie
-du translateur_ at the beginning of Olivetan's Bible (1535) that
-Olivetan did not go into the valleys as some have believed; he speaks of
-two deputies only under the pseudonyms of _Hilerme Cusemeth_ (Guillaume
-Farel) and _Antoine Almeutes_ (+almeutês+, salter, Saunier). As for the
-third, whom he calls _Cephas Chlorotes_, if he addressed the _Apologie_
-to him also, it was not because he had been to Angrogne, but because he
-had joined the other two in asking him to undertake that edition of the
-Bible. This Cephas Chlorotes is evidently Peter Viret (+chlôros+,
-virens).
-
-[465] 'Las festas et las vigilias de li sanet, e l'aiga laqual dison
-benieta, &c.'
-
-[466] Léger, _Confession de Foi des Vaudois_, p. 23, verso;
-_Traité de l'Antichrist_, p. 75.
-
-[467] Léger, _Briève Confession de Foi_ (1532), p. 95.
-
-[468] Léger, _Briève Confession_, p. 95, verso.
-
-[469] Ibid.
-
-[470] Gilles, _History of the Churches of Piedmont_, p. 30.
-
-[471] Léger, _Hist. des Eglises Vaudoises_, p. 35. Ezra, x.;
-Nehemiah, ix. x.
-
-[472] This _Briève Confession_ is in the library of the University
-of Cambridge. Léger, p. 95; Muston, _Hist. des Vaudois_, &c.
-
-[473] Ben ha mil e cent anez compli entierament; line 6.
-
-[474] See the researches into the Cambridge MSS. and the German works of
-Dieckhoff and Zezschwitz. The latter author is of opinion that the
-_Waldensian Catechism_, the _Antichrist_, and other writings, belong to
-the end of the fifteenth and the beginning of the sixteenth century.
-_Catechisms of the Waldenses and Bohemian Brethren_ (in German),
-Erlangen, 1863.
-
-[475] Olivetan's Bible: _Apologie du translateur_.
-
-[476]
-
- "Ma l'Escriptura di, e nos creire o deven."—_Nobla Leycon_, l. 19.
- "Regarde l'Escriptura del fin commenczamente."—Ib. l. 23.
-
-[477] Gilles, Léger; Muston, Monastier.
-
-[478] Vol. II. p. 583.
-
-[479] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 6. Choupard and Roset, MSS.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
- PLANS OF THE EMPEROR, THE DUKE OF SAVOY, AND THE BISHOP
- AGAINST GENEVA.
- (1530-1532.)
-
-
-Just when the Gospel was about to enter Geneva with Farel and Saunier,
-the bishop-prince was making new exertions to recover his power. A
-crisis was approaching: a decisive step must be taken. Which shall have
-supremacy in the church—the bulls of the pope or the Scriptures of God?
-Which shall have supremacy in the state—slavery or liberty? Great powers
-had determined to oppress this little city; but humble servants of God
-were about to enter it one after another, and planting there the
-standard of Christ, secure the victory to independence and the Gospel.
-
-[Sidenote: BELLEGARDE'S AUDIENCE WITH CHARLES.]
-
-The Duke of Savoy, desiring to inflict a fatal blow on Geneva, had
-invoked the co-operation of the most powerful monarchs of Europe, and
-despatched to Charles V., then at the diet of Augsburg, the usual
-minister of his tyranny, the man whom he had employed to put Levrier to
-death, and to capture Bonivard. As soon as Bellegarde reached Augsburg
-(11th September 1530) he waited on the Sire de Montfalconet, who at that
-time discharged the office of grand equerry to His Majesty, and who 'had
-great credit with the emperor, so that, nothing was kept secret from
-him.'[480] Enemies whom the duke had at the imperial court had created a
-very unfavourable impression of this prince; Bellegarde accordingly gave
-a pension of 300 crowns to the equerry, who earnt them under the
-circumstances we are describing, by following the envoy's instructions.
-The latter, being impatient to draw the emperor into the plans concocted
-for seizing Geneva, begged Montfalconet to ask his master at what hour
-he would be pleased 'to permit him to pay his respects.' 'Tell him,'
-said Charles, who had on his hands all the affairs of protestantism and
-Germany, 'tell him that in consequence of my many engagements he must
-wait a couple of days.' Bellegarde did so, and on the third morning
-attended punctually in the emperor's chamber. Very impatient to see the
-puissant monarch, he was rehearsing what he had to tell him about
-Geneva, when instead of His Majesty he saw Montfalconet enter the room
-alone with this message: 'The emperor desires me to say that for the
-present you must only hand in his highness's letter, as well as that
-from his most dread lady; and he will give you an audience directly
-after.' The ambassador was much vexed at the delay; but to console him
-the equerry confidentially informed him of the great trouble the
-protestants of Germany were giving Charles. 'I assure you the emperor is
-in such a condition,' he said, 'that it is impossible for him to bring
-the affairs of the empire into anything like a reasonable state. He has
-therefore forsaken the counsels of men to have recourse to the Lord
-only. As the _help_ of the world fails me, said His Majesty this morning
-(14th September), I hope Divine Providence will come to my assistance.
-The emperor then confessed, and retired into the oratory of the palace
-to receive the sacrament. He has also ordered that prestations
-(confessions, communions, and prayers) should be made in every place
-where there are any devout people.'
-
-While these two individuals were talking Charles came out of his
-oratory. M. de Bellegarde made him a low bow, humbly presented him the
-compliments of the duke and duchess, and handed him the letters. The
-emperor, who was busy, told him to return the next morning at his levée.
-Bellegarde did not fail, and Charles received him with much kindness.
-'Give me news of his highness's health,' he said, 'and also of madam my
-good sister (Duchess Beatrice), and of my nephew monsieur their son.'
-Bellegarde answered his questions, and then made all the communications
-to the emperor with which the duke had charged him. He hoped the emperor
-would immediately enter into conversation with him about the plans
-formed against Geneva, but it was not so. 'I am very glad,' said
-Charles, 'that the duke has sent you to me; but, considering my great
-occupations, be so good as to draw up a memoir of what you think most
-expedient for the despatch of the business that brings you here, and
-then deliver it to my lord Grandvelle.'
-
-Here was a fresh delay. The minister's answer, considering the numerous
-offices he filled, had to be waited for; yet Bellegarde spoke seven
-times with Charles V., 'each time giving his majesty some little
-information about the duke's affairs.' But the emperor, while appearing
-to listen to the disputes between Geneva and Turin, frequently had his
-thoughts elsewhere. He was tormented with the state of the empire, and
-did not conceal it from his brother-in-law's envoy. 'I do not mean,' he
-said one day to Bellegarde, 'that the duke shall be either dismissed or
-ejected; but the diet (of Augsburg) is all in confusion and broken up. I
-have no great hopes.... It is a long while since I have found the
-princes of Germany thus dilly-dallying, putting me off from day to day,
-so that I am quite out of hope, and my head is confused.... Ah! if it
-pleased God that other princes were of my opinion.... Christendom would
-not be in such confusion.' These are the very words his majesty was
-pleased to use, adds Bellegarde in his memoir. He was surprised at them.
-That man who knew so well how to put one of his adversaries in prison
-and another to death, was astonished that so mighty a prince as Charles
-should not adopt an equally simple and expeditious method. He ventured
-to give the emperor a little advice. He had learnt that the strength of
-the protestants was in their union. 'Sire,' he said, 'break up the
-alliances, as well past as future, which have been formed to your great
-prejudice, and whose consequences are so dangerous.'—'At present,' said
-Charles, 'there is no time. I cannot now reduce the princes and cities
-of Germany that are opposed to the faith; but I am determined not to
-abandon the work, and when I have completed it, what concerns his
-highness (be sure you tell him) will not be forgotten.' This then was
-Charles's plan: first to crush the protestants of Germany, and then the
-huguenots of Geneva. In his opinion these were as dangerous for the
-Latin races as the former for the Germans.
-
-[Sidenote: THE EMPEROR'S ANSWER.]
-
-At last, on the 6th October, Grandvelle, chancellor of the empire
-(he was the father of the famous cardinal), accompanied by the
-commander ——,[481] had an interview with Bellegarde, and gave him the
-emperor's answer. 'With respect to Geneva, his majesty thinks that to
-avoid falling into the danger which the duke has at all times feared and
-avoided, no part or parcel of his states must become Swiss. You must
-take all the more precaution, because the nature of the cantons is
-always to extend and grow larger, and the rebellion and stiff-necked
-obstinacy of messieurs of Geneva will incline them to plunge through
-despair into this accursed error.[482] That would cause loss and damage
-to the duke, and little credit to the emperor, considering that Geneva
-is a fief of the empire. Here is the expedient the emperor has hit upon.
-He orders both the duke and Geneva to lay before him within two months
-their titles, rights, and privileges, and his majesty will then decide.
-As for the prelates, the bishop, and the canons, the emperor recommends
-both them and the duke to bring their quarrels to an end. By so doing
-the duke will get rid of a great load of trouble, and will have the
-prelates better under his direction and obedience.' After a few other
-communications, the chancellor withdrew with the commander, and
-Bellegarde immediately sent off a despatch conveying this decision to
-the duke.
-
-[Sidenote: BELLEGARDE'S LETTER.]
-
-The Sieur de Bellegarde left Augsburg not long after, and returned to
-Turin, determined to urge his master more than ever to destroy
-independence and the Reformation in Geneva at one blow. What he had seen
-at Augsburg, and the dangers with which German protestantism threatened
-the supremacy of the pope and of the emperor, had increased his zeal.
-The institutions of the middle ages seem to have had at that time no
-friend more fanatical and no champion more zealous than the active,
-intelligent, devoted, cruel courtier who had put Levrier to death at the
-castle of Bonne. 'My lord,' he said to the duke, 'consider the peril to
-which you are exposed in this business of Geneva, either because of the
-neighbours who are so near, and are ravening wolves, or because of the
-little faith the world now has in all the qualities, sound right, and
-reasons a man may have. What will happen if we do not remain masters in
-the struggle with this new sect? What vexations, losses, and cares, you
-know that better than I do. They want to keep you in good humour, my
-lord, but it is only the better to make game of you, and to increase at
-your expense, on this side of the mountains or on that—everywhere, in
-fact. You have documents in your chamber to show that the Genevans used
-to pay you toll and subsidy; that they helped to portion the daughters
-of your house; and, further, that they gave your predecessors aid in
-time of war, and that in time of peace they appealed to them in their
-suits and sentences.... And now what have they done? They have deprived
-you of the vidamy, they have taken from you the castle on the island,
-they have committed much injustice to the prejudice of your rights, and
-have been guilty of murder and other intolerable evils.... Worse
-still ... they are joining _that perverse sect_ in order to complete
-their ruin.
-
-[Sidenote: HIS PLANS AGAINST GENEVA.]
-
-'But we shall soon put an end to it all, my lord. You have an emperor at
-your service on whom everything depends. Will they dare be wicked and
-rebellious in his presence?... Firstly, the emperor will replace them
-under your authority, as you and your ancestors had them.... Next, for
-their rebellion and the crimes they have committed, he will condemn them
-to be deprived of some privilege—of that which is most injurious to you.
-Finally, he will build for you, for your government, a castle or
-fortress in the city, in whatever part you like, and exact from the
-Genevans for the support of the garrison a tax to be paid every year.
-The city will thus be kept well in subjection. As for the bishops, the
-emperor will command them to pay you the respect which belongs to the
-holy empire, as being its representative; he will order them to obey you
-like himself, and will restore them to all obedience towards you ...
-considering also that _the time approaches_ for their _general
-reformation, as is but reasonable_. And if the said people of Geneva
-will not obey (as their unreason may incline them) the emperor will put
-them under the ban of the empire as rebels, and you shall seize them....
-_You will make them your subjects entirely, confiscating all their
-privileges and possessions_; and thus you will be for ever established
-rightfully in Geneva.'[483]
-
-We should not perhaps have quoted the words of the Sieur de Bellegarde
-at such length, if the document from which they are extracted had not
-been hitherto unknown. His allegations were false. No presents had ever
-been made by the city of Geneva to the dukes of Savoy without a special
-act declaring that the liberality was spontaneous and without prejudice
-for the future. The vidamy was a fief conferred by the bishop, which
-made the holder of it an officer of the latter. Lastly, the dukes of
-Savoy were not vicars of the emperor. But if Bellegarde's allegations as
-to the past were false, his schemes as to the future were outrageous. A
-strong fortress shall be built in Geneva, the citizens shall pay the
-garrison, and a brutal serfdom shall withdraw them from that _perverse
-sect_ and keep them for ever in strict obedience under the yoke of their
-master! As for the bishops, they shall be compelled to obey the duke,
-especially as the time of _their general reformation_ approaches! It
-would appear, then, that in the sixteenth century already _reason_ (as
-Bellegarde says) demanded the abolition of the temporal power of
-ecclesiastical princes. Were they more advanced then than in our days? I
-think not. This rude policy aimed merely at substituting the despotism
-of princes for the despotism of bishops, as being stricter and more
-effectual. Lastly—the end crowns the work—if the Genevans resist, they
-shall be conquered, and all their power and property confiscated. In
-this manner, concludes the advocate of these revolutionary measures, the
-rights of his master will be for ever secured. This is what Geneva had
-to expect from Savoy; what had it to hope from the bishop?
-
-Pierre de la Baume, indignant at the duke's pretensions, had said to him
-one day proudly: 'I am subject only to the pope.'[484] He had lately
-softened down, in appearance at least, and was drawing nearer to Savoy,
-so that the Genevans said: 'Our prince is reconciled with our
-enemy.'[485] We are now transported into quite another sphere. If the
-duke wished to reign by force, the bishop desired to use stratagem. The
-pastor of Geneva was not in a position to build a fortress in the middle
-of the city; it was by means of negotiations and intrigues that he would
-crush the Reformation and liberty. The lion was succeeded by the
-serpent. Pierre de la Baume, knowing the influence Besançon Hugues had
-over his fellow-citizens, solicited his help. He wrote to him, during
-the last year of Besançon's life, a series of letters we have also had
-the good fortune to discover.[486] The bishop and the citizen of Geneva
-were not such good friends as they had been. The former addressed many
-reproaches to the latter, either because Hugues was dissatisfied on
-political grounds, or perhaps because his catholicism had cooled down a
-little in his frequent interviews with the reformed of Berne.
-
-[Sidenote: THE BISHOP'S SECRETARY IN GENEVA.]
-
-On the 11th of April 1532, the bishop, then at Arbois, impatient to
-recover his former power in Geneva, resolved to open the campaign, and
-wrote to Hugues: 'Besançon, I have always done for you everything that I
-could; you have seen it by the results; I do not speak to reproach you,
-but I am astonished that you should requite me so ill. If you had as
-good an affection for me, as I have given you opportunity, you would
-have _barked_ (aboyé) so well, that my authority would not have fallen
-to its present depression, and I should not have the trouble, which I
-must take, of restoring it. I well know the excuses that you can
-make.... None is so deaf as he that will not hear. Nevertheless I have
-trusted in you, and I still trust in your well-known fidelity. So act, I
-pray, that I may have cause to continue it. In a little time I shall
-send one of my people to Geneva on business; you will hear the rest from
-him. I pray God that He will give you, Besançon, all that you
-desire.'[487] Ten days later, Machard, the bishop's secretary, came from
-Arbois to Geneva, charged with a political mission, and bearer of
-another letter for Hugues, which, either on account of the delicate
-matters to which it related, or because Machard was to explain them
-verbally, is rather obscure. Hugues hastened to read the prelate's
-missive: 'I send my secretary,' said De la Baume, 'on certain business,
-which I have instructed him to communicate to you first. You will give
-credit to what he says in my name as if I said it myself. I desire that
-the affair in question may come to a good end, in order to gratify the
-princes from whom it proceeds (the emperor and the duke, no doubt). Set
-a willing hand to it, so that there may be friendly relations between me
-and my subjects and the said princes, which is a thing of no trifling
-consequence to all the republic.'
-
-Hugues did not care to enter into the plans formed by the bishop in
-accord with the princes; so that when Machard returned to Arbois and
-made his report, his master was much annoyed. He complained of the
-excessive boldness and strange insubordination of the Genevans, and
-wrote bitterly to the ex-syndic. 'Besançon,' he said, 'the news that you
-have given me of Berne are a little compensation for the insolence and
-ill practices that you and my subjects show towards my officers,
-usurping my jurisdiction under the shelter of certain words that you
-have uttered before the general council.... I intend to uphold this same
-jurisdiction in opposition to you.... Indeed I have done so against
-greater folks.... I hope that you will return to your duty and become my
-subjects once more. That will give me the opportunity of being a good
-master. Otherwise do not trust to me.... Matters shall not remain where
-you have left them. Communicate this to my subjects, if need be.'
-
-[Sidenote: THE BISHOP'S ANGER.]
-
-The bishop was angry with Geneva, as this letter shows—sometimes more,
-sometimes less, but always restless and agitated. One day he was told of
-something Hugues had said which delighted him; not long after he would
-hear of something the Genevans had done that increased his anger. About
-the 13th May when he was informed that Hugues had displayed a very good
-feeling towards him, the prelate was quite delighted, and wrote to him:
-'I have been informed of your intention to declare everywhere the wrong
-that my subjects are doing me. You will show me, I hope, by good
-actions, when I shall require it of you, that you are not a man of _two
-words_.' But ere long other tidings reached the bishop. He was filled
-with trouble, fear, and pain; and gave way to all the emotions of a
-restless and suspicious policy. He had fits of anger; he became rash,
-violent; then he would suddenly collapse; he had neither strength,
-feeling, nor courage. In general, however, it was indignation that
-prevailed in him. Not one of his officers or of the canons (for there
-was a collegiate church at Arbois) understood him, or consoled him, or
-encouraged him. He was alone ... and vented his agitation in his
-apartments or in his gardens. 'I think the answers made by my subjects
-very strange,' he said, 'I should be sorry to be angry with them.'[488]
-A few days later he wrote: 'I am quite amazed.... It seems that my
-subjects do not understand their business.... If they do not mend, I
-shall be forced to proceed in another way ... which will displease
-me.... It seems to me that they would do well to obey their lord, and
-not act the prince.... It cannot last.'[489]
-
-[Sidenote: LETTER TO HUGUES.]
-
-But it did last. Geneva, where they were listening to Olivetan, where
-they were placarding everywhere, by the side of the pardon of Rome, 'the
-great general pardon' of Jesus Christ, where the council unanimously
-ordered the Gospel to be preached 'according to the truth, without any
-mixture of fable;'[490]—Geneva, whatever Pierre de la Baume might say or
-do, was separating from the bishop and the pope. On the 3d September
-(1532), the bishop, more exasperated than ever, wrote again to Besançon
-Hugues, but with an increase of ill-humour. 'I am displeased with the
-way my subjects treat me from day to day, declaring that they will rise
-against my authority.... That will last as long as it can.... I have
-always been long-suffering; but now it would be better for me to be
-angry.... If I attempt to do anything from which the Genevans will reap
-neither pleasure nor profit ... they must not be surprised.... Certainly
-I have little to thank my servants or my friends for serving me so
-badly.... I think, Besançon, that you desire what is right, but I should
-like to see the fruits. The people always find excuses in you.... They
-say that I have allowed their proceedings.... I do not understand that
-_dance_, and I affirm that I said nothing with that intention, from
-which may God keep them.
-
-'THE BISHOP OF GENEVA.'[491]
-
-It was reported at Geneva that the bishop was willing to make some
-concessions, that he had said so privately, and the huguenots took
-advantage of it to assert their independence. On the 28th November
-Pierre de la Baume wrote to Besançon Hugues from the Tour de Mai:
-'Besançon, I have seen what you wrote touching the mode of proceeding
-against my authority and to the detriment of my church. I know whence
-that comes ... except that I have always been given to understand that,
-according to the common opinion, my subjects would have been much better
-guided and would have obeyed me better than they have done, if you had
-been willing to set your hand to it, as you had promised me,
-endeavouring to procure the peace of the city, which suffers the
-greatest loss on my part. As to what you write about being under my
-displeasure, the only regret I feel as regards you is that you have not
-been willing to do what you promised. The recompense I made you was to
-the end that you might keep my possessions in peace, but they are more
-than ever in war. It is entirely your fault if my jurisdiction is not
-still kept up. I write to you in order that you may perform your
-duty.... You will do me a pleasure: I would not have so many words to be
-without result.... As for me I am accustomed to do _something
-vigorously_.... _I shall consider what it must be._'
-
-Such are the threatening words which close the correspondence of Pierre
-de la Baume with Besançon Hugues. Until now all traces of this great
-citizen had been lost after the 26th September 1532. If the letter we
-have just given belongs to this year, that limit would be shortened by
-two months. He must have died between the 28th November 1532 and the
-18th February 1533.[492]
-
-Thus the bishop, continually engrossed with Geneva, thought of nothing
-but recovering his former power. But the independence of that city had
-enemies more formidable still. Charles V. had ordered the Genevans to
-drive the Reformation from their walls. 'Full of anxiety for your soul's
-health,' he wrote to them, 'and learning that certain new opinions and
-sects are beginning to swarm among you,[493] we exhort you seriously not
-to admit them, to extirpate them, and to set about it with the utmost
-diligence, not to permit anything to be taught among you in the
-leastwise opposed to the decrees and traditions of your ancestors; on
-the contrary, to preserve with unshaken constancy the faith, rites, and
-ceremonies that you have received from your fathers. You will thus
-receive a worthy reward from Almighty God, and will merit from us every
-sort of gratitude.' Geneva had not obeyed the orders of the puissant
-emperor. The affairs of Germany had at first prevented him from
-constraining the little city to follow his sovereign orders, which even
-the barbarous tribes of the new world obeyed. But now the treaty of
-Nuremberg was signed; Charles having come to terms with the protestants
-of Germany might easily keep the promise he had made to his
-brother-in-law through Bellegarde, and assist him against the huguenots
-of Geneva.
-
-[Sidenote: FREEDOM IN SIGHT.]
-
-The perfidious murderer of Levrier was beginning to hope that it would
-be possible to found a stronghold in Geneva, with its ditches and lofty
-walls, flanked with towers and bastions, and a strong garrison of
-halberdiers, arquebusiers, and artillerymen, who would keep the city and
-country in complete subjection under the yoke of their master. When
-Gessler was sent in the name of Austria to destroy the liberties of the
-Swiss, did he not build a fortress above Altorf—_Zwing-Uri_, the yoke of
-Uri? and had not the free children of those mountains to atone for the
-smallest sparks of independence by long and costly imprisonment in
-gloomy dungeons? Had not Pharaoh set the example in Egypt?... Why should
-not they do the same to subdue the huguenots? Fortresses, cannons,
-arquebusses, chains ... this was what Geneva had to expect. Before any
-great length of time the Genevans were really to see a formidable force
-marching against them, commissioned to carry out the plans of the
-emperor and the duke. But God's providence had always kept the city, and
-at this very moment a new force, the pledge of liberty, was about to be
-given it. The Gospel of the Son of God was about to enter its walls. But
-_he whom the Son maketh free, shall be free indeed_.
-
-[480] We have found among the archives at Turin (No. 49, bundle 12) the
-_Mémoire de M. de Bellegarde au sujet de l'audience qu'il a eue de
-S.M. Impériale touchant les différends que S. A. avait avec ceux de
-Genève_. This manuscript of about 25 pages has supplied us with the
-particulars in the text.
-
-[481] The name is illegible in the manuscript, but it looks like
-_Conmes_.
-
-[482] Is the Reformation or union with Switzerland meant here? probably
-both of them.
-
-[483] MS. _Memoir of Bellegarde_, Turin Archives.
-
-[484] Turin Archives, No. 19, bundle 12.
-
-[485] Ibid. 12th category, bundle 3.
-
-[486] Ibid. 12th category, bundle 4. The handwriting is almost as
-illegible as that of Bellegarde's memoir.
-
-[487] Turin Archives.
-
-[488] Letter dated the eve of Pentecost.
-
-[489] Dated 1st July.
-
-[490] Vol. II. book III. chap. xv. pp. 615-634.
-
-[491] Turin Archives.
-
-[492] In a document at Basle under the latter date, the _late_
-(feu) Besançon Hugues is mentioned. Galiffe, _Hugues_, p. 459.
-
-[493] 'Novas quasdam opiniones et sectas apud vos pullulare
-cœpisse.'—Turin Archives. We found this letter, which appears to have
-been hitherto unknown, in the national archives at Turin. Geneva, bundle
-12, No. 47.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
- THE REFORMERS AND THE REFORMATION ENTER GENEVA.
- (OCTOBER 1532.)
-
-
-On one fine autumn day (2nd October), Farel and Saunier 'having finished
-their journey through Piedmont,' reached that beautiful neighbourhood
-where the Alps and the Jura, drawing near each other, form a rich
-valley, in the midst of which calmly sleep the pure waters of an azure
-lake. They soon distinguished the three old towers of the cathedral of
-Geneva rising high above the houses. They pressed their horses, whose
-speed was relaxed through fatigue, and entered the city of the
-huguenots. They had been directed to the Tour Percée,[494] which they
-found in a street situated on the left bank of the Rhone, and bearing
-its name. They stopped in front of the inn, dismounted from their
-horses, spoke to the landlord, and took up their quarters under his
-roof.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL CONSULTS WITH OLIVETAN.]
-
-One of their first thoughts, after resting themselves, was to inform
-Robert Olivetan of their arrival. Calvin's cousin, who was still tutor
-to Jean Chautemps' children, hastened to them, delighted at the coming
-of his brethren. Farel desired to consult with him on the best means of
-advancing the knowledge of the Gospel in Geneva; but another idea had
-also occupied him during his journey. Knowing how learned Olivetan was
-in Greek and Hebrew, he had cast his eyes on him to make the translation
-of the Bible which the Waldensian synod had decided upon. Farel having
-spoken to him about it, Olivetan exclaimed in alarm: 'I cannot accept
-such a commission, considering the great difficulty of the work and my
-own weakness.'[495] Farel did not admit the excuse, and continued to
-solicit his friend, who would not give way. 'You could do this work much
-better yourself,' he said to the travellers. But Farel believed that God
-gives every man a calling for which He has prepared him, and that
-Olivetan was a scholar while he was an evangelist. 'God has not given me
-leisure,' said Farel, 'He calls me to another work. He wills me to sow
-the pure seed of the Word in His field, and water it and make it
-flourish like the garden of Eden.'[496] He dropped the subject, however,
-in order to talk with Olivetan about the evangelisation of Geneva.
-
-Chautemps' tutor, who had so often sunk under the weight of his task,
-and so earnestly called for a stronger hand, looked upon Farel as one
-sent from heaven. But how to begin? The evangelist of Orbe took from his
-pocket the letters given him at Berne for some of the chief huguenots.
-Olivetan saw that a door was opening for the Gospel, and without loss of
-time the two friends went out to deliver the letters to their addresses.
-Olivetan gave Farel the information he required, and explained to him
-that although some of those to whom he was introduced inclined to the
-side of the Gospel, the majority were content to throw off the Romish
-superstitions, and were simply true patriots.
-
-The huguenots having opened the letters that Farel presented, found that
-the bearer was William Farel, preacher of the Gospel, and that their
-Bernese friends invited them to hear him speak. This was great news. No
-name was better known than Farel's in the districts bathed by the lakes
-of Geneva, Morat, Bienne, and Neuchatel. The huguenots, delighted to see
-him, looked attentively at him, and some of them reflected on such an
-unexpected incident, which religious and political motives rendered most
-important in their eyes. Friends of the Reformation had often told them
-that the independence of Geneva would never be secure until the dominion
-of the bishop and the pope had given place to that of the Gospel, and
-now the Gospel was knocking at their doors in the person of Farel. Was
-it not he who had filled Aigle, Morat, Neuchatel, Valengin, Orbe, and
-Grandson with the evangelical doctrine? Political men hoped that at his
-voice the temporal dominion of the church would fall, and the phantoms
-of the middle ages, which still entangled liberty, would flee away in
-alarm to distant hiding-places. Religious men, who had found pleasure in
-the words of Am Thun, of Olivetan, and of the Gospel more especially,
-expected that this great preacher would make the light of heaven to
-shine in their hearts. All, therefore, expressed themselves ready to
-hear him,[497] and Farel, saying he should be happy to see them at his
-inn, took his leave.
-
-[Sidenote: HUGUENOTS GO TO HEAR FAREL.]
-
-The news of the reformer's arrival spread through the city in a
-moment.[498] 'Let us go and hear him,' said the huguenots; 'it is the
-man they call _the scourge of the little priests_.'[499] But the nuns,
-bigots, and friars were filled with anger. 'A shabby little preacher,'
-said the sisters of St. Claire; 'one Master William, a native of Gap in
-Dauphiny, has just arrived in the city.'[500] Every one prepared for the
-morrow.
-
-On the morning of the 3d of October, the most notable of the huguenots
-left their houses to go to the Tour Perce. They went singly, or at the
-most two or three together, with a certain fear. One after another the
-following persons might have been seen entering the inn: the amiable and
-active Ami Porral, one of the syndics of the year; Baudichon de la
-Maison Neuve, who had stuck up the 'Great Pardon of God;' syndic Robert
-Vandel and his brother Pierre—all these intimate acquaintances of the
-bishop; Claude Roset, secretary of state in the following year, and
-father of the chronicler; syndic Claude Savoy, one of the most zealous
-defenders of independence; Jean Chautemps, Olivetan's patron; Dominic
-Arlod, afterwards syndic; Stephen Dada, descended from an illustrious
-Milanese family, and properly called d'Adda, from the city of that name;
-Claude Salomon, the friend of the poor and the sick; Claude Bernard;
-Jean Goulaz, who had torn down the bill of the Romish jubilee from the
-pillar of the cathedral; Jean Sourd, Claude de Genève, and lastly, the
-energetic Ami Perrin, who several times syndic, captain-general, and
-ambassador of the Republic at Paris, showed much zeal for the
-Reformation at first, but afterwards incurred severe reproach.[501]
-These citizens, who were the _élite_ of Geneva, with several other
-persons of less distinction, arrived at the reformers' lodgings. The
-landlord of the Tour Perce introduced them into a private room where
-they found Farel and Saunier. The conversation began.
-
-[Sidenote: HE SHOWS THEM THEIR DEFICIENCIES.]
-
-The two evangelists were full of esteem for the men who were struggling
-with such courage for independence and liberty against powerful enemies.
-They were not slow, however, to observe that if, in a political light,
-they held the most elevated sentiments, there were great deficiencies in
-them in a religious light. The huguenots wanted neither pope nor
-priests; but it was because of the tyranny of the one, and the
-licentious conduct of the others;[502] as for the true doctrine of the
-Gospel and the necessity of a moral transformation in themselves, they
-had not troubled themselves about it. There was also a great void in
-their religious system. Before they could become good protestants and
-men morally strong, friends at once of order and liberty, this blank
-must be filled up. They felt it themselves, and told Farel they desired
-nothing better than to be instructed. The landlord brought in a few
-benches and stools for them, and then Farel, having Saunier near him,
-took his station before a little table. He placed a Bible on it, and
-began to speak from the Word of God. An audience so select, an
-opportunity so important for announcing the Gospel, had perhaps never
-been offered to the reformer. He had before him the earliest champions
-of modern liberty. These men had recognised the errors in the state, he
-must now show them the errors in the church; they must learn that if man
-may throw off despotism in earthly things, it is more lawful still to
-throw it off in heavenly things.
-
-Farel undertook the task; he showed the huguenots from Scripture 'that
-they had been abused until now by their priests; that the latter amused
-them with silly tales that had no substance in them, and further, that
-these cheats (_affronteurs_) allured them, if they felt it necessary, by
-flattery, and gave the rein to their lusts.' He added that neither
-councils nor popes would teach them to know Jesus Christ, but Holy
-Scripture only; and urged them to abandon errors and abuses, whose
-danger and absurdity he forcibly pointed out to them. The huguenots
-listened to him attentively. 'They had no great sentiment or knowledge
-or fear of God, but they already aspired to the religion that had been
-adopted at Berne,' says a manuscript of the seventeenth century; 'and
-God, seeing his people of Geneva stagnating in security, and wishing by
-an effort of his mercy to show them the divine sweetness of his
-clemency, animated the courage of his servants, Farel and Saunier.'[503]
-The simple movement by which Farel, setting aside all patristic,
-synodal, scholastic, and papal traditions, turned reverently towards the
-fountain-head, and drank from the Word of God the faith that he
-preached, specially struck his hearers. They rose, thanked him, and left
-the room, saying as they retired that it seemed right to substitute the
-Holy Scriptures for the teaching of the pope. This was the principle of
-an immense transformation. The Reformation had taken its first step in
-Geneva when the placards of the 'general pardon' of God had been stuck
-up: it now took the second step.[504]
-
-'There was a great sensation in the city,' said Froment. Some of the
-hearers, returning to their families or their friends, astonished them
-by saying that henceforth their master should be neither M. La Baume,
-nor M. Medicis or even M. St. Peter, 'but the Lord Jesus Christ alone.'
-The astonishment was still greater in the political and ecclesiastical
-bodies. Hitherto they had only had to deal with the heroes of liberal
-emancipation; now they were in presence of the champions of the
-religious movement. 'This thing having come to the notice of the
-council, canons, and priests of the city, they were suddenly troubled
-and disturbed.'[505] The monks were either astounded or very angry,
-while the nuns of St. Claire were quite alarmed at 'this wretched
-preacher, who was beginning to speak secretly at his quarters, in a
-room, seeking to infect the people with his heresy.'[506] All of them
-foresaw that this act would have innumerable and fatal consequences.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL'S SECOND LECTURE.]
-
-There was soon a second meeting. Many of those who had not been at the
-first wished to be present at this; and from the city, the Molard, and
-the Rhone bridge, many citizens took their way towards the Tour Perce.
-There were no women among them, but the men filled every corner of the
-room, anxious to hear the Gospel. As Farel on the former occasion had
-spoken particularly of scripture, he now addressed the huguenots on the
-subject of living grace. He showed them that it was not the pardon of
-the Church, but the pardon of God, that saves. Those prelates and
-masters who, puffed out with magnificent titles, were continually
-recommending pious works, were (he said) building the temple of God with
-straw and stubble, instead of bringing together the living stones of
-which scripture speaks. He maintained that when the priests spoke so
-much of penance, vows, masses, fasts, aves, macerations, flagellations,
-indulgences, pilgrimages, invocations to the Virgin and the saints, they
-hardly left Jesus Christ the hundredth part of the work of redemption.
-Farel and Saunier repeated strongly that pardon resides wholly in the
-Saviour, and not in part only, 'at which those who heard him took great
-pleasure.' Some meditated as they went away on what they had heard, and
-that silent conversation of the soul speaking with its God began in the
-quiet chamber of many a house. 'By this means a goodly number of
-Genevans received a knowledge of the Gospel.'[507] Some of
-them—Baudichon de la Maison-Neuve and Claude Salomon amongst
-others—earnestly besought Farel to come and explain the Scriptures in
-their own houses.
-
-This second meeting added considerably to the alarm in the catholic
-camp, and the commotion was particularly great among the women, who were
-at that time the main support of the papacy in Geneva. 'There is not one
-of them,' said a reformer, 'that has any desire to learn the truth, so
-tainted are they with the breath, teaching, life, and conversation of
-their priests. There is a great intimacy between them; some are their
-brothers, others their friends, neighbours, gossips.... I shall say
-nothing more at present,' he added, 'to save the honour of the
-ladies.'[508] The priests told their female parishioners that if they
-did not turn out these unbelievers everything was lost. The Genevan
-ladies, therefore, entreated their husbands and brothers to expel the
-heretic preachers. A few citizens, who cared very little about the
-Reformation, were carried away by their wives, and proceeding angry and
-heated to the Tour Perce, desired Farel and Saunier to leave Geneva at
-once, if they did not wish to be turned out forcibly. 'If we cannot
-maintain what we say,' replied the reformers, 'we offer ourselves to
-death.'[509] Having God for the author of their faith, they were
-tranquil in the midst of tempests.[510]
-
-Thus, despite all the efforts of the husbands urged by their wives, and
-of the wives urged by the priests, Farel remained. At that time a great
-agitation prevailed in Geneva: canons, rectors, monks, and curates ran
-up and down, talking with one another, 'and holding counsel together,
-asked what they should do with those persons.'[511]
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL BEFORE THE TOWN-COUNCIL.]
-
-The magistrates, noticing the commotion occasioned by the arrival of
-Farel and Saunier in the city, summoned them to appear before the bench,
-and met to consult as to what should be said and done to them. The
-council had not made up their minds either for or against the
-Reformation, and many of the members arrived at the town-hall not
-knowing clearly what they ought to do. Ex-syndic Balard, who was then
-discharging the functions of vidame, a zealous Catholic whom Froment
-calls (probably with some exaggeration) 'the head servant of the
-priests,' was for immediate repression, and a few were ready to vote
-with him. The majority, composed of men of moderate views, had no desire
-to offend the canons and priests, but feared still more to offend Berne.
-William Hugues, the premier syndic and Besançon's brother, was rather
-favourable to the reformers. Only a small number of decided huguenots
-were convinced that the new doctrine alone could free them from the
-bickerings of the bishops and the dukes. Farel and Saunier were
-conducted to the town-hall and taken into the council chamber. As they
-entered, everybody looked with curious eye on that man with keen look
-and red beard who was setting all the country in a blaze from the Alps
-to the Jura. One of the magistrates most devoted to the Church
-addressing Farel rudely, said: 'It is you then that do nothing but
-disturb the world; it is your tongue that is stirring up tumult
-everywhere and trumpeting rebellion. You are a busybody who have come
-here only to create discord. We order you to depart from the city
-instantly.' The angry looks of some of the councillors were at the same
-time turned upon Farel, who being regarded as the scourge of the
-priests, 'was for that reason supremely hated by them.'[512] The
-reformer contained himself, and answered: 'I am not a deluder, I am not
-a trumpet of sedition; I simply proclaim the truth.[513] I am ready to
-prove out of God's Word that my doctrine is true, and,' added he in a
-voice trembling with emotion, 'not only to sacrifice my ease but to shed
-the last drop of my blood for it.'
-
-The reformer's noble simplicity touched the members of the council, and
-supplied the huguenots with sufficient motives to undertake his defence.
-Farel's judges appeared to be softened by his moderation. Then calling
-to mind that St. Paul under similar circumstances had invoked the
-respected name of imperial Rome, the evangelist resolved to follow his
-example. 'Most honoured lords,' he said, 'are you not allies and
-co-burgesses of Berne? Know, then, that my lords of Berne, who have at
-heart to advance the Gospel, have given me letters wherein they bear
-witness to my innocence and doctrine, and beg you to hear me preach
-peacefully, assuring you that by so doing you will confer a pleasure on
-them.' At the same time Farel produced the credentials with which their
-excellencies had furnished him. The syndics took the letter. 'If you
-condemn me unheard,' continued Farel, 'you insult God, and also, as you
-see, my lords of Berne.' The latter plea touched the magistrates of
-Geneva closely; and, accordingly, changing countenance, they gently
-dismissed Farel and Saunier without imposing any punishment on them, but
-begging them only not to disturb the public tranquillity by new
-doctrines. The two ministers quitted the council chamber.[514]
-
-[Sidenote: DELIBERATIONS OF THE CLERGY.]
-
-Meanwhile an episcopal council was being held; and jurists, canons, and
-priests were assembling at the house of the grand vicar. Monseigneur de
-Gingins, abbot of Bonmont, deliberated as to what should be done. The
-Reformation and the reformers, of whom there had been so much talk these
-fifteen years, were in Geneva at last. The rock so long suspended over
-their heads was at length detached from the mountain, and threatened to
-destroy everything. What was to be done? The tumult was still greater in
-the city than in the grand vicar's house. A crowd, attracted by the
-summons of Farel and Saunier before the council, 'was scattered up and
-down the streets,' and priests paraded the city, 'carrying arms under
-their frocks.'[515] The reformers had some trouble to reach their
-lodgings.
-
-The episcopal council prolonged its sittings. Monseigneur de Bonmont, a
-sincere but moderate and liberal catholic, was ill at ease. Seeing angry
-faces and flashing eyes around him, he represented that it would be
-necessary to proceed cautiously and in accordance with justice. Some of
-those present were exasperated, for in their eyes De Gingins' moderation
-was flagrant treason. In their opinion it was necessary to prosecute
-immediately not only the foreign preachers, but 'all who inviting them
-into their houses (as Maison-Neuve for instance) to converse about the
-Gospel, wished to live differently from what their forefathers, pastors,
-and bishops had taught them.' The most reverend vicar represented that
-persons were not convicted without being heard, that they must summon
-these strangers before them, call upon them to explain their doctrine,
-and then they would be sentenced upon full knowledge of the facts. This
-alarmed the council, and Dom Stephen Piard, proctor to the chapter,
-exclaimed with a frown:[516] 'If we dispute, all our office is at an
-end.'[517] He urged that 'to discuss theological questions was to
-overlook the authority of the church; that we must believe because Rome
-has spoken; that these people with their Bibles were subtle spirits and
-dangerous adversaries, ... and that the authority of the chapter would
-be overthrown if they permitted any disputation.'
-
-[Sidenote: CONSPIRACY AGAINST FAREL.]
-
-Dom Stephen enjoyed a certain authority; the assembly was about to
-refuse to hear Farel, when it was opposed by some of the members who
-were most notorious for their fanatical zeal. In the sixteenth century
-not only jurists regarded it as a duty to condemn heretics to death, but
-devout persons, laymen as well as priests, thought they did an
-acceptable thing to God by putting them to death. It would appear that
-these latter persons had made up their minds to this meritorious work.
-'Having deliberated to kill Farel and his companion,' says a manuscript,
-'they found the best means of getting them to come would be by giving
-them to understand that they desired to debate with them.' The pious
-sister Jeanne de Jussie corroborates this statement.[518] The
-conspirators carried the proposal to summon Farel. He was never to go
-out again from the vicar-general's house; but first of all it was
-necessary for him to enter it. Machard, the bishop's secretary, was
-deputed to summon Farel and Saunier, and also Olivetan, 'to retract
-publicly, or to explain before the episcopal council what they had
-preached in the inn.'
-
-Ere long something transpired of the plot of these fanatical
-ecclesiastics, and the huguenots, forming part of the little council at
-that moment assembled in the town-hall, represented to their colleagues
-that the priests had no other object than to draw the ministers into a
-trap. Accordingly the two chief magistrates, Hugues and Balard,
-accompanied Machard to the Tour Perce, to give a guarantee to Farel and
-his friends. Some persons suspected Balard of wishing to get Farel and
-Saunier into trouble. 'There is nothing more prejudicial to Geneva than
-division,' he said; 'I wish those who disturb us were well out of us.'
-But he was neither a coward nor a traitor; he was determined to send the
-reformers away from Geneva, but to protect their lives.'[519] On
-reaching the inn the bishop's secretary informed the evangelists that
-the episcopal council invited them to retract the doctrines they had
-taught, the presence of Balard and Hugues giving weight to the request.
-Farel answered: 'We affirm these doctrines in the strongest way
-possible, and again offer to die if we cannot prove them out of
-scripture.' 'In that case,' resumed Machard, 'come before the episcopal
-council to discuss with the priests, and maintain what you have said.'
-'No harm shall be done you,' said the premier syndic and the vidame, 'we
-pledge our word to it.' Farel and Saunier, delighted with this
-opportunity of announcing the Gospel, set off, accompanied by Olivetan.
-They were calm and full of joy, doubtless not expecting what awaited
-them, but ready nevertheless to give up their lives.
-
-[494] Tour Percée. The sign of this inn was in existence until recently;
-there was a _hole in the tower_.
-
-[495] Olivetan's Bible, _Apologie du translateur_.
-
-[496] Ibid.
-
-[497] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 3.
-
-[498] 'Percrebuit rumor de Farelli adventu.'—Spanheim, _Geneva
-restituta_, p. 43.
-
-[499] 'Sacrificulorum flagellum.'—Ibid.
-
-[500] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 46.
-Choupard MSS.; Roset MSS. liv. III. ch. 1.
-
-[501] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 4. Galiffe, _Notices généalogiques_, &c.
-
-[502] 'Cives multi non inviti, etsi nounullos, non tam pietatis cura,
-quam Romanæ tyrannidis odium movebat.'—MS. of Benedict Turretini,
-entitled _Initium et progressus Reformationis quæ facta est Genevæ_, in
-the Berne Library, MS. _Hist. Helv._ v. p. 125.
-
-[503] _Hist. de la Réf. de Genève_, MS. of Badollet, regent of the
-college of Geneva in the seventeenth century. Berne library, _Hist.
-Helv._ v. p. 125.
-
-[504] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 5. Gautier MS. Spon I. p. 467. Roser
-and Choupard MSS.
-
-[505] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 3.
-
-[506] La Sœur de Jussie, _le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 46.
-
-[507] Choupard MS.
-
-[508] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 4.
-
-[509] Ibid. Choupard MS.
-
-[510] Calvin.
-
-[511] Choupard MS.
-
-[512] Ruchat, III. p. 177.
-
-[513] 'Se non seditionis tubam sed veritatis præconem esse.'—Spanheim,
-_Geneva restituta_, p. 43.
-
-[514] Choupard MS. Spanheim, _Geneva restituta_, p. 43.
-
-[515] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 4.
-
-[516] 'Supercilio adducto.'—Spanheim, _Geneva restituta_, p. 44.
-
-[517] 'Si disputetur, totum ministerium nostrum destruetur.'—Froment,
-_Gestes de Genève_, p. 5. This is differently reported: Froment and
-Choupard give _ministerium_: Roset and Spanheim _mysterium_. I have
-preferred the former as the better reading.
-
-[518] Choupard MS. La Sœur J. de Jussie, _le Levain du Calvinisme_,
-p. 47.
-
-[519] _Mém. d'Archéologie de la Soc. d'Hist. de Genève_, x. p.
-cviii.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
- THE REFORMERS ARE EXPELLED FROM GENEVA.
- (OCTOBER 1532.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL BEFORE THE EPISCOPAL COUNCIL.]
-
-While the upper house of the clergy was sitting at the vicar-general's,
-the lower house had assembled in the streets. The armed curates and
-chaplains watched what was going on, and when they saw the premier
-syndic with ex-syndic Balard and the bishop's secretary enter the inn,
-they guessed that they were about to conduct Farel before the episcopal
-council, and had immediately made it known to their followers, to the
-women and the common people. When the three reformers, accompanied by
-the three Genevans, came out, there was already a little crowd in front
-of the Tour Perce. The number increased as they proceeded along the
-streets which lead from the banks of the Rhone to the top of the hill;
-but the populace and the women were content to threaten and jeer at the
-reformers, crying out as loud as they could, 'Look at the dogs, look at
-the dogs.'[520] Thanks to the presence of the magistrates, the three
-reformers arrived safe and sound in the Rue des Chanoines and entered
-the house of the vicar episcopal. As those who were within as well as
-those who were without had equally sworn Farel's death, it seemed
-impossible for him to escape. The three evangelicals had to wait some
-time; in fact the syndics had preceded them, and required of the
-episcopal council that no harm should be done the ministers if they
-freely explained their doctrines. This engagement having been taken,
-Farel, Saunier, and Olivetan were called in, the two magistrates
-remaining in the assembly to secure order.
-
-[Sidenote: VEIGY'S INVECTIVES.]
-
-The abbot-vicar of Bonmont presided; on his right and left sat the
-canons, the bishop's officers, and the head priests, all in their
-sacerdotal robes. The missionary, simply but decently dressed, came
-forward followed by his two friends, and all three remained standing
-before the assembly. The official, Messire de Veigy, a learned and
-eloquent man, was ordered to speak. 'William Farel,' he said, 'tell me
-who has sent you, for what reason you come here, and in virtue of what
-authority you speak?' In Veigy's opinion it was necessary for the
-preacher to be sent by some Romish ecclesiastical authority. Farel
-replied with simplicity, 'I am sent by God, and I am come to announce
-his word.' 'Poor wretch!' exclaimed the priests, as they shrugged their
-shoulders. The official resumed: 'God has sent you, you say; how is
-that? Can you show by any manifest sign that you are come in His name?
-As Moses before Pharaoh, will you prove to us by miracles that you
-really come from God? If you cannot, then show us the licence of our
-most reverend prelate the Bishop of Geneva. Preacher never yet preached
-in his diocese without his leave.'
-
-Here the official paused; and then disdainfully scanning the reformer
-from head to foot, he said: 'You do not wear the dress that is usual for
-those who are accustomed to announce the Word of God to us.... You are
-dressed like a soldier or a brigand.... How is it you are so bold as to
-preach? Is it not forbidden by a decree of holy church for laymen to
-preach in public under pain of excommunication? That is contained in the
-decretals of our holy mother church.... You are, therefore, a deceiver
-and a bad man.'[521] Farel believed that it was his duty to announce the
-Word of God, because Jesus Christ had said, _Preach the Gospel to every
-creature_. He thought that the true successors of the apostles were
-those who conformed to Christ's order, and that (as Calvin says), 'the
-pope of Rome and all his tribe had no claim to that apostolical
-succession which they alleged, since they no longer cared for the
-doctrine of Christ.'[522] The clergy in whose presence he was standing
-did not allow him time to speak. At last they had before them the
-terrible heretic of whom they had been talking so many years. The
-official's words had still further aroused their passions; they could no
-longer contain themselves. Pale with anger they shuddered and clattered
-with their feet as they sat. At last the mine exploded; they all spoke
-at once, pouring insult and abuse on the reformer. Their excitement
-carried them away; they rose from their seats, rushed upon him, and
-pulling him now this way, now that, exclaimed, 'Come, Farel, you wicked
-devil, what business have you to go up and down, disturbing all the
-world?... Are you baptized? Where were you born? Where do you come from?
-Why did you come here? Tell us by whose authority you preach? Are you
-not the man who propagated Luther's heresies at Aigle and Neuchatel, and
-threw the whole country into confusion? Who sent you into this city?'
-The noise and tumult would not permit either Farel or the grand vicar to
-speak; the weapons were heard to rattle which some of the priests
-carried under their frocks. Farel remained still and silent in the midst
-of this raging sea. At last Messire de Bonmont succeeded in interposing
-his authority, made his colleagues resume their seats, and silence was
-restored.[523] Then the reformer, nobly lifting up his head, said with
-great simplicity, 'My lords, I am not a devil. I was baptized in the
-name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, and if I journey to and fro, it
-is that I may preach Jesus Christ—Jesus Christ crucified, dead for our
-sins, and risen again for our justification, so that whosoever believeth
-in Him shall have everlasting life. As an ambassador of Jesus Christ I
-am compelled to teach Him to all who are willing to hear me. I have,
-however, no other right to speak than that which the commandment of God
-gives to me His servant. My only aim is so to discharge my duty that all
-the world may receive salvation, and it is for this cause and for no
-other that I am come into this city. Having been brought before you to
-give an account of my faith, I am ready to do so, not only at this
-moment, but as many times as you please to hear me peaceably. What I
-have preached and still preach is the pure truth and not a heresy, and I
-will maintain it even unto death. As for what you say about my
-disturbing the land and this city in particular, I will answer as Elijah
-did to Ahab, _I have not troubled Israel, but thou and thy father's
-house_. Yes, it is you and yours who trouble the world by your
-traditions, your human inventions, and your dissolute lives.'[524]
-
-[Sidenote: THREATS AGAINST FAREL.]
-
-The priests, astonished at the calm, simple, free and spirited language
-of the reformer, had listened to him in silence so far, but the moment
-they heard him speak of their human inventions and irregular lives, his
-words were like daggers and disturbed their wicked consciences. It might
-have been said that the infernal deities (it is the expression of a
-reformer) were hovering about them and left them no repose. 'They fixed
-their burning eyes on Farel; they gnashed their teeth,' says a
-manuscript; and one of them starting up in a passion said:
-'Blasphematur, non amplius indigemus testibus. Reus est mortis.'[525]
-This was the signal for a scene more savage than the former. All rose
-again, some impelled by violence and pride, others believing they were
-supporting the cause of religion, and exclaimed: 'To the Rhone, to the
-Rhone! kill him, kill him! It is better for this rascally Lutheran to
-die than permit him to trouble all the people.'[526] These words,
-without being those which the high-priest uttered against Christ were
-very like them. Farel was struck by the resemblance. 'Speak the words of
-God and not of Caiaphas,' he exclaimed. At these words the exasperated
-priests could contain themselves no longer. They all started up together
-and shouted out: 'Kill him, kill the Lutheran hound!' Dom Bergeri,
-proctor to the chapter, still more excited than the others, urged them
-on, exclaiming in his Savoyard dialect: _Tapa, tapa!_ (which, adds
-Froment, means 'Strike, strike!') The sentence was immediately carried
-into execution; they surrounded the three reformers; some caught hold of
-Farel, others of Saunier, and others of Olivetan. They abused them, beat
-them, spat in their faces, and uttered all sorts of cries, so that it
-was like a pandemonium. In the midst of all this uproar Farel and his
-companions 'preserved their patience and moderation.' The abbot of
-Bonmont, syndics Hugues and Balard, and even a few priests, ashamed of
-such a scene, tried to put an end to it. 'It is not well done,' said the
-abbot, 'have we not pledged our word and honour to them?' Syndic Hugues,
-a just, quick, and energetic man, disgusted with the behaviour of the
-ecclesiastics, broke out at last. 'You are wicked men,' he said; 'we
-brought you these men on your promise that no harm should be done them,
-and you want to beat and kill them before our faces.... I will go and
-set the great bell ringing to convoke the general council. The assembled
-people shall decide.' Hugues was leaving the room to go and put his
-threat into execution, when Balard, the other magistrate, desiring to
-prevent anything that might compromise the cause of Rome, endeavoured to
-calm him. However the syndic's threat had produced its effect; the
-priests alarmed at the thought of a general assembly of the citizens,
-and fearing lest it should decree their expulsion from Geneva, returned
-to their seats rather ashamed of themselves. The abbot, taking advantage
-of this new lull, desired Farel and his friends to withdraw, in order
-that the episcopal council might deliberate. Farel left the room covered
-with spittle and severely bruised.[527]
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL ASSAULTED.]
-
-While the superior clergy were behaving in this way, the inferior clergy
-were assembling, and about eighty priests had collected before the house
-of the vicar-episcopal, 'all well armed with clubs to defend the holy
-catholic faith and prepared to die for it.' This mode of defending
-religion, so different from that of the first fathers of the church, has
-been made known to us through the reverend Sister Jeanne de Jussie. The
-priests were stout, resolute men; they had formed a plot and were there
-to carry it into execution. 'They wished,' adds Sister Jeanne, 'to put
-that wretch and his accomplices to a bitter death.'[528] Such was the
-exploit they contemplated, and for its accomplishment they carefully
-surrounded the grand-vicar's house. They filled the narrow area of the
-Puits St. Pierre and the Rue des Chanoines, and had even penetrated into
-M. de Bonmont's courtyard and garden, so that it was impossible for
-Farel to escape. The fanatical and agitated crowd, which had been there
-for some time, was beginning to grow impatient that the episcopal
-council sat so long. Farel and his two friends, when they had turned
-into a long gallery, could hear the raised voices of some of the members
-of the council, and the increasing noise of the crowd that filled the
-courtyard. But another danger threatened them.
-
-One of the grand-vicar's servants, Francis Olard, surnamed Ginin, a
-violent man, stood at the end of the gallery, having been posted there
-arquebus in hand, as a sentinel. He had listened to the tumult from
-within; the shouting from without excited and inflamed him. Was not this
-Farel the enemy of his masters—a heretic whom everybody wished dead? His
-weapon was ready: he levelled it at Farel and prepared to fire. Had the
-priests stationed Olard there for this purpose, as the chronicles say,
-or did he act of his own accord, being more fanatical than his masters,
-as the servants of political or ecclesiastical corporations often are?
-Be it as it may, the arquebusier pulled the trigger, the priming
-flashed ... but the gun did not go off. Farel turning to him said coldly:
-'I am not to be shaken by a popgun; your toy does not alarm
-me.'—'Verily,' said his friends, 'God of His mercy turned aside
-the blow, in order to preserve Farel for struggles still more
-formidable.'[529]
-
-[Sidenote: DANGER OF FAREL AND HIS FRIENDS.]
-
-Meanwhile the council were still deliberating, and many wished Farel to
-be put to death. Heresy in that age, as is but too well known, was
-punished capitally; but the magistrates pointed to the danger of using
-violence towards the preacher of the lords of Berne. Their opinion
-prevailed, and the reformers having been brought into the room again,
-the grand-vicar said: 'William Farel, leave my presence and this house,
-and within six hours get you gone from the city with your two
-companions, under pain of the stake. And know that if the sentence is
-not more severe, you must ascribe it to our kindness and to our respect
-for my lords of Berne.'—'You condemn us unheard,' said Farel. 'I demand
-a certificate to show at Berne that I have done my duty.'—'You shall not
-have one,' the abbot hastily replied; 'leave the room all of you,
-without a word more.'[530]
-
-The priests and people collected in front of the house, learning that
-Farel was about to appear, crowded one upon another, uttering angry
-cries. It would seem that the reformer heard them and stopped an
-instant, knowing full well what was in reserve for him. It was in truth
-a solemn moment, perhaps his last. 'The caitiff dared not come out,'
-said Sister Jeanne, afterwards Abbess of Annecy, 'for he had heard the
-noise made by the church people before the door, and feared they would
-put him to death.' Seeing that Farel hesitated, two of the senior canons
-addressed him coarsely: 'As you will not go out willingly, and in God's
-name,' they said, 'go out in the name of all the devils, whose minister
-and servant you are.' Thus spoke a few fanatical priests. Their God was
-the church, and there was no salvation for the sinner except in the
-sacrifice of the mass: in them imagination took the place of
-understanding, and passion of judgment. They had no idea of the living
-faith which animated the hearts of Farel and his friends, and looked
-upon them as impious. Putting aside the holy authority and wise precepts
-of scripture, they had no other rule than strong attachment to their
-church and the excess of zeal which carried them away. Inflamed by
-violent passion they did not confine themselves to abuse. The sister of
-St. Claire is far from wishing to conceal their exploits: 'One of them,'
-she says, 'gave him a hard kick, the other struck him heavily on the
-head and face; and in great confusion they put him out with his two
-companions.'[531]
-
-[Sidenote: ATTEMPT TO STAB FAREL.]
-
-Farel, Saunier, and Olivetan quitted the house, and thus escaped the
-ill-treatment of those reverend gentlemen. But turned out of doors by
-the canons, they fell from Scylla into Charybdis: they had to experience
-still more culpable excesses of religious fanaticism. The priests,
-chaplains, sacristans, and the furious populace assembled in the street,
-hooted, hissed, groaned, and howled; some threateningly flourished their
-weapons. It was like an impetuous hurricane that seemed as if it would
-sweep everything before it. It was a human tempest more terrible perhaps
-than that of the winds:
-
- Venti, velut agmine facto,
- Qua data porta ruunt, et terras turbine perflant;
- Insequitur clamorque virum stridorque rudentum.[532]
-
-On a sudden there was a movement in the crowd, those who were on the
-outside falling back in alarm upon their comrades: there was a body of
-armed men approaching. At this time up came the syndics and all the
-watch with their halberds. 'Pray, sir priests,' said they, 'do nothing
-rash.' The mob gave way. 'We are come to execute justice,' added the
-magistrates. Upon this they took 'the caitiff,' placed him and his
-companions in the midst of the guard, and all marched off in the
-direction of the Tour Perce, the crowd parting right and left to make
-way for the escort. The priests, fourscore in number, kept together,
-forming a dark and agitated group, and so stationed themselves that the
-three ministers must necessarily pass before them on their road to the
-inn. They had heard that Farel and his friends were to be expelled from
-the city; 'but the worthy men could not be satisfied with this,' says
-Sister Jeanne. Considering that the syndics and even the episcopal
-council refused to do justice to them, they were resolved to take the
-matter into their own hands. Just as the three preachers were passing in
-front of them, one of them rushed forward sword in hand upon Farel 'to
-run him through.'[533] One of the syndics who was at the reformer's side
-saw him, caught the assassin by the arm, and stopped him. This act of
-the magistrate seriously grieved the devout. Laymen who prevented the
-clergy from killing their adversaries were looked upon as impious. 'Many
-were chagrined,' says the good nun innocently, 'because the blow
-failed.' The halberdiers closed their ranks, thrust the priests and
-their creatures aside, and the reformers continued on their way. The
-mob, finding they could not touch the Lutherans, compensated themselves
-with hooting. In every street through which they passed, men and women
-cried out that they ought to be flung into the Rhone. At length the
-procession reached the Tour Perce; the reformers entered, and the
-syndics left a guard.
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL'S DEPARTURE.]
-
-They must go—of that there could be no doubt. Farel and his friends
-might have been overwhelmed with sorrow, and have fainted in the midst
-of their work; but their Heavenly Master had said, _When they persecute
-you in this city, flee ye into another_. (Matth. x. 23.) What grieved
-them was the thought of the generous men who had listened to them; these
-Farel was determined not to abandon. If the tempest obliged him to
-depart, he would take advantage of the first moment of calm weather to
-introduce into Geneva that Gospel which many huguenots desired with all
-their heart. The next day (4th October) a few citizens, friends of the
-reformer, rose early, got ready a boat near the Molard, and went to the
-Tour Perce to fetch the missionaries, hoping that if the latter set off
-betimes they would not be observed. But the priest-party was quite as
-matutinal as they were: some of them were already before the door, and
-it is probable they had been there all night for fear the huguenots
-should take advantage of the darkness to get the ministers away. Claude
-Bernard, Ami Perrin, John Goulaz, and Peter Verne—all stanch
-huguenots—came up; they gave the signal, a door was opened, and they
-entered the inn. A few moments elapsed during which a number of priests
-and citizens assembled in that part of the Rue du Rhone which lies
-between the Tour Perce and the Molard. Presently the inn door opened
-again, and the four huguenots came out with Farel and Saunier. When they
-saw them the crowd became agitated. 'The devils are going,' shouted the
-priests, as the two evangelists and their friends passed along. Farel,
-seeing the numbers around him, wished to exhort them, 'as he walked
-along;' but Perrin would not permit it, representing to him that it was
-necessary to push on quickly for fear the priests should block the way.
-When the reformers reached the water's edge, they got into the boat with
-their defenders. The boatmen immediately began to row, and the crowd
-that lined the shore could do nothing but hoot. Perrin, fearing
-violence, would not land at any of the towns or hamlets of Vaud, but
-steered the boat to an unfrequented place between Morges and Lausanne.
-Here they all got on shore and embraced each other; after which the
-huguenots returned to Geneva, and the reformers made their way to Orbe
-and thence to Grandson.
-
-[520] 'Ce sont des cagnes, ce qui veut dire (adds Froment) ce sont des
-chiens.'
-
-[521] La Sœur de Jussie, _le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 47.
-
-[522] Calvin, _Harmonie évangelique_, 1. p. 757.
-
-[523] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 5. Choupard MS.
-
-[524] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 6. Choupard MS. Choupard gives some
-features that are not found in Froment.
-
-[525] He hath spoken blasphemy; what further need have we of witnesses?
-He is guilty of death.—Matth. xxvi. 65, 66.
-
-[526] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 7. 'In Rhodanum, in Rhodanum! unum hunc
-Lutherum necari præstat.'—Turretin MS. in the Berne library.
-
-[527] 'Sputis madidatus et pugnis contritus.'—Spanheim, _Geneva
-restituta_. Froment, _Gestes_, pp. 5-7. Choupard and Roset, MSS.
-&c.
-
-[528] _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 17.
-
-[529] 'Ictus tamen divina bonitate aversus, Deo servum suum certo
-periculo eripiente.'—Spanheim, _Geneva restituta_, p. 43. Froment,
-_Gestes de Genève_, p. 3. Roset MS. liv. iii. ch. 1.
-
-[530] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_ p. 48.
-
-[531] La sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, &c., pp. 47, 48.
-
-[532]
-
- The raging winds rush through the hollow wound,
- And dance aloft in air, and skim along the ground;
- The cables crack, the sailors' fearful cries
- Ascend.
-
- DRYDEN.
-
-[533] "Pour le transpercer au travers du corps."—La Sœur de Jussie, p.
-48.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
- A JOURNEY TO THE VALLEYS OF PIEDMONT, AND STRUGGLES NEAR NEUCHATEL.
- (END OF 1532.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: FAREL AND FROMENT.]
-
-Farel expelled from Geneva, with a heart full of love for those whom he
-had been obliged to quit, meditated on the means of evangelising them,
-and like a skilful general, was preparing even during his retreat for a
-new and more successful struggle. After having saluted the Christians of
-Orbe and Grandson he departed for the village of Yvonand, on the
-southern shore of the lake of Neuchatel, where dwelt a youthful
-Christian Anthony Froment by name, born at Val de Frières in Dauphiny in
-1510, and consequently a year younger than Calvin and his countryman
-Farel. The reformer invited several evangelists to meet him in this
-village, and about the middle of October there came Olivetan, who had
-been unable to stay in Geneva after the departure of his two friends;
-Adam, Martin (probably Martin Gonin the Waldensian), and Guido (who must
-not be confounded with the Belgian reformer Guido or Guy von Brès) who
-with Farel, Saunier, Froment, and others formed a little council. Farel
-gave an account of his mission: he described his journey to the valleys
-of Piedmont, and the stormy reception he had met with at Geneva. They
-all looked with interest on the fugitive missionary who had escaped as
-by a miracle from the violence of the Genevan priests. Froment in
-particular could not take his eyes off the reformer; every word of
-Farel's made a deep impression on him, and disgusted with the ministers
-of popery, he pitied the fate of the huguenots deprived of God's word by
-the intrigues of the clergy. Farel, fixing his eyes on him, said: 'Go
-and try if you can find an entrance into Geneva to preach there.'[534]
-Froment was disturbed and speechless. He possessed learning and talents;
-but he was young and without experience, and wanted that perseverance
-and firmness by which other reformers were distinguished. His feelings
-were sensitive, his imagination was ardent, but his character was uneven
-and rather fickle. He is believed to have been drawn to the Reformation
-more by witnessing the excesses of Rome than by the inner charms of the
-Word of God.
-
-'Alas! father,' he said to Farel, 'how can I face the enemies from whom
-you were compelled to flee?'—'Begin,' replied Farel, 'as I began at
-Aigle, where I was a schoolmaster at first and taught little children,
-so that even the priests gave me liberty to preach. True they soon
-repented; and even now I seem to hear the curate exclaiming: "I would
-sooner have lost my hand than introduced this man, for he will ruin all
-our business." But it was too late; the Word of God had begun its work,
-and the mass and images fell.' Froment, who was at that time full of
-ardour and zeal, began to familiarise himself gradually with the idea of
-going to the city that drove out the prophets. Farel, observing this,
-persevered, and encouraged his disciple by the recollection of the great
-dangers they had once incurred together. 'My dear Froment,' he said,
-'you fear the men of Geneva; but were you not with me when I planted the
-Gospel at Bienne, among the mountains, in the valley of Saint Imier, at
-Tavannes, and near that mountain (Pierre Pertuis) which Julius Cæsar
-tunnelled?... Were you not with me when I went to Neuchatel and preached
-in the streets and market-place, and in the surrounding villages? Do you
-not remember that we very often received our rent (_censes_), that is,
-blows and abuse ... once in particular at Valengin, where my blood
-remained for more than four years on the pavement of a little chapel,
-near which the women and priests bruised my head against the walls, so
-that we were both of us nearly killed?'[535] These remembrances were not
-very encouraging. Some sided with Farel, others thought that a man of
-twenty-two was too young to be launched into such a terrible gulf ...
-for Geneva really alarmed them. Froment could not yet make up his mind
-to attempt the enterprise. Another thought absorbed Farel.
-
-[Sidenote: OLIVETAN'S SCRUPLES OVERCOME.]
-
-That pious reformer's heart was still full of the glorious synod of the
-valleys at which it had been decided to translate the Bible. He had
-several times already entreated Olivetan to undertake that great work:
-he repeated his entreaties both in the assembly and in private. Near
-Yvonand there is a number of hills which form a sort of labyrinth around
-a little river. Beautiful forests of majestic oaks stretch their
-branches so wide and high that it is possible to walk beneath their
-immense leafy arches—a circumstance which has earned for this district
-the name of Arcadia. Was it in a private room or in these woods that
-Farel urged Olivetan, as they trampled underfoot the dry leaves which
-autumn had already loosened from the trees? I cannot tell: in either
-case he no longer solicited, he 'importuned;'[536] but Olivetan—like
-Froment with respect to Geneva—repeated his unwillingness to 'venture'
-upon such a task. 'How,' said he, 'can I express Hebrew and Greek
-eloquence in French, which is but a barbarous language compared with
-them? You know it is as difficult as to teach the hoarse raven to sing
-the song of the nightingale.'[537] Farel tried to encourage him: he
-might do it. Olivetan's style is, considering the time, one of
-remarkable elegance. But Calvin's cousin alleged other reasons: he had
-certain fears. 'Such an undertaking,' he said, 'is like a ball in a
-public building wherein everybody dances as he likes. I shall be
-encompassed with critics, correctors, and calumniators.... They will not
-be friends, I am very sure, but strangers devoid of charity, Christians
-who will philosophise about the dot over an _i_, and bring forward a
-thousand false imputations.'[538]—'St. Jerome undertook a similar work,'
-said Farel. 'St. Jerome!' exclaimed Olivetan, 'he had more trouble in
-answering such people than in all his work. How could I do it—I who am
-but a petty page, a mere varlet, compared with such a knight?'[539] But
-Farel pressed him so much that he thought himself bound to undertake it.
-He promised, and it was well known that what he promised he would
-perform.
-
-Farel had won a great victory. The French churches would have a good
-translation of scripture. But a journey was necessary. 'Cross the Alps,'
-he said to his friend; 'go to the Waldensian valleys, and come to an
-understanding with the brethren about the translation.' Then turning
-towards other members of the synod, he added: 'And you, Adam Martin and
-Guido, go with him and preach to them the doctrine that will correct all
-their errors.'
-
-This mission, which was to result in the publication of the Bible in
-French, was not without importance or without danger. The evangelists
-proposed to take the direct road by Mount St. Bernard; but before
-reaching the lake of Geneva they would have to cross a district
-belonging to the Duke of Savoy. Now the duke, the Count of Challans, and
-the Sieur de Bellegarde were not at all anxious that the Waldensians of
-the Piedmontese valleys should unite with the reformers of Switzerland.
-The four friends determined, therefore, to travel by night. Having
-supped at Yvonand with Farel and the other brethren, they began their
-journey immediately after. It was at the end of October. They travelled
-through the darkness, led by a guide who knew the country well. They
-successfully accomplished their night journey, and arrived at Vevey the
-next day before dinner-time. They began immediately to speak of Christ,
-for they had no wish to fall into sloth and carelessness.[540] From
-Vevey they proceeded to Aigle, where they found the evangelical
-Christians of the place assembled to receive them. 'I salute you in
-Christ,' said Adam, 'and exhort you to reprove one another as becomes
-brethren and ministers of the word of truth.'[541]
-
-[Sidenote: A MINISTER'S HOME.]
-
-When they had almost reached the pretty village of Bex, in the midst of
-its orchards and walnut trees, in front of the picturesque Dent de
-Morcles, and the huge Dent du Midi, Martin was attacked with severe
-pains. His companions immediately looked for a house where they could
-lodge the sick man, but the country was so poor that they could not find
-a room fit to receive him.[542] These poor brethren were on the highway
-with their suffering friend, anxious and yet not knowing what to do.
-Some one told them that about a league behind them, at the village of
-Ollon, lived the minister Claude who would gladly receive them. They
-accordingly retraced their steps, and arrived at Ollon, a little place
-in the midst of the shady woods which extend to the foot of the mountain
-on which are situated the charming hamlets of Chesières and Villars.
-They asked for the pastor's house and it was shown them; they dragged
-their friend to it and knocked at the door. Claude opened it himself,
-and at the sight of a pale and fainting man invited the strangers in.
-But on a sudden hasty footsteps were heard, a woman appeared flushed
-with anger and with fiery eyes—a violent, wicked, pitiless, scolding
-woman: she was the unfortunate pastor's wife. She screamed and
-gesticulated, and instead of being grave, as Scripture requires such
-women to be, she forgot all restraint and broke out: 'What's this, a
-sick man? If you receive him into the house, I will leave it.'[543]
-Claude durst not say a word: the voice of this Xantippe rose higher and
-higher, and at last she turned her back on her husband and the
-strangers, and disappeared in a passion.[544] Poor Claude was sorely
-vexed and ashamed. 'We will not be the cause of a divorce,' said Adam,
-'we will go away.'[545] The pastor, a good but weak man, who could not
-keep his wife in order, let them go.
-
-[Sidenote: THE SUFFERING MISSIONARIES.]
-
-Thus not a house was opened to receive an expiring missionary. The poor
-evangelists were quite disheartened. 'Let us cheer up,' said they, 'and
-make haste to reach the Alps.'[546] The four travellers resumed their
-journey, Martin probably on horseback; but on arriving at the foot of
-the mountain beyond Martigny his pains increased. Martin was half dead,
-Olivetan suffered from an inflammation of the bowels, Guido was
-exhausted with fatigue, and Adam alone was unaffected. But ere long he
-too was attacked. Seized with cholera (it is his own word[547]) he
-thought his end was come. The four missionaries dragged themselves
-painfully along the brink of the torrent, whose noisy waters alone
-disturbed the silence around them. They lifted their eyes mournfully
-towards those gigantic mountains which it seemed impossible for them to
-cross, and ineffectually sought a refuge in the poorest of cottages. One
-thing, however, was left them—the faithfulness of their Master. They
-said to one another: 'God takes us down into the abyss when He pleases,
-but His grace is almighty to lift us out of it again.'[548] At this
-moment they caught sight of a wretched house. They went up to it,
-explained their condition, and happily they were received in
-consideration of their money. God, whom they had invoked, alleviated
-their disorder, and the next day they were able to resume their journey,
-feebly at starting, but gradually the mountain air gave them strength.
-
-They had been forced to incur extraordinary expenses, and Adam, who held
-the purse, smiled as he saw its shrunken condition. Their good humour
-began to return: he showed his friends the lean little bag, and said
-merrily: 'Alas! our purse has been seized with such cruel pains in the
-inside that there is scarcely anything left in it.'[549] They climbed
-the mountain, and needing rest entered an inn situated between Martigny
-and the convent of St. Bernard. They soon observed one of the monks, and
-approaching him desired in spite of their weakness to discharge their
-duty: they spoke to him of Jesus Christ, and of the grace he gives to
-sinners. The monk, who belonged to the Augustine order, listened
-attentively to their words, and began to talk with them, while the
-evangelists pressed him closely by means of the Holy Scriptures. He was
-touched and convinced. 'I will quit Antichrist,' he exclaimed. Adam
-immediately took paper, sat down and wrote: 'Here is a letter for Master
-Farel,' he said to the friar, 'go to him, and he will tell you what you
-have to do.' The evangelist and the monk separated. Even down to our
-days conversions have been effected among the brethren of this
-monastery.
-
-At last the four friends arrived among the Waldenses, who listened
-joyfully to their words of truth and love: some of these Alpine
-shepherds were even known to have gone two days' journey to hear
-them.[550] These poor Christians handed over to Olivetan towards the
-printing of the Bible 500 gold crowns—an immense sum for them, and
-begged that the publication should be hurried on.[551] Olivetan and the
-barbes came to terms. Here finishes this episode, which to some may have
-little interest except so far as it is connected with the history of the
-French protestant translation of the Holy Scriptures.
-
-[Sidenote: DEPUTATION OF PEASANTS.]
-
-When this news reached Farel, his eyes were fixed upon another country.
-The young and gentle Fabri, whom the reformer loved as a father loves a
-son, was preaching at Neuchatel, when one day he saw some peasants
-arrive who had been deputed from the village of Bole in the parish of
-Boudry. These good people entreated him to come and settle among them.
-The parish priest, a worthy man by the way, looked upon the Gospel not
-as a proclamation of grace, but as a second law more perfect than the
-first. Having heard the reformers inveigh against the corruption that
-prevailed in the church, he had at first gone with them; but he soon
-hesitated and shrunk back, when he found that their new morality reposed
-on a new faith. In fact the ministers who preached in those quarters
-said that the Gospel substituted a regenerative doctrine for the dead
-ordinances of the law; that Christ's religion did not consist in
-practices commanded by the priests, or even in a purely outward
-morality, but in a new heart from which proceeds a new life. 'The law,'
-said Calvin in later years, 'is like grammar, which after it has taught
-the first elements, refers the learners to theology or some other
-science, in order that they may be perfected.' The priest of Boudry
-would have thought himself but too happy to see his parishioners endowed
-with that external morality which did not satisfy the evangelicals. A
-zealous doctor of the law, he turned against the doctors of grace, and
-hence it happened that a few of his parishioners hastened to Neuchatel.
-
-Fabri followed these honest people, and the gentle and moderate reformer
-was immediately engaged in a severe campaign. The village of Bole was
-for the reformer; the little town of Boudry for the priest. There were
-two places of worship in the parish, the church, and a chapel called the
-Pontareuse, situated in a low out-of-the-way place. The government
-decided that this should be for the use of both parties. Many catholics,
-more fanatical than their priest, entered into a plot to oppose the
-worship of the reformed. On the first Sunday in November 1532, the
-latter went down full of peace and joy into the wild valley through
-which flows the torrent of the Reuse, and where a few remains of the
-little chapel are still visible. They entered and took their seats on
-the benches, while Fabri went up into the pulpit. Meantime the
-catholics, girding on their swords, which was not usually done, entered
-the chapel and drew up near the altar.[552] While Fabri was preaching,
-all the bells suddenly rang out together so as to drown his voice, and
-the more he besought them to let him finish, the louder rang the
-catholics in the belfry. Then those who were in the church began to
-move, pushing and shouting. Fabri, seeing this disorder and profanation,
-ceased speaking, and left the church. He had hardly got outside when the
-catholics near the altar ran and shut the door, and fell like madmen on
-the surprised, hesitating, and unarmed congregation.[553] The confusion
-was very great, and it was this that saved the innocent. No one
-distinguished friends from enemies: each man struck the first he met.
-One or two evangelicals endeavoured to open the door, and at last they
-succeeded and rushed out, but their position was not bettered. 'Their
-adversaries, delighted at being able to distinguish them,' says an
-eye-witness, 'fell upon them like wolves upon lambs, threatening them
-with death.'[554] 'God help us!' exclaimed the poor people scattered
-here and there. At last they succeeded in reaching their homes,
-miraculously as it were, but with many bruises. They were happy at being
-in peace. 'Our heavenly Father fought for us mightily,' they said.[555]
-Clubs and swords only served to increase their repugnance for that
-theocratical tyranny which men had substituted for the mild gospel of
-Jesus Christ.
-
-[Sidenote: A PROTESTANT RISING.]
-
-The next day some of the reformed went to Neuchatel against the advice
-of Fabri, who desired to wait for deliverance from the Lord and not from
-men. To the friends who met them on the road, they told the story of the
-plot to which they had nearly been victims. All the villages between
-Boudry and Neuchatel were in commotion, and the peasants of Auvernier
-and Colombier flew to arms, ready to join the Neuchatelans if they went
-to the help of their brethren.[556] The council of Neuchatel decreed
-that henceforth the chapel of Pontareuse should belong entirely to the
-reformed.
-
-The catholics resolved to pay no attention to this. On Christmas day the
-priest had already sung two masses before the hour appointed for the
-evangelical preaching; and at the moment when the reformers arrived, he
-resolutely began high mass 'with loud and long singing,' although there
-was scarcely anybody to hear it. The reformed waited patiently, but when
-the service was ended, and just as they were hoping that their turn had
-come, they were surprised to see the catholics arriving in a crowd.
-Fabri then wanted to go into the pulpit, but had great difficulty; one
-pushed him one way, and one another, and all shouted out against
-him.[557] Order being a little restored, one of the reformers went, as
-was customary, to take a chalice for the celebration of the Lord's
-Supper. The priest who had remained in the church, watching what was
-going on, rushed upon him and snatched the vessel from his hands, crying
-out, 'Sacrilege! Sacrilege!' The friends of the priests determined to
-put an end to the service once for all. 'Some of them rushed like raging
-lions upon the reformed, and hit them with their fists; and one of them
-struck a governor (probably one of the communal councillors) with a
-knife; but God,' says the document we quote, 'permitted only his clothes
-to be pierced.' This did not end the battle. Others, going to a room
-behind the altar, where they had hidden some large sticks, dealt their
-blows lustily on all sides. The women rushed into the vineyards, tore up
-the vine-props, and brought them to as many of their husbands as had
-neither sticks nor knives. Some of them left the chapel and picked up
-stones to throw at the minister, who was still in the pulpit, and kill
-him. From every side they fell upon the poor evangelicals, calling them
-'Rascally dogs!' Even the _sautier_ of Boudry, whose duty it was to
-preserve order, joined in the riot, threw off his official robe, and
-loudly hooting, struck harder than the rest. The parish priest, who
-loved the law so much, had suddenly lost his balance. Incensed, and
-beside himself, stripped to his doublet, and 'bareheaded like a
-brigand,'[558] he directed the battle. His friends, well provided with
-arquebuses, bludgeons, knives, and other weapons, seeing that the
-evangelists had rallied round their pastor, rushed upon them, intending
-to kill many of them; 'but it was God's will that this wolf should be
-stopped on the way,' says the official document, 'and be driven back
-into his den.' The reformed, who parried the blows as well as they could
-with their hands only, at last succeeded in reaching their houses. They
-told their relations and friends what had happened, and gave God thanks.
-'It is indeed a great miracle,' they said with emotion, 'that there was
-nobody killed. But the Lord Jesus Christ is a Good Shepherd; he keeps
-his sheep so well in the midst of the sword, the fire, the lions, and
-even death itself, that the wolves cannot snatch them out of his hand.'
-
-[Sidenote: A PRIEST HEADS THE RIOT.]
-
-While these songs of thanksgiving were being sung in the houses of the
-evangelists, the curé was triumphing in the church. The battle was
-scarcely terminated by the retreat of the reformed, when, proud of the
-victory he had won by stones and clubs, he laid down the stake with
-which he had armed himself, covered his head, arranged his disordered
-doublet, put on his sacerdotal robes, and entered the church of Boudry
-with a grave and composed air. Seeing it full, and wishing to profit by
-the advantage he had gained, he went into the pulpit and exclaimed in
-his burlesque manner: 'Some strangers have come of their own accord into
-this country. One comes from Paris, another from Lyons, and a third from
-I do not know where. This one is called Master Anthony, that one Master
-Berthoud, another Master William, a fourth Master Froment (_i.e._
-_wheat_) with _barley_ or _oats_.... They carry a book in their hands
-and boast of having the Holy Ghost. But if they had the Holy Ghost,
-would they want a book? The apostles who were filled with the Holy Ghost
-understood without book all languages and all mysteries. My brethren,
-will you believe a stranger before a man of the country whom you know?
-Do not associate with those devils; they will lead you into hell; but
-come to confession as all your forefathers have done; open yourselves to
-me upon the seven deadly sins, the five natural senses, and the ten
-commandments. Do not be afraid; your consciences will be cleansed of all
-evil. Put me to death in case I do not prove all I have told you.'[559]
-The catholics left the church very proud of such a fine discourse.
-
-[Sidenote: REFORM ADVANCES AT NEUCHATEL.]
-
-Some of the friends of the reformed hurried off to Fabri, and reported
-to him that the priest offered to prove all he had said, particularly
-that he could absolve from the seven deadly sins and those of the five
-senses. Without loss of time Fabri appeared before the castellan and
-councillors of Boudry, and asked for a public disputation, offering to
-die in case he could not show that all he had preached was true, and
-that what the priest had said was false. The latter bluntly refused all
-public discussion; he did not like combats of that kind, and compensated
-himself in another fashion.
-
-One day, as he sat half undressed at his window watching the birds as
-they darted through the air, and the people who were walking in the
-street, he saw Fabri passing in front of his house. In great excitement
-he called to him and began abusing him: 'Gaol-bird! forger!' he said,
-stretching his head out of window; 'tell me why you corrupt Holy
-Scripture?' Fabri, hoping the curé would grant him the discussion he had
-so much desired, made answer: 'Come down and bring out your Bible; we
-will take a clerk who can read it to the people, and I will show you
-that I am no forger.' At these words the alarmed priest exclaimed: 'I
-have something else to do besides disputing with a gaol-bird like you;'
-and he retired hastily from the window. Such were the struggles the
-reformers had to go through in order to transform the church. This
-transformation was going on, and ere long the whole principality of
-Neuchatel was won to the Reformation.
-
-In 1532 it penetrated into the mountain regions among the shepherds and
-hunters of Locle and Chaux de Fonds. Claude d'Arberg, who had so often
-followed the chase in these mountains, had built an oratory there to St.
-Hubert, the hunters' patron saint. The saint (says the legend) was once
-met by a bear, which killed his horse, but Hubert got on the bear's
-back, and rode him home to the great astonishment of everybody. A more
-formidable hunter was now about to tame the bears of these parts. Jean
-de Bély, the evangelist of Fontaine, having gone to Locle at the time of
-the fair of St. Magdalen, Madame Guillemette de Vergy had him seized
-instantly and forced him to dispute for two hours in her presence with
-the curé, Messire Besancenet. 'Put him in prison,' said the countess,
-who was offended at his doctrines; but whilst the high-born dame was so
-irritated at what she had heard, the priest, a good-natured man,
-interceded in the kindest manner in favour of the heretic. The lady
-released him, and the worthy vicar, taking Bély by the arm, led him
-graciously to the parsonage, and drank wine with him. Already people
-said that the mountain bears were beginning to be tamed.
-
-From Locle the Gospel made its way to Chaux de Fonds, and thence to
-Brenets (1534). The earnest mountaineers had taken the images out of the
-church, desiring to _worship God in spirit and in truth_, and were
-preparing to break them in pieces and throw them into the Doubs, when
-they saw two fine oxen approaching, driven by some devout inhabitants
-from a neighbouring village of Franche Comté. 'We offer you these
-beasts,' said they, 'in exchange for your pictures and statues.'—'Pray
-take them,' said the people of Brenets. The Franche-Comtois gathered up
-the idols, the Neuchatelans drove away the oxen, and 'each thought they
-had made a fine exchange,' says a chronicler.
-
-With the exception of one village, the evangelical faith was established
-throughout the whole principality of Neuchatel, without the aid of the
-prince and the lords, and indeed in spite of them. A hand mightier than
-theirs was breaking the bonds, removing the obstacles, and emancipating
-souls. The Reformation triumphed: and after God, it was Farel's
-work.[560]
-
-[534] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 10.
-
-[535] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 10, 11. The Choupard MS. (p.
-490) mentions Anthony Boive, also from Dauphiny, as Farel's companion.
-Did both Anthonys accompany the reformer? It is very probable. (See the
-_Hist. of the Reformation_, vol. iv. book xv. ch. 11.)
-
-[536] Olivetan's Bible: _Apologie du translateur_.
-
-[537] Ibid.
-
-[538] Ibid.
-
-[539] Olivetan's Bible: _Apologie du translateur_.
-
-[540] 'Ab Yvoniaco a cœna solvimus, et Viviacum venimus pransum, ubi de
-Christo locuti sumus.'—Adam to Farel from the Valleys, 5 Nov. 1532,
-Choupard MS. The letter from which we take these particulars has escaped
-notice until now.
-
-[541] 'Ut si monerent invicem quemadmodum fratres et verbi veritatis
-ministros.'—Ibid.
-
-[542] 'Nullum erat cubiculum.'—Ibid.
-
-[543] 'Verum uxor garrula et duræ cervicis, pietate vacans, cœpit minari
-marito de discessu.'—Adam to Farel, Choupard MS.
-
-[544] 'Furibunda abivit.'—Ibid.
-
-[545] 'Ne divortii causa essemus.'—Choupard MS.
-
-[546] 'Properamus ad Alpes.'—Ibid.
-
-[547] 'Quo mærore in pede Alpium me colera tam crudeliter
-invasit.'—Ibid.
-
-[548] 'Gratia illius, qui quum videtur nos ducit ad inferos et
-reducit.'—Choupard MS.
-
-[549] 'At crumenæ nostræ linteria cœperunt laborare tam aspere, ut nihil
-prorsus in illorum corpore remanserit.'—Ibid.
-
-[550] 'Veniunt a locis distantibus a nobis itinere duorum
-dierum.'—Choupard MS.
-
-[551] 'Ad typographum dati sunt quingenti aurei.'—Ibid.
-
-[552] 'Gladiis omnes ejusdem factionis præter consuetudinem
-cincti.'—Fabri to Farel, Choupard MS. The particulars, which we extract
-from this letter, were unknown until now.
-
-[553] 'Illi plusquam insani recta irruerunt in nos gladiis
-evaginatis.'—Ibid.
-
-[554] 'Lupina rabie oviculos aggrediuntur mortem minantes.'—Fabri to
-Farel, Choupard MS.
-
-[555] 'Optimus pater qui pro nobis potenter adeo pugnavit.'—Ibid.
-
-[556] 'Accincti ad arma toto spectarunt die si Neocomenses
-proficiscerentur.'—Ibid.
-
-[557] Requête de MM. les gouverneurs de Bâle à MM. les maîtres bourgeois
-de Neuchatel.—Choupard MS.
-
-[558] "Tête nue comme un brigand."—Requête de MM. les gouverneurs de
-Bâle, &c.—Choupard MS.
-
-[559] Choupard MS.
-
-[560] Chambrier, _Hist. de Neuchatel_, p. 229.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
- THE SCHOOLMASTER AND CLAUDINE LEVET.
- (NOVEMBER AND DECEMBER 1532.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: FRESH ATTEMPTS UPON GENEVA.]
-
-Farel, seeing his labours in these different localities crowned with a
-success that promised to be lasting, turned his eyes with all the more
-ardour to Geneva. The numerous victories of Neuchatel and Vaud seemed to
-augur new ones to be gained in the city of the huguenots. There were,
-however, great obstacles. A fanatical party, directed by monks and
-priests, was opposed to all change, and even the enlightened catholics,
-who desired the abolition of crying abuses, kept repeating that the
-church ought first of all to be maintained, and then reformed. 'A
-purification is not enough,' said Farel; 'a transformation is wanted.'
-But who was to bring it about? He had been banished from Geneva, and for
-a time could not return there.
-
-Froment, young, poor, simple-minded, but intelligent, had refused to
-undertake so difficult a task. Farel tried once more. Froment did not
-understand how the attack of one of the strongest fortresses of the
-enemy could be entrusted to so young a man. 'Fear nothing,' said Farel;
-'you will find men in Geneva quite ready to receive you, and your very
-obscurity will protect you. God will be your guide, and will guard your
-holy enterprise.'[561] Froment yielded, but felt humbled; and reflecting
-on the task entrusted to him, he fell on his knees: 'O God,' he said, 'I
-trust in no human power, but place myself entirely in thy hands. To thee
-I commit my cause, praying thee to guide it, for it is thine.'[562] He
-did not pray alone. The little flock at Yvonand, affected at this call
-which was about to take away their pastor, said: 'O God, give him grace
-to be useful for the advancement of thy Word!' The brethren embraced,
-and Froment departed, 'going to Geneva,' he tells us, 'with prayers and
-blessings.' It was the 1st November 1532.
-
-He reached Lausanne, whence he took his way along the shore of the lake
-towards Geneva. The poor young man stopped sometimes on the road, and
-asked himself whether the enterprise he was about to attempt was not
-sheer madness. 'No,' he said, 'I will not shrink back; for it is by the
-small and weak things of this world that God designs to confound the
-great.' And then he resumed his journey.
-
-The Genevese were much occupied at that time with signs in the heaven. A
-strange blaze shone in the firmament; every night their eyes were fixed
-upon a long train of light, and the most learned endeavoured to divine
-the prognostics to be drawn from it. 'At the new moon,' says a
-manuscript, 'there appeared a comet, at two in the morning, which was
-visible from the 26th September to the 14th of the following month.
-About this time Anthony Froment arrived in Geneva.'[563] Many huguenots,
-irritated at the reception given to Farel, despaired of seeing Geneva
-reformed, and its liberties settled on a firm basis. Some, however, who
-were adepts in astronomy, wondered whether that marvellous sheen did not
-foretel that a divine light would also illuminate the country. They
-waited, and Froment appeared.
-
-[Sidenote: FROMENT COLDLY RECEIVED.]
-
-The young Dauphinese was at first much embarrassed. He tried to enter
-into conversation with one and another, but they were very short with
-the stranger. He hoped to find 'some acquaintance with whom he could
-retire safely and familiarly;' but he saw none but strange faces.
-'Alas!' he said, 'I cannot tell what to do, except it be to return, for
-I find no door to preach the Gospel.'[564] Then, calling to mind the
-names of the chief huguenots, friends of Farel, who (as he said) would
-give him the warmest welcome, Froment resolved to apply to them, and
-waited upon Baudichon de la Maison-Neuve, Claude Bernard, J. Goulaz,
-Vandel, and Ami Perrin, ... but strange to say he everywhere met with
-embarrassed manners and long faces. The mean appearance of the young
-Dauphinese disconcerted even the best disposed. Farel (they thought)
-might at least have sent a scholar, and not a working man. Geneva was an
-important and learned city. There were men of capacity among the Roman
-clergy, who must be opposed by a minister of good appearance, a
-well-established doctor.... The huguenots bowed out the mean little man.
-'Ah!' said Froment, returning to his inn, 'I found them so cold, so
-timid, and so startled at what had been done to Farel and his
-companions, that they dared not unbosom themselves, and still less
-receive me into their houses.' Confounded and dejected at seeing all his
-plans overthrown, he walked thoughtfully through the streets with his
-eyes bent on the ground. He entered the inn, shut himself up in his
-room, and asked himself what was to be done next. Those who seemed to
-wish to hear the Gospel looked at him with contemptuous eyes. If he
-spoke to any persons, they turned their backs on him. Not one door was
-opened to the Word of God.... His feelings were soured. Wearied and
-dejected he sank under the weight, and lost courage. 'I am greatly
-tempted to go back,' he said.[565]
-
-Froment went to the landlord, paid his bill, strapped his little bundle
-on his shoulders, and, without taking leave of the huguenots, bent his
-steps towards the Swiss gate, and quitted the city. But he had not gone
-many yards before he stopped; he felt as if he were detained by an
-invisible hand; a voice was heard in his conscience, telling him he was
-doing wrong; a force greater than that of man compelled him to retrace
-his steps. He returned to his room, shut the door, and sat down; leaning
-on the table with his head in his hands, he asked what God wanted with
-him.[566] He began to pray, and seemed to witness in himself the
-realisation of the promise: _I will lead thee in the way in which thou
-shouldst walk_. He called to mind what Farel had told him, and what the
-reformer had done at Aigle. A flash of light illumined his soul. They
-will have nothing to do with him in Geneva, because his appearance is
-mean. Be it so; he will undertake with humility the work that God gives
-him; and since he is rejected as an evangelist, he will turn
-schoolmaster.
-
-[Sidenote: FROMENT ADVERTISES HIS SCHOOL.]
-
-During his walks Froment had met with one Le Patu, a man but little
-known, whom he asked if he could procure for him a place for a school.
-Le Patu answered that there was the great hall at Boytet's, at the Croix
-d'Or, near the Molard.[567] They went there together; Froment measured
-its dimensions with his eye, and hired the room. He breathed again; he
-had now one foot in the stirrup; it only remained to get into the
-saddle, and begin his course. It was necessary to find scholars; with
-God's help Froment despaired of nothing. Returning to the inn, he drew
-up a prospectus, made several copies in his best handwriting, went out
-with them, and posted them in all the public places. They ran as
-follows: 'A man has just arrived in this city who engages to teach
-reading and writing in French, in one month, to all who will come to
-him, young and old, men and women, even such as have never been to
-school; and if they cannot read and write within the said month, he asks
-nothing for his trouble. He will be found at Boytet's large room, near
-the Molard, at the sign of the Croix d'Or. Many diseases are also cured
-gratis.'
-
-These papers having been posted about the city, many of the passers-by
-stopped to read them. 'We have heard him speak,' said some with whom he
-had conversed; 'he talks well.' Others thought that the promise to teach
-reading and writing in a month was suspicious; to which more benevolent
-men replied, that in any case he did not aim at their purses. But the
-priests and devout were irritated. 'He is a devil,' said a priest in the
-crowd; 'he enchants all who go near him. You have hardly heard him
-before his magical words bewilder you.'[568]
-
-The school opened, however, and he did not want for young pupils.
-Froment, who had talent (his book of the _Actes et Gestes de Genève_
-proves this), taught with simplicity and clearness. Before dismissing
-his scholars he would open the New Testament and read a few verses,
-explaining them in an interesting manner; after which (as he had some
-knowledge of medicine) he would ask them whether any in their families
-were sick, and distribute harmless remedies among them. It was by the
-instruction of the mind and the healing of the body that the evangelist
-paved the way to the conversion of the heart. The school and medicine
-are great missionary auxiliaries. The children ran home and told their
-parents all; the mothers stopped in their work to listen to them, and
-the fathers, especially the huguenots, made them tell it again. Some of
-the boys and girls were continually prattling about it; they even
-'accosted men and women in the streets, inviting them to come and hear
-_that man_.'[569] In a short time the city was full of the schoolmaster
-who spoke French so well.
-
-[Sidenote: FROMENT'S SUCCESS.]
-
-Several adults resolved to hear him, either from a desire to learn, or
-from curiosity, or in sport. Wives, however, stopped their husbands;
-jesters played off their jokes, and priests uttered their anathemas. But
-nothing could stop the current, for people thought the schoolmaster
-would speak against the lives of the priests, the mass, and Lent....
-These worthy huguenots, as they passed through the streets, heard
-'numerous loud jests and whispered hints' around them.[570] They took
-their places behind the children and listened. Froment began: 'He speaks
-well,' said his hearers. He did even more than he had promised; he
-taught arithmetic, which was very acceptable to the Genevese, who are by
-nature rather calculating. It was the sermon, however, which the hearers
-waited for, and that was very different from what they had expected—a
-homily instead of a philippic. In the course of his lessons Froment read
-at one time a story from the Bible, at another one of our Lord's
-sermons, giving the Scripture as the Scriptures of God, explaining as he
-went on the difficult words, and then applying the doctrine
-affectionately to the consciences of his hearers. They were all ears;
-leaning forward and with half-opened mouth, each one seemed afraid of
-losing a word. A few boys turned glances of triumph on those whom they
-had brought there. Froment joyfully marked the effect produced by his
-teaching. 'They were much astonished, for they had never heard such
-doctrine.'[571] Some began to understand that evangelical Christianity
-did not consist in mocking the priests and the mass, but in knowing and
-loving the Saviour. 'Those who heard him conceived in their hearts some
-understanding of the truth.'[572]
-
-In a short time the success of this simple instruction surpassed the
-hopes of the teacher. Those who had heard him talked of the beautiful
-discourses delivered at the Croix d'Or. 'Come,' said they, 'for he
-preaches very differently from the priests, and asks nothing for his
-trouble.'—'Good,' said some citizens more ignorant than the rest; 'we
-will go and hear him; we will learn to read and write, and hear what he
-says.'[573] Men, women, and children hastened to the hall, striving
-which should be there first.[574] The poor man whom the Genevans had
-repulsed had suddenly grown in their estimation. The disputes between
-huguenots and mamelukes, the claims of the Duke of Savoy and Bishop De
-la Baume were forgotten; nothing was thought of but the evangelist. At
-the epoch of the Reformation nothing was more striking than the great
-difference between the instruction given by the priests and that given
-by the reformers. 'Their teaching,' it was said, 'is not such a cold,
-meagre, lifeless thing as that of popery. True, our masters sing loud
-enough, and preach whatever pleases their patrons, but they chirp out
-divine things in a profane manner; their discourses have no reverence
-for God, and are full of fine words and affectation.... In the others,
-on the contrary, instead of mere words and idle talk, there is virtue
-and efficaciousness, a life-giving spirit and divine power.'[575]
-
-[Sidenote: THE BEWITCHED.]
-
-The friends of the priests could not hear such remarks without feeling
-the deepest alarm. 'Pshaw!' they said, 'you speak as if the man had
-enchanted you. By what sounds, figures, or magical operations has he
-bewitched you? Or is it else by fine words, great promises, or other
-means of seduction ... by money?' From that time if they saw in the
-street a man or woman who attended the meetings at the Croix d'Or, they
-would cry out: 'Ho! ho! there goes one of the possessed!'[576]
-Complaints were made and bitter reproaches: signs of disapprobation were
-heard; but 'notwithstanding all this contrary movement the number of
-hearers increased daily. Many of those whom curiosity had attracted were
-interested, enlightened, and touched, and returning home they praised
-and glorified God.'[577]
-
-All were not, however, won over to the Gospel. Certain huguenot leaders,
-Ami Perrin, John Goulaz, Stephen d'Adda, and others, took no great
-pleasure in the preacher's sermons; but believing that this new
-doctrine, which fell from the skies, would overthrow the dominion of the
-priests and mamelukes, they did not hesitate to range themselves among
-Froment's hearers, and to support him energetically in the city.[578]
-Ere long matters went still worse for Rome. Some of Froment's hearers
-invited certain priests who were liberally inclined, to come and hear
-the schoolmaster. The idea of sitting on the benches at the Croix d'Or
-alarmed these churchmen, the huguenots repeated the Frenchman's words:
-'Truly,' said the priests, 'these doctrines are good, and we should do
-well to receive them.'—'Ho! ho!' said certain of the citizens, 'the
-clerks who made such a brag are now converted themselves.'
-
-The alarm increased. The most bigoted monks and priests entered private
-houses, addressed the groups assembled in the public places, and jeered
-at Froment's doctrine and person. 'Will you go and hear that devil?'
-they said; 'what can that little fool (_folaton_) know who is hardly
-twenty-two?'—'That fool,' answered Froment's admirers, 'will teach you
-to be wise.... That devil will cast out the devil that is in you.'[579]
-
-[Sidenote: CLAUDINE LEVET.]
-
-In truth an astonishing work was going on in Geneva at this time; many
-souls were gained to the evangelical faith, and as in the times of the
-apostles, it was the women of distinction who believed first,[580]
-Paula, the wife of John Levet, and probably the same as Pernetta of
-Bourdigny, was daughter of the lord of Bourdigny, in the _mandement_ of
-Peney. The members of this house had been styled nobles or _damoiseaux_
-as far back as the thirteenth century, and many of them had been syndics
-of Geneva.[581] This lady, prepared by the teachings of the evangelists
-who had preceded Froment, 'had become very zealous for the Word,' and
-earnestly desired to bring to the Gospel her sister-in-law Claudine,
-wife of a worthy citizen, Aimé Levet. The latter, 'an honest, devoted,
-and wondrously superstitious woman,' was upright and sincere, and more
-than once had combatted zealously her sister's opinions. One day when
-Paula was at Claudine's house, she conjured her to come and hear the
-schoolmaster. 'I have so great a horror of him,' replied her
-sister-in-law, 'that for fear of being bewitched, I will neither see nor
-hear him.'—'He speaks like an angel,' answered Paula. 'I look upon him
-as a devil,' retorted Claudine. 'If you hear him, you will be
-saved.'—'And I think I shall be damned.' Thus contended these two women.
-Paula was not discouraged. 'At least hear him once,' she said, and then
-added with emotion: 'Pray hear him once for love of me!' She prevailed
-at last, though with great difficulty.
-
-Dame Claudine, although yielding to her sister's entreaties, resolved to
-protect herself thoroughly. She armed herself carefully with all the
-antidotes provided in such cases; she fastened fresh-gathered rosemary
-leaves to her temples, rubbed her bosom with virgin wax,[582] hung
-relics, crosses, and rosaries round her neck, and shielded by these
-amulets, she accompanied Paula to the Croix d'Or. 'I am going to see an
-enchanter,' she said, so deceived[583] was she. She promised herself to
-lead back the Demoiselle de Bourdigny into the fold.
-
-Claudine entered the hall and sat down in front of the magician in
-mockery and derision, says the chronicle. Froment appeared, having a
-book in his hand. He mounted on a round table, as was his custom, in
-order to be better heard, and opening the New Testament, read a few
-words, and then began to apply them. Claudine, without caring the least
-for the assembly, and wishing to make her catholicism known, crossed
-herself several times on the breast, at the same time repeating certain
-prayers. Froment continued his discourse and unfolded the treasures of
-the Gospel. Claudine raised her eyes at last, astonished at what she
-heard, and looked at the minister. She listened, and ere long there was
-not a more attentive hearer in all the congregation. Froment's voice
-alone would have been 'wasted,' but it entered into the woman's
-understanding, as if borne by the Spirit of God. She drank in the
-reformer's words; and yet a keen struggle was going on within her. Can
-this doctrine be true, seeing that the church says nothing about it? she
-asked herself. Her eyes often fell on the schoolmaster's book. It was
-not a missal or a breviary.... It seemed to her full of life.
-
-[Sidenote: CLAUDINE ALONE WITH THE BIBLE.]
-
-Froment having completed his sermon, the children and adults rose and
-prepared to go out. Claudine remained in her place: she looked at the
-teacher, and at last exclaimed aloud: 'Is it true what you say?'—'Yes,'
-answered the reformer. 'Is it all proved by the Gospel?'—'Yes.'—'Is not
-the mass mentioned in it?'—'No!'—'And is the book from which you
-preached a genuine New Testament?'—'Yes.' Madame Levet eagerly desired
-to have it: taking courage, she said: 'Then lend it me.' Froment gave it
-to her, and Claudine placing it carefully under her cloak, among her
-relics and beads, went out with her sister-in-law, who was beginning to
-see all her wishes accomplished. As Claudine returned home she did not
-talk much with Paula: hers was one of those deep natures that speak
-little with man but much with God. Entering her house, she went straight
-to her room and shut herself in, taking nothing but the book with her,
-and being determined not to come out again until she had found the
-solution of the grand problem with which her conscience was occupied. On
-which side is truth? At Rome or at Wittemberg? Having made arrangements
-that they should not wait meals for her, or knock at her door, 'she
-remained apart,' says Froment, 'for three days and three nights without
-eating or drinking, but with prayers, fasting, and supplication.' The
-book lay open on the table before her. She read it constantly, and
-falling on her knees, asked for the divine light to be shed abroad in
-her heart. Claudine probably did not possess an understanding of the
-highest range, but she had a tender conscience. With her the first duty
-was to submit to God, the first want to resemble Him, the first desire
-to find everlasting happiness in Him. She did not reach Christ through
-the understanding; conscience was the path that led her to Him. An
-awakening conscience is the first symptom of conversion and consequently
-of reformation. Sometimes Claudine heard in her heart a voice pressing
-her to come to Jesus; then her superstitious ideas would suddenly
-return, and she rejected the Lord's invitation. But she soon discovered
-that the practices to which she had abandoned herself were dried-up
-wells where there had never been any water. Determined to go astray no
-longer, she desired to go straight to Christ. It was then she redoubled
-those 'prayers and supplications' of which Froment speaks, and read the
-Holy Scriptures with eagerness. At last she understood that divine Word
-which spake: 'Daughter, thy sins are forgiven thee.' Oh, wonderful, she
-is saved! This salvation did not puff her up: she discovered that 'the
-grace of God trickled slowly into her;' but the least drop coming from
-the Holy Spirit seemed a well that never dried. Three days were thus
-spent: for the same space of time Paul remained in prayer at
-Damascus.[584]
-
-[Sidenote: HER CONVERSION.]
-
-Madame Levet having read the Gospel again and again desired to see the
-man who had first led her to know it. She sent for him. Froment crossed
-the Rhone, for she lived at the foot of the bridge, on the side of St.
-Gervais. He entered, and when she saw him Claudine rose in emotion,
-approached him, and being unable to speak burst into tears. 'Her tears,'
-says the evangelist, 'fell on the floor,' she had no other language.
-When she recovered, Madame Levet courteously begged Froment to sit down,
-and told him how God had opened to her the door of heaven. At the same
-time she showed herself determined to profess without fear before men
-the faith that caused her happiness. 'Ah!' she said, 'can I ever thank
-God sufficiently for having enlightened me?' Froment had come to
-strengthen this lady and he was himself strengthened. He was in great
-admiration at 'hearing her speak as she did.'[585] A conversion so
-spiritual and so serious must needs have a great signification for the
-Reformation of Geneva, and as Calvin says in other circumstances where
-also only one woman seems to have been converted: 'From this tiny shoot
-an excellent church was to spring.'[586]
-
-[561] 'Obscuritatem nominis præsidio futuram, Deum itineri ducem et
-cœpto patronum.'—Spanheim, _Geneva restituta_, p. 47.
-
-[562] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 12.
-
-[563] Badollet MS. in Berne library, _Hist. Helv._
-
-[564] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 13.
-
-[565] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 13.
-
-[566] 'Cum jam pedem ex urbe efferret, nescio qua vi humana majore, se
-vel reluctantem revocari sensit.'—Spanheim, _Geneva rest._ p. 47;
-Froment, _Gestes_, p. 13.
-
-[567] The sign of the Golden Cross is still on the house, but it was not
-an inn, as some assert.
-
-[568] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 14.
-
-[569] Ibid.
-
-[570] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 14.
-
-[571] Ibid.
-
-[572] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 14.
-
-[573] 'Nous verrons ce que c'est qu'il dit.'—Froment, _Gestes_,
-p. 14.
-
-[574] 'A viris et fœminis certatim ad Fromentium itum.'—Spanheim,
-_Geneva restit._ p. 48.
-
-[575] Calvin, _passim_.
-
-[576] Badollet MS. in Berne library, _Hist. Helv._
-
-[577] Froment, _Gestes_, pp. 14-15.
-
-[578] Council Registers, 31 Dec. 1532.
-
-[579] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 13.
-
-[580] 'And some of them consorted with Paul and Silas, and of the chief
-women not a few.'—Acts xvii. 4.
-
-[581] Galiffe, _Notices Généalogiques_, I. p. 446.
-
-[582] 'Recente verbena tempora vincta, cera virginea pectus
-munita.'—Spanheim, _Geneva restit._ p. 50.
-
-[583] 'Embabuynée,' Froment, _Gestes_, p. 16.
-
-[584] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 16; Gautier MS.
-
-[585] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 16.
-
-[586] Calvin on Lydia, Acts xvi. 14.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
- FORMATION OF THE CHURCH. FRIENDS AND OPPONENTS.
- (MIDDLE TO THE END OF DEC. 1532.)
-
-
-While the Gospel was thus manifesting its power in Geneva, the bishop
-persisted in his inflexible hostility. The Genevan magistrates still
-felt great regard for him. On the 13th December 1532 the council sent a
-deputation to him to obtain his consent to a tax which was deemed to be
-necessary: the Sieur de Chapeaurouge, the ex-captain-general Philippe,
-and others appeared respectfully before him. Love of order and the
-obedience due to established authority were characteristics of the
-Genevese statesmen, and vexed as they were at the abuses which had their
-source in the power of the bishop, they could not take upon themselves
-to do anything without his consent. The bishop, flattered with these
-attentions, made the deputation very welcome for a couple of days, but
-on the third all his bad humour returned. When the ambassadors appeared
-before him again he said hastily: 'I will grant you nothing, not a
-single crown, and I will compel my lords of Geneva to ask my pardon on
-their bended knees.' On the 26th December the deputation reported this
-language to the council, who were annoyed at it; and while the bishop
-was sending these messages to Geneva which did not advance the cause of
-popery, the Reformation, on the contrary, was endeavouring in every way
-to enlighten men's minds and win their hearts.[587]
-
-[Sidenote: PROGRESS OF THE GOSPEL.]
-
-Froment being in communication with Farel and the reformed of
-Switzerland, received from them Testaments, tracts, and controversial
-works, which his friends and he distributed all over the city, where
-they were read with eagerness. Every day more persons were won over to
-the evangelical faith. They were of all conditions of life. A certain
-tradesman, named Guérin, a cap-maker, listened while working in his shop
-to all that was said around him, and thought seriously of religion and
-of the abuses of popery. One day he determined to visit the Croix d'Or,
-and the words he heard there touched his heart and enlightened his mind.
-Being sensible, intelligent, modest, and of decided character, he gave
-himself up with all his heart to God's cause, and ere long became
-Froment's helper. There were also persons of all ages among the
-converts. Claude Bernard had a daughter between seven and eight years
-old whom he early introduced to the knowledge of scripture. The child's
-precocious understanding was struck with certain simple and clear
-passages which condemned the popular superstitions; and the little
-controversialist (we are told) confounded the ignorant priests. Unable
-to answer her they spread a report that she was possessed of the devil.
-A Frenchman of distinction, passing through Geneva, wished to see her,
-and was charmed with her infantile graces and piety.
-
-It was soon apparent that there was something more than a new doctrine:
-a moral reformation accompanied the revival of faith. In the days of her
-bigoted Catholicism Claudine Levet had been very fond of dress; her
-conscience now reproached her with having been unreasonable in her love
-of costly attire, and more eager to ornament her body than to adorn her
-soul. One day she shut herself up in that room where she had heard the
-call of God, stripped off (says Froment) 'all superfluous bravery
-(_braveté_), laid aside those ornaments and trappings which had only
-served to show her off in a vainglorious way, as a peacock spreads his
-tail,' and from that time she wore a plain and becoming dress. Having
-sold her beautiful robes and other belongings, she gave the money to the
-poor, particularly to the evangelicals of France, who having been
-banished from their homes on account of truth had come to Geneva. All
-her life she loved to receive refugees in her house. 'Verily,' they said
-of her, 'verily, she follows the example of Tabitha who was called
-Dorcas (Acts ix.), and deserves to be kept in perpetual remembrance.'
-
-Claudine did more than this: she spoke frankly and meekly of the
-precious truth she had received, and 'scattered it wherever she happened
-to be in the city.' The priests alarmed at such an astonishing
-transformation endeavoured to bring her back to the practices of the
-church; but Claudine 'showed them tenderly by scripture what was
-necessary' (namely, faith and charity). All in the city were surprised
-to hear her talk as she did.[588]
-
-[Sidenote: GENEVESE LADIES.]
-
-The news of her conversion made a great sensation, particularly among
-the Genevese ladies. One day, when the most worldly of them had met
-together, they talked of nothing but Madame Levet and her estrangement
-from the mass and from amusements. They were Pernette Balthasarde, wife
-of a councillor; the wife of Baudichon de la Maison neuve; the wife of
-Claude Pastor, Jeanne Marie de Fernex, and many other rich and
-honourable ladies.[589] 'Alas!' they said, 'how is it that she has
-changed in so short a time?' They had loved her, and all the more
-regretted that she was _lost_.... They vented their anger on Froment.
-'She has heard that creature,' they said, 'and been bewitched by him.'
-These ladies resolved that they would see her no more.[590]
-
-Claudine did not despair of her friends. She continued to live for God,
-and all might see that a holy life, full of good works, proceeded from
-her faith. The Genevan ladies, although unwilling to visit her, watched
-her; and observing 'that she persevered in well-doing, and was still a
-constant pattern of holy living,' they drew near her. They were curious
-to know the cause of this singular change, and began to speak to her
-when they met her, some even going to see her. Claudine received them
-affectionately, spoke to them about that which filled her heart—this was
-what her friends desired—presented them with the New Testament, and
-begged them to read it and to love the Saviour. Several of these ladies
-were converted, especially those whom we have named. Claudine, who was
-their 'exemplar of life and charity,' pressed them to adopt a Christian
-conduct. 'Put aside your great display,' she said to them, 'attire
-yourselves simply and without superfluity, and give your minds to great
-charities. Faith holds the first place, but after that come good works.'
-From that time indeed these women showed great compassion for the
-wretched. The fame of their good deeds spread abroad, and the Gospel was
-honoured by them. It seemed admitted that no one could be a Christian
-_unless he had some poor persecuted foreigner in his house_.[591] Such
-was the Christianity of Geneva at the moment when it was beginning to
-appear, and such it remained for two centuries.
-
-Aimé Levet, who was at first strongly opposed to Froment and the Gospel,
-gradually softened down. The holiness and charity of his wife made him
-appreciate the Word of God: 'thus Claudine won her husband to the
-Lord.'[592] From that time she had more liberty, and the meetings at the
-Croix d'Or being insufficient, little assemblies were held at her house
-or at others. When there was no evangelist present capable of explaining
-the Bible, they begged this pious christian woman to do it, saying: 'No
-one has received from the Lord greater gifts than you.' Claudine would
-then read the scripture, and set forth with simplicity the truths and
-graces she had found therein. The reformers remembered the precept of
-St. Paul, _Let your women keep silence in the churches_; but they added,
-'This must be understood of the ordinary charge, for a case may happen
-when it will be necessary for a woman to speak in public.'[593] Ere long
-the modest Guérin, who studied his Bible day and night, and other
-Christians likewise, took an active part in the work of evangelisation.
-
-[Sidenote: CHURCH IN TRANSITION.]
-
-The church was forming. At first there were a few souls awakened
-separately here and there in Geneva; now with the element of
-individuality, which is the first, was combined the element of
-communion, which is not less necessary, for Christianity is a leaven
-that _leaveneth the whole lump_. Those who had begun to believe
-assembled to advance together in faith. Doubtless it was not yet a
-church in its complete state, with all its institutions. Believers, even
-without forming a church, may act upon one another, pray in common, and
-celebrate the Lord's Supper together; things ordinarily begin in this
-way. This state of transition, the lawfulness of which must be
-acknowledged, proves that the ecclesiastical organisation, with its
-ministers, elders, deacons, presbyteries, and synods, has not the first
-place in Christianity, and that the pre-eminence belongs to faith and
-christian sanctification. This imperfect mode of existence is
-insufficient: it has many deficiencies, and is exposed to many dangers.
-The church should be formed. Somewhat later, under Calvin, it attained
-indeed its complete form in Geneva. It would be foolish to deny man the
-right of being at first a child; but it would be no less so to refuse
-him the right and duty of becoming a man.
-
-Just at this time the evangelicals received an unexpected help. A
-Franciscan coming from abroad began to preach the Advent sermons in the
-Rive church, and this monk, Christopher Bocquet by name, happened to
-have some inclination for the Gospel. Being invited to preach in a city
-where two parties were at war, he abstained from both superstitions and
-abuse—frequent themes with many catholic preachers—but at the same time
-he abstained from certain distinctive doctrines of the Reformation which
-he did not quite understand, and keeping to a certain common ground of
-Christianity, he delivered 'moderate' sermons.[594] Dressed in his brown
-frock, and with the cord round his waist, and humbly bending his head,
-he entered the Cordeliers' church, went up into the pulpit, and
-contemplating the mixed crowd before him, proclaimed to all a Saviour
-who had come not in magnificent array, but in gracious love, and called
-upon every heart to rejoice at his sight. The evangelicals were edified,
-and the number of persons frequenting the church increased every day.
-But Friar Christopher 'had hardly finished his sermon,' when the
-huguenots hurried away to Froment's meeting-place, where _the trumpet
-gave no uncertain sound_. They were not the only persons who went
-thither. Many catholics having heard the reformers say that the monk and
-the schoolmaster preached fundamentally the same things, followed the
-crowd going to the Croix d'Or, and some of them took a liking for what
-they heard.
-
-Thus the people were more and more enlightened. The evangelicals met
-sometimes at one house, sometimes at another; they read and discussed
-the little tracts that were sent them, but above all applied themselves
-to Holy Scripture. It was there only that these simple Christians were
-willing to seek the light which their consciences needed. 'Let us
-specially study the sacred writings,' they said, 'in order that we may
-distinguish in religion what comes from God, from that which men have
-added to it.'[595] The Genevans retired from these meetings strengthened
-and full of joy, and their love for the Word of God continued to
-increase.
-
-If the Reformation met with faithful adherents in Geneva, it also
-encountered resolute adversaries. The astonished and bewildered priests
-seemed to sleep. Contenting themselves with a war of trifles, they made
-no active and combined opposition to the evangelical movement. It was
-the laity who uttered the cry of alarm. Angry at the inactivity of the
-clergy, they gave the signal of a 'holy war' destined in their opinion
-to expel the infidels from their well-beloved Zion. Thomas Moine[596]
-was at their head—a decided, impetuous man, a fluent speaker, and one
-who had attained great consideration in the Romish party; he complained
-that they had permitted the enemy to establish himself little by little
-in the ancient episcopal city. He said that it was time to wake up, and
-reproached the Genevese ecclesiastics for their cowardice. Moine did not
-speak in vain.
-
-[Sidenote: SERMON AT THE MADELEINE.]
-
-The vicar of La Madeleine touched by his words, determined to exalt the
-honour of his church and corporation, and gave notice that he would
-preach against the heretical schoolmaster and the foreign preacher. The
-large area was soon filled with fervent catholics, among whom were some
-of the reformed, in particular Chautemps, Claude Bernard, Salomon, and
-Perrin. The vicar praised the catholic apostolic Roman Church, extolled
-its head, who was (he said) the representative of God, and defended its
-worship and institutions. Then having praised the fold, he described the
-'wolves' that prowled around it to devour the sheep. He accused Froment
-of ignorance and falsehood, and conjured his hearers not to throw
-themselves into the paws of wild beasts, thieves, and robbers....
-
-On leaving the church the four huguenots who had heard him met to
-inquire what was to be done. These men who at the first moment had, like
-the others, given so bad a reception to the schoolmaster, had been
-touched (three of them at least) by the simple preaching of the Gospel.
-The Bible, as we have seen, had become their court of appeal, which
-grieved the priests, who dared not deny the divinity of the book, but as
-they had never studied it, were much embarrassed to find the proof of
-their dogmas in it. After some deliberation Chautemps and his friends
-waited upon the vicar. 'Froment,' they said, 'is a good and learned man;
-you say that he has lied; prove it by Scripture?' The vicar having
-consented, the huguenots demanded that the discussion should take place
-in public, so that all might profit by it; but the priest desired it to
-be held at the parsonage. The champions of the Reformation gave way, and
-arrangements were made for the disputation to take place on the last day
-of the year. The poor priest (Claude Pelliez by name) was greatly
-embarrassed: he retired to his room, took up the Vulgate, which he did
-not often open, and began to look for passages to oppose to the reformed
-doctrines; but he searched in vain, he could find none.
-
-[Sidenote: A CONTROVERSY.]
-
-In the afternoon of the 31st December, St. Sylvester's day, Chautemps,
-Bernard, Perrin, and Salomon went to the parsonage of the Madeleine,
-wearing their swords as was customary. Some priests whom the curate had
-invited were already there, but they had to wait for the champion of
-Romanism who had not yet been able to find a single text. The four
-huguenots took off their belts, threw their swords on the bed, and
-sitting round the table with the priests, began to talk familiarly
-together. At last the vicar, who had had some trouble to tear himself
-away from his folios, in which he still hoped to find something,
-appeared with a bulky volume under his arm. The huguenots rose as he
-entered; beneath the table at which they were sitting stood some
-wine-bottles which they and the priests had emptied while waiting for
-him, and which Perrin had paid for. The conference now began. The vicar
-opened his big volume, in which some strips of paper indicated the
-places he thought favourable to him, and read a long extract opposed to
-Froment's doctrine. 'What book is that,' asked Perrin; 'it is not a
-Bible.' The huguenots added, 'You have not been able to find in the
-Bible one word with which to answer Froment;' and laughed at him. 'What
-is that you say,' retorted the priest, reddening with anger; 'it is the
-_Postillæ perpetuæ in Biblia_ of the illustrious Nicholas Lyra!'—'But
-you promised to refute Froment out of Scripture,'—Lyra,' said the
-priest, 'is the most approved interpreter.' The huguenots were
-determined not to accept the commentaries of man as if they were the
-very Word of God. The Bible incorruptible and infallible, before which
-all human systems must fall, was the only authority. 'Lyra is not a good
-doctor,' said Perrin.—'Yes!'—'No!'—'Yes!'—'You do not keep your word.'
-Perrin had understanding rather than real piety: he was a lamp, but it
-had no oil. Haughty, violent, and headstrong, he wanted everything to
-bend before him, and so did the vicar. The quarrel grew hot, and instead
-of discussing they abused each other. Then one of the churchmen having
-left the room stealthily, a band of priests suddenly entered with one De
-la Roche at their head, who carried a naked sword which he pointed in
-front of him. 'What!' said Claude Bernard, 'we came in good faith, we
-four only, to your house to discuss; we have drunk with your friends, we
-have thrown our swords on the bed ... and you traitorously send for an
-armed band of priests. It is a trap.' With these words the four citizens
-grasped their swords, made a way through their opponents, got out into
-the street, and held their ground, ready to defend themselves. One of
-the priests ran to the belfry of the Madeleine and began to ring the
-tocsin.[597] Thus ended the first theological dispute at Geneva.
-
-[Sidenote: TUMULT AT THE MADELEINE.]
-
-It was about noon—a time favourable for a riot. On hearing the church
-bell the city was thrown into commotion, and everybody hurried to the
-spot. It was said that the huguenots desired to get possession of the
-building so that the schoolmaster might preach in it. Priests came
-forward with their adherents to defend the sanctuary; huguenots took up
-arms to protect their brethren hemmed in in front of the church. 'Alas!'
-said the friends of peace, 'the priests are ringing the tocsin, and thus
-exciting the citizens to kill one another.' The four huguenots, with
-drawn swords and their backs to the wall, prepared to give the churchmen
-a warm reception; while their friends, as they arrived, drew up by their
-side. The tumult was general. 'Let us close in to the church,' said the
-priests, who wished to surround it to prevent the evangelicals from
-entering. Huguenots and catholics hastened from every quarter to the
-Madeleine. Terror seized the most timid. The poor ladies of St. Claire,
-who were at dinner, hearing the noise, rose from the table in alarm, and
-exclaiming, 'Alas! they have threatened to marry us ... they are going
-to put their abominable plot into execution,' made a procession round
-their church and garden with great devotion and many tears.[598]
-
-Just at this time the council broke up, and two of the syndics, Ramel
-and Savoie, who were going home, had to pass through the midst of the
-riot. The two parties were on the point of coming to blows. The syndics
-advanced, checked the combatants by interposing their official staves,
-and ordered them to lay down their arms, which was done. 'There was
-neither violence nor bloodshed.'[599]
-
-But all was not ended. Some members of the chapter and several priests,
-hearing that a fight was going on at the Madeleine, had collected in the
-Rue des Chanoines, where William Canal, incumbent of St. Germain's,
-harangued them. The catholic faith is threatened, the throne of the pope
-is shaken, the great honour due to Mary is endangered.... We must fall
-upon those who impugn it, and free the city from their persons and their
-errors. Such was the sum of his discourse.
-
-The tumult being quieted round the church,[600] the lieutenant of
-justice (Châteauneuf) had turned towards the Rue des Chanoines, where he
-had been told that the priests were in commotion. Finding them
-determined to follow Canal sword in hand to the Madeleine, he commanded
-them to stop. The priest of St. Germain's, unwilling to submit to the
-orders of a civil magistrate, rushed hastily towards the church.
-Châteauneuf laid his hand upon him, when the rebellious parson turned
-round and levelled his arquebuse at that officer; but a friendly arm
-prevented his firing. Canal ran off, and the other priests
-dispersed.[601]
-
-[Sidenote: FROMENT DESIRED NOT TO PREACH.]
-
-The council reassembled in the evening. Each opinion was represented in
-that body, which halted between two opinions. After a riot like that
-which had just occurred, it was necessary to take certain precautions,
-especially as the morrow was New Year's day, and at such times men's
-minds are more easily excited. The council summoned the principal
-friends of the reform, and Froment also was invited, although the
-Registers make no mention of his presence. 'We exhort you,' said the
-syndics, 'to make Anthony Froment cease from disputing and preaching, as
-well as the others who teach in private houses; and we conjure you to
-live as your fathers did.' No one would make any promise; on the
-contrary, the reformed withdrew, saying, 'We will hear the Word of God
-wherever we can: nobody has a right to hide it.' Then turning to
-Froment, they begged him not to be silent under such prohibition.[602]
-'We are constrained,' they said, 'to hear the schoolmaster and his
-friends, because the decree of the council ordering the Word of God to
-be preached in every parish has not been observed.' The reformed, while
-desiring before all things to obey God, put themselves in the right:
-they appealed to lawful ordinances, and this was the ground which they
-intended keeping.
-
-The council, acknowledging that this position of the evangelicals was
-impregnable, sent for the Abbot of Bonmont, the vicar-episcopal, and
-begged him to detain at Geneva the cordelier who had preached the Advent
-so well, and to press the Dominicans also to provide a preacher
-calculated to edify their congregation. They required further that there
-should be true preachers of the Word of God in every parish. The
-vicar-episcopal, being a peaceful man, promised everything, even to
-punishing Canal the priest.
-
-The tumult was appeased, but great agitation still reigned in men's
-minds. Some saw that the storm was over, others that it might easily
-break out again. As it was St. Sylvester's eve, there were numerous
-meetings throughout the city, catholics and huguenots being equally
-excited, and both waiting anxiously for the morrow.[603]
-
-[587] Council Registers, 13 and 26 Dec.; Gautier MS.
-
-[588] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 18.
-
-[589] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 18.
-
-[590] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 17.
-
-[591] Froment, _Gestes_, pp. 16-18; Roset, _Chron._ liv. x. ch. ii.
-
-[592] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 17.
-
-[593] Calvin, 1 Cor. xiv. 34.
-
-[594] 'Moderatas ad populum conciones habebat.'—Spanheim, _Geneva
-restit._ p. 48.
-
-[595] MS. erroneously ascribed to Bouivard in Berne library, _Hist.
-Helv._ V. 12.
-
-[596] He signed his name _Mohennos_, which was pronounced _Moine_—the
-spelling of the public registers.
-
-[597] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 49.
-
-[598] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 49.
-
-[599] Council Registers, _ad diem_.
-
-[600] 'Ab invasione per eos cœpta.'—Council Registers of 31 Dec. 1532.
-
-[601] Roset, _Chron._ liv. ii. ch. iv.
-
-[602] Berne MS. ascribed to Bonivard.
-
-[603] Council Registers. Roset, _Chron._ liv. ii. ch. iv.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
- THE SERMON AT THE MOLARD.
- (NEW YEAR'S DAY, 1533.)
-
-
-For nearly twenty years liberty had been clearing the ground on which
-the Gospel was to raise its temple. For nearly eight years a few pious
-voices had spoken of the doctrine of salvation in private conversations
-and meetings; but the Reformation had not yet been preached in the face
-of the people. The hour that was to make it a public and notorious thing
-was about to strike; the world was about to witness the birth of the
-principles of that moral power which for two centuries, whatever may
-have been the meanness of its origin, has influenced the destinies of
-christendom; which, fanning the flame, that is to say, inspiring the
-friends of the Reformation with heavenly courage, has waged heroic
-battles against the Jesuits and the inquisition, and preserved the
-Gospel and liberty from dangerous assaults. Geneva was about to hear the
-voice of a protestant.
-
-[Sidenote: A NEW YEAR.]
-
-The last night of the year 1532 had passed away, and first of 1533 was
-beginning. In every house relations and friends were greeting the new
-year, which the reformed hoped would be better than all that had gone
-before. The family congratulations being over, they went to church.
-Bocquet was again preaching at the Gray Friar's monastery, where many
-evangelicals attended; but the monk had hardly finished, when numbers of
-his hearers quitted the chapel and hurried eagerly along the Rue de Rive
-to the Croix d'Or. There were many curious persons among them, who,
-knowing that the council had prohibited Froment's preaching, were all
-the more desirous of hearing him. In a moment the hall was filled, then
-the stairs and passage ... and at last the street in front of the house.
-Froment arrived with a few friends, and seeing the crowd, observed: 'The
-streets are so full, that it is quite a crush.' He tried however to make
-his way through the mass, and his friends assisted him; but do what he
-would, all his exertions were ineffectual.
-
-Was all this unforeseen, or was it premeditated by some of the
-huguenots? Were these energetic men determined at last to bring the
-evangelist from his narrow schoolroom and force him to preach in public?
-Is there not some truth in Sister Jeanne's statement that, on the
-evening before, they had desired to make him preach in the large area of
-the Madeleine? And may we not believe, that as they did not succeed
-then, they now desired to compensate themselves by taking a still larger
-space and making the reformer preach in the open air? These suppositions
-appear probable, but there is no decided evidence in their favour. At
-all events, the crowd recognized Froment, and saw that he could not
-reach the usual place of his ministrations. Those who were in the street
-perceived that if the evangelist succeeded in entering the Croix d'Or,
-they would be left outside, which was not agreeable to them. One man
-shouted out: 'To the Molard,' and in a short time the cry became
-general: 'To the Molard, to the Molard.'[604]
-
-[Sidenote: FROMENT AT THE MOLARD.]
-
-The Molard was situated in the most populous quarter of the city, near
-the lake and the Rhone. It was a large square, about 200 yards from the
-Croix d'Or. Froment hesitated, but the crowd, getting into motion,
-carried him along with them towards the south-west corner of the square,
-where the fish market is still held. The fishwomen were there with their
-fresh wares displayed on their stalls. The huguenots, finding no other
-pulpit, took one of these stalls, and invited Froment to get on it. He
-was determined, like his master Farel, to preach the truth in every
-place.
-
-As soon as his head appeared above the others, the multitude that filled
-the square manifested their delight, and those around him shouted louder
-than ever: 'Preach to us, preach the Word of God to us.' Froment, who
-was moved, answered with a loud voice: 'It is also the word that shall
-endure for ever.' The tumult was so great that the preacher could not
-make himself heard: 'He made a sign to them with his hand to keep
-silence, and they were still.'[605] 'Pray to God with me,' he said, and
-then getting off the stall, he knelt upon the ground. He was agitated:
-the tears flowed down his cheeks;[606] a deep silence prevailed in that
-square which was so often in those days the scene of tumultuous
-movements. Some knelt, others remained standing; all heads were
-uncovered, and even those who were strangers to the Gospel, appeared
-thoughtful. Froment joined his hands, lifted his eyes to heaven, and
-speaking so distinctly that all could hear him, he said:[607]
-
-[Sidenote: PRAYER AT THE MOLARD.]
-
-'Eternal God, father of all mercies, thou hast promised thy children to
-give them whatsoever they shall ask in faith, and wilt refuse them
-nothing that is reasonable and just; and hast always heard the prayers
-of thy servants, who are oppressed in divers manners. Thou knowest now
-what is the need of this people better than they or I do.... This need
-is principally to hear thy Word. It is true we have been ungrateful in
-not acknowledging thee as our only Father, and thine own son Jesus
-Christ, whom thou hast sent to die for us, in order to be our only
-Saviour and intercessor. But, Lord, thou hast promised us that
-whensoever the poor sinner draws near thee, by reason of thy Son, born
-of the Virgin Mary, thou wilt hear him. We know and even are assured
-that thou desirest not the death and destruction of sinners, but that
-they should be converted and live.... Thou desirest that they should not
-remain under the great tyranny of Antichrist, and under the hand of the
-devil and his servants, who are continually fighting against thy holy
-Word and destroying thy work.... Our Father! look down upon thy poor
-blind people, led by the blind, so that they both fall into the ditch,
-and can only be lifted out by thy mercy.... Lift them out by thy Holy
-Spirit, open their eyes, their ears, their understandings, their hearts,
-in order that, confessing their sins, they may look to the goodness of
-thy Son whom thou hast given to die for them. And since it hath pleased
-thee, Lord, to send me to them, give both them and me the infinite grace
-that by thy Holy Spirit they may receive what thou shalt put into the
-mouth of thy servant, who is unworthy to be the bearer of so great a
-message. But as it hath pleased thee to choose me from among the weak
-things of the world, give me strength and wisdom so that thy power may
-be manifested ... not only in this city but in all the world. How can
-thy servant stand in the presence of such a multitude of adversaries,
-unless thou art pleased to strengthen him? Show, then, that thy power is
-greater than Satan's, and that thy strength is not like man's strength.'
-Froment concluded with the Lord's prayer.
-
-[Sidenote: SERMON AT THE MOLARD.]
-
-The people were touched: they had often heard the mechanical prayers of
-the priests, but not a prayer of the heart. They acknowledged that the
-reformers were certainly not partisans, but Christians who desired the
-salvation of all men. The evangelist rose and stood once more upon the
-stall, which was about to become the first pulpit of the Reformation in
-Geneva. He had heard of the proceedings of the vicars of the Madeleine
-and St. Germain's, and was moved by the furious opposition of the
-priests to the preaching of the Gospel. He had their swords and
-arquebuses still before his eyes, and resolved to oppose them with the
-sword of the Spirit, which is the Word of God. It was necessary to lead
-the Genevans away from the teachers who deceived them and direct them to
-Scripture; it was necessary to break with the papacy. All eyes were
-fixed on him: they saw him take a book—it was the Gospel. He opened it
-at the seventh chapter of Matthew and read these words: _Beware of false
-prophets, which come to you in sheep's clothing, but inwardly they are
-ravening wolves: by their fruits ye shall know them_. Then fixing his
-eyes on his numerous audience, Froment began by expressing his faith in
-the mysteries of God: 'Our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, very God and
-very Man, conceived of the Holy Ghost and born of the Virgin Mary,
-knowing the things that were to happen, foresaw that false prophets
-would come, not with hideous faces, but with the most pleasing exterior
-in the world, under the colour of holiness, and in _sheep's clothing_,
-so that the children of God might be deceived. For this cause he
-exhorted his disciples to be _wise as serpents and harmless as doves_.
-Our God does not desire to have a foolish, giddy people, but a people
-endowed with great wisdom, who can distinguish between the doctrine of
-God and the doctrine of man. They who do not know it go astray, and are
-like swine which cannot discern good things from bad, and swallow
-everything indiscriminately.... Ah! if the serpent, which is but a
-brute, is so wise in his generation, if he shuts his ears so as not to
-hear the voice of the charmer, if he casts off his old skin when the
-time for doing so has come, shall we not fear to follow the
-cunningly-devised doctrines of men? Shall we not cast off our old skin
-to put on a new one? Yes, we must put off our old nature which is sin,
-Satan, idolatry, impurity, robbery, hypocrisy, pride, avarice, and false
-doctrine, and put on the new man, which is Christ.... It would be of no
-use to hear the Word of the Gospel if we did not change our wicked
-intentions, and to distinguish the false teachers if we did not avoid
-them. What! if we recognized venomous beasts should we live among them?
-If we saw a dish of poison should we not beware of eating it?
-
-'But Christ desires us further to be _harmless as doves_. Not with the
-simplicity of monastic hypocrisy or bigotry, but with simplicity of
-heart, without gall, lovely as that of doves.... If we walk in such
-simplicity we shall overcome all our enemies, as Jesus Christ overcame
-his enemies by his meekness.... Let us not begin fighting, killing, and
-burning as tyrants do. The child of God has no other sword of defence
-than the Word of God; but that is a two-edged sword, piercing even to
-the marrow.'
-
-Everybody understood Froment's allusion, and many, as they thought of
-the riot of the evening before, looked and smiled at each other. But
-while these words, delivered with energy, were stirring the crowd
-assembled in the Molard, there was still greater agitation in the rest
-of the city. The priests were irritated; they had tried to shut
-Froment's schoolroom, and now he was preaching in the great square. They
-went from one to another and excited the laity. 'The Lutherans,' they
-said, 'have taken their _idol_ to the Molard to make him preach there.'
-The vicar-episcopal being instructed by them, apprised the syndics, who
-sent for the chief usher (_grand sautier_) Falquet, and ordered him to
-stop the preaching. That officer immediately went down to the Molard,
-the sergeants cleared a way through the crowd, and going up to Froment,
-who was then speaking with great boldness, he stretched out his staff
-towards him and said, 'In the name of my lords I command you to cease
-preaching.'
-
-Froment stopped, and turning to the chief usher answered him in a loud
-voice, '_We ought to obey God rather than man_. God commands me to
-preach His word, you forbid it; I am therefore not bound to obey you.'
-The presence of the public force caused, however, some little sensation
-in the audience. The evangelist noticing it turned to the people and
-said, 'Do not be disturbed, my friends, but listen to what our Lord
-says—that we must beware of false prophets.' Silence was restored,
-everyone became calm, and Falquet, finding the evangelist was determined
-to preach, thought it the safest plan to refer to his masters, and
-withdrew with his officers. Froment then continued his discourse: 'In
-order to be on our guard against false prophets, we must know what they
-are, what is their doctrine and life, and with what they are clothed.
-When they have been described to you in their natural colours, you will
-avoid their teaching and their life as more deadly than the plague. The
-plagues with which God has visited you heretofore[608] only touched you
-outwardly; but this, more venomous than all the other poisons of the
-earth, infects the soul, kills it, and casts it into perdition. With
-this plague we and our fathers have been infected for nearly a thousand
-years. Not that it came upon us suddenly, and in villanous and deformed
-appearance; no, it came gradually, under the colour of holiness and in
-sheep's clothing, these ravening wolves having even some good
-intentions. But although Jesus Christ had warned us of their coming, and
-had pointed them out to us, we have been blinded and led by the nose to
-the ditch of deceit like cattle to water.... The son of perdition, who
-sitting in the temple of God is worshipped as God—him you worship and
-keep his commandments. Oh! what a fine master you serve, and what
-prophets you have! Do you know them? Not to keep you in suspense I
-declare openly that I am speaking of the pope, and that the false
-prophets of whom I bid you beware are the priests, monks, and all the
-rest of his train.
-
-'But some of you, who yourselves belong to that band, will say: "It is
-you that are the false prophets! Our law is old, and yours is but of
-yesterday, and brings confusion among the people of every country. While
-our friends reigned, we enjoyed so much good, so many happy years, that
-it was quite marvellous; but since you have come to preach this new law
-there have been wars, famines, pestilences, divisions, strifes, and
-ill-will. Certainly you are not from God."
-
-'Well, let us examine this statement; let us find out who are these
-false prophets—we or your priests?... In order to discriminate in such a
-matter the two parties ought to have a competent judge, who is no
-acceptor of persons, and that the parties should not be judges in their
-own cause. For if, in civil causes, we need good judges, good pleadings,
-good witnesses, good reasons, and letters patent, how much more so in
-the things of God!... We shall take, therefore, a competent judge, and
-shall produce witnesses, documents, and ancient customs for the defence
-of our right.'
-
-Curiosity was excited; the hearers asked each other what was the judge's
-name. Hitherto the pope had been appealed to as sole judge of
-controversies: who was Froment going to put in his place?
-
-'In the first place,' he continued, 'the judge shall be—God. Yes, God
-who judges with righteous judgment, not regarding either rich or poor,
-wise or foolish, and who gives right to whom it belongs;—the judge shall
-be His true Son Jesus Christ, attended by His good and lawful witnesses
-the prophets and apostles; and here,' said he, holding up the New
-Testament, and showing it to the people, 'here are the sealed letters,
-signed with the precious blood of our Lord, and the cloud of martyrs who
-were put to death in order to bear this testimony. What read we there?
-
-'Firstly, the Lord condemns the Pharisees as _blind leaders_. Now, do
-you not think that yours (the Romish priests) are condemned by him?...
-Those who call themselves saints through their own merits, the only
-saints of the church, and who wish to lead you by their bulls, pardons,
-auricular confessions, masses, and other tricks or manœuvres which they
-have invented out of their own heads ... which the Pharisees never dared
-do.
-
-'Moreover, the Lord in St. Matthew bears this testimony: There shall
-arise false prophets in the latter days who will say unto you, _Lo, here
-is Christ or there_![609] Do they not tell you that Christ is there ...
-in the inner part of the holy house, hidden in the farthest place, _in a
-vessel_? Do not believe them. The true Christ is he who hath ransomed us
-with his blood. Seek him by a real faith at the right hand of the
-Father, and not in a house, in a cupboard, in the pyx ... as your new
-redeemers and high-priests do.
-
-'And what says Jesus Christ to-day for the fuller identification of the
-false prophets? He not only says that they come in sheep's clothing, but
-that _they walk in long robes, devour widows' houses, and for a show
-make long prayers_.[610] The Lord does not forbid wearing long robes for
-the necessities of the body, but the hypocritical superstitions
-connected with them, the wearers esteeming themselves holier than the
-laity, by being dressed, shaven, and shorn differently from us.... Yes,
-by such means they have devoured widows; I do not mean to say that they
-eat women; it is a manner of speaking, as we say of tyrants that they
-devour their people, and of lawyers that they devour their clients, that
-is to say, their substance; and not that they eat men's flesh, as the
-cannibals do. _They break their bones_ (to get at the marrow), says a
-prophet, _and eat the flesh of my people, as flesh within the
-caldron_.[611]
-
-'Look now, O people, I pray you, and judge for yourselves. Tell us who
-are those who wear such clothing, such _long robes_, who _devour
-widows_, making long prayers for show.... You know very well it is not
-us, for we are dressed like other people; but if your priests were to
-dress like us they would be apostate and excommunicate.
-
-'Nay more, we do not lead poor people to understand that they ought to
-bring us a portion of their goods, and that then we will save them; that
-praying for them and the dead, we will bring them out of purgatory....
-But your priests do so, and under such pretexts they have dragged into
-their paws almost all the riches of the earth; and not a word must be
-said about it ... for whosoever speaks of it will suddenly be put to
-death, or be excommunicated, or called heretic and Lutheran.
-
-'Ah! Jesus Christ, St. Paul, and the other apostles paint them so truly
-to the life that there is no one so blind or stupid as not to recognise
-them easily, except those who are afraid of losing their soup-tickets.
-The Holy Scriptures call them wells without water, anti-christs,
-despisers of the Lord, and say that they _give heed to doctrines of
-devils, forbidding to marry, and commanding to abstain from meats which
-God hath created to be received with thankfulness of them which
-believe_.'[612]
-
-While Froment was thus haranguing the people in the Molard, the
-magistrates assembled in the hotel-de-ville learnt from the chief usher
-that the sermon was still going on. The syndics were exasperated. The
-canons and priests argued that as the civil power was helpless, they
-ought to take the matter into their own hands, and, grasping their arms,
-prepared to descend. At the same time, the council being resolved to
-make an example, ordered the preachers to be apprehended wherever they
-were found; and consequently the lieutenant of police, the
-procurator-fiscal, with sergeants, soldiers, and priests, marched in a
-large body to the Molard, angry and indignant at the evangelist's
-boldness, and determined to throw him into prison. If Farel had been
-placed beyond their reach, Froment at least should not escape. While
-this excited band was descending the Perron with deadly intentions,
-Froment, who either had no suspicion, or did not care about it, was
-continuing his discourse to the people of Geneva.
-
-'There are many other passages of scripture,' he said, 'which might be
-brought forward for a stronger proof; but these must suffice to put you
-in a position to judge whether we or your pastors are false prophets.
-There is none among you who does not know that we do not forbid marriage
-or meats; that we declare marriage holy, ordained from the beginning of
-the world to all such as have not the gift of continence, without any
-distinction of persons. But the pope does otherwise, and says that he
-who hath not a lawful wife may keep a concubine (_Distinctio_ xxxiv.
-cap. xvi. _Qui non habet uxorem, loco illius concubinam habere potest_);
-for, he adds, I desire that they be holy.... Verily a wonderful holiness
-is that!... I make you all judges. You have long known them better than
-I have.
-
-'As for meats, we leave every man free, as our Lord has done, exhorting
-the people to use them profitably, without excess or superfluity, giving
-thanks to God.... But these do the very opposite. Although Christ was
-sent by the Father to teach us the truth, they bring us lies, dreams,
-false doctrines, prohibitions of marriage and of meats, and all sorts of
-nonsense, as if they were holy things.'...
-
-[Sidenote: THE SERMON INTERRUPTED.]
-
-At this moment a confused noise was heard. Claude Bernard, whose eyes
-and ears were on the watch, perceived a band of armed men entering the
-square. The lieutenant of the city, the procurator-fiscal, the soldiers
-and the armed priests, exasperated and impatient, were occupying the
-Molard. Bernard saw that resistance would be dangerous and useless;
-besides the Reformation must not be established in Geneva by violence,
-it must make its way by conviction. There was not a moment to be lost;
-every one knew what would be the fate of the evangelist if he were
-taken.... He must be saved. Bernard therefore sprang from his place and
-rushed 'in great excitement' towards Froment, shouting to him at the top
-of his voice:[613] 'Here are all the priests in arms ... the
-procurator-fiscal and the lieutenant of the city are with them.... For
-the honour of God descend, get off the stall, and let us save your
-life!... Make your escape!' Froment would not come down: they entreated
-him in vain; his heart burnt within him, for he perceived that his
-discourse was stirring their souls.... How could he forsake his work at
-such a decisive moment? But the priests and arquebusiers were coming
-nearer; Some of the huguenots were already grasping their swords and
-preparing to resist the sacerdotal gang. There would have been bloodshed
-and death. 'Pray, for God's honour, let us avoid the spilling of blood,'
-exclaimed Bernard. Froment could not resist these words. Some of his
-friends caught hold of him, lifted him off the stall and dragged him
-away. They took him through a narrow private passage, and by this means
-reached Jean Chautemps' house. The door opened and the evangelist was
-put into a secret hiding-place. The priests and soldiers vainly
-endeavoured to reach him; the mass of hearers was between them and him.
-The lieutenant ordered the people 'under heavy penalties' to retire; and
-when the preacher was in safety, the assembly dispersed. The magistrates
-and priests returned angry and disappointed to report this second
-failure to the syndics. The Word had not been sown in vain; many of the
-hearers found that they had received a glorious new year's gift. Such
-was the first day of the year 1533 at Geneva.
-
-[Sidenote: FROMENT IN HIDING.]
-
-All the priests and their followers had not returned to the hotel de
-ville. Froment had disappeared, but he could not be far off. Some of
-them prowled about the adjacent streets, trying to discover the
-reformer's hiding place. At last one of them found it out. Chautemps was
-known to be a decided evangelist, and they called to mind that Olivetan
-had lived in his house. Several catholics stationed themselves under his
-windows, and when the night came, they began to make an uproar. This
-alarmed Froment's friends; and going to his hiding place they told him
-that 'he must move to the house of another citizen.' They went out by a
-back-door, and, owing to the darkness, he was conducted without being
-recognised to the house of the energetic Perrin, who was more dreaded
-than the honest Chautemps. Ere long, however, the priests and their
-adherents followed him there: 'Ami Perrin,' they shouted, 'we will pull
-down your house and burn you in it if you do not send the Lutheran
-away.' Perrin made use of stratagem: going out to the riotous catholics,
-he said: 'We have liberty to keep an honest servant in our houses
-without impediment from anybody.' He then said to Froment: 'You are my
-servant, I engage you as such, and you shall work for me.' At the same
-time a few of Perrin's friends, stanch huguenots, came up the street,
-presenting such a threatening front to the priests, that they were
-forced to retire. The syndics determined to convoke the great council on
-the morrow.[614]
-
-The circumstances were serious: the new doctrine had been preached
-publicly, and Froment's bold address had made an impression, especially
-on the huguenots. They had discovered that the surest means of
-guaranteeing their political emancipation was to establish a religious
-reformation. At the Molard, liberty and the Gospel had shaken hands. The
-catholics asked whether the pope's sovereignty was about to fall to the
-ground. The various parties grew warm, abused each other, and lively
-discussions took place between them. The politicians maintained that if
-the city was divided on such all-important matters, their
-irreconcileable enemy Savoy would plant his white cross on the walls he
-had coveted so long. Certain laymen, full of confidence in their own
-ability, doubted whether strangers and madmen (_follateurs_) should be
-permitted to vent their nonsense everywhere?... The priests spoke the
-loudest: they asked the Genevans if they would forsake the faith of
-their ancestors; if the catholic and apostolic religion, attacked,
-overthrown, and annihilated, was to give place to a new doctrine that
-would bring down the ruin of Geneva. The huguenots replied that if the
-religion announced by the reformers was not that of the pope, the
-schoolmen, the councils, and perhaps even of the Fathers, it was at
-least that of the apostles and Jesus Christ, and consequently was older
-than that of Rome. They represented that as the papal government was
-nothing else than despotism in the church, it could produce nothing but
-despotism in the state. The two parties became more distinct every day.
-The syndics and councillors, wishing to restore concord, went from one
-to another, trying to calm down the more violent; but it was a very hard
-task.
-
-[Sidenote: THE COUNCIL MEETS.]
-
-On the 2nd of January, when the council of Two Hundred met, the premier
-syndic proposed, 'that it should be forbidden to preach in private
-houses or in public places without the permission of the syndics or the
-vicar-episcopal,—and that all who knew of preachers guilty of infringing
-this law should be bound to inform against them, under penalty of _three
-stripes with the rope_.' At these words the huguenots exclaimed, 'We
-demand the Holy Scriptures;' to which the friends of the priests
-replied, 'We desire that sect to be utterly extirpated.' The council
-thought to restore harmony between everybody by carrying a resolution
-that Bocquet the gray friar should preach until next Lent.[615]
-
-The premier syndic, who was distressed at the strife and hatred by which
-the citizens were divided, proposed that 'all men, citizens, and
-inhabitants, should forgive one another.' The Genevans, who were prompt
-to anger, were equally prompt to reconciliation. 'Yes, yes,' they
-exclaimed, as they lifted up their hands, 'We desire to love those who
-are of a contrary opinion.' And soon bands of men might be seen parading
-the streets, in which persons of the most opposite opinions held one
-another affectionately by the arm.[616]
-
-Meantime Froment remained in Perrin's house and wove ribbons, 'otherwise
-he could not have stayed there,' as he informs us. Whilst seated in
-silence at the loom, passing the shuttle to and fro, he deliberated
-whether he should remain in hiding or again openly proclaim the Gospel?
-Having made up his mind to go from house to house to strengthen those
-who had believed, he went out and knocked at certain doors; a few of his
-friends, armed with stout sticks, followed him at a distance, without
-his knowledge, to prevent his being insulted. One day, however, a vulgar
-woman abusing him roundly, Jean Favre, a violent huguenot, and his
-body-guard, went up and gave her 'a sound slap on the face.' Froment
-turned round, distressed at his friend's hastiness: 'It is not by
-violence,' said he, 'that we shall gain friends, but by gentleness and
-friendship.'
-
-[Sidenote: ATTACK ON FROMENT.]
-
-Another time Froment was crossing the Rhone bridge to go to Aimé
-Levet's.[617] It was a holiday, and the priests at the head of a
-procession were advancing on one end of the bridge as Froment arrived at
-the other. They were carrying crosses and relics, mumbling prayers and
-invoking the saints: _Sancte Petre_, chanted some; _Sancte Paule_,
-chanted others. Froment, being taken by surprise and embarrassed,
-determined to be moderate, and not to throw the saints into the river as
-Farel had done at Montbeliard. He therefore stood still, but did not bow
-to the images. When they saw this, the priests left off chanting and
-began to shout: 'Fall on him!... fall on the dog!... to the Rhone with
-him!' The devout women who followed them, breaking their ranks, rushed
-upon the reformer; one caught him by the arm, another by the dress,
-while a third pushed him from behind: 'To the Rhone' with him they
-cried, and endeavoured to throw him into the river. But his body-guard,
-consisting of John Humbert and some other huguenots, who were a little
-way off, ran up and rescued Froment from the hands of these furies. Upon
-this the women, priests, and sacristans, seeing that the Lutherans had
-saved their _idol_, shouted still louder than before. A tumultuous crowd
-filled the bridge. The huguenots, wishing to put Froment in a place of
-safety, hurriedly thrust him into Levet's house, which was situated at
-the corner of the bridge.[618] The populace, excited by the clergy,
-instantly besieged the house: they flung stones at the windows, threw
-mud into the shop, and at last rushed in and scattered the drugs and
-bottles upon the floor. Levet was an apothecary—a profession much
-esteemed. The huguenots, having put Froment in safety in a secret
-chamber, went out and assisted by a few friends drove the priests,
-women, and rioters from the bridge.
-
-At night Froment left his hiding-place and returned to Perrin's, where
-he assembled a few friends and told them that he thought it was his duty
-to leave the city on account of these 'raging tempests.' Chautemps,
-Perrin, Levet, and Guerin were much distressed, but they confessed that
-the violence of his enemies rendered the evangelist's longer stay in
-Geneva useless. Claude Magnin offered to accompany him, and when the
-night came Froment bade his brethren farewell. Proceeding cautiously, he
-quitted the city, crossed the Pays de Vaud, and arrived at the village
-of Yvonand, where he rested from his Genevese battles.
-
-Froment was not one of those eminent men who play a part because of
-their great character, and whose influence is continually on the
-increase. His ministry at Geneva during part of the winter 1532-33 was
-the heroic period of his life, after which he seldom appears but in the
-second or third rank: he was eclipsed by teachers who were superior to
-him. In the briefness of his ministry he resembles those heavenly bodies
-which attract all eyes for a few weeks, and then disappear; but he
-resembles them also by the influence which the people ascribe to their
-ephemeral passage. Froment's stay in Geneva shook the Romish traditions,
-secured the Holy Scriptures from oblivion, began to shed a few rays of
-light in the city, and laid the first foundations of the Church. Ere
-long the Word of God was carried thither in greater fulness by Farel and
-Calvin: the sun poured out all its light, and a solid majestic edifice
-was built on the foundations laid by the poor schoolmaster.
-
-[604] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 22.
-
-[605] Ibid.
-
-[606] Ibid.
-
-[607] These particulars, this prayer, and the first sermon that followed
-it have been recorded by Froment himself in his _Gestes de Genève_
-published by M. Revillod, pp. 22-42.
-
-[608] The plague was then pretty frequent at Geneva.
-
-[609] Matth. xxiv. 23.
-
-[610] Matth. xxiii. 14; Mark xii. 38; Luke xx. 46.
-
-[611] Micah iii. 3.
-
-[612] 1 Timothy iv. 1-3.
-
-[613] 'Anhelo pulmone, in effusissimam vocem laxato.'—Spanheim, _Geneva
-restit._ p. 52.
-
-[614] Froment, _Gestes_, pp. 43, 44. La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_,
-&c. p. 50.
-
-[615] Council Registers, 2 Jan. 1533; Gautier MS. Roset MS. _Chron._
-liv. ii. ch. v. La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Hérésie de Genève_, p. 50.
-
-[616] Council Registers, 2 Jan. 1533; Gautier MS. Roset MS. _Chron._
-liv. ii. ch. v. La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Hérésie de Genève_, p. 50.
-
-[617] 'In Leveti ædes, in ponte quo flumen Rhodani transitur sitas,
-migrat.'—Spanheim, _Geneva restit._ p. 50.
-
-[618] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 4.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
- HOLY SCRIPTURE AND THE LORD'S SUPPER AT GENEVA.
- (JANUARY AND FEBRUARY 1533.)
-
-
-[Sidenote: THIRST FOR THE GOSPEL.]
-
-Froment's departure did but increase the love of the Gospel in serious
-minds. Deprived of what they considered their right—hearing the Gospel
-preached—they suffered from the want, and were determined to free
-themselves from the spiritual destitution to which they were reduced by
-the clerical system. Others felt no less decided aspirations for
-liberty, and were unwittingly the instruments of a greater revolution
-than they had imagined. These Genevans felt, as if by inspiration, that
-at the beginning of the sixteenth century society was passing through a
-crisis, and that a new phase was opening for mankind. They did more than
-observe it: they were personally the chief actors in the revolution that
-was about to be accomplished in the world. Leaving the barren nations in
-their lifeless stagnation, the men of this little city shouted
-'Forward!' and rushed into the arena.
-
-Froment had hardly left Geneva before the partisans of the reformation
-raised their heads. The Romish Church had on its side the bishop-prince,
-the clergy, the Friburgers, and even the majority of the council and
-people; but if the friends of reform were in a minority as regards
-material force, they surpassed their adversaries in moral strength. The
-historian asserts that from this moment the two parties were nearly
-equal in power.[619] The grey friar Bocquet, who 'had managed with so
-much address,' says a manuscript, 'that both parties went to hear him
-with equal eagerness,'[620] now began to preach the christian truth more
-openly. The astonished priests were still more exasperated against the
-monk than they had been against the reformer, and solicited that he
-should be silenced.
-
-The hands of the clergy were ere long strengthened by a powerful ally.
-On February 23, six Friburg councillors, stanch catholics, entered
-Geneva, the bearers of a threatening letter. 'If you wish to become
-Lutherans,' said they to the council, 'Friburg renounces your alliance.'
-The syndics answered to no purpose that they desired to live as their
-forefathers had done: the Friburgers made a great disturbance about the
-grey friar's sermons, and the council decided, 'for the love of peace,'
-that Bocquet should leave Geneva.
-
-[Sidenote: BAUDICHON DE LA MAISONNEUVE.]
-
-The friends of the Gospel, seeing that even the Franciscan was taken
-from them, did not lose heart. The Holy Scriptures remained: they read
-in their homes Lefèvre's New Testament, and formed meetings at which the
-Word of God was explained. The assemblies 'which took place in the
-houses here and there were multiplied,' and the number of believers
-increased every day.[621] They met ordinarily at the end of the Rue des
-Allemands, at the house of Baudichon de la Maisonneuve, who henceforward
-became a most zealous protestant. Sprung from a noble and powerful
-family in the republic, he had a decided character and some talent, and
-carried to extremes his convictions and his desire to make them succeed.
-Individual life had prevailed during the feudal times; in the sixteenth
-century the social element was growing stronger every day. There were,
-however, certain natures which still maintained their independent
-individualism, and Baudichon was one of them. Accordingly, so long as it
-was only a question of destroying the old order of things, he acquitted
-himself valiantly; but he was less useful, when it was necessary to
-build up the new order. He seems, however, to have been aware of his own
-insufficiency. His arms were a house (_maison_), and above the crest an
-open hand with these words: _Except the Lord build the house, they
-labour in vain that build it_.
-
-The Lord did build: assemblies were formed, and Baudichon's house became
-the _catacombs_ (says an old author) in which the new Christians held
-their humble meetings.[622] They arrived, saluted each other
-fraternally, sat down in a large room, and remained a few moments in
-silence. They knew that though they were many, they had all one sole
-Mediator, present in the midst of them although unseen. Then one of them
-would read a portion of Scripture, another of the better informed
-explained and applied it, and a third prayed.... The believers departed
-edified from their meetings, 'which were so different (they said) from
-the pope's mass.'
-
-Sometimes a great treat was granted them. Some evangelical foreigner
-passed through Geneva; the news spread immediately to every family; the
-place and time were named when he would preach, and the believers
-flocked thither from every quarter. 'What is his name?' they asked one
-day. 'Peter Maneri.' 'What is he?' 'A minister.' 'Where is he staying?'
-'At Claude Pasta's.' And Claude Pasta's rooms were filled immediately.
-
-These first evangelicals of Geneva were not content merely with being
-taught sound doctrine; they knew that a cold knowledge of God can save
-no man, and that it is necessary to live with the Spirit of Christ, and
-as He lived. They had formed a fund among themselves, and Salomon was
-the treasurer. Every one brought his mite for the relief of the poor,
-whether Genevans or foreigners. Thus these christians learnt at once to
-believe, to love, and to give.
-
-Two kinds of protestantism were already beginning, however, to appear in
-Geneva, which have not ceased and perhaps never will cease to exist—an
-external and an internal protestantism. The pious and humble Guerin had
-a servant who, full of admiration for his master's sermons, was also a
-great talker. One day, wishing to do the same as his master, he began to
-preach in the open street before a number of people. 'Why do you go to
-mass?' he said: 'you are idolaters.... Instead of worshipping God, you
-adore a wafer!' The poor orator was taken up and compelled to leave the
-city in consequence of his sermon. Another day some huguenots entered a
-pastrycook's shop: it was a Saturday in Lent. They asked for a plate of
-meat. 'Impossible,' said the master. 'Not so much ceremony,' rudely
-returned the huguenots. The pastrycook ran off to inform against them,
-and they were condemned to pay a fine of sixty sous each, which
-occasioned some disturbance. 'Lutherans, huguenots, heretics!' shouted
-one party; 'Pharisees, mamelukes, papists!' answered the other.[623]
-
-[Sidenote: OLIVETAN'S WORK.]
-
-In the midst of these disturbances the most important work of the
-reformation was progressing at Geneva. The pious Olivetan was labouring
-night and day at the translation of the Bible. He believed that nothing
-was more necessary for the Church of his time, and in his great love for
-it, he determined to do all in his power to supply the want. 'O poor
-little Church,' he said, 'although thou art desolate, mis-shapen, and
-rejected, and countest for the most part in thy family the blind, the
-lame, the maimed, the deaf, the paralytic, orphans and strangers, simple
-and foolish ... why should we be ashamed to make thee such a royal
-present? Do we not all need the consolation of Christ? For whom does the
-Lord destine his Scripture, if not for his little invincible band, to
-whom, as the real leader of the war, he desires to impart courage and
-boldness by his presence?'[624]
-
-Nothing disturbed Olivetan so much as the sight of the Church of his
-day. The more he studied it, the more he was grieved by its misery and
-convinced of the necessity of a total reformation, accomplished by the
-Word of God. Never perhaps had its condition caused so profound and keen
-a sorrow in any one. When he was alone in his room and seated at his
-table, these bitter recollections would recur to him: 'I love thee,' he
-exclaimed; 'I have seen thee in the service of thy hard masters; I have
-seen thee coming and going, worried and plagued; I have seen thee
-ill-treated, ill-dressed, ill-used, ragged, muddy, torn, dishevelled,
-chilled, bruised, beaten, and disfigured.... I have seen thee in such
-piteous case, that men would sooner take thee for a poor slave than the
-daughter of the universal Ruler, and the beloved of his only Son.
-Listen,' added he, 'thy friend calls thee; he endeavours to teach thee
-thy rights and to give thee the watch-word, that thou mayest attain to
-perfect freedom.... Stupified and bewildered by so many blows, bowed
-down by so many cares brought upon thee by thy rough masters, wilt thou
-persevere? wilt thou go thy ways and complete the foul and grievous task
-with which they have burdened thee?'[625]
-
-[Sidenote: TRANSLATION OF THE BIBLE.]
-
-But Olivetan soon stopped in the midst of his work and asked himself
-whether 'the humble translator' (as he calls himself) was capable of
-performing such a task. He looked upon himself as the meanest of
-believers, 'as one of the smallest toes on the lowly feet of the body of
-the Church.'[626] But his very humility induced him to increase in
-diligence. He procured the best copies of the Scriptures and compared,
-as he tells us, 'all the translations, ancient and modern, from the
-Greek down to the Italian and German.' Above all, he made great use of
-the French translation by Lefèvre of Etaples, but rendered certain
-passages differently. He studied the various texts, the use of the
-Masoretic points, marks, consonants, aspirates, and unusual expressions.
-He deliberated whether he should preserve in French certain Greek terms,
-such as _apostle_ and _bishop_, or express them by the corresponding
-word in French. 'If I preserve the Greek word,' he said, 'the thing
-which it signifies will remain unknown, just as it has been to the
-present day.' He therefore translated the Greek word _apostle_ by the
-French word _envoyé_ (sent); instead of _bishop_ he wrote _surveillant_
-(overseer); and _ancien_ (elder) instead of _priest_. Then he added
-mischievously: 'And if any one is surprised at not finding certain words
-in my translation which the common people have continually on their
-lips, imagining they are in Scripture, such as _pope_, _cardinal_,
-_archbishop_, _archdeacon_, _abbot_, _prior_, _monk_, he must know that
-I did not find them there, and for that reason I have not changed
-them.'[627]
-
-On the 13th March the printer De Vingle asked permission to print the
-Bible in French. The council was much divided, for the friends of the
-clergy opposed his prayer. On the one side they called out _Scripture!_
-and on the other _Church!_ The syndics thought it their duty to steer a
-middle course, and granted permission to reprint Lefèvre's Bible without
-adding or retrenching a word. They were afraid of Olivetan's
-translation, and we shall see by and by where he was forced to get it
-printed.[628]
-
-Another desire absorbed the evangelicals of Geneva about this time. When
-Guerin, Levet, Chautemps, and others met together in some humble room,
-they expressed the happiness they should feel at assembling round the
-Lord's table to commemorate his death. They had long ceased to take part
-in the communion of the Romish Church, defiled as they thought it by
-wretched superstitions; and desired earnestly to see the Lord's Supper
-re-established among them in its apostolic purity. The christians of
-Geneva asked for the Bible in the first place, and for the Sacrament in
-the second. That is in the regular course. The Word of God creates the
-christian: the Lord's Supper strengthens him. Christ first imparts to
-his disciples the knowledge of the truth, which He does by the ministry
-of the Word. Then He desires them to understand that he gives not only
-christian ideas to believers, but that he gives himself, his own
-life—that he comes (in his own words) to _abide in them_.[629] This is
-the second phase of faith, and the Lord's Supper is its sign.
-
-[Sidenote: GUERIN.]
-
-The christians of Geneva, enlightened by Scripture, desired the Holy
-Communion. But, said they, who will give it us? They had no ministers.
-Had not Luther declared ten years before that in order to avoid
-irregularity, the assembly, making use of its right, ought to elect one
-or more believers to exercise the charge of the Word, in the name of
-all.[630] They turned their eyes on Guerin. Few of the reformed were so
-much esteemed as he was. Being an evangelical christian and not a
-political huguenot, he had 'an ardent love for his brethren' and a zeal
-full of boldness to profess the Gospel. It required some courage to
-preside at the Lord's Supper in Geneva in the presence of the Romish
-mass. 'The flesh is always cowardly,' said a christian of Geneva, 'and
-pulls backwards, like an aged ass; and accordingly it needs the goad and
-spur as much as he does.'[631] Guerin possessed, moreover, a cultivated
-understanding, and was learned in theology.[632]
-
-There remained one question: Where should the communion be held?—'At
-Baudichon's,' answered one of them. 'No,' said the more prudent; 'not in
-the city for fear of the opposition of the priests, who are very
-irritated already.' Upon this Stephen d'Adda said, 'I have a little
-walled garden near the city gates, where nobody can disturb us.' The
-place was selected, the day named, and an hour fixed which would permit
-them to meet without disturbance. It was early in the morning, as it
-would appear.[633]
-
-[Sidenote: FIRST SACRAMENT AT GENEVA.]
-
-When the day arrived, many persons went out of the city and quietly
-directed their steps towards D'Adda's garden, situated in a place called
-Pré l'Evêque, because the bishop had a house there. A table had been
-prepared in a room or in the open air. The believers as they arrived
-took their seats in silence on the rude benches, not without fear that
-the priests should get information of the furtive meeting.[634] Guerin
-sat down in front of the table. Just at the moment (we are told) when
-the ceremony was about to begin, the sun rose and illumined with his
-first rays a scene more imposing in its simplicity than the mountains
-capped with everlasting snow, above which the star of day was beginning
-his course. The pious Guerin stood up, and after a prayer he distributed
-the bread and wine, and all together praised the Lord. The communicants
-quitted D'Adda's garden full of gratitude towards God.
-
-It was not long, however, before their peace was troubled. Their enemies
-could not contain themselves, and threatened nothing less than
-excommunication and imprisonment. There were disputes. The priests
-shrugged their shoulders at the sight of those paltry assemblies. They
-said that the reformed, by busying themselves so much about _Christ_,
-deprived themselves of the _Church_; while Olivetan and Guerin
-maintained that the catholics, by speaking so much of the _Church_,
-deprived themselves of _Christ_. The meeting of a few souls endowed with
-a lively faith, who came to glorify Jesus Christ, was (they believed) a
-truer church than the pope, cardinals, and all the pomps of the Vatican.
-The exasperated priests vented their anger specially on Guerin, and the
-danger which threatened him was so great, that he had to leave the city.
-Hurrying quickly away, he took refuge at Yvonand with his friend
-Froment, from whom he had received so much enlightenment.[635]
-
-Thus Farel, Froment, and Guerin were compelled, one after another, to
-quit Geneva; but the catholics laboured in vain: 'the reformed met every
-day in houses or gardens to pray to God, to sing psalms and christian
-hymns, and to explain Holy Scripture. And the people began to dispute
-with the priests, and to discuss with them publicly.'[636]
-
-Thus there were two winds blowing in different directions at Geneva—one
-from the north, the other from the south. They could not fail to come
-into violent collision and to engender a frightful tempest.
-
-[619] Ruchat, iii. p. 186.
-
-[620] Berne MS., ascribed to Bonivard, _Hist. helv._ v. 12.
-
-[621] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 47.—'Domatim conventus habere.'—Turretini MS.
-
-[622] 'In Domonovani Baudichonii ædibus, quæ concionum ordinariarum
-_crypta_ erant.'—Spanheim, _Geneva restit._ p. 58.
-
-[623] Council Registers, 4th and 26th March. Froment, _Gestes_, p.
-47.
-
-[624] Olivetan's Bible, _Dedication_.
-
-[625] Olivetan's Bible, _Dedication_.
-
-[626] 'Comme l'un des plus petits orteils des humbles pieds du corps de
-l'église.'—Olivetan's Bible, _Apologie du translateur_.
-
-[627] Olivetan's Bible, _Apologie du translateur_.
-
-[628] Council Registers, Bellard, 1533.
-
-[629] St. John xv. 4, 5.
-
-[630] 'Wie man Kirchen Diener wählen und einsetzen soll.'—Luth.
-_Opp._ lib. xviii. p. 433.
-
-[631] Calvin.
-
-[632] Spon, _Hist. de Genève_.
-
-[633] It seems clear from Froment's narrative (p. 48) that the first
-communion took place before the riots (p. 51), and therefore probably
-before the middle of March. Spon confirms Froment's account (i. p. 481).
-On the other hand Sister Jeanne de Jussie says that a sacrament was
-celebrated after the first riot, on Holy Saturday, April 10th (_Le
-Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 61). The only way of reconciling these two
-statements is to admit (as we have done) two different celebrations (in
-March and April), and not one only.
-
-[634] 'Furtivo conventu.'—Spanheim, _Geneva restit._ p. 45.
-
-[635] Froment, Gestes, pp. 48-51. Gautier MS. Spon, _Hist. de
-Genève_, i. p. 481.
-
-[636] _Vie de Farel._ Choupard MS.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
- FORMATION OF A CATHOLIC CONSPIRACY.
- (LENT, 1533.)
-
-
-Evangelical zeal was the occasion of the persecution. Its enemies were
-angered; they could not understand the inappreciable life then
-fermenting among their people. If a meeting was suppressed in one house,
-it was held in another. 'They could not find any remedy against this.'
-
-One, however, offered itself. A dominican monk, an inquisitor of the
-Faith, had just arrived in Geneva. 'He is a great orator,' was the
-report in the city, 'a fervent catholic, just the opposite of Bocquet.'
-He had come to preach the Lent sermons in the greyfriar's stead, and
-everybody hoped he would repair the evil the other had done. 'Deliver us
-from this heresy,' said the heads of the Dominicans to him. The monk,
-flattered by this confidence and proud of his mission, prepared a fine
-discourse, and the next day or the next but one after Guerin's departure
-he went into the pulpit. St. Dominic's church was crowded, and a good
-many evangelicals, including Olivetan, were present. After a short
-introduction the monk began with loud voice and ardent zeal to decry the
-Bible, to abuse the heretics,[637] and to exalt the pope. 'He uttered
-without restraint all that came into his head.' 'I will blacken them
-so,' he had said, 'that they shall never be washed clean.'
-
-[Sidenote: OLIVETAN BANISHED FROM GENEVA.]
-
-Great was the excitement among the huguenots. 'If any one of us is so
-bold as to move his lips,' they said, 'such a little liberty makes our
-masters bawl out like madmen; but they are allowed to pour out their
-poison and infect the world with it.' Olivetan, who was present during
-the sermon, could hardly contain himself, but as soon as it was ended,
-he got upon a bench, thinking it would be wrong of him not to make the
-truth known. 'Master,' he said, 'I desire to show you honestly from
-Scripture where you have erred in your discourse.' These words created
-great astonishment. What! a layman presume to teach the Church.... The
-priests and some of their creatures surrounded Olivetan, abused him,
-pushed him off the bench, and would have beaten him. 'Whereupon up came
-Claude Bernard, Jean Chautemps, and others, who took their friend away
-from the monks and people who desired to kill him.'... But he did not
-escape so easily: the council sentenced him to banishment, without
-hearing or appeal. Everyone regretted him: 'He was a man,' they said,
-'of such learning, godly life and conversation!' Olivetan was forced to
-leave. Geneva, suffering under a violent commotion, cast off the
-evangelists one after another, as the sea casts up the fragments of a
-wreck.[638]
-
-The clerical party was beginning to doubt whether these banishments were
-enough.... When Farel was expelled, Froment appeared; when Froment had
-got away, Guerin presided over a Lutheran sacrament; when Guerin had
-been obliged to make his escape, Olivetan got upon a bench in the church
-and publicly contradicted an inquisitor! He too was gone, but others
-would not fail to come forward.... Canon Wernli, equerry De Pesmes, the
-bold Thomas Moine, and other catholic chiefs, thought that an end should
-be put to this state of things. The reformed saw the danger that
-threatened them. Baudichon de la Maisonneuve consulted with his friend
-Claude Salomon. They argued that as Friburg desired to enslave their
-consciences, they ought to apply to Berne to deliver them. Salomon
-wished to consult the Genevese councillors favourable to the Reform.
-'No,' said Baudichon, 'let us ask nobody's opinion; let us do the
-business alone. Which of the council would join us? John Philippe, John
-Lullin, Michael Sept, Stephen of Chapeaurouge, Francis Favre, Claude
-Roset? True, they are all friends of independence, but they have an
-official position. If we apply to them, we shall only compromise them.
-We are at liberty to expose our own lives, but not those of our friends.
-Let us go to Berne alone.' Nevertheless two magistrates, Domaine d'Arlod
-and Claude Bernard, were informed of their intention. They were
-embarrassed, for they knew that such a step might cost the lives of
-those who ventured it. The courage of the two patriots affected them.
-'We believe we are following God's will,' said Maisonneuve. 'In that
-case,' replied Arlod, 'we shall give you no instructions either verbal
-or written, we shall only say: _Do whatsoever God shall inspire you to
-do_.' It was with these words, recorded in the registers, that the two
-Genevans departed for Berne.[639]
-
-[Sidenote: BERNE AND LIBERTY OF WORSHIP.]
-
-As soon as they arrived, they appeared before the council and explained
-how the clergy were endeavouring to stifle the germs of faith in their
-birth. The Bernese did not hesitate: greatly irritated by the violence
-which the Genevans had used towards Farel,[640] in despite of their
-letters of recommendation, they made answer that they would do
-everything to support the Gospel in Geneva.
-
-On the 25th of March the council of Geneva met. There was evidently
-something new: many of the members wore an anxious look; others appeared
-cheerful. Du Crest, the premier syndic, a man devoted to the Romish
-Church, announced with an air of consternation, that he had just
-received a letter from Berne in which the council of Geneva was severely
-reprimanded. In truth, the Bernese did not mince matters: they
-complained of the violence done to Farel and the persecution organised
-in Geneva against the evangelical faith. 'We are surprised,' they said,
-'that in your city the faith in Jesus Christ and those who seek it are
-so molested.... You will not suffer the Word of God to be freely
-proclaimed, and banish those who preach it.'[641]
-
-This letter troubled the council. 'If we concede what Berne demands,'
-they said, 'the priests will get up fresh disturbances. If we refuse,
-Berne will break off the alliance, and the reformed will revolt.'
-Whichever way they turned, danger seemed to threaten them. 'So that they
-knew not what answer to give,' adds the register. Almost all of them
-were enraged against Maisonneuve and Salomon. They were brought before
-the council and confessed that they had gone to Berne and had solicited
-the letter which had been sent. Upon this several mamelukes called out
-'treason;' but the consciences of these two noble citizens bore witness
-that they had served the cause of liberty and justice. They remained
-firm, and the council, being disturbed and undecided, adjourned to the
-next day the question of what was to be done.[642]
-
-The agitation spread from the council-room to the chapter-house and into
-the city. Everyone spoke about Berne's demand of full liberty for the
-gospel. The canons, priests, and most devout of the laity were unanimous
-for refusing; the daring Thomas Moine became the soul of this movement.
-They resolved, upon his proposition, to intimidate the council and
-obtain from it the total suppression of the evangelical meetings.
-Forthwith the most zealous of the party went into the city and visited
-from house to house.[643] At the same time Moine got a few of his
-friends together and proposed to go to the council in a body: their
-numbers, he doubted not, would overawe the syndics, and the catholics
-would obtain their demands. This measure was resolved upon, and the
-meeting fixed for the morrow.
-
-[Sidenote: PROTEST OF THE TWO HUNDRED.]
-
-Next day, when the council met, they were told that a considerable
-number of citizens desired an audience. They were admitted, to the
-number of about two hundred, including Thomas Moine, B. Faulchon,
-François du Crest, Percival de Pesmes, and Andrew Maillard: their
-countenances bore the mark of violent passions. 'Most honoured lords,'
-said Moine, who was a clever speaker, 'notwithstanding the edict which
-bids us live like brothers, many persons are endeavouring to sow
-disorder and dissension among us. Some of them have gone to Berne, and
-the lords of that place have written you a letter which disturbs all the
-city.... Who are those guilty men who go and denounce their country to
-the foreigner? Were they deputed by the council? What instructions did
-they receive? What answer did they bring you? We beg to be informed on
-these matters. We wish to know them, and whether anything has been done
-tending to the ruin of the republic.'
-
-The premier-syndic, amazed at such a speech, begged Moine and his
-friends to retire, and the embarrassed council determined to
-procrastinate.
-
-'We will do everything in the world to bring this difficult matter
-to a happy conclusion,' they answered. 'We will assemble the Sixty,
-the Two Hundred, the heads of families, even the general council, if
-necessary ... the whole republic. Rest content with this promise.'
-
-'We have been deputed,' answered Moine, 'to demand that you should
-produce before us those who went to Berne. We will not leave this room
-until we have seen them. If you do not summon them, we will go and fetch
-them.'
-
-On hearing these words the council grew alarmed. What a disturbance and
-what violence there would be in the council-chamber if the two huguenots
-should appear before these excited catholics!... The syndics replied
-that they would return an answer. This procrastination put the mamelukes
-beside themselves. It was not Moine alone who protested: the two hundred
-who surrounded him raised their hands and shouted in menacing tones:
-'Justice, justice! Let us keep our promise to Messieurs of Friburg—that
-Geneva would preserve the faith of its fathers.' The alarmed syndics
-endeavoured by exceeding gentleness of manner (says a manuscript) to
-appease the tumult; and the two hundred discontented catholics returned
-to their homes with haughty look and resolute air. 'If the council
-haggles any more,' they said, 'we will do ourselves justice!' In the
-city, men said: 'We thought the catholics decrepid, downcast, asleep, or
-dead ... but they are opening their heavy eyes; their strength is
-returning, and the swift-flying vultures are about to pounce upon their
-prey.'[644]
-
-In fact, two of the syndics, and several councillors, with other laymen
-of the catholic party and some priests, went into the city, and
-endeavoured to persuade all they met to enter into the plot formed
-against the Gospel. They told them that there was nothing to be expected
-from the council. 'If the faith of our fathers is to stand, by our own
-hands it must be supported,' they said. 'Hold yourselves in readiness to
-march against the Lutherans.'
-
-[Sidenote: AGITATION AGAINST THE LUTHERANS.]
-
-The _Lutherans_, they said. It was indeed the Reformation that was then
-stirring up all the wrath of the clerical party. Some of its members, no
-doubt, hated liberty as much as the Gospel; but most of the catholics
-would have tolerated the ancient franchises of the people. The point on
-which they were all agreed was an unquenchable opposition to that new
-doctrine which they called _Lutheranism_, Luther being in their opinion
-its great apostle. This Lutheranism was fundamentally what was
-afterwards named Calvinism, for Luther and Calvin were one in the great
-evangelical principles. All the reformers preached in the sixteenth
-century, in Europe, and particularly at Geneva, that the pure grace of
-God was the only power of eternal salvation, and that the Church was
-composed of all those who possessed true faith, and not of those who
-slavishly adhered to a dominating hierarchy. The doctrines of
-Lutheranism and of the Reform[645] might differ, in regard to certain
-abstract questions, as touching the finite and the infinite, for
-instance: Lutheranism might put in bolder relief the _immanence_ of God,
-while the Reform inclined towards his _transcendance_, to use the
-language of philosophers and theologians; but they were and they are
-agreed in all that is essential; and it was these living doctrines that
-a powerful party was endeavouring to expel from Geneva.
-
-[Sidenote: SECRET PLOTS.]
-
-On Thursday night the canons, priests, and chief 'partisans of the papal
-religion,' as Wernli, De Pesmes, Moine, and their friends, met in the
-vicar-episcopal's great hall. They arrived one after another, most of
-them armed to the teeth, and breathing vengeance: the room was soon
-filled, and many stood in the courtyard. Their intention was carefully
-to arrange the plot that was to free them from the Reform. Some
-huguenots, informed of the conspiracy, drew near to watch their
-adversaries. The circumstances, the tumultuous crisis that was
-approaching, the interests to be discussed, the violent passions with
-which the two parties were animated, the late hour at which this
-conference was held—all combined to render it a solemn one. Men's minds
-became clouded, and certain huguenots of ardent imagination, who gazed
-at a distance upon the walls behind which these plotters were assembled,
-indulging in fantastic visions, fancied they saw the furies, torch in
-hand, stirring up discord;[646] but they were merely monks clad in their
-long robes, and holding the torches with which the hall was lighted. At
-length the proceedings began.[647] Some of the speakers represented that
-the number of rebels increased daily; that the sacerdotal authority
-decreased proportionately; and that if things were allowed to go on so,
-ere long nobody would take any account of the Church. 'Let us not lower
-ourselves to dispute with heretics. Let us not wait for help from the
-magistrates. The Council of Sixty is about to meet, but they will
-hesitate just like the ordinary council. Those bodies are too weak; we
-must act without the government; we are the strongest. If it comes to
-fighting, the defenders of catholicism will be ten, perhaps twenty, to
-one. When the evangelists are conquered, we will invite the bishop back,
-who will return with all the banished mamelukes, and inflict on the
-rebels the punishment they deserve. Geneva, preserved from the
-Reformation, will no longer be able to spread it through the surrounding
-countries, and will be in future ages the support of the papacy. Let us
-execute justice for ourselves; let us fly to arms, ring the tocsin, draw
-the sword, and call upon the faithful to march against those _dogs_, and
-make a striking example of the two traitors who went to Berne. Let us
-kill all who are called Lutherans, without sparing one;[648] which will
-be doing God a good service. We are assured of the bishop's pardon: his
-lordship has already sent us the pardons in blank. At the sound of the
-great bell, let everyone go armed to the Molard, and let the city gates
-be shut, so that nobody may escape.' This is what was said in the
-vicar-episcopal's house. The leaders agreed upon the place of meeting,
-the number of the armed bands, the names of those who should command
-them, and the manner in which the reformed should be attacked;
-everything was arranged. The assembly applauded; the conspirators,
-raising their hands, bound themselves by a solemn oath to execute the
-plan and to secresy;[649] after which they retired to take a brief
-repose. The festival of Easter was approaching: more than two centuries
-before, the Sicilian Vespers had filled Palermo and all Sicily with
-massacre; the enemies of the Reformation in Geneva desired also to
-celebrate the same festival with rivers of blood.
-
-The Council of Sixty met the next day (Friday, 28th March 1533). Never
-perhaps was there a body more divided. When the catholics demanded that
-the promise made to Friburg should be kept, the huguenots represented
-that if the council decided in favour of the Romanist party, not only
-would the bishop resume his former power, but that having seen the
-Reform on the brink of triumphing, he would throw himself into the arms
-of Savoy, as the only power capable of saving the Roman faith. The
-council, placed between these two fierce currents, remained in its usual
-indecision, and declared in favour of neither. This was just what the
-leaders of the Romanist party expected. Everything was prepared for
-carrying out the _conspiracy_ (to use Froment's word) which had been
-planned the night before.[650]
-
-[Sidenote: THE PARTIES ASSEMBLE.]
-
-The cathedral had been selected as the place of meeting. The first who
-entered it was the valiant canon, Peter Wernli. He was armed from head
-to foot, and advanced into the sanctuary as a general goes to battle.
-Wernli handled the sword as well as his brother, who was a captain in
-the service of the king of France. Gifted with the strength of a
-Hercules or a Samson, he designed, like the first, to drive Cerberus out
-of the city; and like the second, to pull down the pillars of the
-temple. He said to those who had gathered round him in St. Pierre's: 'We
-will cut off the heads of those who went to Berne and of all their
-friends.' Three hundred armed canons and priests came after him, and
-then a great number of their lay followers. 'The Lutherans threaten us,'
-said some of these angry citizens; 'they want to rob the churches and
-convents.' Such a tale could not fail to excite their minds still more.
-
-The huguenots, informed of the plot arranged at the vicar-general's, and
-observing the catholics making ready for the attack, saw at once that
-their first act would be to seize Baudichon de la Maisonneuve, on
-account of his journey to Berne, and inflict on him the fate of
-Berthelier and Levrier. They therefore assembled to the number of sixty
-around their friend to defend his life at the price of their blood. Some
-of Moine's partisans went to inform the assemblage at St. Pierre's that
-they had seen several persons enter Maisonneuve's house.
-
-This information was a signal of battle to the conspirators. 'Forward!'
-they cried: 'let us go and attack them!' Two catholics, friends of
-peace, who happened to be in the church (B. Faulchon and Girardin de la
-Rive), fearing a civil war, ran to the council. 'Both parties are under
-arms,' they said; 'some at St. Pierre's, others at Baudichon's: the
-first are preparing to march down against their opponents.... Should
-they do so, there will be a great disturbance:[651] look you to it.' The
-council, suspending all other business, ordered the four syndics to
-proceed with the badges of their office, first to St. Pierre's (for the
-aggressors were there), and next to Maisonneuve's, and command both
-parties to return immediately to their homes.[652]
-
-The task was a difficult one, but the four magistrates did not hesitate
-to undertake it. Preceded by their ushers they entered the cathedral,
-with the syndical staff in their hands. At the sight of them the crowd
-grew calm. 'We desire to know,' said the premier-syndic, 'the cause of
-this meeting.' The assembly answered with one voice: 'We are going to
-fight the Lutherans who are assembled in the Rue des Allemands. They are
-always keeping us in fear, and we must put an end to it. We can no
-longer endure such a pest in the city.... They are worse than the
-Turks.'[653]
-
-[Sidenote: VANDEL WOUNDED.]
-
-At this moment two of the reformed, uneasy as to what might happen,
-approached the cathedral, and mounting the steps before the porch, stood
-there some time, peeping into the church, undecided whether they should
-enter. The priests and mamelukes perceiving them, exclaimed: 'Look at
-the wicked wretches, they are come to spy the christians!' At last, with
-more zeal than prudence, the two evangelicals entered. They were J.
-Goulaz and P. Vandel, the latter a man of twenty-six, who had adopted
-the Reform, but always retained a great affection for his old catholic
-friends.[654] Addressing the syndics with great mildness, he said: 'Pray
-put an end to this disturbance, lest worse should come of it.' When the
-mamelukes heard his words, they became angry and drew their swords to
-strike the two huguenots. Portier, the episcopal secretary, a violent
-and fanatical man, seeing Vandel, exclaimed: 'How is it that you are
-here, traitor!' Several of them rushed upon Vandel, threw him to the
-ground, and trampled on him; Portier, drawing his dagger (_sanguidede_)
-and seizing the young man 'in a cowardly manner by the back,' (says the
-Council Register) stabbed him near the left shoulder, intending to kill
-him. Vandel lay seriously wounded on the pavement of the cathedral 'with
-great effusion of blood.'[655]
-
-A crowd of priests immediately gathered round him and began to lament
-loudly, not because a man had been stabbed, but because blood had
-defiled the temple. 'Never after was bell rung or divine service
-performed in that church, or even in the other churches, because the
-mother-church was closed, until it was purified by My lord the
-suffragan,' says Sister Jeanne.
-
-Goulaz, it is reported, seeing his friend on the ground, ran off to the
-evangelicals and told them all. Some of them, notwithstanding the danger
-which they incurred, proceeded to the cathedral, and obtained the
-syndics' permission to carry Vandel away. They removed him to
-Baudichon's house, where they got him to bed. A few huguenots
-constituted themselves his nurses, and as they looked on their pale and
-blood-stained friend, they asked one another what would happen next.
-
-[637] Lutheranos proscindentem.'—Turretini MS.
-
-[638] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 49.—Gautier MS.
-
-[639] Council Registers, 20th March, 1533.—Gautier MS.
-
-[640] 'Violentia qua in Farellum sævitum.'—Spanheim, _Geneva
-restit._ p. 57.
-
-[641] Letter from Berne, 20th March, 1533.—MS. Archives of Geneva, No.
-1090.
-
-[642] Council Registers, 25th March, 1533.—Gautier MS.
-
-[643] 'Accendunt clerici plebem sibi obnoxiam.'—Spanheim, _Geneva
-restit._ p. 57.
-
-[644] Council Registers, 26th March, 1533.—Gautier MS.; Roset
-_Chron._ liv. ii. ch. ix.
-
-[645] The word Reform is applied exclusively to the Franco-Helvetic or
-Calvinistic portion of the Reformation.
-
-[646] 'Nocte furiis facibusque strenue a clero subditis.'—Spanheim,
-_Geneva restit._
-
-[647] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 51.
-
-[648] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 51.
-
-[649] 'Solenni sacramento.'—Spanheim, _Geneva restit._
-
-[650] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 50.—Roset MS., _Chron._ liv. ii.
-ch. x.—Gautier MS.
-
-[651] The register has the word _ovaille_ (ovallium), Council
-Registers, 28th March, 1533.
-
-[652] Roset MS. _Chron._ liv. ii. ch. x.—Gautier MS. Council Register
-_ad diem_. La Sœur de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 51.
-
-[653] _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 51.
-
-[654] Galiffe, _Notices généalogiques de Genève_, I. p. 80.
-
-[655] La Sœur de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 52.—Froment,
-_Gestes de Genève_, pp. 50-51.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
- FIRST ARMED ATTACK OF THE CATHOLICS UPON THE REFORMATION.
- (MARCH 28, 1533).
-
-
-This effusion of blood, far from calming men's minds, served but to
-inflame them. 'All good christians were more excited than before,' says
-Sister Jeanne. The skirmish in which, being seven hundred against two,
-they had gained the advantage, was an omen of victory! They looked at
-each other and counted their numbers. 'We are the majority and well
-armed,' they said; 'we must sally out boldly and fight these rascals.'
-The principal leaders, lay and ecclesiastic, withdrawing into a private
-part of the cathedral, held a final council. The most influential
-represented that the huguenots had celebrated the sacrament, that they
-persevered in holding their meetings 'here and there,' that the
-sacerdotal authority was decreasing and the number of heretics
-increasing, and that there was only one means left of saving the Romish
-faith—putting every heretic to death.[656] The syndics stretched out
-their wands in vain, and ordered them to keep the peace. All was
-useless. 'Now is the time,' cried the priests; 'let us run to the great
-bell and give the signal.' At the word many hastened to the tower of the
-church and began to ring the tocsin. At the same time those who were in
-the church prepared to march.
-
-[Sidenote: CATHOLICS PREPARE TO FIGHT.]
-
-Three of the syndics were devoted to the catholic party: Nicholas du
-Crest, Pierre de Malbuisson, and Claude Baud. Finding that they could
-not stop the riot, they determined if possible to direct it. Claude
-Baud, lord of Troches, in whose castle many a plot had been concocted
-against the independence of Geneva, would have desired to make an end of
-the Reform, but not by violent means. Seeing, however, that it was
-impossible to check the torrent, he put himself at the head of the
-_émeute_, but with the hope of restraining it, and afterwards of
-repressing the Reform by legal means. 'Shut the doors of the church,'
-said Baud. This had a surprising effect: the catholics on a sudden grew
-calmer. The syndic feared that if they came to blows, the two parties
-might become confused in the battle, and that friends would strike
-friends without recognising each other. He ordered a great bundle of
-laurel boughs to be brought in, and addressing the crowd around him,
-said: 'Formerly, citizens, they used to give garlands to the conquerors;
-I give you these laurels before the victory: they will distinguish you
-from the wicked.' The combatants each took a sprig and fastened it to
-their caps; and then the pious catholics who were in the crowd, wishing
-to give a religious character to the _émeute_, proposed that they should
-implore the blessing of heaven before they started. The ecclesiastics
-were silent immediately, and turning to the choir, prostrated themselves
-in fervent devotion before the high altar. All present knelt down 'with
-great abundance of tears,' and sang the famous hymn of the Roman
-breviary:
-
- Vexilla regis prodeunt.[657]
-
-As soon as the strain was ended, one of the priests said: 'Let us
-commend ourselves to the blessed Virgin, that she may intercede for us
-and for the holy faith!' And all, as with one voice, joined in the
-_Salve Regina_—a prayer which the people were accustomed to sing at the
-execution of a criminal. The echoes of this ominous chant having died
-away in the aisles of the vast cathedral, the priests rose from their
-knees: one of them took the cross, while some laid hold of other
-banners. 'Behold,' they said, 'behold the standards of the king
-advancing.' The excitement grew greater every minute. It was Friday, the
-one before Passion Week. 'Let us this day call to mind the day on which
-our Lord was willing to shed his blood for us, and therefore let us not
-spare ours. Let us take vengeance on his enemies who crucify him anew
-more cruelly than the Jews did.'[658] They uttered such cries that 'it
-was quite pitiful to hear them,' and 'there was no heart so hard as not
-to melt into tears.'[659]
-
-[Sidenote: THE CORPS ARE FORMED.]
-
-All this emotion was not without a cause. The religion of the middle
-ages was disappearing. We believe that it must disappear altogether; and
-yet we are touched by the enthusiasm displayed by its adherents, which
-was worthy of a better cause. Syndic Baud, who wished to give an
-appearance of legality to the clerical movement, called Percival de
-Pesmes, and ordered him to go with a body of men and fetch the banner of
-the city. At length the great bell, which had kept on ringing, was
-silent; the ringers came down from the tower and joined the rest of
-their party. The churchmen then formed into companies and elected their
-captains; all were full of courage and ardour, and St. Pierre's
-resembled a parade-ground rather than a church. The companies defiled in
-front of the high altar, and the syndic, ordering the doors to be thrown
-open, all the clerical army quitted the temple, descended with a firm
-step the steep street of the Perron, and proceeded towards the Molard,
-which was the general rendezvous for those who desired on that day to
-destroy both the reformed and the Reformation in Geneva.
-
-As soon as the tocsin was heard, the city was agitated to its most
-retired quarters, and even the inhabitants of the surrounding districts
-had listened with alarm to its ill-omened sound. The startled and uneasy
-citizens caught up their arms, rushed hastily from their houses, and ran
-'like poor wandering sheep without a shepherd,' some one way, some
-another, not knowing where to go, what was the matter, and whether the
-enemy was within the walls or without. The peasants of the vicinity,
-forewarned by the agents of the canons, entered the city in arms. The
-confusion continued to increase: some cried 'Fire,' others 'Fall on;'
-all shouted 'Alarm, alarm!' Some ran to the gates, others to the
-hôtel-de-ville, and others to the ramparts; but the priests who had
-contrived the affair, and who were marching 'in large bands' from
-different quarters towards the Molard, excited the ignorant people to
-follow them, and shouting so as to drown all other cries, 'Down with the
-Lutherans,' thus made it known who were the enemies to be attacked. 'To
-the Molard,' they added; 'Down with the dogs that want to destroy our
-holy mother Church.' No fervent catholic hesitated; all ran along the
-streets, isolated or in bands; they drew their swords, then arquebusses
-rattled.... It was like a flock of birds in search of their prey,
-opening their talons, and plunging swiftly upon the Molard.[660]
-
-[Sidenote: THE MUSTERING OF THE HOSTS.]
-
-Meanwhile the main clerical body, that which started from St. Pierre's,
-arrived. It numbered from six to seven hundred men—canons, priests,
-monks, sacristans, and devout laymen, all well armed, Syndic Baud
-marching at their head, and 'wearing his great hat and feathers.' When
-this body debouched on the square by the arcade of the Fort de l'Ecluse,
-the Molard and adjacent streets were filled with an agitated and
-confused crowd. But immediately, by the syndic's order, companies were
-formed in imitation of that of St. Pierre's, and all the people put
-themselves 'in order for fighting.' Baud having thus drawn out his
-corps, proceeded to count them: there were about 2,500 men,[661] not
-reckoning the old men, women, and children, who shouted and wept, and
-although unarmed, added to the tumult. The catholics were full of hope.
-To the majority of them, the struggle was a mere party matter; but
-others, better instructed and better theologians than the rest, felt
-that it was an effort to expel for ever from Geneva the doctrines of
-protestantism touching the pre-eminence of Holy Scripture,
-justification, works, the mass, the Church, and especially grace, to
-which alone the Reformation attributed salvation, while the Romish
-Church claimed a part in conversion for the natural powers of man, and
-looked upon this difference between the two Churches as the essential
-point. At the same time, however, it must be acknowledged that just then
-they troubled themselves very little about theology. Being ready to
-contend with the arms of men of war, the two bodies were especially
-animated by political passions. The catholics feared lest their enemies
-should succeed in escaping. 'Shut the gates of the city,' said the
-syndic, 'so that no one can take flight.' Again cries were heard:
-'Forward, lead us to Baudichon's.' 'No,' answered Baud, 'let us wait for
-the other corps before we attack.'
-
-There were still three bands to come: the first, commanded by the
-bishop's equerry, Percival de Pesmes, was to come straight from the
-hôtel-de-ville, bringing the banner, as we have said; the second,
-commanded by Canon de Veigy, descending from the west, was to make for
-the Molard by the Rue de la Cité; the third, coming from the suburb of
-St. Gervais, was to cross the Rhone bridge, and was commanded by Captain
-Bellessert. 'He was a stout fellow and like a madman,' says Froment. The
-band that he conducted was the most violent in the republic. These three
-corps united with the 2,500 men already at the Molard could not fail to
-give the death-blow to the reformed and the Reformation.
-
-But as they did not appear, the catholics and mamelukes who were ready
-for fighting, zealous in the cause of the pope, and overflowing with
-hatred for the Reform, became impatient, and striking the ground with
-the butt-ends of their guns, desired to march forthwith. 'Forward!' they
-cried. 'Let us wait,' said the syndic, whether because he feared that
-'their business would not take well,' as the chronicle says; or because
-he wished by an imposing force to constrain the reformed to surrender
-without fighting; or, lastly, because he hoped that if he
-procrastinated, some unforeseen circumstance might happen to disarm the
-combatants. 'We want artillery,' he said, 'to besiege Baudichon's
-house.' This quieted the most ardent, by giving them something to do;
-they hurried off to the arsenal, but it was doubtful whether it would be
-opened to them, as the captain-general was opposed to them. The
-artillery-keeper, named Bossu (hunchback), in consequence of his
-infirmity, a man of vulgar character and suspected morals, and a strong
-partisan of the priests, did not hesitate. He delivered up the artillery
-to the catholics, who dragged away the cannon with much uproar, planted
-them in the square, and loaded them.[662]
-
-At this moment arrived the band led by the descendant of the crusaders,
-the young and dashing Percival de Pesmes, eager to fight, like his
-fathers, for the pope and his Church against these new Saracens. He bore
-the great banner with pride, and, defiling with his corps, drew them up
-in line of battle. Syndic Baud took the banner from his hands, and
-planted it in the middle of the square. The people, electrified at the
-sight, 'raised a loud shout.'[663] There is no longer any doubt: the
-republic is arming, the city banner floats above the catholic ranks, and
-the huguenots are only rebels.
-
-[Sidenote: THE NUNS OF SAINT CLAIRE.]
-
-The monks took the most active part in this business; the convents were
-therefore empty, all but that of Saint Claire, which alone was not
-deserted. The nuns, however, wished to take part in the struggle:
-'Alas!' they said, 'our worthy fathers have gone to share in the fight
-with a number of monks, because it is in behalf of the faith.... Let us
-kneel before God that He may show mercy to the poor city.' The mother
-abbess drew a cross of ashes on the foreheads of the sisters, after
-which they marched in procession round the cloister, invoking in devout
-litanies the protection of the whole celestial choir. Then forming a
-cross, they took their places in the middle of the choir, and there,
-distracted and weeping, they fell on their knees and cried aloud:
-'Mercy, O God! through the intercession of the glorious Virgin Mary and
-all the Saints! Give victory to the Christians, and bring the poor
-wanderers back to the way of salvation.'[664]
-
-At this moment the sisters heard a noise at the gate of the convent: it
-was a few good catholic women who, very much afraid themselves, came to
-bring the sisters tidings calculated to add to their distress. 'If the
-heretics win the day,' they said, 'they will certainly make you all
-marry, young and old—all to your perdition.'[665] This was the customary
-bugbear of the poor nuns. They were superstitious and even fanatical,
-but nothing indicates that they were not pure. A tradition to the effect
-that there was an underground communication between their convent and
-that of the gray friars is a fiction as void of foundation as the
-frightful news of a _forced marriage_ brought by their indiscreet
-friends. The terrified nuns crossed themselves, sang their litanies once
-more, and cried louder than ever: 'O holy Virgin, give victory to the
-Christians!'
-
-[Sidenote: A CRUEL HUSBAND.]
-
-The agitation in the city was then at its height; the shouts of the
-priests were frightful,[666] They bawled lustily to those who lagged
-behind, exhorted those who appeared indifferent, and animated the whole
-body with voice and gesture, as hunters urge their hounds after the
-stag. The catholics responded to the tumultuous clamours of these
-ministers of disorder and strife. But the tempest was not confined to
-the streets: scenes still more harrowing were taking place in the
-houses. 'Alas!' said the wisest men, 'there is no humanity left, and
-they take no account of the ties of nature.' One of the most fiery
-catholics, hearing the tocsin, was hurriedly fitting on his armour, when
-his wife, a fervent Romanist like himself, and whose father was at the
-head of the Lutherans, was filled with terror at seeing her husband's
-animation, and looked at him with a dejected countenance. She was Micah,
-daughter of Baudichon de la Maisonneuve. Her catholic faith did not make
-the young wife forget the sweet and holy ties that bind a child to her
-father. She shuddered at each malediction uttered by her husband against
-the author of her days. At length her grief broke out in a flood of
-tears. Her fanatical husband, exasperated to the highest degree against
-Maisonneuve, who was regarded as the main support of the heresy, turned
-back and, without showing the least pity, said: 'Wife, cry as much as
-you please. If we come to blows and I meet your father, he shall be the
-first on whom I shall try my strength.... I will kill him, or he shall
-kill me.' And then, callous at the sight of Micah, whose tears flowed
-faster at these words which pierced her heart, the barbarous husband
-said as he left her: 'He is a bad Christian, a renegade, the worst of
-the worst—this wretched Baudichon!'[667] Micah was twice married: first
-to Bernard Combet, and secondly to Guyot Taillon. We have not been able
-to discover which of her two husbands was so cruel; probably it was the
-first.
-
-These distressing scenes became more heart-rending every moment. In the
-houses nothing was heard but the cries and groans of mothers and wives,
-of daughters and young children. The streets echoed with the oaths of
-the men who cursed _that law_ (the Reformation), and the first man who
-had brought it there. 'In truth, it is not possible,' says the
-chronicler, 'to describe the cries and tears which then filled the whole
-city.' But the mournful sounds of grief and sorrow which rose in the air
-could not drown the fanatical and sonorous voices of the priests.[668]
-
-During this time a deep and solemn awe prevailed in Baudichon's house.
-The evangelicals were not insensible to the hatred which was arrayed
-against them, but the greatness of the danger gave them that calmness
-which the Christian experiences in the presence of death. The strong
-encouraged the weak, addressing them in words of piety and feeling:
-'Ah!' they said, 'if all the world would agree in the truth, we should
-be at peace; but as the majority fight against it, we cannot confess
-Christ without encountering resistance and hatred. It is the malice of
-the wicked one that divides us into contrary bands, and everywhere
-kindles strife and debate.'[669]
-
-[Sidenote: NOVEL REINFORCEMENT.]
-
-An unexpected reinforcement added to the numbers of the catholic troop.
-The women of that party had not all a tender soul and bruised heart,
-like Baudichon's daughter: the virtues of the evangelical women, the
-eagerness with which they had renounced their jewels and dress in favour
-of the poor, had excited the displeasure of many of them; and the
-thought that they no longer came to kneel with them at the altar of
-Mary, had filled them with anger and hatred. The tempest then sweeping
-through the city fanned the evil passions of the weaker sex. In every
-house the wives and sisters, and even the mothers of the catholics got
-ready; they assembled the children from twelve to fifteen years old, and
-proceeded with them to the Place d'Armes, where they had agreed to meet.
-'In this assemblage of women,' says Sister Jeanne, who was very intimate
-with them, 'there were full seven hundred children from twelve to
-fifteen years old, firmly resolved to do good service along with their
-mothers.'
-
-When these ladies met, they held a parliament of a new sort; and their
-speeches were far more impassioned than those of the men. They had no
-doubt that their husbands would put all their adversaries to death, but
-were vexed to think that their wives would be left alive. 'If it should
-happen,' said one of them, 'that our husbands fight against the
-unbelievers, let us also make war and _kill their heretic wives, in
-order that the breed may be extirpated_.'[670] This was the only way,
-these pious ladies thought, of preserving Geneva catholic; if the wives
-and children were spared, the heresy would shoot forth again in a few
-years. A unanimous cry of approval was raised by the women, and even by
-the accompanying children, and the Amazons immediately prepared for the
-combat. They armed their children, distributing little hatchets and
-swords among them; when there were no more weapons to give out, their
-mothers told them to fill their hats and caps with stones. They, too,
-fiercely gathered up their aprons, which they filled with missiles.
-Sister Jeanne does not omit a single detail in her narrative, for it is
-of this that she is most proud. Some of these women had stationed
-themselves at the windows to crush the evangelicals at the moment of
-battle by pouring their missiles down upon them; but the more determined
-marched with the children to the Molard, where they arrived with loud
-shouts. Strange madness! as if God who requires in the Christian woman
-_a meek and quiet spirit_, and forbids her to be adorned 'with braided
-hair and costly array,' did not all the more forbid her to arm herself
-with stones and march to battle. Frenzied and guilty women! Some
-huguenots, observing them from afar, asked with astonishment what could
-be the meaning of such a singular assemblage. They seemed to resemble
-those druidesses who (as it is related) when their sanctuary was
-threatened, ran to and fro along the shore of the lake, in black robes
-with hair dishevelled, and waving torches in their hands.[671]
-
-Delighted at the sight, the priests, unwilling to be behindhand,
-exclaimed: 'We will be the first to defend our spouse the Church.' There
-were about one hundred and sixty armed priests in the square. If the
-clergy and women set the example, shall the citizens remain behind? The
-whole body assembled at the Molard shouted again and again 'Forward,
-forward!' The syndics did not incline to attack, but the excited crowd
-carried them away.[672] The plan was to march to Baudichon's house,
-where the huguenots had assembled, to set fire to it, and thus, having
-forced them to come out, to murder them as they were escaping from the
-flames by the doors and windows.[673] Citizens, priests, women and even
-children, wished to have the privilege of being the first to strike
-Maisonneuve, Salomon, and their friends; torrents of heretical blood
-were to flow in the streets. 'Forward!' they repeated, but amid the
-general agitation the beautiful plumes that ornamented the syndic's hat
-remained stationary. Baud wishing to temporise, and to avoid bloodshed,
-refused to give the signal: 'To be more sure,' he said, 'and in order
-that none may escape from our hands, let us wait for the corps from St.
-Gervais.'[674] The syndic still hoped that the reformed would lay down
-their arms and surrender at discretion to an imposing force.
-
-[Sidenote: FEELINGS OF THE REFORMED.]
-
-The reformed assembled in Baudichon's house on the left bank of the
-river, at the corner of the streets of the Allemands and of the
-Corraterie (about 450 paces from the Molard) had gradually seen their
-numbers increase. Many of their friends, who at first desired to remain
-at home, observing the danger that threatened their brethren, had come
-to their help, determined to conquer or die with them. The enthusiasm
-had spread even to the children and excited them to acts of devotedness
-beyond their years. 'A young apprentice went there, in spite of father,
-mother, and priests, and exhorted them all to be of good cheer.'[675]
-The elder portion were not blind to the gravity of the situation, but
-they remained firm, being full of confidence in God. 'As a spark,' they
-said, 'may suddenly set fire to a whole city, so Geneva has in an
-instant been stirred up to riot.... But let not our hearts be troubled;
-the Lord holds the tempests and whirlwinds in His hand, and can appease
-them whenever He pleases.'
-
-Sinister omens might intimidate them. They had before them the unhappy
-Vandel, faint and bleeding.... They approached the wounded young man
-with compassion. 'See,' they said, 'see how the bishop and his officers
-treat the best citizens.' Noticing the paleness of his face, they
-despaired of his life, and gloomy thoughts filled their hearts.
-
-[Sidenote: PRAYER OF THE REFORMED.]
-
-This was not the only presage of the danger that threatened them; the
-shouts of the catholics, increasing in violence, reached even there.
-They looked at each other with astonishment and even with alarm. 'What
-fury!' they said; 'how large a number against so few!' And some of them
-added: 'If God be not for us, we are undone.' But others, changing the
-words, answered: '_If God be for us, who can be against us?_' De la
-Maisonneuve was the firmest. Possessing a quick and even violent temper,
-an enthusiast for liberty and truth, he was at this solemn hour calm,
-thoughtful, and christianlike. No one was more exposed than he: his
-house was to be as it were the battle-field; but forgetful of self, he
-went up to such as were dejected and said: 'We must show our
-magnanimity, even should they drive us to despair. The wicked are
-already erecting triumphal arches ... in the air. God does not look to
-numbers, be they great or small, but to the cause for which they fight.
-If we are under the banner of Jesus, God will be a wall of brass to us.'
-These words encouraged such as were shaken, and gave joy to their
-afflicted hearts; and scarcely had Baudichon uttered them than those who
-stood round him fell on their knees and bowed before the Lord. One of
-them prayed: 'O God, thou givest the rein to the wicked only so far as
-is necessary to try us. Stop them, therefore, and restrain them, lest
-they hurt us. Change the hearts of our enemies, and look only to the
-cause for which we are going to fight.' This simple prayer availed more
-than a _Salve Regina_. Rising from their knees, the friends of the
-Reform stretched out their hands and said: 'We swear to die in God's
-cause, and to keep faith and loyalty with one another.' And, like the
-martyrs of the early ages, they waited for the blow with which they were
-threatened, because they refused to abandon the Gospel which God was
-then restoring to Christendom.
-
-While the evangelicals were praying, the band so impatiently expected
-from St. Gervais began to cross the bridge at last. The ex-syndic
-Jean-Philippe, now captain-general, who inclined to the Reform from
-political motives, being called by his office to repress all disorder,
-had taken his post between the bridge and the city, near Baudichon's
-house, and those who belonged to neither party had rallied round him.
-Just as the corps from the suburb was debouching from the bridge and
-entering the city, Philippe ordered them to return. At these words their
-leader, Bellessert the butcher, furious at the attempt to stop him, flew
-into a passion, and with horrible oaths struck the captain-general so
-violently with his halberd that he fell to the ground. At the instant
-Claude de Genève, and other citizens who followed Philippe, dashed
-forward to meet the assailants; the captain sprang to his feet, and,
-turning sword in hand upon the man who had struck him, wounded
-Bellessert. At the same time, his followers, hitting right and left,
-drove the St. Gervaisians back upon the bridge. The latter attempted in
-vain to resume the offensive; Philippe's troop did not give them time to
-breathe. Many had been wounded, and disorder was in their ranks; they
-were too proud and violent to give way if they had not suffered much
-loss. At last they fled and returned dejected to their houses.[676] The
-captain's followers immediately closed the bridge gate to prevent the
-people of the suburb from returning into the city.[677]
-
-This measure exposed the reformed in St. Gervais to some danger. Aimé
-Levet lived, as we have said, at the other end of the bridge. His wife,
-distressed at the struggle and the wounds her brethren were about to
-give and to receive, had gone out, imprudently perhaps, and standing in
-the street, tried to discover what was going on. At this moment, the
-catholic women of the quarter, inflamed by the sight of their idol
-Bellessert's wounds, and determined not to be behind the women of the
-city in warlike zeal, caught sight of Claudine Levet, to whom they
-attributed all the mischief. With a loud cry they rushed upon her,
-exclaiming: 'Let us begin the war by throwing this dog into the Rhone.'
-Claudine, seeing the furies coming, uttered a shriek, and 'being
-tricky,' according to Sister Jeanne, returned hastily into the house and
-shut the door. It was certainly a very lawful _trick_. The catholic
-women instantly moved to attack it: but much as they tried to break the
-door down, they could not succeed. They then vented their fury on the
-apothecary's drugs: at first they took what served for show, and then
-entering the shop 'threw them all contemptuously into the street.'[678]
-This expedition against the drugs did not calm them: leaving the shop
-and standing in front of the house, they turned their angry eyes to
-Claudine's windows and used insulting language. Madame Levet remained
-calm in the midst of the uproar, and 'raised her thoughts to heaven,
-where she found great matter of joy to blot out all her sorrows.' At
-last the catholics retired, 'very wroth because they could not get at
-this woman or any other.' Claudine was saved.[679]
-
-[Sidenote: PLAN TO BURN OUT THE HUGUENOTS.]
-
-While this was going on, the third band expected at the Molard, that
-headed by Canon Veigy, had assembled in the upper part of the city. The
-immobility of the reformers, who did not leave Baudichon's house,
-fretted the canon and those whom he commanded. 'They keep themselves
-still as hares,' he said: 'we must compel them to leave their form.'
-This they prepared to do. It had been decided, as we have said, by Moine
-and his friends, the chiefs of the movement, that they should surround
-and set fire to Baudichon's house, so that the heretics should be
-stifled, burnt, driven out, and dispersed. In the opinion of some it was
-a capital idea of the huguenots to shut themselves up in one house, for
-by this means a single match would suffice to get rid of them.... But
-the plan of fire-raising was not to everybody's taste. 'It cannot be
-done without great mischief,' said the wiser heads; 'the whole street
-might be burnt down.'... The barbarous plan had, however, been resolved
-on, and its execution entrusted to Canon Veigy's corps. It was a
-churchman who had been charged with the cruel duty. 'Canon de Veigy was
-to pass through the narrow street of the Trois Rois,[680] behind the
-Rhone, set fire to Baudichon's house, and drive _the others_ into the
-street, so that they could escape nowhere.'[681]
-
-The canon's band was preparing to descend into the city to perform its
-task, when some catholics, running to the hôtel-de-ville, announced the
-defeat of the troops from St. Gervais. 'We may expect a similar
-encounter,' said the canon and his subordinates; and being not at all
-eager to measure weapons with the captain-general, they resolved to join
-the crowd on the Molard, by passing to the east, in order to be out of
-the reach of Philippe's attack, and to have a reinforcement to burn the
-huguenots. Changing their direction, they descended by the Rue Verdaine.
-When they arrived at the Molard, they were very ill received. Everybody
-reproached them, calling them cowards and traitors. The priest-party
-were 'greatly astonished and vexed because they had not set fire to the
-house, as had been agreed upon.'[682]
-
-[Sidenote: HUGUENOTS ON THE DEFENSIVE.]
-
-The news of this scheme for burning them out had reached the citadel of
-the reformed. Maisonneuve and his friends hesitated no longer. Thus far
-they had responded to the fury of their adversaries by remaining quiet;
-they desired as much as possible to spare the effusion of blood; but now
-their moderation became useless. At first they had been only sixty,
-their numbers had increased, but they were still inferior to their
-adversaries: they determined, however, to repel force by force.[683]
-They sallied forth, therefore, calm and silent, for they felt the
-gravity of the moment. On arriving in the Rue des Allemands they drew up
-in line of battle five deep, according to the Swiss practice. The front
-rank was about 250 paces from the enemy. They were determined not to
-take the offensive. 'We will wait for our adversaries,' they said; 'but
-if they attack us, we will sooner die than retreat a single step.'
-
-Although they were, as we have said, by no means numerous in comparison
-with the several catholic bands, they were firm and full of hope. There
-were neither priests, women, nor children with them to embarrass them:
-all were stout, resolute, disciplined men, who feared not to fight one
-against ten. They did not, however, place their confidence in their
-strength; they did 'not turn from one side to the other to set their
-hopes in vain things;' the most pious among them 'repeated that there
-was not one spark of certain help for them except in God alone.'
-
-The fight was about to begin. The reformed, knowing that the city
-artillery had been surrendered by the Bossu to their adversaries and
-pointed at the Molard, had procured some cannon, probably by the
-intervention of the captain-general. The huguenots marching boldly on
-two sides of the great square, had planted their guns—some in the Rue du
-Rhone, others in the Rue du Marché, only ninety paces from the
-catholics. On each side the artillery was ready to be discharged, the
-arquebuses were loaded, the spears and halberds were in the hands of the
-combatants, the women and children of the Romish party were bringing
-stones. There were transports of anger, cries, and terrible
-threats.[684] All were prepared for the onset, and a massacre seemed
-inevitable.[685]
-
-At this moment the sound of a trumpet was heard; it was not the signal
-of battle, but the prelude: the city crier, stopping at the corner of
-some neighbouring street, proclaimed, 'that every foreigner should
-retire to his lodging under pain of three lashes with a rope.' In this
-way they cleared the place where the battle was to be fought. The
-trumpet and the crier's shrill voice soon died away, and there was a
-deathlike silence. On each side there were noble souls, lovers of peace,
-who were a prey to the deepest emotions at the thought that brothers
-were about to attack brothers, and many turned a sorrowful look on the
-streets that were soon to be stained with the blood of their
-fellow-citizens. These compassionate men would have liked to restrain
-the fratricidal arms, but they trembled before the priests. 'No one,'
-says a contemporary, 'dared venture to speak to the ecclesiastics to
-propose peace; the great pride of the priests intimidated them, and they
-feared to be called Lutherans.'[686] To desire to prevent the shedding
-of blood, was to be a partisan of the Reformation.[687] The parties cast
-threatening glances at each other, and the two armies were about to come
-into violent collision.
-
-[Sidenote: PRAYERS AND TEARS.]
-
-Then the agony burst forth. Some of the wives, mothers, and daughters,
-who were in the Place du Molard, and who up to this moment had been full
-of ardour for the combat, were moved and could not restrain their
-anguish. The tenderness of their sex resumed its sway: they let go their
-aprons, and the stones contained in them fell to the ground. They burst
-into tears and gave utterance to long and sorrowful moaning. 'Alas!'
-they said, 'the father is armed against the son, brother against
-brother, neighbour against neighbour.... They are all ready to kill one
-another.'[688] The emotion became almost universal.
-
-Whilst many of the catholic women were thus transformed, the evangelical
-women who remained at home were praying. They reflected that, however
-the world may torment and vex, nothing can happen but what God Himself
-has ordained. They put the immutable decree of the Lord, who wills to
-maintain the kingdom of His Son for ever, in opposition to the wicked
-conspiracies by which the men of the world assail it, and doubted not
-that God would look upon and help them in their necessity.
-
-'It was God's will,' said Froment, 'to avoid bloodshed, and He ordained
-it accordingly.'[689]
-
-[656] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 51.
-
-[657] 'The standards of the king go forth.'—Rambach, _Anthologie
-christliche Gesänge_, i. 104. The use Dante made of the first line of
-this hymn is well known:
-
- Vexilla Regis prodeunt Inferni.—_Inferno_, xxxiv. 1.
-
-[658] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 53.
-
-[659] Ibid. Froment, _Gestes_, &c. p. 51.
-
-[660] Council Registers, _ad diem_.—Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 51.
-Gautier MS.
-
-[661] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 51. The
-number is probably exaggerated.
-
-[662] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 52.—La Sœur J. de Jussie,
-_Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 53.—Roset MS., liv. ii. ch. viii.
-
-[663] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, &c. p. 53.
-
-[664] Ibid. p. 57.
-
-[665] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, &c. p. 57.
-
-[666] Roset MS. _Chron._
-
-[667] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, &c. p. 54.
-
-[668] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 54.—La Sœur J. de Jussie,
-_Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 54.—Roset MS., _Chron._ liv. ii.
-ch. x.—Gautier MS.—Chonpard MS.
-
-[669] Ibid.
-
-[670] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, &c. p. 54.
-
-[671] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, pp. 54,
-55.—Gautier MS.
-
-[672] 'Plebs mota syndicos codem traxit.'—Turretini manuscript in the
-library at Berne.
-
-[673] 'Civis cujusdam domus concursu facto petitur; jam tormenta majora
-dirigebantur.'—Turretini MS.
-
-[674] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, pp. 54,
-55.—Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 50.—Gautier MS.
-
-[675] Choupard MS.
-
-[676] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 52.—Council Registers of the
-28th March, 1534.—La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_,
-p. 54.—Gautier MS.
-
-[677] Ibid.
-
-[678] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, &c. p. 57.
-
-[679] Ibid.
-
-[680] The Three Kings may still be seen carved over the gate of the
-large house (called Trois Rois) in Bel Air.
-
-[681] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 53.
-
-[682] Choupard MS.—Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, pp. 52-54.—Gautier MS.
-
-[683] 'Erumpunt qui convenerant a protestantibus, vim vi
-repulsaturi.'—Turretini MS. at Berne.
-
-[684] 'Clamor, saxa, minæ, furor.'—Turretini MS.
-
-[685] Utrinque ad cædes in proximo.'—Ibid.
-
-[686] Froment, _Gestes_, &c. p. 54.
-
-[687] Ibid.
-
-[688] Froment, _Gestes_, &c. p. 54.
-
-[689] Ibid. p. 55.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
- TRUCE BETWEEN THE TWO PARTIES.
- (FROM MARCH 28 TO MAY 4, 1533.)
-
-
-Just at that time some foreigners were staying in Geneva, and
-particularly seven merchants of Friburg, who had come for the fair. They
-looked with sorrow on the spectacle around them, and could not
-understand how citizens could go so far as to kill one another, 'to
-satisfy the appetite of their priests,' says a manuscript.[690] These
-worthy Switzers came forward to mediate. The chiefs of the catholic
-party, not doubting that they were on their side, asked for their
-support. 'We do not meddle in business of this kind,' wisely answered
-the Friburgers, 'except it be to restore peace, since we are co-burghers
-and good friends with you as well as with the others.' They proceeded to
-the Rue des Allemands and said to the reformed: 'Look at the great
-multitude of people that is against you. This matter must be settled
-before worse befals you.' The reformed, who were ready for the battle,
-made answer: 'The disturbance did not begin with us, and we should be
-distressed to do anything to the disadvantage of the Council or of the
-people. We only ask to be left at peace and to live according to God,
-obeying the magistrates, as the Gospel commands. We are acting in
-self-defence, for they have conspired to kill us. If so many priests and
-monks remain assembled in the square, rest assured that we shall defend
-ourselves to the last, if it please God to assist us. But we are not
-pleased at having to fight against fathers, brothers, relations, friends
-and neighbours to gratify the appetites of the priests and monks.'[691]
-
-[Sidenote: MODERATION OF THE FRIBURGERS.]
-
-The Friburgers, encouraged by these words, returned to the Molard and
-addressing the priests, said: 'It is neither good nor honourable, and
-above all it is not in accordance with your office, thus to excite the
-people to kill one another. It is your duty to be in your houses or at
-church praying to God rather than be thus in arms. When the people are
-at variance, you should reconcile them instead of exciting them to shed
-blood.' These were christian words, and the laymen delivered an
-excellent exhortation to the clergy; but the latter were so enraged that
-they would listen to nothing. After the pacific address of the
-Friburgers, 'they showed themselves more heated than ever in their
-desire that all should be killed.'
-
-These worthy merchants, astounded at finding ecclesiastics so eager for
-battle, thought that the laymen would be more moderate, and went off to
-parley with the magistrates. 'If there is any bloodshed,' they said,
-'all the blame will be laid on you. Do your duty: it is yours to
-command; order the two parties to withdraw to their homes.' The honour
-of the magistrates, who at heart desired peace, was touched, and they
-resolved to put down the tumult. Turning to the priests, upon whom the
-whole affair depended, they said to them before the people: 'You must
-restore peace.' But the clergy would do nothing, and indeed excited the
-people all the more to attack the Lutherans. The indignant Friburgers
-determined to frighten them. 'We pray you, sirs, not to be so high,'
-they said, 'for if it should come to fighting, we would rather be on
-their side than on yours.... They are very different soldiers from you,
-in better order and well-armed ... we have seen them.' Then pointing to
-the listening people, they continued: 'Do you think, sir priests, that
-the men here, who have their children, parents, and friends on the other
-side, wish to kill them or to be killed by them for love of you?...
-Indeed, we pray them to withdraw. And if after that you desire to attack
-your enemies, think what you are about; perchance, you may not have the
-opportunity of returning.'
-
-The worthy Friburgers did not stop here; after speaking to the
-magistrates and priests, they began to harangue the people. Approaching
-the citizens, they spoke to them singly: 'You have sons, relations, and
-friends on the huguenot side; do you want to kill them, or be killed by
-them? We advise you to let the priests fight it out by themselves.'
-
-Many highly approved of this remonstrance. 'We are very foolish,' they
-said; 'why should we get killed for the priests?... Let them defend
-themselves, if they like. Let them contend with Holy Scripture and not
-with the sword.' Some whom reason could not convince were seized with
-fear.[692] The good sense of the Friburgers dissipated the charm of
-sacerdotal fanaticism. The natural affections, repressed for a moment,
-resumed their power. 'Let the affair be arranged,' was the cry from all
-quarters; 'Arbitrate, arbitrate.'
-
-[Sidenote: A CONSULTATION.]
-
-The magistrates, seeing the priests deserted, regained their courage.
-There was not a moment to be lost. The council assembled in the middle
-of the Molard, the ushers keeping off the crowd; the syndics were the
-first to protest against the spilling of blood; many influential
-councillors supported them, and the majority of the people seemed to
-declare in favour of peace. Then the premier-syndic, Nicholas du Crest,
-Claude Baud, and Pierre de Malbuisson, attended by several captains,
-advanced to treat with De la Maisonneuve and his friends. The foremost
-of the huguenots, seeing them approach, thought that the battle was
-beginning, and one of them, a prompt and energetic man, arranging a
-piece of artillery, began to take aim at the centre of the group, and
-got ready to apply the match. 'The shot would have made a terrible
-breach,' says Froment. This rapid movement alarmed those who were
-approaching; on all sides they shouted out, 'Peace is made.' At these
-words the gunner stopped, the soldiers drew back, the syndics came
-forward on one side, Baudichon and his friends on the other, and the two
-parties conferred together.[693]
-
-Confidence was not yet restored. It was agreed to give hostages: three
-notable men were given up on each side, and among the six was a canon
-named Guet. Immediately the sound of the trumpet was heard in the city,
-and the herald proclaimed: 'Every man shall lay down his arms and return
-quietly home, without quarrel or dispute, under pain of being hanged;
-and no one shall sing song or ballad, provoking to quarrel, under pain
-of being whipped and banished.'
-
-The most diverse opinions prevailed at that moment in the city. The
-priests and fervent disciples of Rome could find no comfort. Wishing to
-destroy the Reformation at any cost, they thought it very christian-like
-to put the reformed to death. They were particularly envenomed against
-the captain-general; some of them publicly called him a traitor. 'This
-peace vexes the christians sorely,' writes Sister Jeanne; and
-accordingly they were heard exclaiming: 'We ought now to _despatch them
-from the world_, in order to be no more frightened or vexed on their
-account.' 'To say the truth,' adds the devout nun, 'it would have been
-better than letting them live.'[694]
-
-But while some of the catholic leaders, as Wernli and Moine, returned
-home gloomy and discontented, hoping that the business was merely
-adjourned; others, both reformed and catholics, gladly recrossed the
-thresholds of their homes, and were welcomed with tears of joy. Wives
-embraced their husbands, the little children clung round their fathers,
-while the elder ones took off their swords. The politicians smiled as
-they witnessed the joy of some and the chagrin of others; they shook
-their heads and thought that one party or the other would break the
-truce as soon as they fancied it would be to their interest to do so.
-'It is a sham peace,' they said.[695] But nothing could console certain
-of the monks. 'Alas!' they muttered in their convents, 'the christians
-would easily have discomfited and reduced the heretics to subjection,
-and now these wicked ones will gain the supremacy in the city.'[696]
-
-[Sidenote: PROJECT OF RECONCILIATION.]
-
-On the following day (29th March) the council of sixty assembled 'to
-settle the strife of the day before.' The tempest was not yet entirely
-appeased; the catholic members of the council looked with threatening
-eyes on the most notable of their colleagues, Jean Philippe, François
-Faure, Claude Roset, and others. These were the men to be attacked, they
-thought, for the strength of the anticlerical movement lay with them.
-But for a time, reconciliation was all the fashion. They resolved to
-frame a compromise which would satisfy both parties; and some of the
-magistrates and principal citizens met to arrange a system for uniting
-Rome and the Gospel.'[697]
-
-The Two Hundred, who were joined by many other citizens, being assembled
-on the 30th March, the premier-syndic first liberated the hostages and
-then proposed the famous project of reconciliation. The council having
-accepted it, he forwarded a copy to the captains of each company; and
-turning to the Abbot of Bonmont, who pretty regularly discharged the
-functions of bishop, considering the prelate's continual absence, the
-chief magistrate said to him: 'Mr. Vicar, I shall give you also a copy
-of this decree, in order that you may take care to make your priests
-live properly.' All the laymen agreed that there lay the main
-difficulty. The sitting broke up.
-
-Each company was immediately drawn up on its Place d'Armes; the captain
-stood in the centre: huguenots and mamelukes listened to this strange
-decree which, regulating a religious matter, was ordered by the civil
-authority and proclaimed by the soldiers.
-
-[Sidenote: ARTICLES OF PEACE.]
-
-'In the name of God, the Creator and Redeemer, Father, Son, and Holy
-Ghost,' read the captain, and all bared their heads. 'In the interest of
-peace, it is resolved,' continued the officer with sonorous voice, 'that
-all anger, grudges, injuries, and ill-will between any soever of our
-citizens and inhabitants, as well ecclesiastic as secular, and also all
-battery, insult, and reproach, committed by one side or the other, be
-wholly pardoned.'
-
-The listeners appeared satisfied.
-
-'_Item._ That every citizen, of what state or condition soever he may
-be, live henceforward in peace, without attempting any novelty until it
-be generally _ordered to live otherwise_.'—'Really, here is a reform,'
-said the huguenots, 'but it is in the future.'
-
-'_Item._ That no one speak against the holy Sacraments, and that in this
-respect every one be _left at liberty according to his conscience_.'
-
-Liberty and conscience! what strange words. If the people of Geneva
-gained that, everything was gained.
-
-'That no one,' continued the captain, 'preach without the license of the
-superior, the syndics, and the council; and that _the preacher say
-nothing that is not proved by Holy Scripture_.'
-
-No article caused greater satisfaction. 'Good,' said some of the
-reformed, 'our doctrine is that of Holy Scripture.'—'Good,' said some of
-the catholics, 'the superior will contrive that no heretic preaches.'
-
-The captain added the prohibition to eat meat on Friday, to sing songs
-against one another, or to say 'You are a Lutheran,' 'You are a papist.'
-Moreover he ordered the heads of families to inform their wives and
-children of the decree. The catholic ladies and their boys had been
-sufficiently forward at the time of the battle not to be forgotten.
-
-The captain having finished said to his company: 'Let those who desire
-peace and love hold up their hands and make oath before God.'
-
-The reformers, who obtained Holy Scripture and liberty of conscience,
-held up their hands. The catholics seeing that the episcopal authority
-and fast days were left them, did the same; but in one of the companies,
-a huguenot who did not care for this mixture, said: 'I refuse!'—'To the
-Rhone with him,' exclaimed the catholics immediately; 'to the Rhone.
-Throw him into the Rhone without mercy, like a mad dog.'[698] Nobody,
-however, was drowned, and next day there was a general procession
-through the city to return thanks to God for the peace.
-
-The catholics triumphed. Religious liberty and the Bible seemed such
-strange things that they had nothing to fear from them. They learnt the
-contrary afterwards; but at this time the words looked like a decoy,
-that had no reality, merely intended to attract and catch the huguenots.
-On Palm Sunday, a very learned dominican (as it was said) come from
-Auxerre, was commissioned to preach the victory of Rome. The crowd was
-so great that the convent church could not contain it. He was conducted
-to the open space in front of the building, where he got up into a
-pulpit that had been brought out for him. Standing proudly before his
-congregation, the disciple of St. Dominic said: 'Here I am ready to
-enter into the lists with these preachers. Let my lords of Berne send as
-many as they like, I will undertake to confound them all.' He had a
-copious flow of 'big words, to the great contempt of the Word of
-God.'[699] The huguenots, scarcely able to contain themselves,
-exclaimed: 'These canting knaves desire to blindfold the eyes of the
-simple, so that they may not see the sun which has risen on us in his
-brightness.'
-
-The dominican continued hurling his thunderbolts without intermission,
-then suddenly the assembly became disturbed. The women screamed, the men
-were agitated ... it was believed that the huguenots were sallying from
-the city (for the convent was in a suburb) and about to fall on the
-congregation. 'Shut the gates' (of the city), cried some; and the devout
-were still more frightened at this exclamation. Some drew their swords,
-others their daggers, all got ready to defend themselves. The poor monk,
-fancying the Lutherans were there already and about to put him to death,
-grew frightened, turned pale ... 'and fell out of the pulpit in a
-faint.' But no huguenots appeared. The congregation began to enquire
-into the cause of the alarm, and discovered a young hare which had been
-let loose among the people, and was running here and there between the
-women's dresses. It was a trick played by some foolish jester. There was
-a good deal of laughter in the city at the intrepid champions of Rome
-who had so heroically drawn their daggers against a leveret.[700]
-
-[Sidenote: THE LORD'S SUPPER.]
-
-A ceremony of another kind, more serious and absorbing, was in
-preparation. It was Passion-week, and the evangelicals felt the
-necessity of meeting in a spirit of christian fraternity around the
-Lord's table. On Holy Thursday (10th April) fourscore men and several
-women assembled in the garden at the Pré l'Evêque. First, one of them
-washed the feet of the others, in remembrance of the like act done by
-our Lord. It was not an idle imitation with them: they understood
-Christ's meaning: 'reminding them that no one should refuse to descend
-to serve his brethren and equals, however low and abject the service
-might be;' and they felt that 'if charity is abandoned, it is because
-every one takes more than he wants, and despises almost all the others.'
-After the washing of the feet, the holy sacrament was celebrated. These
-energetic men humbled themselves like little children before God, and
-approaching the table in sincere faith, many experienced that the
-presence of the Redeemer, although spiritual, is real and strengthens
-the inner man.
-
-As soon as the news of this celebration became known, all the city spoke
-of it, and sarcasms were not spared. 'These _Jews_,' they said, 'have
-bitten one after another into a slice of bread and cheese, in token of
-peace and union.... And thereupon the catholics laughed,' sister Jeanne
-informs us.[701]
-
-But the laughter was soon changed into fear. As they returned from the
-Pré l'Evêque, several huguenots (and some of the most dreaded were among
-them) walked through the streets together. A few silly gossips having
-caught sight of them in the distance, reported everywhere that large
-bodies of heretics were assembling in the squares and plotting to
-prevent the celebration of the mass on Easter Sunday. It being Holy
-Thursday, the communion was about to be administered in the churches;
-but the women, terrified by the tales they heard, did not dare stir out.
-The men grasped their arms; the priests and monks did the same; and both
-pastors and flocks began to celebrate the supper of peace, protected by
-breastplates, daggers, and clubs. All of them kept their ears on the
-watch; they were agitated at the least noise; but no one came to disturb
-them, and the communion passed off quietly.[702]
-
-[Sidenote: CONVENIENT INTERPRETATIONS.]
-
-'It will be on Good-Friday then,' said a few of the catholics; 'the
-huguenots, it is well known, are preparing to make a demonstration that
-day in the Dominicans' church, where the monk of Auxerre is to preach.'
-To prevent such a mishap it was decided that the good father should
-preach at St. Pierre's, 'the like of which had never been seen within
-the memory of man, on such a day.' The canons believed themselves safe
-in their cathedral, as in a fortress. For more security numerous bodies
-of men patrolled the city; one of the chief catholics, M. de Thorens,
-paraded proudly up and down surrounded by a troop of bravoes. On Friday
-morning, priests and worshippers went armed to St. Pierre's. Some of the
-reformed were astonished at seeing them under arms on such a day, and
-reminded them of our Lord's words: _Put up thy sword in his sheath_.
-That means, said the priests, 'that it must be kept close _until it is
-time to draw it_.' Convenient interpretations are always to be found.
-
-These good people were disquieted without a cause: there was not the
-least disturbance, and the preacher of Auxerre said whatever he
-pleased.[703] But he did not feel at ease in the city of the huguenots,
-and Easter Day was no sooner past than he returned 'hastily into his own
-country.' No one dared preach after his departure, which greatly
-surprised devout catholics.[704]
-
-The ordinance of the council had forwarded religious liberty in Geneva,
-but it was little more than in theory; the practice was more difficult.
-In the opinion of some, Geneva ought to be entirely reformed; in the
-opinion of others, entirely catholic: men of decision asked 'how long
-they would halt between two opinions?' and daring partisans repeated
-that the sword alone could cut the difficult knot. The premier-syndic,
-Nicholas du Crest, and councillor Roy started for Berne to pray the
-senate not to support the Reform; while the evangelicals, on the other
-hand, desired that it should be allowed to develope itself freely. Many
-had a fervour of mind, a sincere hunger and thirst for righteousness;
-their souls sought after eternal salvation; and they were as ambitious
-of heavenly truth as conquerors are of glory and empire. The clergy, by
-depriving them of their ministers, had reduced them to simple attempts
-at mutual edification; but they desired the full preaching of the
-Gospel, without which the Church pines away. 'We are suffering from
-want,' they said; 'we are deprived of our rights. A bold monk is
-perpetually shouting that he is prepared to confound all the ministers
-that Berne is willing to send us.... Well then, let us ask Berne for
-ministers whose learning and eloquence may reduce these insolent and
-prating Dominicans to silence.'
-
-[Sidenote: EMBASSY TO BERNE.]
-
-The journey of Syndic du Crest disquieted Maisonneuve. Who can tell but
-the respect due to the chief magistrate of the republic may induce the
-powerful canton of Berne to take a false step?... He will endeavour to
-prevent so great a misfortune. He communicated his intentions to the
-faithful Salomon, who being full of confidence in his friend, departed
-with him immediately on this perilous journey.[705]
-
-Du Crest and Councillor Roy, arriving at Berne on the 6th April, fancied
-one day they saw Maisonneuve and Salomon in the street. They stopped in
-surprise, eyed them both from head to foot, and looked as if
-petrified.... It was really the two huguenots. The premier-syndic was
-exasperated, and going up to them, asked rudely, 'What are you doing
-here?' 'We are told that you have instructions to speak against us,'
-answered Maisonneuve: 'we are here to defend ourselves.' The next day,
-when the two magistrates went to the council, they were still more
-surprised to find the two reformed leaders in the outer hall. They hoped
-at least to enter the council-room alone; but no! the door was hardly
-open when the two huguenots went forward unceremoniously with the two
-magistrates, and sat down quietly at their left. Was there then a second
-power in Geneva, which also sent its ambassadors?
-
-Maisonneuve was in reality an ambassador; his heart burnt for a great
-cause—that of the Gospel and of the new times. The truth which he
-represented filled him with courage: he rose first, even before the
-Genevan magistrate had spoken, and said with holy boldness: 'Most
-honoured lords, we and a great number of our fellow-citizens desire the
-pure Word of God to be preached in Geneva. The voice of the Gospel, so
-little heard in times of yore, is now resounding throughout Christendom,
-and we do not wish to give up hearing it. Neither banishment nor threats
-can reduce us to carelessness and inactivity.' And then without fearing
-the premier-syndic, who was listening, he continued: 'My lords, do you
-know to what extremity we are reduced? Our magistrates are making war
-upon us, and trying to drive from Geneva that Gospel which you have
-established in Berne. After the visit we paid you recently, they
-summoned us before them.... And this Nicholas du Crest here present has
-trampled our liberties under foot and spoken to us as if we were
-thieves.... Instead of answering your letters they went from house to
-house exhorting their partisans to take up arms. They rang the tocsin;
-gathered together the canons, priests, and common people; and contrived
-a wicked and bloody conspiracy.... And why, my lords? We must (they
-said) cut off the heads of those who went to Berne.... Behold, most
-honoured lords, the value they attach to your citizenship!... O
-liberties of Geneva! O alliance of the League! O justice of the laws!...
-Everything is trodden under foot by priests determined to leave us for
-our inheritance nothing but slavery and superstition, tears, sighs, and
-groans.... A remedy must be applied, and you alone can do it, most
-honoured lords. A fanatical monk, who preaches against pure religion,
-has offered to enter the lists against every minister of the Gospel you
-may send us.... Do what he asks.... Grant to us and our brethren one of
-your preachers. Obtain for him a public place where he may freely
-declare the Word of God. Let him combat with this dominican in a
-properly regulated discussion, and thus ensure the triumph of the
-Gospel.'
-
-Maisonneuve knew the risk he incurred by speaking with so much
-frankness, and he therefore added: 'Perhaps you will also see that this
-just request does not prevent our returning home and living there in
-peace.'[706]
-
-[Sidenote: THE ENVOY'S DISCOMFITURE.]
-
-The syndic and the Genevan councillor, who had not expected such a
-speech, were embarrassed. Having come as accusers, they found themselves
-accused. The angry looks of the Bernese councillors disturbed the
-magistrate of Geneva still more than the words of the protestant
-ambassador. The avoyer, turning to the syndic, asked him whether he had
-any answer to make. 'We have no orders on the subject, and, therefore,
-have nothing to say,' was his reply. 'Well then,' said the lords of
-Berne, 'we will send a deputation to Geneva shortly, to see what is
-going on there with regard to religion.'[707]
-
-The council rose. It seemed as if a favourable wind was about to blow on
-the evangelical ship. But a storm was preparing, which might perhaps
-dash it to pieces.
-
-[690] Choupard MS. _Vie de Farel._
-
-[691] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 57.
-
-[692] Roset MS. _Chron._
-
-[693] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 55.—Council Registers, 28th
-March 1533.—Roset MS. _Chron._ liv. ii. ch. 10.
-
-[694] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 56.—Council
-Registers of 28th and 29th March.—Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 56.
-
-[695] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 56.
-
-[696] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, pp. 55-56.
-
-[697] Council Registers, 29th March.
-
-[698] Council Registers for the 30th March.—La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le
-Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 59.—Gautier MS.
-
-[699] Gautier MS. Extracted from the petition presented to Berne by
-Maisonneuve and Salomon.
-
-[700] Council Registers from 2nd to 11th April.—Gautier MS.—Spon,
-_Hist. Eccl._ pp. 490-492.
-
-[701] La Sœur J. de Jussieu, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 61.
-
-[702] Ibid. p. 60.
-
-[703] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, p. 60.
-
-[704] Ibid. p. 61.
-
-[705] Council Registers of the 2nd and 11th April. Gautier MS.—Spon,
-_Hist. Eccles._ I. pp. 490-492.
-
-[706] Requête de ceux de Genève.—Council Registers of 11th April,
-1583.—Gautier MS.—Spon, _Hist. Eccles._, p. 491.
-
-[707] Requête de ceux de Genève.—Council Registers of 11th April,
-1533.—Gautier MS.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
- SECOND ATTACK, IN WHICH THE LEADER PERISHES.
- (MAY 4, 1533.)
-
-
-The Reformation of Geneva numbered in its ranks the friends, not only of
-evangelical truth, but of political liberty. There was both good and
-evil in this. The vigorous hand of the huguenots may possibly have been
-necessary to restrain the intrepid mamelukes; but it was to be regretted
-that the arms of the flesh shone beside those of the spirit. If
-reasoning by syllogism is bad in religious subjects, reasoning by the
-pike is worse still. Some partisans of the Reform gave a new version of
-the _Compel them to come in_ of the Romish Church, by practising a
-little of the _Compel them to go out_. Both of them need a little
-indulgence. The human mind having been kept in darkness for ten
-centuries, required a lengthened education before it could understand
-that it is unholy to employ in religion any other weapons than those of
-free conviction.
-
-[Sidenote: WAR OF THE TONGUE.]
-
-There was another kind of hostility, pretty frequent in those times, and
-more conformable to the manner of our days than swords and guns—the use
-of ridicule. The Genevans of both schools usually began with legitimate
-discussions, the catholics alleging the infallibility of the pope, and
-the reformed opposing them with that of the Word of God. They debated on
-this subject in the streets and in the convents, around the fire and
-even in the council. But they often passed from discussion to ridicule.
-One day, when the priests were walking in procession and singing aloud
-the prayers for the conversion of heretics, some huguenots, standing at
-the corner of a street, fancying a resemblance between their harsh
-chants and the voice of a certain thick-skinned animal, said laughingly
-to one another: 'Give some thistles to those noisy braying donkeys.'
-'Alas!' exclaimed the nuns in their cloister, 'they make so many jests
-that you could not write them down in a year!' It is Sister Jeanne who
-records this fact, but her narrative is so full of fables that we cannot
-guarantee its authenticity.[708]
-
-Most of the priests were stronger in arm than in mind, and preferred a
-fight with swords to one with words. That devout canon and valiant
-knight Messire Pierre Wernli was bursting with rage. He harangued in the
-convents, in private houses, and even in the streets; he wished to fight
-and prove, halberd in hand, that supreme respect was due to the papacy.
-He held frequent conferences with the heads of the party, both lay and
-ecclesiastic, at Percival de Pesmes', at M. de Thorens', or at the
-vicar-episcopal's. All kept their eyes and ears open, determined to take
-advantage of the first opportunity to secure the triumph of their cause.
-They thought the time for action had come at last.
-
-It was now the beginning of May, the date of the fair at Lyons, at that
-time much frequented by the Genevans. Some of the principal huguenots
-hesitated, however, to go there. It seemed difficult for them to leave
-Geneva just at that moment, for all the indications of a storm were
-visible in the sky. They believed, however, they should have time to
-make the little journey before the crisis arrived. Some of the more
-daring among them posted up bills with the words: 'Let us go to the fair
-before the war and deliverance of Geneva.' They departed, and in certain
-secret meetings it was said that the huguenots who remained behind ought
-to be killed, and the gates shut against those who were away: thus the
-religion of Geneva would be saved. But in the opinion of others, it was
-proper that the pomps of religious worship should form a prelude to
-these combats of the faith.
-
-[Sidenote: HIGH MASS.]
-
-Sunday, the 4th of May, was the feast of the Holy Windingsheet. The
-linen cloth, in which the body of Jesus Christ was buried, and on which
-(it was said) the print of his face had remained, was exhibited that day
-in Geneva, and on other days in ten or twelve different cities which all
-pretended to possess it. At the moment when the Reform was endeavouring
-to restore Christ's true image to the Church, such as it is found in
-Holy Scripture, the most ardent partisans of catholicism were found
-exhibiting on a sheet the features, which sixteen centuries, as they
-alleged, had not been able to efface. To give more importance to the
-feast, the vicar-general entrusted the service to Pierre Wernli, who was
-looked upon as one of the most important of the canons, and was at the
-head of the most bellicose. The congregation was large. Great fervour,
-internal emotion, and ardent prayers rendered the service that day more
-than usually solemn. Wernli, who had put on his finest sacerdotal robes,
-presided over the ceremony with religious enthusiasm and swelling pride.
-He was fanatical but sincere. His motto was: 'Everything for the honour
-of God and holy Church.' Convinced of the efficacy of the sacrifice of
-the mass, he repeated the _introit_, chanted the offertory, consecrated
-the host, and went through the elevation. The sympathetic accents that
-rose from his heart resounded through the arches of the cathedral. 'What
-a fine voice!' said some; 'what a fine man! There is not such another
-officiater in the world, and we have not seen so fine a service in
-Geneva for these ten years!'[709] After the mass of the Holy
-Windingsheet, the catholics could not doubt of the approaching triumph
-of the Church.
-
-A new contest was about to begin. We do not forget the small extent of
-the field of battle. We are not describing the destinies of the empire
-of the Persians or the Romans, of the Russians or the Germans; but those
-of a little city, surrounded by a narrow territory. Here, everything is
-on a small scale; yet the combat of which we are about to speak led to
-the return of the prince-bishop; and if the plans formed between that
-ecclesiastical prince, the duke of Savoy, and the emperor himself had
-been carried into execution at that moment, as everything seemed to
-forebode, liberty and the Reformation would have perished in Geneva.
-Would that loss have produced no effect? Are we mistaken in thinking
-that the great battle which was to last during all the 16th century—a
-battle which the Gospel and liberty fought against Rome, Jesuitism, and
-the Inquisition, and which is undoubtedly the most important of modern
-times—might not have had the same issue, if this little city, so full of
-living faith and heroic courage, had not fought in the ranks, and
-imparted to protestantism the vigour necessary to conquer formidable
-enemies? When they hear of these petty struggles, many of the friends of
-liberty and the Gospel perhaps may say: 'Let us not despise such little
-things. It is we whom the narrative concerns. These people were the
-first to fight for the precious gifts which we now enjoy in peace.'
-
-Wernli did not intend to remain satisfied with a mass: he believed a
-fight was necessary. He had hardly laid aside his robes, his cross, and
-stole, when he thought of donning his armour: this was part of his
-piety. He had no trouble in persuading his brethren, for the priests
-were more zealous than the laymen in these disturbances.[710] The first
-battle having proved a failure, they prepared for a second. In the
-Reformation of Geneva facts play as important a part as ideas. The great
-questions of rights, liberty, and truth were not elaborated simply in
-the studies of a few lawyers or divines, but were discussed around the
-hearths of burghers, at the meetings of evangelicals, and in the general
-council of the citizens, and were decided in the streets in the midst of
-formidable struggles. Ideas became acts; doctrines gave birth to events;
-theories set men's hearts beating, armed their hands, and produced great
-deliverances. There may have been some evil in this mighty activity, but
-it was an unavoidable evil.
-
-On the afternoon of the festival, Wernli and a great number of other
-ecclesiastics met in council at the vicar-episcopal's. They bitterly
-regretted that the good-nature of the Friburgers and the weakness of the
-syndics had caused the failure of their plot. They had lost the game,
-and must begin again. A project adjourned needs not on that account be
-given up. The catholics should take advantage of the time when the
-absence of the principal huguenots would make the victory easy.
-
-[Sidenote: A HOLIDAY EVENING.]
-
-During this discussion a few citizens of both parties were promenading
-near the Rhone, apparently thinking only of taking a little recreation.
-It was the evening of a holiday, and the setting sun poured its rays in
-floods of flame upon the lake. The west was on fire, the water reflected
-the image of the sky, and flashed with bright and flickering colours.
-But the citizens thought little at this moment of the beauties of
-nature. However great the apparent calm without, their souls were
-agitated by fierce passions. By degrees they entered into conversation;
-they spoke of religion, as was their custom; they debated with warmth,
-then they began to dispute and to abuse each other, and finally hands
-were raised and blows were struck.
-
-The sun set; the brightness died away, all grew pale round the city, and
-daylight was fading into darkness. The hour, so favourable for walking,
-had attracted many abroad; the noise drew still more. Huguenots and
-mamelukes, catholics and reformed, hurried to the Molard. 'What is the
-matter?' they asked. The parties were already forming into two distinct
-groups. Every one as he arrived joined his friends; they arranged
-themselves in order, they soon counted their numbers, and two bands drew
-up face to face. Some of the more impetuous went in front and excited
-the crowd. The gaoler of the episcopal prisons and his brother, both
-great brawlers, who handled the dagger cleverly, 'very riotous men'
-(says a manuscript) thorough bravoes of the 16th century, were among the
-most violent. Monks and priests of the lower rank mingled with the
-people in the square, while their superiors were in consultation at the
-vicar-episcopal's. They excited the crowd, and complained loudly that
-the Friburgers had hindered them on the 28th March from destroying the
-heretics, which, they held, would have been a necessary severity.
-
-Meanwhile the two parties, though already face to face, apparently did
-not think of coming to blows. One Pinet, sent by the clergy 'to apply
-the match, began to work upon the people.' He glided from group to
-group, and strove to inflame the minds of the catholics. 'Who will fight
-along with me on behalf of his religion?' he said. Then turning towards
-the huguenots, he challenged them, shouting out, with an oath: 'Your
-creed is a rascally one, you Lutherans! If there is a man among you
-willing to maintain the contrary, let him come here and fight.'[711]
-This challenge was repeated several times, but the reformed feared a
-disturbance. 'Peace has been made,' said they, 'do not break it.' Some
-of them added: 'Be on your guard, Pinet is a sad scamp.' Nobody would
-'take the bait.' One huguenot, however, the impatient Ami Perrin, could
-not contain himself; provoked by the priests' agent, he rushed upon him
-and nearly killed him. Both huguenots and catholics ran between them to
-separate them. Peace was restored or at least seemed to be; but a spark
-had been struck out, and the fire was about to be kindled.[712]
-
-[Sidenote: MARIN DE VERSONAY.]
-
-A young Catholic, Marin de Versonay, agitated by the scene which he had
-just witnessed, left the square and hurried up the Rue du Perron.
-Versonay was a man of narrow mind but ardent imagination, and
-fanatically attached to the Romish Church, which he looked upon as the
-sole and exclusive source of holiness and everlasting happiness.
-Moreover he had an unbounded affection for his cousin Percival de
-Pesmes, and the profoundest respect for the sovereignty of the bishop.
-His ancestors had conferred great services upon Geneva. In 1476 his
-grandfather Aymon, councillor to the bishop John Louis of Savoy, had
-lent his plate to the city to quiet the Swiss, who threatened it with
-pillage. The young nobleman wished to do for Geneva more than his
-grandfather had done—he wished to destroy heresy. His wife, with whom
-the priests were great friends, urged him on night and day.[713]
-
-The members of the episcopal council, the canons and principal priests,
-were all armed and waiting at Messire de Bonmont's house the issue of
-this skirmish. At every noise they pricked up their ears, fancying they
-heard the footsteps of a messenger; but none appeared, and everything
-seemed to betoken that peace would not be disturbed. Pinet had withdrawn
-in confusion, and Perrin, notwithstanding his natural impetuosity, knew
-very well that the reformed did not wish to take the initiative and
-break the public peace. Tranquillity was restored. A few citizens of
-both parties still remained in the Molard, but many of the catholics and
-huguenots had left, and to seal their concord had gone to drink
-together, saying that they intended to remain friends. The match had
-gone out.[714]
-
-Young de Versonay and the impetuous canon were going to rekindle it. The
-former, whose imagination had been excited, directed his steps to De
-Bonmont's house. He knocked violently at the gate and shouted aloud:
-'Help! help! they are killing all good christians!' At the sound of
-these imprudent words the canons and priests caught fire; some remained
-doubtful and motionless, but Pierre Wernli, 'that good knight,'
-immediately sprang to his feet. The service he had celebrated in the
-cathedral was hardly over, when he had thought of another, and said to
-himself that this very day the Reformation must be buried in a
-winding-sheet from which it should never rise again. Accordingly, after
-taking off his sacerdotal robes, he had put on his breastplate and
-cuishes, belted his sword to his side, seized his heavy halberd, and
-thus armed,[715] had gone to the vicar-episcopal's. Immediately Wernli
-heard Versonay's voice, he thought the hour was come. Standing in the
-midst of the priests, and grasping his weapon, he invited his colleagues
-by a glance to follow him. Many hesitated, and then, 'burning with love
-of God,' says one of his greatest admirers, 'this good champion of the
-faith, seeing that nobody got ready for the fight, lost patience, would
-not wait for the other churchmen, and went out first with fiery
-courage.'[716] The die was cast; the battle was about to begin, for no
-one was able to stop the impetuous canon.
-
-[Sidenote: THE TOCSIN SOUNDS.]
-
-However, three other priests, less notable but quite as violent—Bertholet,
-Manillier, and Servant—ran to St. Pierre's and ordered the ringers to
-sound the tocsin loudly and hurriedly. These men, themselves alarmed at
-what was told them about the riot, rang immediately, 'to the great
-terror of Christians,' says sister Jeanne. Over all the city swelled the
-majestic voice of _Clemence_, an ancient bell, well known at Geneva,
-which bears this inscription on the rim:
-
- EGO VOCOR CLEMENTIA.
- AVE MARIA, GRATIA PLENA.
- PLEBEM VOCO, CONVOCO CLERUM,
- VOX MEA CUNCTORUM
- FIT TERROR DEMONIORUM.
-
-In truth Clemence at this moment 'was calling the people and
-convoking the clergy,' and as for the 'demons, whom her voice was to
-affright,' ... they were the reformed—at least in the eyes of the
-priests. The huguenots who remained in the Molard, thought that the
-papists meditated returning to the attack and killing them in their
-houses. The darkness increased the agitation caused by the dismal sounds
-from the belfry. 'What is the matter?' said the citizens. 'The heretics
-are assembling in the principal square to plunder the churches,'
-answered some of the catholics. 'Let us rally on the other side, in
-front of the stalls,' was the reply. Some said truly that it was a false
-alarm; that the huguenots had gone to the river bank simply for a walk,
-as is everywhere customary on a Sunday evening, and that they were
-already returning home; but the more violent would listen to nothing;
-they hurried from all quarters, summoned by the tocsin, and displayed
-their banners. On the side of the stalls they shouted with all their
-might: 'Rally here, all Christians, and be of good heart in defence of
-holy faith.' And great was the tumult among them. It was quite pitiful
-to hear their cries in the streets.[717] The other churchmen, who at the
-first moment had hesitated to follow the canon, took courage, and
-leaving the vicar's house, descended to the Molard.
-
-In the priests' eyes it was a decisive moment. A great number of them,
-no doubt, thought only of their personal interests, but many believed
-that the issue of the struggle was a question of life or death for
-catholicism in Geneva. They shuddered when they saw those whom they
-termed unnatural children, turning away from the bosom of their mother's
-breast—the papacy. 'These curious and rebellious minds,' they said,
-'imagine that they will overthrow the Church ... but the gates of hell
-shall not prevail against it.... O bride of Christ! thou who procurest
-for us the chaste and everlasting embraces (_castos æternosque
-amplexus_) of the divine Spouse, we are thine for ever!'
-
-[Sidenote: WERNLI'S APPEAL.]
-
-Wernli had made up his mind to give his life, if necessary, for the
-cause of Rome. This was not with him the hasty resolution of a moment.
-Seeing the progress of the Reformation, he had vowed to sacrifice
-everything for its destruction, and it was with this intention he now
-descended from the neighbourhood of St. Pierre's to the Molard. It was
-necessary to accomplish on the 4th May what the 28th March had been
-unable to do. 'Wernli desired to be the first,' says Froment, 'to
-support as a man of war the holy mother Church.' He was both the hero
-and the victim of this important day. Vainly did the people shout to him
-on every side that 'Peace was made;' ... he would hear nothing. 'He was
-the most obstinate and the maddest of the priests.'[718] Full of venom
-and devotion for the cause of popery, he exclaimed: 'Ho! all good
-christians to my aid.' Many laymen and clerks joined him, and they
-proceeded hurriedly towards the square. 'The canons and other churchmen
-were the first under the flag,' says Sister Jeanne. In a short time
-fifteen hundred men, 'many of them priests,' were assembled.[719]
-
-During this time, other ecclesiastics were gathering in arms in the
-court of St. Pierre, so as to stop the huguenots who might desire to go
-to the scene of the tumult. Three reformers, coming from the Bourg du
-Four, soon arrived with hasty steps in front of the cathedral. The
-sacerdotal corps immediately barred the way, and the priests began to
-attack them. One of them was 'unfortunate enough to receive
-_twenty-eight_ wounds at their hands, and fell to the ground.' As for
-the other two, 'the dogs took flight,' says the bulletin of St.
-Claire.[720]
-
-[Sidenote: WERNLI HEADS THE FIGHT.]
-
-At this moment Wernli and his followers reached the Molard. The night
-was dark, the stars above gave a faint light; men appeared like shadows,
-and it was hard to distinguish friends from foes. Obscure and confused
-noises, inarticulate sounds, marks of approbation or of anger, issued
-from the darkness. It was like the hoarse roaring of the sea before the
-storm bursts forth. For a few seconds there was a dead silence, then on
-a sudden loud shouting. When the canon arrived, armed from head to foot,
-he heard the cries of the reformers, and, stirred with anger, he
-flourished his halberd, and pointing it in their direction, shouted out
-in his Friburg patois: 'Dear God! where are these Lutherans who speak
-ill of our law?... God's blood! where are they?'[721] With a coarse
-oath, he turned round to his followers, and said, 'Courage, good
-christians! do not spare those rascals.' One might fancy him the giant
-Goliath, who, with a helmet of brass upon his head, and armed with a
-coat of mail, came forth, spear in hand, to defy the army of
-Israel.[722]
-
-The warlike canon had hardly given the signal when the combat began. It
-was a fine spring night, everything was pale and grey; it was, as we
-have said, easy to make mistakes; the silence and obscurity imparted a
-certain solemnity to the struggle. The shadows moving about the Molard
-became agitated; they rushed upon each other, and dealt frequent blows
-in the darkness. One shadow ran after another, but on both sides they
-fought desperately and at close quarters. From time to time there was a
-brief gleam; sword met sword, and flashed fire. The violent Perrin and
-the zealous Claude Bernard were at the head of the huguenots, and struck
-stoutly. Among the catholics, John Rosetti and Canon Viole were those
-who rushed with greatest fury upon their adversaries. All four fell
-wounded on the spot. Others besides them were hit, and their blood
-flowed; but they were not noticed, and the combatants trampled the
-wounded under foot, until their friends, recognising them, carried them
-to some neighbouring house. A blow more famous than all was about to be
-struck; a victim more notable was about to bite the dust.
-
-Wernli, who had remained at the top of the square, unable to see his
-enemies, was challenging them with all the strength of his lungs. 'Where
-are they?' he kept on shouting and swearing; 'Where are these Lutherans
-who speak ill of our law?' Some huguenots who were not in the square,
-but in the Rue de la Croix d'Or (all the adjoining streets were full of
-catholics and reformers), answered him, 'They are here.' The canon, who
-could not see, but who could hear, rushed halberd in hand in the
-direction whence the reply came. He reached his enemies, striking them
-with the head and the butt of his weapon, which he handled as easily as
-his breviary. By killing Lutherans he hoped to kill Lutheranism itself.
-
-The huguenots whom he had attacked did not remain idle, but parried the
-priest's blows with their naked swords. At last one of them, whom the
-long and pointed blade provoked, sprang forward, caught hold of the
-halberd, broke it in two and flung the pieces away. The hero of the
-clergy, finding himself deprived of his favourite weapon, lost not a
-moment; he drew his two-handed sword and rushed upon his adversaries,
-cutting and thrusting like a Switzer of Grandson. The huguenots, finding
-themselves so vigorously attacked, no longer stood upon the defensive;
-they fell upon the champion of the papacy. 'They charged him,' says
-Sister Jeanne, who adds, 'but he defended himself valiantly.' His
-breastplate protected his body from the neck to the waist, so that all
-the blows aimed at him glanced off, 'so completely and cunningly was he
-armed.'[723] At last a man named Pierre l'Hoste, as is believed, a poor
-carman, impatient at the long struggle, looking upon Wernli as a soldier
-and not a priest, approached him, and, moving round him in search of the
-weak point in his armour, plunged his sword into his body. The canon
-staggered and fell. 'Thus was the blasphemer killed, and he lay in the
-square without moving hand or foot.'[724] The struggle occurred in front
-of the house of Councillor Chautemps, one of the most zealous of the
-evangelicals. Wernli fell on the steps. _They that take the sword shall
-perish with the sword._[725] Some priests who were near, seeing their
-captain fall, fled each to his convent or to the cloister of St.
-Pierre.[726]
-
-[Sidenote: DEATH OF THE CANON.]
-
-The death of the general did not, however, put an end to the fight.
-Priests with their partisans, and huguenots, were still exchanging blows
-when the syndic of the guard, the head of the military department,
-arrived. He raised his official bâton and ordered the citizens to return
-to their houses. De Chapeaurouge, commander of the cavalry, zealously
-assisted him. 'Stop!' they both exclaimed. All their calling was
-useless, so great was the popular emotion, and so inflamed was their
-courage, says the chronicle. The syndic, advancing into the midst of the
-combatants, conjured them to separate; but he received a blow on the
-head from the hands of a priest.[727] What the canon's death had not
-been able to do, the magistrate's wound accomplished. This incident put
-an end to the contest. The reformed, full of respect for the syndic,
-sheathed their swords and withdrew to their homes.
-
-Some priests, however, with a few of their partisans, refused to obey.
-They were unwilling to fail this time, and did not intend that their
-project should come to nothing. They were determined to bury the Reform.
-Exasperated bands paraded the streets, challenging and insulting the
-huguenots, who refused to chastise the braggart priests. Even this
-forbearance did not appease the fanatics; they continued their
-provocations until daybreak. 'All night the christians were under arms,'
-says Sister Jeanne, 'seeking those wicked dogs; but it was of no good,
-for they were all hidden!'[728] When daylight began to appear, the
-clergy and their allies, fatigued with the tumultuous night, went off to
-bed, and thus ended their second attack. Now they will try to obtain by
-intrigue and terror, what arms have failed to procure them.
-
-[708] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 62.
-
-[709] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, p. 63.
-
-[710] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 55.—Gautier MS.
-
-[711] Froment, _Gestes_, p. 57.
-
-[712] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 57.—La Sœur J. de Jussie,
-_Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 61.
-
-[713] Contemporary MS.—Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 58.
-
-[714] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 57.—La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le
-Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 61.—Galiffe, _Notices généalogiques_, I. p. 48.
-
-[715] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, &c. p. 62.
-
-[716] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, pp. 61-62.
-
-[717] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, pp. 67-68.
-
-[718] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 58.
-
-[719] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p.
-61.—Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, pp. 57-58.
-
-[720] 'Ces chiens prirent la fuite.'—_Le Levain du Calvinisme_,
-p. 63. Gautier MS. Council Registers of May 11.
-
-[721] 'Char Dey, o sont tey ces toux Luthérians..... Sang Dey, o son
-tey?'—Choupard MS. Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 58.
-
-[722] 1 Samuel xvii.
-
-[723] La Sœur J. de Jussie, p. 63.
-
-[724] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 59.
-
-[725] St. Matthew xxvi. 52.
-
-[726] Choupard MS.—Roset MS. _Chron._ liv. ii. ch. xvi.
-
-[727] Choupard MS.—Roset MS.—_Chron._ liv. ii. ch. xvi.
-
-[728] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p.
-63.—Council Registers of the 4th and 23rd May.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
- THE CANON'S DEATH MADE A WEAPON AGAINST THE REFORM.
- (MAY TO JULY 1533.)
-
-
-Wernli's death was to be fruitful in serious consequences. The priests
-were about to show what the violent death of an ecclesiastic might mean,
-and the terrible consequences it carries with it. To sacrifice the
-liberties of Geneva and the evangelical Reformation on his tomb, was, in
-their opinion, the only offering that could appease heaven.
-
-Next morning at sunrise, a few citizens left their houses and proceeded
-towards the field of battle. They perceived a man, dressed like a
-warrior, lying on the steps of a house; a great sword lay a few
-paces off. They approached, stooped down and touched him ... he was stark
-dead ... it was the canon, Messire Pierre Wernli. His body had lain all
-night in the street, unobserved by every one. As Councillor Chautemps, a
-peaceable man, had remained indoors, the body had not been perceived.
-The cuirass bore the marks of the blows received by the champion of the
-priests. His garments were bloody and his features still wore a fierce
-look. Those who gazed upon him were moved. A canon, a chief of the
-Church, he who the day before had officiated with so much state at St.
-Pierre's, surrounded by all the pomps of the service, had been struck
-down by the huguenots ... and there he lay dead. Some ran off to spread
-the news: 'Messire Pierre lies bathed in blood near the Molard.' Canons
-and priests, monks and mamelukes, and even the huguenots, ran out and
-surrounded the dead body. 'All the city was troubled when they found the
-corpse.'[729] The devout knelt down, and striking their breasts,
-exclaimed with tears: 'O blessed martyr, sacrificed to God!' According
-to some good catholics, he took his place in the ranks of the confessors
-who, like Thomas à Becket, had been put to death for honouring the holy
-Roman Church. This species of canonisation disgusted the huguenots:
-'What!' they said, 'a priest fights with the halberd and sheds the blood
-of citizens—he turns soldier, and you make him a saint! Rather recognise
-in his death the just judgment of God.'[730] At that moment, there came
-up a woman of mean appearance, who fell shrieking on the body. She
-pressed it in her arms, with many sighs and groans. She was the canon's
-housekeeper, they said; but the manuscript which records this incident
-gives her a more significant name.[731]
-
-This death was a great event, and the members of the council felt the
-liveliest apprehensions. Wernli was not only a canon, but a Friburger,
-and belonged to a powerful family. What would not be the wrath of his
-fellow-citizens! 'Had we known of this murder last evening,' said the
-mamelukes, 'the sword would have taken vengeance on Messire Pierre's
-assassins, and the night would have been a night of terror and death.'
-Their rage would have been so great that they would have entered every
-house and made a general massacre. But the abler men of the party made
-less noise, and thought of the advantage they might derive from the
-catastrophe. The most extreme measures now became legitimate, and the
-canon's death was to result in the triumph of the pope. Even now, a few
-catholics assembling round the corpse, traded upon the scene, and
-uncovering Wernli's wounds, pointed them out to the people, and thus
-sought to arouse their anger. Others succeeded in preventing the gates
-from being opened, lest the huguenots who had crossed swords with the
-canon should escape. When the reformed learnt that the city was closed,
-although it was broad daylight, they asked if it was intended to murder
-them, and some immediately armed themselves and went to Baudichon de la
-Maisonneuve's house.[732]
-
-[Sidenote: BURYING THE DEAD.]
-
-About nine o'clock the body was lifted up and carried into Chautemp's
-house, where it was placed decently on a bed. The cuirass was taken off,
-the stains of blood washed away; it was arrayed in the priest's
-canonical robes, and the devout folks knelt around it. Every moment
-other catholics, men and women, took the places of those who left. The
-same day, at five in the afternoon, an immense procession descended from
-St. Pierre's to do honour to this 'blessed martyr.' The priests placed
-the canon on a showy bier, and when they came out of the house, 'the
-people uttered a loud cry.'[733] Some of the reformed joined in the
-funeral train; all enmity (they thought) should perish in the presence
-of the dead. The body was taken into the cathedral, and buried at the
-foot of the great crucifix. The council, wishing to hold the balance
-even, imprisoned a few men who passed for the most violent of both
-parties.[734]
-
-[Sidenote: WERNLI'S RELATIONS ARRIVE.]
-
-Five days later, a herald from Friburg and many of Wernli's relatives
-appeared in deep mourning, and demanded that the body should be given up
-to them; they also called for signal reparation. At five o'clock the
-same day, the body was exhumed in the presence of an immense crowd, and,
-wonder unheard-of! the canon stood upright, and the blood flowed from
-his wound as fresh as if he had been alive. 'Of a truth,' said those in
-the cathedral, 'this is a miracle, a testimony borne to the holy Roman
-faith, for the maintenance of which his body was mangled. His blood
-cries for revenge.'[735]
-
-But the reformed said that popery is full of such cheats (_piperies_)
-and idle dreams, opposed to common sense, by means of which impostors
-deceive the simple. They believed that when the Son of God became man,
-many signs of divine power had accompanied that great miracle; and that
-if the sun acts upon the earth, and transforms a poor grain of wheat
-into a magnificent ear of corn, it is very reasonable to admit that he
-who created the sun exercises his sovereign action here whenever he
-wills it, and effects transformations still more marvellous; but they
-would not suffer the tricks of men to be placed in the same rank with
-the interventions of the supreme power of the Creator. The miracle
-having been confirmed by _eight hundred witnesses_, says Sister Jeanne,
-the body was laid in a coffin and carried to the lake, all the priests
-singing, while the women and some of the devout made the air re-echo
-with their cries and groans. The coffin was placed in a boat and taken
-to Friburg.[736]
-
-[Sidenote: THE REFORM MUST BE CRUSHED.]
-
-The priests thought the moment had now come for getting rid of the
-evangelicals for ever. At first, the reform had been a mere thread of
-water, but the thread had suddenly increased, and become like an Alpine
-torrent, which, if it were not checked, would overthrow the altars and
-sweep away crosses, images and holy water, priests and prelates. Had not
-an illustrious canon been attacked and carried away by this devastating
-flood? 'Now,' said the priests, 'must be accomplished what our Lord told
-the apostles: He that hath no sword, let him sell his garment and buy
-one. If we do not crush these accursed Lutherans now, they will never
-cease to trouble the churches, to plunder, beat and kill.... Let us sell
-everything, even our wallets, to procure spears and swords.'[737] They
-set the example; they never went out except well supplied with arms
-under their frocks. The sisters of St. Claire and all the devout women
-of Geneva exclaimed with delight on seeing the clergy so resolved: 'Ah,
-if the clerks were not so stout-hearted, these ravening wolves would
-exterminate us.'[738] But the more reasonable of the men saw that the
-clubs of the priests would not suffice alone. 'The hour is come,' said
-they at Geneva and Friburg, at Chambery, and wherever Rome had faithful
-followers; 'the bishop must return to Geneva, and resume his former
-authority.' A deputation started from Friburg for Arbois to entreat
-Pierre de la Baume to return to his episcopal city.
-
-[Sidenote: THE BISHOP AT ARBOIS.]
-
-Since the death of Besançon Hugues, the bishop had taken no steps to
-recover his power. Wounded by what had occurred in his principality, he
-kept his vexation to himself, made up his mind to remain quiet, and
-sought consolation at Arbois in good living. 'I have received your
-capons,' he wrote, 'send me some fish. I have been enjoying myself, and
-am much better supplied with provisions here than at Geneva.' He was at
-heart neither wicked nor cruel; he had taste, education, and talent, and
-his conversation abounded in wit. But he had two passions—the table and
-money, besides a weak and selfish temper which made him incline one time
-to the duke, another to Geneva, and appear servile or tyrannical
-according as he hoped to obtain anything by baseness or by despotism.
-The Genevans, and particularly the huguenots, knew him well. 'He wants
-to ride _one_ and lead the _other_,' said Robert Vandel, 'and does
-nothing except for his own advantage.'
-
-When the Friburgers arrived at Arbois, they drew him from his stupid
-tranquillity, disturbed his feasting, and firmly represented to him that
-they wanted to know whether he desired to maintain catholicism in
-Geneva, or to let it perish. They even attacked him with personal
-arguments, which they knew must have great force for him. 'Return to
-your city, my lord,' they said, 'to recover your lost authority, and
-protect your threatened rents.' But La Baume was too timid, and would
-willingly have lived anywhere except in his own diocese and
-principality. He defended his absenteeism in a singular manner. 'Many of
-these heretics have uttered great threats against me,' he said; 'they
-will kill me like poor Wernli.'[739] A mightier voice than that of
-Friburg now made itself heard.
-
-The condition of Geneva was known in all catholic countries. Men were
-uneasy everywhere; even Pope Clement VII. felt anxious. He did not
-admire those ecclesiastics who, following the example of Leo X.,
-neglected business for pleasure. In some places the catholics imagined
-that if the Reform were crushed in Geneva, the recoil would act on the
-Reformation in general; that the other protestant nations would feel its
-effects, and that such a defeat would be the beginning of the end.
-Representations to this effect reached the pope from every side, and he,
-being a skilful politician and having the saving of the Roman court at
-heart, wrote to the bishop: 'I command you to proceed to Geneva
-immediately you receive this bull, under pain of excommunication. Is it
-not singular that you pass your life in a foreign province as if you
-were not the pastor of that city? You, by your absence, are the cause of
-all the misfortunes with which it is afflicted.... Go, speak, act ...
-defend the flock which Jesus Christ and the holy see have entrusted to
-you, and rescue your sheep from the ravening wolf that is preparing to
-devour them.'[740]
-
-The poor bishop, when he read the bull, was seized with the most violent
-emotion. He saw himself between two dangers almost equally great: the
-pope who threatened him with excommunication, and the huguenots who
-threatened him with death. What was to be done? He was urged on both
-sides. At last he formed an heroic decision and determined to obey the
-pope. He will leave Arbois and the pleasant life he had led there, with
-all its earthly advantages, and go to that terrible city which appears
-to him inhabited by wild beasts thirsting for his blood. 'Only you must
-obtain a safe-conduct for me from Messieurs of Geneva,' he said to the
-Friburg ambassadors, who were greatly surprised at having to ask a
-safe-conduct for a prince who desired to visit his principality, for a
-bishop who desired to enter his diocese. However, they promised
-everything.
-
-[Sidenote: THE BISHOP INVITED TO RETURN.]
-
-Wernli's death had not only enraged the enemies of the Reformation, but
-had weakened its friends and occasioned a reaction in Geneva favourable
-to catholicism. The syndics and council now leant decidedly that way,
-and the return of the bishop seemed to them the only means of restoring
-order. 'The bishop does not need a safe-conduct,' they said; 'only let
-him come. If anybody threatens him, we will punish him so severely, that
-Monseigneur shall have cause to be satisfied.'—'Let him come back, let
-him come back,' was the general cry except among the pious evangelicals
-and the proud huguenots. The emancipation had hardly begun, when a
-strong counter-revolution threatened to stifle it. On the 26th May the
-council elected Domaine Franc, Stephen d'Adda, and Bon Officher to go
-and humbly urge their bishop and prince to return. Thus Geneva herself
-was preparing to bury its Reformation and its liberty.
-
-Other Genevans had arrived at Arbois before the deputies from the
-council. The principal mameluke chiefs, whether banished or emigrant,
-who found the bread of exile bitter, had started for Arbois as soon as
-they had heard of the canon's death. Full of that exasperation and
-agitated by those dreams which self-exiled and banished men ordinarily
-have, they endeavoured to make the bishop share their hopes and hatred.
-'Nothing is juster and easier,' they said, 'than to put the leading
-huguenots into prison, on suspicion of being concerned in the attack
-upon Wernli. They will be executed, or if the people oppose, they can be
-transported suddenly to some castle in Savoy, as Lévrier was formerly,
-and then we can do our pleasure on them. After that nothing will be able
-to disturb the holy union of Geneva with Savoy and the pope.' But Pierre
-de la Baume had already recovered a little from the heroic resolution he
-had formed after reading the papal brief. The violent language of the
-mamelukes aroused all his terrors. 'The Genevans,' he said, 'are proud,
-independent, and fond of tumult; at the least word that displeases them,
-they fly to arms. No ... afraid as I am, I dare not go to Geneva.' 'Do
-not fear, we will accompany you,' answered the mamelukes. 'The
-Friburgers on their part will provide you with a guard; the Genevan
-catholics, who are ten to one, will do the same; the duke is resolved to
-support you.... It is impossible that we should not crush the rebels.'
-The calculation was correct and the argument unanswerable. Pierre de la
-Baume, finding himself summoned by the pope, and surrounded with spears
-and spearmen, horses and chariots, again resumed an heroic courage, and
-almost made up his mind to appear in the city of the huguenots.
-
-Just at this moment the Genevan deputies arrived, and the bishop-prince
-showed at first a very courteous humour, and replied with an amiable air
-that he would return to Geneva _in a month_. Always uneasy, he still
-tried to procrastinate. So many things may happen in a month—perhaps,
-finally, he may never return to his episcopal city. 'I regard you as my
-well-beloved subjects,' he said, 'and desire to appear as your true and
-good prince.' Stephen d'Adda, a decided member of the opposition, placed
-but little trust in these fine words. In reality they were playing a
-little comedy at the priory of Arbois: the bishop was afraid to go, and
-one or two of the deputies preferred that he should not come.[741]
-
-[Sidenote: A COUP D'ÉTAT NECESSARY.]
-
-Will he go or not? No one could tell. There were certain moments when La
-Baume felt inclined to cross the Jura, and then all of a sudden he felt
-as if _nailed_ to his priory of Arbois. Never was it more difficult to
-arrive at a decision—it was like a nightmare. His friends began to
-deliberate; they quite agreed with him that if he desired simply to
-re-establish his residence in the episcopal city, it would be better for
-him not to go there at all. He would always have to begin again with the
-independence of the huguenots and the heresy of the reformed, with
-alarms and riots. The evil would even be worse than before, for the
-cause of liberty and reform had made great progress since the bishop had
-left Geneva. He is compelled, therefore, to gain two victories if he
-returns: first, he must trample under foot the franchises of the people
-and get rid of the huguenots; and, second, he must silence the
-evangelical teaching and expel the reformers and their adherents. The
-prince-bishop and his imprudent advisers were convinced that a _coup
-d'état_, and (if we may use the term) a _coup d'église_, were the only
-remedies for the critical and almost desperate position of affairs.
-Geneva was to go back to the superstitions and servility of the middle
-ages. It was necessary to extinguish the double torch of political
-independence and christian truth which a divine hand had kindled, and so
-put Christendom beyond the reach of these treacherous lights. But the
-timid La Baume shrank with alarm from such a herculean task; he knew his
-own weakness, and felt the enterprise would be too arduous for him.
-
-Meantime the Friburg ambassadors in Geneva were preparing the way for
-him. They demanded aloud, what he proposed to do in secret. Being
-admitted to the Council on the 23rd May, they said: 'We accuse all who
-were in the Molard at the time of Wernli's death, including the syndic
-of the guard and the commander of the cavalry.' They spoke haughtily,
-and required immediate satisfaction. A whole section of the
-population—the most innocent in this affair, even the party which had
-been attacked—was to be criminally prosecuted! It was a monstrous
-demand. However, the Friburgers spoke loud, and many of the huguenots
-were dejected. The Council, being divided and intimidated, made answer
-at last that they would authorise the lieutenant and the
-procurator-fiscal 'to arrest all whom Messieurs of Friburg accused.'
-Thus the plot was in a fair way: liberty and Reform had, however, a
-moment's respite.[742]
-
-[Sidenote: DECLARATION OF RELIGIOUS LIBERTY.]
-
-Two ambassadors from Berne, Councillor Sebastian de Diesbach and
-Banneret John de Weingarten, arrived at Geneva, and had conferences with
-the men of both parties. Their ideas gradually became clearer, and truth
-sprang out of the conflict of opinions. They saw that this position of
-affairs, which seemed an inextricable chaos, had one possible solution,
-namely, liberty. 'We have seen and heard everything,' said Diesbach;
-'the only means of enjoying peace is to _permit every one to follow the
-movements of his conscience, so that no one be constrained_.[743] Let
-the mass and feast-days and images remain for those who like them; but
-let the preaching of the Gospel be granted to those who desire it, and
-let one of the seven parish churches be assigned them for that purpose.
-Let no one be ridiculed for going to mass. _Let every one abide in his
-own free-will and choice._[744]... Moreover, as the Old and New
-Testaments are the foundation of our faith, and as those who follow the
-Gospel cannot exist without reading them, let the booksellers be
-permitted to sell publicly the Holy Scriptures and any other books of
-piety.' Thus 'liberty for all' was the great salutary principle then
-proclaimed in Geneva. This theory, which gives honour to God and
-independence to man, was not generally admitted until two or three
-hundred years later. But we take note of the epoch when the right was
-first proclaimed. It is sometimes asserted that the idea of liberty for
-all only appeared in the 18th century, and that it was put forward for
-the first time by the free-thinkers of England, France, and Holland. It
-is not so: religious as well as political liberty asserted their just
-and holy claims at Geneva more than three centuries ago. Switzerland and
-the Reform are the first in the field. These principles were so simple
-and so true that the Council was convinced; in the face, however, of
-formidable adversaries, they feared their own weakness. The syndics
-replied to the Messieurs of Berne: 'Stay with us to help us!' The 27th
-of May, 1533, deserves a mark of honour in the annals of religious
-liberty.
-
-[729] Council Registers of 4th and 25th May.
-
-[730] 'Justa Nemesi gloriosus ille miles fœdo ictu,' &c.—Spanheim,
-_Geneva restituta_, p. 60.
-
-[731] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p.
-63.—Council Registers of 4th and 5th May.—Roset MS. _Chron._
-
-[732] Council Registers of 4th and 5th May, 1533.—La Sœur J. de Jussie,
-_Le Levain du Calvinisme_, pp. 63-64.—Gautier MS.
-
-[733] La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 64.
-
-[734] Ibid.—Council Registers of 2nd July, 1533.—Froment, _Gestes de
-Genève_, p. 59.
-
-[735] La Sœur J. de Jussie, p. 65.
-
-[736] Council Registers of 9th May.—La Sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain
-du Calvinisme_, pp. 64-66.—Gautier MS.—Froment, _Gestes de
-Genève_, p. 59.
-
-[737] _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 66.
-
-[738] _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 66.
-
-[739] Sordet, _Mémoires d'Archéologie_, ii. p. 19.—Council Registers,
-May 19.—Gautier MS.
-
-[740] _Mémoires pour les Diocèses de Genève_, &c. par le curé
-Besson, p. 62.
-
-[741] Council Registers of 21st May, 2nd and 22nd June.—Froment,
-_Gestes de Genève_, p. 62.—Gautier MS.
-
-[742] Council Registers of 22nd May, 1533.
-
-[743] 'Permettre à chacun de suivre les mouvements de sa conscience, en
-telle sorte que personne ne soit contraint.'—Council Registers, 27th
-May.
-
-[744] 'Que chacun demeure en sa volonté et en son franc
-arbitre.'—Council Registers, 27th May.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
- CATASTROPHE.
- (BEGINNING OF JULY, 1533.)
-
-
-While these fine liberal theories were being proclaimed at the hôtel de
-ville and hailed with joy by noble minds, some enemies of the Reform
-maintained that they were only got up for the occasion, because the
-reformed were not yet the strongest party, and the bulk of the people,
-who looked upon them as mere trash, was occupied with other things. The
-report grew stronger every day that the bishop had made up his mind at
-last, that his resolution was not to be shaken, and that in obedience to
-the pope he was about to return to Geneva. The liberty so lately
-proclaimed was, therefore, seriously endangered.
-
-[Sidenote: PREPARATIONS TO RECEIVE THE BISHOP.]
-
-Every preparation was made for the reception of the prince, whose
-approaching arrival began to turn people's heads, as usually happens in
-such a case. Priests, mamelukes, and ducal partisans believed that the
-hour of their triumph was at hand, and that independence and Reform
-would be effectually buried. Every man who owned a horse had him
-dressed, as no one was permitted to go and meet the bishop on foot.[745]
-The trumpeters rehearsed, the artillerymen got out their guns. Jacques
-de Malbuisson, one of the chiefs of the catholic party, thinking that
-there was nothing too fine for a bishop and prince, especially for one
-who was bringing to the city, as a token of welcome, submission to the
-pope in religious matters, and to an ecclesiastical sovereign in
-temporal matters, hung the walls of the episcopal palace with beautiful
-tapestry, covered the tables and floors with silk and woollen cloth, and
-filled the rooms with rich furniture. Pierre de la Baume had appointed
-him quartermaster, and the good catholic intended that the beauty of the
-decorations should make the Genevans comprehend the greatness of their
-prince.
-
-If a servile crowd was preparing to sacrifice to a priest the liberties
-of the people and the Word of God, those who esteemed these treasures
-far above all others, anticipated with sorrow that all the old vexations
-were about to be revived. The Two Hundred were assembled: one proud
-huguenot, jealous of the political liberties, could not contain himself,
-and rising in the Council, said: 'There is a report that the mamelukes
-who deserted the city some seven years ago are to escort the bishop and
-return with him: I ask if it is true?' Instantly the storm broke out.
-Some said 'Yes!' others 'No!' The debate grew warm; they provoked and
-abused each other, gave one another the lie, and used very irritating
-language.[746] At last the huguenots conquered, and the Two Hundred
-ordered that the mamelukes should not be allowed to enter, for fear that
-there should be discord instead of harmony in the city.
-
-The syndics foresaw that such a resolution would probably excite
-confusion in the procession accompanying the bishop; and as they wished
-to avoid all disputes, they sought an opportunity for bringing men's
-minds together. Assembling the leaders of the opposing parties, they
-entreated them, as a sign of peace, to dine together. Such a banquet,
-they thought, would reconcile factions and dissipate the fears of the
-prelate. It was an _argumentum ad hominem_. How could Pierre de la Baume
-be afraid of men who drank together? Libations were indeed copiously
-poured out in honour of concord, for the Genevans were always ready in
-this respect; but the convictions of the two parties remained the same.
-Wine had no power to change either the champions of the pope or of the
-people, neither the Guelphs nor the Ghibelines.[747]
-
-On Tuesday, 1st of July, the prince-bishop descended the Jura, attended
-by his chancellors, the president De Gevigny and many of the nobility,
-meditating the counter-revolution he hoped to bring about. The Friburg
-deputies, 'knowing the prelate's timid humour,'[748] went to meet him at
-Gex, in order to protect his entrance. They turned back with him and
-drew near the city. This event, which filled the catholics with joy, was
-a great trouble to the proud huguenots and pious evangelicals, and
-nearly broke their hearts. The procession seemed to them like a funeral
-train. Were independence, liberty, the growing Reform—those inestimable
-riches which are the life of man—to be carried like a dead body to the
-grave? Were those bells, just beginning to ring, tolling a funeral
-knell? Everything seemed to point that way.
-
-Just as the brilliant escort that was riding out to meet the bishop
-crossed the bridge over the Rhone, a troop of about fourscore catholics
-appeared, all carrying arquebuses. The premier syndic, who was watching
-them with uneasy look, ordered them to return. 'We are going to our
-prince,' answered they with spirit. The magistrates and their escort
-lost sight of them for a few moments, but the troop was again visible
-when the procession got out of the city. 'They are the most violent of
-the party,' said some of the syndic's followers. 'They will play us some
-scurvy trick.' A second time the syndic ordered them to return, and a
-second time they answered, 'We are going to our prince,' and continued
-their way.
-
-[Sidenote: THE BISHOP'S ENTRANCE.]
-
-The cortège having proceeded half a league from the city, waited for the
-bishop, who came in sight about four in the afternoon. By his side were
-the magistrates of Friburg, and behind him the chiefs of the mamelukes,
-banished from Geneva but proud of braving those who had expelled them.
-The intimidated syndics dared not forbid their entrance into the city.
-Nor was this all: the fourscore arquebusiers surrounded the prelate,
-assuming the duty of a body-guard. The bells rang out, the artillery
-roared, and the friends of the clergy shouted repeated _vivats_. The
-throne was regaining strength; the majesty of the prince enhanced its
-splendour, and His Highness inspired respect in all who saw him.[749]
-
-These bursts of joy soon came to an end. The bishop had hardly entered
-the city, when its appearance changed. New faces were seen
-everywhere—faces which seemed to breathe of nothing but revenge. At
-night conferences were held at the palace, among the canons and the
-other partisans of despotic rule. Everyone talked about the horrible
-resolutions come to in these meetings—it was all the same whether the
-resolutions were true or fictitious. Many of the reformed were
-exceedingly distressed. 'The heretics felt great contrition,' says
-Sister Jeanne, 'for they knew full well that the bishop brought no good
-to them, but would injure them as much as he could.'[750]
-
-The prelate was firmly resolved to have recourse, if necessary, to
-force, banishment, and death. But his character and interests inclined
-him also to accomplish peacefully, if he could, the great revolution he
-so strongly desired. He wished to act in such a way that appearances at
-least should be on his side.
-
-Desiring to give his restoration the double sanction of religion and
-policy, the bishop ordered a grand procession for Thursday, 3rd July,
-after which a general council of the people should be held. The
-procession took place: canons, priests, and friars, walking in order,
-sang or chanted their litanies with great fervour, and prayed that God
-and the Virgin would be pleased to preserve the holy Roman Catholic
-Church in Geneva. When the singing was over, the general council was
-held. The refugees, who had forgotten nothing and learnt nothing, would
-have preferred a prompt and vigorous repression to this liberal meeting;
-but the bishop was unwilling to begin by imprisoning citizens. Besides,
-the impatient exiles would lose nothing by waiting.[751]
-
-[Sidenote: THE BISHOP AT THE GENERAL COUNCIL.]
-
-All the bishop's partisans proceeded proud and joyful to the council of
-the people; the magistrates with uneasiness, and a few huguenots with
-sad and suffering looks. As soon as the assembly was formed, the prelate
-appeared, attended by his nobles. He was determined to claim full
-sovereign power in Geneva, and to take it by force if it were disputed.
-Two great principles—the good pleasure of the prince and the
-constitutions of the people—met face to face on the 3rd of July, in the
-general council of Geneva. La Baume had taken his precautions; he had
-brought several distinguished men with him from Franche Comté, and among
-them the bailiff of Dôle, a learned and eloquent magistrate. This
-orator, imagining to win the Genevans by flattering and flowery
-language, delivered a very fine oration; but his Burgundian eloquence
-produced no great effect upon the huguenots. After him the prince-bishop
-came forward, and, speaking with a fine clear voice and in very
-intelligible language, he asked the syndics and the people whether they
-recognised him for their prince and lord. The question was skilfully
-put. If they answered _No_, they made themselves rebels, and severe
-measures became lawful; while, if they answered _Yes_, they surrendered
-to the prelate, and all was over with liberty and the Gospel. The
-magistrates, who were careful not to fall into a trap, saw that it was
-necessary to make a distinction. Convinced that they held their
-charters, franchises, and legislation from God quite as much as the
-prince did his power, they made a reserve. 'Certainly, my lord,' they
-replied, 'we regard you as our prince, and are ready to obey you; _but
-in adopting for guide our liberties, customs, and franchises, written
-and unwritten, which we beg you to respect, as you promised to do a long
-while ago_.'[752] The embarrassed bishop-prince thought it essential not
-to open up the delicate question of the constitution he had ratified,
-and, letting alone for the moment all that concerned his temporal power,
-he spoke only as a bishop, and delivered to the Genevans a devout
-exhortation on the salvation of their souls. In reality, the great
-object of his terror was the Reformation; the great desire of his heart
-was the triumph of the papacy. 'Have the fear of God before your eyes,'
-he said, 'and keep the commandments of holy Church.' He knew full well
-that 'holy Church' would recommend the people to recognise his power
-without any restriction. He pronounced these words 'in so devout and
-humble a manner that everybody wept, and the general council broke up
-without dispute or tumult, for which God be praised.'[753]
-
-[Sidenote: THE CHARTERS CONSULTED.]
-
-The Genevans were not, however, ready to bend their necks to receive the
-yoke the bishop presented to them. The various members of the assembly
-had hardly dispersed before the agitation broke out. Huguenots and
-independent catholics declared boldly and with one accord that they
-would maintain the constitution; the courtiers and mamelukes alone
-supported the absolute privileges of the prelate. 'No despotic power,'
-said one party. 'No resistance to the orders of our prince,' said the
-other. Offended at the new pretensions of the bishop, the citizens
-resolved to oppose him with the antique monuments of their liberty.
-There was a vaulted chamber in the hôtel de ville called the _Grotto_,
-in which the venerable charters of the Genevan people were enclosed
-under many bolts and bars. Not suffering themselves to be disturbed by
-the arbitrariness of the bishop, by the eloquence of his orators, or the
-terrible bands of Friburg and Turin, the citizens determined to consult
-the sacred documents of their franchises. The syndics proceeded to the
-Grotto; the rusty bolts yielded to the stout arms of their officers;
-they took out the noble parchments of their ancestors, and all eyes were
-eagerly turned upon the title-deeds in which were inscribed the duties,
-rights, and liberties of the people. The roll was placed upon the table;
-it was unfolded, and, while the others listened, one of the magistrates
-read the words written therein. 'In the name of the holy, perfect, and
-undivided Trinity, Father, Son, and Holy Ghost.' Could the bishop
-trample under foot a charter which reposed on so sacred a foundation?
-The magistrate continued his examination. This document, drawn up by
-Bishop Adhemar in 1387, contained (to use its own words) 'the liberties,
-franchises, and immunities which the citizens of Geneva have enjoyed so
-long that the memory of man runneth not to the contrary.' The Genevans
-were moved, and passing the parchment from hand to hand, read certain
-portions of it, and swore to defend their rights.[754]
-
-The syndics having no doubt that these old documents would be received
-by the bishop with the profoundest respect, quitted the hôtel de ville,
-carrying their venerable charters with them, which they laid before the
-prelate. They pointed out to him the immunities that were secured to
-them, and withdrew full of hope. But Pierre de la Baume did not care the
-least for these old papers, and would not give himself the trouble to
-decipher such disagreeable documents: he was in a hurry to see them
-restored to the cellar where they had slept so long. He intended to
-govern after a more modern fashion. The Reformation, on the other hand,
-was about to be accomplished by maintaining, in opposition to episcopal
-usurpation, the most lawful rights of the most ancient liberty.[755]
-
-[Sidenote: DESPOTIC PLANS.]
-
-The bishop no longer hesitated. When he had asked the general council to
-recognise his sovereignty, the magistrates had replied by limiting it
-according to the constitutions of the people. It was necessary therefore
-to renounce all idea of reigning with mildness, and to govern by force.
-Pierre de la Baume was not the first bishop excluded from his episcopal
-city, who had reentered it with thoughts of violence. Tales of
-unheard-of cruelties had been imprinted on the memory of the people. In
-the tenth century, the bishop of Cambray having been driven from his
-city by the burgesses who were exasperated against him, had returned
-with foreign soldiers; and these mercenaries, the ministers of his
-revenge, had pursued the citizens even into the churches, killing some,
-cutting off the hands and feet of others, putting out the eyes of some,
-and branding many on the forehead with a red-hot iron.[756] About two
-centuries later, another bishop also returning forcibly into his city,
-his followers had seized one of the most respected and wealthy citizens,
-notwithstanding the promise to spare his life, and had fastened him by
-the feet to the tail of a horse, which they forced into a gallop.[757]
-The bishop of Geneva did not purpose imitating these episcopal
-proceedings; manners, though rude, were softened; he meant to content
-himself with less. He would have the principal supporters of the
-Reformation and of Geneva seized, and would get rid of them simply by
-the sword—either in Geneva, as in the case of Berthelier, or in some
-lonely castle, as in the case of Levrier. Then the prince-bishop would
-exercise, without control and in his own way, that sovereignty which
-appeared to him absolutely necessary in order to stifle the
-protestantism of some and the independence of others.
-
-Freed from the importunate antiquarians who put their trust in dusty
-charters, the bishop began to prepare for the execution of his designs.
-He counted his forces and felt sure of victory. In the first place there
-was the Council, which, being mostly catholic, supported him at heart;
-then there were the priests and their adherents; then the Friburgers;
-then the banished mamelukes, and finally a certain class of people,
-skilful in the use of the arquebuse, 'and who would handle it well,'
-said the bishop. The total of his partisans being thus reckoned, the
-bishop enquired who were the huguenot chiefs he ought to get rid of. It
-is hardly probable that La Baume did this alone or simply aided by one
-of his secretaries or officers of justice. Weakness was one of the most
-marked features of his character; he had no energy, although he
-sometimes pretended the contrary. But those around him made up for it.
-The proscription that he was about to carry into execution was
-essentially due to the encouragements and solicitations of the enemies
-of the Reformation and of independence. 'Finding himself strong and
-powerful,' says a contemporary, 'both on the part of the Friburgers and
-of the enemies of God and the city (namely, the mamelukes) who were now
-within the walls, the bishop desired to exercise his tyranny.'[758] Some
-of his friends shrank from such severity, and would have desired to
-divert him from it; but the most violent men prevailed. 'My lord,' they
-said, 'must exercise his power against certain citizens and burgesses,
-and by this means extirpate and eradicate the Lutheran sect and
-heresy.'[759]
-
-[Sidenote: PROSCRIPTIONS.]
-
-The proscribed were selected indifferently from among the evangelicals
-and huguenots. One of the first pointed at was Chautemps. He was not
-only a heretic, but his children had been trained up in heresy, and he
-had kept for a long time in his house Olivetan, the translator of the
-Bible, who had dared reprimand a dominican preacher in full church. Aimé
-Levet came next; at his house the religious meetings were most
-frequently held. Pierre Vandel—youngest son of that Claude, whom twenty
-years before Bishop John of Savoy had cast into prison[760]—a man of
-resolute character, readily putting himself in the foreground, was
-joined with the other two. Ami Perrin did not belong to the evangelicals
-properly so called, but he had been the chief of the four huguenots
-whose zeal for controversy had proved so embarrassing to the vicar of
-the Madeleine, and passed for the boldest of all the band. Others were
-afterwards pointed out: Jean Pecolat, an ill-sounding name in episcopal
-ears; Domaine d'Arlod, Jean Veillard, Anthonin Derbey, Henry Doulens,
-Jacques Fichet, Claude de Genève, and Philibert de Compey, a nobleman in
-high esteem. Although a Savoyard and of gentle birth, Philibert was
-huguenot at heart; the count of Genevois took advantage of the
-opportunity to confiscate all his lands and lordships, 'and the poor
-pervert was deprived of his property,' says a contemporary. There were
-still a few more whose arrest was determined on, and among them Pasta
-and Rozetta.[761] The bishop and his friends, all full of zeal, hoped to
-catch other citizens after these;[762] but they thought it prudent not
-to do everything at once. If the first attempt succeeded, they would
-follow it up by a second, and would lay their hands upon such citizens
-as they had not thought of at first. 'I have proscribed all those whom I
-can remember; those whom I have forgotten I will proscribe as they recur
-to my mind.' This saying of a great master in the art, found its
-application in Geneva.[763]
-
-The bishop, having ended his first task, began to consider how he could
-lay hold of the proscribed, which was no easy matter. The most natural
-way would have been to capture each of them in his own house; but he
-feared, that if he went to work in that fashion, some would hide
-themselves, others would escape, and others would be rescued in the
-streets. The alarm would spread in a moment, and the daring huguenots
-would entrench themselves in Baudichon de la Maisonneuve's house. Above
-all, Pierre de la Baume was wanting in frankness; he excelled, whenever
-he pleased, in appearing amiable to those whom he hated. He resolved to
-give them an invitation, and to hold out his hand graciously to the men
-whose death he was plotting. He will invite them to his palace,
-'trusting in his faith,' but without keeping it.[764] He will thus take
-them all by one cast of the net, then he will tie the knot, and the poor
-wretches shall leave the saloons of the palace only to descend to its
-dungeons. It was thought an excellent stratagem, and preparations were
-made for carrying it out.
-
-The next day, July 5th, the bishop's officers called on the citizens
-entered in the black list, and in his name gave them an invitation,
-which must have appeared to them either a great honour or a treacherous
-snare. If any of them raised objections, the messengers assured them, in
-the prelate's name, that no harm would come to them. Some through
-candour, others from ignorance, and others also from rashness, proceeded
-to the episcopal palace. They had put on their finest suits and wore
-their swords. What could the bishop want with them?... Probably to
-obtain some concessions, and they were firmly decided not to make any.
-
-Others, who were more clear-sighted or more prudent, took to flight. The
-clerical riots which had preceded the bishop's coming, the
-unsatisfactory company by which he was surrounded, and the demands he
-had made—all combined to give food for thought to minds possessed of any
-discernment. Women, more keen or more timid, generally see clearer in
-such cases than men: their conjugal love takes the alarm. It would
-appear that Claudine Levet and Jaquéma Chautemps felt all the tender
-solicitude of their sex, and conjured their husbands not to place
-themselves in the cruel hands of the bishop, and to quit their homes,
-their children, and their country which they could now serve better
-abroad. These two excellent christians were among the number of those
-who escaped. Maisonneuve, against whom the mamelukes were much
-irritated, set out for Berne, full of indignation against the bishop's
-tyranny. To this city, next to God, he always looked for deliverance.
-Several others also quitted Geneva.[765]
-
-[Sidenote: HUGUENOTS ENTRAPPED.]
-
-Meantime Perrin, D'Arlod, Vandel, and their friends proceeded to the
-palace. The gates opened before them and they entered my lord's
-antechambers. But they had hardly arrived, reckoning on the gracious
-audience that had been promised them, when they were seized, heavily
-fettered, and led away to the episcopal prison.[766] The impetuous
-Perrin and the courageous Vandel were compelled to yield to force. The
-bishop's officers took them down into the dungeons, and as if cords,
-iron doors, and bolts were not enough, their feet were set in the stocks
-and their hands were manacled.[767]
-
-[Sidenote: CONJUGAL DEVOTION.]
-
-When the news was told the prince-prelate, it was the pleasantest
-tidings he had ever received. He breathed again, and yet he was not
-entirely satisfied: he wanted some prisoners whom he had especially set
-his heart upon—particularly Levet and Chautemps. But if the husbands had
-disappeared, their wives might suffer for them. Pierre de la Baume
-ordered Jaquéma Chautemps to be seized, but Claudine Levet remained at
-liberty. Claudine was a pious christian woman, firm in faith but of
-gentle character, and she was spared; but Jaquéma, who it will be
-remembered was taught by Olivetan, possessed perhaps some of that
-courageous decision which was found in Calvin's cousin and in Calvin
-himself. Claudine was the woman of the New Testament; Jaquéma seems
-rather to remind us of the heroines of the Old. It is to be regretted
-that we have not the same information about her as about Claudine. At
-all events she paid for her husband. The delicate woman, the wife of one
-of the chief persons in the city, accustomed to the comforts of life,
-used to the company of one of the most original French writers of the
-day, the tutor to her children, was shut up in a narrow cell, and
-treated roughly like a conspirator. Ancient and modern times have
-witnessed more than one instance of conjugal devotion. Many wives,
-seeing their husbands threatened with a cruel death, have been able to
-say to them:
-
- . . . . . . Et quel autre que moi
- A le droit d'y prétendre et de mourir pour toi?[768]
-
-The Reformation also has furnished many similar examples.
-
-As part of the huguenot leaders were now in prison, the bishop and his
-confidants deliberated what should be done with them. It was quite out
-of the question to put them to death publicly in Geneva, like
-Berthelier. The simplest way would be to behead them secretly in their
-dungeons; but that would be known immediately, and would create terrible
-excitement. 'They durst not kill them in the city for fear of the
-people.'[769] The bishop's councillors proposed to send them out of
-Geneva in a boat by night, and convey them either to Friburg, which was
-calling for victims to avenge Wernli's death, or to the castle of
-Chillon, where Bonivard was shut up, or to Jussy near Mount Voiron, or
-lastly to the strong castle of Gaillard at the foot of the Salève, 'and
-there do as they pleased with them.'[770] They decided on the last plan,
-and orders were given for carrying it out.
-
-Thus everything proceeded to the bishop's satisfaction. As some of the
-principal huguenots were about to be sent out of Geneva, it became
-necessary 'to catch other citizens after them and serve them the same,'
-that is, carry them also out of the city; for the fear of the people
-continually pursued the bishop. He was planning how to continue the work
-he had undertaken, when news was brought him which greatly troubled him.
-
-One of his agents, commissioned by him to take note of everything that
-occurred in the city, came and told him that not only Baudichon de la
-Maisonneuve had escaped, but that he had gone to Berne to demand
-help.... What a check! what danger! If the fugitive brings back the
-Bernese, they will undertake the defence of heresy ... it will triumph.
-The harder the blow which La Baume desired to strike, the more dangerous
-would it be if it failed. He was therefore in great alarm and in a great
-passion also. He ordered his officers to pursue those who had escaped,
-to take horses so as to catch them up, and to bring them back bound to
-prison where their friends awaited them. But he did not rest satisfied
-with sending after the fugitives such persons as were under his own
-orders, he wanted others to track them down, to catch them in the rear
-or in front: this induced him to make a very extraordinary demand.
-
-As soon as the syndics had heard of the arrest of some of the most
-notable of the citizens, they had summoned the council. Astounded at the
-tyrannical act, and alarmed for the future of the republic, they
-deliberated what was to be done. Should they abandon their
-fellow-citizens to the illegal vengeance of the bishop, or should they
-revolt against their prince? They were plunged into silent stupor when a
-messenger from the bishop appeared. No doubt he had come to give some
-explanation, to make an excuse, and perhaps to declare that the bishop
-would withdraw his fatal decree! No such thing: the council soon learnt
-that he was charged with an extraordinary message.
-
-[Sidenote: STRANGE REQUEST OF THE BISHOP.]
-
-The episcopal messenger, having made the customary salutations, said:
-'My lord has decided to send his officers beyond the frontiers to take
-certain _criminals_ (this was the term he applied to those noble
-citizens). Our very reverend prince therefore requires the council to
-lend him some of the city officers to accompany his own and pursue the
-fugitives in the territory of Savoy.' This was too much. De la Baume
-required the magistrates of Geneva to employ in oppressing citizens the
-power they had received to defend them. Such an audacious proposition
-disgusted the syndics; they did not hesitate to refuse his demand;
-desiring, however, to keep on good terms with him to the last, they gave
-a specious motive for their refusal. 'Pray pardon us,' they answered the
-bishop, 'if we cannot do it; we should be afraid lest the duke, whose
-territories our officers would have to enter, should be angry with us
-for violating the treaties.' This refusal threw him into a great
-passion. He believed, perhaps not without reason, that the duke of Savoy
-would overlook the violation of territory, as its object was to catch
-huguenots. 'Return,' he said to his officer, 'and tell those gentlemen
-to do justice, and that if they do not, there are fourscore in the city
-who will help me to do it. Add, that they are to act straightforwardly.'
-The magistrates remained firm. But the prelate found some little
-consolation in the cooperation of people better disposed than the
-syndics of Geneva to subserve his anger.[771]
-
-Aimé Levet, instead of escaping by the right bank, on which his house
-was situated, had chosen the left bank, and thrown himself into that
-beautiful country which extends between the Rhone and the lake on one
-side, and Mount Voiron and Mount Salève on the other, and where the wide
-opening which these two mountains leave between them, permits the
-traveller to contemplate the magnificent range of the Alps of Mont
-Blanc. Was it Levet's wish to avoid taking the usual road of the
-fugitives, on which he was sure to be arrested; or did he intend hiding
-in the mountains, as the fine month of July invited him, to climb the
-easy and graceful slope of the Voiron, or to scale, by the road called
-l'Echelle (the ladder), the abrupt walls of Salève, whose enormous rocks
-overhang the plain? That is possible; other fugitives had done so. Levet
-wandered for some time in that part of the valley where the sandy
-torrent of the Arve utters a low murmur; but, thinking only how he
-should escape his persecutors, he had no leisure to contemplate the
-dazzling vision of the Alps lighted up by a July sun, which made so
-striking a contrast with the gloomy paths he was then traversing. He
-knew that mamelukes, priests, ducal partisans, and above all, the Sire
-de Montagny, castellan of Gaillard, would follow in his track. How
-strange his destiny! Only a few months ago he had been a zealous
-catholic, and then the surprising conversion of his wife had led to
-his.... Now, he was wandering about as a fugitive, without a place where
-to lay his head. We cannot tell all the anguish he went through, and all
-the groans he uttered. He did not lose courage, however, for he knew Him
-who was his protector, and who maintains the right. He was assured of
-being able to stand before God and His angels at the very moment when
-men were hunting him down. He had wolves behind him eager to tear him in
-pieces, but 'God saves His poor sheep, even out of the jaws of the
-lions.'[772]
-
-[Sidenote: LEVET PURSUED AND TAKEN.]
-
-They were indeed in pursuit of him. Messire de Charanzonay, a canon of
-Geneva, had kept his eye on Levet: he knew that he had made off in the
-direction of the mountains, and that he must be found either in the
-bailiwick of Gaillard, or in the parish of Bonne. He had an interview,
-therefore, with the castellan of Gaillard, M. de Montagny, a good
-catholic and Savoyard, who furnished him with aid; a band of men left
-the castle, and the chase began, the canon leading the way. Erelong,
-poor Levet heard the footsteps of the people in search of him: he was
-seized. The canon, eager to vent his anger, had him scourged without any
-form of trial, and after he had been soundly beaten, sent him off to the
-castle of Gaillard.[773] Levet, encompassed by guards, was conducted to
-that fortress, situated at the point where the Arve, issuing from the
-mountains, enters the plain, and where many an innocent man had been
-imprisoned. The drawbridge fell and rose again, the massive gates
-opened, the armed sentinels halted to see the huguenot pass, and at last
-Levet, doubly guilty, as a liberal and as an evangelical, was thrown
-into a deep dungeon. From that moment the husband's captivity assured
-the liberty of the wife.
-
-[Sidenote: FRIBURG DEPUTIES CALL FOR REVENGE.]
-
-Other circumstances happening on the same day (6th of July) rejoiced the
-bishop and his court, and put to the proof the firmness of the council
-as well as the tranquillity of the citizens. A man sent from the Pays de
-Vaud reported that a number of well-armed Friburgers had arrived at Nyon
-and threatened Geneva. They were the avengers of Wernli's blood. 'Go and
-tell the captain-general,' said the syndics, 'and bid him look to the
-safety of the city.' Shortly after this, a citizen told the council that
-the Friburgers who were in Geneva were preparing to set out for the
-castle of Gaillard. Presently a third person came and informed the
-syndics that the Friburgers were crossing the lake from Nyon, and that
-their boats could be clearly distinguished from the upper part of the
-city, making for the south. Finally, news came from Gaillard that
-Wernli's relations, accompanied by a great number of Friburg
-men-at-arms, had entered the fortress, vowing they would wash their feet
-in the blood of the evangelicals. The council did not know what to do,
-and the city was filled with apprehension.[774]
-
-The extremes of anguish were felt in the homes of the prisoners. The
-most sinister stories were propagated through the city as to the
-severity employed by the bishop towards his captives. Some began to lose
-courage and to ask—it was a question often put in the time of the
-Reformation—why the disciples of the Gospel had to endure not only the
-afflictions common to all men, but calamities from which their enemies
-were exempt? 'Ah!' replied the wiser ones, 'the corn is first threshed
-in the barn along with the straw; but afterwards it is pressed and
-crushed alone on the millstone.'[775] All were not to be comforted, and
-from many an afflicted house the cries of sorrow rose to heaven.
-
-Meanwhile, the avoyers of Friburg pressed the council to grant to
-Wernli's relations the justice they demanded, and insisted that the
-Genevans arrested on the 23rd May and 4th June should be brought to
-trial immediately. The mamelukes cried still louder than the Friburgers,
-and demanded the trial of the eleven persons imprisoned on the 5th July.
-While the case of the Friburgers was entirely judicial, that of the
-mamelukes was political: they wished to take advantage of a trial to
-effect a revolution. The council instructed the procurator-fiscal to
-have the accused brought before him, as the Genevan constitution
-required; but the fiscal declared he could not do so on account of the
-order of the prince, who had cited the case before himself. The bishop
-meant to be at once judge and interested party, and to substitute
-clerical despotism for the protecting forms of the lay tribunals. The
-alarmed magistrates immediately waited on the prince to make their
-humble but resolute protest.[776]
-
-Pierre de la Baume had just dined when the syndics appeared. 'I have
-cited the cause before me,' he said: 'I have my reasons.' The syndics
-represented to him that he might pardon men after sentence, but not try
-accused persons, who must necessarily appear before the lawful
-tribunals. 'I cite the case before me,' repeated the bishop. The
-indignant syndics bowed and withdrew. Sebastian de Diesbach, the
-banneret of Weingarten and other deputies from Berne, had arrived at
-Geneva, and Baudichon de la Maisonneuve, as it seems, had returned with
-them. The syndics prayed their intervention, and the Bernese spoke to
-the bishop; but the passionate headstrong churchman would not listen to
-them. He stretched the cord at the risk of breaking it. 'I have cited
-the case before me,' he said again.
-
-The spirit of blind fanaticism was felt in other places besides the
-palace: it agitated the mamelukes, carried away the episcopalians and
-even a few of the Friburgers. They had sworn the death of liberty and
-the Reformation, and were already planning the means of preventing for
-ever their return to Geneva. They went up and down the city, and were
-quite indefatigable. As you looked at them you would have said—the
-comparison was made at the time—that coming after the deluge, and
-wishing to prevent the waters from invading their dwellings again, they
-had said to one another: 'Let us build a tower whose top may reach unto
-heaven.' 'They built the tower of Babel,' says a contemporary,
-'presuming, like the giants, to fight against God.'
-
-[Sidenote: ATTACKS ON HUGUENOTS.]
-
-They did indeed come to blows. On that very day (7th July) some horsemen
-of the episcopal party who were riding at Plainpalais in front of the
-convent of their friends the Dominicans, saw three of the most
-considerable of the Genevese citizens go past: they were Philippe the
-captain-general, John Lullin afterwards syndic, and Francis Favre who
-was a member of the ordinary council in the following year. The
-cavaliers immediately rode at them, calling them traitors and Lutherans.
-The three huguenots were hated and feared by the mamelukes, who knew
-them to be men ready to sacrifice their lives for the ancient liberties
-of their country. If they had not been included in the first
-proscription, it was partly through fear, for their boldness was
-indomitable; and also because it had been preferred to begin with pious
-evangelicals like Chautemps and Levet. True, Ami Perrin had been
-arrested; but without having undergone the great change which Scripture
-calls 'a new birth,' he was still in the front rank whenever the cause
-of the Reformation was in question. It was he who had actively protected
-Farel. Besides the episcopal _sbirri_ could not well distinguish between
-protestants who were such inwardly and those who were so outwardly only.
-However, neither persecution nor insult abated the courage of the
-citizens. They knew that God often suffers the wicked to act for a few
-days, and permits them to raise high towers against his elect. Then on a
-sudden he strikes the huge mass, he loosens the joints and scatters the
-materials, so that the mighty edifice whose summit was to rise to heaven
-falls into dust, and is scattered to the winds.
-
-The syndics, being determined to resist the bishop and his usurpations,
-convened the council of Sixty on the 8th July, and explained to them how
-he purposed to place Geneva under the government of his good pleasure,
-and by way of beginning, was preparing to try in his own court the
-noblest of the citizens. The future that threatened Geneva filled the
-assembly with emotion and fear. What was to be done? Resort to force,
-policy, or diplomacy? The Genevans, in self-defence, looked for simpler
-and more affecting means; they had recourse to one of those measures
-which are almost unique in history, and exhale a perfume of antiquity.
-
-[Sidenote: ELDERS OF GENEVA BEFORE THE BISHOP.]
-
-There were in Geneva certain Nestors of liberty, who, uplifting their
-hoary heads among three generations of their children, gave utterance to
-words of wisdom. To these they had recourse. Councillors—their sons
-probably—went to fetch them, and these venerable witnesses of the
-ancient liberties entered the presence of the council, where seats were
-placed for them. Although the vigour of their bodies was weakened, their
-hearts now beat stronger for their country than in their younger days,
-and their memory recalled to them distinctly the times of yore.
-Accordingly, when they heard of the dangers by which the republic was
-threatened, and of the bishop's intention to usurp judicial power, they
-were filled with sadness and alarm. 'Criminal causes,' they said,
-'belong to the civil magistrate; the practice has never varied in that
-respect, and the bishop's claim to hear them himself is a novelty
-without precedent.' The council of sixty resolved to send a deputation
-to the prince, composed of the four syndics and six of these aged
-citizens, who felt happy to bear, before they died, a last testimony to
-the liberties of their country. If the bishop laughed at the ancient
-papers of ancient Geneva, would he also laugh at these ancient men?
-
-The deputation, proceeding slowly through the streets, took its way
-towards the palace. The fathers of the country walked with tottering
-steps, supported by the younger ones, and advanced towards the residence
-of the haughty priest whom Rome had sent to the shores of the Leman, and
-who was trampling under foot the most venerable rights. Never had men
-going to plead the independence of a nation inspired more tenderness,
-sympathy, and respect. People watched and blessed them as they passed,
-and prayers were raised to heaven that God would accompany with his
-strength this extraordinary step in favour of liberty.[777]
-
-The bishop, informed of the movement, had desired to surround himself
-with all that could give a specious appearance to his usurpations. And
-accordingly, when they entered the hall, the deputation found not only
-the prelate sitting in pomp—not only his councillors, officers, and the
-ambassadors of Berne and Friburg ranged around him,—but also the
-relatives of the canon. Pierre de la Baume paired the suppliants of
-Friburg against the elders of Geneva. The syndics respectfully expressed
-to him their surprise that he should appear to look upon the council
-with suspicion, that several citizens of note had been thrown into
-prison, and lastly that his lordship, contrary to the laws, had cited
-the case before his own tribunal. But, while the elders turned a look at
-once mild and penetrating upon the prince, and their hoary heads seemed,
-as it were, to bring the old times before him, Wernli's relatives,
-shaking their black garments, again called for vengeance, declaring that
-the prince had promised to do them justice, and praying upon him to be
-faithful to his word. 'Yes,' said the bishop immediately, 'yes, I cite
-the cause before me.' The syndics, determined not to give up the most
-venerated laws of the State, placed before him the ancient constitution
-of the people, and pointing to the twelfth article, read as follows:
-'That no inquisition upon lay malefactors, or other process whatsoever,
-can or shall be held, except by summoning the four syndics and four
-citizens of the said city of Geneva, who shall be chosen by the other
-citizens.[778] And that the trial and sentence of the afore-named
-malefactors belongs and shall belong to the aforesaid citizens, and not
-to any other persons whatsoever.' The constitution having thus spoken,
-the syndic ceased.
-
-[Sidenote: THE BISHOP WILL NOT YIELD.]
-
-Then the elders, who had hitherto kept silent, and whose grave, modest,
-and firm looks inspired respect, came forward. One of them, speaking for
-all, raised his trembling hands, 'and declared that such had always been
-the law of Geneva, and that never in the course of their long lives had
-they had the pain to see the prince trample it under foot.' The feeble
-voices and calm looks of these venerable men added a strange, and one
-might almost say a heavenly, force to their testimony. That humble
-speech in favour of liberty possessed an eloquence more penetrating than
-the most admirable orations of a Cicero or a Demosthenes. But, if
-liberty had never been more touching, despotism had never been more
-obstinate. The syndics conjured the bishop in vain, in the name of the
-laws and of God, to surrender the prisoners to them, according to the
-law, so that they might try them conformably with their office; Pierre
-de la Baume kept repeating: 'I cannot, I have cited the cause before
-me.' The Friburg ambassadors begged the syndics to consent to the
-episcopal citation, 'for this time only,' but the magistrates of Geneva
-were unwilling that the franchises of the city should be violated either
-now or later. They quitted the bishop's palace with sorrow, and the six
-elders followed them.[779]
-
-When they arrived at the hôtel-de-ville, the council of sixty was still
-sitting. They gave a faithful account of their mission. They reported
-that the bishop-prince persisted in his iniquitous _non possumus_, and
-although the council felt deep pain at hearing the statement, no one
-flinched. These Genevans knew the fidelity that freemen owe to the
-institutions of their ancestors. The ambassadors of Berne then asked to
-be admitted. Importuned by their allies, the Friburgers, and by the
-councillors of the bishop, these haughty Bernese, unfaithful to their
-renown, had come to imagine that the Genevans might very well, for
-_once_, on this solemn occasion, renounce their charter and their
-rights. Sebastian de Diesbach therefore invited the council to try if
-they could not 'consent to this citation, which the prelate positively
-would not recal.' Thus the only allies of Geneva solicited them to enter
-voluntarily upon the path of concessions.... The council deliberated,
-and the Sixty were unanimous. Here is the resolution which the secretary
-entered upon the register: 'Ordered to reply to My Lords of Berne, that
-we will not consent to this citation, as it is entirely contrary to our
-franchises, and resolved to ask them to be pleased to aid us with their
-advice.' My Lords of Berne did not like to see their advice rejected,
-but as they withdrew they said that such men deserved to be free.[780]
-
-This new refusal exasperated the mamelukes. They were determined to use
-Wernli's death as an instrument of war to beat down the ancient edifice
-of Genevese liberties, to root up the foundations of the Reformation,
-and to establish on the ruins their own theories concerning the absolute
-power of the pope and the prince. Consequently they demanded the
-convocation of the Two Hundred, hoping to find favourable voices among
-them. The great council met the next day, and the Friburg ambassadors
-appeared before it, attended by a great number of the relations and
-friends of the canon—all dejected, gloomy, and silent, like the
-suppliants of ancient times. It was not fanaticism which animated the
-greater part of them. They had played with Wernli in their childhood;
-they had loved him in their youth; they venerated his memory now that a
-terrible catastrophe had stretched him dead in the streets of the city.
-If they had been unable to defend him in the hour of danger, they wished
-to do everything now the hour of vengeance was come. It was not
-sufficient to have sprinkled his body with their tears, the blood of
-victims must flow in the very spot where the martyr had been struck
-down. 'Most honoured lords,' said the canon's brother, 'the justice
-which men owe to one another is written on earth in the hearts of the
-just; why, then, should you trample it under foot? You have not yet done
-justice for the death of him who was our brother and our friend; on the
-contrary, you left the criminals free to come and go for six weeks. His
-body lies in the grave, but his blood, sprinkled on the stones of your
-city, calls for vengeance. If you are armed with the sword, it is not
-for mere show but to strike malefactors. And yet your tribunals are
-dumb, and your sword slumbers in the sheath. Permit my lord bishop to
-cite the case before him. If you refuse, you may rest assured that we
-shall seek other means of avenging the death of our friend, and we shall
-drown our sorrow and anger not in the waters of justice but in blood.'
-The Friburgers spoke as if it were a murder: they forgot that the canon
-had put on a cuirass, that he had grasped the halberd, that he had gone
-fully armed to the scene of tumult, that he had rekindled the dying
-flames, and attacked the huguenots, who had only used their arms in
-legitimate self-defence. The avoyer of Friburg seconded the eloquent
-menaces of Wernli's brother.[781]
-
-[Sidenote: REFUSAL OF THE TWO HUNDRED.]
-
-The Two Hundred saw that a war with Friburg and Savoy would be the
-consequence of their refusal, but they had taken their stand on the rock
-of right and were not to be moved. 'We do not know of any guilty persons
-who have been allowed to come and go freely in the city,' they said. 'If
-it be so, the blame lies with the procurator-fiscal whose duty it was to
-apprehend them, and not with us who are judges. As for permitting my
-lord to cite the cause before him, we cannot do so; it would be a
-violation of the franchises, for which we and our forefathers have often
-risked our bodies and our goods.' The syndic added that the council
-would consent to the bishop's naming two persons to be present at the
-examination, but on condition that they had no deliberative voice. The
-Friburgers and mamelukes could not make up their minds to accept this
-proposition. They were specially vexed that Coquet, syndic of the guard,
-whom they looked upon as devoted to the reform, should be among the
-number of the judges, whilst in their opinion he ought to be in the
-prisoner's dock.[782]
-
-[Sidenote: ARGUMENTS FOR THE TEMPORAL POWER.]
-
-If it had been a mere question of punishing the author of the canon's
-death, the prelate would perhaps have trusted to the syndics; but he
-aimed at destroying both liberty and the Reformation in Geneva, and for
-that he trusted to himself alone. To supplications, threats, and
-violence some consented to add reasons. There was a kind of argument
-used only in scholastic debates to prove that priests were the best
-judges both in civil and political matters. This strange proposition was
-demonstrated by syllogism. The major was: 'He is the best fitted to
-judge who is nearest to God.' The minor this: 'Ecclesiastics are nearer
-to God than laymen.' The conclusion is evident. They had recourse also
-to arguments derived from astronomy. 'As there are two great lights in
-the universe,' it was said, 'so there are also two in society. The
-Church is the sun and the State is the moon. Now the moon has no light
-of her own; all her light is derived from the sun. It is evident,
-therefore, that the church possesses in itself, formally and virtually,
-the temporal jurisdiction of the state.'[783]
-
-Such arguments had great strength in the prelate's eyes: he appointed
-two deputies, his bailiff and his attorney, and sent them to the Two
-Hundred with orders to defend the rights of the sun. The union of the
-two powers in a single individual supplied them with their principal
-argument. The BISHOP was hardly mentioned in their speech but only the
-_prince_. 'The bishop is your prince,' they declared; 'and you, the
-syndics, are his officers. He may therefore command you as his subjects,
-and when he transfers to his tribunal a cause which is in your hands,
-you have only to obey.' This theory of absolute power could not pass in
-Geneva. 'We are not the prince's officers,' replied the magistrates,
-'but syndics of the city, elected by the people and not by my lord. He
-has no power to institute us, and even his own officers, nominated by
-himself, make oath to us, whilst we make oath to nobody.' Then the
-syndics, turning to the Friburg deputation, continued: 'Sirs, you helped
-us in the time of Berthelier, help us again now. It is not we, but the
-bishop and his officers who alone occasion the delay of which you
-complain. Let two deputies from the bishop, two from Berne, and two from
-Friburg, assist at the trial, and be witnesses of our uprightness.'[784]
-
-The bishop persisted in his demand: the deputies from Berne, desiring to
-terminate the difference, proposed that the cause should be remitted to
-two judges nominated by the council, two by the bishop, two by Berne,
-and two by Friburg. The Genevans replied that a people were not at
-liberty to sacrifice the smallest portion of their rights; and fatigued
-with these endless importunities, they added: 'If our offer is refused,
-we will convoke the general assembly of the people and do what it shall
-ordain.' The Bernese, knowing very well that if the matter was referred
-to the people no arrangement would be possible, exclaimed: 'Pray do
-nothing of the kind.'
-
-Whilst even Berne was soliciting the syndics to give way, the wives,
-relations, and friends of the prisoners conjured them to persevere in
-their resistance. They feared to hear every morning that it was too late
-to act. 'It is time to bring the matter to an end,' said the syndics to
-the Bernese. 'The prisoners are only accused; is it just to make them
-suffer as if they were guilty? Go and speak plainly to the prince; make
-him comprehend the duty which our liberties impose upon us.' The Bernese
-went to the episcopal palace, but neither the bishop nor the Friburgers
-who were with him would yield an inch. 'Messieurs of Geneva will not do
-otherwise than they have said,' coldly answered Pierre de la Baume.
-'Very good! and we for our part will not do otherwise than we have
-declared.' The Friburgers added with a menacing tone: 'We are about to
-return home and there ... we shall consider another remedy.' This remedy
-was war: the Friburg deputies would return with an army.[785]
-
-[Sidenote: THE PRISONERS IN THEIR CELLS.]
-
-While these things were going on, the huguenots and evangelicals, seized
-by the bishop's order, were still in prison bound hand and foot. Pierre
-Vandel, Claude Pasta, the Sire de Compey, Domaine D'Arlod, the energetic
-Ami Perrin and others, not forgetting Jaquéma, awaited their fate in the
-gloomy vaults of the episcopal residence. In every house in Geneva and
-at the town-hall people were constantly talking of them. 'The
-prisoners,' they said, 'are kept in close confinement.' Such severity
-excited universal compassion, and the secretary of council mentions it
-in the Registers.[786] However if the bishop had been able to deprive
-them of freedom of motion, there was another he could not take from
-them, which was a sweet consolation for those who had received the
-gospel in their hearts. 'Though they were bound and made fast in the
-stocks,' says Calvin, 'still while praying they praised God.' It is of
-Paul and Silas, shut up in the prison at Philippi, of whom the reformer
-is speaking; but what he says of the liberty of prayer, which exists
-even in spite of chains, may be applied to some of those who were now in
-the prelate's dungeons.
-
-Just at this time a report circulated through the city that the bishop
-was secretly preparing boats for the removal of the prisoners to some
-castle. It was said that certain stout watermen were ready to grasp the
-oar, that an armed force would accompany the captives, and that as soon
-the episcopal officers were upon the open lake they would laugh at the
-syndics and the huguenots. These reports still more excited the anger of
-the citizens. One of them, a daring man named Pierre Verne, watching the
-boats moored on the shore, sought the means of preventing this unlawful
-abduction: he thought he had found one, simple and in his opinion
-infallible, and waited (as we shall see presently) until the veil of
-night concealed him from the eyes of the enemy.[787]
-
-If the prince's councillors were contriving how to get the huguenot
-captives away, certain of the mamelukes were vexed that there were still
-so many at liberty, and that the bishop was so slow in apprehending them
-all without exception. It seemed to them that the _coup d'état_, or
-rather _coup de main_, of which they had dreamt was long in coming; and
-they knew that if a bold stroke is to succeed, the execution must be
-prompt. Some of them began therefore to make amends for official
-slowness by separate acts of violence.
-
-[Sidenote: ATTEMPT TO MURDER CURTET.]
-
-It was harvest time, and Jean Ami Curtet or Curteti, a man well disposed
-towards the Gospel and belonging to a family which Duke Philibert le
-Beau had ennobled, had gone out in the morning to visit a field which he
-possessed on the banks of the Arve. He examined the ears and the stalks:
-everything promised a fine harvest. Knowing that when wheat is once
-ripe, there should be no delay in reaping it, he ordered the labourer
-who accompanied him to begin to cut it. But he was destined to fall
-before his corn, and on that very spot.... A sudden noise was heard,
-some men in disguise fell upon him, knocked him down, beat him and left
-him for dead in his own field. The news soon reached the city. 'It is
-some gentlemen in disguise who have murdered him,' said the people. On
-hearing the mournful news, the relations and friends of Curtet seized
-their arquebuses, and about forty of them hastened towards the Arve
-bridge. They raised the poor man who was seriously wounded, and bearing
-their sad burden returned slowly into the city, their hearts bursting
-with anger. As the procession passed in front of a house where some
-Friburgers lodged, one of the Genevans called them 'Rascals and
-traitors!' The Friburgers, innocent of the attempt, swore that they
-would demand satisfaction for such an outrage; but the sad procession,
-passing slowly through the principal streets of Geneva, under the
-windows of the chief citizens, called up very different thoughts. Men
-asked each other whether the partisans of the prince-bishop intended to
-add murder to illegal arrest; whether it was sufficient to wear a mask
-and strange garments to deprive citizens of their lives, without any
-risk to the murderers; and whether every huguenot, as he was engaging in
-the most innocent occupations, might be suddenly laid dead by a masked
-enemy in the fields bequeathed to him by his ancestors?[788]
-
-While these dangers were accumulating on the heads of the friends of the
-Reformation in Geneva itself, perils not less great were gathering round
-the city. People arriving from the country on the left bank of the Rhone
-and of the lake reported that armed Friburgers and Savoyards were
-assembling in great numbers at the castle of Gaillard, and that one of
-the Wernlis commanded a part of them. It was well known that this
-person, exasperated by the death of his relative the canon, combined in
-his heart, along with the love and respect he bore to his memory, a more
-energetic sentiment—that of revenge. The knights and soldiers who
-gathered round him caught the infection of his anger. But not at
-Gaillard only were armed men assembling, according to the reports of the
-country people: there were some higher up, in the direction of the
-mountains, at Etrembières, where there was a ferry over the Arve to the
-_mandement_ of Mornex. Others were assembling higher still around the
-picturesque hill of Montoux, and especially at the village of Collonges,
-at the foot of the hill. At the same time, the people who came to Geneva
-from the right bank of the Rhone and the lake, from the side of the
-Jura, brought similar tidings, and spoke of armed men in the Gex
-district, and particularly at the Grand Saconnex, three-quarters of a
-league from Geneva. The city was beginning to be surrounded by its
-enemies.[789]
-
-The time seemed near when the projects conceived by the bishop at Arbois
-were about to be realised. That prelate, who reproached his friend
-Besançon Hugues for not having '_barked_' loud enough to prevent the
-fall of his authority, proposed not only to bark himself against the
-'_wolves_,' but also to bite them. One of those priests whom Rome had
-raised to the rank of princes of nations had said: 'I am accustomed to
-act vigorously.... I shall consider what it must be.' The pontiff was
-preparing to fulfil his own prophecies.
-
-[Sidenote: GENEVA AND CALVIN.]
-
-The future of Geneva was indeed threatening. On the 10th of July a
-gloomy veil seemed to be closing over that noble city. A fanatical party
-was preparing the shroud in which it designed to bury the independence
-of the citizens and the Reformation of the Church. That city, for which
-many persons had already anticipated a more glorious destiny, was about
-to be reduced to a mere provincial town, occupying an undistinguished
-place in the world, and subject to the enervating influence of Rome,
-without life and without liberty.
-
-But other things were written in heaven. God was preparing both Geneva
-and Calvin to deliver battle together, on the result of which was to
-depend the triumph of the Gospel and the liberty of modern nations. And
-to prepare for these glorious events, the steps of the great reformer
-were soon to be directed, undesignedly on his part, towards that small
-but energetic city, unique of its kind in Europe, and of which the man
-of God was not then thinking.
-
-We shall not forget that other nations have also added their stone to
-the edifice of civil and religious liberty. From Switzerland, Germany,
-the Low Countries, the British Isles, France, and afterwards America, as
-well as other countries, were to proceed some of the acts destined to
-secure the triumph of God's right and man's liberties.
-
-And yet Calvin and Geneva did something. Calvin possessed an inflexible
-resolution. God had said to this man as he had said of old to one of his
-prophets: _As an adamant harder than flint have I made thy forehead;
-fear them not, neither be dismayed at their looks, though they be a
-rebellious house_.[790] It was not by chance, as it is termed, that such
-a character was called to the midst of a people who had shown in
-terrible struggles, watered with the blood of their best citizens, an
-indomitable resistance to absolute power. At the period of history we
-are describing God was preparing Calvin and Geneva each apart; but the
-union of those two natures, predestined (if I may say so) for each
-other, could not fail to produce remarkable effects in the world. The
-reformer was about to concentrate in this little corner of earth a moral
-force which would contribute to save the Reformation in Europe, and to
-preserve in a few more favoured spots those precious liberties to which
-all nations have equal rights.
-
-It was necessary in the 16th century that a great man and a little
-people should serve as a centre to the Reformation. The firmness of the
-one, the energy of the other, tempered like steel in the waters of the
-Gospel, were to give the tone to nations that were greater though
-possibly less decided, and to impress the seal of unity on other
-energies. _Behold how great a matter a little fire kindleth!_
-
-While waiting for this new dawn, sorrow reigned in Geneva. The reformers
-were expelled, their most fervent disciples were in prison, or wandering
-through the country; and the sword was suspended over the heads of all
-the friends of God's word. The mamelukes triumphed. The friends of the
-Gospel and of liberty asked with anguish if the day of great tribulation
-was come at last.... The wives of the prisoners and of the fugitives
-expected to hear every moment of some new tragedy. Children called for
-their fathers, who came not to the call. Groans and lamentations,
-apprehension and even cries of anger, prevailed everywhere.
-
-[Sidenote: FAITH AND HOPE.]
-
-Only a few souls, putting their trust in God, preserved some little
-hope. Knowing that 'God is not God unless He is on a throne, that is,
-unless he governs the world, they feared nothing, however terrible it
-might be,'[791] from the hands of the powers of the earth. In the midst
-of agitated hearts and dejected faces, there were eyes which, though
-dimmed with tears, were raised towards heaven with a glance of hope and
-faith.
-
-[745] 'Pedestris benda.'—Council Registers of 22nd and 30th June.
-
-[746] 'Valde irritatoria.'—Council Registers of 22nd and 30th June.
-
-[747] Council Registers of 22nd and 30th June. Gautier MS.
-
-[748] Mémoires du diocèse de Genève, par le curé Besson, p. 63.
-
-[749] Council Registers of 1st, 2nd, and 3rd July. Froment, _Gestes de
-Genève_, p. 61. Gautier MS.
-
-[750] La sœur Jeanne de Jussie, _Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 67.
-Gautier MS.
-
-[751] Council Registers of 2nd and 3rd July, 1533. La sœur J. de Jussie,
-_Le Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 67. Gautier MS.
-
-[752] Council Registers of 3rd July, 1533.
-
-[753] La sœur J. de Jussie, _Le Levain_, p. 68.
-
-[754] 'Senatus, sua libertate subnixus, jus suum strenue
-tuetur.'—Spanheim, _Geneva restituta_, p. 62.
-
-[755] 'Libertates, franchesiæ, immunitates, usus, et consuetudines
-civitatis Gebennensis.'—_Mémoires d'Archéologie de la Soc. d'Hist. de
-Genève_, tome ii. p. 312. Council Registers of 4th July, 1533.
-
-[756] 'Alios interfecerunt, alios truncatis manibus et pedibus
-demembraverunt; quibusdam vero oculos fodiebant, quibusdam frontes ferro
-ardente notabant.'—_Scriptur. gallic. et franc._, viii. p. 281.
-
-[757] 'Ad equi caudam pedibus alligatus . . . . vir dives et probus.'—G.
-de Noviguto, _Op._ p. 510.
-
-[758] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 61.
-
-[759] Ibid.
-
-[760] Vol. i. p. 73.
-
-[761] Their names are given by Froment in his _Gestes de Genève_,
-pp. 61-62.
-
-[762] Ibid.
-
-[763] See Plutarch's _Life of Sylla_. Council Registers of 5th
-July.
-
-[764] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 61.
-
-[765] Council Registers of 5th July. La Sœur Jeanne de Jussie, _Le
-Levain du Calvinisme_, p. 64. Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, pp.
-61, 62.
-
-[766] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 62.
-
-[767] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 62.
-
-[768]
-
- ... Who besides me
- Can claim the right to die for thee?—_Alceste._
-
-[769] Froment, _Gestes de Genève_, p. 62.
-
-[770] 'Et illec en faire à leur plaisir.'—Ibid.
-
-[771] Council Registers of 5th July, 1533.
-
-[772] Calvin.
-
-[773] Council Registers of 5th July and 6th August, 1533.
-
-[774] Council Registers of 6th and 7th July.
-
-[775] Calvin, _Op._ passim.
-
-[776] Council Registers of 6th and 7th July, 1533. Roset MS. liv. iii.
-ch. xiv. Gautier MS.
-
-[777] Council Registers of 8th July, 1533. Gautier MS.
-
-[778] 'Nisi vocatis sindicis et quatuor civibus dictæ civitatis.'—Mémoires
-d'Archéologie de la Société d'Histoire de Genève,
-ii. p. 323.
-
-[779] Council Registers of 8th July, 1533. Roset MS. _Chron._ liv.
-iii. ch. xiv. Gautier MS.
-
-[780] Council Registers of 8th July, 1533. Roset MS. _Chron._ liv.
-iii. ch. xiv. Gautier MS.
-
-[781] Council Registers of 9th July, 1533. Roset MS. _Chron._ liv.
-iii. ch. xiv. Gautier MS.
-
-[782] Council Registers of 9th July, 1533. Roset MS. _Chron._ liv. iii.
-ch. xiv. Gautier MS.
-
-[783] 'Cum tota claritas lunæ sit a sole, patet quod jurisdictio
-spiritualis, quæ comparatur soli, habet in se formaliter vel virtualiter
-jurisdictionem temporalem.'—Goldasti, _Monarchia_, ii. p. 1461 et
-seq.
-
-[784] Council Registers of 9th July, 1533.
-
-[785] Council Registers of 9th July, 1533.
-
-[786] Council Registers of 12th July, 1533.
-
-[787] Council Registers of 12th July, 1533.
-
-[788] Council Registers of 14th July, 1533.
-
-[789] Council Registers of 10th July, 1533.
-
-[790] Ezekiel, iii. 9.
-
-[791] Calvin.
-
-
- END OF THE THIRD VOLUME.
- LONDON
- PRINTED BY SPOTTISWOODE AND CO.
- NEW-STREET SQUARE
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of History of the Reformation in Europe
-in the time of Calvin, Volume 3 (of , by Merle d'Aubigne
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HISTORY OF REFORMATION IN EUROPE, VOL 3 ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60774-0.txt or 60774-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/7/7/60774/
-
-Produced by Brian Wilson, David Edwards, Colin Bell, Chris
-Pinfield and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/60774-0.zip b/old/60774-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 5d174a3..0000000
--- a/old/60774-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60774-h.zip b/old/60774-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index c631891..0000000
--- a/old/60774-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60774-h/60774-h.htm b/old/60774-h/60774-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index c7a8dae..0000000
--- a/old/60774-h/60774-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,24755 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=utf-8" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of the
- History of the Reformation in Europe in the Time of Calvin.
- Vol 3 (of 8)
- by J.H. Merle D'Aubigné
- </title>
-
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-
- <style type="text/css">
-
- body {
- margin-left: 6%;
- margin-right: 7%;
- font-size: 100%;
- }
-
- p {
- margin-top: .35em;
- text-indent: 1em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .35em;
- line-height: 120%;
- }
-
-h1 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-style: normal;
- font-size: 125%;
- line-height: 125%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- }
-
- h2, h3 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-style: normal;
- font-size: 115%;
- line-height: 155%;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.75em;
- page-break-before: avoid;
- }
-
- hr {
- margin-left: 25%;
- margin-right: 25%;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- }
-
- /* styles for Transcriber's Note */
- #tnote {
- background-color: #EEE;
- color: inherit;
- margin: 1em 30%;
- padding: 0.5em 1em;
- border: 0.1em solid gray;
- font-size: small;
- }
- #tnote p {
- text-indent: 0;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .75em;
- margin-top: .25em;
- }
-
- /* styles for front matter */
- .front {
- margin: 2em 25%;
- }
- .front p {
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- text-indent: 0;
- text-align: center;
- line-height: 120%;
- }
-
- /* styles for contents */
- .contents {
- margin: 2em 15%;
- font-size: 85%;
- }
- .contents p {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- text-indent: 0;
- text-align: center;
- line-height: 120%;
- }
- .contents .gist {
- margin-left: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0;
- text-indent: -1.5em;
- text-align: left;
- }
-
- /* styles for drop caps */
- p.drop-cap {
- text-indent: 0em;
- }
- p.drop-cap:first-letter {
- float: left;
- margin: 0em 0.1em 0em 0em;
- font-size: 250%;
- line-height: 0.85em;
- }
-
- /* styles for poetry */
- .poetry-container {
- text-align: center;
- }
- .poetry-fn {
- padding-left: 4em;
- }
- .poetry {
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
- }
- .poetry .stanza {
- margin: 0.5em auto;
- }
- .poetry .verse {
- font-size: small;
- text-indent: -3em;
- padding-left: 3em;
- }
- .poetry .indent-4 {
- text-indent: -5em;
- }
- .poetry .indent-2 {
- text-indent: -4em;
- }
- .poetry .quote1 {
- text-indent: -3.25em;
- }
- .poetry .indent2 {
- text-indent: -2em;
- }
- .poetry .indent4 {
- text-indent: -1em;
- }
- .poetry .indent10 {
- text-indent: 2em;
- }
- .poetry .indent15 {
- text-indent: 4.5em;
- }
- .poetry .indent20 {
- text-indent: 7em;
- }
-
- /* styles for letters etc */
- .foot {
- margin-top: 0.25em;
- margin-bottom: 1.5em;
- }
- .top {
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em;
- }
- div.left1 {
- padding-left: 1em;
- text-align: left;
- }
- div.left2 {
- padding-left: 6%;
- text-align: left;
- }
- div.right1 {
- padding-right: 3%;
- text-align: right;
- }
- div.right2 {
- padding-right: 6%;
- text-align: right;
- }
-
- /* style for page numbers */
- .pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- right: 1.5%;
- font-size: small;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- text-align: right;
- }
-
- /* styles for footnotes */
- .fnanchor {
- vertical-align: 20%;
- font-size: x-small;
- }
- .footnote p {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-left: 3%;
- margin-right: 20%;
- font-size: small;
- }
-
- /* style for sidenotes */
- .side {
- text-indent: 0;
- font-size: small;
- }
-
- /* style for page-breaks */
- div.chapter { page-break-before: always; }
-
- /* other styles */
- .center { text-indent: 0; text-align: center; }
- .nodent { text-indent: 0; }
- .smc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .lc { text-transform: lowercase; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .small { font-size: small; }
- .x-small { font-size: x-small; }
- .spaced { letter-spacing: 3px; }
- .gap-above2 { margin-top: 2em; }
-
-@media handheld {
- p.drop-cap:first-letter {
- float: none;
- margin: 0;
- font-size: 100%;
- }
- }
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of History of the Reformation in Europe in the
-time of Calvin, Volume 3 (of 8), by Merle d'Aubigne
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: History of the Reformation in Europe in the time of Calvin, Volume 3 (of 8)
-
-Author: Merle d'Aubigne
-
-Release Date: November 24, 2019 [EBook #60774]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HISTORY OF REFORMATION IN EUROPE, VOL 3 ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Brian Wilson, David Edwards, Colin Bell, Chris
-Pinfield and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div id="tnote">
-
-<p>Transcriber's Note:</p>
-
-<p>Obvious printer errors have been corrected. Hyphenation has been
-rationalised. Inconsistent spelling (including accents and capitals) has
-been retained.</p>
-
-<p>Running headers, at the top of each right-hand page, have been moved
-in front of the paragraphs to which they refer and surrounded by
-=equal signs=.</p>
-
-<p>The anchor for Footnote 615 is missing and has been inserted at a likely
-position.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="front">
-
- <p class="x-small">LONDON<br />
- PRINTED BY SPOTTISWOODE AND CO.<br />
- NEW-STREET SQUARE</p>
-
-<h1><span style="font-size:100%">HISTORY</span><br />
- <span style="font-size:50%">OF</span><br />
- <span style="font-size:100%">THE REFORMATION IN EUROPE</span><br />
- <span style="font-size:75%">IN THE TIME OF CALVIN.</span></h1>
-
- <p>BY J. H. MERLE D'AUBIGNÉ, D.D.</p>
-
- <p class="x-small">AUTHOR OF THE<br />
- 'HISTORY OF THE REFORMATION OF THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY' ETC.</p>
-
-<p><span style="font-size:80%">'Les choses de petite durée ont coutume
-de devenir fanées, quand elles out passé leur temps.</span></p>
-
-<p><span style="font-size:80%">'Au règne de Christ, il n'y a que le
-nouvel homme qui soit florissant, qui ait de la vigueur, et dont il
-faille faire cas.'</span></p>
-
-<div class="right2"><span style="font-size:80%"><span class="smc">Calvin.</span></span></div>
-
- <p>VOL. III.</p>
-
- <p>FRANCE, SWITZERLAND, GENEVA.</p>
-
- <p>LONDON:<br />
- LONGMAN, GREEN, LONGMAN, ROBERTS, &amp; GREEN.<br />
- 1864.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vii" id="Page_vii">{vii}</a></span>
-
-<h2>PREFACE.</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE time at which this volume appears would seem
-to require a few words of introduction.</p>
-
-<p>A day which closes a great epoch in the history of
-modern times, will soon be called to the remembrance
-of Protestant Christians. The registers of the Consistory
-of Geneva for the year 1564, bear under the name
-of Calvin these simple words:</p>
-
-<p><i>Allé à Dieu le Sabmedy 27 de May, entre huit et
-neuf heures du soir.</i><span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_1" id="Ref_1" href="#Foot_1">[1]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The author of this volume, having been invited by
-the Evangelical Alliance to deliver an address on
-<i>The Reformation and the Reformer of Geneva</i>, during
-the Œcumenical Conference held at Geneva in September,
-1861, observed, in the course of his preparatory
-work, this important date, and proposed to the assembly
-that on the tercentenary of the Reformer's death,
-Geneva and the Reformed Churches in general, should
-return thanks publicly to God that he had raised up
-John Calvin in the sixteenth century, to labour at the
-reformation of the Church, by re-establishing Holy
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_viii" id="Page_viii">{viii}</a></span>
-Scripture as the supreme authority, and grace as the
-only means of salvation. The members of the Conference,
-about two thousand in number, adopted the
-resolution by acclamation.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_2" id="Ref_2" href="#Foot_2">[2]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>As Christian Protestants were preparing to celebrate
-the anniversary, the author desired to contribute something
-according to his ability towards reviving the
-memory of the great doctor. Almost at the very time
-when the idea of this Protestant festival occurred to his
-mind, he proposed to describe in a special work, <i>The
-Reformation of Europe in the time of Calvin</i>. Having
-published the first two volumes more than a year ago,
-he looked forward to issuing another before the 27th
-May, and he now presents it to the public. May it
-occupy its humble place among the memorials destined
-to commemorate the Lord's work.</p>
-
-<p>The persecuting jesuitry of the seventeenth century,
-and the superficial incredulity of the eighteenth, have
-calumniated the great Reformer of the West. Times
-have changed, and the nineteenth century is beginning
-to do him justice. His works, even those still in
-manuscript, are sought after and published; his life
-and character, his theology and influence, are the
-object of numerous studies which in general bear the
-stamp of fairness; and even distinguished painters have
-found the subject of their finest pictures in his life.</p>
-
-<p>We entertain no blind admiration for him. We know
-that he has sometimes used bitter language. We acknowledge
-that, sharing in the faults of his century,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_ix" id="Page_ix">{ix}</a></span>
-or rather of ten centuries, he believed that whatever
-infringed on the respect due to God ought to be
-punished by the civil power, quite as much as anything
-that might be injurious to the honour or the life
-of man. We deplore this error. But how can any
-one study with discernment the Reformer's letters and
-other writings, and not recognise in him one of the
-noblest intelligences, one of the most elevated minds,
-one of the most affectionate hearts, and in short, one
-of those true Christian souls who unreservedly devote
-themselves to duty? An eminent scholar, whom Scotland
-still laments—Dr. Cunningham, the successor of
-Chalmers—said, in a work published a short time
-before his death, 'Calvin is the man who, next to
-St. Paul, has done most good to mankind.'</p>
-
-<p>No doubt he will always have his enemies. A journal
-of high character and great circulation in Germany,
-speaking of a libel (<i>Schmæhschrift</i> is the word used),
-published some time ago against Calvin, asks 'From
-what camp does it proceed—from jesuitical Romanism
-or atheistical libertinism?' It is, indeed, from these
-quarters that the enemies of the Reformer principally
-come; but we acknowledge that a man may be opposed
-to Calvin, and yet not belong to either of these schools.</p>
-
-<p>Let us not disquiet ourselves, however, about such
-attacks; Calvin's Master has said, <i>If they do these
-things in a green tree, what shall be done in the dry?</i><span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_3" id="Ref_3" href="#Foot_3">[3]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The author of the present volume thinks that the
-best way of doing justice to his memory, is to make
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_x" id="Page_x">{x}</a></span>
-him known. The reader will meet in this work with
-many sayings and doings of this great man, which are
-not to be found in other histories. If a writer had
-the good fortune to lay before the German public
-some unknown trait of Luther's life, all Germany
-would be taken up with it. Shall we be more indifferent
-to the life of our great Reformer? Certainly
-there are more striking actions in the life of Luther,
-who so easily gains possession of our hearts; but we
-may ask whether there are not features in the life of
-Calvin, which are less frequent in that of the Wittemberg
-doctor; the manner, for instance, in which the
-young doctor of Noyon, wherever he happens to be
-(at Angoulême, Poitiers, &amp;c.), is at once surrounded
-by distinguished men, whom he wins over to the
-truth?</p>
-
-<p>The author desires, however, to remind some of his
-readers, that this book is not the history of Calvin.
-The title expresses that clearly enough: <i>History of the
-Reformation</i> <span class="smc">in Europe</span> <i>in the time of Calvin</i>. It is
-the second series of a work of which the <i>History of
-the Reformation of the Sixteenth Century</i>, was the first.
-The reformation of the Western nations, of which
-Calvin was the soul, having a special character, we
-thought it our duty to devote a special work to it;
-but we shall not confine ourselves to relating the facts
-of the Reformation in which Calvin took a direct part.
-One portion of the fourth volume will describe the
-Reformation in England, from the fall of Wolsey.
-We purpose also to continue retracing the leading
-features of the Reformation in Germany, as we have
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xi" id="Page_xi">{xi}</a></span>
-already done in the first two volumes of this work, in
-which the alliance of Smalkalde, the peace of Nuremberg,
-the emancipation of Wurtemberg, and other
-analogous events have found their place.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_4" id="Ref_4" href="#Foot_4">[4]</a></span>
-It is the
-Reformation as a whole which the author desires to
-delineate.</p>
-
-<p>After speaking of France and Calvin, the author
-relates, in the present volume, facts which concern
-Latin Switzerland (Suisse Romande), the Waldensian
-villages of Piedmont, and finally Geneva.</p>
-
-<p>He does not think it proper to pass by unnoticed
-certain reproaches which the first two volumes have
-brought upon him. 'It is a strange idea,' some have
-said, 'to devote so much space to Geneva. Is it not
-doing too much honour to a little city of a few thousand
-souls? History requires great people and mighty
-personages. We meet with these at least around
-Luther; but in Geneva, we find none but humble
-syndics and petty citizens.'</p>
-
-<p>True, it is so. In this part of our history we have
-to deal with a little city and a little people; and even
-in this democratic age, there are persons who will put
-up with nothing but electors and kings. May we be
-permitted to reply that what is small, as regards outward
-appearances, is sometimes important as regards
-moral influence. This is a truth often reverted to in
-Holy Scripture: <i>The ships, though they be so great, yet
-are they turned about with a very small helm</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_5" id="Ref_5" href="#Foot_5">[5]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This portion of our narrative contains two parts:
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xii" id="Page_xii">{xii}</a></span>
-one is devoted to a man—Calvin; the other to a city—Geneva.
-These two existences seem in the eyes of
-many persons to evolve separately, as if they were
-never to meet. But there is a close relation between
-them: from the very beginning they are destined
-to unite. Each is energetic, though without parade,
-and their alliance will in some future day double their
-strength. When Calvin and Geneva are one, many
-men and nations will feel their powerful and salutary
-influence. It is a marriage that will produce a numerous
-and active posterity. Whatever the friends of
-worldly greatness may say, this union, when it took
-place, was an event of more importance to the human
-race, than that which led a panegyrist of Louis XIV.
-to exclaim, in reference to a celebrated event—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse"><small>Les Bourbons, ces enfants des dieux,</small></div>
-<div class="verse"><small>Unissent leurs tiges fécondes!</small><span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_6" id="Ref_6" href="#Foot_6">[6]</a></span></div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The idea expressed above will not be generally accepted.
-The smallness of the scene which it unfolds
-will prevent the second work from interesting so
-much as the first. And yet there have been critics
-who have felt the importance of the history of Geneva.
-May we be permitted to give a few examples?</p>
-
-<p>The <i>London Review</i> says: 'For the narrowness of
-the field—a small city—the variety of characters presented
-may well astonish us. The dew-drop is big
-enough to hold an image of the heavens and earth;
-and a city closely studied mirrors an empire. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xiii" id="Page_xiii">{xiii}</a></span>
-story is crowded with incidents and surprises, with
-heroic deeds and endurance, and also with foul deeds
-and shames.' Some reviewers have gone so far as
-to place the facts of the second work above those of
-the first. The <i>New York Observer</i> says: 'The story
-of the times in which the Swiss Reformation was
-wrought is surrounded with a sublimity, romantic
-grandeur, and interest that attach to no part of the
-great German movement under Luther.'</p>
-
-<p>We omit the remarks of other journals, particularly
-of the <i>Saturday Review</i>, which rejoices to see 'the
-Genevese champions of liberty brought to light.' We
-must, however, quote one more, the <i>Patriot</i>, which
-says: 'Geneva is one of the smallest and one of the
-most heroic cities of Europe. Had it been predicted,
-its history would have been incredible. Geneva defied
-not only the Duke of Savoy and the Pope, but the
-Emperor Charles V., and dared also his scarcely less
-powerful rival Francis I.; and in spite of them all it
-won, first, its political and then its religious liberties,
-and not for itself only but for Northern Europe.
-More than once it was the Thermopylæ of Protestantism
-and freedom, bravely held by an heroic little
-band scarcely more in comparison with those who
-sought to destroy them than the three hundred men
-of Leonidas in comparison with the Persians.'</p>
-
-<p>But if the opinions of some were favourable to the
-little city, the criticisms of others were not so; and
-as the author will again speak of Geneva in this
-volume, and (God willing) in others, he desires to
-say a word of explanation with reference to these
-objections.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xiv" id="Page_xiv">{xiv}</a></div>
-
-<p>If the work is found uninteresting, the fault must
-be ascribed to the historian, not to the history. The
-talent of one of the great masters of history would
-have prevented all reproach; but the workman
-damaged the work. Can the present generation have
-become so fastidious as to cease to feel interest in what
-is great and beautiful of itself, and to need all the
-refinements of style in order to revive its morbid
-tastes?</p>
-
-<p>Geneva is a republic, and this, perhaps, may also
-have told against our narrative. Some persons have
-fancied that when the author spoke of liberty, he
-meant liberty in the republican form alone, and
-that may have displeased them. But that is a
-mistake; the author has always had in view that
-constitutional liberty which includes all modern
-liberties, and not any particular form of it. He even
-believes that the monarchical form is the most
-favourable to the liberties of a great nation. It has
-been his lot to see side by side, a republic without
-liberty and a monarchy in which all were free.</p>
-
-<p>The coldness, however, of some readers for the
-annals of a little people, proceeds in the main from
-another cause. There are in reality two histories:
-one which is external and makes much noise, but
-whose consequences are not lasting; the other, which
-is internal, has but a mean appearance, like the seed
-when it germinates; and which nevertheless bears
-most precious fruit. Now what pleases the general
-public is a narrative in which great armies manœuvre;
-while, on the other hand, what touches the author
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xv" id="Page_xv">{xv}</a></span>
-is the movement of the soul, of strong characters,
-enthusiastic outbursts, the low estate of humble and
-tranquil hearts, holy affections, life-giving principles,
-the faith which gains victories, and the Divine life
-which regenerates nations—in a word, the moral
-world. The material world, physical and appreciable
-forces, parks of artillery and glittering squadrons,
-possess but a secondary interest in his eyes. Numerous
-cannons (it is true) give more smoke; but to
-those external powers, which destroy life, he prefers
-the internal powers which elevate the soul, warm it
-for truth, for liberty, and for God, and cause it to be
-born again to life everlasting. If these internal forces
-are developed in the midst of a little people, they
-possess all the more attraction for him.</p>
-
-<p>If humble heroes are not popular, shall I therefore
-leave their noble actions in obscurity? Shall I limit
-myself henceforward to bringing princes and kings
-on the stage, with statesmen, cardinals, armies,
-treaties, and empires? No: I cannot do so. I shall
-have to speak, indeed, of Francis I. and Charles V.,
-of Anne Boleyn and Henry VIII., and other great
-personages; but I shall still remain faithful to little
-people and little things. It is indeed a petty city
-whose struggles I am relating; but it is the city that
-for two centuries made head against Rome, until she
-had resigned the task entrusted to her into the hands
-of more powerful nations—England, Germany, and
-America. Let the liberals despise her who at this
-very time most enjoy the fruits of her severe struggles....
-Be it so.... As for me, I have not the courage
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xvi" id="Page_xvi">{xvi}</a></span>
-to follow them. I call to mind the refugees she has
-entertained ... the asylum they found there, and
-which their children still enjoy ... and I desire to
-pay my debt. Oh! if she would only understand that
-she cannot exist with honour in the future, unless,
-while loving liberty, she loves the Gospel more than
-everything else.</p>
-
-<p>Let me say a few words more on the principles
-which have guided me in composing this history.
-What it is necessary for us to study above all things
-is, in my opinion, the beginnings. The formation of
-beings, the origin of the successive phases of humanity,
-possess in my eyes an importance and interest far
-surpassing the exhibition of what these things have
-afterwards become. The creative epoch of Christianity,
-in which we contemplate Christ and His
-apostles, is to me far more admirable than those which
-succeeded it. Similarly the Reformation, which is
-the creation of the evangelical world in modern times,
-has greater attractions for me than the Protestantism
-which comes after. I take a pleasure in watching life
-in its commencement. When the work is done, its
-<i>summa momenta</i> are over. In the first lines of the
-first volume of my first work, I said that I should
-follow this rule. I shall not be reproached for
-remaining faithful to it.</p>
-
-<p>An objection has been raised that this history is too
-full of details. I might reply that it is not good to
-leave facts in vagueness; that they must be analysed
-and described. The surrounding circumstances can
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xvii" id="Page_xvii">{xvii}</a></span>
-alone give an accurate knowledge of events, and impress
-on them the stamp of reality. The author may
-here quote an authority which no one will dispute.
-He remembers, that being in Paris at M. Guizot's, just
-as the first volume of the <i>History of the Reformation</i>
-appeared—about thirty years ago—that illustrious
-writer said to him: 'Give us <span class="smc">details</span>, the rest we
-know.' We do not think that many of our readers
-will fancy they know more than he does.</p>
-
-<p>Another conviction also exercises some influence
-on the character of my narrative. It seems to me
-that the study of the unknown has a peculiar charm.
-Geneva and its struggles for liberty and the Gospel,
-are a <i>terra incognita</i>, except to its citizens and a few
-men of letters. When historians describe ancient or
-modern times—for example, the Revolution of the
-Netherlands, of England, or of France,—they can only
-say a little better what others have already said before
-them. Perhaps there is some advantage in exploring
-a virgin soil—in adding new facts to that treasury
-which ought to be the wisdom of nations. The author
-is not, however, blind to the truth there may have
-been in some of the criticisms upon his work—and
-while following the principles he has laid down, he
-will endeavour to profit by them.</p>
-
-<p>He had hoped to publish the third and fourth
-volumes together this year. Having been forced to
-pass the winter of 1862-63 at Nice, with injunctions
-to abstain from work, he publishes one only now; but
-the next, God willing, will not be long delayed.</p>
-
-<p>On returning from Nice, the author passed through
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xviii" id="Page_xviii">{xviii}</a></span>
-Piedmont, partly to be present at a synod in the
-Waldensian valleys, which reminded him of the one described
-in this volume; and partly to make researches
-among the General Archives of the kingdom at
-Turin. The valuable collections there contained were
-liberally thrown open to him, and he was able to
-select and transcribe some precious documents hitherto
-unknown, of which, as will be seen, he made immediate
-use. While thanking the various persons who
-have been useful to him in his researches, the author
-desires also to express his acknowledgments to the
-translator of this work, Dr. H. White, who has spared
-no pains in conveying to the English reader a faithful
-and animated copy of the original. The translation
-has been carefully revised by the author with great
-care, line by line and word by word, and some changes,
-not in the French edition, have been introduced.</p>
-
-<p>Will this work obtain a success similar to that
-which attended the former one? That treated of the
-Reformation in Germany, with Luther as its hero;
-this treats especially of the Reform in Western Europe,
-with Calvin as its head. The scene of the latter being
-nearer home, ought to have more interest for British
-readers; or shall a new-born passion for Germany and
-the Germans make them look with indifference on all
-that does not directly concern the country of Luther?...
-France, Holland, England, Scotland, Switzerland
-should possess some attraction for them. The history,
-hitherto almost unknown, of the Reformation of Geneva
-is not only attractive in itself, it is also of
-importance with regard to England. Geneva is the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xix" id="Page_xix">{xix}</a></span>
-representative of a Christian system, of a great doctrine,—that
-of the supreme authority of Holy Scripture,
-and of the pure Gospel. The final triumph of
-this doctrine is of the greatest consequence for the
-English churches. A well-known British theologian
-of our day has said: 'Two systems of doctrine are
-now, and probably for the last time, in conflict—the
-Catholic and the <i>Genevan</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_7" id="Ref_7" href="#Foot_7">[7]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>May this work be of some little use in determining
-the issue!</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="left1"><small>La Graveline, Eaux Vives:</small></div>
-<div class="left2"><small><i>Geneva, May 1864.</i></small></div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_1" id="Foot_1" href="#Ref_1">[1]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Went to God between the hours of eight and nine o'clock in the
-evening of Saturday 27th May.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_2" id="Foot_2" href="#Ref_2">[2]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Conférences de Genève en 1861, i. pp. 390, 391.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_3" id="Foot_3" href="#Ref_3">[3]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Luke, xviii. 31.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_4" id="Foot_4" href="#Ref_4">[4]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See Book ii. ch. xxi. xxii. xxvi. xxxi. xxxiii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_5" id="Foot_5" href="#Ref_5">[5]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Epistle of St. James, iii. 4.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_6" id="Foot_6" href="#Ref_6">[6]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Those children of the gods, the Bourbons, unite their fruitful
-races.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_7" id="Foot_7" href="#Ref_7">[7]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Dr. Pusey, <i>Letter to the Archbishop of Canterbury</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="contents">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
- <h2>CONTENTS<br />
- <span style="font-size:50%">OF</span><br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE THIRD VOLUME.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
- <p>BOOK IV.<br />
- TIMES OF HOSTILITY TO THE REFORM IN FRANCE.</p>
-
- <p style="margin-top:1.5em">CHAPTER I.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN, THE FUGITIVE, IN HIS RETREAT AT ANGOULÊME.<br />
- (<span class="smc">November and December 1533.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Rights of Conscience, claimed by Protestants, repudiated by Rome—Calvin
-in Flight—Accepts the Cross—Tillet's House, Rue de Genève—The Library—A
-new Phase—Doxopolis—The quiet Nest—Calvin's Studies—The Forge in which
-Vulcan prepares his Bolts—Men who rank themselves among Beasts—Calvin
-attacks them—Noble intercourse of Friendship</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><span class="smc">Page</span> <a href="#Page_1">1</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER II.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE EXILE TURNS PREACHER.<br />
- (<span class="smc">December 1533 and January 1534.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">The Greek of Claix—Men of Mark gather round him—Conferences at
-Gérac—Prayer and the Search for Truth—Those who believe and those who
-know—Calvin supplies Sermons for the Priests—He preaches in Latin</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_15">15</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER III.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN AT NÉRAC, WITH ROUSSEL AND LEFÈVRE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Winter 1533-34.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Religious Awakening in the South—Margaret arrives at Nérac—Evangelical
-movement around her—Refugees, the Poor, and Children—Calvin goes to
-Nérac—Roussel's Concessions and Calvin's Firmness—A candid old
-Man—Lefèvre predicts Calvin's Future—A Lesson received by Calvin—He
-rebukes the unequally yoked</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_23">23</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER IV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">A DRAMATIC REPRESENTATION AT THE COURT OF NAVARRE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Winter 1533-34.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">The Lord's Supper at Pau—Opposition of the King of Navarre—The Mystery
-of <i>The Nativity</i>—A Carpenter and a young Jewess—They are
-ill-received at Bethlehem—They Lodge in a Stable—The Lord sends His
-Angels—Joseph returns, and worships the Child—Amusing Interlude—Conversation
-between the Shepherds—The Angels announce the
-Nativity—Shepherds and Shepherdesses go to Bethlehem—The Shepherds
-discover the Child—Adoration—Satan appears—He denies the
-Incarnation—Satan conquered, and Christ triumphs—Effects produced by the
-Mystery</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_32">32</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER V.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN AT POITIERS, AT THE BASSES-TREILLES, AND IN
- ST. BENEDICT'S CAVE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Spring 1534.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Calvin and Du Tillet at Poitiers—Calvin at the University—Awakening and
-Renewal—Friends and Enemies—Calvin's successful Teaching—Invited to the
-Lieutenant-General's—Conversation about Luther and Zwingle—Garden of the
-Basses-Treilles—The first Calvinist Council—Calvin's Grotto—Earnest
-Prayer—Calvin speaks against the Mass—Interruption—Appeal—The Lord's
-Supper</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_51">51</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER VI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN AND HIS DISCIPLES BEGIN THE
- EVANGELISATION OF FRANCE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Spring 1534.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Calvin and the four Brothers St. George—They desire to remain Abbots,
-although Evangelical—They sacrifice a brilliant Position—France on the
-point of awaking—The Missionaries sent out—Babinot and Vèron—The
-Reformation and the Young—The Reformation and Science—How Faith and
-Science should unite—Abusive Language against Calvin—Calvin leaves
-Poitiers—His Letter to the Church of Poitiers—He will not be the Pope's
-Vassal—Poitiers regrets Calvin—Calvin resigns his Benefices—His
-Influence at Noyon</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_65">65</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER VII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE EVANGELICAL CHRISTIANS OF PARIS IN 1534.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Summmer 1534.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Progress of the Gospel in France—Calvin arrives in Paris—Martyrdom of
-Pointet—Milon the Paralytic—His Gaieties and his Fall—His Conversion—His
-Christian Life—Du Bourg, the Draper—Valeton, the Receiver of
-Nantes—Giulio Camillo and his Machine—Contrary Opinions of Sturm and
-Calvin—A Scholar and a Bricklayer—Catelle—A characteristic of Calvin</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_79">79</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER VIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN'S FIRST RELATIONS WITH THE LIBERTINES
- AND WITH SERVETUS.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Summer 1534.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">The Spirituals or Libertines—Calvin a Conservative—Murder and
-Theft—Calvin begins the Struggle—False Liberality of the
-Spirituals—Treatise against the Libertines—Servetus—He desires to win
-Calvin and France—Calvin and Servetus on the Trinity—Luther, Zwingli,
-and Bucer against Servetus—A Discussion appointed—Servetus stays
-away—<i>Psychopannychia</i>—Character of Calvin's Divinity—His Happiness
-at La Forge's—Determines to leave Paris—The Travellers robbed—They
-arrive at Strasburg</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_92">92</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER IX.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE PLACARDS.<br />
- (<span class="smc">October 1534.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Temporisers and Scripturists—Feret sent by the Christians of Paris to
-consult Farel—Movement in Switzerland—Farel writes the Placards—Examined
-by the Paris Christians—Shall they be published?—Posting of the
-Placards—Their Contents—Their Violence neutralises their Success</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_100">100</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER X.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE KING'S ANGER.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Autumn 1534.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Commotion caused by the Placards—A New Missive—Placard posted on the
-King's Door—His Indignation—The King's Orders—Anguish of the
-Reformed—Morin lays his Plans—The Sketch-maker betrays his
-Brethren—Arrests—Valeton and his Books are taken—Du Bourg and the
-Paralytic seized—Numerous Arrests—Duprat and De Tournon excite the
-King—Grief of Queen Margaret—She intercedes in Roussel's Favour—Beda
-accuses the King—<i>Mass of Seven Points</i>—The Queen's Preachers
-before the King</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_123">123</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">EXPIATIONS AND PROCESSIONS.<br />
- (<span class="smc">End of 1534 and Beginning of 1535.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Milon's Martyrdom—Du Bourg at the Stake—Poille's Sufferings and
-Courage—Terror and Emigration—Quality of the Fugitives—Hardships of the
-Flight—Roussel, Berthaud and Courault—The King urged to
-persecute—Preparations for the Procession—The Procession—Calvin on the
-Relics—Penitence of the King—The Two Januaries 21</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_140">140</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">ELOQUENCE AND TORTURES OF FRANCIS I.<br />
- (<span class="smc">January 21, 1535.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Dinner at the Bishop's—The King's Speech—Effects of the King's
-Rhetoric—The Procession on its Return—The Strappado—Martyrdom of
-Valeton—Torture at the Halles—Proclamations and Punishments—La Forge and
-other Martyrs—La Gaborite—The Holy Candle—The King's Motives—France
-prepared for the Reform—Sturm's Sorrow—His Letter to Melanchthon—
-Luther's Sentiments—The King's Hatred—His Letter to the Germans</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_157">157</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN AT STRASBURG, WITH ERASMUS, AND AT BASLE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Summer and Autumn 1534.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Calvin's Mission—Strasburg—The College and Matthew Zell—The Pastor's
-Wife—Bucer and Capito—Deficiencies in the Strasburg Divines—Calvin
-leaves Strasburg—Erasmus—His Interview with Calvin—Catherine Klein at
-Basle—Peter Ramus on Calvin—Inward Work in Calvin—Cop at Basle—Grynæus
-and Calvin—Fabri—Calvin exhorts to Peace—Translations of the Bible</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_177">177</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XIV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">INSTITUTES OF THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Winter 1534.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">News of the Paris Martyrs—Calvin advocates Compassion—Fresh
-Victims—Indignation in Germany—Oswald Myconius—His first Sermon—His
-Opinions on the Martyrdoms—Du Tillet's Anguish—Effect of these Cruelties
-on Calvin—Determines to plead the Cause of his Brethren—Theology
-restored—The Reformation is a Creation—The <i>Institutes</i>—A
-Consciousness of Divinity within us—Cavillers and Testimony of the Holy
-Ghost—Expiation—Faith and Charity—The Flame in the Heart—Assurance of
-Victory—Grace is everything—God does not ordain Evil—Morality restored
-in Religion—The Church—Appreciation of the <i>Institutes</i></p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_194">194</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN ADDRESSES THE KING AND DEPARTS FOR ITALY.<br />
- (<span class="smc">August 1535.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">The Martyrs Cornon and Brion—Letter to the King—The Evangelical Doctrine
-is Truth—Truth Attacked and not Defended—Reign of Brigandage—The
-Invincible Doctrine—Cause of the zeal of the Monks—Is the Doctrine
-new?—Testimony of the Fathers—State of the World—Where the True Church
-is to be found—Satan quiet or active—Tortures and Patience—Printing of
-the <i>Institutes</i>—Calvin starts for Italy—His Motives for going</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_216">216</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>BOOK V.<br />
- STRUGGLES OF THE REFORMATION.</p>
-
- <p>CHAPTER I.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">EFFORTS IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.<br />
- (1521.)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Uses of Opposition—Conciliation needful—Stagnation and new
-Struggles—Vaud and Geneva—Farel—His Portrait—Greatness of the beginnings
-of the Reform—The General prepares for Conquest—Fabri visits Farel—Farel
-desires to return to the Combat—The Indulgence Seller at Orbe—Farel
-preaches the Pardon of the Saviour—Friar Michael aroused against him—His
-first and second Sermon—Hollard gives the lie—He is severely beaten</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_232">232</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER II.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">PLOT OF THE WOMEN AGAINST REFORM;
- FAREL'S PREACHING.<br />
- (1531.)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">The Bailiff of Berne arrives at Orbe—The Monk in Prison—Romain compelled
-to run for his Life—Beaten by the Women—Intercession in the Monk's
-favour—Farel arrives at Orbe—Tumult—Plot of the Women—Friar Michael's
-Examination—Michael liberated and Farel preaches—Singular
-Congregation—Procession and Sermon—Farel preaches on Penance,
-Indulgences, Confession, Images, and a Worldly Life—Farel hard to please
-with regard to the Ministry</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_248">248</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER III.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">A NEW REFORMER AND AN IMAGE-BREAKER.<br />
- (1531.)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Pierre Viret goes to Paris—Converted and returns to Orbe—His
-Struggles—Conversion of his Parents—Farel and Viret—Viret preaches at
-Orbe—The Peter, Paul, and John of Switzerland—Conversion of Elizabeth
-d'Arnex—Conversion of a Priest—The Lord's Supper at Orbe—All the Images
-thrown down—Arrest of the Priests—The Banneret appeals to the
-People—Release of the Priests—The Iconoclasts imprisoned</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_262">262</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER IV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE BATTLES OF GRANDSON.<br />
- (1531-32.)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Malady of petty Questions—Farel's Wisdom—How he raised Recruits-
-War-cries of the Reformers—Farel marches to Battle—Battle of
-Grandson in 1476—Farel turned out by the Grey Friars—Struggle in the
-Benedictine Convent—The Church opened to the Reformers—The Reformers
-imprisoned—Reinforcements from Yverdun and Lausanne—The Grey-Friar's
-Sermon—Fresh Struggle beginning—The Sentinel-Monks—Conspiracy of the
-devout Women-Conversion of the Monks—Christmas Festival at
-Orbe—Disorders of the Catholics—Council of the Reformed—First Act of
-Religious Liberty</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_276">276</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER V.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE WALDENSES APPEAR.<br />
- (<span class="smc">1526 to October 1532.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">The Waldenses enquire about the Reform—Deputation to Œcolampadius—
-Confession of the Barbes—Origin of the Waldenses—Marriage—Work—The
-Mass—Natural Strength—Brotherly Love of Œcolampadius—Proposals for a
-Synod—Martyrdom of Masson—Farel's Danger—His Journey and Arrival in the
-Valleys—Conversations—Opening of the Synod—Election and Works—Farel's
-Opinions gain ground—Discussion on Compromises—Harmony between the
-Waldensians and Reformers—Old Waldensian manuscripts—Translation of the
-Bible determined upon—Farel desires to go to Geneva</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_293">293</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER VI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">PLANS OF THE EMPEROR, THE DUKE OF SAVOY,
- AND THE BISHOP AGAINST GENEVA.<br />
- (1530-1532.)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Bellegarde arrives at Augsburg—His Audience with Charles V.—The
-Emperor's Anxieties—His Answer—Bellegarde's Letter to the Duke
-of Savoy—His Designs against Geneva—Revolutionary Measures—The
-Bishop sends his Secretary to Geneva—His constant Agitation and
-Anger—His displeasure against B. Hugues—Charles V. orders Geneva
-to expel the Sectarians—The <i>Zwing-Uri</i> of Geneva—Freedom in
-sight</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_312">312</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER VII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE REFORMERS AND THE REFORMATION
- ENTER GENEVA.<br />
- (<span class="smc">October 1532.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Farel and Saunier go to Geneva—Farel consults Olivetan—Farel calls
-upon the Huguenot Leaders—They go to hear Farel—He shows them
-their Deficiencies—Farel and his Hearers—Sensation in the City—His
-second Lecture and its Effects—The Women of Geneva opposed to
-the Reform—Farel before the Town Council—The Council divided—The
-name of Berne protects him—The Episcopal Council deliberates—Conspiracy
-against Farel—Farel summoned before Clergy</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_328">328</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER VIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE REFORMERS ARE EXPELLED FROM GENEVA.<br />
- (<span class="smc">October 1532.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Farel before the Episcopal Council—Speech of the Official—Veigy's
-Invectives—Farel's Answer—A clerical Tumult—Syndic Hugues
-interposes—Danger of Farel and his Friends—Olard tries to shoot
-Farel—Farel turned out of Geneva—A Storm—A Priest tries to stab Farel—He
-is protected by the Magistrates—Farel's Departure</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_343">343</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER IX.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">A JOURNEY TO THE VALLEYS OF PIEDMONT, AND STRUGGLES NEAR
- NEUCHÂTEL.<br />
- (<span class="smc">End of 1532.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Farel desires to send Froment to Geneva—Recollections of their common
-Dangers—Olivetan requested to translate the Bible—He fears the
-Critics—Olivetan departs for the Valleys—An inhospitable Woman—Olivetan
-and his three sick Friends—A Monk of St. Bernard—Olivetan in the
-Valley—Neuchâtel—A Fight in the Church—Decree of the Council—A strange
-Christmas Festival—The Curé heads the Battle—A Christmas
-Sermon—Locle—The Oxen of the Brenets</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_356">356</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER X.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE SCHOOLMASTER AND CLAUDINE LEVET.<br />
- (<span class="smc">November and December 1532.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Froment departs for Geneva—Bad Reception at first—Desires to leave the
-City—His Prospectuses—Great Success—Froment teaches—Difference between
-Rome and the Reform—The bewitched Paula takes Claudine to hear
-Froment—Claudine crosses herself and listens—Shut up three Days and
-three Nights with the Gospel—Her Conscience finds Peace—Her Conversion
-and Interview with Froment</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_373">373</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">FORMATION OF THE CHURCH. FRIENDS AND OPPONENTS.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Middle to the End of December 1532.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">The Bishop's Anger—Progress of the Gospel—Claudine lays aside her costly
-Attire—The Ladies of Geneva—Conversion of many of them—Little
-Assemblies—The Church without form and the Church formed—A Monk preaches
-the Gospel—Th. Moine and a Sermon at the Madeleine—Four Huguenots demand
-a Disputation—Discussion with the Vicar—The Armed Priests—Tumult at the
-Madeleine—The Vicar of St. Germain's—Froment forbidden to preach—St.
-Sylvester's Eve</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_388">388</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE SERMON AT THE MOLARD.<br />
- (<span class="smc">New Year's Day, 1533.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Crowd at Froment's Lodgings—He is called to preach at the Molard—Invites
-the People to pray—His Text—Sermon at the Molard—The Interruption—The
-False Prophets—God the sole Judge—The Magistrates interfere—Froment's
-Escape and Concealment—Meeting of the Council—Serious posture of
-Affairs—Froment assaulted—Forced to leave Geneva</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_403">403</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">HOLY SCRIPTURE AND THE LORD'S SUPPER
- AT GENEVA.<br />
- (<span class="smc">January and February 1533.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Romish Reaction—Friar Bocquet sent away—Baudichon de la Maisonneuve—
-Evangelical Meetings—Two kinds of Protestantism—Olivetan's
-Work—Translation of the Bible—The Word and the Sacrament—Guerin—First
-Sacrament at Pré l'Evêque—Guerin forced to leave—The Two Winds</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_423">423</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XIV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">FORMATION OF A CATHOLIC CONSPIRACY.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Lent, 1533.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Olivetan's Remonstrance and Exile—Preparations of the Clerical Party—De
-la Maisonneuve at Berne—Berne demands Freedom of Worship—Two Hundred
-Catholics before the Council—They ask for Justice—Agitation against the
-Lutherans—The Conspirators assemble—Secret Plots—Speeches of the
-Leaders—Solemn Oath—Catholics meet at St. Pierre's Church—The Reformed
-at Maisonneuve's—Goulaz and Vandel exhort to Peace—Vandel wounded</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_434">434</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">FIRST ARMED ATTACK OF THE CATHOLICS UPON
- THE REFORMATION.<br />
- (<span class="smc">March 28, 1533.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">The Catholics prepare to fight—The Standards of the King go forth—The
-Troops are formed—An Alarm—Muster at the Molard—The three Corps—The
-Artillery and the Banner—The Prayer of the Nuns—Agitation in the City—A
-cruel husband—Reinforcement of Women and Children—Scene at
-Maisonneuve's—Consolation and Prayer—Fight between Philippe and
-Bellessert—The St. Gervaisians retire—Claudine Levet pursued—Plan to
-burn out the Huguenots—Peigy's Troop change their Road—The Reformed in
-Line of Battle—The Cannons planted—The Trumpet sounds—Tears and Prayers</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_448">448</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XVI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">TRUCE BETWEEN THE TWO PARTIES.<br />
- (<span class="smc">From March 28 to May 4, 1533.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Mediation of the Friburgers—Their Language to the Syndics and the
-Priests—A Consultation—Joy and Murmuring—Plan of Reconciliation—Articles
-of Peace—Dominican Song of Victory—The Sacrament on Holy Thursday—Alarm
-of the Catholics—The Dominican at St. Pierre's—Embassy to Berne—Is
-followed by Maisonneuve—His Speech to the Council of Berne—The Syndic is
-Dumb</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_470">470</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XVII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">SECOND ATTACK, IN WHICH THE LEADER PERISHES.<br />
- (<span class="smc">May 4, 1533.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">War of the Tongue—Huguenots depart for Lyons—Festival of the Holy
-Winding-Sheet—High Mass—Importance of the Struggle—Ideas become Acts—A
-Holiday Evening ends in a Brawl—An Agent of the Clergy excites the
-Crowd—Marin de Versonay—The Tocsin sounds—Wernli arms for the
-Fight—Decisive Moment—His Appeals—His first Challenge—Skirmish in the
-Dark—Wernli heads the Fight—His Death—How the Night was spent</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_486">486</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XVIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE CANON'S DEATH MADE A WEAPON AGAINST
- THE REFORM.<br />
- (<span class="smc">May to July 1533.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">The Corpse discovered—Distress of the Catholics—Arrival of Wernli's
-Relations—The Burial—A Miracle—Preparations to crush the Reform—The
-Bishop at Arbois—The Pope orders him to return to Geneva—His
-Indecision—Determines to go—Importunity of the Mamelukes' Council—A Coup
-d'Etat necessary—Two Victories to be won—Friburg demands the Trial of
-Wernli's Murderers—Declaration of Religious Liberty</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_503">503</a></div>
-</div>
-
- <p>CHAPTER XIX.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CATASTROPHE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Beginning of July 1533.</span>)</span></p>
-
-<p class="gist">Preparations to receive the Bishop—His Entrance—The Bishop at the
-General Council—Agitation—The Magistrates consult the Charters—The
-Bishop's despotic Intentions—Proscriptions—The Huguenots
-entrapped—Escape of many—One of their Wives imprisoned—Strange Request
-of the Bishop—Levet's Flight—He is pursued and taken—Various Rumours—The
-Bishop cites the Prisoners before him—Attacks on the Huguenots—The
-Courage of the Genevese—Elders of Geneva before the Bishop—The Bishop
-persists in his Illegality—Firmness of the Genevese—The Friburgers call
-for Vengeance—G. Wernli's Speech—Refusal of the Two Hundred—Arguments
-for the Temporal Power—Opposition to Absolute Power—The Prisoners in
-their Dungeons—Impatience of the Mamelukes—Attempt to murder
-Curtet—Dangers accumulating—Geneva and Calvin—Triumph and
-Tribulation—Hope</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right2"><a href="#Page_516">516</a></div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">{1}</a></span>
-
-<p class="center"><span style="font-size:125%">HISTORY</span><br />
- <span style="font-size:50%">OF</span><br />
- <span style="font-size:125%">THE REFORMATION IN EUROPE</span><br />
- <span style="font-size:100%">IN THE TIME OF CALVIN.</span></p>
-
- <h2>BOOK IV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">TIMES OF HOSTILITY TO THE REFORM IN FRANCE.</span></h2>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER I.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN, THE FUGITIVE, IN HIS RETREAT AT ANGOULÊME.<br />
- (<span class="smc">November and December, 1533.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">RELIGION needs liberty, and the convictions inspired
-by her ought to be exempt from the control
-of the Louvre and of the Vatican. Man's conscience
-belongs to God alone, and every human power that
-encroaches on this kingdom and presumes to command
-within it is guilty of rebellion against its lawful
-sovereign. Religious persecution deserves to be
-reprobated, not only in the name of philosophy, but
-above all in the name of God's right. His sovereign
-Majesty is offended when the sword enters into the
-sanctuary. A persecuting government is not only
-illiberal, it is impious. Let no man thrust himself
-between God and the soul! The spot on which they
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">{2}</a></span>
-meet is holy ground. Away, intruder! Leave the
-soul with Him to whom it belongs.</p>
-
-<p>These thoughts naturally occur to us as we approach
-an epoch when a persecuting fanaticism broke
-out in France, when scaffolds were raised in the
-streets of Paris, and when acts of terrible cruelty
-were enthusiastically applauded by a royal cortége.</p>
-
-<p>These rights of conscience, which we record, are
-not new. They date neither from our century, nor
-from the sixteenth. The Saviour established them
-when he said: '<i>Render unto Cæsar the things which
-are Cæsar's, and</i> <span class="smc">unto God the things that are God's</span>.'
-Since that hour they have been maintained
-by many courageous voices. During three centuries
-the martyrs said to the pagan emperors: 'Is it not
-an irreligious act to forbid my worshipping the God
-whom I like, and to force me to worship the god
-whom I dislike?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_8" id="Ref_8" href="#Foot_8">[8]</a></span>
-In the fourth century Athanasius
-and Hilary told the Arian princes: 'Satan uses violence,
-he dashes in the doors with an axe ... but
-persuasion is the only weapon truth employs.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_9" id="Ref_9" href="#Foot_9">[9]</a></span>
-In later years, when the barbarians desired to bend the
-Church under the weight of brute force, the hitherto
-servile clergy declared as loudly as they could that
-religious doctrine did not fall under the dominion of
-the temporal sword.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=ROME, A PERSECUTING POWER.=</p>
-
-<p>When, therefore, in the bloody days of the Reformation,
-the power of Rome, uniting in some countries
-with the power of the princes, wished to constrain
-men's souls and force them to submit to its laws, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">{3}</a></span>
-evangelical christians, by claiming liberty in their
-turn, only asserted the great principle of Jesus Christ
-formerly adopted by the Church herself. But, strange
-to say! this principle which she had found so admirable,
-when she had to employ it in self-defence, became
-impious when it was appealed to in order to
-escape from her persecutions. Such inconsistencies
-frequently occur in the history of fallen humanity.
-We must call them to remembrance though it be with
-sorrow. There have always existed many generous
-persons in the bosom of catholicity who have protested
-with horror against the frightful punishments by
-which it was attempted to make our forefathers renounce
-their faith; and there are still more now, for
-the laws of religious liberty are gradually becoming
-established among nations. But we must never forget
-that two centuries of cruel persecution was the
-welcome the world gave to the Reformation. When
-the day of St. Bartholomew saw the streets of the
-capital of the Valois run with blood,—when ruffians
-glutted their savage passions on the corpse of that
-best and greatest of Frenchmen, Coligny—immense
-was the enthusiasm at Rome, and a fierce shout of exultation
-rang through the pontifical city.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_10" id="Ref_10" href="#Foot_10">[10]</a></span>
-Wishing to perpetuate the glory of the massacre of the huguenots,
-the pope ordered a medal to be struck, representing
-that massacre and bearing the device: <i>Hugonotorum
-strages</i>. The officers of the Roman court still sell
-(as we know personally) this medal to all who desire
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">{4}</a></span>
-to carry away some remembrance of their city. Those
-times are remote; milder manners prevail, but it is
-the duty of protestantism to remind the world of the
-use made by the court of Rome, on emerging from the
-middle ages, of that <i>pre-eminence</i> in catholic countries,
-which she contends belongs to her always, and
-which she is still ready to claim 'with the greatest
-vigour.' Resistance to this cruel pre-eminence cost
-the Reformation torrents of the purest blood; and
-it is this blood which gives us the right to protest
-against it.</p>
-
-<p>Before we describe the scenes of horror that defiled
-the streets of Paris at this period, we must follow
-in his flight that young doctor, who, though illustrious
-in after years, was now the victim of persecution.</p>
-
-<p class="gap-above2">The feast of All Saints being the day when the
-university celebrated the opening of the academical
-year, Calvin (as we have seen), through the channel
-of his friend Cop the rector, had displayed before
-the Sorbonne and a numerous audience the great
-principles of the Gospel. University, monks, priests
-had all been excited, scandalised, and exasperated;
-parliament had interfered; and Cop and Calvin were
-obliged to flee.</p>
-
-<p>That man whose hand was one day boldly to raise
-the standard of the Gospel in the world, whose teaching
-was to enlighten many nations, and whose eloquence
-was to stir all France; that man who was yearly to
-send forth from Geneva some thirty or forty missionaries,
-and whose letters strengthened all the Churches;
-that man, still young, pursued by the lieutenant-criminal
-and his sergeants, had been forced to steal out
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">{5}</a></span>
-of his chamber into the street and disguise himself in
-strange garments; and in the beginning of November,
-he found himself in the back streets on the left bank of
-the Seine looking on every side lest there should be
-any one on his track. He had never been more tranquil
-than at the moment when struck by this sudden blow.
-Francis I. resisted the insolence of the monks; the
-Sorbonne had been compelled to disavow their most
-fanatical acts; many Lutherans were able to preach
-the Gospel freely to those around them; a reforming
-movement seemed spreading far and wide through
-France ... when suddenly the lightning darted
-forth and struck the young reformer. 'I thought I
-should be able to devote myself to God's service without
-hindrance,' said he in his flight; 'I promised myself
-a tranquil career; ... but at that very moment,
-what I expected least, namely persecution and exile,
-were at the door.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_11" id="Ref_11" href="#Foot_11">[11]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN'S FLIGHT.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin did not regret, however, the testimony he
-had borne to the truth, and resigned himself to exile.
-Far from resembling the unbroken horse (to use
-his own expression) who refuses to carry his rider,
-he voluntarily bowed his shoulders to the cross.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_12" id="Ref_12" href="#Foot_12">[12]</a></span>
-<i>Never tire in the middle of your journey</i>, was his maxim always.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_13" id="Ref_13" href="#Foot_13">[13]</a></span>
-Yet as he travelled along those rough byroads
-of the Mantois, he often asked himself what this
-severe dispensation was to teach him. Was he to
-retire from Paris and renounce the idea of making
-that city the centre of his christian activity? That
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">{6}</a></span>
-would, indeed, be a hard trial for him. His people
-seemed to be waking, and he must leave them!...
-Still he kept on his way. On arriving near Mantes, he
-went to the residence of the Sire de Haseville, to whom
-he was known, and there remained in hiding several
-days. He then resumed his journey, either because
-he thought himself too near his enemies, or because
-his host was afraid.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin took the road to the south; he crossed the
-charming plains and valleys of Touraine, entered the
-pasturages and forests of Poitou, and thence turned
-his steps towards Saintonge and the Angoumois.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_14" id="Ref_14" href="#Foot_14">[14]</a></span>
-This latter province was the end of his journey. On
-a hill at whose foot the Charente 'softly flowed,'
-stood the cathedral, the old castle and city of Angoulême,
-the birth-place of Margaret of Navarre. Calvin
-entered the gates of this antique town, and made his
-way to one of the principal streets, which afterwards
-received in his honour the name it still bears—<i>Rue de
-Genève</i>. In that street was a large mansion whose
-principal apartment was a long gallery in which more
-than four thousand volumes, printed or manuscript,
-were collected: it was one of the most valuable private
-libraries then existing in France.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_15" id="Ref_15" href="#Foot_15">[15]</a></span>
-The fugitive halted
-before this house. Learned works were doubtless well
-calculated to attract him; but he was animated by
-another motive also. This mansion belonged to the
-family of Du Tillet, whose members were reckoned
-among the most learned in the kingdom. The father
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">{7}</a></span>
-and two of his sons were detained in Paris by their
-duties in the Chamber of Accounts, at the Louvre
-and in parliament; but another son, Louis, canon of
-the cathedral, was at Angoulême, and lived alone in
-that large house, when he was not at his parish of
-Claix. Louis was Calvin's friend,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_16" id="Ref_16" href="#Foot_16">[16]</a></span>
-and it was the
-remembrance of this gentle, mild, and rather weak
-young man, whose disposition was very engaging,
-that had induced the fugitive to bend his steps towards
-the Angoumois.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=DU TILLET'S HOUSE AND LIBRARY.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin stopped in front of his friend's house and
-knocked at the door, it opened, and he went in: we
-cannot say whether he found the canon there or not,
-but at all events the latter was filled with joy when
-he heard of the arrival of the young doctor, whose
-'great gifts and grace' he admired so much, and
-whose intimacy had been so sweet to him. Calvin
-told him how he had been obliged to flee from the
-attacks of the parliament, and of the danger to which
-those who gave him refuge were exposed. But Du
-Tillet thought himself the happiest of men, if he could
-but shelter his friend from the search of his enemies.
-Once more he was about to enjoy those spiritual
-and edifying conversations which he had so often
-regretted and could never forget.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_17" id="Ref_17" href="#Foot_17">[17]</a></span>
-Even the persecution
-of which Calvin was a victim made him all
-the dearer to his friend; and Louis introduced him
-into the vast gallery, installed him in the midst of
-the most eminent minds of all ages, whose celebrated
-works loaded the numerous shelves, and established
-him, as in a safe retreat, in that beautiful library
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">{8}</a></span>
-which seemed prepared for the lofty intelligence and
-profound studies of the theologian.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin, who needed retirement and repose, felt
-happy. 'I am never less alone than when alone,' he
-used to say.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_18" id="Ref_18" href="#Foot_18">[18]</a></span>
-At one time, he gave thanks to God;
-at another, taking the precious volumes from the
-shelves around him, he opened and read them, assuaging
-the thirst for knowledge which consumed him. A
-learned retreat, like that now given him, was the dream
-of his whole life. Pious reflections crowded into his
-heart, and if during his flight he had felt a momentary
-darkness, the light now shone into his soul. 'The
-causes of what happens to us are often so hidden,' he
-said in after times, 'that human affairs seem to turn
-about at random, as on a wheel, and the flesh tempts
-us to murmur against God, because he sports with
-men, tossing them here and there like balls, ... but
-the issue shows us that God is on the watch for the
-salvation of believers.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_19" id="Ref_19" href="#Foot_19">[19]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=DOXOPOLIS.=</p>
-
-<p>A new epoch, a new phase, was beginning for Calvin:
-he was leaving school, he was about to enter upon
-life, and a pause was necessary. The future reformer,
-before rushing into the storms of an agitated career,
-was to be tempered anew in the fire of the divine
-Word and of prayer. Great struggles awaited him: the
-Church was waking up from the slumber of death,
-throwing back the winding-sheet of popery, and rising
-from the sepulchre. One universal cry was heard
-among all the nations of the West. At Worms, a monk
-had demanded the Holy Scriptures of God in presence
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">{9}</a></span>
-of the imperial diet; a priest had demanded them at
-Zurich; students had demanded them at Cambridge;
-at Spire, an assembly of princes had declared that they
-would hear nothing but the preaching of that heavenly
-Word; and its life-bearing doctrines had been solemnly
-confessed at Augsburg in the presence of Charles V.
-Germany, Switzerland, England, the Low Countries,
-Italy—all Europe, in a word, was stirred at the sight
-of that new faith which had come forth from the tomb
-of ages.... France herself was moved. How could a
-young man so modest, so timid, who feared so much
-all contact with the passions of men—how could
-Calvin battle for the faith, if he did not receive in the
-retirement of the wilderness the baptism of the Spirit
-and of fire?</p>
-
-<p>And this baptism he received. Alone and forced to
-hide himself, he experienced an inward peace and
-joy he had never known before. 'By the exercise
-of the cross,' he said, 'the Son of God receives us
-<i>into his order</i>, and makes us partakers of his glory.'
-Accordingly he gave a very extraordinary name to
-the obscure town of Angoulême: he called it <i>Doxopolis</i>,
-the city of glory, and thus he dated his letters.
-How pleasant and glorious this retirement proved
-to him! He had found his Wartburg, his <i>Patmos</i>,
-and unable any longer to hide from his friends the
-happiness he enjoyed, he wrote to Francis Daniel of
-Orleans: 'Why cannot I have a moment's talk with
-you?' he said, 'not indeed to trouble you with my
-disputes and struggles; why should I do so? I think
-that what interests you more just now is to know
-that I am well, and that, if you take into account
-my known <i>indolence</i>, I am making progress in my
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">{10}</a></span>
-studies.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_20" id="Ref_20" href="#Foot_20">[20]</a></span>
-Then after speaking of Du Tillet's kindness,
-of his own responsibility, and of the use he ought
-to make of his leisure ... the joy which filled his
-heart ran over, and he exclaimed with thankfulness:
-'Oh! how happy I should think myself, if the peace
-which I now enjoy should continue during the time of
-my retirement and exile.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_21" id="Ref_21" href="#Foot_21">[21]</a></span>
-The Lord, whose providence
-foresees everything, will provide. Experience has
-taught me that we cannot see much beforehand what
-will happen to us. At the very moment when I promised
-myself repose, the storm burst suddenly upon me.
-And then, when I thought some horrible den would
-be my lot, a quiet <i>nest</i> was unexpectedly prepared for
-me.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_22" id="Ref_22" href="#Foot_22">[22]</a></span>
-... It is the hand of God that hath done this.
-Only let us trust in him, and he will care for us!'
-Thus the hunted Calvin found himself at Angoulême,
-under God's hand, like a young storm-driven bird
-that has taken refuge in the nest under the wing of
-its mother.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN'S LABOURS.=</p>
-
-<p>The young canon took the liveliest interest in the
-fate of his guest, and hoped to see the hospitality he
-showed him bear precious fruits for learning and
-the Gospel. Calvin, too humble to believe that Du
-Tillet's cares had any reference to himself, ascribed
-them solely to his friend's zeal for knowledge and the
-cause of Christ; it seemed to him that he could never
-repay such kindness but by constant labour, and that
-was all he ever had to give. 'My protector's kindness,'
-he said, 'is sufficient to stimulate the indolence
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">{11}</a></span>
-of the laziest of men.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_23" id="Ref_23" href="#Foot_23">[23]</a></span>
-Cheer up, then! let me make
-an effort, let me struggle earnestly. No more carelessness!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_24" id="Ref_24" href="#Foot_24">[24]</a></span>
-Then he shut himself up in Du Tillet's
-library, gathered round him the books he wanted, and
-said: 'I must give all my attention to study; this
-thought is constantly pulling me by the ear.' If he
-took a moment's leisure, he felt 'his ear pulled,' that
-is to say, his conscience was troubled; he hurried to
-his books, and set to work with so much zeal, 'that he
-passed whole nights without sleeping and days without eating.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_25" id="Ref_25" href="#Foot_25">[25]</a></span>
-This was his <i>indolence</i>!</p>
-
-<p>A great idea was at that time growing in his heart.
-Parliament accused and even burnt his brethren for
-pretended heresies. 'Must I be silent,' he said, 'and
-thus give unbelievers an opportunity of condemning
-a doctrine they do not know? Why should not
-the Reformed have a confession to lay before their
-adversaries?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_26" id="Ref_26" href="#Foot_26">[26]</a></span>
-As he examined Du Tillet's library,
-he came upon certain books which seemed to him
-to bear particularly on the existing state of suffering
-among evangelical christians. He saw that apologies
-had formerly been presented to the Emperor Adrian
-by Quadratus and Aristides, to Antoninus by Justin
-Martyr, and to Marcus Aurelius by Athenagoras.
-Ought not the friends of the Reformation to present a
-similar defence to Francis I.? If Calvin's mouth is
-shut, he will take up the pen. God was then setting
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">{12}</a></span>
-him apart for one of the great works of the age. He
-did not indeed compose his <i>Christian Institutes</i> at
-this time, even under the elementary form of the first
-edition, but he meditated it; he searched the Scriptures;
-he drew out the sketch, and perhaps wrote
-some passages of that work, the finest produced by
-the Reformation. And hence one of the enemies of
-the Reform, casting a severe look on the learned
-library of the Du Tillets, was led to exclaim: 'This
-is the forge where the new <i>Vulcan</i> prepared the bolts
-that he was afterwards to scatter on every side....
-That is the factory where he began to make the
-nets that he afterwards fixed up to catch the simple,
-and from which a man must be very clever to get
-out. It was there that he wove the web of his
-<i>Institutes</i>, which we may call the <i>Koran</i> or the <i>Talmud</i>
-of heresy.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_27" id="Ref_27" href="#Foot_27">[27]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=MATERIALISTS.=</p>
-
-<p>While Calvin was writing his first notes, he heard
-some strange rumours. Men spoke to him of certain
-materialists in whose opinion the soul died with the
-body. At first he hesitated as to what he should do.
-'How,' he asked, 'can I join battle with adversaries of
-whose camp and arms and tactics I know nothing, and
-of whom I have only heard some confused murmur?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_28" id="Ref_28" href="#Foot_28">[28]</a></span>
-Another consideration checked him. Allied to them
-were Christians who, while rejecting these errors, said
-that <i>time</i> did not exist for the soul separated from the
-body, and that the moment of death was followed
-instantly by the moment of resurrection. 'I should
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">{13}</a></span>
-not like these good people to be offended against me,'
-he said. Calvin refused to fire a shot against his
-enemies lest he should wound his brethren.</p>
-
-<p>But one day he was told of enormous and degrading
-sophisms. These teachers said to their followers:
-'God has not placed in man a soul different from that
-of the beast. The soul is not a substance; it is only
-a quality of life, which proceeds from the throbbing
-of the arteries or the motion of the lungs. It cannot
-exist without the body, and perishes with it, until man
-rises again whole.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_29" id="Ref_29" href="#Foot_29">[29]</a></span>
-Calvin was thunderstruck. To
-be a man and to rank yourself among beasts, seemed
-to him foolish and impious. 'O God!' he exclaimed,
-'the conflagration has increased, and thrown out
-flakes which, spreading far and wide, have turned to
-burning torches.... O Lord, extinguish them, we pray
-thee, by that saving rain which thou reservest for
-thy Church!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_30" id="Ref_30" href="#Foot_30">[30]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It was this gross materialism which absorbed Calvin's
-attention at Angoulême. He saw the evil which these
-teachers might do the Reform, and shuddered at the
-thought of the dangers which threatened the simple.
-'Poor reeds tossed by every wind,' he exclaimed,
-'whom the slightest breath shakes and bends, what
-will become of you?'... Then addressing the materialists
-he said: 'When the Lord says that the wicked
-kill the body but <i>cannot kill the soul</i>, does he not mean
-that the soul survives after death?<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_31" id="Ref_31" href="#Foot_31">[31]</a></span>
-Know you not that, according to Scripture, the souls of the saints
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">{14}</a></span>
-stand before the throne of God, and that white robes
-were given unto every one of them?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_32" id="Ref_32" href="#Foot_32">[32]</a></span>
-Then resorting to irony, he continued: 'Sleepy souls, what, I pray,
-do you understand by these <i>white robes</i>? Do you take
-them for <i>pillows</i> on which the souls recline that are
-condemned to die?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_33" id="Ref_33" href="#Foot_33">[33]</a></span>
-This mode of arguing was not
-rare in the sixteenth century. Calvin, agitated by
-these errors, took up his pen, and committed to paper
-the reflections which he published shortly after.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin loved to repose from these struggles on the
-bosom of friendship. In the society of Du Tillet at
-Angoulême he found once more the charms which that
-of Duchemin had procured for him at Orleans. All
-his life he sought that noble intercourse, those <i>offices</i>,
-those kindnesses which friendship procures.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_34" id="Ref_34" href="#Foot_34">[34]</a></span>
-Even when deep in study, he loved to see the library door
-open, a well-known face appear, and a friend sit
-down by his side. Their conversations had an inexpressible
-sweetness for him. 'We have no need,' said
-the young canon, 'of those secrets which Pythagoras
-employed to produce an indissoluble friendship between
-his disciples. God has planted a mysterious
-seed between our souls, and that seed cannot die.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_35" id="Ref_35" href="#Foot_35">[35]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_8" id="Foot_8" href="#Ref_8">[8]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Adimere libertatem religionis, interdicere optionem divinitatis,'
-&amp;c. Tertullianus, <i>Apol.</i> cap. xxiv.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_9" id="Foot_9" href="#Ref_9">[9]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Athanasius, <i>Hist. Arian.</i> § 3.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_10" id="Foot_10" href="#Ref_10">[10]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quis autem <i>optabilior</i> ad te nuncius adferri poterat, aut
-nos ipsi quod <i>felicius</i> optare poteramus principium pontificatus
-tui, quam ut primis illis mensibus <i>tetram illam caliginem</i>, quasi
-exorto sole, <i>discussam</i> cerneremus?'—<i>Mureti Orat.</i> xxii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_11" id="Foot_11" href="#Ref_11">[11]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cum promitterem mihi omnia tranquilla, aderat foribus quod minime
-sperabam.'—Letter to Francis Daniel.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_12" id="Foot_12" href="#Ref_12">[12]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Harmonie Evangélique</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_13" id="Foot_13" href="#Ref_13">[13]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Lettres Françaises</i>, published by Jules Bonnet, i. p.
-349.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_14" id="Foot_14" href="#Ref_14">[14]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In agrum Santonicum demigrans.'—Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_15" id="Foot_15" href="#Ref_15">[15]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Conclavi quodam in Tilii ædibus, plus quatuor librorum, tam
-impressorum quam manuscriptorum, millibus instructo.'—Flor. Rémond,
-<i>Hist. Heres.</i> ii. p. 248.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_16" id="Foot_16" href="#Ref_16">[16]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See Vol. II. book ii. ch. xx.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_17" id="Foot_17" href="#Ref_17">[17]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Corresp. de Calvin et de Du Tillet</i>, published by M. Crottet,
-p. 30.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_18" id="Foot_18" href="#Ref_18">[18]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nunquam minus solum esse quam quum solus esset.'—Flor. Rémond,
-<i>Hist. Heres.</i> ii. p. 247.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_19" id="Foot_19" href="#Ref_19">[19]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Institutes</i>, bk. i. ch. xvii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_20" id="Foot_20" href="#Ref_20">[20]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Et pro ea quam nosti desidia, nonnihil studendo proficere.'—Berne
-MSS. vol. 450, Calvin to Fr. Daniel. <i>Doxopolis.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_21" id="Foot_21" href="#Ref_21">[21]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Si id temporis quod vel exilio, vel secessui destinatum est, tanto
-in otio transigere datur, præclare mecum agi existimabo.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_22" id="Foot_22" href="#Ref_22">[22]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nidus, mihi, in tranquillo componebatur præter opinionem.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_23" id="Foot_23" href="#Ref_23">[23]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Sane inertissimi hominis ignaviam acuere posset patroni mei
-humanitas.'—Berne MSS. vol. 450, Calvin to F. Daniel. <i>Doxopolis.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_24" id="Foot_24" href="#Ref_24">[24]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Mihi conandum est, serioque contendendum.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_25" id="Foot_25" href="#Ref_25">[25]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Tam somni quam cibi omnino oblitus.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist.
-Heres.</i> ii. p. 247.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_26" id="Foot_26" href="#Ref_26">[26]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Debere nobis in promptu esse fidei confessionem ut cam proferamus
-quoties opus est.'—Calvin, <i>Opp.</i> v. pars 4ta, p. 34.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_27" id="Foot_27" href="#Ref_27">[27]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In hac officina Vulcani....telam exorsus ad capiendos simplicium
-animos....Alcoranum vel Talmud.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> ii.
-p. 246, and French edition, liv. vii. ch. ix.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_28" id="Foot_28" href="#Ref_28">[28]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Opusc. Franç.</i> de Calvin, p. 3. This letter is not in the
-Latin edition.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_29" id="Foot_29" href="#Ref_29">[29]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Vim duntaxat vitam esse, aiunt, quæ ex spiritu arteriæ aut
-pulmonum agitatione ducitur.'—<i>Psychopannychia</i>, Op. Lat. p. 1.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_30" id="Foot_30" href="#Ref_30">[30]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Opusc. Franç.</i> p. 2, Preface.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_31" id="Foot_31" href="#Ref_31">[31]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 12. <i>Opusc. Lat.</i> p. 5.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_32" id="Foot_32" href="#Ref_32">[32]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Revelation vi. 11, vii. 9.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_33" id="Foot_33" href="#Ref_33">[33]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'O spiritus dormitorii! Quid vobis sunt stolæ albæ? Pulvinaria
-scilicet in quibus ad somnum decubent?' <i>Opusc. Lat.</i> pp. 10, 11,
-15.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_34" id="Foot_34" href="#Ref_34">[34]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Montaigne, <i>Essais</i>, liv. i. ch. xxvii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_35" id="Foot_35" href="#Ref_35">[35]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Correspondance de Calvin avec Du Tillet, pp. 29, 34, 48.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">{15}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER II.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE EXILE TURNS PREACHER.<br />
- (<span class="smc">December 1533 and January 1534.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">BY degrees, however, Calvin came out of his retirement.
-Shut up in his library, he began to sigh
-for country air, like Luther in the Wartburg. He
-went out sometimes, alone or with his friend, and
-rambled over the hills and quiet meadows watered by
-the Charente. The neighbourhood of Angoulême
-did not present the grandeur he was one day to find
-on the shores of the Leman; but to him everything
-in creation was beautiful, because he saw the Creator
-everywhere. He could even be profoundly touched
-by the beauties of nature: 'In the presence of the
-works of God,' he said, 'we are overcome with astonishment,
-and our tongues and senses fail us.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_36" id="Ref_36" href="#Foot_36">[36]</a></span>
-Not far from the city was a vineyard belonging to the
-canon, to which Du Tillet one day conducted his
-friend. The delighted Calvin returned there frequently;
-the remembrance of these visits still lingers
-in those parts, and the vineyard still goes by the name
-of <i>La Calvine</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_37" id="Ref_37" href="#Foot_37">[37]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>About this time their circle was increased: John Du
-Tillet, afterwards bishop of Meaux, arrived at Angoulême.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">{16}</a></span>
-He too became attached with his whole heart
-to Calvin: the latter, wishing to make himself useful
-to the two brothers, offered to teach them Greek, and
-while teaching them to read the New Testament, he
-led them to seek Christ. John listened greedily to
-the young doctor's words; hence he was long suspected
-by the Romanists, and having published in
-1549 a very old manuscript, ascribed to Charlemagne,
-<i>Against Images</i>—the <i>Libri Carolini</i> are known to
-be opposed to them—he occasioned loud murmurs:
-'A man who has been Calvin's pupil,' said the famous
-Cardinal du Perron, 'cannot well have any other
-opinion.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_38" id="Ref_38" href="#Foot_38">[38]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN AT CLAIX.=</p>
-
-<p>These lessons, begun at Angoulême, were continued
-at Claix, where Du Tillet used to spend a part of the
-year. People asked in the village who that short,
-thin, pale young man was, who looked so serious and
-meek, and whom they often met with the Du Tillets.
-The best informed said that he gave them lessons in
-Greek. This study was a thing so extraordinary in
-the Angoumois, that the country people, ignorant of
-the professor's name, called him the <i>Greek of Claix</i>,
-or the <i>little Greek</i>. Some of the better people of the
-neighbourhood of Claix occasionally met the friends:
-they entered into conversation, and, says a contemporary,
-'all who loved learning esteemed the young scholar;'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_39" id="Ref_39" href="#Foot_39">[39]</a></span>
-his knowledge of the classics, his taste so
-fine and accurate, attracted them to him. Certain
-friends of the Du Tillets, ecclesiastics of good family,
-men of letters and of feeling, soon shared this admiration
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">{17}</a></span>
-of his virtues and his talents: they were
-Anthony de Chaillou, Prior of Bouteville, the Abbot of
-Balsac (near Jarnac), the famous De la Place, the
-Sieur de Torsac, Charles Girault, and others. Calvin's
-appearance, his simple dress and modest look interested
-these good men at first sight; and that clear
-and penetrating glance which he preserved until the
-last, soon revealed to them the keen intelligence and
-uprightness of the young <i>Greek</i>. They conceived
-the most hearty affection for him. They loved to
-hear him speak of the Saviour and of heaven, and
-yielded to his evangelical teaching without a thought
-of being faithless to that of the Church. This was
-the case with many Catholics at that time. They did
-not find in Calvin the things that make fine talkers
-in the world—'nonsense, merry jests, bantering, jokes,
-and all sorts of foolery, which pass away in smoke,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_40" id="Ref_40" href="#Foot_40">[40]</a></span>
-but the charms and profitableness of his conversation
-captivated all who heard him. De la Place in particular
-received a deep impression: 'I shall never forget,' he
-wrote years after, 'how your conversation made me
-better, when we were together at Angoulême. Oh!
-what shall I give you in this mortal life for the immortal
-life that I then received?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_41" id="Ref_41" href="#Foot_41">[41]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN'S FRIENDS.=</p>
-
-<p>The frequent visits paid to the <i>Greek</i> by persons of
-consideration were soon remarked by the clergy; on
-the other hand, Bouteville desired to substitute more
-regular conferences for these simple conversations.
-He lived at the castle of Gérac, situated in a less
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">{18}</a></span>
-frequented district.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_42" id="Ref_42" href="#Foot_42">[42]</a></span>
-'Come to my house,' he said
-to his friends, 'and let each of us state freely his
-convictions and objections.' Calvin hesitated about
-going: 'he was fond of solitude, and spoke little in
-company;' but the thought of bringing his friends to
-the Gospel decided him.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CONFERENCES AT GÉRAC.=</p>
-
-<p>One day, therefore, the modest doctor appeared in
-the midst of the Prior of Bouteville's guests; one idea
-had absorbed him on the road to Gérac. He thought
-that 'truth is not a common thing; that it rises far
-above the capacity of the human understanding, and
-that we ought to purchase it at any price.' At last
-when he joined his friends, after mutual greetings had
-been exchanged, he spoke to them of the subject that
-filled his heart. He opened the Bible, placed his hand
-on it, and said, 'Let us find the truth!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_43" id="Ref_43" href="#Foot_43">[43]</a></span>
-... 'The whole conference,' says Florimond Rémond, a staunch
-Catholic, 'had no other object but <i>the investigation of
-truth</i>, a phrase which he had generally in his mouth.'
-Calvin, however, did not set himself up as an oracle:
-addressing the conscience, he showed that Christ
-answered all the wants of the soul; the conversation
-soon became animated, his friends bringing forward objections.
-He never was at a loss; 'having a marvellous
-facility,' they said, 'in penetrating suddenly the greatest
-difficulties and clearing them up.' The visitors of
-Gérac departed joyfully to their homes.</p>
-
-<p>After these conferences, Calvin returned quietly to
-his retreat, and prayed for those to whom he had
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">{19}</a></span>
-spoken and for others besides. 'If sometimes we are
-cold in prayer,' he said, 'let us at once remember how
-many of our brethren are sinking under heavy burdens
-and grievous troubles; how many are oppressed by
-great anguish in their hearts and in all extremity of
-evils.... We must have hearts of iron or steel, if
-such sluggishness in prayer cannot then be expelled
-from our bosoms.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_44" id="Ref_44" href="#Foot_44">[44]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin felt the necessity of giving a solid foundation
-to the faith of his friends. 'A tree that is not deeply
-rooted,' he said, 'is easily torn up by the first blast of
-the storm.' He then committed to paper, as we have
-said, the first ideas of his <i>Christian Institutes</i>. One
-day, as he was starting for Gérac, he took his notes with
-him, and read what he had just written to the circle
-assembled in the castle.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_45" id="Ref_45" href="#Foot_45">[45]</a></span>
-He did this several times
-afterwards; but the notes served merely as a text on
-which he commented with much eloquence. 'No one
-can equal him,' they said, 'in loftiness of language,
-conciseness of arrangement, and majesty of style.'
-He was not content with stating this doctrine or that:
-His fine understanding grasped the organic unity of
-the Christian truths, and he was able to present them
-as a divine whole.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_46" id="Ref_46" href="#Foot_46">[46]</a></span>
-It was no doubt the cry of his
-conscience which had led him to seek salvation in the
-Holy Scriptures; but he had not been able to study,
-compare, and fathom them without his understanding
-becoming enlightened, developed, and sanctified. The
-moral faculty is that which is first aroused in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">{20}</a></span>
-Christian; but it immediately provokes the exercise
-of the intellectual faculties. The citizens of the
-kingdom of God are not those who know, but those
-who believe; not the learned, but the regenerated.
-A church in which the intellectual faculty is above
-the moral faculty, does not bear the stamp of the Protestant
-and Christian principle; but every church in
-which the divine faculty of the understanding is
-neglected, and where learning is viewed with distrust,
-will easily fall into deplorable error.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin's explanations, so deep and yet so clear, were
-not without their use. Du Tillet, Chaillou, De la
-Place, Torsac, and others mutually expressed their
-admiration and joy after the young doctor had retired;
-then, at their homes and apart from the world,
-they meditated on the consoling truths they had heard.
-Many of the most notable men of the district were
-won over to evangelical convictions.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_47" id="Ref_47" href="#Foot_47">[47]</a></span>
-The Prior of Bouteville, in particular, showed from that time so
-much faith and zeal—he was, after Calvin's departure,
-so much the father and guide of those who had
-received the seed of truth, that he was called throughout
-the province: 'The Lutherans' Pope.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_48" id="Ref_48" href="#Foot_48">[48]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin's sphere widened gradually: he wrote to
-those to whom he could not speak;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_49" id="Ref_49" href="#Foot_49">[49]</a></span>
-and ere long his
-friends asked why they should keep for themselves
-alone the bread of life on which they fed?... One
-of them giving utterance to this thought to the young
-doctor added: 'But you can only reach the people in
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">{21}</a></span>
-the churches.' It was scarcely possible that Calvin, a
-fugitive from Paris, could visit the churches of the
-Angoumois as an evangelical missionary. 'Compose
-some short Christian exhortations for us,' said his
-friends to him, 'and we will give them to well-disposed
-parish priests to read to their congregations.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_50" id="Ref_50" href="#Foot_50">[50]</a></span>
-He did so, and humble clerks read these evangelical appeals
-from their pulpits, as well as they could. Thus
-Calvin preached through the mouths of priests to poor
-villagers, as he had addressed the imposing Sorbonne
-by the mouth of the rector.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN PROVIDES SERMONS.=</p>
-
-<p>This encouraged certain church dignitaries, especially
-the prior, who were at once his disciples and his
-patrons. If Calvin could not preach in French, why
-should he not teach in Latin? They surrounded the
-young doctor, representing to him that Latin, the
-language of the Roman Church, could not occasion
-any scandal, and asked him to deliver some Latin
-orations before the clergy. Calvin, firmly convinced
-that the reform ought to begin with the teaching of
-the priest, preached several Latin sermons in St.
-Peter's Church.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_51" id="Ref_51" href="#Foot_51">[51]</a></span>
-In this way he inaugurated his
-career as a reformer. All this could not be done
-without giving rise to murmurs. The faithful
-followers of Rome complained of him, of the prior,
-of all his friends, and this opposition might become
-dangerous. 'Fatal instrument,' says a Romanist with
-reference to Calvin's stay in the Angoumois, 'which
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">{22}</a></span>
-was destined to reduce France to greater extremities
-than the Saracens, the Germans, the English, and the
-house of Austria had done.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_52" id="Ref_52" href="#Foot_52">[52]</a></span>
-He was not, however,
-the only one who was assisting in this excellent work.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_36" id="Foot_36" href="#Ref_36">[36]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Psaumes</i>, ch. civ.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_37" id="Foot_37" href="#Ref_37">[37]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Drelincourt, <i>Défense du Calvinisme</i>, p. 40; Crottet,
-<i>Chron. protest</i>. p. 96.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_38" id="Foot_38" href="#Ref_38">[38]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Perroniana.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_39" id="Foot_39" href="#Ref_39">[39]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ut erat omnibus qui litteras amabant carus.'—Flor. Rémond,
-<i>Hist. Heres.</i> ii. 246.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_40" id="Foot_40" href="#Ref_40">[40]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Sornettes, plaisantes rencontres, railleries, brocards, et toutes
-niaiseries, lesquelles s'en vont en fumée.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_41" id="Foot_41" href="#Ref_41">[41]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Neque enim sum immemor quantum me meliorem reddideris.'—De la
-Place to Calvin. Geneva MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_42" id="Foot_42" href="#Ref_42">[42]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In arce quadam, non procul ab oppido Engolismensi sita.'—Flor.
-Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> ii. p. 247.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_43" id="Foot_43" href="#Ref_43">[43]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> (French ed. liv. vii. p. 389;
-Lat. ed. liv. vii. p. 251.)</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_44" id="Foot_44" href="#Ref_44">[44]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvini <i>Opp.</i> Ephes. vi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_45" id="Foot_45" href="#Ref_45">[45]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ibi <i>Institutiones</i> suas Calvinus depromebat quantum quoque
-die scripsisset ipsis recitans.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> ii.
-p. 247.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_46" id="Foot_46" href="#Ref_46">[46]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Theologiæ suæ mysteria revelabat atque explicabat.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_47" id="Foot_47" href="#Ref_47">[47]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Complures auctoritatis viros in suam sententiam pertraxit.'—Flor.
-Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> ii. p. 247.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_48" id="Foot_48" href="#Ref_48">[48]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Butevillani prior lutheranorum papa postea cognominatus.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_49" id="Foot_49" href="#Ref_49">[49]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Du Perron, in the <i>Perroniana</i>, mentions several of Calvin's
-letters preserved by the Du Tillets.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_50" id="Foot_50" href="#Ref_50">[50]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Amico cuidam cujus rogatu breves quasdam admonitiones Christianas
-scripsit.'—Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>, Lat. p. 4; French, p. 15. Bayle
-(sub voce <i>Calvin</i>) thinks that Du Tillet was the friend of whom
-Beza speaks; perhaps it was Chaillou.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_51" id="Foot_51" href="#Ref_51">[51]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Semel atque iterum in æde S. Petri obivit.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist.
-Heres.</i> ii. p. 251, &amp;c. Crottet, <i>Chron. protest.</i> p. 97.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_52" id="Foot_52" href="#Ref_52">[52]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Varillas, <i>Hist. des Révolutions Religieuses</i>, ii. p. 459.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">{23}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER III.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN AT NÉRAC WITH ROUSSEL AND LEFÈVRE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Winter of 1533-34.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="side">=RELIGIOUS AWAKENING IN THE SOUTH.=</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">WHILE Francis I. was endeavouring to stifle the
-Reformation in the north of France, it was
-spreading in the south, and many souls were converted
-in the districts bordering the Pyrenees. Evangelical
-Christians of other countries, some of whom
-were ministers, had taken refuge there, and 'towns
-and villages were <i>perverted</i> suddenly by hearing a
-single sermon,' says a Roman Catholic historian. On
-certain days, the simple peasants and even a few
-townspeople, arriving by different paths, would meet
-in a retired spot, in the bed of some dried-up torrent
-or in a cavern of the mountain. They had often to
-wait a long time for the preacher; the priests and
-their creatures forced him to make a wide circuit;
-sometimes he did not come at all. 'Then,' says a
-Catholic, 'women might be seen trampling on the
-modesty of their sex, taking a Bible, reading it and
-even assuming the boldness to interpret it, while
-waiting for the minister.'</p>
-
-<p>At this epoch the Queen of Navarre arrived in the
-south. The noise caused in 1533 by the rector's sermon
-and Calvin's disappearance, had induced her to
-quit St. Germain for the states of her husband. Her
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">{24}</a></span>
-brother the king was then at a distance from Paris;
-her nieces with their governesses, Mesdames de Brissac
-and De Montreal, and the somewhat gloomy and oppressive
-etiquette which prevailed at the court of
-Queen Eleanor of Portugal, was not much to the taste
-of the lively and intelligent Margaret of Navarre.
-She therefore started for Nérac. Two litters with
-six mules, three baggage mules, and three or four
-carriages for the queen's women<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_53" id="Ref_53" href="#Foot_53">[53]</a></span>
-entered the city,
-and took the road that leads to the vast Gothic castle
-of the D'Albrets. It was a very scanty retinue for
-the sister of Francis I.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=QUEEN MARGARET AT NÉRAC.=</p>
-
-<p>Margaret alighted from her litter, and was hardly
-settled in her apartments before she felt quite happy,
-for she had escaped at last from the pomps and
-struggles of the court of France. She laid aside her
-showy dresses and her grand manners; she hid the
-majesty of her house beneath a candour and friendliness
-that enchanted all who came near her. Dressed
-like a plain gentlewoman, she quitted the castle,
-crossed the Baise which flows through the city, and
-rambled along the beautiful walks of the neighbourhood,
-having for companions only the seneschaless of
-Poitou or one of her young ladies of honour. But
-she had come for something more than this. Having
-fled far from the palaces and cities where the persecuting
-spirit of Rome and of the parliament was
-raging, she occupied herself more particularly in
-giving a fresh impulse to the evangelical movement
-in the southern provinces. Her activity was inexhaustible.
-She sent out <i>colporteurs</i> who made their
-way into houses, and while selling jewellery to the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">{25}</a></span>
-young women, presented them also with New Testaments,
-printed in fine characters, ruled in red and
-bound in vellum with gilt edges. 'The mere sight
-of these books,' says an historian, 'excited a desire
-to read them.' Around the queen everybody was
-in motion, labouring and murmuring like a hive
-of bees. 'Margaret,' says the king's historiographer,
-'was the precious flower that adorned this parterre,
-and whose perfume attracted the best spirits of
-Europe to Bearn, as thyme attracts honey-bees.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_54" id="Ref_54" href="#Foot_54">[54]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The queen might often be seen surrounded by a
-troop of sufferers, to whom she showed the tenderest
-respect. These were the refugees: Lefèvre of Etaples,
-Gerard Roussel, converted priests and monks, and a
-number of laymen, obliged to leave France, which
-they had been able to do, thanks to the queen who
-had assisted their flight. 'The good princess,' said
-a Catholic, 'has really nothing more at heart than to
-get those out of the way whom the king wishes to
-deliver up to the severities of justice. If I attempted
-to give the names of all those whom she has saved
-from punishment, I should never finish.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_55" id="Ref_55" href="#Foot_55">[55]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The Christians exiled for the Gospel did not make
-her forget the wretched of her own country. One day,
-when Roussel was describing to her the unfortunate
-situation of a poor family, Margaret said nothing; but
-returning to her chamber, she threw a Bearnese hood
-over her shoulders, and, followed by a single domestic,
-went out by a private door, hastened to the sufferers,
-and comforted them with the tenderest affection.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_56" id="Ref_56" href="#Foot_56">[56]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">{26}</a></div>
-
-<p>She took pleasure in founding schools. Roussel,
-her chaplain, would visit the humble room in which
-the children of the people were learning to read and
-write, and going up to them would say: 'My dear
-children ... the death of Christ is a real atonement.
-There is no sin so small as not to need it, or so great
-that it cannot be blotted out by it.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_57" id="Ref_57" href="#Foot_57">[57]</a></span>
-Praying to God,'
-he would add, 'is not muttering with the lips: prayer
-is an ardent and serious converse with the Lord.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_58" id="Ref_58" href="#Foot_58">[58]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN AND ROUSSEL.=</p>
-
-<p>There was one feature, however, in this awakening
-in the south which, in Calvin's eyes, rendered it imperfect
-and transitory, unless some remedy were
-applied to it. There was in it a certain halting
-between truth and error. The pious but weak Roussel
-manifested a lamentable spirit of compromise in his
-teaching. Wearied with the struggles he had gone
-through, he sheltered himself under the cloak of the
-Catholic Church. He did not pray to the Virgin, he
-administered the Holy Sacrament in two kinds; but
-he celebrated a kind of mass—a mournful and yet
-touching instance of that mixed Christianity which
-aimed at preserving evangelical life under catholic
-forms.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin at Angoulême was not far from Nérac, and
-his eyes were often turned to that city. He longed to
-see Lefèvre before the old man was taken from the
-world, and was uneasy about Roussel, whom he feared
-to see yielding to the seductions of greatness. One
-of the christian thoughts that had laid the strongest
-hold on his mind, was the conviction that the wisdom
-from on high ought to reject every compromise suggested
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">{27}</a></span>
-by ambition or hypocrisy.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_59" id="Ref_59" href="#Foot_59">[59]</a></span>
-Ought he not
-to try and bring back Roussel into the right path from
-which he appeared to be wandering? Calvin left
-Du Tillet's house probably about the end of February,
-and called upon Roussel as soon as he arrived at
-Nérac.</p>
-
-<p>The most decided and the most moderate of the
-theologians of the sixteenth century were now face to
-face. Calvin, naturally timid and hesitating, 'would
-never have had the boldness so much as to open his
-mouth (to use his own words); but faith in Christ
-begot such a strong assurance in his heart, that he
-could not remain silent.' He, therefore, gave his
-opinion with decision: 'There is no good left in
-Catholicism,' he said. 'We must re-establish the
-Church in its ancient purity.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_60" id="Ref_60"
-href="#Foot_60">[60]</a></span>—'What is that you
-say?' answered the astonished Roussel; 'God's house
-ought to be purified, no doubt, but not destroyed.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_61" id="Ref_61"
-href="#Foot_61">[61]</a></span>—'Impossible,'
-said the young reformer; 'the edifice is
-so bad that it cannot be repaired. We must pull it
-down entirely, and build another in its place.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_62" id="Ref_62"
-href="#Foot_62">[62]</a></span>—Roussel
-exclaimed with alarm: 'We must cleanse the
-Church, but not by setting it on fire. If we take
-upon ourselves to pull it down, we shall be crushed
-under the ruins.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_63" id="Ref_63" href="#Foot_63">[63]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin retired in sorrow. Type of protestant
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">{28}</a></span>
-decision in the sixteenth century, he always protested
-freely and boldly against everything that was contrary
-to the Gospel. He displayed this unshakeable firmness
-not only in opposition to catholic tendencies, but
-also against rationalistic ideas. It would not be difficult
-to find in Zwingle, in Melanchthon, and even in
-Luther, some sprinkling of neology, of which the
-slightest traces cannot be found in Calvin.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN AND LEFÈVRE.=</p>
-
-<p>Nérac, as we have said, sheltered another teacher—an
-old man whom age might have made weaker than
-Roussel, but who under his white hair and decrepid
-appearance concealed a living force, to be suddenly
-revived by contact with the great faith of the young
-scholar. Calvin asked for Lefèvre's house: everybody
-knew him: 'He is a little bit of a man, old as Herod,
-but lively as gunpowder,' they told him.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_64" id="Ref_64" href="#Foot_64">[64]</a></span>
-As we have seen, Lefèvre had professed the great doctrine
-of justification by faith, even before Luther; but after
-so many years, the aged doctor still indulged in the
-vain hope of seeing Catholicism reform itself. 'There
-ought to be only one Church,' he would frequently repeat,
-and this idea prevented his separation from Rome.
-Nevertheless, his spiritualist views permitted him to
-preserve the unity of charity with all who loved Christ.</p>
-
-<p>When Calvin was admitted into his presence, he
-discerned the great man under his puny stature, and
-was caught by the charm which he exercised over all
-who came near him. What mildness, what depth,
-what knowledge, modesty, candour, loftiness, piety,
-moral grandeur, and holiness, had been said of him!<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_65" id="Ref_65" href="#Foot_65">[65]</a></span>
-It seemed as if all these virtues illuminated the old
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">{29}</a></span>
-man with heavenly brightness just as the night of the
-grave was about to cover him with its darkness. On
-his side, the young man pleased Lefèvre, who began
-to tell him how the opposition of the Sorbonne had
-compelled him to take refuge in the south, 'in order,'
-as he said, 'to escape the bloody hands of those
-doctors.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_66" id="Ref_66" href="#Foot_66">[66]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin endeavoured to remove the old man's illusions.
-He showed him that we must receive everything
-from the Word and from the grace of God. He
-spoke with clearness, with decision, and with energy.
-Lefèvre was moved—he reflected a little and weeping
-exclaimed: 'Alas! I know the truth, but I keep myself
-apart from those who profess it.' Recovering,
-however, from his trouble, he wiped his eyes, and seeing
-his young fellow-countryman 'rejecting all the
-fetters of this world and preparing to fight under the
-banner of Jesus,' he examined him more attentively,
-and asked himself if he had not before him that future
-reformer whom he had once foretold:<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_67" id="Ref_67" href="#Foot_67">[67]</a></span>
-'Young man,' he said, 'you will be one day a powerful instrument
-in the Lord's hand.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_68" id="Ref_68" href="#Foot_68">[68]</a></span>...
-The world will obstinately
-resist Jesus Christ, and everything will seem to conspire
-against the Son of God; but stand firm on that
-rock, and many will be broken against it. God will
-make use of you to restore the kingdom of heaven in
-France.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_69" id="Ref_69" href="#Foot_69">[69]</a></span>
-In 1509 Luther, being of the same age as
-Calvin in 1534, heard a similar prophecy from the
-mouth of a venerable doctor.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">{30}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Yet, if we may believe a catholic historian, the old
-man did not stop there. His eyes, resting with kindness
-on the young man, expressed a certain fear. He
-fancied he saw a young horse which, however admirable
-its spirit, might dash beyond all restraint.
-'Be on your guard,' he added, 'against the extreme
-ardour of your mind.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_70" id="Ref_70" href="#Foot_70">[70]</a></span>
-Take Melanchthon as your
-pattern, and let your strength be always tempered
-with charity.' The old man pressed the young
-man's hand, and they parted never to see each other
-again.</p>
-
-<p>Did Calvin see the Queen of Navarre also? It does
-not appear that Margaret was living at Nérac at that
-time; but he had some relations with her. It has
-been said that she felt an interest in his exile;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_71" id="Ref_71" href="#Foot_71">[71]</a></span>
-and it is possible that she had some share in the resolution
-he soon formed of quitting the south. She may have
-assured him that he had nothing to fear in Paris, if
-he committed no imprudence. But we have found
-nothing certain on these points.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN REBUKES THE UNEQUALLY YOKED.=</p>
-
-<p>For the present, Calvin returned to Du Tillet's.
-The visits made to Roussel and Lefèvre had taught
-him a lesson. He comprehended that it was not only
-souls blindly submissive to Rome that incurred imminent
-danger; he conceived the liveliest alarm for
-those minds which floated between the pope and the
-Word of God, either through weakness or want of
-light. He saw that as the limit between the two
-churches was not yet clearly traced, some of those who
-belonged to Rome were lingering beneath the fresh
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">{31}</a></span>
-and verdant shades of the Gospel, while others who
-ought to belong to the Reformation still wandered beneath
-the gothic arches of Romish cathedrals and prostrated
-themselves at the foot of Romish altars. This
-state of things—possibly approved of by many—Calvin
-thought dangerous, and his principles going farther,
-he undertook 'to rebuke freely (as he says) those who
-yoked with unbelievers, keeping them company in
-outward idolatry.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_72" id="Ref_72" href="#Foot_72">[72]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_53" id="Foot_53" href="#Ref_53">[53]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Brantôme, <i>Capitaines illustres</i>, p. 235.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_54" id="Foot_54" href="#Ref_54">[54]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Olhagaray, <i>Hist. de Foix</i>, &amp;c. p. 505.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_55" id="Foot_55" href="#Ref_55">[55]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> viii. ch. ii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_56" id="Foot_56" href="#Ref_56">[56]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Sainte Marthe, <i>Oraison funèbre de la Reine de Navarre</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_57" id="Foot_57" href="#Ref_57">[57]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-MSS. fol. 2. Schmidt, p. 131.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_58" id="Foot_58" href="#Ref_58">[58]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-MSS. fol. 89 <i>a</i>, 177 <i>b</i>.—Ibid. pp. 145, 157.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_59" id="Foot_59" href="#Ref_59">[59]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvini <i>Opp.</i> James iii. 17.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_60" id="Foot_60" href="#Ref_60">[60]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ecclesia in pristinam puritatem restituenda propositum ei aperuit,
-inquiens nihil omnino sani in catholica superesse ecclesia.'—Flor.
-Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> ii. p. 272.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_61" id="Foot_61" href="#Ref_61">[61]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Non destruendam sed fulciendam.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_62" id="Foot_62" href="#Ref_62">[62]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Vetus illud ædificium planissime esse dejiciendum, et novum
-instruendum.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_63" id="Foot_63" href="#Ref_63">[63]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ejusdem ruinis sepultum.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_64" id="Foot_64" href="#Ref_64">[64]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Bayle, <i>Dictionnaire critique</i>, sub voce.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_65" id="Foot_65" href="#Ref_65">[65]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Eruditione, pietate, animi generositate nobilissimus.'—Bezæ
-<i>Icones</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_66" id="Foot_66" href="#Ref_66">[66]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ut vix illorum manus cruentas effugerit.'—Bezæ <i>Icones</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_67" id="Foot_67" href="#Ref_67">[67]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Futurum augurant.'—Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_68" id="Foot_68" href="#Ref_68">[68]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Insigne instrumentum.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_69" id="Foot_69" href="#Ref_69">[69]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cœlestis in Gallia instaurandi regni.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_70" id="Foot_70" href="#Ref_70">[70]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ne perfervidum hoc ingenium omnia misceret atque everteret.'—Flor.
-Rémond, ii. p. 272.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_71" id="Foot_71" href="#Ref_71">[71]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Freer's <i>Life of Marguerite</i>, ii. p. 120.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_72" id="Foot_72" href="#Ref_72">[72]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Rédarguer librement ceux qui s'accouplant avec les infidèles, leur
-tenaient compagnie en idolâtrie externe.'—Calvin, <i>Comm. in 2 ad
-Cor.</i>, cap. vii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">{32}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER IV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">A DRAMATIC REPRESENTATION AT THE COURT
- OF NAVARRE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Winter of 1533-34.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">HENRY and Margaret having quitted Nérac for
-Pau, where they intended passing the winter,
-had reached those picturesque heights, separated by a
-ravine, on which the city stands, and had entered the
-castle. The queen had found pleasure in adorning it
-with the most magnificent gardens then known in
-Europe, and liked to walk in them, conversing with
-Cardinal de Foix, the Bishop of Tarbes, and many other
-distinguished persons who admired her wit and grace.
-And yet these ecclesiastics often caused her 'much
-vexation.' Surrounded by persons who made a regular
-report to Francis I., watched by the king her husband
-and the dignitaries of the Church who were at her
-court, this pious but weak woman bent under the
-weight. She began the day by attending morning
-service in the catholic church of the parish; then in the
-afternoon she privately collected in her chamber the
-evangelical members of her court, and the little band
-of exiles, with a few men and women of the people who,
-coming forward awkwardly, took their seats timidly
-on the handsome furniture of the queen. Roussel,
-Lefèvre, or some other minister, delivered an exhortation,
-and the little assembly separated, feeling that God
-had really been present in the midst of them.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_73" id="Ref_73" href="#Foot_73">[73]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">{33}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=THE LORD'S SUPPER AT PAU.=</p>
-
-<p>One day some of these humble believers desired to
-partake of the Lord's Supper. The queen was embarrassed:
-she did not dare celebrate it in the church,
-nor even in her own room, lest one of the cardinals
-should enter suddenly.... After some reflection Margaret
-thought she had found what was wanted. Under the
-terrace of the castle there was a large hall called <i>the
-Mint</i>, a secret underground place that could be approached
-without attracting notice. By the queen's
-orders her servants privately carried a table there,
-covered it with a white cloth, and placed a basin on it
-containing 'a few slices of plain bread,' and by its side
-some cups full of wine 'instead of chalices.'—'Such
-are their altars!' ironically exclaims the catholic
-historian.</p>
-
-<p>On the appointed day, the believers, silent and
-agitated, came and took their places not without fear
-of being discovered. The queen, forgetting the pomps
-of the Louvre, sat down among them as a simple
-Christian. Roussel appeared, but not in sacerdotal
-costume, and stood in front of the table. 'Those who
-believe that there is nothing but an empty sign in the
-Sacrament,' he said, 'are not of the school of faith.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_74" id="Ref_74" href="#Foot_74">[74]</a></span>
-He took common bread, says the indignant catholic
-narrator, 'and not little round wafers stamped with
-images.'—'Remember,' continued Roussel with a
-grave voice, 'that Christ suffered and died for us.'
-He then handed round the cup 'without making
-the sign of the cross!' The worshippers, deeply
-moved, bore a heavenly expression on their faces and
-felt the presence of the Lord: 'The same Christ
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">{34}</a></span>
-dwelt in the minister and in the people.' No spy
-nor cardinal appeared, and the communicants, after
-presenting an offering for the poor, withdrew in peace.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_75" id="Ref_75" href="#Foot_75">[75]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding its secresy, this celebration was
-talked about in the castle. The King of Navarre was
-quite annoyed at it. A thoughtless, changeable, and
-ever violent man, and liable to occasional worldly relapses,
-he began to grow impatient at his wife's piety,
-and especially at the 'feastings in the cellar.' He
-was habitually in a bad humour, and found fault with
-all that Margaret did.</p>
-
-<p>One day as he returned to the castle from a hunting-party,
-he asked where the queen was. He was
-told that a minister was preaching in her chamber.
-At these words the king's face flushed. A faithful
-servant ran to warn the queen: ministers and hearers
-escaped by a back way, and they had hardly left the
-room, when Henry entered abruptly. He stopped,
-looked round him, and seeing only the queen, agitated
-and trembling, he struck her in the face, saying:
-'Madame, you desire to know too much.' He then
-left her indignant and confounded. This affront
-offered to the dignity of the royal family of France
-did not pass unnoticed: Francis 'scolded Henry
-d'Albret soundly,' says Brantôme.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_76" id="Ref_76" href="#Foot_76">[76]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE MYSTERY OF THE NATIVITY.=</p>
-
-<p>Margaret, eager to win over her husband and to be
-agreeable to her court, resolved to have a representation
-of some biblical dramas. Possibly she might
-by this means reach those who would not come to
-the sermons. She took for her subject <i>The Birth</i>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">{35}</a></span>
-<i>of the Saviour</i>, and having completed her poem
-distributed the parts among certain noble maidens.
-These biblical representations, which displeased Calvin,
-because of their theatrical form, and the Romish
-clergy because of their evangelical truths, charmed
-the middle party, and as they belong to the religious
-history of the epoch, we cannot pass them by unnoticed.
-Margaret fitted up the great hall of the
-castle as a theatre. The scenery was prepared, and
-shortly after Christmas placards announced the representation
-of 'The Nativity of Jesus Christ.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_77" id="Ref_77" href="#Foot_77">[77]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>When the day came the hall was crowded. In the
-front rank of the amphitheatre sat the king and
-queen, the latter wearing a plain dress trimmed with
-marten's fur and a Bearnese hood. Near them were
-the Cardinals De Grammont and De Foix with other
-members of the clergy. Around the royal pair
-were Margaret's inseparable maids of honour—Mademoiselle
-de St. Pather, the usual distributor of
-her alms, Mademoiselle de la Batenage, Blanche de
-Tournon, Françoise de Clermont, Madame d'Avangour,
-the greatest 'eaves-dropper' of the court, the chancellor,
-chamberlains, and almoners. Her ten stewards,
-her esquires and thirty-eight maids, her seventeen
-secretaries, and her twenty valets-de-chambre were
-most of them present.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_78" id="Ref_78" href="#Foot_78">[78]</a></span>
-The invited strangers occupied
-seats according to their rank. A first representation
-has rarely excited more curiosity.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE MYSTERY-PLAY.=</p>
-
-<p>The first act begins. The scene is placed at
-Nazareth, in the house of a poor carpenter. A man
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">{36}</a></span>
-in the prime of life and a young woman are talking
-together. A proclamation has just been published
-in the market-place ordering every one to go to the
-city of their family to be registered. But these poor
-people belong to Bethlehem, and Bethlehem is a
-long way from Nazareth. The woman is soon to
-become a mother, and the man is uneasy about the
-consequences of the journey. The young Israelitish
-woman, whose calm meek features indicate the serenity
-of a pious soul, says to him:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">... Us no danger shall come nigh,</div>
-<div class="verse">For He whose power o'ershadowed me,</div>
-<div class="verse">Holds in his hand both fruit and tree.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_79" id="Ref_79" href="#Foot_79">[79]</a></span></div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The scene changes, and we are at Bethlehem. It is
-quite dark, but a few lights are visible through the
-windows of the houses. The same man and woman—they
-are Joseph and Mary—have just arrived from
-Nazareth after a fatiguing journey. Joseph, still
-anxious, begins:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">It is late and already night ...</div>
-<div class="verse">Let us approach the nearest light.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">He knocks at the door, and asks to be admitted. The
-owner of the house looks contemptuously on them
-and says that he lodges none but rich people. Joseph
-goes a little farther on and knocks at another door:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Will you please lodge my wife and me?</div>
-<div class="verse">For the poor woman, as you see,</div>
-<div class="verse">Is near her time.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">This man looks as contemptuously upon them as
-the other, and answers that he takes in none but
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">{37}</a></span>
-noblemen. Joseph, still undiscouraged, points out a
-third man to his wife and says:</p>
-
-<p class="center small">Here is a man with pleasant look.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent">He speaks to him, but the man is a <i>bon vivant</i>, and
-is annoyed by the care-worn appearance of the travellers.
-'I like,' he says,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Dances, sports, women, good-cheer ...</div>
-<div class="verse">No kill-joys are wanted here.</div>
-<div class="verse">Pass on, my friends;</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Joseph, with a deep sigh:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Onward then, and God will tell</div>
-<div class="verse">Where he pleases we should dwell.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">But wearied by the journey, and uneasy about her
-condition, Mary begins to change countenance:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Woe's me, I feel the hour draw near</div>
-<div class="verse">For the long-looked-for fruit t'appear.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">At these words, the startled Joseph looks round him,
-and discovering at last a poor stable, which the wind
-penetrates on every side, he presses Mary to enter it:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse indent15">I will take care</div>
-<div class="verse">To shelter you from every hurtful air.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">He settles the young woman as comfortably as he
-can in the rude shed, and prepares to go into the
-town to get what she requires.</p>
-
-<p class="center small">MARY.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Go, go, my friend: I shall not be alone,</div>
-<div class="verse">For where God is, there also is my home.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Mary remaining alone offers up a touching prayer
-to her heavenly Father; then, yielding to her fatigue,
-she lies down upon the straw and falls asleep.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">{38}</a></div>
-
-<p>The scene changes to heaven. The eyes of the
-Lord, which 'look upon the sons of men,' are turned
-upon the earth, and are fixed with kindness on Mary,
-whose sleep is gentle and peaceful. Then as the
-great moment approaches, He orders the angels to
-leave heaven and announce to mankind the news of
-a great joy. He gives each of them a message;
-some are to go to Mary, others to Simeon. The
-humblest of them says:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse indent10">... And I, Lord ...</div>
-<div class="verse">I will go seek the least of all,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">And tell him how <i>great</i> he has become</div>
-<div class="verse">Since the great one has become small.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Hymns of praise immediately resound through
-heaven:</p>
-
-<p class="center small">Glory to Thee, Almighty Lord!</p>
-
-<p class="nodent">And the angels depart upon their mission.</p>
-
-<p>The scene changes, and we are once more in the
-stable at Bethlehem. Mary awakes and is still
-alone. Her heart is agitated by the most astounding
-thoughts: the mystery of God which she discerns
-surprises and confounds her.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Strange! a virgin ... yet a mother</div>
-<div class="verse">Of a son above all other,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Very God and very man!</div>
-<div class="verse">Emanuel! of the Father dearest Son ...</div>
-<div class="verse">May my hands be joined with thine?</div>
-<div class="verse">May thy lips be touched by mine?</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">At this moment the angels sent by God arrive: they
-enter the wretched stable, filling it with their glory,
-and each salutes the poor virgin of Nazareth in his
-own fashion. One of them says:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse indent4">All hail, happy dame,</div>
-<div class="verse">Mother of the Son thou lov'st so dearly!</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">{39}</a></div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Another, whose character appears to be humility,
-addresses the new-born child:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Little child, pray spare me not ...</div>
-<div class="verse">Though I'm small I shall delight</div>
-<div class="verse">To wait upon you day and night,</div>
-<div class="verse">To wash you or to warm your bed.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_80" id="Ref_80"
- href="#Foot_80">[80]</a></span>...</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">At this point Joseph returns with the provisions he
-has bought; he is distressed at his inability to receive
-becomingly this child of heaven, but resolving to give
-all that he has, he advances towards the stable. On
-a sudden he stops in surprise ... he looks ... a
-divine light fills the humble shed, and shines all around.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse indent2">What a strange gleam</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">There comes from within!</div>
-<div class="verse">I'm like a man in a maze:</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">I am quite sure</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">I never before</div>
-<div class="verse">Saw such a glorious blaze.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">He stops at the threshold and looks in. The angels
-have disappeared, and he says:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse indent2">Mary, I see,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Has not lost her glee,</div>
-<div class="verse">Her face with joy runs o'er ...</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">But why does she stare,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">This virgin dear,</div>
-<div class="verse">So constantly on the floor?</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Joseph looks more carefully, as he stands motionless
-at the door, and discovers Jesus who has just been
-born:</p>
-
-<p class="center small">Yes! 't is the child!</p>
-
-<p class="nodent">The honest carpenter does not know what to do; he
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">{40}</a></span>
-dares not approach, and yet he cannot remain apart;
-a struggle takes place in his soul.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Here will I stay ...</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">No! I must go in.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">At last Joseph comes forward: he looks at the child,
-and kneeling humbly before him, worships and kisses
-him.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">With this kiss I would cool</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">My heart with charity burning.</div>
-<div class="verse">What a charming child,</div>
-<div class="verse">So handsome and mild,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">And that's the truth, I assure you.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Mary is uneasy: she looks at the child, so weak and
-tender, and is distressed at having nothing to wrap
-him in,</p>
-
-<p class="center small">For the night is cold.</p>
-<p class="center small">JOSEPH.</p>
-<p class="center small">I shall light this taper.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent">He then lights the lamp.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Where shall we put him? In the manger here ...</div>
-<div class="verse">No better place in all the inn.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>This was the end of the first act. The spectators
-expressed the interest they felt in the drama, at
-once so serious and so holy; and even the Cardinals
-De Grammont and De Foix found nothing in it contrary
-to the doctrines of the Church. As that was a
-time when people were very fond of diversion, joke
-and jest followed. Several comic characters appeared
-in the interlude, especially a poor monk, who was the
-soul of the farce.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_81" id="Ref_81" href="#Foot_81">[81]</a></span>
-This was not Margaret's composition:
-even the catholics did not charge her with
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">{41}</a></span>
-it. The jesters retired at last, and the drama proceeded.</p>
-
-<p>The scene represented the fields round Bethlehem,
-where shepherds and shepherdesses were keeping
-their flocks during the watches of the night. One
-shepherd worn out with labour, another with 'hunting
-the wolf,' had fallen asleep; some shepherdesses
-followed their example; but one shepherd and one
-shepherdess were awake and communicating their
-thoughts to each other.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">A something keeps me wide awake;</div>
-<div class="verse">My usual sleep I cannot take.</div>
-<div class="verse">It is not my flock, I'm sure,</div>
-<div class="verse">For the fold is quite secure;</div>
-<div class="verse">In my heart a joy I feel</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">And I seem good news to hear ...</div>
-<div class="verse">Meanwhile I shall turn my eyes</div>
-<div class="verse">To the star-bespangled skies.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">He contemplates the firmament.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERDESS.</div>
-<div class="verse">What seest thou, brother, when thine eye</div>
-<div class="verse">Thou turn'st admiring to the sky?</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">I admire the great Creator</div>
-<div class="verse">Who hath made all things, and we</div>
-<div class="verse">Are his temple....</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERDESS.</div>
-<div class="verse">Tell me, shepherd, what He promised</div>
-<div class="verse">To the patriarchs who waited</div>
-<div class="verse">Patiently for ages?...</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">He has promised the Messiah,</div>
-<div class="verse">His true Son, through whom alone</div>
-<div class="verse">Life to us has been restored,</div>
-<div class="verse">And salvation.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">{42}</a></div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERDESS.</div>
-<div class="verse">Would to God the hour was nigh!</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">Come, Lord, and no longer tarry!</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Suddenly a bright light shines over the fields of Bethlehem,
-and a heavenly voice says:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Shepherds, awake, arise!</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Behold the happy day,</div>
-<div class="verse">When God by works for ever new</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Shall his great love display.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">The sleeping shepherds and shepherdesses awake;
-they look about them and perceive the angels surrounded
-with a heavenly glory.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">Heavens! what means this brightness here?</div>
-<div class="verse">I am almost numbed with fear.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERDESS.</div>
-<div class="verse">By this clear and glorious light</div>
-<div class="verse">My weak eyes are dazzled quite.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST ANGEL.</div>
-<div class="verse">Gentle shepherds, do not fear,</div>
-<div class="verse">I am come your hearts to cheer,</div>
-<div class="verse">With glad tidings....</div>
-<div class="verse">For to you upon this morn</div>
-<div class="verse">The Saviour Jesus Christ is born.</div>
-<div class="verse">As 'twas writ; and this the sign</div>
-<div class="verse">How to know the child divine;</div>
-<div class="verse">Wrapped in swaddling bands, the Son</div>
-<div class="verse">Has a manger for a throne....</div>
-<div class="verse">The Jesus whom the Lord has sent</div>
-<div class="verse">To fulfil his covenant.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">All the angels then sing the hymn of praise:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Glory be to God most high.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">Let us haste and feast our eyes</div>
-<div class="verse">Where the hope of mortals lies.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">{43}</a></div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">In a hut so mean and poor,</div>
-<div class="verse">If we cannot pass the door,</div>
-<div class="verse">We can through some crevice spy<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_82" id="Ref_82" href="#Foot_82">[82]</a></span></div>
-<div class="verse">Where our Lord and King doth lie.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">The shepherds and shepherdesses converse as they
-go on the reception they will give to the Messiah, with
-a simplicity that may appear excessive, but which is
-not devoid of grace and genuineness.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent-4">FIRST SHEPHERD AND SHEPHERDESS.</div>
-<div class="verse">Let us from our plenty bear</div>
-<div class="verse">Presents to their scanty fare.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">Here's a cheese I'll take with me</div>
-<div class="verse">In this basket.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse indent10">And you see,</div>
-<div class="verse">This great bowl of milk I'll carry,</div>
-<div class="verse">And I hope 'twill please sweet Mary.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">I shall give this cage and bird.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">I this faggot, for, my word!</div>
-<div class="verse">The weather's cold.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse indent10">This rude toy,</div>
-<div class="verse">This rustic flute will please the boy.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERDESS.</div>
-<div class="verse">I will kiss his very cheek....</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">Nay! 't is honour sure enough</div>
-<div class="verse">But to kiss him in the foot.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_83" id="Ref_83" href="#Foot_83">[83]</a></span></div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">{44}</a></div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Shepherds and shepherdesses all leave the fields and
-hurry to Bethlehem.</p>
-
-<p>The scene again changes to this town, where the
-shepherds and shepherdesses arrive and look for the
-place where the child lies.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">In this house with paint so gay</div>
-<div class="verse">The holy child would never stay.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">Nor in this palace would he rest,</div>
-<div class="verse">But rather in some humbler nest.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent-4">FIRST SHEPHERDESS, <i>searching carefully</i>.</div>
-<div class="verse">There's a place in this rude rock;</div>
-<div class="verse">Can it be the honoured spot?</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Shepherds and shepherdesses draw near, and looking
-through the cracks in the wall of the poor stable,
-discover Mary and Jesus. The second shepherd
-exclaims with rapture:</p>
-
-<p class="center small">There's the child ... and there's the mother....</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERDESS.</div>
-<div class="verse indent15">See how mild</div>
-<div class="verse">Hangs on his mother's breast the child.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">Call yon man to ope the door....</div>
-<div class="verse">(<i>to Joseph</i>) Hola! master....</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">JOSEPH.</div>
-<div class="verse">What means that noise without?</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">The true fruit of heaven we seek.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">MARY.</div>
-<div class="verse">If God hath this great fact revealed,</div>
-<div class="verse">By us it must not be concealed;</div>
-<div class="verse">For to believers we the Christ must show:</div>
-<div class="verse">Open the door....</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">JOSEPH, <i>opening the door</i>.</div>
-<div class="verse">You can come in.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">{45}</a></div>
-
-<p class="nodent">The shepherds and shepherdesses approach respectfully,
-and puny as the child appears, they recognise
-in him the height of the eternal Majesty, and worship
-him:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse indent10">... Thou art the promised seed</div>
-<div class="verse">To Adam after his misdeed.</div>
-<div class="verse">Abraham and David on this relied,</div>
-<div class="verse">And both alike were justified.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">The eye beholds a weak and powerless child;</div>
-<div class="verse">But faith which comes of knowledge bids us bow</div>
-<div class="verse">In honour and in adoration at his feet,</div>
-<div class="verse">As the true God.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">After the adoration of the shepherds, the shepherdesses,
-a little curious, surround Mary and enter into
-conversation with her.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERDESS.</div>
-<div class="verse">How is't no costly robes he owns:</div>
-<div class="verse">Silver and gold and precious stones?</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">MARY.</div>
-<div class="verse">Simplicity he liketh best,</div>
-<div class="verse">Nor will he in choice clothes be dressed.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">The first streaks of dawn begin to appear.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">The day is near ... I must begone.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERDESS, <i>approaching Mary</i>.</div>
-<div class="verse">May I just give his little toe</div>
-<div class="verse">One single kiss before I go.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_84" id="Ref_84" href="#Foot_84">[84]</a></span></div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERDESS.</div>
-<div class="verse">Our hands have touched, our eyes have seen,</div>
-<div class="verse">The Lamb who takes away our sin.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">{46}</a></div>
-
-<p class="nodent">The shepherds and shepherdesses then present their
-humble offerings.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">Serving thee we'll live and die,</div>
-<div class="verse">For without thee life is naught.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The second act being finished, a new interlude was
-introduced to make the spectators merry. The jesters
-reappeared and recited several rondeaux, always
-containing some piquant and unexpected joke, which
-called forth the laughter of the audience. The burden
-of the <i>virelais</i> (poems composed of very short lines, and
-with two rhymes) usually turned on some monk, which
-greatly diverted the spectators. The cardinals and
-the catholics who took pleasure in the drama were
-annoyed by the satires.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_85" id="Ref_85" href="#Foot_85">[85]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The third act began. Satan, who was making the
-tour of the world, arrived over the fields of Bethlehem,
-whither the shepherds had returned, and absorbed
-in his own thoughts, said to himself:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">I have reigned until this hour</div>
-<div class="verse">And subdued earth to my power;</div>
-<div class="verse">With God above have warred unceasing,</div>
-<div class="verse">And my triumphs are increasing.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">The shepherdesses, to whom he was invisible, expressed
-their joy in hymns:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Shepherdesses, maidens fair,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Listen to the song we sing:</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Tidings of great joy we bring,</div>
-<div class="verse">That take away all mortal care.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Satan stopped and listened: becoming alarmed, he
-exclaimed:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">This is a hymn that chills my blood ...</div>
-<div class="verse">What tidings have they heard?</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">{47}</a></div>
-
-<p class="nodent">The shepherdesses, still unconscious of Satan's presence,
-continue singing:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Hail! to the Virgin-born,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Hail! to the Lord and Son,</div>
-<div class="verse">Who in this happy morn,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">The veil of earth puts on.</div>
-<div class="verse">Loud praise to God be given</div>
-<div class="verse">Who makes us heirs of heaven.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Satan listening, and still more uneasy:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">To learn this secret, how I've toiled!</div>
-<div class="verse">Shall it be hidden from me now?</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">He disguises himself, and approaches the shepherds
-under the form of a great lord, and says to them:</p>
-
-<p class="center small">Whence come you?</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">From seeing Christ, the Saviour of mankind,</div>
-<div class="verse">By whom in God we are regenerate.</div>
-<div class="verse">Will you not go and see him, mighty lord?</div>
-<div class="verse">I'll show the way.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SATAN.</div>
-<div class="verse">Can this be true, or is it all a dream?</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">Go and see for yourself....</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SATAN.</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">God from his throne on high</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">For this world does not care....</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">I am its king ... yes, I....</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">. . . .</div>
-<div class="verse">Come with me and make good cheer ...</div>
-<div class="verse">But you must believe no mo'</div>
-<div class="verse">That God can ever stoop so low.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">He is my father, brother, all ...</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">I am his from head to foot.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_86" id="Ref_86" href="#Foot_86">[86]</a></span></div>
-<div class="verse">God is for me, and no false one</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Shall this heavenly faith uproot.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">{48}</a></div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SATAN.</div>
-<div class="verse">Fools and madmen! are ye gods?...</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">FIRST SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">To the Son we leave the glory</div>
-<div class="verse">Of being God. Enough for us</div>
-<div class="verse">To be whatso'er he pleases,</div>
-<div class="verse">And to know that He's the great I AM.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SATAN.</div>
-<div class="verse"><i>Can you understand the Scriptures?</i></div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse"><i>With all humbleness we read them.</i></div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SATAN.</div>
-<div class="verse">Were he your father as you call him,</div>
-<div class="verse">Would he leave you thus accursed,</div>
-<div class="verse">Suffering poverty and want?</div>
-<div class="verse">Blind ones, open wide your eyes!</div>
-<div class="verse">Have you ever known a rich man</div>
-<div class="verse">Leave his son, like field untilled?</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Sons of God, indeed! whose store</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Are cold and hunger, rags, and all that's poor.</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">SECOND SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">More we suffer, more our joys redouble;</div>
-<div class="verse">For all your pleasures we'll not give a double.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_87" id="Ref_87" href="#Foot_87">[87]</a></span></div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent4">THIRD SHEPHERD.</div>
-<div class="verse">In our hearts the Christ doth dwell</div>
-<div class="verse">Who has conquered death and hell.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">At these words Satan becomes confused; he calls to
-mind his former defeats, and knowing that the Son
-of God must crush him under his feet, exclaims in
-terror:</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">{49}</a></div>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Murdered Lamb, who didst expel</div>
-<div class="verse">Me and mine from heaven to hell....</div>
-<div class="verse">Thou still pursuest, and no place</div>
-<div class="verse">Can hide me from thy angry face.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Then the mysterious voice of God is heard again proclaiming
-the victory of the new-born child:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Satan's tyrant reign is o'er;</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">By the spotless Lamb 'tis ended,</div>
-<div class="verse">Who to suffer on the cross</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">For us sinners has consented....</div>
-<div class="verse">At my right the Lamb shall sit ...</div>
-<div class="verse">Angels sing the Lamb exalted</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">High o'er all, and Satan quelled.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">Then the angels sing the song of triumph, which ends
-the play:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Glory be to God on high,</div>
-<div class="verse">Who our greatest enemy,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Satan, hath o'erthrown.</div>
-<div class="verse">Honours to the Lamb express</div>
-<div class="verse">By whom all the blessedness</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Of the Father is made known.</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent">The representation was finished and every one retired
-in admiration. The king was grateful for this condescension
-in his wife, and Margaret took advantage of
-it to induce him to listen to a few sermons. 'From
-the comedy he went to the preaching, which took
-place in the queen's chamber,' says a contemporary
-historian.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_88" id="Ref_88" href="#Foot_88">[88]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>All were not equally satisfied with these representations.
-Cardinals De Grammont and De Foix withdrew
-from the court, while the stricter christians
-asked if it was lawful to introduce angels and even
-God himself on the stage. If Calvin had gone on
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">{50}</a></span>
-from Nérac to Pau, and had been present, not far
-from the cardinals, at this mystery-play, he would
-no doubt have blamed such performances, which he
-termed 'christianity in disguise.'</p>
-
-<p>It is time to follow the reformer.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_73" id="Foot_73" href="#Ref_73">[73]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> lib. vii. cap. iii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_74" id="Foot_74" href="#Ref_74">[74]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-MS. de la Biblioth. impér., No. 7021, fol. 146. Schmidt,
-<i>Roussel</i>, p. 151.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_75" id="Foot_75" href="#Ref_75">[75]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> lib. viii. cap. xii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_76" id="Foot_76" href="#Ref_76">[76]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Brantôme, <i>Mémoires</i>. De Coste, <i>Reines illustres</i>.
-Matthieu, <i>Hist. de François I.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_77" id="Foot_77" href="#Ref_77">[77]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-This drama, which we have been forced to abridge, will be found in
-the <i>Marguerites de la Marguerite</i>, tom. i. pp. 148-206.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_78" id="Foot_78" href="#Ref_78">[78]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Marguerite d'Angoulême</i>, par le comte de la Ferrière-Percy,
-pp. 9, 13.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_79" id="Foot_79" href="#Ref_79">[79]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-In translating the extracts for this poem, no attempt has been made
-to give a polish to the verses, which was not found in the original.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_80" id="Foot_80" href="#Ref_80">[80]</a></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-fn">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="verse">Petit enfant, ne veuillez épargner</div>
-<div class="verse">Moi très-petit ... car, soit pour vous baigner,</div>
-<div class="verse">Ou pour chauffer vos draps en votre lit,</div>
-<div class="verse">À vous servir je prendrai grand délit (<i>délice.</i>)</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_81" id="Foot_81" href="#Ref_81">[81]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Qui pro primo esset.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> vii. cap.
-iii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_82" id="Foot_82" href="#Ref_82">[82]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Il y aura quelque fente ou crevasse.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_83" id="Foot_83" href="#Ref_83">[83]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-C'est assez au talon.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_84" id="Foot_84" href="#Ref_84">[84]</a></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-fn">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="verse">Madame, au moins, son petit bout d'orteil</div>
-<div class="verse">Pour le baiser.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_85" id="Foot_85" href="#Ref_85">[85]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Heres.</i> vii. cap. iii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_86" id="Foot_86" href="#Ref_86">[86]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Je suis à lui de l'un à l'autre bout.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_87" id="Foot_87" href="#Ref_87">[87]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-fn">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="verse">Plus nous souffrons, plus notre joie redouble;</div>
-<div class="verse">De vos plaisirs ne donnons pas un <i>double</i>.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_87a" id="Ref_87a" href="#Foot_87a">[87a]</a></span></div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_87a" id="Foot_87a" href="#Ref_87a">[87a]</a>&nbsp;
-The <i>double</i> was the sixth part of a <i>sou</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_88" id="Foot_88" href="#Ref_88">[88]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> vii. cap. iii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">{51}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER V.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN AT POITIERS, AT THE BASSES-TREILLES,
- AND IN ST. BENEDICT'S CAVES.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Spring 1534.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">CALVIN meditated leaving the South. He had
-found a retreat in the hour of danger; but as the
-storm seemed to blow over, he could go at last from
-the place where he had been hidden, and resume a
-career that had been so roughly interrupted. He was
-not at ease in Angoulême. On the one hand the conversion
-of Du Tillet and some of his friends gave rise
-to rumours among the clergy and people; and on the
-other, certain traditional elements that Margaret and
-some of his hearers at Gérac desired to retain, were
-displeasing to the reformer. Altars, images, holidays
-dedicated to Mary and the saints, confessors and
-confession—none of these things appeared to him
-scriptural, and he sighed for the time when he could
-make the evangelical principle prevail in all its integrity.
-He was in the habit of saying: 'Above all
-things we must confess our Lord fully, without
-shrinking from anything soever.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_89" id="Ref_89" href="#Foot_89">[89]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN'S PROJECTS.=</p>
-
-<p>Where should he go? His thoughts led him first
-to Poitiers, whence he proposed to visit Orleans,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">{52}</a></span>
-Paris, and then Germany and Switzerland, to study
-and gain knowledge by intercourse with the reformers.
-In their conversations at Gérac the Sieur de Torras
-had often spoken of Pierre de la Place, who was then
-studying at Poitiers. Calvin would also meet there
-with Charles le Sage, regent of the university, like
-himself a native of Noyon. One consideration restrained
-him: Could he leave Du Tillet? 'Where
-you go, I will go,' said the young canon; 'my heart
-is filled with the faith that animates you.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_90" id="Ref_90" href="#Foot_90">[90]</a></span>
-The idea
-of enjoying Calvin's society at every moment, and
-of seeing in Switzerland and Germany the noble-hearted
-men who were reforming the Church, filled
-him with joy.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_91" id="Ref_91" href="#Foot_91">[91]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The two friends departed: Calvin under the name
-of Charles d'Espeville, and Du Tillet under that of
-Hautmont, which seems to have been borne by some
-members of his family. They arrived (probably
-about the end of March 1534) in those plains and
-heaths of Poitou where so many great battles had
-been fought, and where a humble combatant was
-approaching to engage in nobler contests. Few
-provinces in France were so well prepared. Abelard,
-who had lived in these western districts, had left
-behind him some traces of the doubts set forth in his
-celebrated treatise, <i>Sic et Non</i> (Yes and No),<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_92" id="Ref_92" href="#Foot_92">[92]</a></span>
-on the doctrines of the Church. Here too a writer, unconnected
-with the Reform, had attacked the <i>papomania</i>,
-and the clergy, who formed (it was said) a third part
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">{53}</a></span>
-of the population, exasperated the two others by their
-avarice and irregularities.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN AT POITIERS.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin stayed at Poitiers with Messire Fouquet,
-prior of Trois-Moutiers, a learned ecclesiastic, and a
-friend of the Du Tillets, who had a house there.
-The university was flourishing, it possessed learned
-professors, and had a famous library. The desire of
-understanding—a feeling springing up everywhere in
-France—was particularly felt here. The prior of
-Trois-Moutiers conversed with his two guests on the
-public disputations that were going on in the university.
-This excited Calvin's attention: he went to the
-hall, sat down on one of the benches, and listened
-attentively. No one, as he looked at this stranger,
-would have supposed that under those pale, unattractive
-features was hidden one of the heroes who change
-the face of the world in the name of truth alone.
-Beneath much quibbling and idle trash the young
-doctor could see flashes of light here and there.
-After the disputation, he called upon those combatants
-from whom he had heard the language of christianity;
-he stated his own ideas, and ere long the beauty of his
-genius and the frankness of his language won them
-over. Calvin and these generous men became friends
-and visited each other; at length, says an historian,
-'they began to take walks together without the city,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_93" id="Ref_93" href="#Foot_93">[93]</a></span>
-and as they walked along the banks of the little river
-Clain, or rambled over the fields, the young doctor
-spoke to them openly of Christ and of eternity.</p>
-
-<p>They did not trouble themselves, indeed, with
-scholastic theology and metaphysical formulas: Calvin
-aimed at the conquest of their souls. He required in
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">{54}</a></span>
-every one the formation of a new man, and cared about
-nothing else. In the midst of the disheartening
-weaknesses and immense necessities of fallen humanity,
-a great spiritual restoration must be carried
-out; the hour had come, and to accomplish the work
-it needed special men invested with power from on
-high. Calvin was one of these strong men, whom
-God has sent to the aid of human decay. At the
-moment of the awakening, after the slumber of the
-Middle Ages, the heavenly Father bestowed new
-creative forces on mankind. The Gospel, then restored
-to the world, possessed a beauty which attracted men's
-souls, and an authority which wrought in them an
-absolute obedience: these are the two regenerating
-elements. All over Europe prophets arose among the
-people, but they did not prophesy at their own impulse.
-Above them was the sovereign, free, living, supernatural
-God who worked in them with supreme power.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin was about to begin at Poitiers a work of
-regeneration. Indeed no long time elapsed before
-numerous hearers crowded round him. Some were
-offended by his words; and there were some who,
-looking only for disputations and sophistry, tormented
-the young doctor with their accustomed insolence;
-while others opposed the heretic 'with dilemmas and
-cunning catches.' Others, again, who thought themselves
-masters of the world, turned their backs on him,
-'as if he were an ordinary mountebank.' Calvin, surprised
-at such resistance, 'instead of entangling himself
-in useless disputes,' seriously thrust aside these
-frivolous subtleties, and 'put forward what is true.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_94" id="Ref_94" href="#Foot_94">[94]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">{55}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN'S FRIENDS.=</p>
-
-<p>But if the doctrine he announced met with enemies,
-it also met with friends. The word of God perpetually
-separates light from darkness in the spiritual
-world, as it did at the time of the creation of
-heaven and earth. Generous men gathered eagerly
-round the young and powerful doctor. These were
-Albert Babinot, jurist, poet, and law-reader; Anthony
-Veron, procureur to the lower court; Anthony
-de la Dugie, doctor-regent; Jean Boisseau de la
-Borderie, advocate; Jean Vernou of Poitiers, the
-Sieur de St. Vertumien, and Charles le Sage, doctor-regent,
-a man of great esteem, who possessed the entire
-confidence of Madame, the king's mother.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_95" id="Ref_95" href="#Foot_95">[95]</a></span>
-One of these distinguished men especially won Calvin's heart:
-it was Pierre de la Place, a native of Angoulême, a
-friend of Du Tillet, afterwards president of the Court
-of Aids, and one of the St. Bartholomew martyrs.
-But Le Sage, another of these eminent men, kept
-himself rather aloof; he was from Noyon, and was
-not very anxious to put himself in the train of the
-son of the old episcopal secretary; moreover, he
-believed sincerely in the miracle of transubstantiation.</p>
-
-<p>This group of distinguished men, which now gathered
-round Calvin at Poitiers, as formerly at Angoulême,
-fixed the attention of those who had any intercourse
-with him. Calvin's attractive power, which is somewhat
-doubted in the present day, struck even his
-enemies. 'Knowledge as well as virtue,' says one of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">{56}</a></span>
-them on this occasion, 'soon wins love, and eminent
-minds, whether for good or evil, require little time to
-become known. Calvin, having retired to Poitiers,
-soon met with good store of friends.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_96" id="Ref_96" href="#Foot_96">[96]</a></span>
-He met them at the university, went to see them at their houses, courted
-their society, and spoke freely of the knowledge of God.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_97" id="Ref_97" href="#Foot_97">[97]</a></span>
-On many points they thought from the very
-first like him. When he complained 'that they worshipped
-stocks and stones, prayed to the dead, trusted
-in vain things, and desired to serve God by idle ceremonies,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_98" id="Ref_98" href="#Foot_98">[98]</a></span>
-everybody agreed with him, even Le Sage.
-But the young doctor went still farther. Doubtless
-he condemned 'a rugged austerity; he recommended
-people to be <i>loving</i> (aimables) and kind to their neighbours.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_99" id="Ref_99" href="#Foot_99">[99]</a></span>
-But at the same time, he was true, even at
-the risk of displeasing. Being present one day when
-some sincere catholics were defending the doctrine
-of transubstantiation, Calvin unhesitatingly declared,
-that we must receive Christ, even his body and blood,
-by faith, by the spirit which gives life, and not by a
-sensual eating with the mouth. Le Sage exclaimed,
-quite shocked, that this was the opinion of the heretic
-Wickliffe, and even La Place 'stopped short in alarm,
-at seeing so great a falling off from the religion in
-which he had been strictly bred.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_100" id="Ref_100" href="#Foot_100">[100]</a></span>
-Calvin was cut to the heart.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN AT THE LIEUTENANT-GENERAL'S.=</p>
-
-<p>But if he lost some friends, he gained others. The
-chief magistrate of Poitiers, Lieutenant-general Pierre
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">{57}</a></span>
-Regnier de la Planche, desired to see him, and invited
-him to dine with De la Dugie, Babinot, Véron, Vernou,
-and other acquaintances. Calvin accepted the invitation,
-which caused some astonishment. 'This innovator,'
-said the catholics, 'desires to court the
-magistrates, in order that they may give him importance
-by their condescension.' Calvin never made any
-such calculations, but he was 'burning with great zeal
-to extend the glory of the Lord on every side.' He
-was received with respect, and took his seat at the
-table; during dinner the conversation turned, it would
-seem, on mere common-places. As soon as the meal
-was over, the company rose and went into the garden.
-It was in this place, known as the <i>Basses Treilles</i>,
-that the Sieur de la Planche often received his friends.
-That magistrate, Calvin, Babinot, and the other guests
-conversed as they walked, and the master of the
-house, turning the conversation on Luther and Zwingle,
-blamed the reformers, and especially their opinions on
-the mass. 'This was a frequent topic of conversation,'
-says a writer of the sixteenth century, 'not only
-among the learned, but among the common people,
-and was even talked of at table.' Calvin, who was
-well informed and prepared, entered upon the subject
-and explained the chief points. 'Luther saw the
-truth,' he said, 'but he is like those who are walking
-through a long and winding road; they perceive afar
-the dim glimmer of a lamp, by means of which they
-can grope their way along the path they must follow.
-Zwingle approached the light, but like those who
-rush too hastily to good, he went beyond it.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_101" id="Ref_101" href="#Foot_101">[101]</a></span>
-Then <span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">{58}</a></span>
-wishing them to understand what there was in the
-Lord's Supper, he stated more in detail the idea of
-the presence of Christ, a real one no doubt, but to be
-received by faith and not by the mouth: thus taking
-a middle position between Zwingle and Luther. These
-discourses, being as clear as they were forcible, convinced
-the lieutenant-general and the friends he had
-assembled. Calvin was requested to commit them to
-writing, which he did, adds the historian, with an
-eloquence that brought him new disciples. Regnier
-de la Planche was gained to protestantism, and his
-son Louis subsequently took part in the struggles
-against the Guises. It was he whom Catherine de
-Medici perfidiously interrogated one day in her closet,
-whilst the Cardinal of Lorraine was hidden behind the
-tapestry.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=GARDEN OF THE BASSES-TREILLES.=</p>
-
-<p>Henceforth the garden of the Basses-Treilles became
-a favourite resort with Calvin: he was accustomed to
-go there freely and openly. There, like Socrates in
-the garden of Academe, the young christian Plato
-and his friends sought for truth.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_102" id="Ref_102" href="#Foot_102">[102]</a></span>
-The truth which the Reformation was then restoring to the world, was
-of quite a different order, and of far greater power
-than that of the Greek philosophers. Wherever its
-voice was heard, the idea of a clerical priesthood disappeared,
-the prerogatives of monastic life vanished,
-and a personal, individual, living Christianity took
-their place. The divine revelations were given to laymen
-in their mother-tongue, and the sacraments,
-stripped of their pretended magical virtues, exercised
-a spiritual influence over the heart. Such were the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">{59}</a></span>
-principles professed by Calvin in the garden of the
-lieutenant-general. As he walked up and down beneath
-the pleasant shade, he spoke to his friend of the
-heavenly Father, of his only Son, of grace, and of
-eternal life. His disciples, as they listened, imagined
-that all things were about to become new, and said
-to one another that now at last a barren formalism
-in the church would give way to a living power—a
-breath from heaven. The catholics of Poitiers were
-distressed. 'As our first parents,' they said, 'were
-enchanted in a garden, so it was in the lieutenant-general's
-garden of the Basses-Treilles that this handful
-of men were cajoled and duped by Calvin, who
-easily made a breach in the souls of those who listened
-to him.' This is a remarkable confession.</p>
-
-<p>One day a meeting was held there at which Calvin
-and his friends consulted about what France needed
-most. The answer was easy: the Gospel. But France,
-alas! rejected it. They did not confine themselves
-to this topic, and Calvin was anxious to substitute in
-the church the spirit for the form, life and reality for
-ritual observances. He acquitted himself worthily of
-his task, and taking up the principal point explained
-specially his spiritual doctrine on the Saviour's presence.
-'This,' says the catholic historian, 'was the
-first Calvinist council held in France.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_103" id="Ref_103" href="#Foot_103">[103]</a></span>
-The word 'council' is too ambitious, but it was a meeting that
-bore fruit. The living faith which inspired the young
-doctor gained over a few rebellious spirits. De la
-Place, who raised numerous objections at first, but
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">{60}</a></span>
-who was a man of common sense and 'good conscience,'
-thought that he might possibly be mistaken.
-'The seed fallen into his heart began to grow, and it
-put forth fruit in the season God had ordained.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_104" id="Ref_104" href="#Foot_104">[104]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The agitation which Calvin excited in Poitiers, the
-admiration of some, the uneasiness of others, grew
-stronger every day. The friends of the Gospel began
-to run some risk by meeting together. If certain
-fanatics should make themselves masters of the populace,
-the garden of the Basses-Treilles might be attacked,
-and the police, under colour of restoring order,
-might even go so far as to arrest the stranger. There
-were often false alarms. Calvin's friends determined
-to look for some solitary place where they might
-assemble in peace. One of them having pointed out
-a <i>wilderness</i> in the adjacent country—a number of
-deep and isolated caverns which would shelter them
-from all investigations,—they determined to go thither
-in little bands, and by different roads.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN'S GROTTO.=</p>
-
-<p>The next day the project was put in execution.
-Calvin set out with two or three others; they traversed
-the pretty suburb of St. Benedict, took a
-picturesque footpath, and after about an hour's
-walking, arrived at a wild-looking spot in front of
-the ruins of a Roman aqueduct. Beneath them
-flowed the tranquil waters of the Clain: thickly
-wooded rocks, containing caverns of various depths,
-raised their imposing masses above the stream.
-Calvin was charmed with the solitude. Gradually
-others arrived, and the assembly was soon complete.
-Calvin and his friends entered one of the largest of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">{61}</a></span>
-these caves. They were usually known as the caves
-of St. Benedict or the Croutelles, but this one was
-called, and has ever since borne the name of Calvin's
-grotto.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_105" id="Ref_105" href="#Foot_105">[105]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The reformer took his stand on the highest ground;
-his disciples gathered round him, some of them leaning
-against the rock;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_106" id="Ref_106" href="#Foot_106">[106]</a></span>
-and in the midst of a solemn
-silence he began to teach them, expounding what was
-grandest of all—preaching Christ to them. This
-was a topic to which he was constantly reverting.
-'Better be deprived of everything and possess Christ,'
-he said one day. 'If the ship is in danger, the
-sailors throw everything overboard, that they may
-reach the port in safety. Do likewise. Riches,
-honours, rank, outward respect—all should be sacrificed
-to possess Christ. He is our only blessedness.'
-Calvin spoke with much authority;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_107" id="Ref_107" href="#Foot_107">[107]</a></span>
-he carried away his readers, and was himself carried away. On a
-sudden feeling his spiritual weakness, and the need
-they all had of the Holy Ghost, he fell on his knees
-beneath those solitary vaults; all the assembly knelt
-with him, and he raised to the throne of God a
-prayer so touching and so earnest, that all who heard
-him fancied themselves transported to heaven.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_108" id="Ref_108" href="#Foot_108">[108]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>These pilgrimages to St. Benedict's caves were
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">{62}</a></span>
-soon observed; ill-disposed persons might follow the
-little groups on their way to the meeting, and surprise
-the assembly. Calvin's friends resolved to
-change their place of meeting frequently, sometimes
-going to a village, at others to an isolated country-house.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_109" id="Ref_109" href="#Foot_109">[109]</a></span>
-The inhabitants of the neighbourhood would
-join the little flock, and the preacher would bring forward
-that christian truth which enlightens the world
-and man. When they separated, he gave books to
-every one, 'and even prayers written with his own
-hand.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN ON THE MASS.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin's opposition to the mass gave greater offence
-every day; the catholics charged him with the crime
-of daring to deny that the priest offered Christ himself
-in sacrifice, as an expiatory victim for the sins of
-the people. He was moved by these observations,
-but not shaken. One day when he and his friends
-were assembled in the cavern, he extolled the sacrifice
-of the cross offered <i>once</i>, according to Scripture,
-and then spoke so forcibly against the mass, that it
-was not possible, said earnest catholics, to hear him
-without shuddering. It is true that Calvin did not
-spare this Romish ceremony. He sometimes called
-it a 'mere monkey-trick and burlesque.' 'I call it
-a monkey-trick,' he said, 'because they mock the
-supper of the Lord, just as a monkey imitates clumsily
-whatever he sees others do.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_110" id="Ref_110" href="#Foot_110">[110]</a></span> I
-call it a burlesque,
-because the nonsense and gestures they
-introduce are better adapted to a stage-play than to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">{63}</a></span>
-so holy a mystery.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_111" id="Ref_111" href="#Foot_111">[111]</a></span>
-There were in the cave some
-who believed sincerely in transubstantiation, and who
-habitually attended mass with pious sentiments.
-Calvin's words—although they may not have been literally
-those we have copied—wounded and vexed them,
-and Le Sage, abruptly interrupting him, exclaimed:
-'Our Lord, very God and very man, is really and
-substantially under the appearance of the bread
-and the wine.... In all ages, wherever men have
-known Christ, the sacrifice of the mass has been
-offered up.' Surprised at this bold outbreak, Calvin
-asked himself if he had committed a crime in setting
-the Word of God above the traditions of Rome.
-He kept silence for a few moments, and then lifting
-his hand and putting it on the Bible that lay open
-before him, he exclaimed earnestly: 'This is my mass!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_112" id="Ref_112" href="#Foot_112">[112]</a></span>
-Then uncovering his head and placing his
-fur cap on the table, he lifted his eyes to heaven, and
-said with emotion: 'O Lord, if in the day of judgment
-Thou desirest to punish me because I have
-deserted the mass, I will say to Thee: O God, Thou
-hast not commanded me to celebrate it. Behold
-Thy Law.... Behold Thy Holy Scripture.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_113" id="Ref_113" href="#Foot_113">[113]</a></span>...
-Thou didst give it us to be our guide, and I can find no
-other sacrifice in it than that which was accomplished
-on the altar of the cross.' The hearers separated in
-great excitement, touched with the reformer's faith at
-once so simple and so strong, and it was with new
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">{64}</a></span>
-convictions that some of them retraced the solitary
-paths that conducted them to Poitiers.</p>
-
-<p>From that time many persons manifested a desire
-to receive the Supper according to the Lord's institution.
-The various ceremonies, the incense, the
-choral chants satisfied them no longer; they wished
-to have a simple and real communion with the
-Saviour. A day was therefore appointed, and they
-assembled in one of the caves of St. Benedict.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_114" id="Ref_114" href="#Foot_114">[114]</a></span>
-The minister read the Word of God, and called upon the
-Lord to pour out His Spirit on the little flock. He
-broke the bread and handed round the cup; and then
-invited the worshippers to communicate mutually
-such reflections and experiences as might be useful
-to the faith.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_115" id="Ref_115" href="#Foot_115">[115]</a></span>
-These simple exhortations after the
-Supper were continued for some time in the reformed
-Church.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_89" id="Foot_89" href="#Ref_89">[89]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Lettres françaises de Calvin</i>, i. p. 119.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_90" id="Foot_90" href="#Ref_90">[90]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Tilius haustis animo Calvini opinionibus.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist.
-Hérés.</i> ii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_91" id="Foot_91" href="#Ref_91">[91]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Miro desiderio eos videndi incensus, qui catholicæ ecclesiæ bellum
-indixerant.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_92" id="Foot_92" href="#Ref_92">[92]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See M. Cousin's excellent edition.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_93" id="Foot_93" href="#Ref_93">[93]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Varillas, <i>Hist. des Rév. rel.</i>, ii. p. 473.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_94" id="Foot_94" href="#Ref_94">[94]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Riotes et cavillations ... arguments cornus et surprises subtiles
-... comme s'il était un bailleur de sornettes ordinaires ... au lieu de
-s'entortiller dans des contestations superflues ... il mettait en avant
-ce qui est ferme.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_95" id="Foot_95" href="#Ref_95">[95]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Magnæ existimationis vir, præsertim apud regis matrem.'—Flor.
-Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 251.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_96" id="Foot_96" href="#Ref_96">[96]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. des Hérésies</i> (éd. fr.), p. 890.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_97" id="Foot_97" href="#Ref_97">[97]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-P. de Farnace, <i>Brief Recueil de la Vie de Messire P. de la
-Place</i>, p. 11 sqq. Bayle's <i>Dict. Hist.</i> sub voce 'De la Place.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_98" id="Foot_98" href="#Ref_98">[98]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Lettres Françaises</i>, i. pp. 70-71.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_99" id="Foot_99" href="#Ref_99">[99]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin on James, iv. 17.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_100" id="Foot_100" href="#Ref_100">[100]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-P. de Farnace, <i>Brief Recueil</i>, p. 11 sqq.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_101" id="Foot_101" href="#Ref_101">[101]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> vii. cap. xi. Rémond exaggerates
-Calvin's opinion about Luther and Zwingle.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_102" id="Foot_102" href="#Ref_102">[102]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Inter sylvas Academi quærere verum.'—Horace.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_103" id="Foot_103" href="#Ref_103">[103]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In horto illo primum calvinisticum celebratum fuit concilium in
-Gallia.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 252.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_104" id="Foot_104" href="#Ref_104">[104]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-De Farnace, <i>Vie de la Place</i>, p. 11.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_105" id="Foot_105" href="#Ref_105">[105]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La grotte de Calvin. See Crottet, <i>Chronique protestante</i>, p.
-105; and A. Lièvre, <i>Hist. du Protestantisme du Poitou</i>, i. p. 23.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_106" id="Foot_106" href="#Ref_106">[106]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In locis secretis frequenter convenerunt.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist.
-Hérés.</i> ii. p. 253. Rémond declares that he had spared no pains to
-trace out all Calvin's career in France. 'In conquirendis variis quæ eo
-pertinent documentis, nulli labori peperci.' This has not prevented him
-from occasionally seasoning his narrative with abuse and calumny.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_107" id="Foot_107" href="#Ref_107">[107]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, ibid. vii. cap. xi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_108" id="Foot_108" href="#Ref_108">[108]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Precem magna vehementia et devotione.'—Ibid. ii. p. 252.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_109" id="Foot_109" href="#Ref_109">[109]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Per pagos etiam et villas.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii.
-p. 253.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_110" id="Foot_110" href="#Ref_110">[110]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quod sicut simiæ hominum opera perperam, ita hi sacram cœnam
-imitantur.'—Calvini <i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 123.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_111" id="Foot_111" href="#Ref_111">[111]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Histrionicam actionem appello quod ineptiæ gestusque histrionici
-illic visuntur.'—Calvini <i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 123.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_112" id="Foot_112" href="#Ref_112">[112]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Monstrato Bibliorum codice, dixisse: Hæc est missa mea.'—Flor.
-Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 261.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_113" id="Foot_113" href="#Ref_113">[113]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ecce enim hic legem tuam.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_114" id="Foot_114" href="#Ref_114">[114]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In locis illis secretis prima calvinistica cœna celebrata
-fuit.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 253.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_115" id="Foot_115" href="#Ref_115">[115]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Non ipse solum explicabat, sed aliorum sententias
-requirebat.—Ibid.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">{65}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER VI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN AND HIS DISCIPLES BEGIN THE
- EVANGELISATION OF FRANCE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Spring 1534.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT was necessary to begin the conversion of France
-on a larger scale. Might not that country, whose
-agitations have often disturbed Europe, and which
-never trembles but all around it is shaken—become,
-if it received the Gospel, a centre of light and a powerful
-means of strengthening the nations in justice and
-peace? That would no doubt have happened, had it
-become protestant. Calvin, by labouring thirty years
-for Geneva and France, laboured for the whole Christian
-world. He made the first experiment at Poitiers,
-and (if we may use the word) began that glorious
-evangelising campaign, which he was to direct until
-the close of his life.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN AND THE ST. GEORGES.=</p>
-
-<p>Not content with evangelising the city, the young
-and zealous doctor visited the castles, abbeys, and
-villages of the neighbourhood. In the castle of Couhé,
-a few leagues south of Poitiers, there lived a patriarchal
-family of great influence in Upper Poitou: it
-was that of Guichard de St. George, baron of Couhé,
-and Anne de Mortemer his wife. At their death they
-left four sons, who had early learned to keep God's
-commandments. Ponthus, abbot of a Benedictine
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">{66}</a></span>
-convent, was the best known of the four brothers:
-'He is a liberal and munificent man,' people said, 'a
-patron of learning and learned men, whom he welcomes
-heartily.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_116" id="Ref_116" href="#Foot_116">[116]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=EVANGELICAL ABBOTS.=</p>
-
-<p>A rumour of the meetings held at Poitiers reached
-Ponthus; being intimate with some of Calvin's disciples
-and occasionally receiving them at his table, he
-begged them to bring the young doctor, and from
-that day Calvin became one of his guests, according
-to a tradition preserved in the province.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_117" id="Ref_117" href="#Foot_117">[117]</a></span>
-Although the conversations he had with the abbot did not convert
-him, they made him take pleasure in the Gospel,
-and he soon asked himself why this astonishing young
-man should not preach in the Benedictine church?
-To address a learned and religious community pleased
-the young doctor's mind. The abbot announced to
-his monks that a Picard, brought up in the university
-of Paris and the holder of a benefice at Noyon, would
-preach in the abbey-church. Accordingly Calvin
-went into the pulpit and declared that whosoever had a
-firm and lively faith in the grace of Christ was saved.
-Some of his hearers were startled at a doctrine which
-made the Romish priesthood of no use. 'What a perverse
-doctrine!' they said; 'why does the abbot allow
-this Picard to preach it in his church?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_118" id="Ref_118" href="#Foot_118">[118]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the other hand the Abbot St. George was delighted
-with the young man's sermons, but hesitated
-to take the decisive step. The Benedictine abbeys
-were independent, powerful, and rich; the monks
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">{67}</a></span>
-generally belonged to noble families, and surpassed the
-other religious orders in intelligence, morality, and extensive
-familiarity with classical and christian learning.
-Ponthus felt a difficulty in leaving the quiet life he led
-in his abbey, or in sacrificing his rich benefice, and exposing
-himself to the vengeance of the laws.... He
-entertained the idea of reconciling the Church with
-the world, according to the system patronised by Margaret
-of Navarre. He would remain an abbot, but he
-would be a christian abbot like Roussel, and although
-wearing his friar's dress in the pulpit, he would preach
-the Gospel from it. Ponthus made the experiment,
-and his sermons caused a great deal of talk. The
-astonished hearers exclaimed: 'Why the abbot of
-Valence (it was the name of his monastery) is preaching
-the rudiments of heresy.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_119" id="Ref_119" href="#Foot_119">[119]</a></span>
-Guichard, St. George's
-third brother, abbot <i>in commendam</i> of Bonneveau,
-erelong shared the convictions of Ponthus, and professed
-them like him, but without giving up his benefice.
-The murmuring grew louder throughout the district.
-'Look,' said the catholics, 'the men who are caught
-in Calvin's web still cling to their cloisters and do not
-forsake the altars. The abbots stick to their flesh-pot
-(<i>marmite</i>), and dress themselves in catholic robes
-although they are secret Lutherans. They discharge
-their functions without showing what they are.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_120" id="Ref_120" href="#Foot_120">[120]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Ponthus felt ill at ease, his honest soul did not long
-permit him to halt on both sides. He sacrificed a
-brilliant position, dismissed his monks, set some to
-study and others to learn trades; and then, feeling
-convinced as Luther did, that a forced celibacy is a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">{68}</a></span>
-disorder invented by men, and that marriage is the
-order of God, he took a wife. The abbot of Valence
-(says an historian) was the first abbot in France who
-lifted the mask and showed himself an open Lutheran.
-His brothers followed the example he had set them.
-The Sieur de l'Orillonière, son of the eldest (the baron
-of Couhé) was the first of the family to give his blood
-for the protestant cause. Thus did the four brothers,
-full of zeal for the Reformation, prepare for themselves
-and for their children a life of suffering, combat,
-and exile, but also of faith, hope, and peace.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_121" id="Ref_121" href="#Foot_121">[121]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THREE MISSIONARIES SENT OUT.=</p>
-
-<p>When Calvin saw this movement of life going on
-around him, he thought of France. Would she remain
-behind Germany and Switzerland?... No. France
-will awake ... she is already waking; erelong she
-will receive the Gospel in its holy purity, and will increase
-in morality, in light, and in liberty: such were
-his hopes. But for their realisation, men were needed
-who, being regenerate themselves, should be fellow-workers
-with God in this new creation. Calvin asked
-himself whether some of the converts of Poitiers were
-not called to this work? Alas! what a small company
-for so large a kingdom! How great the weakness of
-the Gospel compared with the magnificence of Rome!
-'God acts thus,' he said, 'in order to strip us of all
-pride. And therefore he chooses the weak ones of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">{69}</a></span>
-this world to confound the strong. If the iron grows
-red in the fire,' he added, 'it is that it may be forged.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_122" id="Ref_122" href="#Foot_122">[122]</a></span>
-He wished to forge it and to make serviceable instruments
-out of it. One day being at the usual meeting,
-he said: 'Is there any one here willing to go and give
-light to those whom the pope has blinded?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_123" id="Ref_123" href="#Foot_123">[123]</a></span>
-Jean Vernou, Philip Véron, and Albert Babinot stood forward.
-Calvin had not forgotten the Angoumois
-where he possessed beloved friends; thither and into
-the adjacent provinces he will first send his missionaries
-and commence the evangelisation of France:
-'You, Babinot, will go into Guyenne and Languedoc,'
-he said; 'Philip Véron, you will go into Saintonge
-and Angoumois; and you, Jean Vernou, will stay at
-Poitiers and the neighbourhood.' Calvin and the other
-brethren did not think that these missionaries required
-regular theological studies; had they not received the
-necessary gifts from God, 'neither more nor less than
-if He had given them with His own hand?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_124" id="Ref_124" href="#Foot_124">[124]</a></span>
-But they had need to be recommended to the almighty grace of
-God. They therefore prayed together, and Calvin
-called upon the Lord to accept the services of these
-pious men. He told them to go and proclaim the
-Gospel, not in the name of any man, but in the name
-of the Lord, and because God commanded it. A collection
-provided for the expenses of this mission, and
-the evangelists departed.</p>
-
-<p>Babinot having reached the banks of the Garonne
-and entered Toulouse, resolved to address in the first
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">{70}</a></span>
-place the young noblemen who were studying there.
-A learned man (he had lectured at Poitiers on the
-<i>Institutes</i> of Justinian), he was firm, upright, zealous
-in the faith, and at the same time very gentle, so that
-he was called <i>the Goodfellow</i> (Bonhomme). Many
-students were brought to the light by him. He next
-began to visit several little flocks in the neighbourhood,
-and celebrated the Lord's Supper with them
-after the manner which the man of God (as he called
-Calvin) had taught him.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_125" id="Ref_125" href="#Foot_125">[125]</a></span>
-'He went through the
-country, praying secretly here and there in humble
-conventicles.' A regent or schoolmaster of Agen,
-named Sarrasin, having permitted him to speak in his
-school, was himself converted to the Gospel, and immediately
-began to teach the Word of God, but not
-so as to attract observation.</p>
-
-<p>Véron, who was as remarkable for his activity as
-Babinot for his gentleness, carried also into every
-place the news of the truth: he spent more than twenty
-years in this occupation.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_126" id="Ref_126" href="#Foot_126">[126]</a></span>
-He walked on foot through
-Poitou, Anjou, Angoumois, Saintonge, and even Guyenne.
-'I desire,' he said, 'to gather up the stray
-sheep of the Lord.' Wherever he went, he invited
-souls to come to the good shepherd, <i>who giveth his life
-for the sheep</i>; and those who could distinguish the
-voice of the shepherd from that of the wolf, and see
-the difference between the call of God and the inventions
-of men, answered and entered into the fold.
-And hence he was called the Gatherer (<i>ramasseur</i>).
-'Of a truth,' said Cayer the priest, 'this Gatherer
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">{71}</a></span>
-marches out and does not leave a corner of our province,
-where he does not go sounding his way, to try
-and make some prize.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_127" id="Ref_127" href="#Foot_127">[127]</a></span>
-On arriving in any town or
-village, he inquired for the best disposed persons,
-entered their houses, and sought to instruct them in
-the truth. He had taken with him some of Calvin's
-manuscripts, and when he desired to strengthen his
-hearers' souls, he would take them out of his pocket-book,
-and show them, saying that they were the writings
-of a great man; and then, after reading a few
-extracts, he would return them carefully to their
-place. 'The <i>gatherer</i>,' said fervent Roman-catholics,
-'shows these papers as a great curiosity, as if they
-were Sibylline verses.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_128" id="Ref_128" href="#Foot_128">[128]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE REFORM AND THE YOUNG.=</p>
-
-<p>These evangelists especially addressed the young.
-Calvin would not have religious instruction neglected,
-or subordinated to secular instruction: it should have
-its separate place. He believed that all culture, but
-especially religious teaching, ought to begin with
-early youth; that the soul then possesses a power of
-receiving and appropriating what is set before it, that
-it never will have again; and that if the seeds of a
-religious life are not sown and do not germinate in the
-heart of the child, the man will perish wholly. He
-had said to the three evangelists: 'Let your first
-attention be always to the professors and schoolmasters.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_129" id="Ref_129" href="#Foot_129">[129]</a></span>
-The zealous catholics observed this method.
-'See!' they said, 'as youth is easily led astray,
-they hide the <i>minister</i> under the cloak of the <i>magister</i>
-(master).'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_130" id="Ref_130" href="#Foot_130">[130]</a></span>
-Calvin's friends thus instilled their doctrines
-into the schools of Guyenne. Sarrasin converted
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">{72}</a></span>
-another schoolmaster named Vendocin, who became
-so firm a Christian, that he preferred to be burnt over
-a slow fire to abjuring Calvinism.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_131" id="Ref_131" href="#Foot_131">[131]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The men who devoutly adhered to the formulas of
-Rome were grieved when they saw the young so
-readily receiving the evangelical doctrine. At Bordeaux
-and Toulouse, at Angoulême and Aden, in the cloisters,
-in the law-courts, and even in the market-places,
-the loudest complaints were made. 'These <i>Mercuries</i>
-(the name they gave to Calvin's missionaries) are
-doing much mischief in the schools,' they said. 'As
-soon as the captains of the young (i.e. the masters)
-are conquered, the little soldiers march under their
-colours. The <i>young</i> heads of <i>young</i> folks are more
-easily disturbed by the heretic <i>aconite</i> than the old.
-They rush into danger, without examining it; and
-they are lost before they are aware of it. They embrace
-these new doctrines with such courage that
-many, who have only down on their chins, expose
-themselves to voluntary death, and thus lose both
-soul and body.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_132" id="Ref_132" href="#Foot_132">[132]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE REFORMATION AND SCIENCE.=</p>
-
-<p>While Babinot and Véron were traversing the
-south, John Vernou held firm at Poitiers, and aroused
-the students. The Reformation is fond of learning: it
-looks upon science as the friend of religion. Faith,
-it says, does not require of Christians to know only
-what is learnt by faith, or not to know scientifically
-what they ought to learn. It desires that we should
-know, and know well. But on the other hand, it believes
-that true science cannot require of the adept to
-despise the truths that faith reveals. It is essential
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">{73}</a></span>
-to the progress of humanity that there should always
-be a good understanding between faith and science.
-And accordingly the Reformation calls upon them to
-be united. Unhappily, disagreement is possible and
-even easy. The philosopher and the christian fall
-with great facility into a lamentable onesidedness,
-which makes the former despise religion, and the
-latter science. In order that faith and science should
-seek each other and unite, the moral element should
-prevail in those who are engaged with both. If it
-is weakened, religion easily produces fanatics, and
-science unbelievers: a moral torpor, the sleep of
-conscience is in every age the great and only explanation
-of these two lamentable errors. As soon as the
-conscience is awakened, as soon as that holy light is
-kindled in man, there is no longer any fanaticism or
-incredulity. Such were Calvin's thoughts. His disciple
-Vernou endeavoured like himself to unite faith
-with science in the university of Poitiers, and scattered
-among the youth who frequented it (as history tells
-us) the seeds of Christian doctrine.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin's three missionaries, Babinot, Véron, and
-Vernou, were soon famous throughout the west of
-France, and the wrath of the clergy of all ranks, and
-even of laymen of note, knew no bounds. The college
-professors hunted in their Homers for terms of abuse
-to heap on these heralds of God's word. 'These three
-worthy apostles,' they said, 'are the agents of the
-decrees of the arch-heretic Calvin and the firebrands
-of France.... Look at them ... these are the men
-that want to reform the world.... Wretched Thersites,
-miserable Irus, Ithacan beggars ... who set themselves
-up as the equals of Ajax and Achilles.... They
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">{74}</a></span>
-were born yesterday, like gourds, and yet they trace
-their genealogy, as if they were descended from the
-apostles!' Ulysses, as we know, killed the beggar
-Irus with a blow of his fist. These disdainful and
-bitter critics remembered this, and hoped that the
-kings of France would give a death-blow to the Reform.
-They dealt the blow, but protestantism was
-not slain.</p>
-
-<p>When Calvin was subsequently settled at Geneva,
-Babinot, Véron, and Vernou paid him a visit. They
-were delighted to find the Christian professor surrounded
-with respect, and were never tired of listening
-to him from whose lips they had heard at Poitiers the
-first words of life. They did not, however, stay with
-him. Babinot and Véron returned to the west of
-France to continue to propagate the Gospel there,
-which they did until their death. As for Vernou, he
-was seized while crossing the mountains of Savoy, and
-was burnt alive at Chambery, confessing Jesus Christ
-his Saviour.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_133" id="Ref_133" href="#Foot_133">[133]</a></span>
-Let us return to Poitiers.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN LEAVES POITIERS.=</p>
-
-<p>The prior of Trois-Moutiers, with whom Calvin
-was staying, was one of those who, though fond of
-learning and the Gospel, did not wish to break with
-the Church. The conversations at the Basses-Treilles,
-the 'manducations' in the caves of St. Benedict, the
-evangelisation of the city and country ... all made
-him uneasy. He was alarmed at the thought that
-the officers might knock at his door some day, and
-that the <i>heretic</i> would be taken in his house. He
-therefore advised Calvin to continue his journey.
-The reformer had ended his task; he was now to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">{75}</a></span>
-turn his steps elsewhere; he bade his friends farewell.
-As he left them, he could say like his Master: <i>What
-will I, if the fire be already kindled?</i> Calvin established
-the date of the Reformation at Poitiers, when,
-writing at a later period to the Church which assembled
-in that city, he said: 'Do not go astray
-from the doctrine which you have received <i>in part
-from us</i>, since it has pleased God to make use of
-<i>our labour</i> for your salvation.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_134" id="Ref_134" href="#Foot_134">[134]</a></span>
-Although removed,
-he still continued to be the director of that Church.
-'I know full well that you are <i>spied</i> (guêtés) by the
-enemy,' he wrote to them; 'but let not the fear of
-persecution hinder you from seeking the pastures of
-life.... There is a middle line between temerity and
-timidity.... Remain tranquilly (<i>coyement</i>) in your
-hiding-place; but beware, my brethren, that you do
-not shut the door against those who desire to come to
-the kingdom of God.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_135" id="Ref_135" href="#Foot_135">[135]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>One thought absorbed him at the time he left
-Poitiers. It was the month of April 1534; on the
-10th of July he would be twenty-five years old. A
-regulation of the Church, confirmed by the Council of
-Trent, fixed this as the age at which those who have
-received the tonsure were promoted to the priesthood.
-In early youth he had received the tonsure, that
-symbol of sacerdotal royalty, borrowed (St. Jerome
-tells us) from the pagan priests of Isis and Serapis;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_136" id="Ref_136" href="#Foot_136">[136]</a></span>
-and his age now summoned him to enter holy orders.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">{76}</a></span>
-He did not want for friends who advised him to
-remain in the Church for its reformation; the chapel
-of Gesine at Noyon, and the cure of Pont l'Evêque
-awaited him, and many other doors would open before
-him. He was invited to come and put himself in
-due order. But Calvin shrank in alarm from the
-idea of enrolling himself among the pope's soldiers.
-'If I make myself the pope's vassal,' he said, 'how
-can I conscientiously fight against the papists?...
-The sovereign majesty of God would be offended!...
-I would sooner give up not only one benefice, but a
-hundred, even of the most brilliant.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_137" id="Ref_137" href="#Foot_137">[137]</a></span>
-O cursed wealth of the Church! There is not a single penny
-of it that is not defiled with cheating, sacrilege, and
-robbery!' There was no ecclesiastical dignity to
-which a mind so preeminently administrative might
-not aspire. But Calvin was convinced that to save
-the Church it was necessary to sacrifice Rome. Two
-paths lay before him: one broad and easy, the other
-narrow and difficult: his choice was not doubtful.
-'The Gospel,' he said, 'is more than all the riches,
-honour, and ease of this world.... I am ready to give
-up everything that withdraws me from it.'</p>
-
-<p>Calvin left Poitiers, accompanied by his faithful Du
-Tillet, who for two years scarcely ever quitted him.
-The young canon was one of those honest but weak
-natures who have absolute need of a support, and
-who not knowing how to find it in the word of God,
-seek it in strong men. He therefore attached himself
-to the young reformer, as the vine to the elm. Alas!
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">{77}</a></span>
-the day was to come, when terrified by persecution,
-and unable to make up his mind to break with the
-Church, he would cling to the papacy and take that
-for his support.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=IMPRESSION HE LEFT AT POITIERS.=</p>
-
-<p>A surprising transformation had been effected in
-Poitiers, and Calvin left behind him many regrets
-and tears. 'Oh! would to God that we had many
-Calvins!' wrote Charles de Ste. Marthe, one of the
-professors of the university. 'I am distressed that
-you have been taken from us; I envy the country
-where you are, and my only consolation is that our
-university is now filled with pious and learned men.
-Pray to God that, by the Spirit of Christ, we may
-worthily proclaim the Gospel, in the midst of our
-enemies and even in the midst of the flames.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_138" id="Ref_138" href="#Foot_138">[138]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin passed through Orleans, went on to Paris,
-and then proceeded to Noyon, where he arrived at the
-beginning of May. He immediately informed his
-relations and the bishop that he had come to resign
-his benefices. We may imagine the astonishment
-of his friends. What! let slip the opportunity of
-doing so much good in the Church! Renounce important
-offices to join an obscure sect! It seemed
-the act of a madman; but nothing could bend his
-unshakeable resolution.</p>
-
-<p>On Monday, May 4, 1534, in the presence of the
-grand vicar of Monseigneur the bishop and count
-of Noyon, of his chancellor, and of the notary of the
-chapter, Calvin resigned the chapel of Gesine in
-favour of Master Anthony de la Marlière, and his cure
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">{78}</a></span>
-in favour of another ecclesiastic of Noyon. It would
-even appear that he sold his patrimonial property at
-the same time.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_139" id="Ref_139" href="#Foot_139">[139]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Having broken the last ties that bound him to the
-Roman Church, Calvin began to speak with greater
-freedom to those around him of the Gospel.</p>
-
-<p>He had found in his father's house two brothers and
-a sister, Anthony, Charles, and Mary: these were the
-first persons he invited to Christ, in affectionate and
-pious conversations. He then turned to some members
-of the episcopal clergy and other inhabitants of
-Noyon. He put his hand (to use his own expression)
-on those who were running elsewhere, 'to stop them
-short.' Anthony and Mary were the first to answer
-to him. Charles resisted longer; he received however
-at that time a seed in his heart which germinated
-afterwards.</p>
-
-<p>A canon, named Henry de Collemont, some other
-clergymen, and a few of the citizens, appear to have
-lent an ear to the pious and eloquent words of their
-young fellow-citizen. However, he was anxious to
-return to the capital, and about the end of May he
-was in Paris, where fresh struggles awaited him.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_116" id="Foot_116" href="#Ref_116">[116]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Théodore de Bèze, <i>Hist. des Eglises ref.</i> i. p. 63.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_117" id="Foot_117" href="#Ref_117">[117]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Lièvre, <i>Hist. des Protestants du Poitou</i>, i. p. 38.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_118" id="Foot_118" href="#Ref_118">[118]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Hic Calvino in ecclesiæ navi suæ perversa dogmata prædicare
-permisit.'—<i>Gallia christiana</i> in loco. See also Lièvre, p. 38.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_119" id="Foot_119" href="#Ref_119">[119]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> vii. p. 919.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_120" id="Foot_120" href="#Ref_120">[120]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_121" id="Foot_121" href="#Ref_121">[121]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-This family has reckoned, even to our own days, men decided for
-the Gospel. The interview of Armand-Louis de St. George, Count of
-Marsay, with Voltaire, in his château of Changins, near Geneva, is well
-known. Appointed British resident in that city in 1717, he acquired the
-rights of citizenship (<i>France Protestante</i>, under <i>Saint
-George</i>). The present head of the family, Count Alexander de St.
-George, for many years president of the Evangelical Society of Geneva,
-took an active part in the liberation of the Madiai and in other
-christian works.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_122" id="Foot_122" href="#Ref_122">[122]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Calvinus interim, ferrum sibi in igne esse intelligens.'—Flor.
-Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés</i>, ii. p. 253.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_123" id="Foot_123" href="#Ref_123">[123]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ut miseris papistis oculos aperiendi provinciam
-susceperint.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_124" id="Foot_124" href="#Ref_124">[124]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Harmonie évangélique</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_125" id="Foot_125" href="#Ref_125">[125]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Manducationem quæ a viro illo Dei tradita erat celebrabat.'—Flor.
-Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 252.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_126" id="Foot_126" href="#Ref_126">[126]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. lib. vii. cap. xii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_127" id="Foot_127" href="#Ref_127">[127]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> vii. cap. xii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_128" id="Foot_128" href="#Ref_128">[128]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. cap. xi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_129" id="Foot_129" href="#Ref_129">[129]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_130" id="Foot_130" href="#Ref_130">[130]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_131" id="Foot_131" href="#Ref_131">[131]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> lib. vii. cap. xi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_132" id="Foot_132" href="#Ref_132">[132]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. cap. xi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_133" id="Foot_133" href="#Ref_133">[133]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> A. Lièvre, <i>Hist. des Protest. du
-Poitou</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_134" id="Foot_134" href="#Ref_134">[134]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin à l'Eglise de Poitiers, <i>Lettres Françaises</i>, tom. ii.
-p. 12. See also Lièvre, <i>Hist. des Prot. du Poitou</i>, tom. i. p. 33.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_135" id="Foot_135" href="#Ref_135">[135]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin aux fidèles de Poitiers, <i>Lettres Françaises</i>, i. p.
-433.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_136" id="Foot_136" href="#Ref_136">[136]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Rasis capitibus sicut sacerdotis Isidis atque Serapidis.'—Hieron.
-xiii. <i>in Ezech.</i> cap. xliv.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_137" id="Foot_137" href="#Ref_137">[137]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Optimis et splendidis sacerdotiis, se protinus abdicat.'—Calvini
-<i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 90.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_138" id="Foot_138" href="#Ref_138">[138]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Lettre de Ste Marthe à Calvin, found by Jules Bonnet in the
-library at Gotha (MSS. no. 404).</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_139" id="Foot_139" href="#Ref_139">[139]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Desmay, <i>Vie de Calvin hérésiarque</i>, pp. 48, 49. Levasseur,
-<i>Annales de Noyon</i>, pp. 1161, 1168. Drelincourt, p. 171. We possess
-a deed by which Calvin sells to one of the king's mounted sergeants his
-field of the Tuilerie for the sum of 10 livres tournois.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">{79}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER VII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE EVANGELICAL CHRISTIANS OF PARIS IN 1534.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Summer 1534.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="side">=PROGRESS OF THE GOSPEL IN FRANCE.=</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">CALVIN found Paris very different from what he
-had left it, when he had quitted it in such great
-haste eight months before. The times seemed favourable
-to the Gospel. The King of England, although
-remaining catholic at heart, had resolved to emancipate
-himself from the dominion of Rome: this event
-had created a great sensation throughout Europe, and
-men asked whether Francis I. would not imitate 'his
-good brother.' He did not seem far from it. At
-that time he was uniting with the protestant princes
-of Germany, he was restoring one of them to his
-states, and laying before the French clergy articles
-of faith drawn up by the author of the <i>Confession of
-Augsburg</i>. Calvin knew of these strange acts of the
-monarch, and it was partly this which had induced
-him to return to Paris. Francis I. was not the only
-person in France who felt new aspirations. There
-was in all classes a leaning towards a reformation.
-The learned called for liberty of thought, and desired
-to see the reign of the monks come to an end. Certain
-statesmen wished to deliver France from the
-enslaving influence of Rome, even while maintaining
-its catholicity. William du Bellay, the king's most
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">{80}</a></span>
-active minister, called Bucer the reformer, 'an excellent
-professor of the best theology;'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_140" id="Ref_140" href="#Foot_140">[140]</a></span>
-and wrote to
-him: 'Everything bids us be hopeful: the king's
-taste for a better learning (that is, for the Holy Scriptures)
-increases day by day.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_141" id="Ref_141" href="#Foot_141">[141]</a></span>
-Bucer himself, who
-was full of hope, communicated it to his friends:
-'The pope's reign is falling very low in France,' he
-wrote, 'and many people long for Jesus Christ.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_142" id="Ref_142" href="#Foot_142">[142]</a></span>
-The clergy became uneasy, and a Franciscan friar
-complained that 'the heresy of Luther having entered
-France, had already covered so much ground, as
-almost to call itself her mistress, even in Paris.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_143" id="Ref_143" href="#Foot_143">[143]</a></span>
-Noblemen and men of letters, citizens, students, and
-many of the lower classes hailed the Reformation as
-the commencement of a new day. 'All who have
-any sense,' it was said, 'whatever be their age or sex,
-when they hear the truth preached, forsake bigotry.'</p>
-
-<p>Such were the circumstances under which Calvin
-came to reside in Paris at the house of his friend La
-Forge, at the sign of the <i>Pelican</i>, in the Rue St.
-Martin. The pious tradesman and his wife received
-him with the most cordial hospitality, and fearing lest
-he should again expose a life so precious to the
-Church, they conjured him not to trust too much to
-what was said about the king's disposition, and to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">{81}</a></span>
-beware of teaching in public, if he would not risk his life.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_144" id="Ref_144" href="#Foot_144">[144]</a></span>
-The flame of persecution which appeared
-extinct, might break out again at any moment.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=MARTYRDOM OF POINTET.=</p>
-
-<p>One martyrdom, of which he was told all the particulars,
-was well calculated to enforce these rules
-of prudence. Calvin did not find in Paris that
-strong and decided christian, Pointet the surgeon,
-whom he had often seen at the meetings.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_145" id="Ref_145" href="#Foot_145">[145]</a></span>
-The monks, whom this bold man had reprimanded so
-soundly for their immoralities, had raised a clamour
-against him; Leclerc, the priest of St. André-des-Arts,
-had prosecuted him; he had been imprisoned in
-the Conciergerie and condemned to be burnt after
-being strangled. This was paying very dearly for
-the lessons of morality he had given the friars.
-Before the hour of execution, the gaoler had taken
-him into the prison chapel, and left him there with a
-monk before an image. The confessor began to
-exhort him: 'Kneel down before that image and ask
-pardon for your sins.' Seeing that his penitent
-remained motionless, he seized him by the neck to
-force him upon his knees. But Pointet, who was
-naturally of a 'violent temper,' thrust the monk back
-roughly, saying: 'Satan, begone, and do not tempt
-me to turn idolater.' The confused and exasperated
-confessor ran hastily out of the chapel, and going to
-the criminal chamber told the president and his two
-assessors what had passed, and begged them to come
-and bring the man to reason. 'He is a madman, he
-is out of his senses,' exclaimed the magistrates,
-as they accompanied the confessor. These three
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">{82}</a></span>
-individuals, who had just condemned Pointet to be
-strangled, having repeated the invitation which the
-monk had given him, the prisoner, who was annoyed
-by this persecution, treated them as he had treated the
-monk; he called them 'bloodthirsty wretches, murderers,
-robbers, who unjustly and against all reason
-put to death the children of God!' The three judges,
-excited and terrified in their turn, hurried back to
-the court, and there, heated by passion, they increased
-the severity of the sentence, adding that Pointet
-should have his tongue cut out before anything else
-was done to him. Had not that tongue called them
-murderers? It was hoped that he would now show
-himself more tractable, but they were mistaken. The
-steadfast christian could not speak, but he refused to
-make the least sign of recantation, and to bend his
-head before an image. The enemies of truth (as the
-chronicle styles them) seeing this, had recourse to a
-fresh aggravation of the sentence: they condemned
-him to be burnt alive, 'which was done as cruelly as
-they could devise.' This death produced a deep impression
-on the minds of the evangelical christians of
-Paris.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_146" id="Ref_146" href="#Foot_146">[146]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin, yielding to the representations of his friends,
-resolved to substitute 'private admonitions' for
-preaching at the assemblies, and began by visiting
-the humble christians whom he had heard spoken of
-at La Forge's.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE PARALYTIC.=</p>
-
-<p>In the street which lay between the two gates of
-the law courts, there was a shoemaker's shop. On
-entering it, no one was seen but a poor hunchback,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">{83}</a></span>
-crippled in all his limbs, except the tongue and the
-arms. This paralytic creature was the shoemaker's
-son, and by name Bartholomew. 'Alas!' said his
-father, Robert Milon, to those who expressed their
-compassion at the sight, 'he was not always so; he
-was quite another person in his youth, endowed with
-excellent gifts both of body and mind.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_147" id="Ref_147" href="#Foot_147">[147]</a></span>
-In fact, Bartholomew was once the handsomest man of the
-parish, very clever, and full of liveliness and imagination.
-He had abused these gifts; he had followed
-his impassioned disposition, and had launched into
-life, indulging in all the lusts of youth, in foolish
-amours and other kinds of irregularities with which
-young folks willingly defile themselves. Continually
-carried away by his impetuous temper, he equally
-courted pleasures and quarrels, he rushed into the
-midst of the strife as soon as any discussion arose,
-and displayed unparalleled temerity in all his disputes.
-He got up balls and concerts, despised the things of
-God, turned the priests into ridicule, and laughed at
-pious men. Everybody in the quarter talked about
-Berthelot (as he was called) and of his exploits;
-some with admiration, others with fear. All the
-young men looked up to him as their leader.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=MILON'S CONVERSION.=</p>
-
-<p>One day, while giddily indulging in his ordinary
-diversions, he met with a fall and broke his ribs.
-As he would not apply any remedy, the mischief
-grew worse; the various parts of his body 'died
-little by little,' and he was entirely paralysed.
-What a change in his life! Poor Bartholomew, who
-had been so proud of his beauty, now weak, brokendown,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">{84}</a></span>
-deprived of the use of his limbs, unable any
-more to associate with his friends, was obliged to keep
-in his father's shop all day long. He was deeply distressed,
-not only by the severe pains he suffered, but
-more by the sight of his deformity. Sitting near the
-window, he had no other amusement than to watch
-the passers-by, and his temper being still the same,
-or rather soured by his misfortunes, he was not
-sparing of his sarcasms. One day, seeing one of the
-evangelicals passing before the shop, he began to
-insult him, and 'to scoff at the terrible majesty of
-God.'—'Holloa! Lutheran!' he called out, adding
-all sorts of taunts. The christian stopped; he was
-touched when he saw the pitiful condition of the
-wretched individual who insulted him, and going up
-to him, said affectionately: 'Poor man, why do you
-mock at the passers-by? Do you not see that God
-has <i>bent your body in this way in order to straighten
-your soul</i>?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_148" id="Ref_148" href="#Foot_148">[148]</a></span>
-These simple words struck Milon: he
-had never thought that his <i>soul</i> was <i>bent</i> as well as
-his body. 'Can it be true,' he asked, 'that God has
-made these misfortunes fall upon me, in order to reform
-his misguided creature?' He lent an ear to
-the Lutheran, who spoke with him, and gave him a
-New Testament, saying: 'Look at this book, and a
-few days hence you will tell me what you think of
-it.' Milon took the Gospel, opened it, and having
-begun, says the chronicler, 'to taste the fruit of this
-reading, he continued at it night and day.' This
-little volume was enough for him: he had no need of
-any teacher. The sword of the Word of God pierced
-to the bottom of his heart, and his past life terrified
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">{85}</a></span>
-him. But the gospel consoled him: 'It was to him
-like a loud trumpet sounding the praise of the grace
-of Christ.' Milon found the Saviour: 'Mercy has been
-shown me,' he said, 'in order that the love of God
-which pardons the greatest sinners, should be placed
-as on a hill, and be seen by all the world.' He had
-now a curb that restrained him, and prevented him
-from 'indulging in abuse, quarrels, bickerings, squabbles
-and contentions.' The wolf had become a lamb.
-Bartholomew imparted the riches he had found in the
-book of God to his father, to the other members of his
-family, and to all the customers who visited the shoemaker's
-shop. There was not a room in Paris that
-offered a spectacle at once so interesting and so varied.</p>
-
-<p>Bartholomew's christian charity became as inexhaustible
-as his worldly skill had once been fertile
-in inventing amusements. He devoted entirely to
-God the restless activity which he had lavished on
-the world. At certain hours of the day, the poor
-young man, 'unequalled in the art of writing,' would
-collect the children of the neighbourhood round his
-bed and dictate to them a few words of the Bible,
-teaching them how to form their letters properly.
-At other times he thought of the necessities of the
-poor, and laboured diligently with his own hands:
-'etching with aquafortis on knives, daggers, and
-sword-blades,' he executed many unusual things for
-the goldsmiths. He spent the proceeds of his labour
-in supporting several needy persons who possessed
-a knowledge of the Gospel. He had also a fine voice,
-and played on several instruments 'with singular
-grace;' accordingly, every morning and evening he
-consecrated to the praise of the Lord those gifts which
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">{86}</a></span>
-he had formerly dedicated to pleasure, accompanying
-himself as he sang psalms and spiritual songs. People
-came from all quarters to this shop, which was situated
-in the centre of Paris: some came 'by reason
-of the excellent and rare things he did;' others
-'visited him to hear his singing.' A large number
-were attracted by the great and sudden change that
-had taken place in him. 'If God has bestowed these
-gifts on me,' said the poor paralytic, 'it is to the end
-that His glory should be magnified in me.' He
-meekly taught the humble to receive the Gospel, and
-if any hypocrites presented themselves, 'he took
-them aside, and launched on them the thunderbolts
-of God.' 'In short,' adds the chronicler, 'his room
-was a true school of piety, day and night, re-echoing
-with the glory of the Lord.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=DU BOURG AND VALETON.=</p>
-
-<p>At some distance from this spot, but near De la
-Forge's, at the entrance of the Rue St. Denis, at the
-corner of the boulevard, was a large draper's shop, the
-<i>Black Horse</i>, belonging to John du Bourg. This
-tradesman was a man of independent character, who
-liked to see, to understand, and to judge for himself:
-he had never frequented the schools or even had
-much conversation with the evangelicals, but for all
-that, says the chronicle, he had not been denied the
-wisdom from heaven. By means of the Holy Scriptures,
-which he read constantly, and in which he
-humbly sought the truth, he had received from God
-the knowledge of those 'glad tidings which (as it was
-said) the wise cannot obtain by their own wisdom.'
-Forthwith he had begun to spread it around him with
-an unwearying activity, which astonished his neighbours.
-'That ardour, which makes a great show at
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">{87}</a></span>
-the beginning,' said some of his relatives, 'will soon
-end in smoke, like a fire of tow as the proverb says.'
-They were mistaken; the Word had sunk into his
-heart, and taken such deep root there, that it could
-not be plucked out. The priests had intrigued, kinsfolk
-had clamoured, and customers had deserted him,
-but 'neither money nor kindred could ever turn him
-aside from the truth.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_149" id="Ref_149" href="#Foot_149">[149]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>While his old friends were growing distant, new
-ones were drawing near him. A receiver of Nantes,
-Peter Valeton by name, was often seen entering his
-shop. Like Du Bourg, he was 'a man of sense and
-credit,' but while the tradesman had been instructed
-in solitude by the Holy Ghost, the receiver had come
-to a knowledge of the Gospel 'by means of some good
-people with whom he associated,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_150" id="Ref_150" href="#Foot_150">[150]</a></span>
-and then the study
-of the New Testament had confirmed his faith. He
-did not stop here. Being in easy circumstances, and
-fond of books, he bought all the writings of the
-reformers he could procure. If there was one in any
-bookseller's back shop, he would catch it up, pay for
-it instantly, hide it under his cloak, for fear the
-volume should be seen, and hurry home with it. On
-reaching his room, he would place it at the bottom of
-a large chest or trunk, the key of which he always
-carried with him. Then as soon as he had a spare
-moment, he would close his door, reopen the chest,
-take out the precious book, and read it eagerly. He
-listened if any person was coming, for though he was
-a faithful soul, he was still weak in the faith, and was
-afraid of the stake.</p>
-
-<p>All these pious men joyfully welcomed those who
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">{88}</a></span>
-showed any love for the Gospel. There was sometimes
-present at their meetings a Picard gentleman,
-by name John le Comte, belonging to the household
-of the Amirale de Bonnivet, widow of the celebrated
-favourite of Francis I. He was born at
-Etaples in 1500, had attached himself to Lefèvre, his
-fellow-townsman, followed him into Briçonnet's service,
-and only left him to enter Madame de Bonnivet's
-family, as tutor to her three sons. Constantly attending
-the meetings of the little Church, he often spoke
-at them, and every one appreciated his knowledge of
-Scripture (he could read them in Hebrew), his sound
-theology, and his talent in expounding the truth.
-We shall meet with him again in Switzerland.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=GIULIO CAMILLO.=</p>
-
-<p>Another rather singular person attracted the attention
-of the assembly by his dark complexion, his
-gloomy look, and mysterious air. He was a celebrated
-Italian, Giulio Camillo of Forli (in the States
-of the Church), philosopher, orator, poet, astrologer,
-philologist,and mythologist, of great skill in the cabalistic science,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_151" id="Ref_151" href="#Foot_151">[151]</a></span>
-who pretended to hold intercourse with
-the elementary beings, and had laboured forty years in
-constructing a machine in the form of a theatre, full
-of little niches, in which he lodged all our faculties
-and many other things besides, and by means of
-which he pretended to teach all the sciences. Francis I.
-having invited him to Paris, Camillo exhibited to
-him, and explained, his wonderful machine, at which
-the king was delighted, and gave him 500 ducats.
-Although taciturn and dreamy, he courted the society
-of pious men. Paleario speaks of him in his letters,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_152" id="Ref_152" href="#Foot_152">[152]</a></span>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">{89}</a></span>
-and he became intimate in Paris with Sturm, who
-willingly received into his house the learned of all
-countries. The latter was charmed to see a scholar,
-invited from Italy by the king, and of whom all the
-world was talking, inclining towards the Gospel; and
-one day, writing to Bucer, he said: 'Camillo professes
-not only profound science but admirable piety also....
-God often does something by means of men of
-this sort; who, when their will is equal to their
-means, become great patterns.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_153" id="Ref_153" href="#Foot_153">[153]</a></span>
-Camillo knocked at
-the door and came in while Sturm was writing.
-Sturm showed him the letter, and the Italian wrote
-at the foot: 'Would to God that my mind were in my
-hands, or that it could flow from my pen!... If you
-could see it you would certainly recognise it as your own.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_154" id="Ref_154" href="#Foot_154">[154]</a></span>
-It would appear that Camillo was deceived.
-He was a man of original mind, desirous of learning
-everything new, including the Reformation; but there
-was some quackery in him. If his famous machine
-did nothing for the progress of science, it advanced
-his fortunes, which was a compensation in his eyes.
-Calvin was less pleased with him than Sturm; the
-eagle eye of the reformer was not deceived. The
-Italian's gloomy air seemed to hide some unbelief or
-heresy. 'If spiritual joy reign not in our hearts,' he
-said, 'the kingdom of God is not in us.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_155" id="Ref_155" href="#Foot_155">[155]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Many other well-known persons visited the friends
-of the Gospel in Paris; among them were Des
-Fosset, afterwards lieutenant-general of Berry, Jacques
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">{90}</a></span>
-Canaye, subsequently a famous advocate before the
-parliament, besides other lawyers, noblemen, royal
-servants, tradesmen, and professors. Persecution made
-them known, and we shall have to name many of them
-among the exiles and martyrs.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_156" id="Ref_156" href="#Foot_156">[156]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Besides these adult laymen, a number of scholars
-or students was observed at the evangelical meetings.
-Among them was a boy of Melun, Jacques
-Amyot by name, 'of very low origin,' says Beza,
-picked up in the streets of Paris by a lady, who,
-wishing to turn him to account, made him attend her
-sons to college and carry their books. Amyot, who
-was to be one of the most celebrated writers of the
-age, soon showed a wonderful aptitude for Greek
-literature; he had even learnt to know something of
-the Gospel. He was to change hereafter, to take orders,
-to forget what he had learnt, and even to become
-'a very wretched persecutor;'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_157" id="Ref_157" href="#Foot_157">[157]</a></span>
-but at this time he
-was considered to be a friend of the new doctrine.</p>
-
-<p>It was the common people, however, that were
-most numerous at these conventicles. One of them,
-Henry Poille, a poor bricklayer from a village near
-Meaux, told a friend one day 'that he had come to a
-knowledge of the truth in the school of Meaux, thanks
-to Bishop Briçonnet. Alas!' he added, 'the bishop has
-been overcome since then by the enemies of the cross.'</p>
-
-<p>Even the most necessitous persons were active in
-good works. A poor woman named Catelle had
-turned school-mistress out of love for children. 'It
-would be too cruel a thing,' she said, 'to exclude
-those of tender age from God's grace!'</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">{91}</a></div>
-
-<p>But of all these evangelical christians of Paris no
-one had more zeal than De la Forge. 'He never
-spared his goods for the poor,' says the chronicler.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_158" id="Ref_158" href="#Foot_158">[158]</a></span>
-He had the Bible printed at his own expense, and
-along with the alms which he distributed he would
-always add a kind word, and often a Gospel or some
-other pious book.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=A CHARACTERISTIC OF CALVIN.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin was not however equally pleased with everything
-in Paris. He willingly recognised the beauty
-of the city, but was terrified at seeing fearful abysses
-and (as he called them) 'the depths of hell' side by side
-with its magnificent palaces. He felt 'extreme sadness'
-at the sight. An immense movement was then
-being accomplished all over the world. As the sun
-of spring brings up the seed sown in the earth—the
-tares as well as the good seed—the sun of liberty
-that was beginning to shine quickened not only the
-germs of truth, but sometimes also those of error.
-Calvin's soul was deeply grieved at this; but he did
-not stand still. He had received from God the call to
-oppose all false doctrines, and was preparing to do so.
-This is one of the main features of his character. To
-the very last he combated the pride of those who wish
-to know everything; the rage for subtleties, mystical
-pretensions, immorality, unitarian doctrines, the
-deism which denies the supernatural, and the pantheistic
-and atheistic theories. In Paris he met with all
-these aberrations. His principal means of combating
-error was to put forward the truth; yet he thought it
-useful sometimes to have conversations and even conferences
-with his adversaries, of which we shall see
-some examples.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_140" id="Foot_140" href="#Ref_140">[140]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Melioris theologiæ professor eximius.'—Strasburg MS. (June 20,
-1534).</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_141" id="Foot_141" href="#Ref_141">[141]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Etiam rex ipse, cujus animus erga meliores litteras in dies magis
-ac magis augetur.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_142" id="Foot_142" href="#Ref_142">[142]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Pulchre inclinabat regnum Papæ in Gallia. Ad Christum multi
-adspirabant.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_143" id="Foot_143" href="#Ref_143">[143]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'S'y était fait place déjà fort large, jusqu'à presque se dire
-maitresse, mêmement de Paris.'—Fontaine, <i>Hist. cath. de notre
-Temps</i>, (Paris) p. 188.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_144" id="Foot_144" href="#Ref_144">[144]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Magnum vitæ periculum.'—Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_145" id="Foot_145" href="#Ref_145">[145]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See Vol. II. of this History, bk. ii. chap. xxxii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_146" id="Foot_146" href="#Ref_146">[146]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 107 verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_147" id="Foot_147" href="#Ref_147">[147]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 112 verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_148" id="Foot_148" href="#Ref_148">[148]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 113.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_149" id="Foot_149" href="#Ref_149">[149]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 113 verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_150" id="Foot_150" href="#Ref_150">[150]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 113.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_151" id="Foot_151" href="#Ref_151">[151]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Tiraboschi, <i>Lettere italiane</i>, vii. p. 315.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_152" id="Foot_152" href="#Ref_152">[152]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Palearii <i>Op.</i> lib. i. ep. xvii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_153" id="Foot_153" href="#Ref_153">[153]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Per ejuscemodi homines, sæpe Deus aliquid facit, qui quum quantum
-possunt tantum velint, magno solent esse exemplo.'—Strasburg MS.
-Schmidt, <i>G. Roussel</i>, p. 220.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_154" id="Foot_154" href="#Ref_154">[154]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Utinam animus esset nunc in manibus atque in calamo.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_155" id="Foot_155" href="#Ref_155">[155]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>in</i> <i>I. Epist. ad Thessal.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_156" id="Foot_156" href="#Ref_156">[156]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See below, chap. xi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_157" id="Foot_157" href="#Ref_157">[157]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Th. de Bèze, <i>Dict. Eccles.</i> p. 11. <i>France
-protestante</i>, art. <i>Amyot</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_158" id="Foot_158" href="#Ref_158">[158]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 113.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">{92}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER VIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN'S FIRST RELATIONS WITH THE LIBERTINES
- AND SERVETUS.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Summer 1534.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">DE LA FORGE willingly received all pious strangers
-visiting Paris. One day Calvin saw at
-his friend's table certain individuals who, he fancied,
-had something singular about them. His eyes were
-fixed on them and he tried to make them out. One of
-them, named Coppin, from Lille, a man of the people
-and of no education, but with boldness greater than
-his ignorance, raised his voice, affected a sententious
-style, and spoke like an oracle. 'Verily,' said Calvin,
-'a fool never has any doubts.' A little farther on sat
-Quintin from Hainault, who seemed to have more
-education, and certainly more cunning. He assumed
-airs of superiority, an imposing tone of voice, and
-expressing himself ambiguously, gave himself the air
-of a prophet. 'The latter seems to me a big rogue,'
-said Calvin of him.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_159" id="Ref_159" href="#Foot_159">[159]</a></span>
-Quintin was usually accompanied
-by a few disciples, ignorant and fanatical persons
-who repeated all he said; they were Bertrand des
-Moulins, Claude Perceval, and others. These bold
-and adventurous sectarians having nothing and never
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">{93}</a></span>
-working, looked out wherever they went for some
-good-natured person who would keep them in their
-idleness by supplying them with victuals and drink.
-They crept into the house by meek enticing ways,
-making no display at first of their particular doctrines,
-reserving these for the initiated only. They
-strove to win over all who listened to them, and to
-that end spoke continually of the Holy Ghost, and
-tried to make men believe that they were His apostles.
-Simple souls allowed themselves to be caught. They
-would have believed they had committed the unpardonable
-sin, if they had not looked upon these people
-as saints.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE SPIRITUALS OR LIBERTINES.=</p>
-
-<p>One day when there was a large party at De la
-Forge's, Quintin began to publish his doctrines.
-Whatever was the subject of conversation, the <i>spirit</i>
-immediately appeared. Calvin lost all patience: 'You
-are like those country priests,' he said, 'who, having
-but one image in their church, make it serve for five
-or six saints. He is either St. James, or St. Francis,
-or St. Basil, and the priest receives as many offerings
-as there are saints.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_160" id="Ref_160" href="#Foot_160">[160]</a></span>
-Sometimes, however, these
-'spirituals,' as they were called, betrayed themselves,
-and let their fanatical opinions slip out.
-'There are not many spirits,' said Quintin, 'there is
-only one spirit of God, who is and lives in all creatures.
-It is this sole spirit which does everything;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_161" id="Ref_161" href="#Foot_161">[161]</a></span>
-man has no will, no more than if he were a stone.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_162" id="Ref_162" href="#Foot_162">[162]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Such language surprised Calvin. He examined
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">{94}</a></span>
-the strange prophets, and discovered several capital
-errors in them. 'The Holy Spirit is our reason,' said
-some, 'and that Spirit teaches us that there is neither
-condemnation nor hell.'—'The soul,' said others,
-'is material and mortal.'—'God is everything,' said
-Quintin, 'and everything is God.' Immoral doctrines
-were combined with this system. Calvin's conscience
-was terrified: he had risen up for the purpose of
-destroying a worm-eaten framework that men had
-built round the temple of God, and now rash hands
-were presuming to destroy the temple itself. He
-wished to destroy the superstitious traditions of so
-many ages, only to set the Divine truths of the apostolic
-times in their place; and all of a sudden he
-found himself face to face with men who desired no
-other God but nature, and would change the world
-into a vast wilderness. Calvin did not separate from
-Rome in order to be less christian, but to be more
-so. He resolved, therefore, to attack those who under
-the cloak of Protestantism suppress the mysteries of
-faith; to combat with the same severity both pope
-and sectarians, and if he undertook to destroy the
-fables of men, he would try still more to preserve the
-revelations of God. Had not Luther cried out when
-speaking of these would-be spirituals: 'It is the devil
-who seeks to turn you aside from the truth....
-Turn your backs upon the drivellers!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_163" id="Ref_163" href="#Foot_163">[163]</a></span>
-Various circumstances which were then taking place under
-Calvin's eyes, made him understand more clearly the
-necessity of opposing these threatening doctrines with
-the utmost energy.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">{95}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=A MURDER AND A THEFT.=</p>
-
-<p>One day a man had been murdered in the streets
-of Paris; a great crowd had gathered round his body,
-and a pious Christian exclaimed: 'Alas! who has
-committed this crime?' Quintin, who was there also,
-made answer immediately, in his Picard <i>patois</i>:
-'Since you want to know, it was <i>me</i>!' The other
-said to him with surprise: 'What! could you be such
-a coward?' 'It was not me, it was God.' 'What!' exclaimed
-the man, 'you impute to God a crime which
-He punishes?' Then the wretched man, 'discharging
-his poison more copiously,' continued: 'Yes, it's
-thee, it's me, it's God; for what thee or me does, it
-is God who does it; and what God does, we do.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_164" id="Ref_164" href="#Foot_164">[164]</a></span>
-Another analogous circumstance occurred in the house
-of Calvin's friend. De la Forge had a servant to
-whom he paid high wages; this man robbed his
-master, and ran away with the money. A shoemaker
-of the neighbourhood, who held Quintin's opinions,
-having gone to the shop the same day, found the
-tradesman very uneasy: 'The man who has committed
-such a base action,' he said, 'might easily take
-advantage of my credit, and borrow in my name.'
-Whereupon, as Calvin relates, the shoemaker immediately
-began to flap his wings, and was up into the
-clouds, exclaiming: 'It is blaspheming God to call
-this action base; ... seeing that God does everything,
-we ought to reckon nothing bad.' Some days
-later, this philosopher was himself robbed by a servant.
-Immediately forgetting all his spiritual knowledge, he
-rushed out of the house 'like a madman,' to search
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">{96}</a></span>
-after the thief, and on reaching De la Forge's, was
-lavish of his abuse against the culprit. De la Forge
-ironically repeated to him his own words: 'But you
-accuse God,' he said, 'since it is He who did it.' The
-shoemaker sneaked of abashed, 'like a dog with his
-tail between his legs.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_165" id="Ref_165" href="#Foot_165">[165]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FALSE LIBERTY OF THE SPIRITUALS.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin began the contest. It was not with philosophy,
-or speculation, or apologetics, that he fought
-these pretended spiritualists. 'God,' said he, 'enlightens
-us sufficiently in Scripture; it is our want
-of knowing them thoroughly that is the cause and
-source of all errors.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_166" id="Ref_166" href="#Foot_166">[166]</a></span>
-He attacked Quintin and pressed him hard. He quoted the commandments of
-God against theft and murder: 'You call God impure,'
-he said, 'a thief and a robber,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_167" id="Ref_167" href="#Foot_167">[167]</a></span>
-and you add that there is no harm in it.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_168" id="Ref_168" href="#Foot_168">[168]</a></span>
-Who, I pray, has condemned
-impurity, theft, murder, if God has not?'...
-Quintin, who was generally very liberal with passages
-from Scripture, answered with a smile: 'We are not
-subject to the letter which killeth, but to the Spirit
-which giveth life.... The Bible contains allegories,
-myths which the Holy Spirit explains to us.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_169" id="Ref_169" href="#Foot_169">[169]</a></span>
-'You make your Scripture a nose of wax,' said Calvin, 'and
-play with it, as if it were a ball.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_170" id="Ref_170" href="#Foot_170">[170]</a></span>—'You
-find fault with my language because you do not understand it,'
-said Quintin.—'I understand it a little better than you
-do yourself,' retorted Calvin; 'and I see pretty plainly
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">{97}</a></span>
-that you desire to mislead (<i>embabouiner</i>) the world
-by absurd and dangerous trifling.'</p>
-
-<p>The 'spirituals' were by turns protestant or catholic
-as suited them. Their manner of seeing accorded
-very well with their pantheism, and they would have
-been quite as much at their ease among the Hindoos
-and the Turks. This broadness, which misled the
-moderate party, offended Calvin. One day, when
-Quintin said with unction: 'I am just come from a
-solemn mass, celebrated by a cardinal.... I have seen
-the glory of God,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_171" id="Ref_171" href="#Foot_171">[171]</a></span>—'I
-understand you,' said Calvin,
-rather coarsely; 'in your opinion, a canon ought to
-continue in his luxury, and a monk in his convent,
-like a pig in a sty.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_172" id="Ref_172" href="#Foot_172">[172]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The pantheists made proselytes. 'By dint of
-intrigue and flattery, they attracted the simple ignorant
-poor, whom they made as lazy as themselves.'
-They tried to make way with the learned and the
-great, and even to creep into the hearts of princes.
-Their high pretensions to spirituality staggered weak
-minds, and the convenient principle by which every
-man ought to remain in the Church to which he
-belonged, even were it sunk in error, made timid and
-irresolute characters lean to their side. A priest, who
-had become Quintin's head champion, succeeded in
-deceiving the excellent Bucer by means of the false
-appearance he put on; and ten years later, an elect
-soul, Margaret, was dazzled and deceived by their hypocritical
-spirituality. About 4,000 were led astray
-in France.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">{98}</a></div>
-
-<p>Calvin was not one of those individuals 'who remain
-in doubt and suspense;' from the very first he
-detected pantheism and materialism under the veils
-with which these men sought from time to time to conceal
-their errors, and boldly pointed them out. His
-uprightness and frankness presented a very striking
-contrast to their dissimulation and cunning. 'They
-turn their cloak inside out at every moment,' he said,
-'so that you do not know where to hold them. One
-of the principal articles of their creed is that men
-ought to counterfeit, whilst even the heathens have
-said "that it is better to be a lion than a fox."'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_173" id="Ref_173" href="#Foot_173">[173]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He found that their doctrines were impious and
-revolutionary. To confound God with the world
-was (he thought) to take from the world the living
-personal God who is present in the midst of us; and
-consequently to expose not only the Reformation and
-Christianity but the whole social system to utter
-ruin. The conduct of these pretended 'spirituals'
-was already sufficient in his eyes to characterise and
-condemn their system. 'What has metamorphosed
-Quintin and his companions from tailors into teachers,'
-said Calvin, 'is that, preferring to be well fed
-and at their ease to working, they find it convenient
-to gain their living by prating, as priests and
-monks do by chanting.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_174" id="Ref_174" href="#Foot_174">[174]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It was not until later that Calvin wrote his excellent
-treatise against the libertines;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_175" id="Ref_175" href="#Foot_175">[175]</a></span>
-but, says Theodore
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">{99}</a></span>
-Beza, 'it was then (during his stay in Paris)
-that he first encountered those teachers who revived
-in our times the detestable sect of the Carpocratians,
-abolishing all difference between good and
-evil.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_176" id="Ref_176" href="#Foot_176">[176]</a></span>
-He encountered a probably still more dangerous
-doctrine.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=SERVETUS.=</p>
-
-<p>About that time a stranger, whose proceedings were
-rather mysterious, used to appear at rare intervals in
-the little circles of Paris. Many persons spoke highly
-of him. They said, he could not be reproached with
-any immoral tendencies, while his subtle understanding,
-his brilliant genius, his profound knowledge of
-natural science, and his fiery imagination, seemed as
-if they would make him one of the most surprising
-and influential leaders of the epoch. This was Michael
-Servetus, a man of the same age as Calvin. Born at
-Villenueva in Arragon, he had studied the law at
-Toulouse, and afterwards published a daring work
-entitled, <i>On the Errors of the Trinity</i>. He put himself
-forward as a teacher of truth and a thorough
-reformer. The great mysteries of faith were to give
-way to a certain pantheism, enveloped in mystical and
-Sabellian forms. It was not Roman-catholicism alone
-which he desired to reform, but the evangelical
-reformation also, substituting for its scriptural and
-practical character a philosophic and rationalistic
-tendency.</p>
-
-<p>In order to accomplish this transformation of protestantism,
-Servetus began by associating with the
-reformers of German Switzerland and of Germany.
-Œcolampadius, having examined him, declared that
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">{100}</a></span>
-he could not count him a christian unless he acknowledged
-the Son as partaking through all eternity of
-the real Godhead of the Father. Melanchthon was
-alarmed at hearing his doctrines: 'His imagination is
-confused,' he said; 'his ideas are obscure. He possesses
-many marks of a fanatical spirit.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_177" id="Ref_177" href="#Foot_177">[177]</a></span>
-He raves on the subjects of Justification and the Trinity....
-O God! what tragedies this question will occasion
-among our posterity!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_178" id="Ref_178" href="#Foot_178">[178]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>We may easily understand the painful impression
-Servetus made on these two men, the most tolerant of
-the sixteenth century. He was, as we have said, a
-mystic rationalist; but rationalism and protestantism,
-which many persons confound together, are two opposite
-poles. Nothing excited the indignation of the
-reformers more than this pride of human reason which
-pretends unaided to explain God, and to accomplish
-without his help the moral renovation of man. The
-Spanish doctor, finding himself thus rejected by the
-German divines, quitted those parts sore vexed and
-exclaiming: 'May the Lord confound all the tyrants
-of the Church! Amen.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_179" id="Ref_179" href="#Foot_179">[179]</a></span>
-He went to Paris under
-the name of Michael de Villeneuve.</p>
-
-<p>Servetus had an object in going to France. If he
-succeeded in planting his standard in that mighty
-country, near that university which had been for so
-many ages the queen of intelligence, his triumph (he
-thought) would be secure. He willingly left Germany
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">{101}</a></span>
-to the Germans. That French nation which has the
-prerogative of universality, which succeeds in everything,
-which is so intelligent, so frank, so communicative,
-so practical and so active—he will select to
-be the organ of the second Reformation. Servetus
-thought the French reformers more daring than those
-of Saxony. He had heard of a young doctor of great
-ability, who desired to carry the reform farther than
-Luther, and he thought he had found his man. But
-he was mistaken; that man was far above his empty
-theories.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN AND SERVETUS ON THE TRINITY.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin could not and would not have any other
-God than Him who gives us life, who has ransomed us,
-and who sanctifies us—the Father, God above us;
-the Son, God for us; the Holy Ghost, God in us.
-This threefold relation with God, which Scripture revealed
-to him and which entirely satisfied his inward
-longings, forced him to recognise a <i>difference</i> in God;
-but on the other hand, <i>unity</i> being essential to the
-Deity, he was bound to maintain it at any cost, and
-he thus felt himself constrained to embrace the idea
-of a divine Trinity. Against this doctrine Servetus
-levelled his bitterest sarcasms. The Spaniard rejected
-what he denominated an 'imaginary Trinity;' he
-called those who believed in it 'tritheists,' or even
-atheists, and abused them in coarse language. 'Jesus
-is man,' he said; 'the Godhead was communicated to
-Him by grace, but He is not God by nature. The
-Father alone is God in that sense.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_180" id="Ref_180" href="#Foot_180">[180]</a></span>
-He invited Calvin
-to a conference; puffed up and charmed with his
-own system, he fancied himself certain to convince
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">{102}</a></span>
-the reformer, and flattered himself with the hope of
-making him his fellow-labourer.</p>
-
-<p>The task was not an easy one. The object of the
-Reformation was to raise a spiritual temple, wherein
-troubled souls might find a refuge; and Calvin saw
-rash hands presuming to make it a receptacle for every
-error, and, in his own energetic language, 'a den for
-murdering souls.' He stood forth, therefore, to maintain
-the apostolic doctrine, and contended that Christ,
-who called himself the <i>only</i> Son of God, was a <i>son</i>, not
-like believers, in consequence of adoption; not like the
-angels, because of their communion with the Lord;
-but in the proper sense: and that if the son of a man
-has the nature of a man like his father, Jesus, the only
-Son of God, has in like manner the nature of God.</p>
-
-<p>It was a question that seriously occupied many
-minds at this period. Servetus did not stand alone;
-other doctors, as Hetzer, Denck, Campanus, and Joris,
-had professed analogous errors. One universal cry
-was heard among the reformers when they saw Christ's
-divinity attacked. Luther had declared that 'this
-little spark would cause a great conflagration;'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_181" id="Ref_181" href="#Foot_181">[181]</a></span>
-Zwingle had demanded that 'this false, wicked, and
-pernicious doctrine' should be opposed by every means;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_182" id="Ref_182" href="#Foot_182">[182]</a></span>
-and even the moderate Bucer, forgetting his
-christian gentleness, had gone so far as to declare from
-the pulpit that 'a man like Servetus deserved to have
-his bowels plucked out and his body torn to pieces.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_183" id="Ref_183" href="#Foot_183">[183]</a></span>
-Calvin resolved to accept Servetus's invitation. These
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">{103}</a></span>
-two young men, born in the same year, gifted each of
-them with marvellous genius, unshakeable in their
-convictions, are about to enter the lists. What blows
-they will deal each other! What a struggle! Which
-will come off conqueror? If Luther, Zwingle, and
-Bucer are so animated, what will Calvin be? He was
-the one who showed the most moderate sentiments
-with regard to Servetus. Alas! why did he not continue
-so to the last? 'I will do all in my power to
-cure Servetus,' he said.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_184" id="Ref_184" href="#Foot_184">[184]</a></span>
-'If I show myself in public,
-I know that I expose my life; but I will spare no
-pains to bring him to such sentiments, that <i>all pious
-men may be able to take him affectionately by the hand</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_185" id="Ref_185" href="#Foot_185">[185]</a></span>
-Justice requires that we should take account of these
-feelings of Calvin with regard to Servetus.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=A DISCUSSION APPOINTED.=</p>
-
-<p>The discussion was therefore resolved upon, and a
-certain number of friends were invited to be present.
-The time and place were settled, and when the day
-arrived, Calvin quitted De la Forge's house, and, proceeding
-down the Rue St. Martin to the Rue St. Antoine,
-found himself at the appointed hour at a house
-in this latter street, which had been selected for the
-colloquy. Servetus had not come, and Calvin waited
-for him; still the Spaniard did not appear, and the
-Frenchman was patient. What was the cause of his
-delay? Had Lieutenant-criminal Morin obtained
-information of the meeting, and was he preparing to
-catch the two young leaders by one cast of his net?
-After waiting for some time to no purpose, Calvin withdrew.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_186" id="Ref_186" href="#Foot_186">[186]</a></span>
-Servetus, who lived as a catholic in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">{104}</a></span>
-midst of catholics, and made no scruple of taking part
-in the worship of the Roman church, probably feared
-that a public discussion with Calvin would make him
-known, and expose him to serious danger.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_187" id="Ref_187" href="#Foot_187">[187]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Servetus's challenge was not however without consequences.
-He had called Calvin into the lists, he had
-made him the champion of the doctrine of the Father,
-Son, and Holy Ghost; the opportunity of answering
-this challenge occurred twenty years later at Geneva.
-If the struggle had then been confined to a learned
-discussion between these two great minds, it would
-have been right enough; Servetus himself had challenged
-it. But the ideas of the times, from which
-Calvin (even while seeking a relaxation in the form)
-could not free himself, led to one of those distressing
-calamities, so frequent during a long series of ages in
-the annals of Rome, but of which, God be thanked!
-there is only this one instance in those of the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin did not fight only with the tongue: he was
-then hurrying on the printing of his first theological
-work. It was the book written against those who
-said 'that the soul was only the motion of the lungs,
-and that if it had been endowed with immortality at
-the creation, it had been deprived of it by the fall.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_188" id="Ref_188" href="#Foot_188">[188]</a></span>
-'Let us put down those people,' he said, 'who murder
-souls without appearing to inflict any wounds:' and
-with this view he had composed a work on the <i>Immortality
-of the Soul</i>, the title given it in a letter he
-wrote to Fabri.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_189" id="Ref_189" href="#Foot_189">[189]</a></span>
-It is to be regretted that he afterwards
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">{105}</a></span>
-substituted the rather awkward one of <i>Psychopannychia</i>,
-'the night or sleep of the soul;' as the first
-indicates the subject more clearly. At the same time
-also he combated the opinion of those 'good men,' as
-he calls them,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_190" id="Ref_190" href="#Foot_190">[190]</a></span>
-who believed that the soul slept until
-the judgment-day. The first edition of this work,
-which bears the date of Paris 1534, came out probably
-immediately after Calvin had left that city or shortly
-before his departure.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CHARACTER OF CALVIN'S DIVINITY.=</p>
-
-<p>This work gave him a place apart in the ranks of
-the reformers. In this his earliest theological treatise
-he displayed the character that distinguished him, and
-which those who surrounded him had already been
-able to recognise in his conversations. His theology
-would not be negative, but on the contrary exceedingly
-positive. His first work does not combat the errors
-of Rome. He stands forth as the defender of the soul,
-the advocate of christian spiritualism. He will be, as
-a great historian has said, 'the man called to build the
-Lord's citadel, of which Luther had laid the foundation.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_191" id="Ref_191" href="#Foot_191">[191]</a></span>
-The force of conviction, the weight of proof,
-the power with which he employed the Scriptures, the
-simplicity and clearness of style, struck every reader.
-We shall not speak here of Calvin as a writer: we
-have done so elsewhere.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_192" id="Ref_192" href="#Foot_192">[192]</a></span>
-There might, however, be
-discerned in this work a defect of which Calvin never
-entirely cured himself: it contained energetic disdain
-and bitter invective. He saw this himself; he did
-more, he moderated these expressions in a second
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">{106}</a></span>
-edition. 'I said certain things in it,' he wrote, referring
-to the first, 'with a bitterness and severity which
-may have offended certain delicate ears.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_193" id="Ref_193" href="#Foot_193">[193]</a></span>
-I have therefore struck out some passages, added others, and
-changed many.' This did not prevent his falling into
-the same fault again, which, it must be acknowledged,
-was that of the age.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of his frequent discussions, Calvin was
-happy in the house of De la Forge. Accustomed to a
-frugal life, he was little affected by the abundance of
-all sorts of good things by which he was surrounded;
-but the piety of the family delighted him much. He
-loved to see the master distributing the Gospel, relieving
-the poor, and listening to the interpretation of
-God's word, and took pleasure in his christian conversation.
-'Most assuredly,' he said, 'true happiness
-is not circumscribed within the narrow limits of this
-frail life, and yet God promises also to believers a
-happy life, even in this pilgrimage and earthly dwelling-place,
-so far as the state of the world permits.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_194" id="Ref_194" href="#Foot_194">[194]</a></span>
-But the happiness of this blessed household was not
-to be of long duration. Lieutenant-criminal Morin
-was ere long to enter it, throw the wife into prison,
-lead the husband to the scaffold, and change the happiness
-of a peaceful christian family into sorrow,
-groans, and tears.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN RESOLVES TO LEAVE PARIS.=</p>
-
-<p>Would De la Forge be the only victim? Would the
-first blows be aimed at him? Would they not be
-aimed at Calvin, the author of that bold address which
-had thrown both city and university into confusion?
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">{107}</a></span>
-Could the friend of Rector Cop long remain in the
-capital without once more exciting the attention of
-his enemies? A great persecution was about to
-burst forth, and if Calvin had been living in the Rue
-St. Martin at that time, he would doubtless have been
-seized along with the pious tradesman, burnt like the
-other martyrs, and the history of his life would have
-shrunk to a paragraph in the simple annals of Crespin's
-<i>Martyrs</i>. But the Father in heaven did not permit that
-<i>this sparrow should then fall to the ground</i>. Calvin
-had powerful motives which urged him to leave France.
-His time in Paris was so taken up with visits, interviews,
-and other business, that he sank under the
-burden, without being able to discharge what he looked
-upon as his first duty. He was called to be a teacher
-rather than a mere preacher of the Gospel. To accomplish
-the great task he had set himself, he needed
-repose, leisure, and study, besides interviews and conferences
-with other theologians. He adopted a great
-resolution. 'I shall leave France,' he said, 'and go
-to Germany in order to find in some obscure corner
-the quiet refused to me elsewhere.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_195" id="Ref_195" href="#Foot_195">[195]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Du Tillet had determined to accompany him. The
-two friends made their preparations; they procured
-two horses and two servants; and one day towards the
-end of July Calvin bade farewell to the pious tradesman
-who had been as a brother to him. Their clothes
-were packed away in portmanteaus, in one of which
-they hid their money, and then they were fastened
-on the crupper; and so the travellers departed, the
-masters on horseback, the servants on foot.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">{108}</a></div>
-
-<p>'On reaching the frontier,' says a catholic historian,
-'Calvin could not restrain his emotion; he lifted up
-his voice in distress that France rejected the men whom
-God sent her, and even tried to murder them.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_196" id="Ref_196" href="#Foot_196">[196]</a></span>
-This exclamation appears rather doubtful, and the historian
-who reports it is not always accurate. Still it is possible
-and not unnatural.</p>
-
-<p>The travellers having entered Lorraine, stopped at
-Delme near Nancy, where they halted and walked
-about the town. During this time one of their servants,
-who knew where the money had been hidden, took advantage
-of their absence, placed the valise on the best
-of the two horses, and rode away as fast as he could.
-When Calvin and Du Tillet returned, they discovered
-the robbery. They wished to pursue the thief, but
-could not catch him.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_197" id="Ref_197" href="#Foot_197">[197]</a></span>
-The two friends were greatly
-embarrassed, when the other servant approached and
-offered them ten crowns which he had with him. They
-accepted his offer and were able to reach Strasburg.</p>
-
-<p>If Calvin had remained in his own country, he
-would never have been able to fulfil the career to
-which he was called; he had no other prospect but
-the stake. And yet, he will indeed be her reformer....
-True, he quitted her, but a divine hand fixed him as
-near as possible to that land of his affections and of
-his sorrows. From the picturesque valley, whence
-the Rhone continually pours its waves into France,
-God was about to scatter by Calvin's means, throughout
-all the provinces of that great kingdom, the living
-waters of the Gospel of Christ.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_159" id="Foot_159" href="#Ref_159">[159]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Calvin contre les Libertins.</i> <i>Opusc. franç.</i> p. 652;
-<i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 510.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_160" id="Foot_160" href="#Ref_160">[160]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Opusc. franç.</i> p. 664; <i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 520.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_161" id="Foot_161" href="#Ref_161">[161]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 666; ibid. p. 523. 'Unicum esse spiritum Dei qui sit et
-vivat in omnibus creaturis.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_162" id="Foot_162" href="#Ref_162">[162]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nullam homini voluntatem tribuunt, ac si esset lapis.'—<i>Opusc.
-lat.</i> p. 669.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_163" id="Foot_163" href="#Ref_163">[163]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Luth. <i>Ep.</i> iii. p. 62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_164" id="Foot_164" href="#Ref_164">[164]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cest <i>ty</i>, c'est <i>my</i>, c'est Dieu; car ce que <i>ty</i>
-ou <i>my</i> faisons, c'est Dieu qui le fait.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_165" id="Foot_165" href="#Ref_165">[165]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Opusc. franç.</i> p. 662; <i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 518.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_166" id="Foot_166" href="#Ref_166">[166]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Matth.</i> xxii. 29.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_167" id="Foot_167" href="#Ref_167">[167]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Deum latronem, furem, scortatorem.'—<i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 530.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_168" id="Foot_168" href="#Ref_168">[168]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nigrum in album commutare.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_169" id="Foot_169" href="#Ref_169">[169]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Opusc. franç.</i> p. 663; <i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 519.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_170" id="Foot_170" href="#Ref_170">[170]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Scriptura nasus cereus fiat, aut instar pila, sursum deorsumque
-agitetur.'—<i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 519; <i>Opusc. franç.</i> p. 663.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_171" id="Foot_171" href="#Ref_171">[171]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Se gloriam Dei videre.'—<i>Opusc. franç.</i> p. 688; <i>Opusc.
-lat.</i> p. 547.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_172" id="Foot_172" href="#Ref_172">[172]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Tanquam porci in hara stertere.'—<i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 541;
-<i>Opusc. franç.</i> p. 688.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_173" id="Foot_173" href="#Ref_173">[173]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 501. 'Præstabilius sit leoni quam vulpeculæ
-similem esse.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_174" id="Foot_174" href="#Ref_174">[174]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ut quemadmodum sacerdotes et monachi cantillando, sic ipsi
-garriendo vitam quærerent.'—<i>Opusc. franç.</i> p. 652; <i>Opusc.
-lat.</i> p. 511.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_175" id="Foot_175" href="#Ref_175">[175]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Adversus fanaticam et furiosam sectam libertinorum, qui se
-<i>spirituales</i> vocant, instructio,' &amp;c.—<i>Opusc. lat.</i> p. 506.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_176" id="Foot_176" href="#Ref_176">[176]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Théod. de Bèze, <i>Hist. Eccles.</i> i. p. 9.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_177" id="Foot_177" href="#Ref_177">[177]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In Serveto multæ notæ fanatici spiritus.'—<i>Corp. Ref.</i> ii.
-p. 660.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_178" id="Foot_178" href="#Ref_178">[178]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Bone Deus! quales tragœdias excitabit hæc quæstio ad
-posteros.'—Ib. p. 630.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_179" id="Foot_179" href="#Ref_179">[179]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Perdat Dominus omnes ecclesiæ tyrannos! Amen.'—<i>Christ.
-Restitutio.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_180" id="Foot_180" href="#Ref_180">[180]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Declarat Christum esse Deum, non natura sed specie, non per
-naturam sed per gratiam.'—<i>De Trinitatis Erroribus</i>, 1531, fol. 12.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_181" id="Foot_181" href="#Ref_181">[181]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Luther, <i>Ep.</i> iv. p. 423.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_182" id="Foot_182" href="#Ref_182">[182]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Trechsel, <i>Protestant. Anti-trinit.</i> i. p. 100.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_183" id="Foot_183" href="#Ref_183">[183]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Pro suggestu pronuntiavit dignum esse qui avulsis visceribus
-discerperetur.'—Calvin, <i>Ep. et Resp.</i> p. 154.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_184" id="Foot_184" href="#Ref_184">[184]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Obtuli meam operam ad cum sanandum.'—Calvin, <i>Op.</i> viii. p.
-511.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_185" id="Foot_185" href="#Ref_185">[185]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nec per me stetisse quominus resipiscenti manum pii omnes
-porrigerent.'—<i>Ibid.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_186" id="Foot_186" href="#Ref_186">[186]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Diutius quidem sed frustra expectavit.'—Beza, <i>Vita
-Calvini</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_187" id="Foot_187" href="#Ref_187">[187]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Trechsel, <i>Die Protestant. Anti-trinit.</i> i. p. 110.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_188" id="Foot_188" href="#Ref_188">[188]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Qua ruina immortalitatem suam perdiderit.'—<i>Opusc. lat.</i> p.
-19.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_189" id="Foot_189" href="#Ref_189">[189]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvinus Libertino (Fabri). Neuchatel MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_190" id="Foot_190" href="#Ref_190">[190]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nonnullos bonos viros.'—<i>Opusc. lat. Psychopan. Lectoribus.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_191" id="Foot_191" href="#Ref_191">[191]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Johannes von Müller.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_192" id="Foot_192" href="#Ref_192">[192]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-For Calvin's influence on the French language see my <i>History of
-the Reformation</i>, vol. iii, bk. xii. ch. xv.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_193" id="Foot_193" href="#Ref_193">[193]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quædam paulo acrius atque etiam asperius dicta quæ aures
-quorundam delicatulas radere fortasse possent.'—<i>Calvinus
-Libertino.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_194" id="Foot_194" href="#Ref_194">[194]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Psaumes</i>, 128.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_195" id="Foot_195" href="#Ref_195">[195]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Relicta patria, Germaniam concessi, ut in obscuro aliquo angulo
-abditus, quiete denegata fruerer.'—<i>Præf. in Psalm.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_196" id="Foot_196" href="#Ref_196">[196]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Varillas, <i>Hist. des Rév. rel.</i> ii. p. 490.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_197" id="Foot_197" href="#Ref_197">[197]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">{109}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER IX.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE PLACARDS.<br />
- (<span class="smc">October 1534.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">CALVIN had hardly left Paris when the clouds
-gathered over the little church of the metropolis.
-'There was no year,' says a chronicler of the sixteenth
-century, speaking of 1534, 'when such great marvels
-happened in divers countries; but of all these marvels
-none is more worthy to be remembered than that
-which caused it to be named <i>the year of the placards</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_198" id="Ref_198" href="#Foot_198">[198]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The christians of Paris met together frequently in
-one another's houses. 'The Lord,' said they, 'commands
-His disciples to go forth and scatter the doctrine
-of salvation into all corners of the world.' The hive
-was swarming, as it had recently done at Poitiers.
-Le Comte, whom we have mentioned, quitted his
-friends, and after many dangers reached Morat, to
-assist Farel in his evangelical work.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_199" id="Ref_199" href="#Foot_199">[199]</a></span>
-Another Lutheran,
-whose journey was to be productive of disastrous
-results, followed the same road not long after.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=TEMPORISERS AND SCRIPTURISTS.=</p>
-
-<p>There were, as we have seen, two distinct parties
-among the evangelical christians of France: the
-<i>temporisers</i> and the <i>scripturists</i>. They sometimes
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">{110}</a></span>
-came in contact, and each of them resolutely defended
-their own views. The <i>temporisers</i> looked to Margaret,
-to the king her brother, and to alliances with
-Henry VIII. and the Protestants of Germany.
-Knowing that Francis I. detested the monks, they
-hoped, with the help of the Du Bellays, to give France
-a moderate reform, and desired to do nothing that
-might offend him. They waited.</p>
-
-<p>As for the <i>scripturists</i>, that is to say, the evangelicals
-of the school of Calvin, diplomacy made them feel
-uneasy; the king's protection annoyed them, and the
-idea of recognising the bishops and the pope alarmed
-them. They saw all kinds of superstition following in
-the train of the hierarchy, and they were determined
-to resist stoutly everything that might bring back the
-<i>idols</i> to the temple of God.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FERET SENT TO CONSULT FAREL.=</p>
-
-<p>As the two parties could not come to an understanding,
-they determined to send one of their number
-to Switzerland, in order to obtain the opinion of
-Farel and the other refugees. Should they wait or
-should they act?—such was the question they put.
-They selected for that consultation a simple, pious,
-intelligent Christian, by name Feret, who belonged to
-the royal pharmacy: he accepted the mission and
-departed. No one suspected at that time that this
-journey would lead to an explosion that would shake
-the capital, terrify France, and perhaps destroy the
-cause of the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>Feret proceeded to Switzerland. He had hardly
-crossed the Jura when a striking spectacle met his
-eyes. Everything was in commotion, as in a hive of
-bees. Farel, Viret, Saunier, Olivetan, Froment,
-Marcourt, Hollard, Le Comte, and others besides,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">{111}</a></span>
-coming from Dauphiny, Basle, Paris, Strasburg, or
-belonging to the country, were boldly preaching the
-evangelical doctrine everywhere. At Neufchatel all
-<i>idolatry</i> had been removed from public worship; and
-the same had been done at Aigle, and in its four
-<i>mandements</i>. Orbe, Grandson, and the Pays de
-Vaud were beginning to make up their minds; Geneva
-was tottering; the old Waldenses of Piedmont
-were holding out their hands to the new reformers. In
-many places they were even 'destroying the altars and
-breaking down the images,' according to the command
-in Deuteronomy.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_200" id="Ref_200" href="#Foot_200">[200]</a></span>
-What a contrast with the timid
-precautions of the christians of Paris! Feret was
-quite struck with it, and that alone was an answer.</p>
-
-<p>He explained to the christians to whom he was
-accredited the very different state of things at Paris;
-he described the difficulties of France and the two
-parties that existed among the reformed, and asked for
-their advice. Farel and his friends held that a subject
-ought not to rise in rebellion against his lord, but
-if the king of France commanded anything forbidden
-by the King of heaven, it was necessary to obey him
-who was the master of the other. These decided
-christians rejected all those medleys of the Gospel
-and popery that Francis I., Margaret of Navarre, Du
-Bellay, and even Melanchthon (as it was said) desired.
-'These two (the Gospel and the pope) cannot exist
-together,' they said, 'any more than fire and water.'
-The mass especially, that main point of the Romish
-doctrine, must, in their opinion, be abolished. If the
-papal hierarchy was the tree whose deadly shade
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">{112}</a></span>
-killed the living seeds of the Word, the mass was its
-root. It must be plucked up, and thus prevented
-from stretching its fatal branches any longer over the
-wide field of Christendom. The writing and posting
-of placards were proposed.</p>
-
-<p>What indeed could be done? Oppression kept the
-boldest voices silent. It was necessary to draw up an
-energetic protest against error, and place it at the
-same moment, if possible, before the eyes of all
-France. Farel undertook the task; he could not
-write without making use of 'his trenchant style and
-thundering eloquence.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_201" id="Ref_201" href="#Foot_201">[201]</a></span>
-He reflected on the evils that
-afflicted his country. Indignation guided his daring
-pen; his style was uneven, harsh perhaps, but masculine,
-nervous, and full of fire. At length the evangelical
-protest was written, and Farel laid it before his brethren,
-who accepted it, believing that it would be <i>like a
-hammer that breaketh the rock in pieces</i>. The document
-was taken to the printer's, and came out in
-two forms: in placards to be posted up against the
-walls, and little tracts that were to be dropped in the streets.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_202" id="Ref_202" href="#Foot_202">[202]</a></span>
-The sheets were packed up and intrusted
-to the care of Feret, who departed with
-the precious bales containing 'the thunderbolt forged
-on Farel's anvil.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_203" id="Ref_203" href="#Foot_203">[203]</a></span>
-No one stopped him at the frontier;
-he traversed Franche-Comté, Burgundy, and
-Champagne without difficulty, and arrived in Paris.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=DISCUSSION ABOUT THE PLACARDS.=</p>
-
-<p>The evangelical christians of the capital, impatient
-to receive news from Switzerland, assembled hastily,
-and Feret laid the placard before them. Those
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">{113}</a></span>
-energetic words, written at the foot of the Jura,
-seemed strangely bold when they were read under the
-walls of the Sorbonne, and at the gates of the Louvre.
-That brave and pious minister, Courault, came forward
-in the meeting as the organ of the 'men of judgment,'
-as they were afterwards called. 'Let us beware of
-posting up these placards,' he said; 'we shall only
-inflame the rage of our adversaries thereby, and
-increase the dispersion of believers.' But on the
-other hand, those who were alarmed at the steps taken
-by Francis I. to unite the pope and the Gospel were
-delighted. 'Let us be cautious of so squaring our
-prudence,' they said, 'that it does not make us act
-like cowards. If we look timidly from one side to the
-other to see how far we can go without exposing our
-lives, we shall forsake Jesus Christ.' In their view it
-was of importance to confess the Lord in the sight of
-France, and in order to do so, they were ready, like
-the martyrs of old, to encounter death. Many of the
-opposite party gave way, and the publication of the
-placard was resolved on. These sincere Christians
-were so firmly convinced of the divinity of their doctrine,
-and so full of faith, that they expected an intervention
-from God—not a miraculous one indeed, but
-an extraordinary one—'a rushing mighty wind from
-heaven,' and 'cloven tongues like as of fire,' which
-should kindle all hearts. They thought that God
-would by this declaration open to France the gate of
-His spiritual treasures.</p>
-
-<p>The consultation continued. Where should they
-circulate this paper? asked some. 'All over Paris,'
-was the reply:—'All over France,' answered others.
-They were not unknown individuals who deliberated
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">{114}</a></span>
-thus: the wealthy tradesman, Du Bourg, and his
-friends were there, and if Bartholomew Milon could
-not act, at least he gave advice which was to cost him
-dear. The warmest friends of the Reformation shared
-the work between them: each man had his district,
-his province. 'They portioned out the kingdom in
-order to do <i>the same in every city</i>,' says the catholic
-Fontaine; and the night of the 24th of October was
-appointed for this daring enterprise.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_204" id="Ref_204" href="#Foot_204">[204]</a></span>
-The placards were divided among those who were to post them up
-or to distribute them. Knowing that unless God made
-the truth enter into the heart, they would do nothing
-but <i>beat the air in vain</i>,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_205" id="Ref_205" href="#Foot_205">[205]</a></span>
-these pious men exhorted
-one another to 'pray to God with fervent zeal.' Then
-every man returned home, carrying with him a bundle
-of placards and a parcel of tracts.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE PLACARDS POSTED UP.=</p>
-
-<p>When the night came, the selected men left their
-houses, carrying the printed sheets in their hands;
-and each one did his duty in his quarter, silently
-and mysteriously. The fervent christian who thus
-hazarded his life, took, however, certain precautions;
-he listened to hear if any one were coming, hastily
-stuck the bill on the wall, and then glided noiselessly
-away to some other place, where he posted up another.
-In a short time the streets, market-places, and crossways
-were covered with the evangelical proclamation,
-some being fixed even on the walls of the Louvre.
-As the day appeared, most of these daring men
-returned home; but others hid themselves, and from
-a distance watched to see what would happen.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">{115}</a></div>
-
-<p>A few persons began to come out of doors; they
-went up to the large handbills and stopped to examine
-them. Gradually a crowd was formed, some friars approached:
-hundreds of persons of every class collected
-round the strange placards. They were read aloud,
-remarks were made upon them, and the most diverse
-sentiments were expressed; many persons gave vent
-to indignation and threats; some approved, the greater
-part were astounded. The crowd was particularly
-large in the streets of St. Denis and St. Honoré, in
-the Place Royale, in the city, at the gates of the
-churches, and of the Sorbonne and the Louvre. Let
-us read this terrible handbill, as it was read in the
-streets of the capital. The public of our age will find
-it too severe and possibly too long, and we must
-abridge it a little; but the men of the sixteenth century
-read it to the end, and notwithstanding its defects, its
-action was powerful. Like the shock of an earthquake,
-it made all France tremble. It began with a
-solemn invocation:—</p>
-
- <p style="line-height:200%" class="center small">TRUTHFUL ARTICLES<br />
- CONCERNING THE HORRIBLE, GREAT, AND UNBEARABLE ABUSES<br />
- OF THE POPISH MASS,<br />
- INVENTED DIRECTLY<br />
- AGAINST THE HOLY SUPPER OF OUR LORD,<br />
- THE ONLY MEDIATOR AND ONLY SAVIOUR, JESUS CHRIST.</p>
-
-<p>'I invoke heaven and earth in witness of the truth
-against that proud and pompous popish mass, for the
-world (if God does not apply a remedy) is and will
-be by it totally desolated, ruined, lost, and undone;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">{116}</a></span>
-seeing that in it our Lord is outrageously blasphemed,
-and the people blinded and led astray. Which ought
-not to be borne any longer.</p>
-
-<p>'In the first place, every believing christian ought
-to be very certain that our Lord and only Saviour,
-Jesus Christ, the great bishop and pastor ordained of
-God, has given His body and soul, His life and blood
-for our sanctification, by a perfect sacrifice. To
-renounce this sacrifice as if it were insufficient, to
-replace it by a visible sacrifice, namely, the mass, as if
-Christ had not fully satisfied for us the justice of His
-Father, and as if He were not the Saviour and Mediator,
-would be a terrible and damnable heresy.</p>
-
-<p>'The world has been, and in many places still is,
-filled with wretched high-priests, who, as if they were
-our redeemers, set themselves in Christ's place, and
-pretend to offer an acceptable sacrifice to God for the
-salvation both of the living and the dead: do not these
-people make the apostles and evangelists liars, and do
-they not even belie themselves, since they chant every
-Sunday at vespers that Jesus Christ is a <i>priest for
-ever</i>?...</p>
-
-<p>'Yes, by the great and admirable sacrifice of Jesus
-Christ all outward and visible sacrifice is abolished.
-Christ, says the Epistle to the Hebrews (which I
-entreat everybody to read diligently), <i>was offered once
-for all.—By one offering he hath perfected for ever them
-that are sanctified.</i> Christ offered <i>once</i> and not <i>often</i>....
-If the sacrifice is perfect, why should it be repeated?...
-Come forward then, ye priests, and
-answer if ye can!</p>
-
-<p>'That is not all. By this unhappy mass the whole
-world has been plunged into a common idolatry. Are
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">{117}</a></span>
-we not given to understand falsely that under the
-forms of bread and wine Jesus Christ is corporeally,
-really, and personally contained, in flesh and bone, as
-long, broad, and entire as when He was alive?...
-And yet Holy Scripture and our faith teaches us the
-contrary, that Jesus Christ, after his resurrection,
-ascended into heaven. St. Paul writes to the Colossians,
-<i>Seek those things which are above, where</i>
-<span class="smc">Christ sitteth on the Right Hand of God</span>. Listen: St.
-Paul does not say: Seek Christ who is in the mass,
-or in the sanctuary, or in the box, or in the cupboard.
-He says: Seek Christ <i>who is in heaven</i>. If the body
-is in heaven, it is not on earth; and if it is on earth,
-it is not in heaven. A real body can never be in
-more than one place at a time, where it occupies a
-certain space of a certain size. It is impossible for
-a man twenty or thirty years old to be hidden in a bit
-of dough like their wafer.</p>
-
-<p>'Augustin knew this well when he wrote: "Until
-the world comes to an end, <i>the Lord is on high</i>; but
-His divinity is everywhere."<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_206" id="Ref_206" href="#Foot_206">[206]</a></span>
-And so did Fulgentius,
-when he wrote: "The Lord was absent from heaven,
-according to his human nature, when he was on earth;
-and <i>he left the earth when he ascended to heaven</i>. But
-as for the divine nature, it never quitted heaven when
-he came down to earth, and did not leave the earth
-when he ascended to heaven."<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_207" id="Ref_207" href="#Foot_207">[207]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>'When any one of us says: <i>Lo, here is Christ, or
-there</i>! the priests say: We must believe him. But
-Christ says: <i>Believe it not</i>. At the moment of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">{118}</a></span>
-communion they chant <i>Sursum corda</i>, Lift your
-hearts on high; but they do the contrary, and exhort
-us to seek Christ not <i>on high</i>, but in their hands, in
-their boxes, and in their cupboards.</p>
-
-<p>'Nay, further, these blind priests, adding error to
-error, teach in their madness, that after they have
-breathed upon or spoken over the bread, which they
-take between their fingers, and also over the wine that
-they put in the chalice, there remains neither bread
-nor wine, but that Jesus Christ is there alone by <i>transubstantiation</i>....
-Big and monstrous words ...
-doctrine of devils, opposed to all Scripture. I ask
-these cope-wearers, Where did they find that big word
-<span class="smc">Transubstantiation</span>?... St. Matthew, St. Mark,
-St. John, St. Paul, and the old Fathers never spoke
-of it. When they made mention of the Lord's Supper,
-those holy writers openly and simply called the bread
-and wine, <i>bread</i> and <i>wine</i>. St. Paul does not say:
-Eat the body of Jesus Christ; but: Eat this <i>bread</i>.
-Ah! Scripture employs no deception, and there is no
-pretence in it. The bread is therefore bread.</p>
-
-<p>'Presumptuous enemies of the Word of God,
-shameless heretics, they are not satisfied with pretending
-to enclose the body of Jesus Christ in their
-wafer; but see into what absurdities their superstition
-leads them. They are not ashamed to say that the
-body of Jesus Christ may be eaten by rats, spiders, and
-vermin.... Yes, there it is printed in red letters in
-their missals, in the twenty-second Item, beginning
-thus: If the body of the Lord be eaten by mice and
-spiders, be reduced to nothing, or be very much gnawed,
-or if the maggot is found whole inside ... let it be
-burned and placed in the reliquary!</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">{119}</a></div>
-
-<p>'O earth! why openest thou not to swallow up these
-horrible blasphemers? O hateful men! Is that gnawed
-body really the body of Jesus Christ, the Son of
-God?... Would the Lord suffer Himself to be
-eaten by mice and spiders? He who is the bread of
-angels and of all the children of God, has been given
-us to feed vermin? Him, who is incorruptible, at the
-right hand of God, will you make liable to worms and
-rottenness? Did not David write the contrary, prophesying
-his own resurrection?... Wretches! were
-there no other evil in all your infernal theology than
-the irreverence with which you speak of the precious
-body of Jesus, are you not blasphemers and heretics?... yea,
-the greatest and most enormous the world
-has ever seen.</p>
-
-<p>'Kindle, yes, kindle your faggots, but let it be to
-burn and roast yourselves.... Why should you kindle
-them for us? Because we will not believe in your
-idols, in your new Gods, in your new Christs, who
-let themselves be eaten by vermin, and in you also,
-who are worse than vermin.</p>
-
-<p>'What mean all these games you play round your
-God of dough, toying with him like a cat with a
-mouse? You break him into three pieces ... and
-then you put on a piteous look as if you were very
-sorrowful; you beat your breasts ... you call him the
-Lamb of God, and pray to him for peace. St. John
-showed Jesus Christ ever present, ever living, living
-all in one—an adorable truth! but you show your
-wafer divided into pieces, and then you eat it, calling
-for something to drink.... What would any man
-say who had never witnessed such monkey tricks?...
-Did St. Paul or St. John ever eat Christ in that
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">{120}</a></span>
-manner? and would they acknowledge such mountebanks
-as the servants of God?</p>
-
-<p>'Finally the practice of your mass is very contrary
-to the practice of the Holy Supper of Jesus Christ!...
-Certainly, there is no marvel in that, for there is
-nothing common between Christ and Belial.</p>
-
-<p>'The Holy Supper of Jesus Christ reminds us of the
-great love with which He loved us so that He washed
-us in His blood. It presents to us on the part of the
-Lord the body and blood of His Son, in order that
-we should communicate in the sacrifice of His death,
-and that Jesus should be our everlasting food. It
-calls us to make protest of our faith, and of the certain
-confidence we have of being saved, Jesus having
-ransomed us. By giving to all of us only one bread
-it reminds us of the charity in which we, being all of
-the same spirit, ought to live. That Holy Supper,
-being thus fully understood, rejoices the believer's
-soul, in all humility, and imparts to him all gentle
-kindness and loving charity.</p>
-
-<p>'But the fruit of the mass is very different. By it
-the preaching of the Gospel is prevented. The time
-is occupied with bell-ringing, howling, chanting,
-empty ceremonies, candles, incense, disguises, and all
-manner of conjuration. And the poor world, looked
-upon as a lamb or as sheep, is miserably deceived,
-cajoled, led astray—what do I say? bitten, gnawed,
-and devoured as if by ravening wolves.</p>
-
-<p>'By means of this mass they have laid hands on
-everything, destroyed everything, swallowed up everything.
-By its means they have disinherited princes
-and kings, lords and shopkeepers, and all whom we
-could name, dead or alive.... O false witnesses,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">{121}</a></span>
-traitors, robbers of the honour of God, and more hateful
-than the devils themselves!</p>
-
-<p>'In short, the truth chases them, the truth alarms
-them, and by truth shall their reign shortly be destroyed
-for ever.'</p>
-
-<p>Such was the proclamation posted up in Paris
-and all over France. We trace in it, we must
-confess, the coarseness of the language of the sixteenth
-century, and especially in a passage which
-must have greatly stirred the anger of the clergy,
-where the placard, in speaking of the pope and cardinals,
-priests and monks, calls them false prophets,
-wolves, seducers, and gives them other names besides,
-which are rarely employed in our days except in the
-bulls of the Roman pontiffs. We discover in this
-writing the antipapistical spirit in all its unreflecting
-force. Certainly, when it says that the true Supper
-of Christ 'rejoices the believer's soul, and imparts to
-him all gentle kindness and loving charity,' we taste
-the savour of the Gospel; but, generally speaking, this
-manifesto is an engine of war with a brazen head. If
-we transport ourselves to the early days of the Reformation,
-we can understand that it was necessary to
-employ vigorous battering-rams to beat down the old
-and apparently unshakeable walls of popery. Every
-line in this placard reveals to us the warm-hearted, but
-also 'the impetuous and eloquent Farel, frank, decisive,
-intrepid among men, who had the admirable
-heart of the knight without reproach, with his thirst
-for danger, and was the Bayard of the battles of God.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_208" id="Ref_208" href="#Foot_208">[208]</a></span>
-The work resembles the workman.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">{122}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>While conceding something to the times in which
-the placard was written and posted up, we may ask
-whether that act proceeded solely from a movement
-of the mind free from every tinge of human passion,
-and was one of the arms that the apostles would have
-employed. In any case it seems to us certain that
-more moderate language would really have been
-stronger, and more surely have attained its end.
-This is what the event will show.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_198" id="Foot_198" href="#Ref_198">[198]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 3. Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> viii. ch. v.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_199" id="Foot_199" href="#Ref_199">[199]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ruchat, <i>Hist. Réf. Suisse</i>, tom. iii. p. 132, after a MS. journal of
-Jean le Comte.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_200" id="Foot_200" href="#Ref_200">[200]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Chap. vii. 5.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_201" id="Foot_201" href="#Ref_201">[201]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. III.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_202" id="Foot_202" href="#Ref_202">[202]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_203" id="Foot_203" href="#Ref_203">[203]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> liv. vii. chap. v. In the Latin edition
-we read: 'Famoso libello a Farello, ut creditur, composito.'—p. 228.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_204" id="Foot_204" href="#Ref_204">[204]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-This is the date given in the <i>Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris</i>, p. 440.
-Fontaine, in his <i>Histoire Catholique</i>, gives the 18th October.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_205" id="Foot_205" href="#Ref_205">[205]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>passim</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_206" id="Foot_206" href="#Ref_206">[206]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Sursum Dominus est.'—Aug. <i>Ep. ad Dardanum</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_207" id="Foot_207" href="#Ref_207">[207]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Secundum humanam substantiam dereliquerat terrain cum ascendisset
-in cœlum.'—Fulg. <i>ad Thrasimundum</i>, lib. ii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_208" id="Foot_208" href="#Ref_208">[208]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Michelet, <i>Hist. de France</i>; the volume entitled 'La Réforme.'</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">{123}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER X.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE KING'S ANGER.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Autumn 1534.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="side">=A NEW MISSIVE.=</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE terrible placard posted up during the night in
-Paris and over a great part of France, 'in every
-corner,' says Sturm,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_209" id="Ref_209" href="#Foot_209">[209]</a></span>
-produced an immense sensation.
-The people were agitated, the women and the weak
-alarmed, and the magistrates filled with indignation.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_210" id="Ref_210" href="#Foot_210">[210]</a></span>
-But the adversaries of popery did not relax their
-blows. At almost the same time there appeared
-another treatise 'against the pope's traffickers and
-taverners.' This writing, which was less evangelical,
-was rather in the mocking spirit of Erasmus. 'Everything
-must subserve the cupidity of the priests,' it
-said; 'heaven, earth, and hell, time, all creatures
-animate and inanimate, wine, bread, and oil, flax,
-milk, butter, cheese, water, salt, fire, and fumigations....
-From all these they knew how to extract ...
-silver and gold. And the dress of the dealer adds to
-the price of his wares, for a mass by an abbot or a
-bishop costs more than one by a curate or a friar.
-Like women of ill fame, they sell their shame all
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">{124}</a></span>
-the dearer the gayer the ornaments they wear.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_211" id="Ref_211" href="#Foot_211">[211]</a></span>
-The agitation increased hourly; priests and friars,
-scattered among the groups of citizens and people,
-fomented their anger, increased their terror, and circulated
-false reports. 'The heretics,' it was said,
-'have resolved to surprise the catholics during divine
-service, and to murder men, women, and children
-without mercy.' An absurd imputation, invented,
-says a Romish historian, to make the reformers odious.
-It was believed all the same, and horrible rumours
-began shortly to circulate among the crowd. 'A
-frightful plot has been laid against the State and the
-Church. This placard is the signal; the heretics
-intend to fire the churches and palaces, massacre the
-catholics, abolish the monarchy, and reduce the kingdom
-to a desert.... Death to the Lutherans!'</p>
-
-<p>Nowhere was the fury so great as at the Sorbonne
-among the doctors: the first outbreak of their anger
-was incredibly violent.'This action,' says the
-chronicler, 'led them into such fury that their former
-violence seemed tolerable. No tempest ever equalled
-it in severity.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_212" id="Ref_212" href="#Foot_212">[212]</a></span>
-The thunderbolt was destined, however,
-to be launched from a different quarter.</p>
-
-<p>Francis I., who was then at Blois, had for some time
-felt a certain uneasiness with regard to the Reform.
-One day in 1534, when he was complaining of the
-pope to the nuncio, and insinuating that France might
-easily imitate the example of Henry VIII., 'Frankly,
-sire,' replied the nuncio, 'you will be the first to
-suffer; the religion of a people cannot be changed
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">{125}</a></span>
-without their next demanding the change of the
-prince.' It had been of no use to tell Francis that
-neither the German princes, nor Henry VIII. himself,
-had been dethroned by the Reformation: the nuncio's
-words had sunk like an arrow into his heart.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE PLACARD ON THE KING'S DOOR.=</p>
-
-<p>Blois was not exempt from the evangelical movement,
-and the Reform had made its way among the
-choristers of the royal chapel: it was one of these who
-was commissioned to post up the placards in that
-city. Being of a daring and enthusiastic temperament,
-this individual resolved to post the protestant
-manifesto in the castle itself, to which he had easy access.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_213" id="Ref_213" href="#Foot_213">[213]</a></span>
-Entering it at a favourable moment, he
-crept with his handbills as far as the king's chamber,
-and being satisfied that there were no servants or
-courtiers in the gallery, he fastened the paper to His
-Majesty's door, and then retired hastily.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_214" id="Ref_214" href="#Foot_214">[214]</a></span>
-This imprudent and guilty action, for it was disrespectful,
-was to be cruelly atoned for.</p>
-
-<p>Montmorency and the Cardinal de Tournon appeared
-in the morning before the king as was their
-custom. They had the ear of Francis I., and had
-long been looking for an opportunity to deal a desperate
-blow at the Reformation. Just as these two
-personages were about to enter the king's closet, they
-caught sight of the placard posted on the door; they
-stopped and read it, and taking the matter seriously,
-not without reason, they tore down the paper angrily,
-and carried it in to their master.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_215" id="Ref_215" href="#Foot_215">[215]</a></span>
-Nothing in the world could excite him so much as an attack like that:
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">{126}</a></span>
-his royal dignity was in his eyes almost as sacred as
-the Divine majesty. He trembled and turned pale;
-he took the paper and then gave it back, and disturbed
-by such unheard-of audacity, he ordered them to
-read it.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE KING'S INDIGNATION.=</p>
-
-<p>It was what Tournon wanted. He read the document
-to the king, dwelling on the most irritating
-passages; but the prince could not hold out to the end.
-The insult offered to his person, the impression which
-such a public scandal might produce on his allies,
-and especially on the pope, the reflection that at the
-very moment when he was preparing the reconciliation
-of protestants and catholics, a few fanatics should stir
-up all the passions of the priests and the people, and
-cause his pacific designs to fail—all this exasperated
-his mind more than the attack upon the mass. Those
-who were about him took advantage of the opportunity,
-and represented the affair as one of high-treason.
-Montmorency and De Tournon drove the
-bolt deep into the king's heart. 'He burst into a
-transport of passion,' wrote Sturm to Melanchthon;
-'he was so inflamed,' says the <i>Book of Martyrs</i>;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_216" id="Ref_216" href="#Foot_216">[216]</a></span>
-'he put himself in such a rage,' says Theodore Beza; 'he
-became so hot that everybody trembled about him,'
-says the catholic Fontaine.—'Let all be seized without
-distinction,' he exclaimed, 'who are suspected of
-<i>Lutheresy</i>. I will exterminate them all.'</p>
-
-<p>The event caused a great agitation; nothing else
-was talked of, and every one described it in his own
-manner. 'Do you know,' said some, 'that the king,
-in the very height of his passion, taking his handkerchief
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">{127}</a></span>
-from his pocket, pulled out a placard, which fell
-at his feet: some clever fellow had slipped the copy
-in.' 'You may believe it, if you like,' says Fontaine,
-estimating this popular story at its real value. The
-whole household of the castle was immediately on the
-alert to discover the author of the misdeed, which was
-no hard matter. The Lutheran opinions of the
-chorister were known to many; he was arrested, put
-in chains, and sent to Paris to be tried.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_217" id="Ref_217" href="#Foot_217">[217]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But the king's wrath was not to be confined to this
-man. The crime had been committed everywhere,
-the punishment must be inflicted everywhere. 'Write
-and order the parliament to execute strict justice,'
-said the king; 'and tell the lieutenant-criminal that,
-to encourage him, I increase his salary by six hundred
-livres a year for life.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_218" id="Ref_218" href="#Foot_218">[218]</a></span>
-Let inquisition be made forthwith
-through all the realm for the people who are such enemies of God.'</p>
-
-<p>The parliament had not waited for the king's orders.
-On the morrow of the famous day, the 26th October,
-the chief president, Pierre Lizet, convened all the
-chambers, and the crowded court, being moved and
-indignant, ordered a minute search and processions to
-be made. The trumpets sounded, the people assembled,
-and an officer of the parliament proclaimed:
-'Whosoever shall give information as to the person or
-persons who stuck up the said placards, he shall receive
-from the court a reward of one hundred crowns; and
-all who conceal them shall be burnt.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_219" id="Ref_219" href="#Foot_219">[219]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>All this while the evangelical christians, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">{128}</a></span>
-especially those who had set fire to the mine, alarmed
-at the terrible explosion it had made, remained hidden
-and silent in their houses. They knew Morin's skill
-in discovering his victims and inventing tortures; a
-dark future saddened their countenances. Then were
-heard among them groans, and regrets, and mournful
-deliberations. 'What shall we do?' they said. Take
-flight!—What! leave home, and family, and country
-without knowing where to go?... How gloomy the
-future! But is it not better to lose all these than to
-lose your life?... Such were the heart-rending conversations
-held almost everywhere.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_220" id="Ref_220" href="#Foot_220">[220]</a></span>
-Fathers and wives and children conjured with tears those whom they
-loved to get out of the way of the king's anger. Some
-of them, indeed, did leave their homes by night and flee.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_221" id="Ref_221" href="#Foot_221">[221]</a></span>
-Many of those who had not posted the placards,
-but who were known by the frank confession of their
-faith, thought that the danger could not concern them....
-The unhappy people hesitated and delayed, and
-many of them paid dearly for their imprudent security.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_222" id="Ref_222" href="#Foot_222">[222]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BRETHREN BETRAYED.=</p>
-
-<p>The lieutenant-criminal, a great opponent of the
-religious movement, and a man of very dissolute life,
-of rare audacity in catching criminals, and remarkable
-subtlety in entrapping them by their answers,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_223" id="Ref_223" href="#Foot_223">[223]</a></span>
-was meditating the plan of his campaign. His vanity,
-his greed, his hatred—all his passions were engaged
-in the business. He desired to catch all the heretics
-together by one cast of his net. But how? A bright
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">{129}</a></span>
-idea struck him: by seizing one man, he hoped to take
-all the rest. 'You know that shop where they sell
-sheaths and other such articles, in the Rue de la
-Vannerie leading to the Grève,' he said to one of his
-officers. 'Go and arrest the sheath-maker and bring
-him to me.'—'Sheath-maker,' he said, 'you are one of
-the heretics, and what is worse, you are their <i>convener</i>,
-I know full well. It is you, do not deny it, who
-inform them of the places where their secret meetings
-are to be held. I have a wish to assemble them; you
-will lead me to their houses.' The poor man, understanding
-what he meant, tremblingly refused to
-commit such treason. The lieutenant-criminal ordered
-a scaffold to be got ready. As soon as the
-officials had left the room, Morin turned to the sheath-maker:
-'It is you that conduct the people to church,
-and it is quite fair that you should begin the dance.'
-The wretched man trembled. What a frightful alternative!
-How could he go to those whom he was wont
-to summon to the temple of God, in order to deliver
-them to the flames? There was a terrible struggle in
-his soul, but the fear of God was overcome, the light
-of reason extinct, all regard for honour put aside.
-'Satan entered into Judas,' and he sought how he
-could betray his brethren. Believing himself 'on the
-point of being burnt,' says Beza, he promised all
-he was asked.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_224" id="Ref_224" href="#Foot_224">[224]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Paris was all in commotion. The streets were hung
-with drapery, processions were made, and in order to
-wipe out the insult offered to the mass, the <i>Corpus
-Domini</i> was carried solemnly through every parish.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_225" id="Ref_225" href="#Foot_225">[225]</a></span>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">{130}</a></span>
-Morin took advantage of this agitation to conceal his
-proceedings. The treacherous sheath-maker went before
-him, pale and trembling; sergeants followed him
-at a little distance, and this cruel company glided
-silently through the streets. The sheath-maker stopped
-and pointed to a door: Morin entered. The startled
-family protested their innocence in vain. The lieutenant
-ordered the poor creatures to be manacled, and
-then continued his pitiless course. 'He spared no
-house, great or small,' says the chronicler, 'not even
-the colleges of the university of Paris.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=VALETON AND HIS BOOKS SEIZED.=</p>
-
-<p>By degrees the news of this horrible expedition
-spread through the capital; anguish seized not only
-the friends of Farel, but all who were not fanatical
-adherents of Rome, and even the mere followers
-of learning or of pleasure, who had no taste for the
-Reformation. 'Morin made all the city quake,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_226" id="Ref_226" href="#Foot_226">[226]</a></span>
-for no one knew that he might not be among the number
-of the suspected. In many houses a look-out was
-kept, to observe whether the terrible troop was coming.
-Nicholas Valeton the receiver, who kept near the
-window, saw Morin approaching; hurriedly turning
-away, he said to his wife: 'Here he is, take the chest
-of books out of my room.... I will run and meet him;
-I will speak to him and detain him, so as to give you
-time.' The startled young woman took the books and
-hastily thrust them into a hiding-place. 'Arrest this
-man,' said the lieutenant-criminal, immediately he saw
-Valeton; 'let him be put into close confinement.' He
-then went upstairs and searched every corner, saw
-the empty chest, but found nothing. Being impatient
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">{131}</a></span>
-to interrogate his prisoner, he did not stop, but proceeded
-straight to the prison whither he had been taken.
-He could not entrap him. The receiver, being a clever
-man, eluded all his questions. The lieutenant began
-to grow nervous; thinking to himself that the receiver
-had influence, and was a man likely to bear him a
-grudge, he resolved to destroy him by proceeding more craftily.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_227" id="Ref_227" href="#Foot_227">[227]</a></span>
-The empty chest recurred to his mind; it
-must have contained something that had been removed
-at his approach. He immediately returned to the house
-of the accused, and standing near the chest, said in a
-natural tone: 'Madame, your husband has confessed
-that he kept his books and secret papers in this trunk.
-Besides, we are agreed; I desire to behave mercifully
-towards him; if you give a certain sum of money and
-tell me where the books are, I swear to you before
-God that your husband shall suffer no prejudice.' The
-wife, who was 'young, thoughtless,' and much disturbed
-by what had taken place, suffered herself to be
-caught by this trick. Morin put so many 'crafty and
-subtle questions,' that trusting in his promise, she told
-him everything. 'Good!' thought the lieutenant-criminal,
-'he wished to hide his books from us, because
-he felt himself guilty of heresy.' Having seized them,
-he left the house, and putting the papers in a place
-of safety, went to look for other victims.</p>
-
-<p>If there was one man in Paris who could not be
-suspected of having fixed up the placards, it was the
-poor paralytic: he could hardly leave his bed. That
-was of no consequence; and Bartholomew Milon was
-one of the first towards whose house Morin turned his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">{132}</a></span>
-steps. He had had him in his prisons before this; 'but,'
-says the <i>Book of Martyrs</i>, 'the Lord had delivered him
-to make him serve for the consolation of his people in
-this bitter season.' The lieutenant-criminal knew the
-shoemaker's shop very well; it was noted down in
-his books. He entered, like one out of his mind and
-foaming with rage, into the room where poor Berthelot
-was lying. 'Come, get up!' he cried, looking
-fiercely at him. Bartholomew, 'not being terrified
-by the hideous face of the tyrant,' replied, with a sweet
-smile: 'Alas! sir, it wants a greater master than you
-to make me rise.'—'Take this fellow away,' said the
-brute to his creatures, and after ordering them to
-carry with them a piece of furniture in which the
-paralytic kept his papers, he continued his inglorious
-campaign.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=ARRESTS.=</p>
-
-<p>The lieutenant-criminal now proceeded towards the
-gate of St. Denis, to the sign of the <i>Black Horse</i>, and
-entered the shop of the wealthy tradesman, Du Bourg.
-When they caught sight of him, all who had any employment
-there were startled; but although they
-loved their master well, no one stirred to defend him.
-The draper's wife, daughter of another rich tradesman
-named Favereau, was not so tranquil: bursting into
-tears and shrieking, she conjured the cruel Morin not
-to take her husband away. Nothing could soften him,
-and he arrested Du Bourg. 'He is one of those who
-pasted up the papers at the corners of the streets,'
-said the lieutenant, and took him away. Next came
-the turn of the poor bricklayer, Poille, who was
-captured in his wretched hut.</p>
-
-<p>After them many persons without distinction of
-rank or sex were shut up—those who had condemned
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">{133}</a></span>
-the placards as well as those who had approved of
-them. Informers were not wanting; they were given
-a fourth part of the property of the accused, and
-accordingly these <i>quadruplers</i> (as they were called)<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_228" id="Ref_228" href="#Foot_228">[228]</a></span>
-were indefatigable in hunting out victims; each of
-them could be accuser and witness in one. It was a
-reign of terror, and all good people were astounded
-at it.</p>
-
-<p>The Sorbonne took advantage of this furious tempest
-to be avenged on Margaret and to punish her
-friends. That princess had quitted Béarn at the beginning
-of summer to be present at the marriage of
-her sister-in-law, Isabella of Navarre, with Viscount
-de Rohan, and had obtained her brother's permission for
-Roussel, who was with her, as well as Courault and
-Berthaud, to preach in Paris. These moderate men
-were strongly opposed to the act accomplished in the
-night of the 25th October; they were thrown into
-prison all the same. As there was no apprehension
-of offending the king's allies, many Germans were
-roughly seized, catholics as well as protestants; it
-was enough to have a transrhenane accent to be suspected
-of heresy.</p>
-
-<p>In the meantime Francis I. arrived in Paris. Cardinals,
-Sorbonne, Parliament, all the ardent friends of
-Roman-catholicism, outvied each other in zeal to confirm
-'this wise and good prince'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_229" id="Ref_229" href="#Foot_229">[229]</a></span>
-in his religion,
-which had been somewhat shaken. They must take
-advantage of the crisis to detach him from his alliances
-with the English and the Saxons. Now was the time
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">{134}</a></span>
-for striking the blow and for severing these guilty ties.
-Cardinal de Tournon was particularly indefatigable
-and continually calling for punishments. When Du
-Chatel, bishop of Tulle, declared his opposition to
-sanguinary measures: 'Your tolerance has a suspicious
-look,' said De Tournon; 'it is unbecoming a true son
-of the Church.'—'I am acting like a bishop,' answered
-Du Chatel, firmly, 'and you like a hangman.' But
-nothing could check either the Cardinal or Duprat.
-They said to Francis: 'Carefully preserve the honour
-which Pius II. gave our kings when he said: The
-kings of France have this peculiarity, that they preserve
-the catholic faith and the honour of churchmen;'
-and added: 'We prevent the spreading of a fire, by
-knocking down the houses which it has first touched,
-and even the adjoining ones; do likewise, Sire; order
-those to be exterminated utterly and without reserve,
-who rebel against the Church. Kindle the fires and
-erect gibbets for the use of the Lutherans.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_230" id="Ref_230" href="#Foot_230">[230]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>A new act of madness (as some historians relate,
-but which we can hardly believe) inflamed the king's
-wrath still further. The very night of his arrival, we
-are told, the placards reappeared and were stuck on
-the gates of the Louvre. Nay more; it is asserted
-that as Francis I. was going to bed, he found the
-document under his pillow. The historian who records
-these things is very prone to exaggeration,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_231" id="Ref_231" href="#Foot_231">[231]</a></span>
-and I am inclined to think that such stories are mere fables
-invented by the enemies of the Reform, its friends
-being just then too terrified to show such boldness.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=MARGARET'S SORROW.=</p>
-
-<p>No one was more alarmed and more agitated than
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">{135}</a></span>
-Margaret. Nothing was more opposed to her nature
-than the style of the placards; and in reality they
-were not only an attack against Rome, but a protest
-against the conciliatory catholic system of the Queen
-of Navarre. Those who protested in this way bore a
-certain resemblance (not reckoning their Christianity)
-to a well-known character in literature: they condemned
-alike the fanatic Romanists and the spiritual
-Catholics—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Les uns, parcequ'ils sont méchants et malfaisants,</div>
-<div class="verse">Et les autres, pour être aux méchants complaisants.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_232" id="Ref_232" href="#Foot_232">[232]</a></span>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The queen had not the slightest suspicion of the blow
-that was preparing; and at the very moment when she
-believed the Gospel to be on the point of gaining the
-victory, everything seemed ended for it in France.
-Her brother's anger, the hard look he turned upon her,
-for perhaps the first time, alarmed this princess who
-had, it is true, a strong understanding, but also a heart
-easily moved and even timid. She shed floods of tears:
-she had no doubt that the whole affair was the result
-of a plot contrived between the Sorbonne and Cardinal
-de Tournon. 'My lord,' she said to the king, 'we are
-not sacramentarians. These infamous placards have
-been invented by men who wish to make the responsibility
-of their abominable manœuvre fall upon us.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_233" id="Ref_233" href="#Foot_233">[233]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She resolved to do everything to save Roussel at
-least; the very thought that he might be burnt terrified
-her. Why had she not left him at Pau? Seeing
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">{136}</a></span>
-the unusual coldness of the king, she commissioned
-the perfidious Montmorency to present her petition.
-'They are occupied at this moment,' she wrote to
-him, 'with completing their case against Master
-Gérard; I hope the king will find him deserving
-something better than the stake.... He has never
-held an opinion tainted with heresy. I have known
-him for five years, and if I had seen anything suspicious
-in him, I should not have put up so long with
-such poison. I entreat you, fear not to speak in my
-behalf.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_234" id="Ref_234" href="#Foot_234">[234]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Montmorency, far from being disposed to do what
-the queen asked, endeavoured to ruin not only
-Roussel, but also Margaret herself; while Cardinals
-Duprat and De Tournon helped him to insinuate into
-the king's mind that his sister had some share in the
-matter of the placards. The coldness, the harshness
-even of Francis I. towards Margaret, increased daily;
-heartbroken, and unable to bear up any longer, she
-left Paris hastily.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=BEDA ACCUSES FRANCIS.=</p>
-
-<p>Some went further than Duprat and De Tournon,
-and would have made their vengeance fall upon the
-king himself. The impetuous Beda, that tribune of
-the Sorbonne, who forgot neither his exile nor his
-imprisonment, sought an opportunity of revenging himself
-on the prince who had disgraced him. He hated
-Francis cordially; to do him an injury for the mere
-pleasure of doing it was his ambition. Not satisfied
-with ascribing the placards to Queen Margaret, he
-would accuse the king himself. Going into the
-pulpit, he preached a sermon against that prince full
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">{137}</a></span>
-of invective. 'If it is not the king who had these
-bills posted up,' he said, 'at least he is responsible
-for them. The favour he shows the heretics, and his
-alliance with the King of England, are the cause of all
-this mischief.' This time the priest was mistaken
-in fancying himself more powerful than the sovereign.
-Being accused before the parliament of high-treason,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_235" id="Ref_235" href="#Foot_235">[235]</a></span>
-Beda was thrown into prison, condemned to do
-penance in front of the church of Notre Dame, and
-to be confined for the rest of his days in the
-abbey of St. Michael, where he died. Thus perished
-in obscurity this furious forerunner of the League.</p>
-
-<p>The revolutionary fury of the Romish champion
-softened Francis a little: finding himself accused as
-well as his sister, he recalled her to Paris. The
-queen, whose courage was as easily revived as it was
-cast down, arrived at the Louvre full of hope, not
-doubting that she would win over the king to the
-golden mean she loved so dearly. But she found
-Francis less accessible than she had fancied, and still
-showing signs of his ill-humour. But this did not
-stop her: imprudent and violent men had wished to
-abolish the mass by means of a fanatical placard, she
-will try to attain the same end by gentler and more
-prudent means. 'You want no church and no sacraments,'
-said the king to her, abruptly. The queen
-of Navarre replied that, on the contrary, she wanted
-both; and profiting by the opportunity for carrying
-out her plan, she represented to her brother that it was
-necessary to unite the whole of Christendom into one
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">{138}</a></span>
-body with the bishop of Rome at its head; and that
-for this object, the priests should be brought to give
-up voluntarily certain scholastic doctrines and superstitious
-practices which stripped the ritual of the
-Church of its primitive beauty. Then, taking from
-her pocket a paper which Lefèvre had drawn up at
-her request, during her stay in the south, she presented
-it to the king: it was the confession of faith known
-as the <i>Mass of Seven Points</i>. 'The priest will continue
-to celebrate mass,' said Margaret to her brother,
-'only it will always be a <i>public communion</i>; he will
-not uplift the host; it will not be adored; priests
-and people will communicate under both kinds; there
-will be no commemorations of the Virgin or of the
-Saints; the communion will be celebrated with ordinary
-bread; the priest, after breaking and eating,
-will distribute the remainder among the people.
-Further, priests will have liberty to marry.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_236" id="Ref_236" href="#Foot_236">[236]</a></span>
-When Francis had heard the seven points of his sister's
-mass, he asked her what was left of the Roman mass?
-Then the queen, taking him on his weak side—glory—represented
-to him that by means of this compromise
-he would unite all sects, and restore the Catholic
-unity which had been broken for so many centuries.
-Was it not the greatest honour to which a prince
-could aspire?</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE QUEEN'S PREACHERS BEFORE FRANCIS.=</p>
-
-<p>Francis I. appeared to be shaken, but yet he saw
-great difficulties. The queen begged him to send for
-Roussel and the two Augustine monks, Courault and
-Berthaud: 'They will show you, I have no doubt,'
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">{139}</a></span>
-she said, 'that the thing is practicable.' The king
-was curious, says an historian, and accepted the offer.
-The three evangelicals were taken from their prison
-and conveyed to the Louvre, where the queen presented
-them to her brother. She was full of joy: the
-matter of the placards, which threatened to ruin everything,
-might possibly be the means of saving everything.
-She was deceived. When Francis talked with
-her, it was no trouble to be like a kind brother with
-a sister; but in the presence of the two friars and
-Roussel he was a master. These persons displeased
-him: the zeal with which they pointed out the errors
-and abuses of the mass irritated him, and he sent
-them back hurriedly to prison. Men more zealous
-than they were, had already left their dungeons for
-the scaffold.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_209" id="Foot_209" href="#Ref_209">[209]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Per universam fere Galliam nocte in omnibus angulis affixerunt
-manibus.'—<i>Corp. Ref.</i> ii. p. 855.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_210" id="Foot_210" href="#Ref_210">[210]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Perturbatus hac re populus, territæ multorum cogitationes,
-concitati magistrates.'—Ibid. p. 856.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_211" id="Foot_211" href="#Ref_211">[211]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Qua quidem in re, nihil differunt a meretricibus.'—See the
-writing <i>In pontificios mercatores et caupones</i>.—Gerdes, iv. p.
-103.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_212" id="Foot_212" href="#Ref_212">[212]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 112 verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_213" id="Foot_213" href="#Ref_213">[213]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris</i>, published by Lalanne, p.
-449.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_214" id="Foot_214" href="#Ref_214">[214]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Fontaine, <i>Hist. Catholique</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_215" id="Foot_215" href="#Ref_215">[215]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ante regis conclave.'—<i>Corp. Ref.</i> ii. p. 856.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_216" id="Foot_216" href="#Ref_216">[216]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin's <i>Martyrologie</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_217" id="Foot_217" href="#Ref_217">[217]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris</i>, p. 449.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_218" id="Foot_218" href="#Ref_218">[218]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Fontaine, <i>Hist. Cath.</i> <i>Journal d'un Bourgeois de
-Paris</i>, p. 452.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_219" id="Foot_219" href="#Ref_219">[219]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 112 verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_220" id="Foot_220" href="#Ref_220">[220]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> folio 112 verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_221" id="Foot_221" href="#Ref_221">[221]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quidam mature sibi consulentes aufugerunt.'—<i>Corp. Ref.</i> ii.
-p. 856.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_222" id="Foot_222" href="#Ref_222">[222]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Qui ad se ea pericula spectare non putabant, qui non contaminati
-erant eo scelere, hi etiam in partem pœnarum veniunt.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_223" id="Foot_223" href="#Ref_223">[223]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Théod. de Bèze, <i>Hist. Ecclés.</i> p. 10.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_224" id="Foot_224" href="#Ref_224">[224]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Théod. de Bèze, <i>Hist. Ecclés.</i> p. 10.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_225" id="Foot_225" href="#Ref_225">[225]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Journal d'un Bourgeois</i>, p. 44.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_226" id="Foot_226" href="#Ref_226">[226]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 112.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_227" id="Foot_227" href="#Ref_227">[227]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 113.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_228" id="Foot_228" href="#Ref_228">[228]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Delatores et quadruplatores publice comparantur.'—Sturm to
-Melanchthon, <i>Corp. Ref.</i> ii. p. 856.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_229" id="Foot_229" href="#Ref_229">[229]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Florimond Rémond.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_230" id="Foot_230" href="#Ref_230">[230]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> vii. ch. v.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_231" id="Foot_231" href="#Ref_231">[231]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Varillas.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_232" id="Foot_232" href="#Ref_232">[232]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'The one, because they are wicked and evil-doers; the others
-because they gratify the wicked.'—<i>Le Misanthrope.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_233" id="Foot_233" href="#Ref_233">[233]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-MSS. Bibl. imp. F. Supplément, No. 133.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_234" id="Foot_234" href="#Ref_234">[234]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Lettres de la Reine de Navarre</i>, i, p. 299.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_235" id="Foot_235" href="#Ref_235">[235]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Beda conjectus est in carcerem accusatus criminis læsæ
-majestatis.'—Cop to Bucer, 5th April, 1535.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_236" id="Foot_236" href="#Ref_236">[236]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>France Protestante</i>, art. <i>Marguerite</i>. Freer, <i>Life
-of Marguerite d'Angoulême</i>, ii. p. 142.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">{140}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">EXPIATIONS AND PROCESSIONS.<br />
- (<span class="smc">End of 1534 and Beginning of 1535.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">AN expiation was required for the purification of
-France—solemn ceremonies, sacrifices, and the
-stake. Nothing must be wanting to the expiatory
-work.</p>
-
-<p>Du Bourg, Milon, Poille, and their friends were
-lying in prison, waiting for the day when they were
-to appear before their judges. The poor paralytic
-had remained as calm as in his father's shop: he was
-even calmer. Formerly, when friends or kindred,
-well accustomed to lift him, had taken him in their
-arms, he had cried out with the pain he felt in every
-limb. But now, in prison, he bore it all without
-pain, and 'the roughest handling seemed tender.'
-Receiving unknown strength from God, he was tranquil
-and joyful under tribulation. That holy patience
-spread peace in the hearts of his companions in misfortune.
-'It is impossible to tell the consolation he
-afforded them,' says the chronicler. They all found
-themselves in a dark road which led to a cruel
-death, but this poor man walked before them like
-a torch, to guide and gladden them with its soft
-light.</p>
-
-<p>The day of trial arrived: it was the 10th of November,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">{141}</a></span>
-a fortnight after the placards. Seven prisoners
-were taken to the Châtelet: entering that ancient
-building, where some remains of Cæsar's walls are
-still to be seen, they appeared before the criminal
-chamber, and the king's advocate in his scarlet robe
-called for a severe sentence. The poor paralytic
-could not be accused of running about the city to
-fasten up the handbills; he was convicted all the
-same of having some at his father's shop. Justice
-was at once prompt and cruel. These virtuous men
-were all condemned to have their property confiscated,
-to do public penance, and to be burnt alive at different
-places, and on different days. The court thought
-that by spreading the punishments, they would
-extend the terror more widely. The sentence was
-confirmed by the parliament.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_237" id="Ref_237" href="#Foot_237">[237]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=MARTYRDOM OF MILON.=</p>
-
-<p>On the 13th November, three days after the
-sentence, one of the turnkeys entered the cell of the
-paralytic, and lifting him in his arms like a child, carried
-him to a tumbril; the procession then took its way
-towards the Grève. As he passed before his father's
-house, Milon greeted it with a smile. He reached
-the place of execution, where the stake had been prepared.
-'Lower the flames,' said the officer in command:
-'the sentence says he is to be burnt <i>at a slow
-fire</i>.' This was a cruel prospect, still he uttered none
-but words of peace. He knew that to believe and to
-suffer was the life of a Christian; but he believed that
-the grace of suffering was still more excellent than
-the grace of faith. The enemies of the Reformation,
-who surrounded the burning pile, listened to the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">{142}</a></span>
-martyr with surprise and respect. The evangelicals
-were deeply moved, and exclaimed: 'Oh! how great
-is the constancy of this witness to the Son of God,
-both in his life and in his death!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_238" id="Ref_238" href="#Foot_238">[238]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The next day it was the turn of Du Bourg, the
-tradesman of the Rue St. Denis. The wealth he
-had enjoyed during his life, the tears of his wife, the
-solicitations of his friends, had been ineffectual to
-save him. He was a man of decided character: when
-he had posted up the placard, he had done so boldly,
-although he knew that the act might cost him his life,
-and he stepped into the tumbril with the same courage.
-When he arrived in front of Notre Dame, he was
-made to alight; a taper was put into his hand and a
-cord round his neck, and he was then taken in front
-of the fountain of the Innocents, in the Rue St. Denis,
-quite near his house—he might have been seen from
-the windows—after which his hand was cut off. The
-hand that had fixed up the terrible protest against
-Rome fell to the ground, but the man stood firm,
-believing that 'if those who do battle under earthly
-captains push forward unto the death, although they
-know not what will be the issue, much more ought
-Christians who are sure of victory to fight until the
-end.' Du Bourg was taken to the Halles and there
-burnt alive.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_239" id="Ref_239" href="#Foot_239">[239]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=POILLE's SUFFERINGS AND COURAGE.=</p>
-
-<p>On the 18th it was Poille's turn. That old disciple
-of Briçonnet's showed as much firmness as his master
-had shown weakness. The mournful procession took
-its way towards the Faubourg St. Antoine, and halted
-before the church of St. Catherine: it was here the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">{143}</a></span>
-stake had been prepared for the edification of the
-believers of that district. Poille got down from the
-cart, his features indicating peace and joy; in the
-midst of the guard and of the surrounding crowd, he
-thought only of his Saviour and his crown. 'My
-Lord Jesus Christ,' he said, 'reigns in heaven, and
-I am ready to fight for him on earth unto the last
-drop of blood.' This confession of the truth at the
-moment of punishment, exasperated the executioners.
-'Wait a bit,' they said, 'we will stop your prating.'
-They sprang upon him, opened his mouth, caught
-hold of his tongue and bored a hole through it; they
-then, with refined cruelty, made a slit in his cheek,
-through which they drew the tongue, and fastened it
-with an iron pin.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_240" id="Ref_240" href="#Foot_240">[240]</a></span>
-Some cries were heard from the
-crowd at this horrible spectacle: they proceeded from
-the humble christians who had come to help the poor
-bricklayer with their compassionate looks. Poille
-spoke no more, but his eyes still announced the peace
-which he enjoyed. He was burnt alive.</p>
-
-<p>The punishments followed one another rapidly;
-many other sentences had been delivered. On the
-19th November, a printer who had reprinted Luther's
-works, and a bookseller who had sold them, were
-taken together to the Place Maubert. The poor
-creatures had probably only thought it a good speculation;
-they were however burnt at the stake. On
-the 4th December a young clerk underwent the same
-punishment in front of Notre Dame. On the following
-day, a young illuminator, a native of Compiègne,
-who worked in a shop near the Pont St. Michel, died on
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">{144}</a></span>
-the pile constructed at the foot of that bridge. Sometimes
-it was deemed sufficient 'to flog the accused
-naked,' to confiscate their property, and to banish them.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_241" id="Ref_241" href="#Foot_241">[241]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=MORE FUGITIVES.=</p>
-
-<p>The terror was universal. All who had kept up
-any relations with the victims, or had occasionally
-frequented the meetings, were uneasy and troubled.
-There was great agitation in the evangelical houses:
-flight seemed the only refuge, and many made preparations
-for their departure.</p>
-
-<p>Although we have spoken of the evangelical christians,
-we have not named them all. There were some
-whose profession, without being as public as that of
-Du Bourg, De la Forge, and Milon, was yet quite as
-sincere; many of them made themselves known at this
-time. Of this number were several nobles: the Seigneur
-of Roygnac and his wife, the Sieur of Roberval,
-lieutenant to the marshal of La Marche; the Seigneur
-of Fleuri in Brière, the Damoiselle Bayard, widow of
-Councillor Porte—all took the road of exile deeply sorrowing.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_242" id="Ref_242" href="#Foot_242">[242]</a></span>
-Trouble and alarm had penetrated even
-into the offices of the State: many government
-officers, Elouin du Lin, receiver to the parliament of
-Rouen, and William Gay, receiver of Vernay, being
-forced to choose between their livings and their consciences,
-abandoned their posts and fled. Among the
-fugitives were many who would not have been looked
-for among the converted. Master Pierre Duval,
-treasurer of the privy purse, touched by grace divine
-in the midst of the revels which came under his management,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">{145}</a></span>
-and his secretary, René, also a convert,
-resolved to sacrifice those allurements of the world,
-which vanish with life, and fly from the terrible wrath
-of their master. Another Duval (John), probably of
-the same family as Pierre, keeper of the lodge in the
-forest of Boulogne, which served as a hunting rendezvous
-for the court, had been reached by the Word
-of God in the midst of his stags and falcons, just as
-his cook, William Deschamps, had been. In like manner,
-the Gospel had entered the Hôtel des Finances:
-two clerks of the Treasury had begun to seek for the
-<i>treasure in heaven</i>; their names were Claude Berberin
-and Leon Jamet, of Sansay in Poitou. All these men
-disappeared suddenly; some lay hid in remote villages
-where they had friends; some went to Basle, others to
-Strasburg. Jamet, a friend of Clement Marot (who
-has addressed to him four of those burlesque epistles
-known as <i>coq-à-l'âne</i>, and then in great vogue), went
-to Italy, and took refuge at the court of the Duchess
-René of Ferrara, who made him her secretary; and
-Clement himself, who had already had more than one
-encounter with the law, for his hatred of all constraint
-and not for his faith, got frightened also, and accompanied
-his friend beyond the Alps.</p>
-
-<p>Side by side with these noblemen and servants of
-the king were found more lowly men on every road
-in France. The trades connected with typography
-(printers, booksellers, and binders) formed the most
-numerous contingent in these bands of fugitives.
-The Reformation had gained many followers among
-the masters and their workmen, and it was sufficient
-to have printed, bound, or sold any of Luther's works,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">{146}</a></span>
-to be burnt alive. Master Simon Dubois, John Nicole,
-the Balafré (the surname alone has come down to us)—all
-of them printers, were in flight. Andrew Vincard,
-the bookseller; Cholin and Jerome Denis, master-binders;
-and one Barbe d'Orge, furbisher of books to
-the court, had disappeared. Master goldsmiths, engravers;
-John Le Feuvre, a cutter of block-books (he
-may perhaps have cut certain designs representing
-Christ and Antichrist, which had been distributed
-along with the placards); a cooper, a carpenter, a
-shoemaker; Girard Lenet, a painter; John Pinot, who
-kept an inn, called the <i>Key</i>, on the Grève, notorious
-for lodging Lutherans; the sister of the paralytic
-Milon, who could not bear to remain in the city where
-her brother had been burnt—all these were flying far from Paris.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_243" id="Ref_243" href="#Foot_243">[243]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Dauphiny was the province of France which had
-contributed most to the evangelical brotherhood of
-Paris. Master Thomas Berberin, Pasqualis, François,
-Gaspard Charnel, and a young friar named Loys de
-Laval, were all from Dauphiny, and returned hastily
-to their picturesque home.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=QUALITY OF THE FUGITIVES.=</p>
-
-<p>Several other fugitives were monks: there were
-brother Gratian and brother Richard, both Augustines;
-brother Nicholas Marcel, a Celestine; the precentor
-Jehannet, surnamed <i>the preacher</i>; and Master John
-le Rentif, a secular priest, popularly known as the
-<i>prêcheur de bracque</i>,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_244" id="Ref_244" href="#Foot_244">[244]</a></span>
-so called, probably, because
-having thrown off his sacerdotal gown, he preached in
-breeches. In this fugitive flock there was one black
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">{147}</a></span>
-sheep, the famous doctor of divinity, Peter Caroli.
-The Sorbonne had stopped his lectures at the college
-of Cambray for having said: 'Nothing keeps us more
-from the knowledge of God than images; and it is better
-to give sixpence to the poor than to a priest for a mass.'
-He left for Switzerland, where his presence was not very
-highly appreciated. 'At that time also went out Caroli,'
-says Beza, 'carrying with him the same spirit of ambition,
-of contradiction, and of lewdness; a man whom
-the spirit of God had not sent, but whom Satan had
-brought to hinder the Lord's work.'</p>
-
-<p>The colleges, also, where the evangelical light was
-beginning to illuminate some of the masters and
-pupils, supplied several fugitives. Professors on
-whom the severity of parliament would have fallen,
-rose up, bade farewell to their pupils, sorrowfully
-went out of their studies, and disappeared. Master
-John Renault, principal of a college at Tournay;
-Master Mederic Sevin; Master Mathurin Cordier,
-Calvin's mentor and friend, had quitted Paris in haste,
-without taking leave of their colleagues. All classes
-of society had furnished representatives to that body
-which was hurrying from the capital along every
-road. These noble Christians were often treated
-ignominiously in their flight: many had pity on them,
-but others insulted them. They were sometimes
-obliged to hide themselves in stables or in the woods;
-worn out by poverty and hunger, clothed in 'coarse
-and dirty garments,' the better to elude their enemies;
-but the peace of faith consoled them; they had been
-unwilling to deny Christ; they had preferred, as
-Calvin says, to renounce the life of this world to live
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">{148}</a></span>
-for ever in heaven, and the hope of a glorious resurrection
-prevented them from fainting.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_245" id="Ref_245" href="#Foot_245">[245]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Margaret shed many tears in secret, and her silent
-sorrow spoke eloquently to her brother. Presently
-she risked a few prayers in behalf of her friends,
-Roussel, Courault, and Berthaud. The king was still
-irritated against them; but the love he felt for his
-sister prevailed. He ordered the three doctors to be
-taken out of prison and put in a convent: the dungeon
-was changed to a cell, which was some slight relief;
-and a sharp reprimand was given to each of them.
-Roussel declared that he had no desire to break with
-the Church, and retired to his abbey at Clairac.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_246" id="Ref_246" href="#Foot_246">[246]</a></span>
-The feeble Berthaud, whom the punishments had frightened,
-resumed his monastic dress without any reserve,
-and died in the cloister; but the aged and intrepid
-Courault remained firm. In vain did the king send
-him back to the convent; in vain was the monk's
-frock put on him, and a chaplet in his hands; he kept
-silent, but at the first opportunity, some days only
-after he had been sent to the cloister, he escaped, and,
-although almost blind, took the road which Farel and
-Calvin had already trodden, and reached Basle.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE KING URGED TO PERSECUTE.=</p>
-
-<p>This pardon, almost a disgrace to the king who
-granted it, was the only and the last expression of
-Francis's pity; after having given way to his sister,
-he gave way to the courtiers, the cardinals, the Sorbonne,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">{149}</a></span>
-and parliament. The king's indulgence to the
-three doctors served but to hasten the terrible persecutions
-that were about to begin in France. The
-people, especially at Paris, ignorant and superstitious,
-and not imagining there could be any other religion
-than that which they had been taught, were
-astonished, disturbed, and uneasy at seeing the great
-number of men and women won to the Gospel;
-they were even touched by the serenity of the martyrs.
-The chiefs of the ultramontane party, alarmed at
-the agitation which was gradually spreading all over
-the capital, and desirous of strengthening the faith
-of the masses, began to solicit the king very earnestly.
-They reminded him of the paper against the
-mass, and called for severer punishments and more
-striking satisfaction; they represented to him that
-'the inhabitants of Paris were much disturbed by the
-multitude of those who had gone astray from the faith.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_247" id="Ref_247" href="#Foot_247">[247]</a></span>
-They seemed to see the waves of Luther's
-doctrine impetuously advancing from Germany, and
-on the point of breaking over France. At all risks a
-dyke must be raised up sufficient to stop them. 'Sire,'
-they said, 'transmit faithfully to your successors that
-glorious title of eldest son of the Church which you
-have received from your forefathers.... You know
-how greedy the French mind is for novelties,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_248" id="Ref_248" href="#Foot_248">[248]</a></span>
-and where may that lead us.... Give a public proof of
-your attachment to the faith.' Francis had not forgotten
-the placard fastened by night to the door of his
-chamber, and that evangelical remonstrance seemed in
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">{150}</a></span>
-is eyes a scandalous libel aimed at his majesty. Let
-there be more burnings then.... But it is desirable
-that they should be accompanied with unusual pomp.
-By a royal law and constitution, it was ordered that
-they should pray to the Almighty for the destruction
-of heresy, and to that end there should be a solemn
-procession and an expiatory sacrifice. Francis intended
-to crown it with acts of barbarity.</p>
-
-<p>All Paris was astir: the streets were hung with
-drapery, <i>reposoirs</i><span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_249" id="Ref_249" href="#Foot_249">[249]</a></span>
-were erected, the most magnificent
-dresses were preparing in the palace, and the victims
-in the dungeons were counted. Francis had many
-motives for giving a grand spectacle and accompanying
-it with bloody interludes: public policy was not without
-a share in them. He wished to silence the evil
-tongues that were raving about his friendly relations
-with Henry VIII. and the good grace with which he
-had received the ambassador from the Grand Turk;
-he wished to draw down the blessings of heaven upon
-his arms; he wished to show that if he protected
-sound learning, he despised fanatical writings, and detested
-the anonymous libels circulated at the same
-time as the placards, the <i>Seven Assaults</i>, the treatise
-<i>Against the pope's traffickers</i>, and a host of others.
-But the wrath that had seized him at seeing the criminal
-handbill on his own door, particularly called
-for a terrible revenge, and that without delay.</p>
-
-<p>The 21st January, 1535, arrived. Early in the
-morning a large crowd of citizens and people from the
-surrounding country filled the streets; even the roofs
-of the houses were covered with spectators. This curious
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">{151}</a></span>
-and agitated multitude still further augmented
-the general emotion: many citizens of Paris had never
-seen anything like it before. 'There was not the
-smallest piece of wood or stone, jutting from the walls,
-that was not occupied, provided there was room on it
-for anybody, and the streets seemed paved with human
-heads.' The innumerable concourse admired the tapestry
-with which the houses were hung, the <i>reposoirs</i>,
-the pictures filled with splendid mysteries. The people
-gathered particularly before representations of the
-<i>Holy Host</i>, of the <i>Jew</i> (probably the Wandering Jew),
-'and others of very great singularity.' Before the
-door of each house was a lighted torch, 'to do reverence
-to the blessed sacrament and the holy relics.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_250" id="Ref_250" href="#Foot_250">[250]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE PROCESSION OF RELICS.=</p>
-
-<p>The procession began at six in the morning. First
-came all the crosses and banners of the several
-parishes; then followed the citizens, two and two,
-each with a torch, and the four mendicant orders,
-with the priests and canons of the city. Never had
-so many relics been seen before. It was not only
-living men who figured that day in the streets of the
-capital to do honour to the mass; but there were
-St. Philip, St. Marcel, St. Germain, St. Mery, St.
-Honoré, St. Landry, St. Opportuna, St. Martin, St.
-Magloire, and many others, who, whole or in part,
-were paraded before the people. The crowd regarded
-these ancient relics with devout admiration: 'There's
-the body of the saint!... there are his shoes and
-his breeches!'</p>
-
-<p>Thus spoke the devout; but what effect did these
-superstitions produce on enlightened men? What
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">{152}</a></span>
-would Calvin, in particular, have said, that great friend
-of the worship in spirit and in truth paid to God alone?
-He had left Paris some months since; but had he been
-there still, at the moment of the procession, at De la
-Forge's or any other house before which it passed,
-what would have been his feelings? These we learn
-from one of his writings, in which he treats of all
-the relics displayed at this time before the Parisians.
-This is the proper moment for showing what he thought
-of these pretended relics of saints. Irony is a weapon
-to be sparingly used in religious matters; we find it
-employed, however, more than once in the Bible, for
-instance where Elijah speaks to the prophets of Baal.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_251" id="Ref_251" href="#Foot_251">[251]</a></span>
-Calvin might therefore make use of it; but he was
-not naturally given to humour, and a profound seriousness
-underlies his irony.</p>
-
-<p>The holy bodies followed each other along the streets
-of the capital. The admiration of the citizens increased
-at every moment; they believed, as each relic passed
-them, that they were looking at an object unique in
-the world. 'The marvel is not so great,' said Calvin
-subsequently. 'We have not only <i>one</i> body of each
-of these saints, but we have <i>several</i>. There is one
-body of St. Matthew at Rome, a second at Padua, and
-a third at Treves. There is one of St. Lazarus at
-Marseille, another at Autun, and a third at Avallon.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_252" id="Ref_252" href="#Foot_252">[252]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Soon the canons of the Holy Chapel came in sight,
-wearing their copes: no church in Christendom possessed
-such treasures. 'Here is the Virgin's milk!'—'Indeed,'
-said Calvin, 'there is not a petty town or
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">{153}</a></span>
-wretched convent where they do not show us this
-milk. If the Virgin had been nursing all her life, she
-would hardly have been able to supply such an abundance!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_253" id="Ref_253" href="#Foot_253">[253]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>'There is our Lord's purple robe,' said the people;
-'and the linen cloth he tied round him at the Last
-Supper, and his swaddling clothes!'—'They would
-do better,' said Calvin, 'to seek for Christ in his word,
-his sacraments, and spiritual graces, than in his frock,
-little shirt, and napkin.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_254" id="Ref_254" href="#Foot_254">[254]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>'There is the crown of thorns!' was soon the cry.
-The sensation produced by this venerated object was
-all the greater, and the struggles of the people to get
-near it all the stronger, because it had never before
-been seen in the processions.—'It is no rarity,' said
-Calvin. 'There are two of these crowns at Rome, one
-at Vincennes, one at Bourges, one at Besançon, one at
-Albi, one at Toulouse, one at Mâcon, one at Cléry,
-one at St. Flour, one at St. Maximin, one at Noyon,
-one at St. Salvador in Spain, one at St. Jago in Gallicia,
-and many others in other places besides. To
-make all these crowns and gather all these thorns,
-they must have cut down a whole hedge.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_255" id="Ref_255" href="#Foot_255">[255]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>'Here comes the true cross!' Again there was a
-rushing and shouting, citizens and strangers crushing
-one another,—'It is not the only one,' said the reformer,
-'there is no petty town or paltry church where
-they do not show you pieces; and if all were collected
-together, there would be a load for a great barge, and
-three hundred men could not carry it.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_256" id="Ref_256" href="#Foot_256">[256]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Next appeared a silver-gilt shrine, which attracted
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">{154}</a></span>
-universal attention: it contained the relics of St. Genevieve,
-the patron saint of Paris; it was the last anchor
-in the midst of the tempest, and was never brought
-out except when France was in great peril. The
-butchers of Paris had offered to carry this precious
-amulet, and had prepared themselves for it by a
-fast of several days: they moved along barefoot and
-dressed in long shirts. Around this somewhat ferocious
-group there was a continual movement. 'There
-she is, the holy virgin of Nanterre,' was the cry. 'She
-saved our forefathers from the fury of Attila, may she
-save us from Luther's!' The people threw themselves
-upon the relic: one wished to touch it with his cap,
-another with his handkerchief, a third with the tip of
-his finger, some even more daring tried to kiss it.
-<i>Kiss the Son, lest he be angry, and ye perish from the
-way, when his wrath is kindled but a little.</i><span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_257" id="Ref_257" href="#Foot_257">[257]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>After the relics came a great number of cardinals,
-archbishops, and bishops, with coped and mitred abbots.
-Then, under a magnificent canopy, the four pillars of
-which were borne by the king's three sons and the
-Duke of Vendome, first prince of the blood, came the
-host carried by the bishop of Paris, and adorned as if
-it had been the Lord in person.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=PENITENCE OF THE KING.=</p>
-
-<p>Then appeared Francis I., without parade, bareheaded
-and on foot, holding a lighted taper in his hand,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_258" id="Ref_258" href="#Foot_258">[258]</a></span>
-like a penitent commissioned to expiate the
-sacrilege of his people. At each <i>reposoir</i> he gave his
-taper to the Cardinal of Lorraine, joined his hands
-and knelt down, humbling himself, not for his adulteries,
-his lies, or his false oaths—of these he did not
-think-but for the audacity of those who did not like
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">{155}</a></span>
-the mass. He was followed by the queen, the princes
-and princesses, the foreign ambassadors and all the
-court, the chancellor of France, the council, the parliament
-in their scarlet robes, the university, the other
-corporations, and the guard. All walked two and two,
-'exhibiting every mark of extraordinary piety.' Each
-man carried a lighted torch in profound silence. Spiritual
-songs and funereal airs alone interrupted from
-time to time the quiet of this gloomy and slow procession.</p>
-
-<p>In this way it traversed the different quarters of the
-capital, followed by an immense crowd of people, and
-the inhabitants of each street, standing in front of
-their houses, fell on their knees as the host went by.
-The crowd was so great that bodies of archers, with
-white staves in their hands, posted in every street,
-could scarcely keep open a passage for the procession.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_259" id="Ref_259" href="#Foot_259">[259]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At length they arrived at the church of Notre
-Dame; the sacrament was placed on the altar; mass
-was sung by the Bishop of Paris, and all imaginable
-homage was paid to the host in order to atone
-for the insults offered to it by the placards. From
-Notre Dame, the king and the princes returned to the
-bishop's palace.</p>
-
-<p>There are days of evil omen in history. There
-is one especially that it is sufficient to name to fill
-the mind with sorrow and mourning ... fatal date
-which solemnly inaugurated in France the epoch of
-persecution and martyrdom. On the <i>twenty-first of</i>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">{156}</a></span>
-<i>January, 1535</i>, a king of France, surrounded by
-his court and ministers, his parliament and clergy,
-was about to devote to death with all due ceremony
-the humble disciples of the Gospel. What the Valois
-began, the Bourbons continued, and the most illustrious
-of them carried out on a vast scale the system
-of galleys and of burning piles. Alas! there are dates
-which coincide in a striking and pitiless manner.
-Four hundred and fifty-eight years later there was
-another <i>twenty-first of January</i>. The simplest, the
-meekest, the most generous of the Bourbons, condemned
-by misguided men to suffer death, ascended
-the scaffold erected in a public place in Paris; he
-received the death-blow on the <i>twenty-first of January</i>,
-1793. We do not presume to explain history; we do
-not say that the innocent Louis XVI. paid the penalty
-of his predecessor's crimes, and that God ordained the
-expiation commanded by Francis I. to be followed by
-another. But the coincidence of these two dates
-startled us, and we could not avoid stopping to contemplate
-them with a holy fear.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_237" id="Foot_237" href="#Ref_237">[237]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Journal d'un Bourgeois</i>, p. 414.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_238" id="Foot_238" href="#Ref_238">[238]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 43.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_239" id="Foot_239" href="#Ref_239">[239]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Journal d'un Bourgeois</i>, p. 445.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_240" id="Foot_240" href="#Ref_240">[240]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 113 verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_241" id="Foot_241" href="#Ref_241">[241]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 113 verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_242" id="Foot_242" href="#Ref_242">[242]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Chronique du Roi François I.</i> p. 130. This manuscript,
-published by M. Guiffrey in 1860, has described several new facts.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_243" id="Foot_243" href="#Ref_243">[243]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Chronique du Roi François I.</i> pp. 130-132.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_244" id="Foot_244" href="#Ref_244">[244]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The breeches-preacher; comp. Italian <i>brache</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_245" id="Foot_245" href="#Ref_245">[245]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The list of those who were noted by the officers of justice as
-having fled from Paris, of which the Bourgeois de Paris speaks in his
-<i>Journal</i>, p. 446, is given more completely in the <i>Chronique de
-François I.</i> pp. 130-132.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_246" id="Foot_246" href="#Ref_246">[246]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Gerardus Rufus ... decreto regio absolutus.'—Cop to Bucer,
-Strasburg MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_247" id="Foot_247" href="#Ref_247">[247]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Chronique du Roi François I.</i> p. 113.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_248" id="Foot_248" href="#Ref_248">[248]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quam avido novitatis ingenio essent Galli.'—Flor. Rémond,
-<i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 229.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_249" id="Foot_249" href="#Ref_249">[249]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-These are temporary altars set up in the streets, and at which the
-procession of the <i>Corpus Christi</i> halts 'to repose the Holy
-Sacrament.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_250" id="Foot_250" href="#Ref_250">[250]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Chronique du Roi François I.</i> p. 114.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_251" id="Foot_251" href="#Ref_251">[251]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-1 Kings xviii. 27.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_252" id="Foot_252" href="#Ref_252">[252]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Opusc. franç.</i> pp. 750-751.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_253" id="Foot_253" href="#Ref_253">[253]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Calvin, Opusc. franç.</i> p. 745.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_254" id="Foot_254" href="#Ref_254">[254]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. pp. 727 and 736.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_255" id="Foot_255" href="#Ref_255">[255]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. pp. 736, 742.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_256" id="Foot_256" href="#Ref_256">[256]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 734.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_257" id="Foot_257" href="#Ref_257">[257]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Psalms ii. 12.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_258" id="Foot_258" href="#Ref_258">[258]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Gamier, <i>Hist. de France</i>, xxiv. p. 556.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_259" id="Foot_259" href="#Ref_259">[259]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Innumera denique plebis multitudine.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist.
-Hérés.</i> ii. p. 229. See also the <i>Journal d'un Bourgeois de
-Paris</i>; Fontaine, <i>Hist. Catholique</i>; Maimbourg, <i>Hist. du
-Calvinisme</i>; and the <i>Chronique de François I.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">{157}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE ELOQUENCE AND TORTURES OF FRANCIS I.<br />
- (<span class="smc">21st January 1535.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="side">=DINNER AT THE BISHOP'S.=</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE KING'S SPEECH.=</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">ALL was not over: they had had the comedy (as
-it appeared to some); they were now to have the
-oratorical address, and then the tragedy. In order to
-stifle the Reformation, something more was wanted
-than relics, chanting, and images: blood must be shed.
-But first of all there should be a speech from the
-throne. We do not doubt the sincerity of the king
-in his oratorical movements. The personal offence
-that had been done to him, and the obstacles raised
-by the placards to his political plans, most assuredly
-engrossed him more than the cause of Catholicism;
-but all this was mixed up in his mind, and he was
-eloquent. The ambassadors,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_260" id="Ref_260" href="#Foot_260">[260]</a></span>
-the court, the parliament,
-the Bishop of Paris attended by the most distinguished
-of his clergy, the rector of the university
-with his principal doctors, the provost of the merchants,
-the sheriffs, and a great number of the leading
-officers and merchants of the city had received
-orders to assemble after dinner in the bishop's great
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">{158}</a></span>
-hall. They expected a speech from the king, an
-event of no frequent occurrence in those times, which
-made them all the more impatient. Ere long Francis I.
-entered: his countenance was serious, sad, and even
-gloomy. His children, the other princes of the
-blood, the cardinals and great officers of state surrounded
-the throne, whence the king could be seen
-and heard by the whole assembly. He took his seat and said:<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_261" id="Ref_261" href="#Foot_261">[261]</a></span>
-'Messieurs, be not surprised if you do not
-see in my face that look which is usual to me, and
-that joy which animates me whenever I meet you.
-Do not marvel if the tricks of eloquence are foreign
-to my speech. I do not come to talk to you of myself;
-we have to treat this day of an offence done to
-the King of kings. It is proper that I should assume
-another style and language, another look and countenance,
-for I do not speak to you as a king and a
-master speaks to his subjects and his servants, but as
-being a subject and servant myself, and addressing
-those who are fellow-servants with me of our common
-King, of the Master of masters, who is God Almighty.
-What honour, what reverence, what obedience do we
-not owe to that great King!... What obligations does
-not this kingdom, more than any other, owe to Him,
-seeing that for thirteen or fourteen hundred years He
-has maintained it in peace and tranquillity with its
-friends, and in victory against its enemies! And if,
-sometimes, for sins committed against His divine goodness,
-He has wished to visit us with punishment in
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">{159}</a></span>
-temporal things, He has done it with so little severity,
-that He has never exceeded the chastisement which a
-kind and gracious father may use towards the faults of a
-humble and obedient son. But as for spiritual things,
-which touch the Holy Catholic faith, God has never
-forsaken France so far as to let her stray ever so little
-from it; and He has shown her this favour, that, by
-common accord, she has enjoyed the privilege of being
-the only power that has never nurtured monsters, and
-which, above all others, bears the name and title of
-Most Christian.... So much the more ought we to
-feel grief and regret in our hearts, that there should
-be at this time in France men so wicked and wretched
-as to desire to soil that noble name,—men who have
-disseminated damnable opinions, who have not only
-assaulted the things which our great King desires to
-be honoured, and acted so evilly that they do not leave
-to others the power of doing worse, but have all at
-once attacked Him in the holy sacrament of the altar.
-People of low condition, and less learning, wicked
-blasphemers, have used with regard to that sacrament,
-terms rejected and abhorred by every other nation.
-So that our realm, and even this good city of Paris,
-which from the time when letters were transported
-hither from Athens, has always shone in sound and
-holy learning, might remain scandalised, and its light
-be obscured.... Wherefore we have commanded that
-severe punishment be inflicted on the delinquents, in
-order that they may be an example to others, and prevent
-them from falling into the like damnable opinions.
-And we entreat the misguided ones to return into
-the path of the Holy Catholic faith, in which I, who
-am their king, with the spiritual prelates and temporal
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">{160}</a></span>
-princes, persevere.... Oh! the crime, the blasphemy,
-the day of sorrow and disgrace! Why did it ever
-dawn upon us?'</p>
-
-<p>'There were few of all the company,' says the
-chronicle, 'from whose eyes the king did not draw
-tears.' After a few minutes' silence, interrupted by the
-exclamations and sighs of the assembly, the king
-resumed: 'It is at least a consolation that you share
-my sorrow. What a disgrace it will be if we do not
-extirpate these wicked creatures!... For this reason
-I have summoned you to beg you to put out of your
-hearts all opinions that may mislead you; to instruct
-your children and your servants in the Christian doctrine
-of the Catholic faith; and if you know any
-person infected by this perverse sect, be he your
-parent, brother, cousin, or connection, give information
-against him. By concealing his misdeeds, you
-will be partakers of that pestilent faction.' The
-assembly gave numerous signs of assent; the king
-saw the devotion, zeal, and affection visible in their
-faces. 'I give thanks to God,' he resumed, 'that the
-greatest, the most learned, and undoubtedly the
-majority of my subjects, and especially in this good
-city of Paris, are full of zeal for the Catholic religion.'
-Then, says the chronicle, you might have seen the
-faces of the spectators change in appearance, and give
-signs of joy; acclamations prevented the sighs, and
-sighs choked the acclamations. 'I warn you,' continued
-the king, 'that I will have the said errors
-expelled and driven from my kingdom, and will
-excuse no one.' Then he exclaimed, says our historian,
-with extreme anger: 'As true, Messieurs, as I am
-your king, if I knew one of my own limbs spotted or
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">{161}</a></span>
-infected with this detestable rottenness, I would give
-it you to cut off.... And further, if I saw one of
-my children defiled by it, I would not spare him....
-I would deliver him up myself, and would sacrifice
-him to God.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_262" id="Ref_262" href="#Foot_262">[262]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=EFFECTS OF THE ROYAL RHETORIC.=</p>
-
-<p>At these words the king stopped: he was agitated
-and wept. The spectators, affected by the sight of
-this new Abraham, burst into tears. After the interruption
-necessarily occasioned by this moving scene,
-Du Bellay, bishop of Paris, and John Tronson, Lord
-of Couldray on the Seine and prevost of the merchants,
-approached, and kneeling before the king, thanked
-him for his zeal—the first in the name of the clergy,
-the other on behalf of the citizens—and swore to make
-war against heresy. Thereupon all the spectators
-exclaimed, with voices broken by sobbing: 'We will
-live and die for the Catholic religion.' The author of
-the <i>Chronicle of Francis I.</i>, who was probably present
-in the assembly, dwells upon the emotion caused by
-the monarch's address: 'We may clearly show by this,'
-he says, 'that the speech of an eloquent and powerful
-man may lead men's hearts at his will; for there was
-not a man in all the company, whether native or
-foreigner, who did not more than once change countenance,
-according to the different affections the
-words expressed.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_263" id="Ref_263" href="#Foot_263">[263]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Other emotions, those of anguish and terror, were
-next to be aroused. After displaying his eloquence,
-the king was about to display his cruelty. 'Francis,
-always in extremes,' says a very catholic historian,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_264" id="Ref_264" href="#Foot_264">[264]</a></span>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">{162}</a></span>
-'did not disdain to pollute his eyes with a spectacle
-full of barbarity and horror.' On the road between
-St. Genevieve and the Louvre, two scaffolds had been
-prepared, one at the Marksman's Cross in the Rue St.
-Honoré, and the other at the Halles. Some of the
-most excellent men that France possessed were about
-to be burnt after suffering atrocious tortures. Altars,
-galleries, and inscriptions had been placed on the
-bridges and in the streets. On the bridge of Notre
-Dame, around a fountain, surmounted by a large
-crucifix, these lines were inscribed:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">Ipsi peribunt, tu autem permanebis. (Ps. cii.)</div>
-<div class="verse">Inimicos ejus induam confusione. (Ps. cxxxii.)</div>
-<div class="verse">Videbunt in quem transfixerunt. (John xix.)<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_265" id="Ref_265" href="#Foot_265">[265]</a></span></div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>A little farther on stood an altar with an invocation
-to the Virgin and all the saints to give help, strength,
-and grace against the attacks of the enemies of the
-host. In other places were four stanzas in French,
-each of which ended with this line:</p>
-
-<p class="center small">France florit sur toutes nations.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_266" id="Ref_266" href="#Foot_266">[266]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The king with his family, the nobles, and the rest of
-the procession, having resumed his march, made his
-first halt at the Marksman's Cross. Morin, the cruel
-lieutenant-criminal, then brought forward three evangelical
-christians destined to be burnt 'to appease
-the wrath of God.' They were the excellent Valeton,
-receiver of Nantes; Master Nicholas, clerk to the
-registrar of the Châtelet, and another.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_267" id="Ref_267" href="#Foot_267">[267]</a></span>
-The people
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">{163}</a></span>
-were so excited by the procession, and by the cries
-raised in every quarter, and even by the throne,
-against the reformers, that, when the martyrs appeared,
-they rushed furiously upon them to snatch
-them from the hangman's hands, and tear them
-to pieces. The guard drove them back, and the disciples
-of the Gospel were preserved for a more
-frightful death.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE STRAPPADO.=</p>
-
-<p>The first who came forward was that brave man
-and respectable Christian, Nicholas Valeton, who had
-always 'kept good company.' The king had been
-struck with the circumstance of the hiding of his books,
-and ordered them to be burnt with him. Valeton
-stood in front of the pile. With a sort of refined
-cruelty, the wood with which he was to be burnt had
-been taken from his own house; but this kind of
-irony did not affect him. Another object attracted
-his attention: it was a kind of gallows, formed of
-two poles, one fixed firmly in the ground, the other
-fastened to it cross-wise, one end of which was raised
-at will by means of a cord fastened to the other. The
-receiver looked calmly at this instrument of punishment,
-to which they were about to fasten him to make
-him soar into the air. Merely to burn these humble
-Christians would have been too simple: the employment
-of the <i>strappado</i> was to provide the people with
-a more varied and more diverting spectacle. The
-priests knowing that Valeton was a man of credit, and
-that he was moreover rather a novice in heresy, desired
-to gain him: they approached him and said: 'We have
-the universal Church with us, out of it there is no
-salvation; return to it, your faith is destroying you.'
-This faithful Christian replied: 'I only believe in what
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">{164}</a></span>
-the prophets and the apostles formerly preached, and
-what all the company of saints believed.' The attacks
-were renewed in vain. 'My faith has a confidence in
-God,' he said, 'which will resist all the powers of hell.'
-The good people who were scattered among the
-crowd admired his firmness,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_268" id="Ref_268" href="#Foot_268">[268]</a></span>
-and the thought that he
-left a bereaved wife behind him touched many a heart.</p>
-
-<p>The punishment began. The hangman bound his
-hands which he fastened to the end of the strappado;
-the sufferer was then raised in the air, his arms alone
-sustaining the whole weight of his body. The pile
-over which he was suspended was then set alight, and
-they proceeded to their cruel sport. The executioners
-let the unhappy Valeton fall plump into the midst of
-the flames; then, reversing their movements, they
-raised the martyr into the air only to let him fall
-again into the fire.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_269" id="Ref_269" href="#Foot_269">[269]</a></span>
-'Make the wretches feel that,
-they are dying,' a cruel pagan emperor had said; a
-king of France carried out this order, and enjoyed it
-with all his court, somewhat as savages do when they
-burn their prisoners. After several turns at this atrocious
-sport had amused the king, the priests, the nobles,
-and the people, the flames caught hold of the
-martyr from his feet to the cord that bound his hands,
-the knot was burnt, and this upright witness to Christ
-fell into the fire where his body was reduced to ashes.
-This inhuman punishment was next applied by order
-of the <i>most christian</i> king to the two other martyrs.
-When the torture had lasted long enough, the executioner
-cut the rope, if the fire had not consumed
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">{165}</a></span>
-it, in order that the victim might fall at last into
-the flames.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_270" id="Ref_270" href="#Foot_270">[270]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=TORTURES AT THE HALLES.=</p>
-
-<p>Francis I. and his courtiers were not yet satisfied.
-'To the Halles! to the Halles!' was the cry, and a
-mass of curious people rushed thither, knowing that
-the executioners had prepared a second entertainment
-of a similar kind. The king and his train had scarcely
-arrived, when they began to set the frightful strappado
-in motion. A man known and highly esteemed
-throughout the quarter, a rich fruit-merchant of the
-Halles, had been fastened to it, and after him two
-other evangelical Christians were served in the same
-way. Francis and his court witnessed the convulsions
-of the sufferers and could smell the stench of their
-burning flesh. There were, no doubt, among the spectators
-many individuals feeling for the sufferings of
-others, but, surprising to say, there was not a sign of
-compassion: the best of them suppressed the most
-legitimate emotions. It was everybody's duty to
-think that, as a jesuit says, 'the king wished to draw
-down the blessing of heaven, by giving this signal
-example of piety and zeal.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_271" id="Ref_271" href="#Foot_271">[271]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Francis returned satisfied to the Louvre: the courtiers
-around him declared that the triumph of holy
-Church was for ever secured in the kingdom of France.
-But the people went still farther; they displayed a
-cruel joy; the deaths of the heretics had furnished
-them with an unknown enjoyment.... It was long
-before the thirst for blood then awakened in them was
-assuaged. They had just played the first act of a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">{166}</a></span>
-drama which was to be followed by others bloodier
-still, the most notorious of which were the massacres
-of St. Bartholomew, and, with a change of victims,
-the massacres of September 1792. Certain enraptured
-clerks thought that Francis I. surpassed Charles V.,
-and exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class="center small">Cæsar edit edicta, Rex edit supplicia.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_272" id="Ref_272" href="#Foot_272">[272]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Francis I. and his officers felt, however, some little
-vexation: certain victims were wanting. They sought
-everywhere for nobles, professors, priests, and industrials
-suspected of protestantism, whom they could
-not find. A few days after these executions, on the
-25th January, the sound of the trumpet was heard
-in all the cross-ways, and the common crier 'cited
-seventy-three Lutherans to appear in person. In default
-thereof, they were declared to be banished from
-the kingdom of France, their goods confiscated, and
-themselves condemned to be burnt.' These were the
-fugitives whom we have already pointed out. None
-of them appeared to the summons; but one of them wrote to the king:<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_273" id="Ref_273" href="#Foot_273">[273]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">They call me Lutheran—a name</div>
-<div class="verse">I have no right to bear.</div>
-<div class="verse">Luther for me did not come down from heaven;</div>
-<div class="verse">For me no Luther hung upon the cross</div>
-<div class="verse">For all my sins; nor was I in his name</div>
-<div class="verse">Baptised, but in the name of Him alone</div>
-<div class="verse">To whom th' eternal Father grants whate'er we ask—</div>
-<div class="verse">The only name in heaven by which the world,</div>
-<div class="verse">This wicked world, salvation can attain.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>But the king was far from pardoning. Four days
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">{167}</a></span>
-after this publication (29th January) he issued an
-edict, 'for the extirpation of the Lutheran sect which
-has swarmed and is still swarming in the realm, with
-orders to denounce its followers.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_274" id="Ref_274" href="#Foot_274">[274]</a></span>
-At the same time
-he addressed a circular letter to all the parliaments,
-enjoining them to give 'aid and prisons' in order that
-the heresy should be promptly extirpated.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_275" id="Ref_275" href="#Foot_275">[275]</a></span>
-Lastly, the 'father of letters' issued an ordinance declaring
-the <i>abolition of printing</i> all over France under pain of the gallows.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_276" id="Ref_276" href="#Foot_276">[276]</a></span>
-This savage edict was not carried out:
-it is, however, an index of the spirit by which the
-enemies of the Reformation were animated.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=PROCLAMATIONS AND PUNISHMENTS.=</p>
-
-<p>Francis I., after having thus made some excursions
-into the sphere of Charles V.—the <i>proclamations</i>,
-returned into his own—the <i>punishments</i>. Du Bellay
-interceded for the German protestants, and the king
-sent them back to their own country; but, feeling his
-hands free as regarded his own subjects, he sent fresh
-victims to the stake. On the 16th February, Calvin's
-friend, the rich and pious trader, La Forge, about
-sixty years of age, was dragged in a tumbril to the
-cemetery of St. John. 'He is a rich man,' said some
-compassionate spectators; 'a good man that has given
-away much in alms.' It did not matter: they burnt
-him alive. Three days later a goldsmith and a painter
-were mercifully (for Francis wished to see the arts
-flourish) stripped and flogged, deprived of their goods,
-and banished. Many Lutheran women were banished
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">{168}</a></span>
-also. On the 26th February, a young Italian, named
-Loys de Medicis, perished in the flames at the end of
-St. Michael's bridge; and his wife 'died in her bed of
-grief at such infamy.' Shortly afterwards it was the
-turn of a scholar, a native of Grenoble, who had posted
-up some of the placards in the night. On the 13th
-March, it was that of the chorister of the royal chapel
-who in his rash zeal had fastened the protest to his
-Majesty's door; he was burnt near the Louvre. On
-the 5th May, a <i>procureur</i> and a tailor were dragged
-on a hurdle to the porch of Notre Dame, whence they
-were taken in a tumbril to the pig-market 'and there
-hanged in chains,' which were not consumed so soon
-as ropes. The same day, a shoemaker of Tournay,
-banished from that city because he belonged to the
-sect of Luther, died in a similar way, 'without repenting.'</p>
-
-<p>About the same time two journeymen, natives of
-Tours, and ribbon weavers, arrived in Paris 'from
-Almayne,' bringing with them a Lutheran book.
-'Landlord,' said one of them imprudently, 'take care
-of this book while we go into town, and do not show
-it to anybody.' The innkeeper whose curiosity was
-thus aroused, turned the book round and round, tried
-to read it, and at last, unable to hold out any longer,
-went and showed it to a priest. The latter having
-opened it, exclaimed: 'It is a damnable book!' The
-landlord informed against the travellers; Morin had
-the two friends arrested ... their tongues were cut
-out, and they were burnt 'alive and contumacious.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_277" id="Ref_277" href="#Foot_277">[277]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=LA GABORITE.=</p>
-
-<p>Paris did not enjoy alone these cruel spectacles:
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">{169}</a></span>
-piles were kindled in many cities of France. A poor
-girl, Mary Becaudelle, surnamed the Gaborite, had just
-returned to Essarts in Vendée, her native place, after
-being in service at Rochelle with a master who had
-taught her the Gospel. A grey-friar happened to be
-preaching in her little town and she went to hear him.
-After the sermon, she said to him: 'Father, you do
-not preach the Word of God,' and pointed it out to
-him. Ashamed at being taken to task by a woman,
-the friar, who was alone, resolved to get himself reprimanded
-a second time, but before witnesses. The
-plot was arranged. The friar having insulted the
-doctrine of grace, the terrified Gaborite exclaimed:
-'If you insult the Gospel, the wrath of God will be
-against you.' She was condemned to the stake shortly
-after, and endured her punishment with such patience
-as to cause great admiration.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_278" id="Ref_278" href="#Foot_278">[278]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>About the same time two or three men were keeping
-watch, during the night, in the chapel of the Holy
-Candle, at Arras in Artois. There was a candle
-there, to which the devout used to sing hymns, because
-the priests told them that it had been sent from
-heaven and was never consumed. 'That is what we
-will see,' said these evangelicals: Nicholas, surnamed
-the <i>Penman</i>, 'a man of good sense and well taught in
-holy learning,' Jean de Pois and Stephen Bourlet,
-'who had both received much instruction from Nicholas.'
-One day they took their station round the
-candle, determined not to fall asleep. The substitution
-generally effected by the adepts at night, while the
-doors were closed, not having been made, on account
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">{170}</a></span>
-of these inquisitive men, the perpetual candle came to
-an end and went out, like any other candle. Then
-Nicholas and his friends calling in 'the poor idolaters,'
-showed them that there was nothing left of their
-heaven-descended relic but the end of a burnt-out
-wick. 'As the reward of their discovery these three
-Christians received the crown of martyrdom together.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_279" id="Ref_279" href="#Foot_279">[279]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The persecution spared no one. It was often sufficient
-for an enemy to accuse a person of having a
-liking for the Gospel, when immediately the police
-laid their hands on him. This was not the king's
-intention: he had ordered that the judges should
-inquire whether 'enmity, pique, or revenge gave rise
-to false accusations;' but the magistrates were not so
-scrupulous. The terror was universal. 'One sees
-nothing in Paris,' said a catholic eye-witness, 'but
-gibbets set up in various places, which surely terrify
-the people of the said Paris, and those of other places
-who also see gallowses and executions.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_280" id="Ref_280" href="#Foot_280">[280]</a></span>
-Mezeray, while describing these events, says: 'But for ten that
-were put to death, a hundred others sprang up from
-their ashes.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_281" id="Ref_281" href="#Foot_281">[281]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The enemies of the Reformation, feeling that the
-moment was decisive, redoubled their efforts to destroy
-it. The French, save a certain numerous class submissive
-to the clergy, were disposed to receive it.
-They went to church, indeed, but the majority of
-the population would willingly have embraced a religion
-in which the priest did not interpose between
-man and God. 'Alas!' said the more fervent, 'if the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">{171}</a></span>
-king does not interfere to save the Church, all the
-warmth of the French for the catholic religion will
-soon be turned into ice.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_282" id="Ref_282" href="#Foot_282">[282]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE KING'S MOTIVES.=</p>
-
-<p>The king had a special motive in supporting
-popery. A striking transformation was going on in
-France as well as in other parts of Europe; limited
-monarchy was changing into absolute monarchy.
-Francis I. thought that men who set God above the
-king, and died rather than invert the order of these
-two powers, were very dangerous to despotism, and
-he swore that, though he courted this religion without
-his kingdom, he would crush it within. Alas! the
-task was but too easy. Many were only superficially
-gained. Nobles without high-mindedness or independence;
-men of letters who jeered at obscurantism, but
-who had not tasted the Gospel; ignorant and timid
-crowds turned their backs upon the Word of God
-when the flames of the burning piles rose into the air.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=STURM'S LETTER TO MELANCHTHON.=</p>
-
-<p>Terror spread through the ranks of the friends of
-the Reformation. Sturm, who was deeply engaged
-with literature and philosophy, broken-hearted at the
-sight of all these woes, abandoned his labours. Many
-of the martyrs were his friends, and had eaten at his
-table. Dejected, disturbed in the midst of the lessons
-he gave at the Royal College (which the celebrated
-Ramus attended), having constantly before his eyes
-the murderous flames which had reduced to ashes
-those whom he loved, it seemed to him that barbarism
-was about to extinguish the torch of learning, and
-once more overrun society, hardly awakened from its
-long sleep. He condemned the placards; in his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">{172}</a></span>
-opinion, the Reformation should make its way by a
-learned exposition of its doctrines, and not by attacking
-popular superstitions; but at the sight of the
-punishments, he thought only of the victims. He
-turned towards Germany where he had so many
-friends, where there was possibly less decision than in
-France, but a deeper and more inward faith; he thought
-of Melanchthon, sat down at his desk, and as if he were
-in the presence of that tender-hearted man, poured
-all his sorrows into his bosom. 'If the letters which
-I have sometimes written you on the affairs of this
-country have been agreeable to you,' he said, 'if you
-then desired that all should go well for good men,—oh!
-what uneasiness, what anxiety, must not your
-heart feel in this hour of furious tempests and extreme danger!<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_283" id="Ref_283" href="#Foot_283">[283]</a></span>
-We were in the best, the finest position,
-thanks to wise men; and now behold us, through the
-advice of unskilful men, fallen into the greatest
-calamity and supreme misery. I wrote you last year
-that everything was going on well, and what hopes we
-entertained from the king's equity. We congratulated
-one another; but alas! extravagant men have
-deprived us of those propitious times. One night in the
-month of October, in a few moments, all over France,
-and in every corner, they posted with their own hands
-a placard concerning the ecclesiastical orders, the
-mass, and the eucharist—one would think they were
-rehearsing a tragedy<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_284" id="Ref_284" href="#Foot_284">[284]</a></span>—they
-carried their audacity so
-far as to fasten one even on the door of the king's
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">{173}</a></span>
-apartments, wishing by this means, as it would seem,
-to cause certain and atrocious dangers. Since that
-rash act, everything has been changed; the people are
-troubled, the thoughts of many are filled with alarm,
-the magistrates are irritated, the king is excited, and
-frightful trials are going on. It must be acknowledged
-that these imprudent men, if they were not the
-cause, were at least the occasion of this. Only, if it
-were possible for the judges to preserve a just mean!
-Some, having been seized, have already undergone
-their punishment; others, promptly providing for their
-safety, have fled; innocent people have suffered the
-chastisement of the guilty. Informers show themselves
-publicly; any one may be both accuser and witness.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_285" id="Ref_285" href="#Foot_285">[285]</a></span>
-These are not idle rumours that I write to you, Melanchthon;
-be assured that I do not tell you all, and
-that in what I write I do not employ the strong terms
-that the terrible state of our affairs would require.
-Already eighteen disciples of the Gospel have been
-burnt, and the same danger threatens a still greater
-number. Every day the danger spreads wider and wider.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_286" id="Ref_286" href="#Foot_286">[286]</a></span>
-There is not a good man who does not fear
-the calumnies of informers, and is not consumed
-with grief at the sight of these horrible doings. Our
-adversaries reign, and with all the more authority,
-that they appear to be fighting in a just cause, and
-to quell sedition. In the midst of these great and
-numerous evils there is only one hope left—that the
-people are beginning to be disgusted with such cruel
-persecutions, and that the king blushes at last at
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">{174}</a></span>
-having thirsted for the blood of these unfortunate
-men. The persecutors are instigated by violent
-hatred and not by justice. If the king could but
-know what kind of spirit animates these bloodthirsty
-men, he would no doubt take better advice. And yet
-we do not despair. God reigns, he will scatter all
-these tempests, he will show us the port where we can
-take refuge, he will give good men an asylum <i>where
-they will dare speak their thoughts freely</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_287" id="Ref_287" href="#Foot_287">[287]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=LUTHER'S LETTER.=</p>
-
-<p>This letter to Melanchthon is important in the
-history of the Reformation. Liberty of speech and
-of religious action is what protestantism claimed in
-France; and in claiming these liberties for itself, it
-secured them for all. We may imagine what an impression
-this letter produced at Wittemberg. Melanchthon,
-who received it, and even Luther himself,
-blamed a certain excess of vivacity in the French
-reformers; but, like Sturm, they recognised in them
-disciples of the Divine Word. A few days after,
-Luther writing to his friend Link, complained of the
-evil times in which they lived, and especially of the
-kings. 'With the exception of our prince (the Elector
-of Saxony),' he said, 'there is not one whom I do not
-suspect. You may understand by this language how
-little love and zeal for the Word of God there is in
-this world. For the present, sing, I pray you, this
-psalm: <i>Expectans expectavi Dominum</i>, I waited patiently
-for the Lord. It is through glory and disgrace,
-through stumblings and strayings, through the righteous
-and the wicked, through devils and angels, that
-we come to Him who alone is good, alone is without
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">{175}</a></span>
-evil.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_288" id="Ref_288" href="#Foot_288">[288]</a></span>
-Therefore, dear brother, I conjure you lend
-no ear to any discourse, and have no other conversation
-than what you have with <i>Him</i>. There are many
-excellent people among men, but alas! they have less
-patience than stern justice. God help us!... He
-permits the devil to be strong, and how weak he makes
-us! God puts us to the proof. To trust in a man,
-were he even a prince, is not conformable with piety;
-but to fear a man is shameful and even impious in a
-Christian. May Christ, our life, our salvation, and
-our glory, be with you and all yours!' Luther did
-not name Francis I. in this letter, but it is well known
-that of all princes the king of France was the one in
-whom he had the least hope. He was not mistaken.</p>
-
-<p>From this time Francis I. no longer showed the
-same favour to learning, and especially to evangelical
-learning. The excommunication launched against
-Henry VIII., the schism which followed, the hope of
-seeing Paul III. embroiled with Charles V., and other
-motives besides, made him incline once more towards
-Rome. But the placards were the principal cause of
-this change. His wrath was unappeasable; he was
-determined to abolish these new doctrines which were
-paraded even on the gate of his palace. His indignation
-broke out in the midst of his courtiers and
-cardinals, bishops and councillors of parliament. Nay
-more, he laid it even before the protestant princes of
-Germany. Writing to them on the 15th February,
-he said: 'The enemy of truth has stirred up certain
-people who are not fools but madmen, and who have
-incurred the guilt of sedition and other antichristian
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">{176}</a></span>
-actions. I am determined to crush these new doctrines;
-and to check this disease, which leads to
-frightful revolts, from spreading further. No one has
-been spared whatever his country or his rank.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_289" id="Ref_289" href="#Foot_289">[289]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Such were the king's intentions. Protestantism,
-and with it liberty, perished in France, but God was
-mighty to raise them up again.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_260" id="Foot_260" href="#Ref_260">[260]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The <i>Chronique de François I.</i> p. 121, mentions among the
-ambassadors those of the emperor, of the King of England, of Venice, and
-of other princes, lordships, cities, marquises, counts, and barons of
-Germany, Italy, and elsewhere.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_261" id="Foot_261" href="#Ref_261">[261]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-This speech of which Theodore Beza and Mezeray speak in their
-histories is found in the <i>Chronique de François I.</i>, published by
-Guiffrey in 1860, and the Registers of the Hôtel de Ville quite bear out
-the <i>Chronique</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_262" id="Foot_262" href="#Ref_262">[262]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Chronique du Roi François I.</i> p. 125.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_263" id="Foot_263" href="#Ref_263">[263]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 126.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_264" id="Foot_264" href="#Ref_264">[264]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Garnier, <i>Hist. de France</i>, xxiv. p. 540.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_265" id="Foot_265" href="#Ref_265">[265]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'They shall perish, but thou shalt endure.'—'His enemies will I
-clothe with shame.'—'They shall look on him whom they pierced.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_266" id="Foot_266" href="#Ref_266">[266]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'France flourishes above all nations.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_267" id="Foot_267" href="#Ref_267">[267]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris</i>, p. 447.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_268" id="Foot_268" href="#Ref_268">[268]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 113 verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_269" id="Foot_269" href="#Ref_269">[269]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ad machinam alligati et in altum sublati, deinde in ignem e
-sublimi dimissi, et rursum adducti.'—Sleidanus, fol. 136.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_270" id="Foot_270" href="#Ref_270">[270]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Carnifice demum abscindente funem, in subjectam flammam
-corruebant.—Sleidanus, fol. 136.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_271" id="Foot_271" href="#Ref_271">[271]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-L. P. Daniel, <i>Hist. de France</i>, v. p. 654.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_272" id="Foot_272" href="#Ref_272">[272]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'The Emperor issues edicts, the King punishes.'—Ribier, <i>Lettres
-d'Etat</i>, i. p. 358.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_273" id="Foot_273" href="#Ref_273">[273]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Clement Marot, <i>Epître au Roi</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_274" id="Foot_274" href="#Ref_274">[274]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Isambert, <i>Anciennes Lois</i>, xii. p. 402.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_275" id="Foot_275" href="#Ref_275">[275]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-This circular will be found in the <i>Bulletin de la Société de
-l'Histoire du Protestantisme français</i>, i. p. 328.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_276" id="Foot_276" href="#Ref_276">[276]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Sismondi, <i>Hist. des Français</i>, xvi. p. 455. See also
-Garnier, Rœderer, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_277" id="Foot_277" href="#Ref_277">[277]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Journal d'un Bourgeois de Paris</i>, p. 451.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_278" id="Foot_278" href="#Ref_278">[278]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 114.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_279" id="Foot_279" href="#Ref_279">[279]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 113 verso et fol. 114.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_280" id="Foot_280" href="#Ref_280">[280]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Chronique du Roi François I.</i> p. 129.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_281" id="Foot_281" href="#Ref_281">[281]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Mezeray, <i>Hist. de France</i>, ad ann. 1535.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_282" id="Foot_282" href="#Ref_282">[282]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Gallorum ardorem erga catholicam religionem in glaciem abiturum
-fuisse.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 230.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_283" id="Foot_283" href="#Ref_283">[283]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In turbulentissimis maximeque periculosis
-tempestatibus.'—<i>Corp. Ref.</i> ii. p. 855.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_284" id="Foot_284" href="#Ref_284">[284]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The meaning of the Latin is not very clear: 'Et tragicis
-exclamationibus.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_285" id="Foot_285" href="#Ref_285">[285]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cuilibet simul et testi et accusatori in hac causa esse
-licet.'—<i>Corp. Ref.</i> ii. p. 856.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_286" id="Foot_286" href="#Ref_286">[286]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Serpunt quotidie latius pericula.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_287" id="Foot_287" href="#Ref_287">[287]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Qui aliquando libere quod cogitant audebunt dicere.'—<i>Corp.
-Ref.</i> ii. p. 857.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_288" id="Foot_288" href="#Ref_288">[288]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Per gloriam et ignominiam ... per diabolos et angelos.'—Lutheri
-<i>Epp.</i> iv. p. 603.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_289" id="Foot_289" href="#Ref_289">[289]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Rex Galliæ ad principes protestantium. We have only the German
-translation of this letter. <i>Corp. Ref.</i> ii. p. 834.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">{177}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN AT STRASBURG, WITH ERASMUS, AND AT BASLE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Summer and Autumn, 1534.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">WHILE evangelical light seemed on the point
-of extinction in France, one of her sons was
-going to kindle a torch on the banks of the Rhine, and
-afterwards on those of the Rhone, which would spread
-its bright rays far and wide. Calvin had arrived at
-Strasburg.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN'S MISSION.=</p>
-
-<p>He who was to be the true doctor of the Reformation,
-its great captain, was then in search of
-knowledge and of arms in order to teach and to fight:
-this, as we have said, was the principal motive that
-induced him to leave France. Like all noble characters
-who have played an important part in history,
-Calvin felt his vocation. He wished to labour at the
-renewal of the Church; and in order to do this, he
-must interpret Holy Scripture, and explain the body
-of Christian doctrine. Hitherto he had preached the
-Gospel like an ordinary believer; he had sown the
-Word in a few insulated fields—at Orleans, Bourges,
-Angoulême, Noyon, and Paris; now (without his
-being conscious of it) a wider sphere was opening
-before him; and he was going to learn the truth of
-Christ's declaration: <i>the field is the world</i>. There was a
-void space in Christendom, and God called him to fill it.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">{178}</a></span>
-He was to create the new, the living theology of modern
-times. France, where scholasticism was the only
-theological science, did not suffice him; he was going
-towards Germany and Switzerland, where the love
-and study of holy learning had arisen with power.
-He saw from afar the lights that sparkled on the
-banks of the Rhine, and on the plains of Saxony; and,
-like a traveller who catches sight of a beacon in the
-midst of the darkness, he hurried towards the places
-whence those distant rays reached his eye. A child of
-light, he was seeking the light.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE COLLEGE AND MATTHEW ZELL.=</p>
-
-<p>The free city of Strasburg possessed an intelligent
-middle-class and wise magistrates. The revival of
-learning had begun there in the fifteenth century;
-shortly after Luther had published his theses at
-Wittemberg, the echo of the great reformer's voice
-was heard in that city of the Rhine. Elementary
-schools were immediately established; monks who
-had left their convents, and priests who were disenchanted
-from their ancient superstitions, aided by pious
-and devout artizans, undertook the education of the
-children. A Latin college was founded in 1524,
-where the canons of St. Thomas and other learned
-Christians had begun a superior kind of instruction.
-The new life then spreading through the Church,
-circulated vigorously in Strasburg; it fermented in a
-more especial manner in Capito, Bucer, and Hedio.
-They conversed together, communicating to each
-other the faith by which they were animated: it was
-the spring sap pushing forth blossoms and giving
-promise of fruit. Capito eloquently expounded the
-books of the Old Testament; Bucer explained those
-of the New with much wisdom; Hedio taught
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">{179}</a></span>
-history and theology; Caselius, Hebrew; and Herlin,
-the art of speaking. Professor John Sturm, then at
-Paris, and the friend of Melanchthon, was about to be
-put at the head of the educational work in his native city.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_290" id="Ref_290" href="#Foot_290">[290]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>There was a pious man at Strasburg, whose house
-was known to all Christian travellers, and especially
-to the exiles. He was Matthew Zell, pastor of the
-church of St. Lawrence. When Calvin and Du
-Tillet arrived in the capital of Alsace, they were in
-great distress, having been robbed of their money as
-we have seen. In this imperial city with all its
-beautiful buildings, over which soars the magnificent
-cathedral, they knew not where to go. The name of
-Zell was familiar to Calvin, as well as his generous
-hospitality; he knocked at his door, we are told, and
-was cordially received. Calvin and Zell were very
-different characters; but they appreciated each other,
-and when the reformer was settled at Geneva, he did
-not neglect to salute Zell in his letters to Bucer.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_291" id="Ref_291" href="#Foot_291">[291]</a></span>
-Zell was a man of practical and conciliatory spirit,
-and did not trouble himself much with theological
-discussions; he cared only for his dear parishioners,
-and was very popular. Bucer thought even too much
-so. 'Matthew alone has the people with him,' he said.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_292" id="Ref_292" href="#Foot_292">[292]</a></span>
-To this day his name is mentioned with affection
-in Alsace.</p>
-
-<p>As early as 1521 he preached the Gospel at Strasburg,
-and with such unction and zeal, that an immense
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">{180}</a></span>
-crowd surrounded his pulpit. Being a man of
-generous disposition, he boldly defended those who
-were called heretics: 'Do you know why they are
-attacked?' he said, 'because their enemies are afraid
-that the indulgences and purgatory which they condemn
-will bring them in no more money.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_293" id="Ref_293" href="#Foot_293">[293]</a></span>
-Prosecuted by his bishop in 1523, he defended himself with spirit,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_294" id="Ref_294" href="#Foot_294">[294]</a></span>
-and escaped with losing his post of confessor
-to the prelate.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE PASTOR'S WIFE.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin and Du Tillet soon noticed his partner,
-Catherine Schulz, daughter of a carpenter in the city,
-a clever, intelligent, active, firm woman, who had
-managed to obtain the ascendant over everyone, and a
-little too much so over her husband. The young
-reformer saw in her one of the types of the Christian
-woman, who cumbereth herself, who receiveth the
-prophets honourably, but who, while doing good,
-sometimes values herself more highly than she does others.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_295" id="Ref_295" href="#Foot_295">[295]</a></span>
-Catherine's soul was troubled for a long
-time; she doubted of her salvation. At last the voice
-of Luther reached her, and brought her peace. 'He
-persuades me so thoroughly of the ineffable goodness
-of Jesus Christ,' she exclaimed, 'that I feel as if
-I were dragged from the depths of hell, and transported
-into the kingdom of heaven. Day and night
-I will now tread the path of truth.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_296" id="Ref_296" href="#Foot_296">[296]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>From that hour Catherine resolutely dedicated herself
-to the practice of good works. The pastor of St.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">{181}</a></span>
-Lawrence often had a large number of persecuted
-christians seated round his table, and kept them in
-his house for many weeks. One night he received
-150 pious men from a little town of Brisgau, who,
-having left their homes in the middle of the night,
-had arrived in great distress at Strasburg. Catherine
-found means to lodge fourscore of them in the parsonage,
-and for a month had fifty or sixty of them
-daily at her table. Even when her house was full,
-she displayed the most unceasing activity abroad.
-Caring neither for dress nor worldly recreations, the
-pastor's wife visited the houses of the poor, nursed
-the sick, wrapped the dead in their grave-clothes,
-comforted the prisoners, and organised collections in
-favour of the refugees. <i>She was never weary in well-doing.</i></p>
-
-<p>In the midst of her zeal, however, she took too
-much credit to herself. One day, recounting her
-merits, she said: 'I have conscientiously assisted my
-beloved Matthew in his ministry and in the management
-of his house. I have loved the company of the
-learned. I have embraced the interests of the Lord's
-Church. Hence all the pastors and a great number
-of distinguished men testify their affection and respect
-for me.' Catherine did not know all that these
-'distinguished men' thought of her; the colour would
-have mounted to her cheeks could she have seen a
-certain letter from Bucer to Blaurer, of the 16th
-November 1533, in which that celebrated Strasburg
-doctor complains of Zell's wife, 'who is so over head
-and ears in love with herself;' or if that letter of the
-3rd of February 1534 had been brought to her, in
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">{182}</a></span>
-which her husband's friend wrote of her: 'Catherine,
-like all of us, is too fond of herself.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_297" id="Ref_297" href="#Foot_297">[297]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At the time of Calvin's arrival in Strasburg, Bucer
-was much tormented by Catherine's spirit of domination;
-perhaps he should have understood that her
-defects were but the exaggeration of her good qualities.
-He complained of her influence over her husband:
-'Matthew Zell is certainly pious,' he said, 'but ... he
-is ruled by his wife.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_298" id="Ref_298" href="#Foot_298">[298]</a></span>
-Another time he said: 'He
-ought to preach faith more fully, more earnestly, but
-... his wife drives him to care for nothing but works.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_299" id="Ref_299" href="#Foot_299">[299]</a></span>
-The zealous Bucer, who was so often journeying
-to reconcile Christians and Churches, could
-not endure that Zell should think only of his parish,
-should see nothing but his dear Strasburg, and
-ascribed even that to Catherine. 'Oh,' said he, 'if
-Matthew were but more zealous for the unity of the
-Church!' And yet Bucer esteemed him highly, and
-called him 'a God-seeking man, and of upright heart.'
-Zell and Catherine were in those Reformation times
-a Christian pair, worthy to figure in history, notwithstanding
-their failings. Perhaps, however, Calvin
-recollected Catherine's character when he reckoned
-patience and gentleness among the foremost qualities
-he should look for in a wife.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_300" id="Ref_300" href="#Foot_300">[300]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin already knew by reputation the eminent
-men who were living in Strasburg. He was never
-tired of seeing and hearing them, both at their own
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">{183}</a></span>
-houses and at Matthew Zell's. He admired in Bucer,
-with whom he had corresponded, and whom he afterwards
-called his father,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_301" id="Ref_301" href="#Foot_301">[301]</a></span>
-a noble heart, a peaceful
-spirit, a penetrating mind, and an untiring activity.
-Capito was not less attractive to him. Calvin knew
-that, disgusted with the intrigues of the court, he had
-left the elector of Mentz, and in 1532 had gone to
-Strasburg in search of evangelical liberty, and from
-that hour had watched with interest the movements
-of the Gospel in France. He was, therefore, impatient
-to see a man who, by the extent of his learning and
-the nobility of his character, held the first rank in the
-learned city where he resided; and fortunately Capito,
-who went to Wisbaden towards the end of August
-1534, was still at Strasburg when the reformer passed
-through it. All these doctors joyfully saw France
-bringing her tribute at last to the work of Christian instruction.
-They were struck with Calvin's seriousness,
-with the greatness of his character, the depth of his
-thoughts, and the liveliness of his faith; and the
-young doctor, for his part, drank in with delight that
-perfume of learning and piety, which exhaled from the
-conversation and life of these men of God.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=DEFICIENCIES IN THE THEOLOGIANS.=</p>
-
-<p>One thing, however, checked him: in his opinion
-the Strasburg reformers observed too strict a middle
-path, and sometimes sacrificed truth to prudence.
-Calvin was troubled at this; by not breaking completely
-with Rome, were they not preparing the way to
-return to it? He was all the more alarmed, as the
-young canon of Angoulême had a great inclination
-for this middle way. Calvin, who would have desired
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">{184}</a></span>
-to put Du Tillet in connection with decided reformers,
-saw the three doctors of Strasburg, and especially
-Bucer, holding out their hands to Melanchthon to
-reunite popery and the Reformation. Could he have
-led him into a snare?... 'I find learning and piety in
-Bucer and Capito,' he said one day, 'but they force
-me to desire in them firmness and constancy. We
-must be <i>liberal</i>, no doubt, but not so as to spend the
-wealth of another. And what precautions ought we
-not to take, when it is a question of spending God's
-truth?... He did not give it us that we should
-contract it in any way.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_302" id="Ref_302" href="#Foot_302">[302]</a></span>
-True, these words are
-found in a document of later date; but already the
-wavering Du Tillet was approaching the gulf into
-which he was to fall.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin made up for his disappointments by devoting
-himself lovingly to the French refugees at
-Strasburg. He consoled them, succoured them, and
-gave them very trusty counsel.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_303" id="Ref_303" href="#Foot_303">[303]</a></span>
-To strengthen
-his exiled fellow-countrymen was the work of his
-whole life. 'We must be <i>strangers</i> in this world,'
-he said, 'even if we do not quit the <i>nest</i>. But
-blessed are those who, rather than fall away from the
-faith, freely forsake their homes, and leave their earthly
-comforts to dwell with Christ.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_304" id="Ref_304" href="#Foot_304">[304]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin did not remain long at Strasburg. Did he
-fear the influence of that city upon his friend? or did
-he find too many occupations and disturbances which
-prevented his giving all his time to the work to which
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">{185}</a></span>
-he wished to dedicate himself? I think so, but there
-was something else. He understood that instead of
-receiving knowledge from the hand of others, he must
-personally work the mine of Scripture and dig up the
-precious gems that it contained. He wished, like the
-bee, to extract a store of the purest honey from the
-abundance of the flowers of the divine Word. He
-had had enough of travelling, of disagreements, of
-struggles, and of persecution ... his soul longed for
-solitude and quiet study. 'O God,' said he, 'hide
-me in some obscure corner, where I may at last enjoy
-the repose so long denied me.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_305" id="Ref_305" href="#Foot_305">[305]</a></span>
-Calvin departed for Basle.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=ERASMUS.=</p>
-
-<p>Erasmus, as we know, had long resided in that city.
-Calvin desired to see him. He was beyond all doubt
-much more a man of compromises than Bucer; and
-from timidity, rather than principle, he inclined to the
-side of the papacy. He was, however, a great scholar;
-had he not published the New Testament in Greek?
-Having left Basle, at the moment of the triumph of
-the Reformation there, he happened just at this time
-to be at Friburg in Brisgau, on the road from Strasburg
-to Switzerland. Could Calvin pass so near the
-town where he lived who had '<i>laid the egg</i>' of the
-Reformation, and not try to see him? A writer of
-the sixteenth century has given an account of the
-interview between these two men who—one in the
-department of letters, the other in that of faith—were
-the greatest personages of the day.</p>
-
-<p>Bucer desired to accompany Calvin and introduce
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">{186}</a></span>
-him to Erasmus.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_306" id="Ref_306" href="#Foot_306">[306]</a></span>
-The precaution was almost necessary:
-the old doctor was <i>ratting</i>, wishing to die in
-peace with Rome. Paul III. had hardly been proclaimed
-pope, when he who had kindled the fire
-offered his good services to him, in order to maintain
-the faith and restore peace to the Church.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_307" id="Ref_307" href="#Foot_307">[307]</a></span>
-His letter quite charmed the crafty pontiff. 'I know,'
-Paul answered, 'how useful your excellent learning,
-combined with your admirable eloquence, may be to
-me in rescuing many minds from these new errors.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_308" id="Ref_308" href="#Foot_308">[308]</a></span>
-The pope even had some idea of sending Erasmus
-a cardinal's hat.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN MEETS ERASMUS.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin had not chosen his time well, yet Erasmus
-received him, though not without some little embarrassment.
-The young reformer, impatient to hear the
-oracle of the age, began to ask him numerous questions
-on difficult points.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_309" id="Ref_309" href="#Foot_309">[309]</a></span>
-Erasmus, fearing to commit
-himself, was reserved, and gave only vague answers.
-His interlocutor was not discouraged. Had not the
-scholar of Rotterdam said that the only remedy for
-the evils of the Church was the intervention of Christ himself?<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_310" id="Ref_310" href="#Foot_310">[310]</a></span>
-That was precisely Calvin's idea, and therefore
-following it up, he explained his convictions with
-considerable energy. Erasmus listened with astonishment.
-He perceived at last that the young man
-would not only go farther than himself but even than
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">{187}</a></span>
-Luther, and would wage a merciless war against all
-human traditions. The scholar to whom the pope had
-offered the Roman purple became alarmed; he looked
-at Calvin with astonishment, put an end to the conversation,
-and approaching Bucer, whispered in his
-ear: <i>Video magnam pestem oriri in Ecclesia contra Ecclesiam</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_311" id="Ref_311" href="#Foot_311">[311]</a></span>
-Erasmus broke with the French reformer
-as he had broken with the German reformer. The
-two visitors withdrew. We believe the account of
-this interview to be authentic, in opposition to Bayle
-who carries his sceptical spirit everywhere. Calvin
-might have been proud of this opinion of Erasmus.
-His censure might appear to him praise, and his
-praise censure, as the poet says.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_312" id="Ref_312" href="#Foot_312">[312]</a></span>
-Luther had said:
-'O pope, I will be thy pestilence and death!' Calvin
-and Du Tillet arrived at Basle.</p>
-
-<p>That city possessed a university with distinguished
-scholars, good theologians, and celebrated printers;
-but Calvin did not knock at any of their doors. In a
-bye-street there lived one Catherine Klein, a pious
-woman, who took delight in serving God, and loved to
-wash the feet of the saints, as the Gospel says. It
-was her house the young doctor sought. Coming to
-the banks of the Rhine, the two friends crossed the
-famous bridge which unites Little Basle to the old
-City, and knocked at this pious woman's door. Here
-Calvin found 'the obscure corner' he had so longed for.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_313" id="Ref_313" href="#Foot_313">[313]</a></span>
-Catherine received him with frankness and soon
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">{188}</a></span>
-learnt the worth of the man she had in her house.
-She was not one of those women who from vanity
-'toy and coquet,' to use Calvin's own words;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_314" id="Ref_314" href="#Foot_314">[314]</a></span>
-but of those who having the fear of God before their eyes,
-are honest and chaste in their appearance.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_315" id="Ref_315" href="#Foot_315">[315]</a></span>
-Distinguished by her virtues and piety, she loved to listen
-to Calvin, and never grew weary of admiring the
-beauty of his genius, the holiness of his life, the
-integrity of his doctrines, and the zeal with which
-he applied, day and night, to study.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_316" id="Ref_316" href="#Foot_316">[316]</a></span>
-Calvin seemed like a lighted candle in her house; and thirty years
-later, receiving as a lodger a man who was to be one
-of the victims of the St. Bartholomew—Peter Ramus—this
-estimable woman took pleasure in describing to
-him the reformer's mode of life.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_317" id="Ref_317" href="#Foot_317">[317]</a></span>
-The illustrious philosopher,
-uniting his voice with that of the aged
-Catherine, and standing in the very chamber that
-Calvin had occupied, apostrophized the reformer, as
-'the light of France, the light of the Christian Church
-all over the world.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_318" id="Ref_318" href="#Foot_318">[318]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In the early part of his stay at Basle, Calvin
-appears to have seen nobody but his hostess and his
-inseparable friend Louis du Tillet. He avoided all
-acquaintanceships that might have led to his being
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">{189}</a></span>
-recognised, and he went out but seldom.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_319" id="Ref_319" href="#Foot_319">[319]</a></span>
-Sometimes, however, he and his friend would climb the
-hills which rise above the Rhine, and contemplate the
-magnificence of that calm and mighty river, whose
-waters are ever flowing onwards, with nothing to
-interrupt their majestic course.</p>
-
-<p class="center small">Labitur et labetur in omne volubilis œvum.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_320" id="Ref_320" href="#Foot_320">[320]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=INWARD WORK IN CALVIN.=</p>
-
-<p>It was not fear of persecution that led Calvin to hide
-himself; he was in a free city. But he had need to put
-himself out of the reach of the strange winds of doctrine
-that were then rushing over the world, and of all
-the sensations of one of the most troubled periods of
-history. He wished to withdraw himself from earthly
-noises, and hear only the voice of God and the music of
-heaven. Rapid emotions, now sorrowful, now joyful,
-continually repeated, as he had so often felt in Paris,
-neutralised each other and left nothing in his heart.
-He wished to fix his looks on high, and give the
-thoughts which descended to him from heaven the
-time to lay firm hold upon his mind, and become
-transformed into a strong and unchangeable affection,
-which would become the soul of his whole life. He
-had already learnt much; but it was not sufficient
-for him to learn, he must create: that was the vocation
-he had received from his Master, and to that end
-he must concentrate all the strength of his intelligence
-and of his heart. When God desires to form the ripe
-ear of corn, he proceeds slowly and silently, but powerfully.
-The little seed is hardly thrown into the ground
-when the manifold forces of different agents combine
-to fecundate the germ. During the coolness of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">{190}</a></span>
-night or the heat of the day, the earth imparts her
-juices, the rain enriches it, and the sun-warms it....
-Such was the inner process then going on in the reformer.
-Divine and human forces were combining to
-bring to maturity all the germs of beauty and strength
-that God had deposited in his heart, will, and understanding,
-and to render his genius capable of undertaking
-and accomplishing a great work in the world.
-Calvin felt that he needed silence and concentration.
-Destined to become one of God's mightiest instruments
-for his age and all ages to come, it was necessary
-for him to live alone with God, that he should
-have God in him, and that the divine warmth should so
-melt and purify all his natural energies, as to fit him
-for the accomplishment of his immense task. 'Ah!'
-said he, without thinking of himself, 'God wishing to
-publish his law by Moses, led him to Sinai and took
-him into his heavenly closet.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_321" id="Ref_321" href="#Foot_321">[321]</a></span>
-Many of God's ministers have, after Moses, been thus prepared for the
-work of their office. Luther had been carried away
-to the Wartburg: Basle was Calvin's Wartburg,
-still more than Angoulême.</p>
-
-<p>He had, however, one acquaintance, or rather an
-intimate friend in that city. This was Nicholas Cop,
-ex-rector of the university of Paris, and now a refugee
-at Basle. How could Calvin, who had been the innocent
-cause of his exile, remain long within the same
-walls without seeing him? While preserving his incognito
-with respect to the public, he called upon
-his dear fellow-soldier, and the latter saw that pale
-familiar face enter his room. The friends now visited
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">{191}</a></span>
-each other and conversed together; but mystery for
-some time longer shrouded the person of the young
-reformer.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=GRYNÆUS AND CALVIN.=</p>
-
-<p>One day, however, Calvin spoke to Cop of an eminent
-man then in Basle. This was Simon Grynæus,
-Melanchthon's schoolfellow, who in 1529 had escaped
-with difficulty from the violent attacks of the papists
-of Spire, and had been invited to Basle to take
-Erasmus's place. 'Well versed in Latin, Greek,
-philosophy, and mathematics,' said Melanchthon, 'he
-possessed a mildness of temper that was never put out,
-and an almost excessive bashfulness.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_322" id="Ref_322" href="#Foot_322">[322]</a></span>
-And yet he has been compared 'to the splendour of the sun that
-overpowers the light of the stars.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_323" id="Ref_323" href="#Foot_323">[323]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin knew Grynæus by repute; he met him, and
-was captivated by his amiable and gentle disposition.
-Grynæus, on his side, loved Calvin, and the two
-scholars often shut themselves up together in their
-room. 'I remember well,' wrote Calvin to Grynæus in
-after years, 'how we used to talk in private on the best
-mode of interpreting Scripture.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_324" id="Ref_324" href="#Foot_324">[324]</a></span>—'The
-chief merit in an interpreter,' said the Basle professor, 'is an easy
-brevity without obscurity.' It is the rule Calvin
-followed. At this time, under the direction of Grynæus,
-he studied Hebrew literature more thoroughly.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_325" id="Ref_325" href="#Foot_325">[325]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin's residence at Basle soon became known,
-even to strangers, and the unseasonable visits which
-interfered with his studies and which he so much
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">{192}</a></span>
-dreaded, began again. One day a total stranger
-called upon him.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_326" id="Ref_326" href="#Foot_326">[326]</a></span>
-He came (he said) on the part of
-one Christopher Libertet, surnamed Fabri, a student of
-Montpelier, who had quitted medicine for the ministry,
-and whom we shall meet again in Switzerland as
-Farel's fellow-labourer. 'Fabri has desired me to
-inform you,' said the unknown, 'that he does not
-entirely approve of certain passages in your book on the
-<i>Immortality of the Soul</i>.' This message from a student,
-delivered by a stranger, might have offended Calvin.
-His work was a great success. The power of conviction
-stamped on it, the weight of the proofs, the
-force of the arguments drawn from Scripture, its
-lucidity of style, its richness of thought, the glow of
-light that shone round every word of the author—all
-these things subjugated its readers. But the enthusiasm
-of some of his friends did not blind the author
-to the imperfections of his work. With touching
-humility he answered Fabri, who had not long left
-school: 'Far from being displeased at your opinion,
-your simplicity and candour have delighted me much.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_327" id="Ref_327" href="#Foot_327">[327]</a></span>
-My temper is not so crabbed as <i>to refuse to others
-the liberty I enjoy myself</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_328" id="Ref_328" href="#Foot_328">[328]</a></span>
-You must know, then,
-that I have almost entirely re-written my book.' This
-letter is signed <i>Martinus Lucianus</i>, the name probably
-that Calvin went by at Basle. The date, <i>Basle, 11th
-September</i> (the contents show that the year must be
-1534), is an important mark in the reformer's life.</p>
-
-<p>Visits were not the only troubles that disturbed Calvin's
-solitude. His incognito had hardly ceased before
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">{193}</a></span>
-he was attacked by anxieties from every quarter. The
-discords which broke out in France and Switzerland
-filled him with sorrow. 'I exhort you with all my
-soul, you and the brethren, to keep the peace,' he
-wrote to Fabri. 'In order to maintain it, let us
-make all the greater efforts, the more Satan endeavours
-to destroy it. I have been filled with indignation
-at hearing of the new troubles stirred up by a
-man from whom I should have suspected nothing of
-the sort. He has vomited the poison with which he
-was swollen during a long period of dissimulation;
-and after darting his sting, he has run away like a
-viper.' Was this man Caroli?—I cannot say.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=TRANSLATIONS OF THE BIBLE.=</p>
-
-<p>In his retirement on the Wartburg, Luther had
-translated the New Testament. Calvin engaged in a
-similar task at Basle. On March 27, 1534, a translation
-was published by Pierre de Wingle at Neuchâtel:
-it was a small folio, printed in double columns,
-and was from the pen of Lefèvre of Etaples, but
-had undergone a revision with regard to certain
-expressions which still retained a Romish colouring.
-It would appear that this edition was suppressed,
-either because it had been made without resorting to
-the original texts, or because Wingle himself was dissatisfied with it.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_329" id="Ref_329" href="#Foot_329">[329]</a></span>
-He was soon to publish a more
-perfect version, in which Calvin assisted while at
-Basle. We shall have occasion to speak of this in
-connection with Calvin's cousin, Olivetan, the principal
-translator. Another work—which was to be the great
-work of his life—soon occupied the young reformer.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_290" id="Foot_290" href="#Ref_290">[290]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Schmidt, <i>Jean Sturm</i>, ch. iii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_291" id="Foot_291" href="#Ref_291">[291]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin to Bucer, 150 et. 1541.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_292" id="Foot_292" href="#Ref_292">[292]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Matthias qui solus adhuc populum habet.'—Bucerus Blauerero, 18th
-Jan. 1534.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_293" id="Foot_293" href="#Ref_293">[293]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Rœrich, <i>Reform in Elsass</i>, i. p. 133.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_294" id="Foot_294" href="#Ref_294">[294]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Christliche Verantwortung.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_295" id="Foot_295" href="#Ref_295">[295]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvini <i>Opp.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_296" id="Foot_296" href="#Ref_296">[296]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Fueslin, Beyträge, p. 196. Lehr, <i>Matth. Zell.</i> p. 67.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_297" id="Foot_297" href="#Ref_297">[297]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quæ furit sese amando,—Etsi amat (ut nos omnes) sua impensius.'
-See Rœhrich, <i>Mittheilungen</i>, iii. p. 132.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_298" id="Foot_298" href="#Ref_298">[298]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-[Greek: Gunaikokratoumenos].—Bucerus Blaurero, 16 Nov. 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_299" id="Foot_299" href="#Ref_299">[299]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ad opera uxor eum detrudit.'—Ibid. Jan. 1534.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_300" id="Foot_300" href="#Ref_300">[300]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Letter to Farel, dated Strasburg, May 19, 1539.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_301" id="Foot_301" href="#Ref_301">[301]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Letter to Bucer, October 15, 1541.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_302" id="Foot_302" href="#Ref_302">[302]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin to Du Tillet, <i>Lettres Françaises</i>, i. pp. 4, 54. See
-also the <i>Correspondence</i> published for the first time by M.
-Crottet, p. 25.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_303" id="Foot_303" href="#Ref_303">[303]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 272.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_304" id="Foot_304" href="#Ref_304">[304]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Lettres Françaises</i>, i. p. 272.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_305" id="Foot_305" href="#Ref_305">[305]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quiete diu negata fruerer.'—Calvin, <i>Præf. in Psalm.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_306" id="Foot_306" href="#Ref_306">[306]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cum Calvinus a Bucero ad Erasmum adductus esset.'—Flor. Rémond,
-<i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 251.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_307" id="Foot_307" href="#Ref_307">[307]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In causam ecclesiæ tranquillandæ.'—Paulus papa Erasmo; Erasmi
-<i>Ep.</i> p. 1539.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_308" id="Foot_308" href="#Ref_308">[308]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ad novos errores ex multorum animis abscindendos.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_309" id="Foot_309" href="#Ref_309">[309]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'De intricatis aliquot religionis capitibus sermonem cum ipso
-contulit.'—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 251.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_310" id="Foot_310" href="#Ref_310">[310]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nec ulla superest medendi spes, nisi Christus ipse vertat
-aminos'.—Erasmi <i>Op.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_311" id="Foot_311" href="#Ref_311">[311]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-I see a great pestilence rising in the Church against the
-Church.—Flor. Rémond, <i>Hist. Hérés.</i> ii. p. 251. 'Ad Bucerum
-Calvinum demonstrans dixisse fertur.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_312" id="Foot_312" href="#Ref_312">[312]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Whose praise is censure and his censure praise.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_313" id="Foot_313" href="#Ref_313">[313]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ut in obscuro aliquo angulo abditus.'—(Calv. <i>Præf. in
-Psalm.</i>)</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_314" id="Foot_314" href="#Ref_314">[314]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Mignardent et folâtrent.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_315" id="Foot_315" href="#Ref_315">[315]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvinus, <i>in Timoth.</i> 1. ch. ii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_316" id="Foot_316" href="#Ref_316">[316]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Catherina Petita lectissima matrona sanctitate singularis ingenii
-mirifice captus.'—<i>Ramus</i>, Basilea, 1571. See also the <i>Life of
-Peter Ramus</i>, by Mr. Ch. Waddington, who was the first to direct
-attention to this interesting passage, p. 194.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_317" id="Foot_317" href="#Ref_317">[317]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Tum Calvini hospita sæpe ac jucunde mihi narravit.'—<i>Ramus</i>,
-Basilea, 1571.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_318" id="Foot_318" href="#Ref_318">[318]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Lumen Galliæ, lumen christianæ per orbem terrarum ecclesiæ.—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_319" id="Foot_319" href="#Ref_319">[319]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cum incognitus Basileæ laterem.'—Calv. <i>Præf. in Psalm.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_320" id="Foot_320" href="#Ref_320">[320]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'It flows and shall flow on for ever.'—Horace, <i>Ep.</i>, bk. I.
-Ep. ii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_321" id="Foot_321" href="#Ref_321">[321]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, in <i>Matth.</i> iv. 1.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_322" id="Foot_322" href="#Ref_322">[322]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Pudore pene immodico.'—Erasmi <i>Ep.</i> p. 1464.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_323" id="Foot_323" href="#Ref_323">[323]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Solis radiantis splendor cæterorum siderum lumen obscurat.'—Bezæ
-<i>Icones</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_324" id="Foot_324" href="#Ref_324">[324]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Dédicace de l'Épître aux Romains</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_325" id="Foot_325" href="#Ref_325">[325]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Sese hebraicis litteris dedit.'—Beza, <i>Vita Calvini</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_326" id="Foot_326" href="#Ref_326">[326]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Jam mihi a nescio quo sermo injectus.'—Calvin to Libertet.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_327" id="Foot_327" href="#Ref_327">[327]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Tantum abest ut tuo judicio offensus fuerim.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_328" id="Foot_328" href="#Ref_328">[328]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Neque enim ea est mea morositas.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_329" id="Foot_329" href="#Ref_329">[329]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-It would seem that the only copy extant is that in the library of
-Neuchâtel.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">{194}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XIV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">INSTITUTES OF THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Winter 1534.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">CALVIN had not been long in Basle when dreadful
-news arrived which deeply agitated the inhabitants
-of that reformed city, and especially Calvin himself.
-It was reported that in consequence of some
-controversial placards which had been posted up in
-Paris, and throughout France, the king's anger had
-broken all bounds, that the evangelicals were persecuted,
-that the Châtelet directed the inquisition ...
-and that the burning piles were preparing. Cop, Du
-Tillet, Calvin, and other refugees conversed about
-these mournful events. Du Tillet blamed the violent
-language of the placards; Calvin seems to have kept
-silence on this point—at least in his famous epistle
-to Francis I. he does not disavow the placards, which
-it would have been wise to do, if he had decidedly
-blamed them. Days and weeks went by in the midst
-of continual uneasiness; the air seemed big with
-storms, and terrible explosions from time to time
-startled every compassionate heart.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN'S PLEA FOR COMPASSION.=</p>
-
-<p>At the end of November, Calvin heard of the successive
-deaths of Berthelot, Du Bourg, Paille, and
-several others whom he had known. How often he
-had sat at Du Bourg's table, how often conversed
-with the poor cripple!... Calvin, in his emotion, was
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">{195}</a></span>
-greatly surprised at those who could find no tears for
-such sorrows. 'Let us reject that mad philosophy,'
-he said in after years, 'which would make men entirely
-unfeeling that they may be wise. The stoics must have
-been void of common sense, when they trampled on
-the affections of man.... There are fanatics even now
-who would like to introduce these dreams into the
-Church, who ask for a heart of iron, who cannot support
-one little tear, and yet, if anything happens to
-them, against their will, they lament perpetually....
-The affections which God has placed in human nature
-are not more vicious of themselves than He who
-gave them. Ought we not to rejoice in God's gifts?
-Why, then, should we not be permitted to feel sorrow
-when they are taken from us? Let believers lament,
-therefore, when one of their relations or friends is
-taken away by death, and let them be sad when the
-Church is deprived of good men. Only, as we know
-that life is given us in Christ Jesus, let our sorrow be
-moderated by hope.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_330" id="Ref_330" href="#Foot_330">[330]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>One day, probably in December or January, Calvin
-saw an old man arrive: he was half blind, and felt his
-way as he walked towards him. It was Courault, who,
-liberated from prison by Margaret's influence, had
-escaped from the convent where he had been shut up.
-It was a great joy to the young doctor to see this venerable
-Christian again, whose death three years later
-was to overwhelm him with such deep distress. The
-refugees surrounded Courault, and wanted to know the
-terrible news from Paris. He had not witnessed the
-punishments, but he could describe them, and cries of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">{196}</a></span>
-sorrow rose from every heart. Courault was soon
-followed by other fugitives. For some weeks there
-was a little repose; the sky was heavy and threatening,
-but silent.</p>
-
-<p>On a sudden the tempest burst out again, the bolts
-fell furiously and consumed many other victims.
-About the end of January 1535 the news of the
-martyrdoms of the 21st of that month reached Basle.
-Calvin's soul was perpetually agitated by these atrocious
-persecutions. 'Alas!' he exclaimed, 'in France
-they are burning many faithful and holy people!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_331" id="Ref_331" href="#Foot_331">[331]</a></span>
-He saw them fastened to the <i>estrapade</i>, swinging in the
-air, plunged into the flames, and then drawn out to be
-plunged into them again.... 'With what furious rage
-the enemies of God are transported,' he said; 'but
-though horrible curses and execrable reproaches are
-hurled upon the Christians from every side, they continue
-to repose firmly on the grace of Jesus Christ,
-having confidence that they will be safe even in death.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_332" id="Ref_332" href="#Foot_332">[332]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin was not the only person to feel these keen
-emotions. 'As gibbets were set up in various parts
-of the kingdom,' says Mézeray, 'and <i>chambres ardentes</i>
-were instituted, the Lutheran preachers and
-those who had listened to them took flight, and in a
-few months there were more than a hundred refugees
-who carried their sorrows and their complaints to the
-courts of the German princes.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_333" id="Ref_333" href="#Foot_333">[333]</a></span>
-Their tales excited
-great indignation in Germany. True, the martyrs were
-often calumniated, but in many cities the refugees
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">{197}</a></span>
-from beyond the Rhine were able to refute the falsehoods
-of their enemies. The true Christians were
-not deceived, and they recognised the victims as their brethren.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_334" id="Ref_334" href="#Foot_334">[334]</a></span>
-This was a consolation to the reformer.
-'The news having spread to foreign nations,' he said,
-'these burnings were counted very wicked by a
-large number of Germans, and they felt great bitterness
-against the authors of such tyranny.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_335" id="Ref_335" href="#Foot_335">[335]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=OSWALD MYCONIUS.=</p>
-
-<p>The 'bitterness' was still greater at Basle. Among
-those who shared Calvin's sorrow was Oswald Myconius,
-the friend of Zwingle, antistes or president of
-the Church, for whom the reformer entertained an
-affection that lasted all his life. He called him 'his
-very excellent, most esteemed brother, and very respected friend.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_336" id="Ref_336" href="#Foot_336">[336]</a></span>
-Myconius, as we have stated elsewhere,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_337" id="Ref_337" href="#Foot_337">[337]</a></span>
-was a distinguished philosopher and pupil of
-Erasmus and Glareanus: while residing at Zurich, he
-had taught the classics, and among his pupils was
-Thomas Plater; but the disastrous battle of Cappel
-had made him renounce this duty. At the moment
-when Plater, outstripping the fugitives, who were
-hurrying from the fight, was about to enter the city,
-he encountered Myconius, who was pacing backwards
-and forwards before the gates, full of anguish at the
-thought of the dangers incurred by Zwingle, Zurich,
-and the Reformation.... The professor had hardly
-caught sight of his pupil, when, running up to him,
-he asked: 'Is Master Ulrich dead?' 'Alas! yes,'
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">{198}</a></span>
-answered Plater. Myconius, struck to the heart, stood
-motionless, and then, with profound sorrow, exclaimed:
-'I can live at Zurich no longer.' Plater, who had
-had nothing to eat for twenty-four hours, went home
-with Myconius, who gave him food, and then sat
-down by him, silent and oppressed by the weight of
-his thoughts. At last Myconius took him into his
-room, and said to him, with consternation: 'Where
-must I go?'... The pastor of St. Alban's church at
-Basle had also fallen on the mountain of Zug. 'Go
-to Basle, and become minister there,' said Plater.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_338" id="Ref_338" href="#Foot_338">[338]</a></span>
-Shortly after this the professor and his pupil set out
-on foot for Basle, where they arrived after many adventures
-and alarms.</p>
-
-<p>A few days later Myconius was called upon to
-preach the <i>Council Sermon</i>, which was delivered at six
-in the morning. 'When I entered his room on the
-morning of the appointed day,' says Plater, 'I found
-him still in bed. "Father," said I, "get up; you have
-your sermon to preach." "What! is it to-day?"
-said Myconius, and jumped out of bed. "What shall
-be the subject of my sermon? Tell me." "I cannot."
-"I insist upon your giving me a subject." "Very
-well; show whence our disaster proceeded, and why it
-was inflicted on us." "Jot that down upon a piece of
-paper." I obeyed, and then lent him my Testament,
-in which he placed the memorandum I had just
-written. He went into the pulpit, and spoke eloquently
-before an audience of learned men, attracted there by
-the desire to hear a man who had never preached
-before. All were filled with wonder, and after the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">{199}</a></span>
-sermon I heard Doctor Simon Grynæus say to Doctor
-Sulterus (who at that time belonged to us): "O Sulterus,
-let us pray God for this man to stay among us,
-for he may do much good." '<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_339" id="Ref_339" href="#Foot_339">[339]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=SYMPATHY WITH CALVIN.=</p>
-
-<p>Myconius was nominated pastor of St. Alban's, and
-was soon after called to replace Œcolampadius as president
-of the Church at Basle. He had entertained
-some illusions with regard to Francis I. A Frenchman,
-a strong partisan of that king, had persuaded him that
-Francis was not ill-disposed towards the Gospel; that
-if he dissembled his sentiments, it was only because
-of the prelates of his kingdom; and that if he once
-obtained the possessions in Italy which he coveted,
-it would be seen that he had not much liking either
-for the pope or the papists.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_340" id="Ref_340" href="#Foot_340">[340]</a></span>
-Myconius was struck
-with indignation and grief, when he heard of the
-barbarous executions with which that prince had
-feasted the eyes of the citizens of Paris. He could
-sympathise all the more with Calvin, as, although a
-man of mild and temperate disposition, he shared in
-the decided and energetic opinions of the author of
-the placards. 'Why sew new patches on so torn a
-garment?' he said, speaking of popery. 'We should
-never meet the dragon but to kill him.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_341" id="Ref_341" href="#Foot_341">[341]</a></span>
-A great unity of sentiment drew Calvin and Myconius together
-in the disastrous times of which we are speaking.
-The burning stakes of Paris drove them farther from
-Rome, and bound them closer to the Gospel.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">{200}</a></div>
-
-<p>There were minds, however, upon which persecution
-produced a very different effect. Amid all this
-indignation and sorrow, Du Tillet remained shut up
-in himself and silent. The gentleness of the Word of
-God attracted him, but the bitterness of the cross
-terrified him. He had quitted everything with joy,
-believing that a general reform of the Church would
-be carried out promptly; but when he saw a mortal
-combat beginning between the Gospel and popery,
-'he felt a deep emotion, he lost his rest,' as he tells
-us himself, 'and suffered inexpressible trouble and
-anguish of mind.' Each of the punishments at Paris
-added to the doubts and agitation of that candid but
-weak nature. He seemed to fear schism only, but the
-prospect of persecution and reproach had some share
-in his alarm. 'He did not understand,' as Calvin says,
-'that while bearing the cross we keep Christ company,
-so that all bitterness is sweetened.' He kept himself
-apart, he passed days and nights filled with torture.
-'I have been lonely, and without rest for the space of
-three years and a half,' he wrote to his old friend in 1538.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_342" id="Ref_342" href="#Foot_342">[342]</a></span>
-His intimacy with the reformer was changed,
-and three years later he was to cause him a sorrow as
-great, nay greater, no doubt, than that which Calvin
-had felt when he heard of the deaths of the martyrs.</p>
-
-<p>The intrigues of the agents of Francis I. began to
-be attended with success. They displayed inconceivable
-activity to mislead public opinion. They spoke,
-wrote, and distributed everywhere 'certain little
-books full of lies, in which it was said that the king
-had behaved harshly to none but rebels, who desired
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">{201}</a></span>
-to disturb the State under the cloak of religion.'
-Men, and often the best of men, are unhappily prone
-to believe evil. Germany began to cool down; even at
-Basle many people were deceived; and although they
-did not believe all the calumnies circulated against
-the martyrs, the impression still remained. 'If a
-few sectarians have been punished,' said many good
-men, 'they are anabaptists, who, far from taking the
-Word of God for the rule of their faith, follow only
-their own corrupt imaginations, and have at bottom
-no other doctrine but a contempt of the higher powers.
-We cannot defend the cause of a handful of seditious
-people who desire to overthrow everything, even
-political order.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_342a" id="Ref_342a" href="#Foot_342a">[342a]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=EFFECT OF THE MARTYRDOMS ON CALVIN.=</p>
-
-<p>Shut up with his books in the room he occupied at
-Catherine Klein's, Calvin thought day and night of
-these cruel accusations, and his noble soul felt indignant
-not only that the children of the heavenly Father
-should be forced to suffer atrocious punishments, but
-that it was attempted to defame their characters.
-'These court practisers,' he said, 'load the holy
-martyrs after their death with undeserved blame and
-vile calumnies, and endeavour to hide the disgrace
-of this shedding of innocent blood under cowardly
-disguises. They thus put poor believers to death,
-and no one is able to have compassion on them.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_343" id="Ref_343" href="#Foot_343">[343]</a></span>
-The young doctor saw himself between two rivers
-of blood—that of his brethren already immolated,
-and that of other Christians who would certainly
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">{202}</a></span>
-be immolated in their turn. He had not been able to
-prevent the death of a Milon and a La Forge; but
-he would at least try to turn away the sword that
-threatened other lives. 'If I do not oppose it righteously
-and to the best of my ability,' said Calvin, 'I shall
-fairly be called cowardly and disloyal on account of
-my silence.' He will speak, he will rush between the
-executioners and their victims. A heavenly word rang
-through his soul: <i>Open thy mouth for the dumb in the
-cause of all such as are appointed to destruction</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_344" id="Ref_344" href="#Foot_344">[344]</a></span>
-He therefore formed one of those resolutions which, in a
-character such as his, are unalterable. 'I will obey
-Him who speaks to me from on high,' he said. 'I
-will reply to the wicked tales that are circulated
-against my brethren; and as similar cruelties may
-be practised against many other believers, I will endeavour
-to touch foreign nations with some compassion
-in their favour. Such was the reason,' he adds,
-'which moved me to publish the <i>Institutes of the
-Christian Religion</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_345" id="Ref_345" href="#Foot_345">[345]</a></span>
-Never had noble book so noble
-an origin. Justin Martyr, Athenagoras, and Tertullian
-had written their <i>Apologies</i> by the light of the
-stakes of the second century; Calvin wrote his by the
-light of those of the sixteenth. The publication of
-the <i>Christian Institutes</i> was the pitiful cry of a compassionate
-soul at the sight of those who were going
-to the stake.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THEOLOGY RESTORED.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin had long meditated the great subject
-which then absorbed him—the system of Christian
-faith; and his book was to be the finest body of
-doctrine ever possessed by the Church of Christ.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">{203}</a></span>
-During four centuries, reckoning from the twelfth,
-minds of the highest order had formulated abstract
-systems, in which scholastic rationalism and ecclesiastical
-authority were habitually combined; they had
-wasted their strength in running after expositions,
-contradictions, resolutions, conclusions, and interminable
-<i>pros</i> and <i>cons</i>; theology was lost in an arid
-wilderness. It was about to come out of it in order
-to enter into new lands. But it was not a trifling
-matter to make Christian science pass from death
-to life, from darkness to light. It required an
-awakened conscience, a heart thirsting for righteousness,
-a high intelligence, and a powerful will boldly
-to break through all the <i>chains</i>,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_346" id="Ref_346" href="#Foot_346">[346]</a></span>
-to scatter to the
-winds the <i>sentences</i> and the <i>sums</i> which the schoolmen
-had painfully woven out of their brains or out of
-traditions that were often impure, and to set up in
-their place the living rock of the heavenly Word on
-which the temple of God is to be built.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin was the man called to this work. Until his
-time, dogmatics, when passing from one period to another,
-had always advanced in the same direction, from
-abstraction to abstraction. But suddenly the course
-was changed; Calvin refused to tread the accustomed
-road. Instead of advancing in the way of the schoolmen
-towards new developements of a more refined
-intellectualism, he turned eagerly backwards, he heard
-the voice of conscience, he felt the wants of the heart,
-he ran whither alone they can be satisfied, he traversed
-fifteen centuries. He went to the gospel springs, and
-there collecting in a golden cap the pure and living
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">{204}</a></span>
-waters of divine revelation, presented them to the
-nations to quench their thirst.</p>
-
-<p>The Reformation was not simply a change in the
-doctrine or in the manners or in the government of
-the Church: it was a creation. The first century had
-witnessed the first Christian creation, the fifteenth
-century witnessed the second.</p>
-
-<p>Luther, by the power of his faith, was the principal
-organ of this new creation. Freeing himself from the
-thick darkness that had hung over mankind for so
-many centuries, he had with holy energy hurled his
-lightnings and thunderbolts in every direction around
-him, so that all the horizon was lighted up. Calvin
-appeared; he gathered up these scattered flames, and
-made them into an immense fire; and while the gleams
-of the primitive creation of the Church had been confined
-almost entirely within the limits of the Roman
-world, the fires of the new creation are spreading to
-the ends of the earth.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin retired within himself to meditate on the
-work to which God called him; he turned a deep
-glance into those depths of Scripture which he had so
-often sounded. Holding the torch of the Spirit, he
-summoned before him the great Persons of the Christian
-economy, not to make them figure, as the schoolmen
-had done, in a learned fencing-match, but to elicit
-from them the fundamental truths of faith, and
-plant the golden columns of the temple of light and
-life.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE INSTITUTES.=</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Institutes of the Christian Religion</i> is Calvin's
-great achievement; it is Calvin himself, and we must
-therefore describe it. History, indeed, generally narrates
-the actions performed by the arm of the soldier
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">{205}</a></span>
-or the negociations of the diplomatist; but the work
-that Calvin then accomplished, by spiritual force, far
-exceeds in the importance of its consequences all that
-has ever been done by the pens of the ablest statesmen
-or the swords of the bravest warriors. Let us describe,
-therefore, this 'action' of a nature apart. 'Curious
-minds,' as Calvin calls them, will perhaps pass over
-these pages: we regret it, but we must write them all
-the same.</p>
-
-<p>'The whole sum of wisdom,' said the great doctor
-of modern times at the beginning of his work, 'is
-that by knowing <i>God</i>, each of us knows <i>himself</i> also;
-and these two facts are bound to each other by so
-many ties, that it is not easy to discern which goes
-before and produces the other.'</p>
-
-<p>In fact, Calvin, when addressing man, shows him
-first of all <i>God himself</i>—wonder of wonders!—<i>in
-man</i>. 'God,' says he to man, 'has stamped in you a
-knowledge of himself, and he continually refreshes this
-memory in you, as if he poured it out drop by drop.
-We have <i>a consciousness of divinity graven so deeply
-on our minds</i>, that we cannot erase it. The rebellion
-even of the wicked bears testimony of this, for while
-combating madly to throw off the fear of God, that fear
-remains inevitably clinging to them, as if it were in the
-marrow of their bones.' But after ascribing to man
-the exquisite privilege of bearing the name of God
-within him, Calvin immediately brings a severe charge
-against the human race. 'Alas! we shall hardly find
-<i>one</i> in a hundred that cherishes this divine seed in
-his heart. Some through curiosity fly away in vain
-speculations; others vanish in foolish superstitions;
-others, finally, deprive God of his office as judge and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">{206}</a></span>
-governor, shut him up idle in heaven, and thus remain
-without God in the world.... What is to be done?
-Shall we toss and tumble continually, carried hither
-and thither by many erroneous levities?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_347" id="Ref_347" href="#Foot_347">[347]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin then takes man by the hand, and wishing
-him to know the eternal mysteries, places him before
-a vast spiritual mirror, the Holy Scriptures, where all
-invisible things appear in their living reality. Thus
-distinguishing himself from all the doctors of catholicism
-who had spoken for ten centuries, he puts in the
-fore-front, in an absolute manner, the full sufficiency
-and sovereign authority of the Word of God.</p>
-
-<p>'God,' said he, 'has opened his sacred mouth, to
-make known that he is the God whom we should
-adore. When a handsome book in well-formed
-characters is set before those who have weak eyes, or
-before decrepit old men, they can hardly read two
-words consecutively; but if they take a magnifying
-glass, forthwith they read everything distinctly. If
-we wish to see clearly, let us take Holy Scripture:
-without it we have but a confused and partial knowledge
-of God in our minds; but that drives away all
-obscurity in us, and shows us clearly God's heart.'</p>
-
-<p>Already in the time of Calvin there were certain
-doctors who would strip the Bible of its inspiration
-and christianity of its supernaturalism. 'There are,
-I know full well,' he said, 'despisers, and cavillers,
-and mockers, who attack the Word, and if I had to
-fight out this quarrel with them, it would not be
-difficult for me to silence their cackling. But in
-addition to all the proof that reason brings, there is
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">{207}</a></span>
-one above all others. It is necessary that the same
-Spirit which has spoken by the mouth of the prophets
-should enter our hearts, that he should touch them to
-the quick, and convince them that the prophets have
-faithfully declared what had been enjoined them from on high.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_348" id="Ref_348" href="#Foot_348">[348]</a></span>
-The testimony of the Holy Ghost—that
-is the proof of proofs.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin then turns to man, the self-worshipper, who
-puts himself in the place of God, and reveals to him
-the sin that is in him. 'Come down now,' he says,
-'come down and consider thyself. Learn to know this
-sin, derived from Adam and dwelling in us, like a
-glowing furnace, perpetually throwing out flames and
-sparks, and the fire of which not only burns the senses,
-but pollutes all that is most noble in our souls.'
-There is no means by which man can escape of himself
-from this wretchedness of his nature. 'If thou
-pretendest to rise by thy own strength, thou standest
-on the end of a reed ... that snaps immediately.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_349" id="Ref_349" href="#Foot_349">[349]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Then Calvin shows man where his salvation is to be
-found, and describes with grandeur the work of expiation.
-'While our condemnation holds us surprised,
-trembling, and startled before the judgment seat of
-God, the penalty to which we were subject has been
-laid on the innocent. All that can be imputed to us
-in the sight of God is transferred upon Jesus Christ.
-The divine founder of the Kingdom has suffered in
-the place of the children of the Kingdom.... Our
-peace can be found only in the terrors and agony of
-Christ our Redeemer.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_350" id="Ref_350" href="#Foot_350">[350]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">{208}</a></div>
-
-<p>But how does this work, accomplished <i>out</i> of man, act
-<i>in</i> man?... Such is the great question the Reformer
-sets himself. Divine faith which lays hold of the
-righteousness of Christ <i>upon the cross</i> gives birth at
-the same moment to the holiness of Christ <i>in the heart</i>.
-'Man has no sooner embraced the atonement with a
-faith full of confidence,' he says, 'than he experiences
-an unalterable peace in his conscience. He possesses
-a spirit of adoption, which makes him call God <i>my
-Father!</i> and which procures him a sweet and joyful
-communion with the heavenly Father. Immediately
-the least drop of faith is put into our souls we begin
-to contemplate the face of God, kind and favourable
-to us. True, we see it from afar, but it is with an undoubting
-eye, and we know that there is no deception.'</p>
-
-<p>A new question is here started. The young doctor
-is asked: Is man saved by charity or without it? He
-makes answer: 'There is no other faith which justifies
-save that which is united with charity; but it is
-not from charity that it derives the power to justify.
-Faith justifies only because it puts us in communication
-with the righteousness of Christ. Whosoever
-confounds the two righteousnesses (that of man and
-that of God) hinders poor souls from reposing on the
-sole and pure mercy of God, plaits a crown of thorns
-for Jesus Christ, and turns his sacrifice to ridicule.'</p>
-
-<p>Here Calvin puts forward the grand idea which
-characterises the Reformation effected by his teaching;
-namely, <i>that it is only the new man which we
-should value</i>. After insisting as much as any doctor
-on the work that Christ does <i>without us</i>, he insists
-more than any on the work Christ must do <i>within us</i>.
-'I exalt to the highest degree,' he says, 'the conjunction
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">{209}</a></span>
-that we have with our Chief,—the dwelling
-he makes in our hearts by faith,—the sacred union by
-which we enjoy him. It is necessary that we should
-perceive in our lives a melody and harmony between
-the righteousness of God and the obedience of our
-souls.'</p>
-
-<p>But Calvin observed that many humble, timid christians
-were distressed because they experienced only a
-weak faith. These he consoles, and the images he
-employs are picturesque: 'If any one, shut up in a
-deep dungeon,' he says, 'received the light of the sun
-obliquely and partially, through a high and narrow
-window, he would not certainly have a sight of the full
-sun, yet he would not fail to receive a certain quantity
-of light and to enjoy its use. In the same way, though
-we are shut up in the prison of this earthly body,
-where much obscurity surrounds us on every side, if
-we have <i>the least spark</i> of God's light, we are sufficiently
-illuminated and may have a firm assurance.'</p>
-
-<p>May not that flame be extinguished, ask christians
-hesitatingly. 'No,' said Calvin, 'the light of faith is
-never so extinct that there does not remain some
-glimmer. The root of faith is never so torn from the
-heart, that it does not remain fastened there, although
-it seems to lean to this side or that.' 'Faith,' he exclaimed
-(and he had often felt it), 'faith is an armed
-man within us to resist the attacks of the evil one....
-If we put faith in the front, she receives the blows and
-wards them off. She may indeed be shaken, as a
-stalworth soldier may be compelled by a violent blow
-to step backwards. Her shield may receive damage
-so as to lose its shape, but not be penetrated; and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">{210}</a></span>
-even in this extremity the shield deadens the blow,
-and the weapon does not pierce to the heart.'</p>
-
-<p>After consoling the timid and uplifting the wounded,
-this extraordinary man, who speaks with the firmness
-of one of the captains of the army of God,
-exhorts the soldiers of Christ to be brave: 'When
-St. John promises the victory to our faith, he does not
-mean simply that it will be victorious in <i>one</i> battle, or
-in <i>ten</i>, but in <i>all</i>. Be full of courage then. To fluctuate,
-to vary, to be tossed to and fro; to doubt, to
-vacillate, to be kept in suspense, and finally to despair
-... that is not having confidence. We must have a
-solid support on which we can rest. <i>God has said it</i>,
-that is enough. Being under the safeguard of Christ,
-we are in no danger of perishing.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_351" id="Ref_351" href="#Foot_351">[351]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin turning to Rome seeks for the origin of its
-errors and superstitions, and finds it in the pelagianism
-with which it is tainted. Grace in all its fulness,—grace
-from the first movement of regeneration until
-the final accomplishment of salvation, was the keynote
-of all Calvin's theology; and it is also the powerful
-artillery with which he batters the Roman fortress.
-Like St. Paul in the first century, like St. Augustine
-in the fifth, Calvin is the <i>Doctor of grace</i> in the sixteenth.
-This is one of his essential features. 'The
-will of man,' he said, 'cannot of itself incline to good.
-Such a movement, which is the beginning of our conversion
-to God, Scripture entirely attributes to the
-Holy Ghost. A doctrine not only useful, but sweet
-and savoury through the fruit it bears; for those who
-do not know themselves to be members of the peculiar
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">{211}</a></span>
-people of God, are in a continual trembling.... No
-doubt the wicked find in it a matter to accuse and
-cavil at, to disparage and ridicule ... but if we fear
-their petulance, we must keep silence as to our faith,
-for there is not a single article which they do not contaminate
-with their blasphemies. Christ (he continues)
-wishing to deliver us from all fear in the midst of so
-many deadly assaults, has promised that those who
-have been given him by his Father to keep, shall not
-perish.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_352" id="Ref_352" href="#Foot_352">[352]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At this period Calvin hears a clamour raised against
-him. He is accused of maintaining that God predestines
-the wicked to evil, and he replies at once by
-reprobating such an impious doctrine. 'These mockers
-jabber against God,' he says, 'alleging that the wicked
-are unjustly condemned, since they execute only what
-God has determined.... Not so,' he exclaims; 'far
-from having obeyed God's command, the wicked by
-their lusts rebel against it as far as in them lies.
-There must be no fencing with God; there must
-be no saying, with Agamemnon in Homer, speaking
-of evil: It is not <i>I who am the cause</i>, but Jupiter
-and Fate.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_353" id="Ref_353" href="#Foot_353">[353]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin next hastens to show the fruits of faith:
-'We have given the first rank to doctrine,' he said,
-'but to be useful to us, it must <i>penetrate into the soul,
-pass into the manners and regulate the actions of our
-life</i>.... Since the Holy Ghost consecrates us to be
-temples of God, we must take pains that the glory of
-God fills the temple.... We know those babblers
-who are content with having the gospel on their lips,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">{212}</a></span>
-whilst it ought to sink to the bottom of the soul, and
-we detest their babbling.'</p>
-
-<p>Calvin had carefully studied the condition of the
-Church during the Middle Ages: what had he found
-there?... The separation of religion and morality:
-a government, official doctrines, ceremonies, but all
-stripped of moral life. At that time religion was a
-tree stretching its branches wide into the air, but
-there was no sap flowing through them. To restore a
-lively faith in religion, and through faith a holy morality
-was the reformer's aim. He said: 'God <i>first impresses
-on our hearts the love of righteousness</i>, to which
-we are not inclined by nature; and then he gives us a
-certain rule, which does not permit us to go astray.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_354" id="Ref_354" href="#Foot_354">[354]</a></span>
-Accordingly, a morality, unknown for ages, became
-not only in Geneva, but wherever Calvin's doctrine
-penetrated, the distinctive feature of the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>An important thought, however, still absorbs him.
-He wishes not only to effect certain reforms in certain
-articles, but to constitute the Church. In Calvin's
-estimation the Church is in an especial manner the
-whole assembly of the children of God; but he acknowledges
-also, as having a right to this name, the
-visible assembly of those who, in different parts of the
-world, profess to worship the Lord: 'A great multitude,
-in which the children of God are, alas! but a
-handful of unknown people, <i>like a few grains on the
-threshing-floor under a great heap of straw</i>. Our rudeness,
-our idleness, and the vanity of our minds require
-external helps (he added), and for that reason God
-has instituted pastors and teachers.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_355" id="Ref_355" href="#Foot_355">[355]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">{213}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=APPRECIATION OF THE INSTITUTES.=</p>
-
-<p>That was a solemn time for Calvin, when in the
-room he occupied at Catherine Klein's, he finished his
-<i>Institutes</i>. In after years pious Christians entered
-her house with respect, and one of them, Peter Ramus,
-being there in 1568, five years after the reformer's
-death, exclaimed with emotion: 'Here were kindled
-the torches that shed so great a light! Here those
-illustrious <i>Christian Institutes</i> were composed; and here
-Calvin gave himself up wholly to heavenly vigils!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_356" id="Ref_356" href="#Foot_356">[356]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The <i>Christian Institutes</i> in its earliest form was a
-simple defence, explaining briefly <i>law</i>, <i>faith</i>, <i>prayer</i>,
-<i>the sacraments</i>, <i>Christian liberty</i>, and the nature of
-the <i>Church and State</i>. But the French refugees at
-Geneva, and even distant protestants, continually solicited
-Calvin to set forth the whole Christian doctrine
-in his book; and accordingly it received numerous
-additions.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_357" id="Ref_357" href="#Foot_357">[357]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The <i>Christian Institutes</i> are a proof that christian
-love prevailed in Calvin's mind: indeed, he wrote for
-the justification of <i>believers, his brethren</i>. However,
-by defending the reformed, he explained and justified
-the Reformation itself. What are its principles? The
-formative principle of faith and of the Church is, with
-him as with Luther, the sovereign Word of God; but
-he asserts it with more decision than his predecessor.
-Calvin is anti-traditional: he will have nothing to do
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">{214}</a></span>
-with host, or font, or festivals and other ceremonies
-preserved by Luther. He did not <i>reform</i> the Church,
-he <i>re-formed</i> it; he created it anew. Zwingle also
-was scriptural, as opposed to tradition; yet Calvin's
-theology is different from his; that of the Zurich
-doctor was specially exegetic, while that of the
-Geneva doctor was specially dogmatic. If from the
-formative principle we pass to that which theologians
-call the material principle, namely, that which distinguishes
-the nature and very essence of its doctrine,
-we find that it is at heart the same in Luther and
-Calvin—gratuitous salvation; but the former, clinging
-to Christian <i>anthropology</i>, laid down as a fundamental
-article, the justification by faith of the regenerate
-man; whilst Calvin, clinging particularly to <i>theology</i>,
-to the doctrine of God, proclaimed first of all, salvation
-by the sovereignty of divine grace.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin's polemics, in his <i>Institutes</i>, are essentially
-positive. Like a master in the midst of artists, who
-are endeavouring to draw the same picture, Calvin
-traces his outline with a bold hand, distributes the
-light and shade, and succeeds in making an admirable
-work. And from that time his rivals have only to
-look at it, to acknowledge the imperfections of their
-own, with all their want of proportion and extravagance....
-Calvin destroys what is ugly, but he first
-creates the beautiful.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Institutes</i> were admired by the finest spirits of
-the age. Montluc, bishop of Valence, called Calvin
-the greatest theologian in the world. A French
-writer of our day, who does not belong to the Reform,
-but is a correct and profound thinker,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_358" id="Ref_358" href="#Foot_358">[358]</a></span>
-has characterised
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">{215}</a></span>
-the <i>Institutes</i> 'as the first work of our times
-which presents an orderly arrangement of materials,
-with a composition thoroughly appropriate and exact;'
-and has distinguished Calvin himself, 'as treating
-in a masterly manner all the questions of Christian
-philosophy, and as rivalling the most sublime writers
-in his great thoughts on God, whose style (he adds)
-has been equalled, but not surpassed, by Bossuet.'</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_330" id="Foot_330" href="#Ref_330">[330]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Actes</i>, viii. 2.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_331" id="Foot_331" href="#Ref_331">[331]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Préface des Psaumes</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_332" id="Foot_332" href="#Ref_332">[332]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Actes</i>, vii. 59.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_333" id="Foot_333" href="#Ref_333">[333]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Mézeray, <i>Hist. de France</i>, ii. p. 981. The <i>chambres
-ardentes</i> were tribunals that pronounced the penalty of the stake
-against heresy.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_334" id="Foot_334" href="#Ref_334">[334]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Grave passim apud Germanos odium ignes illi excitaverunt.'—Calvin
-<i>in Psalm.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_335" id="Foot_335" href="#Ref_335">[335]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Préface aux Psaumes</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_336" id="Foot_336" href="#Ref_336">[336]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Letters of Calvin to Myconius, March. 14, and April 17, 1542.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_337" id="Foot_337" href="#Ref_337">[337]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See my <i>History of the Reformation in the Sixteenth Century</i>,
-books viii. and xi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_338" id="Foot_338" href="#Ref_338">[338]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Vie de Thomas Plater</i>, published by M. E. Fick, Doctor of
-Laws.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_339" id="Foot_339" href="#Ref_339">[339]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Vie de Thomas Plater</i>, published by E. Fick.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_340" id="Foot_340" href="#Ref_340">[340]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Videbis quid amicitiæ sit remansurum cum papa et
-papisticis.'—<i>Myconius ad Bullingerum</i>, March 1534.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_341" id="Foot_341" href="#Ref_341">[341]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cum draconi non aliter est congrediendum, nisi ut penitus
-occidatur.'—Ibid. in post. epist.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_342" id="Foot_342" href="#Ref_342">[342]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Du Tillet to Calvin, September 7, 1538.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_342a" id="Foot_342a" href="#Ref_342a">[342a]</a>&nbsp;
-'Turbulentos homines qui totum ordinem politicum
-convellerent.'—Calvin <i>in Psalm.</i> See also Beza, <i>Hist.
-eccles.</i>, p. 14, and <i>Vie de Calvin</i>, p. 19.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_343" id="Foot_343" href="#Ref_343">[343]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Préface des Psaumes</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_344" id="Foot_344" href="#Ref_344">[344]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Proverbs xxxi. 8.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_345" id="Foot_345" href="#Ref_345">[345]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Préface des Psaumes.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_346" id="Foot_346" href="#Ref_346">[346]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Catenæ Patrum.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_347" id="Foot_347" href="#Ref_347">[347]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Institution</i>, liv. i. ch. i, ii, iii, iv.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_348" id="Foot_348" href="#Ref_348">[348]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Institution</i>, liv. i. ch. vi. and vii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_349" id="Foot_349" href="#Ref_349">[349]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. liv. i. ch. i.; liv. ii. ch. ii. and iii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_350" id="Foot_350" href="#Ref_350">[350]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. liv. ii. ch. xvi. and xvii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_351" id="Foot_351" href="#Ref_351">[351]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Institution</i>, liv. iii. ch. ii.; liv. ii. ch. xii, xix, xx;
-liv. xiii. ch. iii, iv, v.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_352" id="Foot_352" href="#Ref_352">[352]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Institution</i>, liv. ii. ch. iii; liv. iii. ch. xxi, xxii,
-xxiii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_353" id="Foot_353" href="#Ref_353">[353]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. liv. i. ch. xvii, xviii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_354" id="Foot_354" href="#Ref_354">[354]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Institution</i>, liv. iii. ch. vi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_355" id="Foot_355" href="#Ref_355">[355]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. liv. iv. ch. i.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_356" id="Foot_356" href="#Ref_356">[356]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Hic tanti luminis faces primum incensæ, &amp;c.'—<i>Ramus</i>,
-Basilea, 1571.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_357" id="Foot_357" href="#Ref_357">[357]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The successive additions are easily seen in the first volume of
-Calvin's Works just published in Brunswick by three Strasburg divines,
-MM. Baum, Cunitz, and Reuss. We there find the different editions of the
-<i>Institutes</i>, and the passages peculiar to each are printed in
-larger type. We refer to the <i>Synopsis</i> in six columns of the
-editions of 1536-1539-1543/5-1550/54-1559, &amp;c. In its first form the
-<i>Institutes</i> consisted of six chapters only; in the last, of
-eighty, divided into four books. Our selections have been made from the
-complete edition.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_358" id="Foot_358" href="#Ref_358">[358]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-M. Nisard.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">{216}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CALVIN ADDRESSES THE KING AND DEPARTS FOR ITALY.<br />
- (<span class="smc">August 1535.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE object of the <i>Christian Institutes</i> was to make
-known to Christendom, and particularly to the
-protestants of Germany, the doctrines professed in
-France by the men whom the king was putting to
-death. But was that all he had to do? Calvin
-thought he saw something more pressing still. His
-representations, instead of passing through Germany,
-might be addressed direct to the king. In his anguish
-and solitary meditations, he had often asked himself
-why he should not do it directly and publicly?...
-It was no doubt a great enterprise for a persecuted
-and almost unknown young man to address that
-powerful monarch, who was mercilessly throwing his
-best subjects into the flames. Calvin did not at first
-entertain so bold a project. Later, he said to the
-king: 'I thought of nothing less than writing things
-to be laid before your Majesty.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_359" id="Ref_359" href="#Foot_359">[359]</a></span>
-But the lamentable
-spectacle presented by France was night and
-day before his eyes. And knowing that the same
-fate was hanging over the heads of all who desired
-no other mediator but Christ, was it right for him to
-be silent?</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">{217}</a></div>
-
-<p>In truth, the glare of the burning piles was reappearing
-in France. A pious husbandman of Bresse,
-'much exercised in the word of God,' by name John
-Cornon, was arrested in his native village in the month
-of May and taken to Macon. When brought before
-his judges, he spoke with such faith and courage, that
-they were astonished and confounded. Accordingly
-at the end of June, he was bound to a hurdle, dragged
-to the place of execution, and there burnt alive.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_360" id="Ref_360" href="#Foot_360">[360]</a></span>
-Shortly after this, one Dennis Brion, a man zealous
-for the gospel, was put to death during 'the great
-days' of Angers, in order to terrify the crowds who
-flocked thither from all parts for these festivals.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_361" id="Ref_361" href="#Foot_361">[361]</a></span>
-The flames which burnt these pious confessors might
-perhaps shortly burn other men of God, whom Calvin
-desired to save at any cost. He therefore determined
-to write to the king, dedicating his book to
-him.... A bold step!</p>
-
-<p class="side">=LETTER TO THE KING.=</p>
-
-<p>'Sire,' he said, 'you are yourself a witness by what
-false calumnies our doctrine is everywhere defamed.
-Have you not been told that it tends to nothing else
-but to ruin all kingdoms and governments, to disturb
-the peace, to abolish all law, to confiscate lordships
-and possessions, and, in a word, to throw everything
-into confusion? And nevertheless you hear only the
-least part of these outrages. Horrible stories are
-circulated against us, for which, if they were true,
-we should richly deserve to be hanged a thousand
-times over.'</p>
-
-<p>What Calvin undertook to do was not merely to
-show that the evangelical doctrine of the Reformation
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">{218}</a></span>
-has the right to exist side by side with the Roman
-Catholic doctrine. This philosophical and Christian
-stand-point was not that of the sixteenth century.
-If the evangelical doctrine has a right to exist, it is
-(said Calvin, boldly) because it is the truth. He
-desired to gain over both king and people to those
-convictions, which in his opinion were alone capable of
-enlightening and of saving them.</p>
-
-<p>'Our defence,' he said, 'does not consist in disavowing
-our doctrine, but in maintaining it to be
-true. Truth deprives her adversaries of the right
-to open their mouths against her. And for this
-reason, Sire, I pray you to obtain full information of
-a cause which hitherto has been treated with impetuous
-fury rather than with judicial gravity....
-Do not think that I am striving here in my own
-private defence, in order to return to my native
-country. Verily, I bear it such human affection as
-is right, but things are now so arranged, that I am
-not greatly distressed at being kept out of it.... No,
-Sire, I undertake the common cause of all believers,
-and even that of Christ himself, a cause now so rent
-and trodden down in your kingdom, that it seems
-desperate.... No doubt, Christ's truth is not lost and
-scattered; but it is hidden away and buried, as if
-deserving of all ignominy. The poor Church is driven
-out by banishment, consumed by cruel deaths, and so
-terrified by threats and terrors, that she dares not
-utter a word. And yet the enemies of truth are not
-satisfied. They insist with their accustomed fury on
-beating down the wall which they have already
-shaken, and in completing the ruin they have begun.'</p>
-
-<p>Here Calvin asks if no one is taking up the defence
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">{219}</a></span>
-of these persecuted Christians.... He looks ...
-alas! the evangelicals are silent, the queen of Navarre
-scarcely raises her timid voice, and diplomatists
-are persuading the Germans that the evangelicals of
-France are fanatics and madmen ... every one
-trembles.... 'Nobody,' he exclaims, 'nobody comes
-forward to oppose this fury. If even any should
-wish to appear to favour the truth, they confine themselves
-to saying that we should in some way pardon
-the <i>ignorance</i> ... the <i>impudence</i> of these simple folks.
-Thus they treat God's most sure truth as <i>impudence</i>
-and <i>ignorance</i>. Those whom our Lord has so esteemed
-as to impart to them the secrets of his heavenly
-wisdom, they call <i>simple folks</i>! who permit themselves
-to be easily deceived, so ashamed are they of the
-Gospel.'</p>
-
-<p>Who then shall take the cause of truth in hand?...</p>
-
-<p>'It is your business, Sire,' said Calvin to the king,
-'not to avert either your ears or your heart from
-so just a defence. A great matter is at stake. We
-have to learn how God's glory shall be maintained on
-earth, how his truth shall retain its honour, and how
-Christ's kingdom shall remain in its integrity.... A
-matter truly worthy of your ears, worthy of your
-government and of your royal throne!... The
-idea which makes a true king, is that the king
-knows himself to be a true minister of God in the
-management of his kingdom. A reign which has not
-God's glory for its aim, is not a reign but a mere
-brigandage.'</p>
-
-<p>Calvin had hardly spoken thus when he seemed to
-see Francis refusing to turn aside from his brilliant
-fêtes to lend his ears to the meanest of his subjects.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">{220}</a></span>
-The king listens to Montmorency, to Tournon ...
-he hastens to meet the Duchess d'Etampes; he even
-welcomes artists and men of letters; but these
-miserable religionists ... never!</p>
-
-<p>'Sire,' said Calvin, 'do not turn away in disdain of
-our meanness. Verily, we confess that we are poor
-despicable folks,—miserable sinners before God,
-reviled and rejected before men.... Nay, if you
-like it, we are the scum of the earth or anything more
-worthless still, that can be named. Yes, we have
-nothing left in which we can glory before God, except
-his only mercy ... and nothing before men, except
-our weakness!'</p>
-
-<p>But the apologist immediately lifts up his head
-with holy pride:</p>
-
-<p>'Nevertheless,' he says, 'our doctrine must remain
-exalted, invincible, and far above all the power and
-glory of the world. For it is not ours, but that of the
-living God and his Christ, whom God has made King
-to rule from sea to sea, and from the rivers unto the
-ends of the earth, ... and whose magnificence the
-prophets have foretold, saying that he shall overthrow
-kingdoms strong as iron and brass, and shining
-like silver and gold.'</p>
-
-<p>Here the advocate of his brethren hears an objection
-from their enemies. He sees them clustering round
-Francis, and incessantly repeating to him that <i>these
-folks</i>, even while putting forward the Word of God, are
-only its <i>perverse corruptors</i>.... 'Sire,' he continues,
-'you can judge for yourself, by reading our confession
-(the <i>Institutes</i>) to what an extent the reproach
-is nothing but wicked calumny and brazen impudence.
-What is more conformable with the christian faith,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">{221}</a></span>
-than to acknowledge ourselves stripped of all virtue
-to be clothed with God? empty of all good to be filled
-with Him? the slaves of sin to be freed by Him?
-blind, to have our sight restored by Him? lame, that
-He may make us walk? weak, to be supported by
-Him? in a word, to put off from us all manner of
-glory, that He alone may be glorified?... Ah! we
-do not read of men being blamed for drinking too
-deeply at the fountain of living waters; on the
-contrary, the prophet bitterly reproves those who
-have hewed out broken cisterns that can hold no
-water.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_362" id="Ref_362" href="#Foot_362">[362]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Calvin even attempted—and a hopeless attempt it
-was—to touch the king's heart: 'Consider, Sire, all
-parts of our cause. We are persecuted, some of us
-are kept in prison, others are scourged, others forced
-to do penance, others banished, others escape by flight....
-We are in tribulation, insulted, treated cruelly,
-looked upon as outlaws, and accursed.... And for
-what?... Because we place our hope in the living
-God, and believe that life everlasting is <i>to know the
-only true God and Jesus Christ whom he hath sent</i>.'</p>
-
-<p>Calvin knew very well, however, that the victory
-would not be easy. He had seen the priests closely,
-in the capital, in cities of second rank, and in the
-country. He fancied he could hear the cries raised
-by the curés in their parishes, and the monks in their
-convents. Wishing, therefore, to enlighten the king,
-he did so in a rather coarse manner, after the fashion
-of the times. 'Why,' he asked, 'do our enemies fight
-so stoutly and so sternly for the mass, purgatory, pilgrimages,
-and such rubbish?' ... Because the belly
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">{222}</a></span>
-is their God, and the kitchen their religion. Because,
-although some treat themselves delicately and others
-starve upon crusts, they all eat out of the same pot
-which, without these branches to warm them (the
-mass, purgatory, &amp;c.) would not only grow cold, but
-freeze entirely.'</p>
-
-<p>Calvin was not ignorant however that the really
-dangerous enemies of the Reformation were not those
-priests and friars whom Erasmus and so many others
-had often flagellated to the great delight of the king.
-He imagined he saw haughty nobles, fanatical priests
-and doctors entering the king's closet, and pouring
-their perfidious accusations into his ear. 'I hear
-them,' he says, 'they call our doctrine <i>new</i>.... Verily,
-I have no doubt it is <i>new</i>, so far as they are concerned,
-seeing that even Christ and his gospel are quite new
-to them. But he who knows that this preaching of
-St. Paul's is old, namely, that <i>Christ died for our sins
-and was raised again for our justification</i>, finds nothing
-new among us. True, it has long been hidden
-and unknown, but the crime must be laid to the
-wickedness of man; and now that by God's goodness
-it is restored to us, it ought at least to be received
-into its ancient authority.'</p>
-
-<p>Here the enemies persist: they claim the old doctors
-of the Church as being in their favour. This was the
-strongest argument in the eyes of Francis, who affected
-a certain respect for ancient christian literature.
-Calvin was familiar with the writings of the doctors:
-he had studied them night and day at Angoulême,
-Paris, and Basle. 'The Fathers have been mistaken,
-just like other men,' he said, 'but these good and
-obedient sons (the Romish friars) adore the errors of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">{223}</a></span>
-the Fathers, and put out of sight what they have said
-aright, as if they had no other care but to pick out
-the rubbish from among the gold.... And then
-they attack us with loud clamours as despisers of the
-Ancients. Far from despising them, we could prove
-from their testimony the greater part of what we are
-now saying. But those holy persons often differ from
-each other and sometimes contradict themselves. They
-ought not to tyrannise over us. It is Christ alone
-whom we must obey wholly and without exception.
-Why do not our adversaries take the Apostles for
-their Fathers, since it is their landmarks and theirs
-only that we are forbidden to remove? And if they
-desire the landmarks of the Fathers to be observed,
-why do they, whenever it suits their pleasure, overleap
-them so audaciously?'</p>
-
-<p>Further than this, Calvin makes use of these doctors;
-he does not fear them, on the contrary, he
-appeals to them. He calls them all up to make them
-defile before the king and bear testimony against the
-doctrines of Rome.</p>
-
-<p>'It was a Father, Epiphanius, who said that it was
-a horrible abomination to see an image of Christ or
-of any saint in a christian temple.</p>
-
-<p>'It was a Father, Pope Gelasius, who said that the
-substance of the bread and wine dwells in the sacrament
-of the Holy Supper, as the human nature dwells
-in our Lord Jesus Christ, united to his divine essence.</p>
-
-<p>'It was a Father, Augustine, who called it a rash
-theory to assert any doctrine without the clear
-testimony of Scripture.</p>
-
-<p>'It was a Father, Paphnutius, who maintained that
-the ministers of the Church ought not to be forbidden
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">{224}</a></span>
-to marry, and that chastity consisted in having a
-lawful wife.</p>
-
-<p>'It was a Father, Augustine, who contended that
-the Church ought not to be preferred to Christ,
-because whilst ecclesiastical judges, being men, may
-be mistaken, Christ always judges righteously.... Ah!
-if I wished to reckon up all the points in which the
-Roman doctors reject the yoke of the Fathers, whose
-obedient children they call themselves, months and
-years would pass away in reading the long roll....
-And then they reprove us for going beyond the
-ancient boundaries!'</p>
-
-<p>Calvin did not forget that he was speaking to a
-prince. Struck with the condition of the world at
-this important moment, when old superstition and
-new doubts, old disorders and new immoralities,
-ambitions, war, and desolations, were all conflicting
-together, he called loudly for a remedy; and being convinced
-that the Reformation alone could save society,
-he exclaimed: 'Oceans of evil are deluging the land.
-New plagues are ravaging the world. Everything
-is falling into ruins. We must despair of human
-affairs, or put them to rights, even if it be by violent
-remedies. And yet men reject the remedy.... Ah!
-God's everlasting truth alone ought to be listened to
-in God's kingdom. Against it neither proscription,
-nor lapse of years, nor ancient customs, nor any
-compact whatever, avails anything.'</p>
-
-<p>'But the Church,' say his adversaries. 'If we are
-not the Church, where was it before you?' 'Alas!'
-answered Calvin, 'how often has not the Church
-suffered eclipse, been deformed and oppressed by wars,
-seditions, and heresies.... Does not St. Hilary reprimand
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">{225}</a></span>
-those who, blinded by an unreasoning respect,
-did not observe what sores were sometimes hidden
-under a fair outside. You seek the Church of God
-in the beauty of its buildings. But know you not
-that there it is that Antichrist will set up his throne?
-Mountains, woods, and lakes, prisons, wildernesses,
-and caves—these are to me safer and more trustworthy;
-for there prophesied the prophets, who had
-withdrawn to them. God, seeing that men were
-unwilling to obey the truth, permitted them to be
-buried in deep darkness, and the form of a true
-Church to be lost, while still preserving those who
-belonged to it, hidden and scattered here and there.
-If you are willing, Sire, to give up a part of your
-leisure, and to read my writings ... you will see
-clearly that what our adversaries call a Church is a
-cruel gehenna, a slaughter-house of souls, a torch, a
-ruin.'</p>
-
-<p>Finally, the young doctor, knowing that the cardinals
-were continually repeating to Francis I., 'See
-what contentions, troubles, and disturbances the
-preaching of this doctrine has brought with it,' gave
-an answer to that vulgar accusation which is rather
-striking and original: 'The Word of God,' he says,
-'never comes forward without Satan's rousing himself
-and fighting. A few years ago, when everything
-was buried in darkness, this lord of the world played
-with men as he list, and like a Sardanapalus, took his
-pastime in peace. What could he do but sport and
-jest, seeing that he was then in tranquil possession of
-his kingdom? But since the light shining from on
-high has chased away the darkness, the prince of this
-world has suddenly thrown off his lethargy and taken
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">{226}</a></span>
-up arms. First, he resorted to force in order to
-oppress truth; then, to stratagem to obscure and
-extinguish it. Oh! what perversity to accuse the
-Word of God of the seditions stirred up against it
-by fools and madmen!</p>
-
-<p>'Ah! Sire, it is not us who stir up troubles, it is
-those who resist the goodness of God. Is it likely
-that we, whose mouths have never uttered a seditious
-word; whose lives, while we lived under your sceptre,
-were always simple and peaceful, should plot the
-overthrowing of kingdoms?... Now, even that we
-are expelled, we cease not to pray to God for the
-prosperity of your reign.</p>
-
-<p>'If there be any who, under colour of the gospel,
-stir up tumults; if there be any who wish to
-conceal their carnal licence by asserting the liberty
-and grace of God: there are laws and punishments
-ordained to purge these offences. But let not God's
-gospel be blasphemed by the evil-doings of the
-wicked.'</p>
-
-<p>Calvin thus brings his letter to a conclusion: 'Sire,'
-he said, 'I have set before you the iniquity of our
-calumniators. I have desired to soften your heart,
-to the end that you would give our cause a hearing.
-I hope we shall be able to regain your favour, if you
-should be pleased to read without anger this confession
-which is our defence before your Majesty.
-But if malevolent persons stop your ears; if the
-accused have not an opportunity of defending themselves;
-if impetuous furies, unrestrained by your
-order, still exercise their cruelty by imprisonments
-and by scourging, by tortures, mutilation, and the
-stake ... verily, as sheep given up to slaughter, we
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">{227}</a></span>
-shall be reduced to the last extremity. Yet even
-then we shall possess our souls in patience, and shall
-wait for the strong hand of the Lord. Doubtless, it
-will be stretched forth in due season. It will appear
-armed to deliver the poor from their afflictions, and
-to punish the despisers who are now making merry
-so boldly.</p>
-
-<p>'May the Lord, the King of Kings, establish your
-throne in righteousness and your seat in equity.'</p>
-
-<p>Such was the noble and touching defence which a
-young man of twenty-six addressed to the king of
-France. He heard from afar the mournful cries of the
-victims; and his soul being stirred with compassion
-and indignation, he appeared as a suppliant before the
-voluptuous prince who was putting them to death.</p>
-
-<p>After finishing an address of such rare eloquence,
-Calvin wrote the date—<i>Basle, 1st August, 1535</i>, and
-then hastened to get the manuscript printed.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_363" id="Ref_363" href="#Foot_363">[363]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=PRINTING OF THE INSTITUTES.=</p>
-
-<p>There was a house at Basle, on the heights of St.
-Pierre, known by the sign of the <i>Black Bear</i>, where
-there was a printing office belonging to Thomas
-Plater, the Valaisan. Calvin often went there. Plater,
-who had come to Basle with Myconius, as we have
-seen, was at first a student, then a professor, and
-finally 'the large sums gained by the printers,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_364" id="Ref_364" href="#Foot_364">[364]</a></span>
-had given him the desire to become a printer also. When
-Calvin was looking for a publisher for his <i>Institutes</i>,
-the learned Grynæus recommended Plater to him.
-The latter had the honour of printing that work,
-and from that time Calvin kept up an occasional
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">{228}</a></span>
-intercourse with this singular man. When, some
-years later, Felix Plater, the son of Thomas, who was
-going to study medicine at Montpelier, passed through
-Geneva, Calvin, to whom he brought a letter from his
-father, called him <i>my Felix</i>, and received him with
-much cordiality. 'I heard him preach on Sunday
-morning,' said the young man in his memoirs; 'and
-there was a great crowd of people.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_365" id="Ref_365" href="#Foot_365">[365]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It was, as we have said, in August 1535, that
-Calvin handed Thomas Plater his epistle to Francis I.
-to be printed. He had written it in French, and the
-French edition bears the date of the 1st of August; but
-he immediately translated it into Latin and printed
-this version on the 23rd of the same month, which
-is the date of the Latin edition.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_366" id="Ref_366" href="#Foot_366">[366]</a></span>
-It is probable
-that the epistle to Francis I. was printed in both
-languages, and that the French text was sent to the
-king, and the Latin to the German doctors, in September
-1535.</p>
-
-<p>Did Francis ever receive the letter? Did he listen
-to this admirable apology? It is certain that his
-heart was not softened. It is even possible that the
-pleasures and policy of the monarch made him contemptuously
-throw aside this appeal from one of the
-poorest of his subjects. However, nothing prevents
-us from believing that the king did read it, for the
-style alone was worthy of a monarch's notice. Calvin's
-friends, and even Calvin himself, hoped much from it.
-'If the king would but read that excellent letter,' said
-one of them, 'a mortal wound (or we are greatly mistaken)
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">{229}</a></span>
-would be inflicted on that harlot of Babylon.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_367" id="Ref_367" href="#Foot_367">[367]</a></span>
-But was an ambitious, false-speaking, and libertine
-king competent to understand the noble thoughts of
-the reformer?</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN STARTS FOR ITALY.=</p>
-
-<p>Calvin having published his appeal to Francis I.,
-and perhaps ended the correction of the proofs of the
-<i>Institutes</i>, thought of leaving Basle. These publications
-would make a sensation; it would be known
-that Catherine Klein's lodger was their author, and
-Calvin would find himself courted and sought after....
-'It is not my object to display myself and to
-acquire fame,' he said.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_368" id="Ref_368" href="#Foot_368">[368]</a></span>
-The fear of becoming famous
-induced him, therefore, to get out of the way. He
-had, however, other reasons, for quitting Basle: he felt
-himself drawn towards Italy. Shortly after, on the
-23rd August 1525, 'Calvin, having discharged his
-debt to his country,' says Theodore Beza, set off with
-Du Tillet, shrinking from eulogiums, thanks, and
-approbation, just as another man would shrink from
-threats and violence.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CALVIN'S JOURNEY TO ITALY.=</p>
-
-<p>The two friends rode side by side, but their
-itinerary has not been preserved. There are, as every
-one knows, many passes over the Alps, but that which
-Calvin chose is as unknown to us as that of Hannibal—though
-certainly not to be compared with it. It
-has been supposed that the travellers took the road
-along the shores of the lake of Geneva. If they passed
-through Switzerland, and purposed crossing the St.
-Bernard (as a manuscript of the 17th century states),
-or the Simplon, or even Mount Cenis, Calvin must have
-stood for the first time on the margin of those beautiful
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">{230}</a></span>
-waters. Be that as it may, he was going to pass the
-Alps. 'He had a wish,' as Theodore Beza tells us,
-'to know the Duchess of Ferrara, a princess of
-exemplary virtue.' But other motives impelled the
-young reformer. He desired to see Italy: <i>Italia
-salutanda</i>, as his friend tells us. This desire of
-'saluting' Italy, so common to the inhabitants of the
-rest of Europe from the time when the Roman
-republic subjected the nations, and which exists still
-in our days, Calvin felt like any other man.</p>
-
-<p>But what did he go in search of!... Whilst he
-was climbing the Alps and contemplating for the first
-time their immense glaciers and eternal snows, what
-thoughts filled his mind? There was some talk then
-of a council; had that event, which seemed near at
-hand, anything to do with his journey? As Vergeria
-had gone from Italy to Germany, in order to
-support the dominion of the pope, did Calvin
-wish to go from Switzerland to Italy, in order to
-assail it? Or attracted by the almost evangelical
-reputation of Contarini, Sadolet, and other prelates,
-did he long to converse with them? Did he feel the
-necessity of seeing closely that papacy, with which he
-was to deal all his life, and did he propose to study,
-like Luther, its scandals and abuses? Did he wish to
-carry back the gospel to that very country to which
-Paul had taken it? Or was he only attracted by
-classical recollections, by the learning and civilisation
-of that illustrious peninsula? There was a little of
-all these inducements, probably, in Calvin's wish.
-He desired to visit the land of heroes, martyrs and
-scholars, of Renée of Ferrara, and ... of the popes.
-<i>Italia salutanda.</i> But his chief thought, we cannot
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">{231}</a></span>
-doubt, was to teach the principles of the Reformation,
-to proclaim to Italy that Christ had come to destroy
-sin, and had opened a way to the heavenly Father for
-all who seek him. A catholic historian says that the
-young reformer 'had conceived the design of withdrawing
-from their obedience to the pope the people
-nearest to his throne.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_369" id="Ref_369" href="#Foot_369">[369]</a></span>
-There is some exaggeration
-in this statement, but the substance is true.</p>
-
-<p>Calvin crosses the torrents, ascends the sloping
-valleys of the Alps, climbs yonder high mountains
-which rise like impassable walls, and moves courageously
-towards those Italian lands, where the men
-of the Reformation are soon to be drowned in their
-blood, where persecution certainly attends him, and
-perhaps ... death. It matters not: onward he
-goes. We might say, after an historian, that like
-Mithridates, he desires to conquer Rome in Rome.</p>
-
-<p>Let us leave him for a moment and turn towards
-those countries whither he will come again, once more
-crossing the Alps, on his escape from the prisons of
-Italy. After wandering over the adjacent regions,
-let us direct our steps towards that city which is
-struggling so manfully with bishops and princes,
-where courageous forerunners are about to prepare
-the way for him, and which is to become, through the
-torch that will be lighted there some day by the
-hand of Calvin, the most powerful focus of the European
-Reformation.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_359" id="Foot_359" href="#Ref_359">[359]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Dedication of the <i>Institutes</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_360" id="Foot_360" href="#Ref_360">[360]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Crespin, <i>Martyrol.</i> fol. 116.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_361" id="Foot_361" href="#Ref_361">[361]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Drion, <i>Hist. Chron.</i> i. p. 25.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_362" id="Foot_362" href="#Ref_362">[362]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Jeremiah, ii. 13.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_363" id="Foot_363" href="#Ref_363">[363]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See the Dedicatory Epistle at the beginning of all the editions of
-the <i>Institutes</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_364" id="Foot_364" href="#Ref_364">[364]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Vie de Thomas Plater, écrite par lui-même</i>, p. 110.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_365" id="Foot_365" href="#Ref_365">[365]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Autobiography of Felix Plater, son of Thomas.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_366" id="Foot_366" href="#Ref_366">[366]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Decimo Calendas Septembris.—Latin edition, at the head of the
-<i>Institutes</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_367" id="Foot_367" href="#Ref_367">[367]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Magnum meretrici Babylonicæ vulnus illatum.'—Beza, <i>Vita
-Calvini</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_368" id="Foot_368" href="#Ref_368">[368]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Préface des Psaumes.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_369" id="Foot_369" href="#Ref_369">[369]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Varillas, <i>Hist. des Hérésies</i>, ii. p. 994.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">{232}</a></span>
-
- <h2>BOOK V.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">STRUGGLES OF THE REFORMATION.</span></h2>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER I.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">EFFORTS IN THE PAYS DE VAUD.<br />
- (1521.)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">STRUGGLES, political or religious, are the normal
-state of society and the life of history. Their
-necessity in a christian point of view is established by
-the highest of authorities: <i>I am not come to bring peace
-upon earth but the sword</i>, said the Saviour of men;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_370" id="Ref_370" href="#Foot_370">[370]</a></span>
-and one of his disciples sixteen centuries later, developing
-his master's words, added: 'As the greater
-part of the world is hostile to the gospel, we cannot
-confess Christ without encountering opposition and
-hatred.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_371" id="Ref_371" href="#Foot_371">[371]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=USES OF OPPOSITION.=</p>
-
-<p>This thought would be saddening indeed, did not
-experience and Scripture teach us that opposition is
-often a means of developement; that the gifts of
-God to man easily perish if nothing revives them;
-that contradiction, resistance, and trial (thanks to the
-care of divine providence) tend to civilise nations, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">{233}</a></span>
-preserve to Christianity the truth, morality, and life
-it has received from on high.</p>
-
-<p>Whence proceeds this moral influence of contradiction?
-A principle never evolves all that it contains,
-says a school, except by coming in collision with a
-contrary principle. In effect, the blow which a soldier
-receives on the battle-field adds to his valour. The
-inflexible obstinacy of Rome in upholding all abuses,
-excited Luther to display with more energy the great
-principles of the Reformation. And at Geneva, it
-was because the huguenots had to contend perpetually
-against a mean despotism in the State and an incorrigible
-corruption in the Church, that their souls
-groaned after liberty and a better religion.</p>
-
-<p>Yet contradiction is not all that is necessary: there
-must be reconciliation afterwards. The twofold opposition
-of the huguenots (high-minded as it was)
-against civil and religious despotism, would have
-been ruined by its excess and would have ruined
-Geneva, if it had not been moderated afterwards. It
-was not good for the State that 'no one was willing to obey.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_372" id="Ref_372" href="#Foot_372">[372]</a></span>
-It was not good for religion that opposition
-to popery should consist in walking about the churches
-during mass. Modern times needed, from their very
-cradle, authority in the bosom of a free people, and
-pure doctrine in the bosom of a living Church. God
-gave both to Geneva, and he did so essentially through
-the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>Care must be taken, however, that we go not too
-far in the way of accommodation. The Reformation
-must make no concessions to popery. Whenever it
-has gone down that easy incline, it has left its calm
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">{234}</a></span>
-heights and fallen among quagmires which have endangered
-its purity and existence.</p>
-
-<p>But that was the conciliation which had to be carried
-out in those times, and which ought still to be attempted
-in the Christendom of our times. Between negative
-protestantism and Roman-catholicism there is a middle
-path. On the one hand the gospel ought to supply
-this negative protestantism with what is deficient in
-it, and on the other to take away from Romanism
-whatever is erroneous in it. The huguenots, in
-part at least, were transformed in the city of Calvin
-by the great principles of the Reformation. It was
-by the potent virtue of the gospel that this little city,
-which had been only an Alpine burgh, was so marvellously
-metamorphosed and became in Europe the
-capital of a great opinion.</p>
-
-<p>One circumstance, however, tended to compromise
-its future. The Reform triumphed, but not without
-losing strength, for the sword struck foul in the
-struggle. 'If a man strive for mastery, he is not
-crowned, except he strive lawfully.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_373" id="Ref_373" href="#Foot_373">[373]</a></span>
-Calvin understood
-better than the other reformers the spirituality
-and independence of the Church; and yet giving way
-to the general weakness, he had recourse to the secular
-arm to maintain discipline, and was unable to prevent
-the death of Servetus. That fatal stake did more
-injury to truth than to falsehood. From that hour,
-the doctrine lost its power, a stain soiled its flag, and
-error seized the advantage of slipping into the ranks
-of those who were summoned to combat her. Eminent
-minds were seen abandoning the doctrines of the
-Reformation, chiefly on account of the civil intolerance
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">{235}</a></span>
-by which they were defended. And thus a more
-or less culpable stagnation followed the powerful
-activity and glorious battles of the primitive days of
-the Reformation. There were no more combats
-round the expiatory cross, the eternal Word, the fall,
-grace, and regeneration. No more struggles, and
-therefore no more life. The christian fortress that
-Calvin had erected having been assailed for two
-centuries, shaken and dismantled, was on the point of
-being razed to the ground; when fortunately the
-struggles, entirely spiritual struggles, began again,
-and religion was saved by them. When God, after
-ploughing Europe in the early part of this century
-with the terrible share of a conqueror, awoke it
-from its long sleep, he remembered Geneva, and revived
-there as in other places doctrine and life.
-That city and all Christendom are now challenged
-again to the old struggles, and also to new ones, in
-which faith shall triumph over absolute thoroughgoing
-negations, which not only deprive man of the
-grace and adoption of the children of God, but deny
-also the immateriality and immortality of the soul.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=VAUD AND GENEVA.=</p>
-
-<p>We shall not begin with the struggles of the
-Reformation in Geneva, but with those which were
-fought in a country beautifully situated between the
-lakes and the mountains,—the Pays de Vaud. The
-country was not large, its cities were not populous,
-and the names of the men who struggled there do
-not occupy an important place in the annals of nations.
-Let us not forget, however, that there are two kinds
-of history: the stage of one is a brilliant circle, of
-the other a humble sphere. The actors in the former
-are great personages, in the latter men of low esteem
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">{236}</a></span>
-in their own day. But is not the least sometimes the
-greatest of these two kinds of history? Are not
-events of small dimensions geometrically similar to
-great ones? Have they not often a deeper moral
-significance and a wider practical influence? With
-truth it may be said of the struggles of Vaud and
-Geneva: <i>Magnam causam in parvum locum concludi</i>,
-a great cause is here confined within narrow limits.
-The scenes, so modest and obscure, so full of decision
-and life, which this history presents, have probably
-done more to found the kingdom of truth and liberty,
-than the disputes and wars of powerful potentates.
-Such a thought as this has been expressed, even in
-Paris. A contemporary writer, after tracing in his
-history of the sixteenth century an outline of the
-portentous future threatened by the intrigues of the
-papacy, regains his courage with the words: <i>Europe
-was saved by Geneva</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_374" id="Ref_374" href="#Foot_374">[374]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>All the reformers have been men of strength; but
-while Luther and Calvin have particularly contended
-for the principles and doctrines of the Reformation,
-others, like Knox and Farel, applying themselves to
-the practice, have specially undertaken to win certain
-countries or cities to the gospel. The men of God, in
-all ages, have done both these things; but not one
-of them has combined the two, like St. Paul. There
-were two men in that apostle, the doctor and the
-evangelist. Calvin was the great doctor of the sixteenth
-century, and Farel the great evangelist: the
-latter is one of the most remarkable figures in the
-Reformation.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">{237}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL.=</p>
-
-<p>A catholic in his youth, fanatic in abstinence and
-maceration, Farel had embraced salvation through
-grace with all the living ardour of his soul, and from
-that hour everything appeared to him under a new
-face. His desire to enlighten his contemporaries was
-intense, his heart intrepid, his zeal indefatigable, and
-his ambition for God's glory without bounds. A difficulty
-never stopped him; a reverse never discouraged
-him; a sacrifice, even were it that of his life, never
-alarmed him. He was not a great writer; in his works
-we meet occasionally with disorder and prolixity; but
-when he spoke he was almost without an equal. The
-energetic language which transported his hearers had
-been derived from the writings of the prophets and
-apostles; his doctrine was sound, his proofs strong,
-his expressions significative. Poets are made by
-nature, orators by art, but preachers by the grace of
-God; and Farel had the riches of nature, of art, and of grace.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_375" id="Ref_375" href="#Foot_375">[375]</a></span>
-He never stopped to discuss idle or
-frivolous questions, but aimed straight at the conscience,
-and exhibited before those who listened to
-him the treasures of wisdom, salvation, and life that
-are found in the Redeemer. Full of love for truth
-and hatred for falsehood, he inveighed energetically
-against all human inventions. In his eyes the traditions
-of popery were a gulf in which horrible darkness
-reigned, and hence he laboured to extricate souls
-from it and plant them in the soil of God's Word.
-His manly eloquence, his lively apostrophes, his bold
-remonstrances, his noble images, his action frank,
-expressive, and sometimes threatening, his voice that
-was often like thunder (as Beza tells us), and his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">{238}</a></span>
-fervent prayers, carried away his hearers. His sermon
-was not a dissertation but an action, quite as much
-as a battle is. Every time he went into the pulpit,
-it was to do a work. Like a valiant soldier he was
-always in front of the column to begin the attack,
-and never refused battle. Sometimes the boldness of
-his speech carried by storm the fortress he attacked;
-sometimes he captivated souls by the divine grace he
-offered them. He preached in market-places and in
-churches, he announced Jesus Christ in the homes of
-the poor and in the councils of nations. His life was
-a series of battles and victories. Every time he went
-forth, it was <i>conquering and to conquer</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_376" id="Ref_376" href="#Foot_376">[376]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It is very true, as we have said, that the cities
-where he preached were not large capitals; but
-Derbe, Lystra, and Berea where St. Paul preached,
-were little towns like Orbe, Neuchâtel, and Geneva.
-Most assuredly the Acts of the Reformation are not
-the Acts of the Apostles; there is all the difference
-between them which exists between the foundation of
-Christianity and its reformation; but notwithstanding
-the inferiority of the sixteenth century, the labours
-of the reformers have a claim upon the interest of all
-those who love to contemplate the humble origin of
-the new destinies of mankind. Is there, after the
-establishment of Christianity, anything greater than
-its Reformation? Have not those weak movements
-which began in the petty spheres in which Farel and
-Calvin lived, gone on widening from age to age?
-Are they not the origin of that new religious transformation
-which, notwithstanding the declamations
-and the triumphant cries of unbelievers, is now going
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">{239}</a></span>
-on in every nation of the earth? The source of the
-Rhone is but a thread of water which would pass
-unnoticed elsewhere; but the traveller who stands at
-the foot of the huge glaciers which separate the mountains
-of the Furka and the Grimsel, cannot look
-unmoved at that little stream, which, issuing imperceptibly
-from the earth, is to become a mighty river.
-The thought of what it is to be inspires the friend of
-nature and of history in this sublime solitude with
-emotions more profound than those excited by its
-copious and monotonous waters at Lyons, Beaucaire,
-or Avignon. It is for this reason we dwell longer
-upon the origin of the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=PREPARATIONS FOR VICTORY.=</p>
-
-<p>A general who desires to capture an important
-city, first makes sure of his position and occupies the
-surrounding country: and so Farel, desirous of winning
-Geneva to the gospel, first set about enlightening
-the neighbouring people. His operations were
-not strategic certainly; he thought only of converting
-souls; and yet his labours in the Vaudois towns
-and villages admirably prepared the way for his successes
-among the huguenots. We have already seen
-what he did at Aigle, Neuchâtel, and elsewhere;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_377" id="Ref_377" href="#Foot_377">[377]</a></span>
-we must now follow him into other parts of that picturesque
-country, enclosed between the pointed
-citadels of the Alps and the undulating lines of
-the Jura, whose waters flow—some by the lake of
-Neuchâtel, the Aar and the Rhine to the North Sea,
-others by the lake of Geneva and the Rhone to the
-Mediterranean: a symbol of the spiritual waters
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">{240}</a></span>
-which, issuing from the same hills, were soon to bear
-light and life to the peoples of the north and of the
-south.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FABRI JOINS FAREL.=</p>
-
-<p>Farel was inactive (a singular thing!) at the
-moment when we are going to see him prepare
-betimes for the conquest of Geneva. Wounded near
-Neuchâtel by a riotous crowd, he had been placed in
-a boat, and carried across the lake to Morat, as we
-have said in a former work.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_378" id="Ref_378" href="#Foot_378">[378]</a></span>
-His friends in that
-town had welcomed him with emotion, and kept
-watch around his bed. Condemned to repose, 'shivering
-with cold, spitting blood,' and scarcely able to
-speak, he was communing in silence with his God
-when he saw a young Dauphinese of good appearance,
-Christopher Fabri by name, enter his room. This
-Frenchman, of whom we have already spoken, had
-studied medicine at Montpelier, and there received
-the first rays of the gospel. Having started for Paris,
-in order to complete his studies in that city, he met
-with some friends of the truth at Lyons, who told
-him of all that was going on at Neuchâtel and its
-vicinity. Fabri was greatly moved, and being a man
-of lively, prompt, and decided character, he suddenly
-changed his route, calling, and life, and instead of
-going on to Paris turned his steps to Geneva, and
-thence to Morat.</p>
-
-<p>On arriving at that town, the student enquired
-after Farel, and on presenting himself at the house,
-was admitted into the room where the reformer was
-lying. Modestly approaching the bed, he said to
-him: 'I have forsaken everything, family, prospects,
-and country, to fight at your side, Master William.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">{241}</a></span>
-Here I am; do with me what seems good to you.'
-Farel looked at him kindly, and ere long appreciated
-the young man's lively affection and boundless devotion.
-He saw that they both had the same faith, the
-same Saviour. As he was unmarried, he looked upon
-Fabri as a son whom God had sent him,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_379" id="Ref_379" href="#Foot_379">[379]</a></span>
-and henceforward
-had frequent Christian conversations with
-him, in which he sought to train him for the ministry
-of the gospel. Farel would have liked to keep him
-always at his side; but he loved Jesus Christ more
-than the tenderest son is beloved; and accordingly,
-after a short but delightful intercourse he asked the
-converted Dauphinese to go and preach the gospel at
-Neuchâtel. Fabri, who had not expected so early a
-separation, exclaimed with tears: 'O master, my
-sorrow is greater to-day than when I left father and
-mother, so sweet have been my conversations with
-you!' He obeyed, however.</p>
-
-<p>Farel was never content with sending others to
-battle; he burned to return to it in person, and to
-lead to the heavenly King, whose servant he was, all
-the population which, enclosed between the Alps and
-the Jura, spoke the language of his country. He
-thought that if the intelligent people placed at the
-gates of France were won over to the divine Word,
-they would become a focus to cast the light of the
-gospel into that kingdom, and an asylum where the
-Christians persecuted by Francis I. might find a
-refuge.</p>
-
-<p>A town lying at the foot of the lower slopes of the
-Jura attracted his thoughts during his solitary hours
-at Morat: this was Orbe. The ancient city of Urba,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">{242}</a></span>
-built, it is said, in the same century as Rome, was
-situated on the Roman way that led from Italy to
-Gaul. Being rebuilt later some little distance off,
-the kings of the first race of France, as the people of
-Orbe boasted, had taken up their residence there, as
-if, immediately after crossing the Jura, they had exclaimed
-at the ravishing prospect of the Alps: 'It is
-enough! we will stop here.' A torrent issuing from
-the lakes that are found in the high Jurassic valleys
-plunges into the gigantic clefts of the mountain, and
-after pursuing a subterranean and mysterious career,
-reappears on the other slope, towards the plain, whence
-descending from one fall to another, it gracefully sweeps
-round the beautiful hill on which the town of Orbe is
-situated, surrounded with vineyards, gardens, and
-orchards, 'with all kinds of plants and good things.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_380" id="Ref_380" href="#Foot_380">[380]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL PREACHES AT ORBE.=</p>
-
-<p>A dealer in indulgences, attracted by this wealth,
-was just at this time noisily selling his pardons for
-every offence. Farel, still detained at Morat, hearing
-the sound of his <i>drum</i>, as Luther says, made an effort
-to walk: he left the latter town, and proceeded to
-Orbe. On the next market-day, being determined to
-resist the new Tetzel, he quitted his inn and went to
-the market-place, where he found the indulgence-seller
-offering his wares with much shouting. The
-monk, whose eye was always on the watch, soon
-noticed in the middle of the crowd a little man with
-a red beard and piercing eyes who caused him some
-uneasiness. Farel, approaching slowly, took his
-place quietly before the stall and said to the quack,
-just as an ordinary purchaser would have done, but
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">{243}</a></span>
-with concentrated anger: 'Have you indulgences for
-a person who has killed his father and mother?' Without
-waiting for an answer, and wishing to undeceive
-the superstitious crowd, he boldly stept on the basin
-of the public fountain, and began to preach as if he
-were in the pulpit. The astonished market-people
-left the monk and gathered round the new orator,
-whose sonorous voice entreated the multitude to ask
-pardon of the Saviour instead of buying indulgences
-from the monk. As the priests and the devout were
-exceedingly irritated at both preaching and preacher,
-Farel could not remain at Orbe; but a few drops of
-living water had gushed forth, and some souls had had
-their thirst quenched by them. A tradesman, Christopher
-Hollard by name, and one Mark Romain, a schoolmaster,
-were converted to the gospel at this time.</p>
-
-<p>The whole town was in commotion, and the sisters
-of St. Claire, as bigoted as those of Geneva, entreated
-their confessor to preach against heresy. Such a request
-had great weight and must be attended to, for
-these sisters were held in great consideration. Philippina
-of Chalons, Louisa of Savoy, recently canonised
-at Rome, and Yoland, grand-daughter of St. Louis,
-had assumed the veil in this convent. The struggle
-might take place more freely in Orbe than in many
-other Vaudois towns. The Sires of Chateau-Guyon,
-who possessed the lordship at the time of the war
-between Switzerland and Burgundy, having taken the
-part of Charles the Bold, had been deprived of their
-possessions by the League, and the suzerainty adjudged
-in 1476 to the cantons of Berne and Friburg.
-The municipal magistrates, chosen from the principal
-burgesses or nobles of the city, were good catholics;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">{244}</a></span>
-but the superior authority belonged to a bailiff, living
-at Echallens, and who was by turns a Friburger or a
-Bernese. Now Berne was zealous for the Reform.
-The friar-confessor, full of confidence in himself,
-smiled at the flattering request the nuns of St. Claire
-had made him, and having no mistrust of his eloquence,
-he said to the banneret, the Sire de Pierrefleur:
-'I shall <i>create</i> these Lutherans <i>anew</i> in the faith, as
-they were before.' Noble de Pierrefleur, a fervent
-catholic but a man of good sense, who knew the firmness
-of the reformers and saw Berne in the background,
-did not believe that the new <i>creation</i>, with
-which the monk flattered himself, was such an easy
-thing, and answered: 'I am far from your opinion,
-father, for such people have more obstinacy than
-knowledge, and great is the folly of those who desire
-to remonstrate with them.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_381" id="Ref_381" href="#Foot_381">[381]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FRIAR MICHAEL'S SERMON.=</p>
-
-<p>Michael Juliani (for that was the friar's name) was
-not to be stopped by this opinion, and he gave notice
-of his sermons against the Reform, which were talked
-about all over the city. The bells rang; priests, monks,
-and devotees filled the church, and even those suspected
-of Lutheranism attended. The orator was
-filled with joy at the sight of the unusual crowd,
-and his head was turned. Had not his patron saint,
-the archangel Michael, armed with a golden spear,
-trampled Satan under his feet; and should he not
-gain a similar victory? Losing all moderation, he
-began to extol in the most pompous terms Rome, the
-priesthood, and celibacy, and to attack the reformers
-with violence and abuse. Five or six Lutherans were
-noticed in the church, pen in hand, writing down
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">{245}</a></span>
-all the father said on a piece of paper which they held
-on their knees. When the sermon was over, the
-offended bailiff of Diesbach, the grand banneret and
-other notables, displeased with the presumptuous discourse,
-accosted the friar and begged him to desist
-from abusive language and to preach simply the doctrines
-of the Church. But in the eyes of certain
-devout folks, the greater Michael's abuse, the greater
-his eloquence.</p>
-
-<p>The confessor, delighted at his success, and thinking,
-as they did in many convents, that knowledge is
-a sign of the children of the devil (Farel had studied
-at the university of Paris), and ignorance that of the
-children of God, went into the pulpit again on the
-25th March, and took for his text: <i>Blessed are the
-poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom of heaven</i>.
-'Sirs,' he exclaimed, 'the poor in spirit here referred
-to are the priests and friars. They have not much
-learning, I confess, but they have what is better; they
-are mediators between man and God, worshippers of
-the Virgin Mary, who is the treasure-house of all
-graces, and friends of the saints who cure all diseases....
-What then can those want who listen to them?
-But who are the people who say they are justified by
-faith? who are they who throw down the crosses on
-our roads and in our chapels?... Enemies of Christ.
-What are those priests, monks, and nuns who renounce
-their vows in order to marry?—Unclean, impure,
-infamous, abominable apostates before men and before
-God.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_382" id="Ref_382" href="#Foot_382">[382]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The friar was continuing in this strain, when suddenly
-a loud noise was heard in the church. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">{246}</a></span>
-evangelicals present had been excited at the very
-commencement of the discourse; at first they had
-restrained themselves, and then whispered to each
-other; but when the monk began to insult those who
-thought (as the Bible says) that <i>marriage is honourable
-to all men</i>, one of them, unable to contain himself,
-stood up and before the whole assembly repeated
-twice and with sonorous voice, the words: 'You lie!'...
-The orator stopped in amazement, and everybody
-turned towards the quarter whence these words proceeded.
-They saw a man of middle age standing
-there greatly agitated. It was Christopher Hollard,
-who had been converted by Farel's first sermon, and
-who combined an honest heart with a violent character.
-His brother, John Hollard, the late dean of
-Friburg, had embraced the Reformation and married;
-Christopher, fancying the monk was reflecting on his
-brother, had hastened to protest, rather coarsely, it
-must be acknowledged, but with the frankness of an
-honest heart, which sees the commandment of God
-blasphemed.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=HOLLARD IMPRISONED.=</p>
-
-<p>This exclamation had hardly resounded through
-the church, when a great uproar, caused by the people,
-drowned the Lutheran's voice. The men who
-were present would have rushed from their places
-upon the disturber; but the women who filled the
-nave were before them. 'All with one accord fell
-upon the said Christopher, tore out his beard and
-beat him; they scratched his face with their nails and
-otherwise, so that if they had been let alone, he would
-never have gone out of the said church, which would
-have been a great benefit for poor catholics.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_383" id="Ref_383" href="#Foot_383">[383]</a></span>
-Thus
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">{247}</a></span>
-spoke the grand banneret, who had lost, as it would
-seem, a little of the moderation he had shown on
-other occasions. The castellan, Anthony Agasse, was
-not of his opinion: he wanted the culprits, if there
-were any, to be punished by the law and not by the
-populace; and rushing into the midst of this savage
-scene, he rescued Hollard from the hands of the
-furies, and threw him 'into a dungeon to avoid a
-greater scandal.'</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_370" id="Foot_370" href="#Ref_370">[370]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Matthew, x. 34.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_371" id="Foot_371" href="#Ref_371">[371]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin <i>in loco</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_372" id="Foot_372" href="#Ref_372">[372]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Bonivard, <i>Chronique de Genève</i>, passim.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_373" id="Foot_373" href="#Ref_373">[373]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-2nd Timothy, ii. 5.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_374" id="Foot_374" href="#Ref_374">[374]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Michelet, <i>Hist. de France au seizième siècle</i>.—<i>La
-Réforme</i>, pp. 483, 484, 518.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_375" id="Foot_375" href="#Ref_375">[375]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ancillon, <i>Vie de Farel</i>, ch. xi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_376" id="Foot_376" href="#Ref_376">[376]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Revelation, vi. 2.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_377" id="Foot_377" href="#Ref_377">[377]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Hist. of the Reformation of the sixteenth century</i>, vol. iv.
-bk. xv. ch. iv, vii, viii, and ix.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_378" id="Foot_378" href="#Ref_378">[378]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Hist. of the Reformation</i>, vol. iv. bk. xv. ch. ix.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_379" id="Foot_379" href="#Ref_379">[379]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_380" id="Foot_380" href="#Ref_380">[380]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See the manuscript <i>Mémoires du Sire de Pierrefleur, grand
-banneret d'Orbe</i>, p. 2, published by M. Verdeil in 1856.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_381" id="Foot_381" href="#Ref_381">[381]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mémoires du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 13.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_382" id="Foot_382" href="#Ref_382">[382]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, pp. 24-28.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_383" id="Foot_383" href="#Ref_383">[383]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">{248}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER II.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">PLOT OF THE WOMEN AGAINST REFORM;
- FAREL'S PREACHING.<br />
- (1531.)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">The Reformation brought great benefits to women.
-The divine Word which it placed in their hands,
-and which it desired to see in their hearts, would free
-them from the dominion of the priest to put them
-under that of the Saviour; give them that meek and
-peaceful spirit which (as Calvin says) becomes their
-sex; and substitute for a religion of external practices
-an inner, holy, and useful life. However, the women,
-attached to their priests and ceremonies, and who are
-easily aroused, were often opposed to the Reform, of
-which we shall have instances.</p>
-
-<p>Hollard's mother was not of this number. Strongly
-attached to her son, she gave way to her maternal
-sorrow. Her son a prisoner, her son without a
-protector, her son exposed to the vengeance of the
-exasperated Roman-catholics—thoughts like these
-caused her the deepest anxiety. She could think of
-nothing but saving him, ready to incur any danger,
-and to brave even the anger of the enemies of the
-gospel. The bailiff of Berne, she said to herself, alone
-can save Hollard. He lives at Echallens, in a castle,
-surrounded with his officers; he is a haughty Bernese,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">{249}</a></span>
-a cold diplomatist perhaps.... It matters not; the
-poor woman will go and implore his help. Romain
-will not abandon her; if there are any difficulties,
-any dangers, he will be near her; he will protect the
-mother and deliver the son. Madame Hollard and the
-schoolmaster set off together for Echallens, and presenting
-themselves at the castle, inform the bailiff of
-Diesbach of the monk's insulting address and its
-consequences.... O happiness! the Bernese magistrate
-is moved, grows angry, and departs immediately.
-The lord-bailiff felt that the friar's insults
-were the cause of all the disorder; that by denouncing
-the married priests and monks as apostates and villains,
-he had attacked the gospel and the Reformation,
-recognised by My Lords of Berne; and that the friar
-was the person to be blamed.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FRIAR MICHAEL ARRESTED.=</p>
-
-<p>Arriving the same day about four o'clock, Diesbach
-would not go to the guildhall or the castellan's; but
-sitting down in the open air near the old castle,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_384" id="Ref_384" href="#Foot_384">[384]</a></span>
-he sent his officers to fetch Friar Juliani. The sergeants
-carefully searched the convent and several houses
-without finding the monk, who was hiding in the
-house of a woman named 'Frances Pugin, instructress
-of girls in all virtue and learning.' Being informed
-of the search, he took courage, left the house, and
-went straight to the bailiff, who was still seated in
-front of the castle, waiting the result of his enquiries.
-Friar Michael saluted him respectfully; but the lord
-of Diesbach, rising up, caught him by the hand and
-said: 'I arrest you in the name of My Lords,' and
-then, taking him to the prison, 'drew Hollard out
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">{250}</a></span>
-of his hole and put the said friar in his place.' Such
-were the energetic proceedings of Berne.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=ROMAIN IS ILL-TREATED.=</p>
-
-<p>Mark Romain, as pleased at having rescued his
-friend, 'as if he had gained a thousand crowns, and
-thinking he had achieved a master-piece,' says a
-contemporary, was going quietly home. Meanwhile
-the people, alarmed at the arrival of the bailiff and the
-imprisonment of the monk, had assembled in the
-market-place, and spoke of flinging the schoolmaster
-into the river to punish him for having gone to fetch
-the Sieur de Diesbach. Unfortunately Mark Romain
-came in sight just at this moment. The townspeople,
-'seeing him come joyfully along,' pointed him out to
-one another. 'There he is,' they said, and began to
-cry: 'Master, come here!' Romain, observing the
-tumult, passed suddenly from joy to fear and took to
-flight, all following in pursuit. They gained upon him:
-he looked from side to side to see if some door would
-not open to receive him, but all remained closed. Arriving
-in front of the church, he rushed into it; but
-had hardly set his feet inside, when he stopped in astonishment.
-The women who had desired to tear Hollard
-to pieces were in the church, as well as some men,
-on account of the <i>Salve Regina</i> which was said daily at
-five in the afternoon. Kneeling before the altar, with
-clasped hands and eyes turned to the ground, they
-were invoking the <i>Queen of heaven</i>: 'Hail, queen of
-mercy; we send up our groans to thee! O thou who
-art our advocate, save us!' At the moment when
-Romain entered, the women turned their heads and
-caught sight of him; being suddenly changed into
-furies, they rushed upon him, as they had done before
-upon Hollard, 'caught him by the hair, threw him on
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">{251}</a></span>
-the ground, and beat him.' The women were the
-champions of Catholicism in Orbe. The grand banneret
-looked on quietly at this execution. 'I saw
-the whole affair,' he said, 'and I did not think the
-schoolmaster would ever get out alive.' Pierrefleur
-took care not to go to his help, and the blows
-continued to fall on poor Romain, until one of his
-friends arrived. 'I am certain,' says the banneret,
-who had seen all this without being moved, 'that had
-it not been for the assistance he received from this
-Lutheran, he would never have gone out of the place
-until he was dead.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_385" id="Ref_385" href="#Foot_385">[385]</a></span>
-We read in Scripture of people
-who ceased not to beat St. Paul; Romain, who
-experienced 'this riotous and cruel rage,' was afterwards
-a minister of the gospel. He was now going
-through his apprenticeship.</p>
-
-<p>A mob had collected round the castle in which Friar
-Michael was confined, and angry voices were heard
-loudly demanding his liberty. At this moment the
-bailiff of Diesbach came out to return to his place of
-residence, having Hollard by his side, whom he was
-going to restore to his mother. When he saw the crowd
-he was much astonished, for 'all were crying out and
-demanding their good father.' 'Why have you arrested
-Friar Michael?' asked some. 'Why have you
-delivered Christopher?' asked others. 'By order of
-My Lords of Berne,' answered the imperturbable
-bailiff; and then added, pointing to the lofty walls of
-the castle, 'If you can set him at liberty, you may
-take him ... but I advise you not.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_386" id="Ref_386" href="#Foot_386">[386]</a></span>
-'We will be bail for our good father, body for body, goods for
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">{252}</a></span>
-goods,' exclaimed the burgesses; but the bailiff kept
-on his way without answering them.</p>
-
-<p>The Sieur of Diesbach had hardly arrived at the
-great square, when he perceived the ladies and other
-women of the city waiting for him, their hearts full
-of sorrow and anguish. They all fell on their knees
-'with many tears,' and stretching their hands towards
-him exclaimed: 'Mercy for the good father! set him
-at liberty!' These cries softened the Bernese, he
-stopped and could hardly speak for emotion. He
-made them understand, however, that it was not in
-his power to liberate Juliani, and then returned home,
-for 'the hour was late.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_387" id="Ref_387" href="#Foot_387">[387]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL ARRIVES AT ORBE.=</p>
-
-<p>The principal catholics now assembled to consider
-what was to be done. A priest put in prison in Orbe,
-for a strictly Romish sermon.... What a scandal!
-They resolved to appeal from the heretical Bernese
-bailiff to the Friburgers who were good catholics.
-The grand banneret volunteered for this important
-mission, and next day Noble P. de Pierrefleur and
-Francis Vuerney set out for Friburg, where they related
-everything to the council. The lords and princes
-of that city were much 'concerned and vexed,' and
-a deputation composed of Bernese and Friburgers
-received instructions to arrange the difference. But
-this measure, far from diminishing the struggle, was
-destined to increase it. As the deputation passed
-through Avenches, a Roman city older than the
-Cæsars, they fell in with Farel, who for more than
-a month had been preaching the gospel there, amid
-its ruined aqueducts and amphitheatres, and had met
-with nothing but lukewarmness. Without hesitation
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">{253}</a></span>
-the evangelist left Avenches, and departing with the
-Bernese arrived at the banks of the Orbe, whither
-the noise of battle attracted him. No ruins were to
-be seen there: but seven churches and twenty-six
-altars testified to the ancient splendour and Romish
-fervour of the city.</p>
-
-<p>It was the 2nd of April, Palm-Sunday. Mass had
-been celebrated, the various offices had been said, even
-to vespers. Farel, who had stayed quietly in doors,
-observing that the service was over, left his inn 'with
-presumptuous boldness.' His friends followed him,
-idlers flocked round him, the devout ran after, and a
-crowd of men, women, and children soon filled the
-church with a great noise. Then 'without asking
-leave of any one, Farel went into the pulpit to preach.'
-But he had scarcely opened his mouth, when everybody,
-'men, women, and children, hissed, howled, and
-stamped with all sorts of exclamations to disconcert
-him. Dog, they cried; lubber, heretic, devil, and
-other insults: it was a glorious noise.' 'You really
-could not have heard God's thunder,' said Pierrefleur.
-Farel, who was accustomed to tumult, as a soldier to
-the whistling of the bullets, continued his address.
-Anger got the better of some of them. 'Seeing that
-he would not desist, they grew riotous, surrounded the
-pulpit, pulled him out of it, and would even have proceeded
-to blows.' The confusion was at its height,
-when the bailiff, 'fearing that worse would follow,'
-rushed into the midst of the crowd, took the reformer
-by the arm, and escorted him to his lodging.</p>
-
-<p>The mixed commission was empowered to restore
-peace to this agitated city; but as for Farel he had
-but one idea: <i>Woe to me if I do not preach the gospel</i>.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">{254}</a></span>
-If he cannot preach it in the church, he will do so in
-the open air. On the following day (Monday) he left
-the house of his entertainer at six in the morning,
-and proceeding towards the great square, began to
-preach. There was nobody present; it mattered
-not; he thought that his powerful voice would soon
-collect a good assembly. But satisfied with the
-victory of the evening before, the inhabitants of Orbe
-had said to themselves that they would leave the
-preacher alone: he had not a single hearer.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_388" id="Ref_388" href="#Foot_388">[388]</a></span>
-That was not, however, the only reason: a plot was concerting
-against Farel—a women's plot naturally; for the
-men in general were cold in comparison with the
-other sex.</p>
-
-<p>There was a noble dame at Orbe, a native of
-Friburg, Elizabeth, wife of Hugonin, lord of Arnex,
-an honest and devout woman, but enthusiastic, violent,
-and fanatical. Elizabeth, being persuaded that
-the death of the reformer would be a very meritorious
-work, had assembled at her house some other bigoted
-women, had addressed them, and worked upon them,
-so that they had agreed to beat the reformer and even
-kill him: they only waited for an opportunity. The
-same day at four in the afternoon a city council was
-held at which the deputies of Berne and Friburg and
-even Farel also were present. When the council was
-over, the reformer came out: it was the moment
-that Elizabeth and her accomplices, informed of the
-circumstance, had selected to carry out their plot.
-A gentleman, Pierre de Glairesse, knowing the danger
-the evangelist ran, quitted the council after him, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">{255}</a></span>
-begged permission to accompany him. Meanwhile
-the women who had left their houses were waiting
-for Farel in the middle of a street through which he
-must necessarily pass. Approaching them without
-any mistrust, they fell upon him unawares, 'and took
-him by the cloak <i>so gently</i>,' says the chronicler ironically,
-'that they made him stagger and fall.' They
-then attempted to ill-treat him and beat him; but
-Pierre de Glairesse rushing in between them, took
-him out of their hands, and said, bowing to them very
-politely: 'Your pardon, ladies; at present he is under
-my charge.' They all let go of him, and Glairesse
-conducted him to the inn where My Lords of Berne
-awaited him.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FRIAR MICHAEL EXAMINED.=</p>
-
-<p>While Elizabeth was trying to kill the reformer,
-her husband, William of Arnex, as bigoted as herself,
-was pleading the cause of the monk. The mediators
-had ordered that Friar Michael should be
-put on his trial. He was taken to the castle in agitation
-and alarm, and the lords of Berne, bringing a
-criminal charge against him, said: 'You asserted that
-the poor in spirit are the monks.'</p>
-
-<p><i>Friar Michael</i>: 'I deny it.'</p>
-
-<p>'You said that to resist the pope, the bishops, and
-other ecclesiastics is resisting the commandment of
-God.'</p>
-
-<p><i>Friar.</i> 'I deny saying it in those terms.'</p>
-
-<p>'You said that few follow the new law, except a
-heap of lascivious monks.'</p>
-
-<p><i>Friar.</i> 'I deny having said it in that way, and I
-named nobody.'</p>
-
-<p>'You said that when priests marry, the women
-they take are not their wives but their harlots, and
-that their children are bastards.'</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">{256}</a></div>
-
-<p><i>Friar.</i> 'I confess it.'</p>
-
-<p>'You said that Mary was the treasure-house of
-graces.'</p>
-
-<p><i>Friar.</i> 'I did.'</p>
-
-<p>'You said the saints, like St. Anthony, expel and
-cure certain diseases.'</p>
-
-<p><i>Friar.</i> 'I did.'</p>
-
-<p>'You said that those who deny that the books of
-the Maccabees form part of Holy Scripture, are
-heretics.'</p>
-
-<p><i>Friar.</i> 'I did.'</p>
-
-<p>'You said that those who have adopted the new
-law have no good in them, and deny the articles of
-faith.'</p>
-
-<p><i>Friar.</i> 'I did not.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_389" id="Ref_389" href="#Foot_389">[389]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This mixture of denials and confessions disarmed
-the judges. They listened to the solicitations of
-D'Arnex and set Juliani at liberty. The Bernese,
-however, bound him to preach in future nothing but
-the Word of God. 'Most honoured lords,' exclaimed
-the poor friar, 'I have never preached anything that
-is not found in the holy gospel, in the epistles of St.
-Paul, or in some other part of Holy Scripture.'
-Friar Michael, confounded at not gaining a triumph
-as striking as that of his patron with the brilliant
-helmet, and fearing lest he should be sent back to
-prison, thought only of saving himself. He entered
-the convent for a short time, and then fled into Burgundy,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_390" id="Ref_390" href="#Foot_390">[390]</a></span>
-The deputies returned home and Farel remained.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after Easter there came a mandate from
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">{257}</a></span>
-Berne ordering that whenever Farel desired to preach,
-he should be given a hearing, support, and favour.
-As soon as the mandate had been read, the people,
-without waiting for the opinion of the Council,
-exclaimed, 'Let him go about his business, we do
-not want him or his preaching.' The lords of Berne
-answered that Farel was to be free to speak, but
-that no inhabitant was constrained to hear him.
-The evangelist gave notice that he would preach on
-the Saturday after Quasimodo, at one o'clock, when
-he would expose Juliani's errors.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL'S STRANGE CONGREGATION.=</p>
-
-<p>The catholics, not content with the permission
-given them to keep away, determined to organise a
-reception for Farel that should disgust him for ever
-with preaching. As soon as the minister entered the
-church the strangest of congregations met his eyes:
-all the brats (<i>marmaille</i>) of the place were assembled;
-lying in front of the pulpit and all round it, the
-children pretended to be asleep, snoring and laughing
-in their sleeves. Farel observing three persons who
-appeared to be serious, went into the pulpit and
-said, pointing to the little ragamuffins: 'How many
-weapons Satan has provided to hinder our cause!
-Never mind, we must surmount every obstacle.'
-Being determined to refute Friar Michael, he began
-his discourse; but on a sudden the children started
-to their feet, as sharp-shooters lying flat behind the
-bushes start up at the approach of the enemy, and
-salute him with their fire. The young scamps
-exerted their lungs, howling and shouting with all
-their might, and at last quitted the church with a
-horrible uproar. 'Nobody was left but the minister,
-quite amazed. And this was the first sermon preached
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">{258}</a></span>
-in the town of Orbe,' says the grand banneret maliciously.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_391" id="Ref_391" href="#Foot_391">[391]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The next day, Sunday, there was a great procession.
-Priests, monks, and all the parish, chanting as
-loud as they could, proceeded according to custom to
-St. George's, outside the town. Farel profited by the
-departure of the enemy to seize upon the place, and
-the last parishioner had hardly crossed the threshold
-of the church, when he entered it, followed by his
-friends, went up into the pulpit, and loudly declared
-the truth. Ten evangelicals, Viret, Hollard, Secretan,
-Romain, and six of their friends, composed the whole
-of his congregation. Meanwhile the procession was
-on its way back. First appeared the children two and
-two, then the exorcist with the holy water and the
-sprinkler, then came the priests, magistrates, and
-people, all singing the litany. The children, seeing
-the minister in the pulpit, and remembering the lesson
-they had received, rushed into the church, whistling,
-howling, and shouting as on the evening before. The
-priests and people who followed them made threatening
-motions, and Farel, understanding that the storm
-was about to burst, showed a moderation he did not
-always possess, came down from the pulpit and went out.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_392" id="Ref_392" href="#Foot_392">[392]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The clergy exulted: they ascribed Farel's retreat
-to weakness and fear, and said openly in the city:
-'The minister cannot refute the articles of faith established
-by Juliani.' 'Indeed,' answered the Bernese
-bailiff, 'you have heard the monk and you now
-complain that you have not heard the minister....
-Very good! you shall hear him. It is the will of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">{259}</a></span>
-the lords of Berne that every father of a family be
-required to attend his sermon under pain of their
-displeasure.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL ON PENANCE.=</p>
-
-<p>They dared not disobey, and the church was
-thronged. Filled with joy at the sight of such a congregation,
-Farel ascended the pulpit: never had he
-been clearer, more energetic and more eloquent. He
-passed in review all the subjects of which Juliani had
-treated; at one time attacking the pardons which the
-Romish Church sells to credulous souls, at another the
-doctrine which assigns the keys of heaven to St. Peter.
-'The key of the kingdom of heaven,' he said, 'is the
-Word of God—the Holy Gospel.' One day Farel
-spoke of the stupid practices imposed upon catholics
-under the name of penance. 'The penance which
-God demands,' he said, 'is a change of heart, life,
-and conversation.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_393" id="Ref_393" href="#Foot_393">[393]</a></span>
-Another day he battled with
-indulgences: 'The pope's pardons take away <i>money</i>,'
-he said, 'but they do not take away <i>sin</i>. Let every
-christian be aware that nobody can escape the anger
-of God, except through Jesus.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_394" id="Ref_394" href="#Foot_394">[394]</a></span>
-He thundered against auricular confession: 'Confession in the
-priest's ears which the pope commands,' he said,
-'helps him to learn the secrets of kings and aids him
-in catching countries and kingdoms. But how many
-souls have been cast into hell by it! how many virgins
-corrupted! how many widows devoured! how many
-orphans ruined! how many princes poisoned! how
-many countries wasted! how many large establishments
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">{260}</a></span>
-of men and women given up to debauchery.... O
-Heaven, unveil these accursed horrors! O Earth, cry
-out! Creatures of God, weep; and do thou, O Lord,
-arise!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_395" id="Ref_395" href="#Foot_395">[395]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Farel, without possessing the iconoclastic ardour
-which Hollard displayed ere long, was indignant at
-the worship paid to the images of the saints, and
-strove against them with the arms of the Word.
-'The people,' he said, 'set candles before the saints
-who are out of this world and have nothing to do with
-them.... While if those saints were alive and had
-need of a light to read the Gospel by, instead of giving
-them candles, you would tear out their eyes!' ...
-Then scandalised at the disorderly living of the world
-and the Church, the christian orator exclaimed:
-'Farces full of scoffing, filth, and ribaldry: obscene
-and idle songs, books full of vanity, lewdness, falsehood
-and blasphemy, wicked and illicit conversations
-... all this is suffered openly.... But the
-New Testament which contains the doctrine and
-passion of Christ is forbidden, as if it were the Koran
-of Mahomet, or a book of witchcraft and enchantment....
-O Sun, canst thou pour thy light on such countries?
-O Earth, canst thou give thy fruits to such
-people? And thou, O Lord God, is thy vengeance so
-slow against such a great outrage? Arise, O Lord,
-and let the trumpet of thy holy Gospel be heard unto
-the ends of the earth.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_396" id="Ref_396" href="#Foot_396">[396]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Although the catholics were indignant, and not
-without reason, at the order from Berne, which
-obliged them to attend the sermons opposed to their
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">{261}</a></span>
-faith, the reformer preached without difficulty the
-first and second day; but on the third, the alarmed
-priests harangued their flocks and thundered from
-their pulpits against the heretical discourses; and
-from that time Farel counted few hearers in the
-church besides the friends of the Gospel. The bailiff
-had the good sense not to observe this disobedience.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL'S CARE FOR THE MINISTRY.=</p>
-
-<p>The surrounding districts compensated Farel for
-the contempt of Orbe. His reputation having spread
-into the neighbouring villages, the people eagerly desired
-to hear him. Receiving message after message,
-and touched at the sight of these worthy peasants
-knocking at his door, he wrote to Zwingle: 'Oh! how
-great is the harvest! No one can describe the ardour
-the people feel for the Gospel, and the tears I shed when
-I see the small number of reapers.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_397" id="Ref_397" href="#Foot_397">[397]</a></span>
-Several of the evangelicals of Orbe asked to be sent out to preach,
-but Farel, thinking them not ripe enough, refused.
-There were some who took offence at this, but it did
-not move Farel. 'It is better to offend them,' he said,
-'than to offend God.'</p>
-
-<p>Saint Paul said: <i>Lay hands suddenly on no man</i>.
-Farel and the other reformers desired that the minister
-should honour his ministry. He required above
-all things a converted heart, but that was not enough.
-It is a bad sign when the Church admits into the
-number of those who are to point out the gate of
-salvation, either men who have not passed through it
-or who have not the gift of the Word, or are deficient
-in wisdom. But if the leaders of the Church are
-faithful, God will send them true ministers.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_384" id="Foot_384" href="#Ref_384">[384]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 17.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_385" id="Foot_385" href="#Ref_385">[385]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 19.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_386" id="Foot_386" href="#Ref_386">[386]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 20.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_387" id="Foot_387" href="#Ref_387">[387]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 19.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_388" id="Foot_388" href="#Ref_388">[388]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, pp. 21, 22.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_389" id="Foot_389" href="#Ref_389">[389]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Negat dixisse.'—<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, pp. 24-28.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_390" id="Foot_390" href="#Ref_390">[390]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, pp. 21-32.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_391" id="Foot_391" href="#Ref_391">[391]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 35.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_392" id="Foot_392" href="#Ref_392">[392]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_393" id="Foot_393" href="#Ref_393">[393]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Sommaire</i>, &amp;c., par G. Farel, p. 191. We give Farel's exact
-expressions on the subjects handled by Juliani, just as they are found
-in his writings, without being able to say that they were precisely
-those he employed on this occasion.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_394" id="Foot_394" href="#Ref_394">[394]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 125.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_395" id="Foot_395" href="#Ref_395">[395]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Farel, <i>Sommaire</i>, pp. 96, 191, 210.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_396" id="Foot_396" href="#Ref_396">[396]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 154.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_397" id="Foot_397" href="#Ref_397">[397]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quanta sit messis, quis populi ardor in Evangelium, paucis nemo
-expresserit. Sed paucitatem operariorum deflere cogimur.'—<i>Farellus
-Zuinglio</i>, Orba, anno 1531. <i>Ep.</i> ii. p. 648.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">{262}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER III.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">A NEW REFORMER AND AN IMAGE-BREAKER.<br />
- (1531.)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IN 1511 William Viret, a burgess of Orbe, 'cloth-dresser
-and tailor,' had a son born to him whom he
-named Peter. The boy had grown up in the midst of
-the wool-combers, and had watched his father's workmen
-as they pressed, or glossed, or fulled the cloths
-as they came from the hands of the weavers. But he
-took no delight in this, for he was not born a tradesman.
-It was the inner man that was to be developed in him:
-he felt within himself a necessity for seeking God,
-which impelled him towards heaven. He sought the
-society of the best-informed burgesses, and even had
-some relations with the nobles;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_398" id="Ref_398" href="#Foot_398">[398]</a></span>
-but the first object
-of his wishes was God. If he took a walk alone, or
-with one of his brothers Anthony and John, along the
-picturesque banks of the Orbe, through the charming
-country bathed by its waters, and even to the foot of the Jura,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_399" id="Ref_399" href="#Foot_399">[399]</a></span>
-he looked around him with delight, but
-afterwards lifted his eyes to heaven. 'I was naturally
-given to religion,' he said, 'of which however I was
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">{263}</a></span>
-then ignorant.... I was preparing myself for heaven,
-seeing that it was the way of salvation.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_400" id="Ref_400" href="#Foot_400">[400]</a></span>
-He resolved to devote himself to the service of the altar,
-which his father did not oppose, townspeople and
-peasantry alike regarding it as an honour to count a
-priest among their children. Peter, who had a good
-understanding and memory, soon learnt all that was
-taught in the school at Orbe, and turned his eyes
-towards the University of Paris, that great light which
-twelve years before had attracted Farel's footsteps.
-His father, whose trade had placed him in easy circumstances,
-consented to send him to Paris, whither the
-boy proceeded in 1523, being then a little over twelve
-years of age. The same year and about the same time
-John Calvin of Noyon, who was two years older
-than Viret, arrived in the same city and entered the
-college of La Marche. Did these two boys, who were
-one day to be so closely united, meet then, and did
-their friendship begin with their childhood? We
-have not been able to satisfy ourselves on the point.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=VIRET GOES TO PARIS.=</p>
-
-<p>Viret distinguished himself at college by his love
-of study; 'he made good progress in learning;' and
-also by his devotion to the practices of the Roman
-Church. 'I cannot deny,' he said, 'that I went
-pretty deep into that Babylon.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_401" id="Ref_401" href="#Foot_401">[401]</a></span>
-In one of the
-last visits he made to Paris, Farel seems to have
-remarked Viret, whose charming modesty easily won
-the heart, and to have helped in freeing the young
-Swiss from the darkness in which he still lay. The
-Gospel penetrated the soul of the youthful scholar of
-Orbe almost at the same time as it enlightened the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">{264}</a></span>
-large understanding of the scholar of Noyon. The
-mildness of his character softened the struggles which
-had been so fierce in Farel and Calvin. And yet he
-too had to tread the path of anguish to arrive at peace.
-Perceiving a frightful abyss and an eternal night
-beneath his feet, he threw himself into the arms of the
-Deliverer who was calling him: 'While still at college,'
-he said, 'God took me out of the labyrinth of error
-before I had sunk deeper into that Babylon of Antichrist.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_402" id="Ref_402" href="#Foot_402">[402]</a></span>
-The time having arrived when he should
-receive the tonsure, he felt that he must make up his
-mind: the struggle was not a long one; he refused,
-and was immediately 'set down as belonging to the
-Lutheran religion.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_403" id="Ref_403" href="#Foot_403">[403]</a></span>
-Foreseeing what awaited him,
-he hastily quitted Paris and France, and 'returned to
-his father's house.' In after years he exclaimed: 'I
-thank God that the mark and sign of the beast were
-not set upon my forehead.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_404" id="Ref_404" href="#Foot_404">[404]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=VIRET'S STRUGGLES.=</p>
-
-<p>Viret found Orbe greatly changed; the contest then
-going on between the gospel and popery intimidated
-him at first. His was one of those reflective souls
-which, absorbed by the struggles within, naturally
-shrink from those without. Like other reformers, he
-had a difficulty in quitting the body of catholicity,
-but a severe conscience obliged him to seek truth at
-any sacrifice. Sometimes the Church of Rome, with
-all its errors and abuses, alone struck his imagination,
-and he would exclaim with emotion: 'It is the stronghold
-of superstition, the fortress of Satan.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_405" id="Ref_405" href="#Foot_405">[405]</a></span>
-Then all
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">{265}</a></span>
-of a sudden and before he had time to defend himself,
-the old system of catholicism resumed its power over
-him, and he found himself in anguish and darkness.
-He struggled and prayed: the truth, for a moment
-hidden, reappeared before his eyes, and he said: 'Rome
-asserts that antiquity is truth; but what is there older
-in the world than lies, rebellion, murder, extortion,
-impurity, idolatry, and all kinds of wickedness and
-abomination?... To follow the doctrine of Cain and
-of Sodom is verily to follow an old doctrine.... But
-virtue, truth, holiness, innocence, and thou, O God
-which art the Father of them all, are older still!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_406" id="Ref_406" href="#Foot_406">[406]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The priests of Orbe, who were strongly attached to
-the Romish doctrine, seeing the cloth-dresser's son
-often solitary and full of care, began to grow uneasy
-about him: they accosted him and spoke of the old
-doctors, of the testimony of the saints, of Augustin,
-Cyprian, Chrysostom, and Jerome. These testimonies
-had much weight in Viret's mind. His head was bewildered,
-his feet slipped, and he was on the point of
-falling back into the gulf, when snatching again at the
-word of God, he clung to it, saying: 'No, I will not
-believe because of Tertullian or Cyprian, or Origen,
-or Chrysostom, or Peter Lombard, or Thomas Aquinas,
-not even because of Erasmus or Luther.... If I did
-so, I should be the disciple of men.... I will believe
-only Jesus Christ my Shepherd.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_407" id="Ref_407" href="#Foot_407">[407]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At length the divine Word delivered Viret from the
-theocratic dominion of Rome, and he then began to
-look around him.... Alas! what did he see? Chains
-everywhere, prisoners held fast 'in the citadel of idolatry.'
-He felt the tenderest affection for the captives
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">{266}</a></span>
-'Since the Lord has brought me <i>out</i>' he said, 'I cannot
-forget those who are <i>within</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_408" id="Ref_408" href="#Foot_408">[408]</a></span>
-Two of these prisoners
-were never out of his thoughts: they were his father
-and mother. At one time absorbed by the cares of
-business, at another mechanically attending divine
-service, they did not seek after the one thing needful.
-The pious son began to pray earnestly for his parents,
-to show them increased respect, to read them a few
-passages of Holy Scripture, and to speak gently to
-them of the Saviour. They felt attracted by his
-conduct, and the faith he professed took hold of their
-hearts. The grateful Viret was able to say: 'I have
-much occasion to give thanks to God in that it hath
-pleased him to make use of me to bring my father
-and mother to the knowledge of the Son of God....
-Ah! if he had made my ministry of no other use, I
-should have had good cause to bless him.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_409" id="Ref_409" href="#Foot_409">[409]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>As soon as Viret met Farel again at Orbe, he
-immediately became one of the evangelist's hearers,
-and ere long took his father along with him. The most
-intimate union sprung up between these men of God.
-One completed the other. If Farel was ardent, intrepid,
-and almost rash, Viret 'had a wondrously meek temper.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_410" id="Ref_410" href="#Foot_410">[410]</a></span>
-There was in him a grace that won the heart,
-and a christian sensibility that was really touching; and
-yet, like Farel and Calvin, he was firm in doctrine and
-morals. Farel, always eager to send workmen into the
-harvest, persuaded his friend to preach not only in the
-country but in Orbe itself. The young and timid Viret
-recoiled from the task Farel proposed to him; but the
-reformer pressed him, as others had pressed Luther
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">{267}</a></span>
-and Calvin; he believed that Viret, who belonged to
-the city, and was loved by everybody, would receive a
-favourable welcome. The thought of the divine grace,
-the strength of which he knew, decided Viret. 'Let
-it not be my mouth which persuades,' he said, 'but
-the mouth of Jesus Christ; for it is Jesus Christ who
-pierces the heart with the fiery arrow of his Spirit.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_411" id="Ref_411" href="#Foot_411">[411]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=VIRET PREACHES AT ORBE.=</p>
-
-<p>On the 6th May 1531 an unusual crowd, not only
-of townspeople but of persons from the neighbourhood,
-filled the church of Orbe; the son of one of the most
-respected of the burgesses, a child of the place, was
-to enter the pulpit. He was accused of being rather
-heretical, but he was so inoffensive, that nobody would
-believe it; and besides, many of the young folks of
-Orbe, who had sported with him on the banks of the
-river, wished to see their old playfellow in the pulpit.
-The congregation, who were waiting impatiently, saw
-the young man appear at last: he was of small stature
-and pale complexion, his face thin and long, his eyes
-lively, and the whole expression meek and winning;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_412" id="Ref_412" href="#Foot_412">[412]</a></span>
-he was only twenty years old, but appeared to be
-younger still. He preached: his sermon was accompanied
-by so much unction and learning, his language
-was so persuasive, his eloquence so searching and penetrating,
-that even the most worldly men were attracted
-by his discourse and hung, as it were, upon his lips.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_413" id="Ref_413" href="#Foot_413">[413]</a></span>
-The proverb 'No man is a prophet in his own country'
-was not exemplified in Viret's case. The 6th of May
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">{268}</a></span>
-was a great day for him. All his life through he preserved
-the recollection of his first sermons. Thirty
-years later he said to the nobles and burgesses of
-Orbe: 'Your church was the first in which God was
-pleased to make use of my ministry, when it was still
-in its youth, and I was very young.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_414" id="Ref_414" href="#Foot_414">[414]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>From that day Viret took his place in that noble
-army of heralds of the Word which the Lord was
-raising among the nations. His part in it was modest
-but well marked. The college of reformers, as well as
-the college of the apostles, contained the most different
-characters. As the sap is everywhere the same in nature,
-the Spirit of God is everywhere the same in the
-Church; but everywhere alike each of them produces
-different flowers and different fruits. The ardent
-Farel was the St. Peter of the Swiss Reform, the
-mighty Calvin the St. Paul, and the gentle Viret
-the St. John.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CONVERSION OF ELIZABETH D'ARNEX.=</p>
-
-<p>Farel, Viret, Romain, Hollard, and the other evangelicals
-waited for the effects of the preaching at Orbe.
-They saw clearly 'some slight touches and pricks, but
-few persons had been wounded and pierced to the
-quick,' and so overwhelmed with the feeling of everlasting
-death, that they thought of looking for help
-solely to the grace of Jesus Christ. All of a sudden,
-and a month only after Farel's arrival, the report of an
-unexpected conversion filled Orbe with astonishment,
-and became the subject of general conversation. It
-was said—and he who repeated it could hardly believe
-it—that Madame Elizabeth, the wife of the lord of
-Arnex, the very same who had planned the women's
-conspiracy and so severely beaten Farel, was entirely
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">{269}</a></span>
-changed; that even her husband, who had become bail
-for Juliani, and had set him at liberty, had changed
-likewise. The bigots of both sexes could not deny the
-fact. 'Really,' they said, 'she has become one of the
-worst lutherans in the city.' Not long after, they
-made a great noise because at All Saints or some
-feast of Our Lady, Elizabeth had a large wash or
-other manual labours at her house.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_415" id="Ref_415" href="#Foot_415">[415]</a></span>
-They shook their heads, shrugged their shoulders, and smiled.
-The evangelicals did not imitate them: they thought,
-to borrow the language of one of their leaders, that
-though these iron-hearted people smiled, it was a
-forced smile,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_416" id="Ref_416" href="#Foot_416">[416]</a></span>
-for they felt as if inwardly choking....
-They knew that God's word is a hammer, and that
-there is nothing so hard, so massive, or so hidden in
-the heart of man that its power cannot reach....
-Had not Paul been a persecutor like Elizabeth and
-Hugonin?</p>
-
-<p>Worse still, at least in the opinion of the catholics,
-happened ere long. One of the ecclesiastics of the
-place was George Grivay, surnamed Calley, an excellent
-musician who had been appointed precentor.
-He had been trained by a fervent catholic mother,
-and had received a good education in the church.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_417" id="Ref_417" href="#Foot_417">[417]</a></span>
-In order to receive further instruction his parents had
-sent him to Lausanne, where he had been made
-chorister and had particularly improved in the knowledge
-of music. On his return to Orbe the nobles and
-priests had given him a flattering reception; and he
-deserved it, for he enchanted the people by his singing
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">{270}</a></span>
-or electrified them by his discourses. But on the
-10th May 1531, the same month in which Viret
-delivered his first sermon, Grivat had gone up into
-the pulpit and astonished his hearers by preaching the
-evangelical doctrine in the clearest manner. This
-was too much; his father and his brothers were in
-despair; nobles and friends who had received him so
-well exclaimed in great irritation: 'Have we not
-given him good wages; has not the Church fed and
-taught him? and now he wants to imitate the cuckoo
-that eats the mother who reared it.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_418" id="Ref_418" href="#Foot_418">[418]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=LORD'S SUPPER AT ORBE.=</p>
-
-<p>As these successive conversions gave the evangelicals
-more courage, they took an important step.
-Feeling the necessity of being strengthened in the
-faith by the celebration of the Lord's Supper, they
-asked for it, and Farel, who was then at Morat,
-immediately returned to Orbe. On Whitsunday
-(28th May) at six in the morning—an hour selected
-to insure tranquillity for the act they were about to
-perform—he announced to a numerous assembly collected
-in the church the remission of all sins by the
-breaking of Christ's body on the cross; and as soon as
-the sermon was ended, eight disciples came forward
-to break bread. They were Hugonin of Arnex and
-his wife, C. Hollard and his aged mother, Cordey
-and his wife, William Viret, Peter's father, and
-George Grivat, afterwards pastor at Avenches; many
-of the evangelicals did not think themselves sufficiently
-advanced in the faith to take part in this act,
-and doubtless Peter Viret was absent. Two of the
-eight disciples modestly spread a white cloth over a
-bench, on which they placed the bread and wine.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">{271}</a></span>
-Farel sank on his knees and prayed, all following his
-prayer in their hearts. When the minister rose up
-he asked: 'Do you each forgive one another?'...
-and the believers answered Yes. Next Farel broke off
-a morsel of bread for each, saying he gave it them in
-memory of Christ's passion, and after that he handed
-them the cup. The minister and these true disciples
-possessed by faith the real presence of Jesus in their
-hearts. They had hardly finished when the exasperated
-priests entered the church hastily and sang
-the mass as loud as they could. The next day,
-Whitmonday, there was a fresh scandal: the evangelicals
-were at work. 'Ha!' said many indignantly;
-'they keep no holiday, <i>except the Sunday</i>!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_419" id="Ref_419" href="#Foot_419">[419]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>If the evangelisation had continued in a peaceful
-course of christian edification, the city would in all
-probability have been entirely gained over; but the
-Reformation had its 'enfants terribles.' Calvin said
-in vain: 'Those who are wise according to God are
-modest, peaceable, and gentle. They do not conceal
-vices; they endeavour rather to correct them, but
-provided it be in peace, that is to say, with so much
-moderation that unity remains unbroken. Peaceable
-and loving representations ought not to be laid aside,
-and those who desire to be physicians must not be
-executioners.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_420" id="Ref_420" href="#Foot_420">[420]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>A fine stone crucifix in St. Germain's cemetery had
-been thrown down, and another, which stood at a
-cross road near the city, had been destroyed: but this
-had been done at night and it was not known by
-whom. Ere long the ardent reformers grew bolder, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">{272}</a></span>
-especially Christopher Hollard, a true iconoclast of
-the Reform, who thought more of pulling down than of
-building up. One day, as Farel was preaching before
-the deputies of Berne and Friburg, Hollard flew at an
-image of the Virgin and dashed it to pieces. Another
-day he threw down the great altar of the church of
-Our Lady. This was not enough.</p>
-
-<p>According to Hollard, whose mind was upright,
-and even pious, but ardent, extreme, and rather
-deficient in judgment, the Reformation, that is to say,
-the destruction of images and altars, did not go on
-fast enough, and he therefore resolved to carry it out
-on a grand scale. He took twelve companions with
-him; and these agents of the judgments of God
-(as they thought themselves), going from street to
-street and from church to church, 'pulled down
-all the altars' in the seven churches of the city;
-twenty-six heaps of rubbish bore witness to their
-triumph. They could say, no doubt, that all worship
-paid to an image is a relic of paganism; but their fault
-was to suppose that catholics ought to adore God, not
-according to their catholic conscience, but according to
-that of the reformed protestants. The people looked
-at each other with alarm, but said nothing. 'I was
-greatly astonished,' says De Pierrefleur, 'at the patience
-of the populace.' 'Sir banneret,' observed some
-catholics, 'if we did not feel great loyalty towards
-our lords of Berne, the body of Christopher Hollard
-would not have touched earth;' that is to say, they
-would have hanged him. These combatants were pretty
-well matched for gentleness. The catholics set up
-tables in the place of the altars, upon which they
-celebrated mass 'rather meanly.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_421" id="Ref_421" href="#Foot_421">[421]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">{273}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=ARREST OF THE PRIESTS.=</p>
-
-<p>The intolerance of Christopher Hollard and of one of
-his friends, named Tavel, threatened to substitute a
-new tyranny for the ancient tyranny of popery. Alas!
-the protestant clergy have sometimes been known to
-oppose the disciples and doctrines of the gospel, just
-as the Romish clergy would have done. Intolerance
-is a vice of human nature which even piety does
-not always cure. The priests saying mass at their
-little tables offended Hollard and Tavel. Agasse
-was no longer governor; he had been removed by the
-influence of Berne, and Anthony Secretan, one of the
-reformed, put in his place. The two fiery Lutherans
-laid a complaint before him against all priests as
-being murderers (of souls); and according to the
-custom of the age, surrendered themselves prisoners.
-The governor ordered the Roman ecclesiastics to be
-arrested, which was no easy matter, for there were
-some sturdy fellows among them. Three sergeants
-having attempted to seize Messire Pierre Bovey in
-the street, the stout priest 'dragged them into the
-passage of a house,' and there beat them so that they
-were glad to escape out of his hands. Having thus
-defended himself like a lion, he remained free; but it
-was not so with Blaise Foret, the curé, who 'went
-like a sheep straight to prison.' The officers put him
-along with the rest, who were 'well treated at bed
-and board, with permission to go all over the castle.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_422" id="Ref_422" href="#Foot_422">[422]</a></span>
-Some bold priests (for they were not all shut up)
-chanted mass at five o'clock in the morning, notwithstanding
-the prohibition. The catholics attended
-'armed with pikes, halberds, and clubs; and rang the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">{274}</a></span>
-bells as if the city were on fire'. Before long the
-intolerant protestants received a severe and well
-merited lesson.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=RELEASE OF THE PRIESTS.=</p>
-
-<p>The grand banneret Pierrefleur, who was a man of
-the world, well read, of a cultivated mind, charming
-simplicity, and profound intelligence, combined great
-decision of character with Vaudois good-temper.
-Being a catholic from conviction, and knowing that
-the majority of the inhabitants were for the Roman
-faith, and disgusted at seeing the priests in prison
-and the faithful compelled to hear mass almost in
-secret, he summoned a general council of the people.
-'Will you,' he asked them, 'will you have the mass,
-and live and die in the holy faith, like your forefathers?
-If you do wish it, let every one hold up
-his finger, and if perchance there should be any one
-of a contrary opinion, let him leave the assembly.'
-Every one raised his finger in token of an oath,
-whereupon the Friburgers sent a herald to Orbe.
-The priests were taken out of prison, and those who
-had helped to pull down the altars were put in their
-place. There were fifteen in all, and among them
-was Elizabeth's husband, the noble Hugonin of
-Arnex. They were not so well treated at 'bed and
-board' as the priests had been, but were put on
-bread and water; after three days, however, they
-were allowed to return home.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_423" id="Ref_423" href="#Foot_423">[423]</a></span>
-During this time the
-priests and fervent catholics were restoring the altars
-everywhere. It required more than twenty years for
-the Reform in Orbe to recover from the blow inflicted
-on it by the intolerance of Hollard and his friends.
-It was not until 1554 that an assembly of the people
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">{275}</a></span>
-decided by a majority of eighteen votes in favour of
-the establishment of evangelical worship. The priests,
-nuns, and friars then left the city for ever, amid the
-tears of their supporters.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_424" id="Ref_424" href="#Foot_424">[424]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_398" id="Foot_398" href="#Ref_398">[398]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Moy qui suis nay, et ay esté dès mon enfance nourry au milieu de
-vous.'—<i>Ep. de Viret aux nobles et bourgeois d'Orbe</i>, p. 13.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_399" id="Foot_399" href="#Ref_399">[399]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-These districts have been admirably described in a recent
-work—<i>Horizons prochains</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_400" id="Foot_400" href="#Ref_400">[400]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Disputations Chrestiennes</i>, par Pierre Viret, Geniève, 1544.
-<i>Préface.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_401" id="Foot_401" href="#Ref_401">[401]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. <i>Préface.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_402" id="Foot_402" href="#Ref_402">[402]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Disputations Chrestiennes. Préface.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_403" id="Foot_403" href="#Ref_403">[403]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 37.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_404" id="Foot_404" href="#Ref_404">[404]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Disputations Chrestiennes. Préface.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_405" id="Foot_405" href="#Ref_405">[405]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Arcem illam superstitionis et idolatriæ, et Satanæ propugnacula.
-Viret, <i>De verbi Dei ministerio</i>, Senatui Lausan. Ep.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_406" id="Foot_406" href="#Ref_406">[406]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Disp. Chrest.</i> p. 9.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_407" id="Foot_407" href="#Ref_407">[407]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. pp. 195-6.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_408" id="Foot_408" href="#Ref_408">[408]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Disp. Chrest.</i> Préface.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_409" id="Foot_409" href="#Ref_409">[409]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Viret: <i>Du vrai ministère de la vraye Eglise de
-Jésus-Christ</i>. Préface.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_410" id="Foot_410" href="#Ref_410">[410]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Théod. de Bèze.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_411" id="Foot_411" href="#Ref_411">[411]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Viret: <i>Du vray ministère</i>, pp. 47, 57.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_412" id="Foot_412" href="#Ref_412">[412]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Fuit corpusculo imbecillo, moribus suavis.'—Melchior Adam,
-<i>Vitæ erudit</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_413" id="Foot_413" href="#Ref_413">[413]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Oris præcipue facundia excellens, ut homines etiam religioni
-minus addictos, faciles tamen auditores habuerit, cum omnes ab ejus ore
-penderent.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_414" id="Foot_414" href="#Ref_414">[414]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Du combat des hommes contre leur propre salut</i>, pp. 7-8.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_415" id="Foot_415" href="#Ref_415">[415]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, pp. 133-134.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_416" id="Foot_416" href="#Ref_416">[416]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Un ris d'hôtellier.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_417" id="Foot_417" href="#Ref_417">[417]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 263.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_418" id="Foot_418" href="#Ref_418">[418]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 41.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_419" id="Foot_419" href="#Ref_419">[419]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-We are indebted to the catholic Pierrefleur for these particulars.
-<i>Mémoires</i>, p. 44.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_420" id="Foot_420" href="#Ref_420">[420]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Op.</i> S. Jacques, iv. 18.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_421" id="Foot_421" href="#Ref_421">[421]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, pp. 41-42, 50-51.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_422" id="Foot_422" href="#Ref_422">[422]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, pp. 52-53.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_423" id="Foot_423" href="#Ref_423">[423]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 56.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_424" id="Foot_424" href="#Ref_424">[424]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Vicerunt nostrioctodecim suffragiis.'—Viret to Calvin, 11th
-August, 1554. See also Pierrefleur, p. 297.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">{276}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER IV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE BATTLES OF GRANDSON.<br />
- (1531-1532.)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">FAREL'S zeal was not cooled by the check he had
-received at Orbe; he saw before him other places
-that must be evangelised. If he withstood the ambitious
-demands of the new converts who, like Hollard,
-fancied themselves more capable than they really were,
-and indiscreetly sought for consecration to the holy
-office, he did but seek with more zeal for servants
-of God, who possessed a spirit of strength, charity,
-and prudence. Certain men appeared to him to have
-been ripened in France by persecution. He invited
-into Switzerland Toussaint, Lecomte, Symphoranus,
-Andronicus, and others. As soon as these brethren
-arrived, he sent them into the harvest;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_425" id="Ref_425" href="#Foot_425">[425]</a></span>
-and frequently
-after fervent prayers he seemed to see the whole
-valley enclosed between the Jura and the Alps filled
-with the living waters of the Gospel. 'Of a truth,'
-said he, 'if we look at the times that have gone before,
-the work of Christ is glorious now.... And yet what
-roots remain to be torn up before the field is ready
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">{277}</a></span>
-to receive the divine seed.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_426" id="Ref_426" href="#Foot_426">[426]</a></span>
-What works to be
-accomplished, what toils to be endured, what enemies
-to be overcome!... We have need of labourers
-inured to labour.... I cannot promise them mountains of gold,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_427" id="Ref_427" href="#Foot_427">[427]</a></span>
-but I know that the Father will never
-abandon His own, and that He will give them an
-abundant harvest.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=MALADY OF PETTY QUESTIONS.=</p>
-
-<p>In Farel's heart overwhelming depression often
-followed close upon the fairest expectations. One
-sorrow especially afflicted him: the malady of petty
-questions seemed threatening to invade the new
-Church. At all times narrow and ill-balanced minds
-attach themselves to certain details in the doctrine of
-baptism, the Lord's Supper, the ministry, and so forth:
-they are eager about <i>anise and cummin</i><span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_428" id="Ref_428" href="#Foot_428">[428]</a></span>
-and by their minutiæ encumber the kingdom of Christ. Farel,
-who with a holy doctrine and unwearied activity
-combined a wise discernment and a large liberal
-spirit, trembled lest this weakness of little understandings
-had crept into the minds of the ministers to
-whom he addressed his call. There happened to be
-at Strasburg just then a christian man named Andronicus,
-whom the reformer desired to attract into
-Switzerland; but he wished to know whether he was
-tainted with formalism or fanaticism—two evils which
-sometimes met on the banks of the Rhine. He
-resolved to speak frankly to him, and his letter shows
-us his opinion of the ministry: 'Dear brother,' he
-wrote to Andronicus, 'do you possess Christ so as to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">{278}</a></span>
-teach Him purely, apart from the empty controversies
-of <i>bread</i> and <i>water</i>, <i>taxes</i> and <i>tithes</i>, which in the eyes
-of many constitute Christianity?<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_429" id="Ref_429" href="#Foot_429">[429]</a></span>
-Are you content
-to require of all that, renouncing ungodliness and unrighteousness,
-they should arm themselves with faith,
-and press to their hearts the heavenly treasure, Christ
-who sitteth at the right hand of the Father? Are you
-ready to give to all authorities what is their due—taxes,
-tithes—to pay them not only to the ungodly,
-but also to the brethren? Do you seek Christ's glory
-only? Do you propose simply to plant in their hearts
-the faith that worketh by charity? Are you resolved
-to bear the cross? for, be assured, the cross awaits
-you at the door. If you are ready to bear it, then,
-dear brother, come instantly.' Such was the wise
-language of the most ardent of the reformers.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL'S MODE OF RECRUITING.=</p>
-
-<p>While Farel was thus loudly calling for new workers,
-he was getting rid of the idle and cowardly, promising
-to all of them fatigue, insult, and persecution: it was
-with such promises that the reformer levied his soldiers.
-'Do not look for idleness, but for labour,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_430" id="Ref_430" href="#Foot_430">[430]</a></span>
-he said; 'only after fatigue will you find repose, and you will
-not reap until after you have sown at your own cost.
-A wide door is opened, but no one can enter except
-those who desire to feed the sheep and not to devour
-them, and who are determined to reply with kindness
-to the insults with which they are assailed. Labour
-and toil await you.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_431" id="Ref_431" href="#Foot_431">[431]</a></span>
-I can promise you nothing but
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">{279}</a></span>
-trouble.... If you will come with us, know that you
-are entering into a hard service. You will have to
-fight not against craven and disheartened adversaries,
-but against enemies brimful of decision and strength.
-Be therefore a brave and noble soldier; attack the
-enemy joyfully, and rush into the hottest of the fight,
-placing your confidence in God, to whom alone belong
-the battle and the victory. It is not we who fight,
-but the Lord.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_432" id="Ref_432" href="#Foot_432">[432]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But Farel called to the battle in vain: the timid
-recruits would not join the army. He received some
-little help indeed, but what was that for so great a
-work? Then his appeals grew louder. In the presence
-of the gigantic Alps, this humble man rose like
-them: his language swelled and resembled rather the
-cry of a soldier struggling in the midst of the enemy's
-ranks, than the sweet and subtle voice of the Gospel
-of peace. 'We are in the thick of the fight,' he said;
-'the conflict is terrible; we are fighting man to
-man ... but the Lord giveth the victory to his own.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_433" id="Ref_433" href="#Foot_433">[433]</a></span>
-Take up the sword, set the helmet on your head,
-buckle on the breastplate, hang the shield to your
-arm, gird your loins; and being thus armed with the
-panoply of God, rush into the midst of the battle,
-hurl the darts, throw down the enemy on every side,
-and put all the army to flight.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_434" id="Ref_434" href="#Foot_434">[434]</a></span>... But
-alas! instead
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">{280}</a></span>
-of joining the soldiers of Christ, instead of rushing into
-the Lord's battles, you fear the cross, and the dangers
-that lie in wait for you. Preferring your own ease, you
-refuse to come to the assistance of your brethren....
-Is that the behaviour of a christian?... The Holy
-Scriptures declare that the Lord will exact a severe
-reckoning for such cowardice.... Beware lest you
-bury the talent you have received.... Call to mind
-that you must give an account of all those souls, whom
-tyranny holds captive in its gloomy dungeons. You
-can set the light before their eyes, you can deliver
-them from their chains, you must conjure them to
-throw themselves into the arms of Jesus Christ....
-Do not hesitate.... Christ must be preferred to
-everything. Do not trouble yourself about what your
-wife wishes and requires, but about what God asks
-and commands.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_435" id="Ref_435" href="#Foot_435">[435]</a></span>
-More powerful solicitations had
-never been made; there was a new Paul in the world
-at this time. At last Farel's earnestness prevailed.
-Andronicus and others hastened to him, and laboured
-with him in the country that stretches from Basle
-and Berne as far as Geneva.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FIRST BATTLE OF GRANDSON.=</p>
-
-<p>Delighted at receiving such helpers, the reformer
-hastened to fresh combats. Every parish, village, and
-town was to be won to Christ by an obstinate struggle.
-There is no soldier that has fought more battles. We
-can only find a parallel to Farel in the convert of
-Damascus. He took with him De Glautinis, minister
-of Tavannes, in the Bernese Jura, who had come to
-his help, and quitted Orbe, leaving on his left the
-picturesque gorge of the Jura, where the village of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">{281}</a></span>
-St. Croix lies hid, and over which soar the lofty tops of
-the Chasseron, and turned his steps towards Grandson.
-Ere long he came in sight of the celebrated walls of
-the old castle which stood near the extremity of the
-lake of Neuchâtel. This place, which was about to
-become an evangelical battle-field, had witnessed a
-far different struggle. Here, in 1476, the Swiss had
-rushed from the heights of Champagne and Bonvillars,
-while the terrible roaring of the bull of Uri portended
-death, and the cow of Unterwald uttered its warning sound.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_436" id="Ref_436" href="#Foot_436">[436]</a></span>
-Here they bent the knee in presence of the
-hostile columns, and rising with shouts of '<i>Grandson!</i>'
-playing their fearful music, unfurling their
-ancient banners, and guarding them with their long
-and formidable spears, they charged the Burgundians
-with the rush of the tempest. Vainly did the commander
-of the cavalry, Sire Louis of Château-Guyon,
-brother of the Prince of Orange and of the Lord of
-Orbe and Grandson,—vainly did he spur his large
-war-horse and charge impetuously at the head of six
-thousand horsemen; vainly did he seize the banner
-of Schwytz, In der Gruob of Berne had given him a
-death-blow, and the Burgundians, as they saw the
-gigantic warrior fall, were struck with terror. Grandson
-as well as Orbe were lost to the family of that
-hero, and the sovereignty of the two towns passed to
-the cantons of Berne and Friburg. A panic spread
-through the ranks, and Charles the Bold was forced
-to fly, leaving behind him four hundred silk tents
-embroidered with gold and pearls, six hundred standards,
-and an immense quantity of plate, money, jewels,
-and precious stones. This vigorous attack and glorious
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">{282}</a></span>
-victory, the fame of which still remained in that
-peaceful country, was a type of the work that Farel
-was to accomplish. By his means, Berne was about
-to strike at Grandson as well as Orbe a more formidable
-enemy than the Lord of Château-Guyon.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_437" id="Ref_437" href="#Foot_437">[437]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the shore of the lake at the entrance of the
-town stood the vast convent of the Gray Friars.
-Farel and his friend De Glautinis, who accompanied
-him, stopped before its walls and said to each other
-that to this place doubtless the Lord had first directed
-their steps. They rang, entered the parlour,
-and the superior of the monastery, Friar Guy Regis,
-having asked them what they wanted, they begged
-him very coolly 'in the name of the Lords of Berne,'
-to grant them the use of the church. But Guy Regis,
-a resolute man and earnest priest, who knew all that
-had happened at Orbe, was offended at such insolence.
-'Heretic!' said he to Farel. 'Son of a Jew!' exclaimed
-another monk. The reception was not encouraging.
-The two ministers discussed with some friends of
-the Word of God, what was to be done. 'Go to the
-priory on the hill,' said the latter. 'As you bear a
-letter from Messieurs of Berne for the prior, the
-monks will not dare refuse you.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BENEDICTINE CONVENT.=</p>
-
-<p>Accordingly Farel, De Glautinis, and a few of the
-brethren, proceeded to the Benedictine convent. They
-knocked and the door was opened; several monks
-appeared. As they knew already something about
-the arrival of the missionaries, they looked at them
-from head to foot, and Farel had scarcely asked permission
-to preach, when a loud uproar arose in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">{283}</a></span>
-cloister. The sacristan hid a pistol under his frock,
-another friar armed himself with a knife, and both
-came forward stealthily to lay hands upon the <i>heretic</i>
-who (according to them) was disturbing all the
-churches. The sacristan arrived first; pointing the
-pistol at Farel with one hand, he seized him with the
-other, and pulling him along, endeavoured to drag
-him into the convent, where a prison awaited him.
-De Glautinis observing this, sprang forward to rescue
-his friend, but the other monk, arriving at the scene
-of combat, fell upon him, flourishing his knife.
-Alarmed by the noise within the cloister, the friends
-of the evangelists, who had remained at the door, waiting
-to know whether they could hear Farel or not,
-rushed in and tore both him and his comrade from
-the stout arms of the monks. The gates of the
-monastery were closed immediately, and they remained
-so for a whole fortnight, so great was the terror inspired
-by the reformers.</p>
-
-<p>Farel seeing there was nothing to be done at
-Grandson just then, departed for Morat, beseeching De
-Glautinis, whom he left behind him, to take advantage
-of every opportunity to proclaim the gospel. The
-monks entrenched within their walls, trembled, deliberated,
-kept watch, and armed themselves against
-this one man, as if they had an army before them.
-Convent gates and church doors were all close shut.
-De Glautinis, finding that he could not preach in the
-churches, determined to preach in the streets and in
-private houses; but he had hardly begun when the
-monks, informed by the signals of their agents whom
-they had instructed not to lose sight of the evangelist,
-made a vigorous sally. Guy Regis, the valiant
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">{284}</a></span>
-superior of the Gray Friars, the precentor, and all the
-monks came to the place where De Glautinis was
-preaching, and boldly placed themselves between him
-and his hearers: 'Come,' said the superior, 'come, if
-you dare, before the king or the emperor. Come to
-Besançon, to Dôle, or to Paris; I will show you and
-all the world that your preaching is mere witchcraft.
-Begone, we have had enough of you. You shall not
-enter the churches.' As soon as this harangue was
-over, the monks capped it by roaring out: 'Heretic,
-son of a Jew, apostate!' The troop having thus
-fired their volley, hastily retreated within their
-walls.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_438" id="Ref_438" href="#Foot_438">[438]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Some Bernese deputies, who chanced to be at
-Neuchâtel, hearing what was going on at Grandson,
-went thither without delay. They did not wish to
-force the people to be converted, but they desired
-that all under their rule should hear the gospel without
-hindrance, and thus have liberty to decide with
-full knowledge for Rome or for the Reformation.
-When the Bernese lords arrived at Grandson, which
-is not far from Neuchâtel, they ordered the conventual
-churches to be thrown open to the reformers. A messenger
-was sent to Farel, who returned immediately,
-bringing Viret with him, and from the 12th May the
-three evangelists began to preach Sundays and
-week-days. The monks, surprised, irritated, and yet
-restrained by fear of their dread lords, looked with
-gloomy eyes on the crowd that came to hear the
-<i>heresy</i>. The superior of the Gray Friars, who had a
-great reputation for learning, thought himself called
-upon to resist the reformers. They had hardly left
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">{285}</a></span>
-the pulpit when he entered it, and thus Farel and
-Guy Regis attacked and refuted each other, struggling,
-so to say, hand to hand. The evangelist preached
-grace, the monk prescribed works; the former reproached
-his opponent with disobeying Scripture, the
-latter reproached the other with disobeying the Church.
-The monks went further still: they conjured the
-magistrates to come to the defence of the faith, and
-the latter outlawed the ministers, while the sergeants
-arrested them. The populace, seeing them in the hands
-of the officers, followed them and covered them with
-abuse, and they were shut up in prison.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_439" id="Ref_439" href="#Foot_439">[439]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Thus the struggle descended to the people and
-grew all the warmer. Parties were formed, bands
-were organised. The catholics, in order to distinguish
-themselves, stuck fir-cones in their caps, and thus
-adorned stalked proudly through the streets. Their
-adversaries said to them as they passed: 'You insult
-Messieurs of Berne;' to which they arrogantly
-answered: 'You shall not prevent us.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=REINFORCEMENT FROM YVERDUN.=</p>
-
-<p>The inhabitants of Yverdun, a neighbouring town,
-which eagerly espoused the cause defended by Guy
-Regis, organised, not a troop of soldiers, but a procession.
-It quitted the town and passed along the
-shore of the lake; clerical banners instead of military
-colours waved above their heads, sacred chants instead
-of drums and trumpets filled the air. At last this
-curious reinforcement reached the city where such a
-fierce struggle was going on. The catholics no longer
-doubted of victory. Men's minds grew heated and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">{286}</a></span>
-their passions were inflamed. Farel and his friends,
-having been set at liberty, a black friar named Claude
-de Boneto stuck to the reformer and loaded him with
-abuse. The latter undismayed said: 'Christians,
-withdraw from the pope who has laid insupportable
-burdens on your back, which he will not touch with
-the tip of his finger. Come to Him who has taken all
-your burden and placed it on his own shoulders. Do
-not trust in the priests or in Rome. Have confidence
-in Jesus Christ.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_440" id="Ref_440" href="#Foot_440">[440]</a></span>
-The council of Berne took up the
-defence of the evangelist, and condemned friar
-Boneto.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_441" id="Ref_441" href="#Foot_441">[441]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>As the support of Yverdun had produced no effect,
-help was sent from Lausanne. On St. John's day (24th
-June) a cordelier arrived at Grandson to preach in
-honour of the saint. The church of the Franciscans
-was soon crowded, and Farel and De Glautinis were
-in the midst of the throng. The strange things which
-the preacher said filled them with sorrow; presently
-the reformer stood up, and (as was the custom of the
-times) began to refute the monk. The latter stopped,
-and the eyes of the assembly were turned upon the
-minister with signs of anger. The bailiff, John Reyff
-of Friburg, a good catholic, unable to restrain himself,
-raised his hand and struck Farel. This was the
-signal for a battle. Judges, gray friars, and burgesses
-of Grandson, who had come armed to the
-church, fell upon the two ministers, threw them to
-the ground, and showered blows and kicks upon them.
-Their friends hastened to their help, flung themselves
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">{287}</a></span>
-into the midst of the fray, and succeeded in rescuing
-the reformers from the hands of the riotous crowd,
-but not before they had been 'grievously maltreated
-in the face and other parts.' The grand banneret of
-Orbe saw it, and it is he who tells the story.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_442" id="Ref_442" href="#Foot_442">[442]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE SENTINELS.=</p>
-
-<p>The evangelicals lost no time: one of them started
-off at once to see the Sieur de Watteville, the avoyer of
-Berne, who chanced to be at his estate of Colombier,
-three leagues from Grandson. That magistrate went to
-the town, and wishing to put the inhabitants in a position
-to exercise the right of free enquiry, according to
-the principles of Berne, he ordered the cordelier and
-Farel to preach by turns, and then went to the
-church, attended by his servant, with the view of
-hearing both preachers. But there was something
-else to be done first. The people were still agitated
-with the emotions of the preceding day, and pretended
-that the reformers wanted to pull down the great
-crucifix, which was much respected by all the city.
-Two monks, Tissot and Gondoz, were distinguished
-by their zeal for the doctrines of the pope; sincere but
-fanatical, they would have thought they were doing
-God a service by murdering Farel. They had been
-posted as sentinels to defend the image supposed to be
-threatened. Armed with axes hidden under their
-frocks, they paced backwards and forwards, silent and
-watchful, at the foot of the stairs which led to the
-gallery where the famous crucifix stood. When the
-Lord of Berne appeared, one of the sentinels, seeing
-a strange face, which had an heretical look about it,
-stopped him abruptly. 'Stand back, you cannot pass
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">{288}</a></span>
-this way,' he said, while his comrade rudely pushed
-the Sieur de Watteville. 'Gently,' said the avoyer
-in a grave tone; 'you should not get in such a heat.'
-The patrician's serving-man, exasperated at this want
-of respect to his master, and less calm than he was,
-caught the cowled sentinel round the body, and feeling
-the axe under his frock, took it away and was
-about to strike him with it, when the Bernese lord
-checked him. All the monks fled in alarm, and De
-Watteville remaining master of the ground, placed
-his servant there on guard. The latter, stalking up
-and down with the axe on his shoulder, kept watch
-instead of the monks.</p>
-
-<p>He had been there only a few minutes, when about
-thirty women, with flashing eyes and sullen air, each
-holding her serge apron gathered up in front, made
-their appearance and endeavoured to get into the
-gallery. Some had filled their aprons with mould
-from their gardens, and others with ashes from their
-kitchens, and with these weapons they were marching
-to battle. Their plan was not, indeed, to engage in a
-regular fight, but to lie in ambush in the gallery near
-the pulpit; and then as soon as Farel appeared, to
-throw the ashes into his eyes and the earth into his
-mouth, and so silence the fearless preacher of the
-Gospel. This was their notion of controversy. The
-troop approached: the avoyer's serving-man, firm as
-became a servant of my lord of Berne, was still pacing
-to and fro, axe in hand. He perceived the feminine
-battalion, immediately saw what was their intention,
-and advanced brandishing the weapon he had taken
-from the monks. The devotees of Grandson, seeing
-a Bernese instead of a gray friar, were alarmed; they
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">{289}</a></span>
-shrieked, let go their aprons, suffered the mould and
-ashes to fall upon the floor of the church, and ran off
-to their homes.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CONVERSION OF THE MONKS.=</p>
-
-<p>The conspiracies of the monks and of the women
-being thus baffled, the Bernese magistrate did not
-take advantage of it to make Farel preach alone.
-He wished the balance to be even. The gray friar
-therefore and the reformer quietly took their turns.
-Tissot and Gondoz, who had stopped De Watteville,
-were imprisoned for a fortnight. The two monks, recovering
-from their passion, began to consider what
-this <i>Lutheran doctrine</i> could be which possessed such
-stanch adherents. The reformers visited them, and
-showed them much affection. The monks were
-touched, they saw that the heresy of which they had
-been so afraid was simply the all-merciful Gospel of
-Jesus Christ. They left the prison with new thoughts,
-and two years later, says the banneret, 'they received
-the Lutheran law, were made preachers, one at Fontaines,
-the other at Chavornay, married, and had a
-large family of children.' In the days of the Reformation,
-as in those of the apostles, it was often seen
-that those who 'kicked against the pricks' obtained
-mercy and became heralds of the faith.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_443" id="Ref_443" href="#Foot_443">[443]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>A last tumult was to cause the principles of religious
-liberty to be proclaimed in Switzerland. It
-occurred at Orbe during the Christmas holidays. The
-catholics, proud of the midnight devotions customary
-among them at that season of the year, insulted the
-reformed: 'Go to bed,' they said; 'while we are
-singing the praises of God in the church you will be
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">{290}</a></span>
-sleeping in your beds like swine.'... The reformers,
-who did not like midnight masses with all their profanations,
-desired to take advantage of the evening
-hours, when the cessation of labour gave an opportunity
-of collecting a large congregation. At seven
-o'clock on Christmas eve they asked the governor for
-the keys of the church: 'It is not sermon time,' he
-answered, 'and you shall not have them.' They
-rejoined that every hour, except at night, was sermon
-time; and being determined to begin the evening services,
-they went to the church, opened the doors, the
-preacher got up into the pulpit, and in a moment the
-place was crowded. A few priests or bigots, peeping
-into the building, exclaimed in surprise at the
-crowd: 'The devil must have sent a good many
-there!' The minister (it may have been Viret) explained
-the great mystery of faith, the coming of the
-Saviour, and asked his hearers if they would not
-receive him into their hearts. The sermon had lasted
-some time, and the clock struck nine. Immediately
-the bells rang, and the catholics crowded into the
-church, although there was no service at that hour.</p>
-
-<p>The reformed, being unwilling to quarrel, retired
-home quietly; but a mischievous fellow, who had crept
-into the assembly with the intention of exciting the
-people, began to whisper to his neighbours that the
-heretics were going to destroy everything at St. Claire.
-This was false, but they believed it; the crowd deserted
-the altars, and, meeting with a few reformers in the
-streets, knocked some down, and broke the heads of
-others; the best known among them had already
-reached home, but the catholic population assembled
-in front of their houses, and threw stones at their
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">{291}</a></span>
-windows. Viret departed for Berne with ten of the
-reformed, in order to make his complaint.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_444" id="Ref_444" href="#Foot_444">[444]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FIRST ACT OF RELIGIOUS LIBERTY.=</p>
-
-<p>A few days later, on the 9th January 1532, two
-hundred and thirty ministers assembled at Berne,
-among whom was the wise Capito, and formed a sort of
-council. Having most of them left the Romish church,
-they desired liberty not only for themselves, but also
-for their adversaries. The laymen were of the same
-opinion. Berne, the representative of protestantism,
-agreed with Friburg, the champion of popery, on this
-subject. 'We desire,' said the Bernese, 'that every
-one should have free choice to go to the preaching or
-to mass.' 'And we also,' said the Friburgers. 'We
-desire that all should live in peace together, and that
-neither priests nor preachers should call their adversaries
-heretics or murderers. 'And we also,' said
-the Friburgers. 'Nevertheless, we do not wish to
-hinder the priests and preachers from conferring amicably
-and fraternally concerning the faith.' 'Quite
-right,' said the Friburgers. These articles, and others
-like them—the first monument of religious liberty in
-Switzerland—were published on the 30th January 1532.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_445" id="Ref_445" href="#Foot_445">[445]</a></span>
-It is to be regretted that this proclamation
-of the sixteenth century was not henceforward taken
-as a pattern in all christian countries, and in Switzerland,
-where it was drawn up. The order did not for
-long prevent violent collisions.</p>
-
-<p>We shall now leave this quarter, and follow elsewhere
-the great champion of the Word of God, Farel;
-but we shall return here later. The evangelical seed
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">{292}</a></span>
-was to be sown still more abundantly in the Pays de
-Vaud, and that soil, which appeared adverse at first,
-will produce and has produced, in our days especially,
-the finest of fruits.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_425" id="Foot_425" href="#Ref_425">[425]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Fratres qui huc venerunt in messem missi sunt.'—Farellus
-Andronico, Jan. 27, 1531. Choupard MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_426" id="Foot_426" href="#Ref_426">[426]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quam difficiles eradicatu supersunt radices, antequam novale
-jaciendo semini sit idoneum.'—Farellus Andronico, Jan. 27, 1531.
-Choupard MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_427" id="Foot_427" href="#Ref_427">[427]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Aureos montes polliceri nolo.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_428" id="Foot_428" href="#Ref_428">[428]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Matthew xxiii. 23.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_429" id="Foot_429" href="#Ref_429">[429]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Sine vanis controversiis vel aquæ vel panis aut censuum aut
-decimarum, in quibus pars Christianismum putat.'—Farellus Andronico.
-Choupard MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_430" id="Foot_430" href="#Ref_430">[430]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Non est quod otium expectes sed negotium.'—Farellus Andronico,
-Feb. 12, 1531.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_431" id="Foot_431" href="#Ref_431">[431]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Labores plurimi.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_432" id="Foot_432" href="#Ref_432">[432]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Sed in ipso pugnæ æstu, robustos ac plenis viribus hostes alacer
-aggrediaris, collocata in Deum fiducia, cujus est victoria sicut et
-pugna; non enim nos pugnamus, sed Dominus.'—Farellus Andronico. Jan. 27,
-1531. Choupard MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_433" id="Foot_433" href="#Ref_433">[433]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Pugnam fervere, cum hostibus consertas manus jungere, victoriam
-suis impartire, sed non citra sudorem.'—Farellus Andronico, April 1531.
-Choupard MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_434" id="Foot_434" href="#Ref_434">[434]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In medios hostes prosilire, jacula vibrare, hostes hinc inde
-prosternere ac dissipare.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_435" id="Foot_435" href="#Ref_435">[435]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nec tantopere curandum quid uxor velit et poscat, sed quæ Deus
-ipse petat et jubeat.'—Farellus Andronico, April, 1531. Choupard MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_436" id="Foot_436" href="#Ref_436">[436]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Warlike musical instruments.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_437" id="Foot_437" href="#Ref_437">[437]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Chronique de Neuchâtel. Chant de bataille, par un Lucernois.
-Müller, <i>Hist. de la Conféd. Suisse</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_438" id="Foot_438" href="#Ref_438">[438]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Chroniqueur</i>, p. 112.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_439" id="Foot_439" href="#Ref_439">[439]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Duræchet, gebalgets, verschmæht.... Gott gelæstert.'—Berne to the
-bailli of Grandson, June 7.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_440" id="Foot_440" href="#Ref_440">[440]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Sommaire</i>, etc. p. 181.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_441" id="Foot_441" href="#Ref_441">[441]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The Choupard MS. gives the sentence of Berne under the date of
-17th June 1531.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_442" id="Foot_442" href="#Ref_442">[442]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 167.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_443" id="Foot_443" href="#Ref_443">[443]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MSS. Stettler MSS. <i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_444" id="Foot_444" href="#Ref_444">[444]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, p. 74. Ruchat, iii. p. 45.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_445" id="Foot_445" href="#Ref_445">[445]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. du Sire de Pierrefleur</i>, pp. 82-85. Choupard MSS.
-Ruchat, iii. p. 47.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">{293}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER V.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE WALDENSES APPEAR.<br />
- (<span class="smc">1526 to October 1532.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">ON Friday, 12th July, Farel came from Morat to
-Grandson, where a quiet conference was to be held.
-Four disciples of the Gospel begged to receive the imposition
-of hands. Farel and his colleagues examined
-them, and, finding them fitted for the evangelical
-work, sent them to announce the Gospel in the neighbouring
-villages of Gy, Fy, Montagny, Noville, Bonvillars,
-St. Maurice, Champagne, and Concise. But
-the conference was to be occupied with more important
-business.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE WALDENSES.=</p>
-
-<p>For two or three years past a strange report had circulated
-among the infant churches that were forming
-between the Alps and the Jura. They heard talk of
-christians who belonged to the Reformation without
-having ever been reformed. It was said that in some
-of the remote valleys of the Alps of Piedmont and
-Dauphiny, and in certain parts of Calabria, Apulia,
-Provence, Lorraine, and other countries,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_446" id="Ref_446" href="#Foot_446">[446]</a></span>
-there were believers who for many centuries had resisted the pope
-and recognised no other authority than Holy Scripture.
-Some called them 'Waldenses,' others 'poor
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">{294}</a></span>
-men of Lyons,' and others 'Lutherans.' The report
-of the victories of the Reformation having penetrated
-their valleys, these pious men had listened to them
-attentively; one of them in particular, Martin Gonin,
-pastor of Angrogne, was seriously moved by them.
-Being a man of decided and enterprising character,
-and ready to give his life for the Gospel, the pious
-<i>barbe</i> (the name given by the Waldenses to their
-pastors) had felt a lively desire to go and see closely
-what the Reformation was. This thought haunted
-him everywhere: whether he traversed the little
-glens which divided his valley, like a tree with its branches,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_447" id="Ref_447" href="#Foot_447">[447]</a></span>
-or whether he followed the course of the
-torrent, or sat at the foot of the Alps of Cella, Vachera,
-and Infernet, Gonin sighed after Wittemberg and
-Luther. At last he made up his mind; he departed
-in 1526, found his way to the reformers, and brought
-back into his valleys much good news and many pious
-books. From that time the Reformation was the chief
-topic of conversation among the barbes and shepherds
-of those mountains.</p>
-
-<p class="gap-above2">In 1530 many of them, threading the defiles of the
-Alps, arrived on the French slopes, and following the
-picturesque banks of the Durance, took their way towards
-Merindol, where a synod of Waldensian christians
-had been convened. They walked on, animated with
-the liveliest joy; they had thought themselves alone,
-and in one day there had been born to them in Europe
-thousands of brethren who listened humbly to the
-Word of God, and made the pope tremble on his throne....
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">{295}</a></span>
-They spoke of the Reformation, of Luther,
-and Melanchthon, and of the Swiss as they descended
-the rough mountain paths. When the synod was formed,
-they resolved to send a deputation to the evangelicals
-of Switzerland, to show them that the Waldensian
-doctrines were similar to those of the reformers, and
-to prevail upon the latter to give them the hand of
-fellowship. In consequence, two of them, George Morel
-and Peter Masson, set out for Basle.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=DEPUTATION TO ŒCOLAMPADIUS.=</p>
-
-<p>On their arrival in that city, they asked for the house
-of Œcolampadius; they entered his study, and the old
-times, represented by these simple-minded worthy
-barbes, greeted the new times in the person of the
-amiable and steadfast reformer. The latter could not
-see these brave and rustic men standing before him
-and not feel an emotion of respect and sympathy. The
-Waldenses took from their bosoms the documents of
-their faith, and presented them to the pious doctor.
-'Turning away from Antichrist,' said these papers,
-and Masson and Morel repeated the words, 'we turn
-towards Christ. He is our life, our truth, our peace,
-our righteousness, our shepherd, our advocate, our
-victim, our high-priest, who died for the salvation of believers.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_448" id="Ref_448" href="#Foot_448">[448]</a></span>
-But alas! as smoke goeth before the fire,
-the temptation of Antichrist precedeth the glory.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_449" id="Ref_449" href="#Foot_449">[449]</a></span>
-In the time of the apostles Antichrist was but a child; he
-has now grown into a perfect man. He robs Christ
-of the merit of salvation, and ascribes it to his own
-works. He strips the Holy Ghost of the power of
-regeneration, and attributes it to his ceremonies. He
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">{296}</a></span>
-leads the people to mass, a sad tissue of jewish, pagan,
-and christian rites, and deprives them of the spiritual
-and sacramental manducation.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_450" id="Ref_450" href="#Foot_450">[450]</a></span>
-He hates, persecutes,
-accuses, robs, and kills the members of Jesus Christ.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_451" id="Ref_451" href="#Foot_451">[451]</a></span>
-He boasts of his length of life, of his monks,
-his virgins, his miracles, his fasts, and his vigils, and
-uses them as a cloak to hide his wickedness. Nevertheless,
-the rebel is growing old and decreasing, and
-the Lord is killing the felon by the breath of his mouth.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_452" id="Ref_452" href="#Foot_452">[452]</a></span>
-Œcolampadius admired the simplicity of their
-creed. He would not have liked a doctrine without
-life, or an apparent life without doctrine, but he found
-both in the Waldensian barbes. 'I thank God,' he
-told them, 'that he has called you to so great light.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_453" id="Ref_453" href="#Foot_453">[453]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Ere long the doctors and faithful ones of Basle
-desired to see these men of the ancient times. Seated
-round the domestic hearth, the Waldenses narrated
-the sufferings of their fathers, and described their
-flocks scattered over the two slopes of the Alps.
-'Some people,' they said, 'ascribe our origin to a
-wealthy citizen of Lyons, Peter de Vaux or Waldo,
-who, being at a banquet with his friends, saw one of
-them suddenly fall dead.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_454" id="Ref_454" href="#Foot_454">[454]</a></span>
-Moved and troubled in his
-conscience he prayed to Jesus, sold his goods, and
-began to preach and sent others to preach the Gospel everywhere.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_455" id="Ref_455" href="#Foot_455">[455]</a></span>
-But,' added the barbes, 'we descend
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">{297}</a></span>
-from more ancient times, from the time when Constantine
-introducing the world into the Church, our fathers
-set themselves apart, or even from the time of the
-apostles.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_456" id="Ref_456" href="#Foot_456">[456]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=CONFESSIONS OF THE BARBES.=</p>
-
-<p>In the course of conversation, however, with these
-brethren, the christians of Basle noticed certain points
-of doctrine which did not seem conformable with
-evangelical truth, and a certain uneasiness succeeded
-to their former joy. Wishing to be enlightened,
-Œcolampadius addressed a few questions to the two
-barbes. 'All our ministers,' they answered on the
-first point, 'live in celibacy, and work at some honest
-trade.' 'Marriage, however,' said Œcolampadius, 'is
-a state very becoming to all true believers, and particularly
-to those who ought to be in all things <i>ensamples
-to the flock</i>. We also think,' he continued,
-'that pastors ought not to devote to manual labour,
-as yours do, the time they could better employ in the
-study of scripture. The minister has many things to
-learn; God does not teach us miraculously and without
-labour; we must take pains in order to know.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_457" id="Ref_457" href="#Foot_457">[457]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The barbes were at first a little confused at seeing
-that the elders had to learn of their juniors; however,
-they were humble and sincere men, and the Basle
-doctor having questioned them on the sacraments,
-they confessed that through weakness and fear they
-had their children baptised by Romish priests, and
-that they even communicated with them and sometimes
-attended mass. This unexpected avowal startled
-the meek Œcolampadius. 'What,' said he, 'has not
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">{298}</a></span>
-Christ, the holy victim, fully satisfied the everlasting
-justice for us? Is there any need to offer other
-sacrifices after that of Golgotha? By saying <i>Amen</i> to
-the priests' mass you deny the grace of Jesus Christ.'</p>
-
-<p>Œcolampadius next spoke of the strength of man
-after the fall. 'We believe,' said the barbes modestly,
-'that all men have some natural virtue, just as herbs,
-plants, and stones have.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_458" id="Ref_458" href="#Foot_458">[458]</a></span>
-'We believe,' said the
-reformer, 'that those who obey the commandments of
-God do so, not because they have more strength than
-others, but because of the great power of the Spirit of
-God which renews their will.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_459" id="Ref_459" href="#Foot_459">[459]</a></span>
-'Ah,' said the barbes,
-who did not feel themselves in harmony with the
-reformers on this point, 'nothing troubles us weak
-people so much as what we have heard of Luther's
-teaching relative to free-will and predestination....
-Our ignorance is the cause of our doubts: pray
-instruct us.'</p>
-
-<p>The charitable Œcolampadius did not think the
-differences were such as ought to alienate him from
-the barbes. 'We must enlighten these christians,' he
-said, 'but above all things we must love them.' Had
-they not the same Bible and the same Saviour as the
-children of the Reformation? Had they not preserved
-the essential truths of the faith from the primitive
-times? Œcolampadius and his friends agitated
-by this reflection, gave their hands to the Waldensian
-deputation: 'Christ,' said the pious doctor,' is in
-you as he is in us, and we love you as brethren.'
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">{299}</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE MARTYRED BARBE.=</p>
-
-<p>The two barbes left Basle and proceeded to Strasburg
-to confer with Bucer and Capito, after which
-they prepared to return to their valleys. As Peter
-Masson was of Burgundian origin, they determined to
-pass through Dijon, a journey not unattended with
-danger. It was said here and there in cloisters and
-in bishops' palaces that the old heretics had come to
-an understanding with the new. The pious conversation
-of the two Waldensians having attracted the
-attention of certain inhabitants of Dijon, a clerical and
-fanatical city, they were thrown into prison. What
-shall they do? What, they ask, will become of the
-letters and instructions they are bearing to their co-religionists?
-One of them, Morel, the bearer of this
-precious trust, succeeded in escaping: Masson, who
-was left, paid for both; he was condemned, executed,
-and died with the peace of a believer.</p>
-
-<p>When they saw only one of their deputation appear,
-the Waldenses comprehended the dangers to which
-the brethren had been exposed, and wept for Masson.
-But the news of the reformers' welcome spread great
-joy among them, in Provence, Dauphiny, in the valleys
-of the Alps, and even to Apulia and Calabria.
-The observations, however, of Œcolampadius, and his
-demand for a stricter reform, were supported by some
-and rejected by others. The Waldensians determined
-therefore to take another step: 'Let us convoke a
-synod of all our churches,' said they, 'and invite the
-reformers to it.'</p>
-
-<p>One July day in 1532, when Farel was at Grandson,
-as we have seen, in conference with other ministers,
-he was told that two individuals, whose foreign look
-indicated that they came from a distance, desired to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">{300}</a></span>
-speak with him. Two barbes, one from Calabria,
-named George, the other Martin Gonin, a Piedmontese,
-entered the room. After saluting the evangelicals
-in the name of their brethren, they told
-them that the demand that had been addressed to
-them to separate entirely from Rome had caused division
-among them. 'Come,' they said to the ministers
-assembled at Grandson, 'come to the synod and explain
-your views on this important point. After that
-we must come to an understanding about the means
-of propagating over the world the doctrine of the
-Gospel which is common to both of us.' No message
-could be more agreeable to Farel; and as these two
-points were continually occupying his thoughts, he
-determined to comply with the request of the
-Waldensian brethren. His fellow-countryman, the
-pious Saunier, wished to share his dangers.</p>
-
-<p>The members of the conference and the evangelicals
-of Grandson gazed with respect upon these ancient
-witnesses of the truth, arriving among them from the
-farther slopes of the Alps and the extremity of Italy,
-where they would have had no idea of going to look
-for brethren. They crowded round them and gave
-them a welcome, overflowing with love for them as
-they thought of the long fidelity and cruel sufferings
-of their ancestors. They listened with interest to
-the story of the persecutions endured by their fathers,
-and the heroism with which the Waldenses had endured
-them. They were all ears when they were told
-how the barbes and their flocks were suddenly attacked
-by armed bands in their snowy mountains during the
-festival of Christmas in the year 1400; how men,
-women, and children had been compelled to flee over
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">{301}</a></span>
-the rugged rocks, and how many of them had perished
-of cold and hunger, or had fallen by the sword. In
-one place the bodies of fourscore little children were
-found frozen to death in the stiffened arms of their
-mothers who had died with them.... In another
-place thousands of fugitives who had taken refuge in
-deep caverns (1488) had been suffocated by the fires
-which their cruel persecutors had kindled at the entrance
-of their hiding-place.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_460" id="Ref_460" href="#Foot_460">[460]</a></span>
-Would not the Reformation
-regard these martyrs as its precursors? Was
-it not a privilege for it thus to unite with the witnesses
-who had given glory to Jesus Christ since the first
-ages of the Church?</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL'S DANGEROUS JOURNEY.=</p>
-
-<p>Some of the Swiss christians were alarmed at the idea
-of Farel's journey. In truth great dangers threatened
-the reformer. The martyrdom of Peter Masson, sacrificed
-two years before, had exasperated the Waldenses
-of Provence, and their lamentations had aroused the
-anger of their enemies. The bishops of Sisteron,
-Apt, and Cavaillon had taken counsel together and
-laid a remonstrance before the parliament of Aix,
-which had immediately ordered a raid to be made on
-the heretics: the prisons were filled with Waldensians
-and Lutherans, real or pretended. Martin Gonin, one
-of the two Waldensian deputies, was in a subsequent
-journey arrested at Grenoble, put into a sack, and
-drowned in the Isère. A similar fate might easily
-happen to Farel. Did not the country he would have
-to cross depend on the duke of Savoy, and had not
-Bellegarde and Challans laid hands on Bonivard in a
-country less favourable to ambuscades than that which
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">{302}</a></span>
-Farel had to pass through? That mattered not: he
-did not hesitate. He will leave these quarters where
-the might of Berne protects him and pass through the
-midst of his enemies. 'There was in him the same
-zeal as in his Master,' says an historian;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_461" id="Ref_461" href="#Foot_461">[461]</a></span>
-'like the Saviour, he feared neither the hatred of the Pharisees,
-nor the cunning of Herod, nor the rage of the people.'
-He made every preparation for his departure, and
-Saunier did the same.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_462" id="Ref_462" href="#Foot_462">[462]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Just as Farel was about to leave Switzerland, he
-received unpleasant tidings from France, and thus
-found himself solicited on both sides. He wrote to
-his fellow-countrymen one of those letters, so full of
-consolation and wisdom, which characterise our reformers.
-'Men look fiercely at you,' he said, 'and
-threaten you, and lay heavy fines upon you; your
-friends turn their robes and become your enemies....
-All men distress you.... Observing all
-modesty, meekness, and friendship, persevering in holy
-prayers, living purely, and helping the poor, commit
-everything to the Father of mercies, by whose aid
-you will walk, strong and unwearied, in all truth.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_463" id="Ref_463" href="#Foot_463">[463]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL'S ARRIVAL IN THE VALLEYS.=</p>
-
-<p>Towards the end of August, Farel and Saunier took
-leave of the brethren around them, got on their horses,
-and departed. Their course was enveloped in mystery:
-they avoided the places where they might be known
-and traversed uninhabited districts. Having crossed
-the Alps and passed through Pignerol, they fixed their
-eyes, beaming with mournful interest, on the lonely
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">{303}</a></span>
-places where almost inaccessible caverns, pierced in the
-ragged sides of the mountains, often formed the only
-temple of the Christians, and where every rock had a
-history of persecution and martyrdom. Their place
-of meeting was Angrogne, in the parish of the pious
-Martin Gonin. The two reformers quitted La Tour,
-and following the sinuosities of the torrent, and turning
-the precipices, they arrived at the foot of a magnificent
-forest, and then reached a vast plateau abounding in
-pastures: this was the Val d'Angrogne. They gazed
-upon the steep ranges of the Soirnan and Infernet, the
-pyramidal flanks of mount Vandalin, and the gentler
-slopes upon which stood the lowly hamlets of the
-valley. They found Waldenses here and there in the
-meadows and at the foot of the rocks; some were
-prepared 'to be a guard for the ministers of the good
-law;' and all looked with astonishment and joy at the
-pastors who came from Switzerland. 'That one with
-the red beard and riding the white horse is Farel,' said
-John Peyret of Angrogne, one of their escort, to his
-companions; 'the other on the dark horse is Saunier.'
-'There was also a third,' add the eye-witnesses, 'a tall
-man and rather lame:' he may have been a Waldensian
-who had acted as a guide to the two deputies.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_464" id="Ref_464" href="#Foot_464">[464]</a></span>
-Other foreign Christians met in this remote valley
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">{304}</a></span>
-of the Alps. There were some from the southern
-extremity of Italy, from Burgundy, Lorraine, Bohemia,
-and countries nearer home. There was also
-a certain number of persons of more distinguished
-appearance: the lords of Rive Noble, Mirandola, and
-Solaro had quitted their castles to take part in this
-Alpine council. Clergy, senate, and people were thus
-assembled; and as no room could have held the number,
-it was resolved to meet in the open air. Gonin
-selected for this purpose the hamlet of Chanforans,
-where there is now only one solitary house. There, in
-a shady spot, on the side of the mountain, surrounded
-by an amphitheatre of rugged cliffs and distant peaks,
-the barbe had arranged the rude benches on which the
-members of this Christian assembly were to sit.</p>
-
-<p>Two parties met there face to face. At the head
-of that which was unwilling to break entirely with the
-Roman Catholic Church were two barbes, Daniel of
-Valence and John of Molines, who struggled for the
-success of their system of accommodation and compliance.
-On the other hand Farel and Saunier supported
-the evangelical party, who had not such distinguished
-representatives as the traditional party, and proposed
-the definitive rejection of all semi-catholic doctrines
-and usages. Before the opening of the synod the two
-ministers, finding themselves surrounded by numbers
-of the brethren, both in their homes and under the shade
-of the trees where the assembly was to be held, had
-already explained to them the faith of the Reformation,
-and several of the Waldenses had exclaimed that it was
-the doctrine taught from father to son among them, and
-to which they were resolved to adhere. Yet the issue
-of the combat appeared doubtful; for the semi-catholic
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">{305}</a></span>
-party was strong, and described the reformers as
-foreigners and innovators who had come there to alter
-their ancient doctrines. But Farel had good hopes,
-for he could appeal to Holy Scripture and even to the
-confessions of the Waldenses themselves.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=OPENING OF THE SYNOD.=</p>
-
-<p>On the 12th September the synod was opened 'in the
-name of God.' One party looked with favour on Farel
-and Saunier, the other on John of Molines and Daniel
-of Valence; but the majority appeared to be on the
-side of the Reformation. Farel rose and boldly
-broached the question: he contended that there was
-no longer any ceremonial law, that no act of worship
-had any merit of itself, and that a multitude of feasts,
-dedications, rites, chants, and mechanical prayers
-was a great evil. He reminded them that Christian
-worship consists essentially in faith in the Gospel, in
-charity, and in the confession of Christ. '<i>God is a
-spirit</i>,' he said, 'and divine worship should be performed
-<i>in spirit and in truth</i>.' The two barbes strove
-in vain to oppose these views, the meeting testified
-their assent to them. Did not their confession reject
-'all feasts, vigils of saints, water called holy, the act
-of abstaining from flesh, and other like things invented by men?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_465" id="Ref_465" href="#Foot_465">[465]</a></span>
-The worship in spirit was proclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>Farel, delighted at this first victory, desired to win
-another and perhaps more difficult one. He believed
-that it was by means of the doctrine of the natural
-power of man that popery took salvation out of the
-hands of God and put it into the hands of the priests:
-'God,' said he, 'has elected before the foundation of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">{306}</a></span>
-the world all those who have been or who will be saved.
-It is impossible for those who have been ordained to
-salvation not to be saved. Whosoever upholds free-will,
-absolutely denies the grace of God.' This was a
-point which Molines and his friend resisted with all
-their might. But did not the Waldensian confessions
-recognise the impotency of man and the all-sufficiency
-of grace? Did not they call the denial of these things
-'the work of Antichrist?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_466" id="Ref_466" href="#Foot_466">[466]</a></span>
-Farel moreover adduced
-proof from Scripture. The synod was at first in suspense,
-but finally decided that it recognised this article
-as 'conformable with Holy Scripture.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_467" id="Ref_467" href="#Foot_467">[467]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Certain questions of morality anxiously occupied
-the reformer. In his opinion the Romish Church had
-turned everything topsy-turvy, calling those works
-<i>good</i> which she prescribed though they had nothing good
-in them, and those <i>bad</i> which were in conformity with
-the will of God. 'There is no good work but that
-which God has commanded,' said Farel, 'and none
-bad but what He has forbidden.' The assembly
-expressed their entire assent.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL'S OPINIONS GAIN GROUND.=</p>
-
-<p>Then continuing the struggle, the firm evangelical
-doctor successively maintained that the true confession
-of a Christian is to confess to God alone; that marriage
-is forbidden to no man, whatever his condition;
-that Scripture determines only two sacraments, baptism
-and the Lord's Supper; that Christians may
-swear in God's name and fill the office of magistrate;
-and finally, that they should lay aside their manual
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">{307}</a></span>
-occupations on Sunday in order to have leisure to
-praise God, exercise charity, and listen to the truths
-of Scripture.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_468" id="Ref_468" href="#Foot_468">[468]</a></span>
-'Yes, that is it,' said the delighted
-Waldenses, 'that is the doctrine of our fathers.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_469" id="Ref_469" href="#Foot_469">[469]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Molines and Daniel of Valence did not, however,
-consider their cause lost. Ought not the fear of
-persecution to induce the Waldenses to persevere in
-certain dissimulations calculated to secure them from
-the inquisitive eyes of the enemies of the faith?
-Nothing displeased the reformers so much as dissembling.
-'Let us put off that paint,' said Calvin,
-'by which the Gospel is disfigured, and let us not
-endeavour slavishly to please our adversaries; let us
-go boldly to work. If we permit compromises in
-some practices the whole doctrine will fall, and the
-building be thrown down.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_470" id="Ref_470" href="#Foot_470">[470]</a></span>
-Farel thought as Calvin
-did. Perceiving this loophole for the two barbes, he
-urged the necessity of a frank confession of the truth.
-The members of the assembly, pricked in their consciences
-by the remembrance of their former backslidings,
-bound themselves to take no part henceforward
-in any Romish superstition, and to recognise as
-their pastor no priest of the pope's church. 'We
-will perform our worship,' they said, 'openly and
-publicly to give glory to God.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_470a" id="Ref_470a" href="#Foot_470">[470]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The two barbes, who were no doubt sincere, became
-more eloquent. The moment was come that was to
-decide the future. In their opinion, by establishing
-new principles they cast discredit on the men who had
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">{308}</a></span>
-hitherto directed the churches. No doubt it was
-culpable to take part in certain ceremonies with an
-unworthy object, but was it so when it was done for
-good ends? To break entirely with the Catholic
-Church would render the existence of the Waldenses
-impossible, or at least would provoke hostilities which
-would reduce them completely to silence....
-Farel replied with wonderful energy maintaining the
-rights of truth. He showed them that every compromise
-with error is a lie. The purity of the doctrine
-he professed, his elevated thoughts, the ardent affection
-expressed by his voice, his gestures, and his looks,
-electrified the Waldenses, and poured into their souls
-the holy fire with which his own was burning. These
-witnesses of the middle ages called to mind how the
-children of Israel having adopted the customs of
-people alien to the covenant of God, wept abundantly
-and exclaimed: '<i>We have trespassed against God!</i>'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_471" id="Ref_471" href="#Foot_471">[471]</a></span>
-The Waldenses felt like them, and desired to make
-amends for their sins. They drew up a brief confession
-in 17 articles, in conformity with the resolutions
-that had been adopted, and then said: 'We adhere
-with one accord to the present declaration, and we pray
-God that, of his great charity, nothing may divide us
-henceforward, and that, even when separated from one
-another, we may always remain united in the same
-spirit.' Then they signed their names.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_472" id="Ref_472" href="#Foot_472">[472]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The agreement was not however universal. During
-the six days' discussion several barbes and laymen
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">{309}</a></span>
-might have been seen standing apart, in some shady
-place, with gloomy air and uneasy look, talking together
-on the resolutions proposed to the synod. At
-the moment when every one was affixing his signature
-to the confession, the two leaders withheld theirs, and
-withdrew from the assembly.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=OLD WALDENSIAN MANUSCRIPTS.=</p>
-
-<p>During the discussion, and even before it, Farel
-and Saunier had had several conversations and conferences
-with the Waldenses, in the course of which the
-barbes had displayed their old manuscripts, handed
-down from the twelfth century, as they said: the
-<i>Noble Lesson</i>, the <i>Ancient Catechism</i>, the <i>Antichrist</i>, the
-<i>Purgatory</i>, and others. These writings bore the date of
-A.D. 1120, which probably was not disputed by Farel.
-One line of the <i>Noble Lesson</i> seems to indicate this as
-the period when it was composed.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_473" id="Ref_473" href="#Foot_473">[473]</a></span>
-Since then, however,
-more recent dates have been assigned to the
-other writings, especially to the <i>Antichrist</i>, and even to
-the <i>Noble Lesson</i>. In any case, however, these documents
-belong to a time anterior to the Reformation.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_474" id="Ref_474" href="#Foot_474">[474]</a></span>
-The Waldensians displayed with peculiar pride several
-manuscript copies of the Old and New Testament in the
-vulgar tongue. 'These books,' they said, 'were copied
-correctly by hand so long ago as to be beyond memory,
-and are to be seen in many families.' Farel and Saunier
-had received and handled these writings with emotion;
-they had turned over the leaves, and 'marvelling at
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">{310}</a></span>
-the heavenly favour accorded to so small a people,'
-had rendered thanks to the Lord because the Bible
-had never been taken from them.</p>
-
-<p>They did not stop there: Farel addressing the
-synod, represented to them that the copies being few
-in number they could only serve for a few persons:
-'Ah!' said he, 'if there are so many sects and heresies,
-so much trouble and confusion now in the world, it all
-comes from ignorance of the Word of God. It would
-therefore be exceedingly necessary for the honour of
-God and the well-being of all christians who know the
-French language, and for the destruction of all doctrines
-repugnant to the truth, to translate the Bible
-from the Hebrew and Greek tongues into French.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_475" id="Ref_475" href="#Foot_475">[475]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>No proposal could be more welcome to the Waldenses;
-their existence was due to their love of
-Scripture, and all their treatises and poems celebrated
-it:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">The Scriptures speak and we must believe.</div>
-<div class="verse">Look at the Scriptures from beginning to end.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_476" id="Ref_476" href="#Foot_476">[476]</a></span>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Thus spoke the <i>Noble Lesson</i>. They agreed 'joyfully
-and with good heart to Farel's demand, busying and
-exerting themselves to carry out the undertaking.'
-The proposition was voted enthusiastically, and the
-delighted reformers looked with emotion and joy at
-this faithful and constant people, to whom God had
-entrusted for so many ages the ark of the new covenant,
-and who were now inspired with fresh zeal for
-his service.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_477" id="Ref_477" href="#Foot_477">[477]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">{311}</a></div>
-
-<p>The hour had come for them to separate. John of
-Molines and Daniel of Valence went to Bohemia, and
-joined the Waldenses of that country; the pastors
-returned to their churches, the shepherds to their
-mountains, and the lords to their castles. Farel
-mounted his white horse, Saunier his black one;
-they shook hands with the Waldenses who surrounded
-them, and descending from Angrogne to La Tour,
-bade adieu to the valleys.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL'S VIEWS ON GENEVA.=</p>
-
-<p>Where should they go? What would be the next
-work undertaken by Farel?... Geneva had long
-occupied his thoughts, and as he crossed the Alps he
-had before him in spirit that city with its wants and
-its inhabitants, especially those who were beginning to
-'meditate on Jesus Christ.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_478" id="Ref_478" href="#Foot_478">[478]</a></span>
-Already, before his departure
-for Italy, Farel had conceived the plan of
-stopping at Geneva on his return, and with that intent
-had even received from my lords of Berne some letters
-of introduction addressed to the leading Huguenots.
-'I will go to them now,' he said, 'I will speak to them,
-even if there is nobody that will hear me.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_479" id="Ref_479" href="#Foot_479">[479]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This idea, which never quitted him, was the beginning
-of the Reformation of Geneva.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_446" id="Foot_446" href="#Ref_446">[446]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 2.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_447" id="Foot_447" href="#Ref_447">[447]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Leger, <i>Hist. des Eglises Vaudoises</i>, p. 3.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_448" id="Foot_448" href="#Ref_448">[448]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Que Christ es la nostra vita, e verita, e paçs, e justitia, e
-pastor.' <i>Confession de Foi des Vaudois.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_449" id="Foot_449" href="#Ref_449">[449]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Enayma lo fum vai derant lo fuoc.'—<i>L'Antichrist.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_450" id="Foot_450" href="#Ref_450">[450]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Priva lo poble de l'espiritual e sacramental
-manjament.'—<i>L'Antichrist.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_451" id="Foot_451" href="#Ref_451">[451]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'El eyra, e persec, e acaisonna, roba e mortifica li membre de
-Christ.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_452" id="Foot_452" href="#Ref_452">[452]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Lo Segnor Jesus occi aquest felon.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_453" id="Foot_453" href="#Ref_453">[453]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Letter from Œcolampadius, 13 Oct. 1530.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_454" id="Foot_454" href="#Ref_454">[454]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Anno 1170.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_455" id="Foot_455" href="#Ref_455">[455]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Suis omnibus venditis, officium apostolarum usurpavit.'—Stephanus
-de Barbone, a dominican monk of Lyons, in 1225.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_456" id="Foot_456" href="#Ref_456">[456]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Aliqui enim dicunt quod duraverit a tempore Sylvestri, aliqui a
-tempore apostolorum.'—Reinerius, 1250, <i>contra Waldenses</i>, ch. iv.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_457" id="Foot_457" href="#Ref_457">[457]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Scultet, ii. p. 294. Ruchat, ii. p. 320.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_458" id="Foot_458" href="#Ref_458">[458]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Latin paper of the barbes, 15th question. Ruchat, ii. p. 324.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_459" id="Foot_459" href="#Ref_459">[459]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nisi per spiritum sanctum reparemur, nihil vel velimus vel agamus
-boni.'—<i>Œcolampadii Confessio</i>, art. 1.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_460" id="Foot_460" href="#Ref_460">[460]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See the histories of Léger, Perrin, Muston, Monastier, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_461" id="Foot_461" href="#Ref_461">[461]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ancillon.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_462" id="Foot_462" href="#Ref_462">[462]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MSS. Léger, 2me partie, p. 7, etc. Monastier, i. pp. 167,
-201. Kirchhofer, <i>Farel's Leben</i>, p. 153.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_463" id="Foot_463" href="#Ref_463">[463]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Letter of 26 July 1532. Choupard MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_464" id="Foot_464" href="#Ref_464">[464]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Gilles, p. 40. Monastier, i. p. 201. We learn from the <i>Apologie
-du translateur</i> at the beginning of Olivetan's Bible (1535) that
-Olivetan did not go into the valleys as some have believed; he speaks of
-two deputies only under the pseudonyms of <i>Hilerme Cusemeth</i>
-(Guillaume Farel) and <i>Antoine Almeutes</i> ([Greek: almeutês],
-salter, Saunier). As for the third, whom he calls <i>Cephas
-Chlorotes</i>, if he addressed the <i>Apologie</i> to him also, it was
-not because he had been to Angrogne, but because he had joined the other
-two in asking him to undertake that edition of the Bible. This Cephas
-Chlorotes is evidently Peter Viret ([Greek: chlôros], virens).</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_465" id="Foot_465" href="#Ref_465">[465]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Las festas et las vigilias de li sanet, e l'aiga laqual dison
-benieta, &amp;c.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_466" id="Foot_466" href="#Ref_466">[466]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Léger, <i>Confession de Foi des Vaudois</i>, p. 23, verso;
-<i>Traité de l'Antichrist</i>, p. 75.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_467" id="Foot_467" href="#Ref_467">[467]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Léger, <i>Briève Confession de Foi</i> (1532), p. 95.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_468" id="Foot_468" href="#Ref_468">[468]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Léger, <i>Briève Confession</i>, p. 95, verso.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_469" id="Foot_469" href="#Ref_469">[469]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_470" id="Foot_470" href="#Ref_470">[470]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Gilles, <i>History of the Churches of Piedmont</i>, p. 30.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_471" id="Foot_471" href="#Ref_471">[471]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Léger, <i>Hist. des Eglises Vaudoises</i>, p. 35. Ezra, x.;
-Nehemiah, ix. x.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_472" id="Foot_472" href="#Ref_472">[472]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-This <i>Briève Confession</i> is in the library of the University
-of Cambridge. Léger, p. 95; Muston, <i>Hist. des Vaudois</i>, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_473" id="Foot_473" href="#Ref_473">[473]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ben ha mil e cent anez compli entierament; line 6.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_474" id="Foot_474" href="#Ref_474">[474]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See the researches into the Cambridge MSS. and the German works of
-Dieckhoff and Zezschwitz. The latter author is of opinion that the
-<i>Waldensian Catechism</i>, the <i>Antichrist</i>, and other writings,
-belong to the end of the fifteenth and the beginning of the sixteenth
-century. <i>Catechisms of the Waldenses and Bohemian Brethren</i> (in
-German), Erlangen, 1863.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_475" id="Foot_475" href="#Ref_475">[475]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Olivetan's Bible: <i>Apologie du translateur</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_476" id="Foot_476" href="#Ref_476">[476]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-fn">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="verse">"Ma l'Escriptura di, e nos creire o deven."—<i>Nobla Leycon</i>, l. 19.</div>
-<div class="verse">"Regarde l'Escriptura del fin commenczamente."—Ib. l. 23.</div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_477" id="Foot_477" href="#Ref_477">[477]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Gilles, Léger; Muston, Monastier.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_478" id="Foot_478" href="#Ref_478">[478]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Vol. II. p. 583.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_479" id="Foot_479" href="#Ref_479">[479]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 6. Choupard and Roset, MSS.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">{312}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER VI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">PLANS OF THE EMPEROR, THE DUKE OF SAVOY,
- AND THE BISHOP AGAINST GENEVA.<br />
- (1530-1532.)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">JUST when the Gospel was about to enter Geneva
-with Farel and Saunier, the bishop-prince was
-making new exertions to recover his power. A crisis
-was approaching: a decisive step must be taken. Which
-shall have supremacy in the church—the bulls of the
-pope or the Scriptures of God? Which shall have
-supremacy in the state—slavery or liberty? Great
-powers had determined to oppress this little city; but
-humble servants of God were about to enter it one
-after another, and planting there the standard of
-Christ, secure the victory to independence and the
-Gospel.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=BELLEGARDE'S AUDIENCE WITH CHARLES.=</p>
-
-<p>The Duke of Savoy, desiring to inflict a fatal
-blow on Geneva, had invoked the co-operation of the
-most powerful monarchs of Europe, and despatched
-to Charles V., then at the diet of Augsburg, the
-usual minister of his tyranny, the man whom he
-had employed to put Levrier to death, and to capture
-Bonivard. As soon as Bellegarde reached
-Augsburg (11th September 1530) he waited on the
-Sire de Montfalconet, who at that time discharged
-the office of grand equerry to His Majesty, and who
-'had great credit with the emperor, so that, nothing
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">{313}</a></span>
-was kept secret from him.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_480" id="Ref_480" href="#Foot_480">[480]</a></span>
-Enemies whom the
-duke had at the imperial court had created a very
-unfavourable impression of this prince; Bellegarde
-accordingly gave a pension of 300 crowns to the
-equerry, who earnt them under the circumstances we
-are describing, by following the envoy's instructions.
-The latter, being impatient to draw the emperor into
-the plans concocted for seizing Geneva, begged Montfalconet
-to ask his master at what hour he would be
-pleased 'to permit him to pay his respects.' 'Tell
-him,' said Charles, who had on his hands all the affairs
-of protestantism and Germany, 'tell him that in consequence
-of my many engagements he must wait a
-couple of days.' Bellegarde did so, and on the third
-morning attended punctually in the emperor's chamber.
-Very impatient to see the puissant monarch, he
-was rehearsing what he had to tell him about Geneva,
-when instead of His Majesty he saw Montfalconet
-enter the room alone with this message: 'The emperor
-desires me to say that for the present you must only
-hand in his highness's letter, as well as that from his
-most dread lady; and he will give you an audience
-directly after.' The ambassador was much vexed at
-the delay; but to console him the equerry confidentially
-informed him of the great trouble the protestants
-of Germany were giving Charles. 'I assure you the
-emperor is in such a condition,' he said, 'that it is impossible
-for him to bring the affairs of the empire into
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">{314}</a></span>
-anything like a reasonable state. He has therefore
-forsaken the counsels of men to have recourse to the
-Lord only. As the <i>help</i> of the world fails me, said
-His Majesty this morning (14th September), I hope
-Divine Providence will come to my assistance. The
-emperor then confessed, and retired into the oratory
-of the palace to receive the sacrament. He has also
-ordered that prestations (confessions, communions,
-and prayers) should be made in every place where
-there are any devout people.'</p>
-
-<p>While these two individuals were talking Charles
-came out of his oratory. M. de Bellegarde made him
-a low bow, humbly presented him the compliments of
-the duke and duchess, and handed him the letters.
-The emperor, who was busy, told him to return the
-next morning at his levée. Bellegarde did not fail,
-and Charles received him with much kindness. 'Give
-me news of his highness's health,' he said, 'and also of
-madam my good sister (Duchess Beatrice), and of my
-nephew monsieur their son.' Bellegarde answered his
-questions, and then made all the communications to
-the emperor with which the duke had charged him.
-He hoped the emperor would immediately enter into
-conversation with him about the plans formed against
-Geneva, but it was not so. 'I am very glad,' said
-Charles, 'that the duke has sent you to me; but, considering
-my great occupations, be so good as to draw
-up a memoir of what you think most expedient for the
-despatch of the business that brings you here, and then
-deliver it to my lord Grandvelle.'</p>
-
-<p>Here was a fresh delay. The minister's answer,
-considering the numerous offices he filled, had to be
-waited for; yet Bellegarde spoke seven times with
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">{315}</a></span>
-Charles V., 'each time giving his majesty some little
-information about the duke's affairs.' But the emperor,
-while appearing to listen to the disputes between
-Geneva and Turin, frequently had his thoughts elsewhere.
-He was tormented with the state of the empire,
-and did not conceal it from his brother-in-law's envoy.
-'I do not mean,' he said one day to Bellegarde, 'that
-the duke shall be either dismissed or ejected; but the
-diet (of Augsburg) is all in confusion and broken up.
-I have no great hopes.... It is a long while since I
-have found the princes of Germany thus dilly-dallying,
-putting me off from day to day, so that I am quite out
-of hope, and my head is confused.... Ah! if it pleased
-God that other princes were of my opinion....
-Christendom would not be in such confusion.' These
-are the very words his majesty was pleased to use,
-adds Bellegarde in his memoir. He was surprised at
-them. That man who knew so well how to put one
-of his adversaries in prison and another to death, was
-astonished that so mighty a prince as Charles should
-not adopt an equally simple and expeditious method.
-He ventured to give the emperor a little advice. He
-had learnt that the strength of the protestants was in
-their union. 'Sire,' he said, 'break up the alliances,
-as well past as future, which have been formed to your
-great prejudice, and whose consequences are so dangerous.'—'At
-present,' said Charles, 'there is no time.
-I cannot now reduce the princes and cities of Germany
-that are opposed to the faith; but I am determined not
-to abandon the work, and when I have completed it,
-what concerns his highness (be sure you tell him) will
-not be forgotten.' This then was Charles's plan: first
-to crush the protestants of Germany, and then the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">{316}</a></span>
-huguenots of Geneva. In his opinion these were as
-dangerous for the Latin races as the former for the
-Germans.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE EMPEROR'S ANSWER.=</p>
-
-<p>At last, on the 6th October, Grandvelle, chancellor
-of the empire (he was the father of the famous cardinal),
-accompanied by the commander&nbsp;——,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_481" id="Ref_481" href="#Foot_481">[481]</a></span>
-had an interview
-with Bellegarde, and gave him the emperor's answer.
-'With respect to Geneva, his majesty thinks that to
-avoid falling into the danger which the duke has at
-all times feared and avoided, no part or parcel of his
-states must become Swiss. You must take all the
-more precaution, because the nature of the cantons is
-always to extend and grow larger, and the rebellion
-and stiff-necked obstinacy of messieurs of Geneva will
-incline them to plunge through despair into this
-accursed error.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_482" id="Ref_482" href="#Foot_482">[482]</a></span>
-That would cause loss and damage
-to the duke, and little credit to the emperor, considering
-that Geneva is a fief of the empire. Here is the
-expedient the emperor has hit upon. He orders both
-the duke and Geneva to lay before him within two
-months their titles, rights, and privileges, and his
-majesty will then decide. As for the prelates, the
-bishop, and the canons, the emperor recommends both
-them and the duke to bring their quarrels to an end.
-By so doing the duke will get rid of a great load of
-trouble, and will have the prelates better under his
-direction and obedience.' After a few other communications,
-the chancellor withdrew with the
-commander, and Bellegarde immediately sent off a
-despatch conveying this decision to the duke.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">{317}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=BELLEGARDE'S LETTER.=</p>
-
-<p>The Sieur de Bellegarde left Augsburg not long
-after, and returned to Turin, determined to urge his
-master more than ever to destroy independence and
-the Reformation in Geneva at one blow. What he
-had seen at Augsburg, and the dangers with which
-German protestantism threatened the supremacy of the
-pope and of the emperor, had increased his zeal. The
-institutions of the middle ages seem to have had at
-that time no friend more fanatical and no champion
-more zealous than the active, intelligent, devoted, cruel
-courtier who had put Levrier to death at the castle of
-Bonne. 'My lord,' he said to the duke, 'consider
-the peril to which you are exposed in this business of
-Geneva, either because of the neighbours who are so
-near, and are ravening wolves, or because of the little
-faith the world now has in all the qualities, sound
-right, and reasons a man may have. What will happen
-if we do not remain masters in the struggle with this
-new sect? What vexations, losses, and cares, you
-know that better than I do. They want to keep you in
-good humour, my lord, but it is only the better to
-make game of you, and to increase at your expense, on
-this side of the mountains or on that—everywhere, in
-fact. You have documents in your chamber to show
-that the Genevans used to pay you toll and subsidy;
-that they helped to portion the daughters of your
-house; and, further, that they gave your predecessors
-aid in time of war, and that in time of peace they appealed
-to them in their suits and sentences.... And
-now what have they done? They have deprived you of
-the vidamy, they have taken from you the castle on the
-island, they have committed much injustice to the prejudice
-of your rights, and have been guilty of murder
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_318" id="Page_318">{318}</a></span>
-and other intolerable evils.... Worse still ... they
-are joining <i>that perverse sect</i> in order to complete their
-ruin.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=HIS PLANS AGAINST GENEVA.=</p>
-
-<p>'But we shall soon put an end to it all, my lord.
-You have an emperor at your service on whom everything
-depends. Will they dare be wicked and rebellious
-in his presence?... Firstly, the emperor will
-replace them under your authority, as you and your
-ancestors had them.... Next, for their rebellion and
-the crimes they have committed, he will condemn them
-to be deprived of some privilege—of that which is most
-injurious to you. Finally, he will build for you, for
-your government, a castle or fortress in the city, in
-whatever part you like, and exact from the Genevans
-for the support of the garrison a tax to be paid every
-year. The city will thus be kept well in subjection.
-As for the bishops, the emperor will command them to
-pay you the respect which belongs to the holy empire,
-as being its representative; he will order them to obey
-you like himself, and will restore them to all obedience
-towards you ... considering also that <i>the time approaches</i>
-for their <i>general reformation, as is but reasonable</i>.
-And if the said people of Geneva will not
-obey (as their unreason may incline them) the emperor
-will put them under the ban of the empire as rebels,
-and you shall seize them.... <i>You will make them
-your subjects entirely, confiscating all their privileges and
-possessions</i>; and thus you will be for ever established
-rightfully in Geneva.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_483" id="Ref_483" href="#Foot_483">[483]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>We should not perhaps have quoted the words of
-the Sieur de Bellegarde at such length, if the document
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_319" id="Page_319">{319}</a></span>
-from which they are extracted had not been hitherto
-unknown. His allegations were false. No presents
-had ever been made by the city of Geneva to the
-dukes of Savoy without a special act declaring that the
-liberality was spontaneous and without prejudice for
-the future. The vidamy was a fief conferred by the
-bishop, which made the holder of it an officer of the
-latter. Lastly, the dukes of Savoy were not vicars of
-the emperor. But if Bellegarde's allegations as to the
-past were false, his schemes as to the future were
-outrageous. A strong fortress shall be built in Geneva,
-the citizens shall pay the garrison, and a brutal serfdom
-shall withdraw them from that <i>perverse sect</i> and
-keep them for ever in strict obedience under the yoke
-of their master! As for the bishops, they shall be
-compelled to obey the duke, especially as the time of
-<i>their general reformation</i> approaches! It would appear,
-then, that in the sixteenth century already <i>reason</i> (as
-Bellegarde says) demanded the abolition of the temporal
-power of ecclesiastical princes. Were they more
-advanced then than in our days? I think not. This
-rude policy aimed merely at substituting the despotism
-of princes for the despotism of bishops, as being
-stricter and more effectual. Lastly—the end crowns
-the work—if the Genevans resist, they shall be conquered,
-and all their power and property confiscated.
-In this manner, concludes the advocate of these revolutionary
-measures, the rights of his master will be for
-ever secured. This is what Geneva had to expect
-from Savoy; what had it to hope from the bishop?</p>
-
-<p>Pierre de la Baume, indignant at the duke's pretensions,
-had said to him one day proudly: 'I am subject
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_320" id="Page_320">{320}</a></span>
-only to the pope.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_484" id="Ref_484" href="#Foot_484">[484]</a></span>
-He had lately softened down, in
-appearance at least, and was drawing nearer to Savoy,
-so that the Genevans said: 'Our prince is reconciled
-with our enemy.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_485" id="Ref_485" href="#Foot_485">[485]</a></span>
-We are now transported into
-quite another sphere. If the duke wished to reign by
-force, the bishop desired to use stratagem. The pastor
-of Geneva was not in a position to build a fortress in
-the middle of the city; it was by means of negotiations
-and intrigues that he would crush the Reformation
-and liberty. The lion was succeeded by the serpent.
-Pierre de la Baume, knowing the influence Besançon
-Hugues had over his fellow-citizens, solicited his
-help. He wrote to him, during the last year of
-Besançon's life, a series of letters we have also had
-the good fortune to discover.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_486" id="Ref_486" href="#Foot_486">[486]</a></span>
-The bishop and the
-citizen of Geneva were not such good friends as they
-had been. The former addressed many reproaches to
-the latter, either because Hugues was dissatisfied on
-political grounds, or perhaps because his catholicism
-had cooled down a little in his frequent interviews
-with the reformed of Berne.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BISHOP'S SECRETARY IN GENEVA.=</p>
-
-<p>On the 11th of April 1532, the bishop, then at
-Arbois, impatient to recover his former power in
-Geneva, resolved to open the campaign, and wrote to
-Hugues: 'Besançon, I have always done for you everything
-that I could; you have seen it by the results; I
-do not speak to reproach you, but I am astonished that
-you should requite me so ill. If you had as good an
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_321" id="Page_321">{321}</a></span>
-affection for me, as I have given you opportunity, you
-would have <i>barked</i> (aboyé) so well, that my authority
-would not have fallen to its present depression, and
-I should not have the trouble, which I must take, of
-restoring it. I well know the excuses that you can
-make.... None is so deaf as he that will not hear.
-Nevertheless I have trusted in you, and I still trust in
-your well-known fidelity. So act, I pray, that I may
-have cause to continue it. In a little time I shall send
-one of my people to Geneva on business; you will
-hear the rest from him. I pray God that He will give
-you, Besançon, all that you desire.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_487" id="Ref_487" href="#Foot_487">[487]</a></span>
-Ten days later, Machard, the bishop's secretary, came from Arbois to
-Geneva, charged with a political mission, and bearer of
-another letter for Hugues, which, either on account of
-the delicate matters to which it related, or because
-Machard was to explain them verbally, is rather obscure.
-Hugues hastened to read the prelate's missive:
-'I send my secretary,' said De la Baume, 'on certain
-business, which I have instructed him to communicate
-to you first. You will give credit to what he says in
-my name as if I said it myself. I desire that the
-affair in question may come to a good end, in order to
-gratify the princes from whom it proceeds (the emperor
-and the duke, no doubt). Set a willing hand
-to it, so that there may be friendly relations between
-me and my subjects and the said princes, which is a
-thing of no trifling consequence to all the republic.'</p>
-
-<p>Hugues did not care to enter into the plans formed
-by the bishop in accord with the princes; so that when
-Machard returned to Arbois and made his report, his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_322" id="Page_322">{322}</a></span>
-master was much annoyed. He complained of the
-excessive boldness and strange insubordination of
-the Genevans, and wrote bitterly to the ex-syndic.
-'Besançon,' he said, 'the news that you have given me
-of Berne are a little compensation for the insolence
-and ill practices that you and my subjects show
-towards my officers, usurping my jurisdiction under
-the shelter of certain words that you have uttered
-before the general council.... I intend to uphold
-this same jurisdiction in opposition to you.... Indeed
-I have done so against greater folks.... I hope that
-you will return to your duty and become my subjects
-once more. That will give me the opportunity of
-being a good master. Otherwise do not trust to me....
-Matters shall not remain where you have left
-them. Communicate this to my subjects, if need
-be.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BISHOP'S ANGER.=</p>
-
-<p>The bishop was angry with Geneva, as this letter
-shows—sometimes more, sometimes less, but always
-restless and agitated. One day he was told of something
-Hugues had said which delighted him; not long
-after he would hear of something the Genevans had done
-that increased his anger. About the 13th May when
-he was informed that Hugues had displayed a very
-good feeling towards him, the prelate was quite delighted,
-and wrote to him: 'I have been informed of
-your intention to declare everywhere the wrong that
-my subjects are doing me. You will show me, I hope,
-by good actions, when I shall require it of you, that
-you are not a man of <i>two words</i>.' But ere long other
-tidings reached the bishop. He was filled with trouble,
-fear, and pain; and gave way to all the emotions of a
-restless and suspicious policy. He had fits of anger;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_323" id="Page_323">{323}</a></span>
-he became rash, violent; then he would suddenly collapse;
-he had neither strength, feeling, nor courage.
-In general, however, it was indignation that prevailed
-in him. Not one of his officers or of the canons (for
-there was a collegiate church at Arbois) understood
-him, or consoled him, or encouraged him. He was
-alone ... and vented his agitation in his apartments
-or in his gardens. 'I think the answers made by my
-subjects very strange,' he said, 'I should be sorry to
-be angry with them.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_488" id="Ref_488" href="#Foot_488">[488]</a></span>
-A few days later he wrote:
-'I am quite amazed.... It seems that my subjects
-do not understand their business.... If they do not
-mend, I shall be forced to proceed in another way ...
-which will displease me.... It seems to me that they
-would do well to obey their lord, and not act the
-prince.... It cannot last.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_489" id="Ref_489" href="#Foot_489">[489]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=LETTER TO HUGUES.=</p>
-
-<p>But it did last. Geneva, where they were listening
-to Olivetan, where they were placarding everywhere,
-by the side of the pardon of Rome, 'the great general
-pardon' of Jesus Christ, where the council unanimously
-ordered the Gospel to be preached 'according to the
-truth, without any mixture of fable;'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_490" id="Ref_490" href="#Foot_490">[490]</a></span>—Geneva,
-whatever Pierre de la Baume might say or do, was separating
-from the bishop and the pope. On the 3d September
-(1532), the bishop, more exasperated than ever, wrote
-again to Besançon Hugues, but with an increase of
-ill-humour. 'I am displeased with the way my subjects
-treat me from day to day, declaring that they
-will rise against my authority.... That will last as
-long as it can.... I have always been long-suffering;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_324" id="Page_324">{324}</a></span>
-but now it would be better for me to be angry....
-If I attempt to do anything from which the Genevans
-will reap neither pleasure nor profit ... they must
-not be surprised.... Certainly I have little to
-thank my servants or my friends for serving me so
-badly.... I think, Besançon, that you desire what
-is right, but I should like to see the fruits. The
-people always find excuses in you.... They say that
-I have allowed their proceedings.... I do not understand
-that <i>dance</i>, and I affirm that I said nothing
-with that intention, from which may God keep them.</p>
-
-<div class="foot">
-<div class="right1">'<span class="smc">The Bishop of Geneva.</span>'<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_491" id="Ref_491" href="#Foot_491">[491]</a></span></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>It was reported at Geneva that the bishop was
-willing to make some concessions, that he had said so
-privately, and the huguenots took advantage of it to
-assert their independence. On the 28th November
-Pierre de la Baume wrote to Besançon Hugues from the
-Tour de Mai: 'Besançon, I have seen what you wrote
-touching the mode of proceeding against my authority
-and to the detriment of my church. I know whence
-that comes ... except that I have always been
-given to understand that, according to the common
-opinion, my subjects would have been much better
-guided and would have obeyed me better than they
-have done, if you had been willing to set your hand
-to it, as you had promised me, endeavouring to procure
-the peace of the city, which suffers the greatest
-loss on my part. As to what you write about being
-under my displeasure, the only regret I feel as regards
-you is that you have not been willing to do what you
-promised. The recompense I made you was to the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_325" id="Page_325">{325}</a></span>
-end that you might keep my possessions in peace,
-but they are more than ever in war. It is entirely
-your fault if my jurisdiction is not still kept up.
-I write to you in order that you may perform your
-duty.... You will do me a pleasure: I would not
-have so many words to be without result....
-As for me I am accustomed to do <i>something vigorously</i>....
-<i>I shall consider what it must be.</i>'</p>
-
-<p>Such are the threatening words which close the
-correspondence of Pierre de la Baume with Besançon
-Hugues. Until now all traces of this great citizen
-had been lost after the 26th September 1532. If the
-letter we have just given belongs to this year, that
-limit would be shortened by two months. He must
-have died between the 28th November 1532 and the
-18th February 1533.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_492" id="Ref_492" href="#Foot_492">[492]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Thus the bishop, continually engrossed with Geneva,
-thought of nothing but recovering his former power.
-But the independence of that city had enemies more
-formidable still. Charles V. had ordered the Genevans
-to drive the Reformation from their walls. 'Full of
-anxiety for your soul's health,' he wrote to them,
-'and learning that certain new opinions and sects are
-beginning to swarm among you,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_493" id="Ref_493" href="#Foot_493">[493]</a></span>
-we exhort you
-seriously not to admit them, to extirpate them, and
-to set about it with the utmost diligence, not to permit
-anything to be taught among you in the leastwise
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_326" id="Page_326">{326}</a></span>
-opposed to the decrees and traditions of your ancestors;
-on the contrary, to preserve with unshaken
-constancy the faith, rites, and ceremonies that you
-have received from your fathers. You will thus
-receive a worthy reward from Almighty God, and will
-merit from us every sort of gratitude.' Geneva had
-not obeyed the orders of the puissant emperor. The
-affairs of Germany had at first prevented him from
-constraining the little city to follow his sovereign
-orders, which even the barbarous tribes of the new
-world obeyed. But now the treaty of Nuremberg
-was signed; Charles having come to terms with the
-protestants of Germany might easily keep the promise
-he had made to his brother-in-law through Bellegarde,
-and assist him against the huguenots of Geneva.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FREEDOM IN SIGHT.=</p>
-
-<p>The perfidious murderer of Levrier was beginning
-to hope that it would be possible to found a stronghold
-in Geneva, with its ditches and lofty walls,
-flanked with towers and bastions, and a strong garrison
-of halberdiers, arquebusiers, and artillerymen, who
-would keep the city and country in complete subjection
-under the yoke of their master. When Gessler
-was sent in the name of Austria to destroy the
-liberties of the Swiss, did he not build a fortress above
-Altorf—<i>Zwing-Uri</i>, the yoke of Uri? and had not the
-free children of those mountains to atone for the
-smallest sparks of independence by long and costly
-imprisonment in gloomy dungeons? Had not Pharaoh
-set the example in Egypt?... Why should not they
-do the same to subdue the huguenots? Fortresses,
-cannons, arquebusses, chains ... this was what
-Geneva had to expect. Before any great length of
-time the Genevans were really to see a formidable force
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_327" id="Page_327">{327}</a></span>
-marching against them, commissioned to carry out the
-plans of the emperor and the duke. But God's providence
-had always kept the city, and at this very
-moment a new force, the pledge of liberty, was about
-to be given it. The Gospel of the Son of God was
-about to enter its walls. But <i>he whom the Son maketh
-free, shall be free indeed</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_480" id="Foot_480" href="#Ref_480">[480]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-We have found among the archives at Turin (No. 49, bundle 12) the
-<i>Mémoire de M. de Bellegarde au sujet de l'audience qu'il a eue de
-S.M. Impériale touchant les différends que S. A. avait avec ceux de
-Genève</i>. This manuscript of about 25 pages has supplied us with the
-particulars in the text.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_481" id="Foot_481" href="#Ref_481">[481]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The name is illegible in the manuscript, but it looks like
-<i>Conmes</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_482" id="Foot_482" href="#Ref_482">[482]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Is the Reformation or union with Switzerland meant here? probably
-both of them.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_483" id="Foot_483" href="#Ref_483">[483]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-MS. <i>Memoir of Bellegarde</i>, Turin Archives.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_484" id="Foot_484" href="#Ref_484">[484]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Turin Archives, No. 19, bundle 12.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_485" id="Foot_485" href="#Ref_485">[485]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. 12th category, bundle 3.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_486" id="Foot_486" href="#Ref_486">[486]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. 12th category, bundle 4. The handwriting is almost as
-illegible as that of Bellegarde's memoir.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_487" id="Foot_487" href="#Ref_487">[487]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Turin Archives.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_488" id="Foot_488" href="#Ref_488">[488]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Letter dated the eve of Pentecost.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_489" id="Foot_489" href="#Ref_489">[489]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Dated 1st July.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_490" id="Foot_490" href="#Ref_490">[490]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Vol. II. book III. chap. xv. pp. 615-634.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_491" id="Foot_491" href="#Ref_491">[491]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Turin Archives.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_492" id="Foot_492" href="#Ref_492">[492]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-In a document at Basle under the latter date, the <i>late</i>
-(feu) Besançon Hugues is mentioned. Galiffe, <i>Hugues</i>, p. 459.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_493" id="Foot_493" href="#Ref_493">[493]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Novas quasdam opiniones et sectas apud vos pullulare
-cœpisse.'—Turin Archives. We found this letter, which appears to have
-been hitherto unknown, in the national archives at Turin. Geneva, bundle
-12, No. 47.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_328" id="Page_328">{328}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER VII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE REFORMERS AND THE REFORMATION ENTER GENEVA.<br />
- (<span class="smc">October 1532.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">ON one fine autumn day (2nd October), Farel and
-Saunier 'having finished their journey through
-Piedmont,' reached that beautiful neighbourhood
-where the Alps and the Jura, drawing near each
-other, form a rich valley, in the midst of which calmly
-sleep the pure waters of an azure lake. They soon
-distinguished the three old towers of the cathedral of
-Geneva rising high above the houses. They pressed
-their horses, whose speed was relaxed through fatigue,
-and entered the city of the huguenots. They had
-been directed to the Tour Percée,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_494" id="Ref_494" href="#Foot_494">[494]</a></span>
-which they found
-in a street situated on the left bank of the Rhone, and
-bearing its name. They stopped in front of the inn,
-dismounted from their horses, spoke to the landlord,
-and took up their quarters under his roof.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL CONSULTS WITH OLIVETAN.=</p>
-
-<p>One of their first thoughts, after resting themselves,
-was to inform Robert Olivetan of their arrival.
-Calvin's cousin, who was still tutor to Jean Chautemps'
-children, hastened to them, delighted at the
-coming of his brethren. Farel desired to consult
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_329" id="Page_329">{329}</a></span>
-with him on the best means of advancing the knowledge
-of the Gospel in Geneva; but another idea had
-also occupied him during his journey. Knowing how
-learned Olivetan was in Greek and Hebrew, he had cast
-his eyes on him to make the translation of the Bible
-which the Waldensian synod had decided upon. Farel
-having spoken to him about it, Olivetan exclaimed in
-alarm: 'I cannot accept such a commission, considering
-the great difficulty of the work and my own weakness.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_495" id="Ref_495" href="#Foot_495">[495]</a></span>
-Farel did not admit the excuse, and continued
-to solicit his friend, who would not give way.
-'You could do this work much better yourself,' he
-said to the travellers. But Farel believed that God
-gives every man a calling for which He has prepared
-him, and that Olivetan was a scholar while he was an
-evangelist. 'God has not given me leisure,' said
-Farel, 'He calls me to another work. He wills me
-to sow the pure seed of the Word in His field, and
-water it and make it flourish like the garden of Eden.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_496" id="Ref_496" href="#Foot_496">[496]</a></span>
-He dropped the subject, however, in order to talk with
-Olivetan about the evangelisation of Geneva.</p>
-
-<p>Chautemps' tutor, who had so often sunk under
-the weight of his task, and so earnestly called for a
-stronger hand, looked upon Farel as one sent from
-heaven. But how to begin? The evangelist of Orbe
-took from his pocket the letters given him at Berne
-for some of the chief huguenots. Olivetan saw that a
-door was opening for the Gospel, and without loss of
-time the two friends went out to deliver the letters to
-their addresses. Olivetan gave Farel the information
-he required, and explained to him that although some
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_330" id="Page_330">{330}</a></span>
-of those to whom he was introduced inclined to the
-side of the Gospel, the majority were content to throw
-off the Romish superstitions, and were simply true
-patriots.</p>
-
-<p>The huguenots having opened the letters that Farel
-presented, found that the bearer was William Farel,
-preacher of the Gospel, and that their Bernese friends
-invited them to hear him speak. This was great
-news. No name was better known than Farel's in
-the districts bathed by the lakes of Geneva, Morat,
-Bienne, and Neuchatel. The huguenots, delighted
-to see him, looked attentively at him, and some of
-them reflected on such an unexpected incident, which
-religious and political motives rendered most important
-in their eyes. Friends of the Reformation had
-often told them that the independence of Geneva would
-never be secure until the dominion of the bishop
-and the pope had given place to that of the Gospel,
-and now the Gospel was knocking at their doors in
-the person of Farel. Was it not he who had filled
-Aigle, Morat, Neuchatel, Valengin, Orbe, and Grandson
-with the evangelical doctrine? Political men
-hoped that at his voice the temporal dominion of the
-church would fall, and the phantoms of the middle
-ages, which still entangled liberty, would flee away in
-alarm to distant hiding-places. Religious men, who
-had found pleasure in the words of Am Thun, of
-Olivetan, and of the Gospel more especially, expected
-that this great preacher would make the light of
-heaven to shine in their hearts. All, therefore, expressed
-themselves ready to hear him,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_497" id="Ref_497" href="#Foot_497">[497]</a></span>
-and Farel,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_331" id="Page_331">{331}</a></span>
-saying he should be happy to see them at his inn,
-took his leave.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=HUGUENOTS GO TO HEAR FAREL.=</p>
-
-<p>The news of the reformer's arrival spread through
-the city in a moment.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_498" id="Ref_498" href="#Foot_498">[498]</a></span>
-'Let us go and hear him,'
-said the huguenots; 'it is the man they call <i>the
-scourge of the little priests</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_499" id="Ref_499" href="#Foot_499">[499]</a></span>
-But the nuns, bigots, and
-friars were filled with anger. 'A shabby little
-preacher,' said the sisters of St. Claire; 'one Master
-William, a native of Gap in Dauphiny, has just arrived in the city.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_500" id="Ref_500" href="#Foot_500">[500]</a></span>
-Every one prepared for the morrow.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning of the 3d of October, the most
-notable of the huguenots left their houses to go to
-the Tour Perce. They went singly, or at the most
-two or three together, with a certain fear. One after
-another the following persons might have been seen
-entering the inn: the amiable and active Ami Porral,
-one of the syndics of the year; Baudichon de la Maison
-Neuve, who had stuck up the 'Great Pardon of God;'
-syndic Robert Vandel and his brother Pierre—all
-these intimate acquaintances of the bishop; Claude
-Roset, secretary of state in the following year, and
-father of the chronicler; syndic Claude Savoy, one of
-the most zealous defenders of independence; Jean
-Chautemps, Olivetan's patron; Dominic Arlod, afterwards
-syndic; Stephen Dada, descended from an
-illustrious Milanese family, and properly called
-d'Adda, from the city of that name; Claude Salomon,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_332" id="Page_332">{332}</a></span>
-the friend of the poor and the sick; Claude Bernard;
-Jean Goulaz, who had torn down the bill of the
-Romish jubilee from the pillar of the cathedral; Jean
-Sourd, Claude de Genève, and lastly, the energetic
-Ami Perrin, who several times syndic, captain-general,
-and ambassador of the Republic at Paris, showed
-much zeal for the Reformation at first, but afterwards
-incurred severe reproach.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_501" id="Ref_501" href="#Foot_501">[501]</a></span>
-These citizens, who were
-the <i>élite</i> of Geneva, with several other persons of
-less distinction, arrived at the reformers' lodgings.
-The landlord of the Tour Perce introduced them into
-a private room where they found Farel and Saunier.
-The conversation began.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=HE SHOWS THEM THEIR DEFICIENCIES.=</p>
-
-<p>The two evangelists were full of esteem for the
-men who were struggling with such courage for independence
-and liberty against powerful enemies.
-They were not slow, however, to observe that if, in a
-political light, they held the most elevated sentiments,
-there were great deficiencies in them in a religious
-light. The huguenots wanted neither pope nor priests;
-but it was because of the tyranny of the one, and the
-licentious conduct of the others;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_502" id="Ref_502" href="#Foot_502">[502]</a></span>
-as for the true
-doctrine of the Gospel and the necessity of a moral
-transformation in themselves, they had not troubled
-themselves about it. There was also a great void in
-their religious system. Before they could become
-good protestants and men morally strong, friends at
-once of order and liberty, this blank must be filled
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_333" id="Page_333">{333}</a></span>
-up. They felt it themselves, and told Farel they
-desired nothing better than to be instructed. The
-landlord brought in a few benches and stools for
-them, and then Farel, having Saunier near him, took
-his station before a little table. He placed a Bible
-on it, and began to speak from the Word of God. An
-audience so select, an opportunity so important for
-announcing the Gospel, had perhaps never been
-offered to the reformer. He had before him the
-earliest champions of modern liberty. These men
-had recognised the errors in the state, he must now
-show them the errors in the church; they must learn
-that if man may throw off despotism in earthly things,
-it is more lawful still to throw it off in heavenly
-things.</p>
-
-<p>Farel undertook the task; he showed the huguenots
-from Scripture 'that they had been abused until now
-by their priests; that the latter amused them with
-silly tales that had no substance in them, and further,
-that these cheats (<i>affronteurs</i>) allured them, if they
-felt it necessary, by flattery, and gave the rein to their
-lusts.' He added that neither councils nor popes
-would teach them to know Jesus Christ, but Holy
-Scripture only; and urged them to abandon errors
-and abuses, whose danger and absurdity he forcibly
-pointed out to them. The huguenots listened to him
-attentively. 'They had no great sentiment or knowledge
-or fear of God, but they already aspired to the
-religion that had been adopted at Berne,' says a manuscript
-of the seventeenth century; 'and God, seeing
-his people of Geneva stagnating in security, and wishing
-by an effort of his mercy to show them the divine
-sweetness of his clemency, animated the courage of his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_334" id="Page_334">{334}</a></span>
-servants, Farel and Saunier.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_503" id="Ref_503" href="#Foot_503">[503]</a></span>
-The simple movement
-by which Farel, setting aside all patristic, synodal,
-scholastic, and papal traditions, turned reverently
-towards the fountain-head, and drank from the
-Word of God the faith that he preached, specially
-struck his hearers. They rose, thanked him, and left
-the room, saying as they retired that it seemed right to
-substitute the Holy Scriptures for the teaching of the
-pope. This was the principle of an immense transformation.
-The Reformation had taken its first step
-in Geneva when the placards of the 'general pardon'
-of God had been stuck up: it now took the second
-step.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_504" id="Ref_504" href="#Foot_504">[504]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>'There was a great sensation in the city,' said Froment.
-Some of the hearers, returning to their families
-or their friends, astonished them by saying that henceforth
-their master should be neither M. La Baume, nor
-M. Medicis or even M. St. Peter, 'but the Lord Jesus
-Christ alone.' The astonishment was still greater in the
-political and ecclesiastical bodies. Hitherto they had
-only had to deal with the heroes of liberal emancipation;
-now they were in presence of the champions of
-the religious movement. 'This thing having come
-to the notice of the council, canons, and priests of the
-city, they were suddenly troubled and disturbed.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_505" id="Ref_505" href="#Foot_505">[505]</a></span>
-The monks were either astounded or very angry,
-while the nuns of St. Claire were quite alarmed at
-'this wretched preacher, who was beginning to speak
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_335" id="Page_335">{335}</a></span>
-secretly at his quarters, in a room, seeking to infect
-the people with his heresy.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_506" id="Ref_506" href="#Foot_506">[506]</a></span>
-All of them foresaw
-that this act would have innumerable and fatal consequences.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL'S SECOND LECTURE.=</p>
-
-<p>There was soon a second meeting. Many of those
-who had not been at the first wished to be present at
-this; and from the city, the Molard, and the Rhone
-bridge, many citizens took their way towards the Tour
-Perce. There were no women among them, but the
-men filled every corner of the room, anxious to hear
-the Gospel. As Farel on the former occasion had
-spoken particularly of scripture, he now addressed the
-huguenots on the subject of living grace. He showed
-them that it was not the pardon of the Church, but
-the pardon of God, that saves. Those prelates and
-masters who, puffed out with magnificent titles, were
-continually recommending pious works, were (he said)
-building the temple of God with straw and stubble,
-instead of bringing together the living stones of which
-scripture speaks. He maintained that when the priests
-spoke so much of penance, vows, masses, fasts, aves,
-macerations, flagellations, indulgences, pilgrimages,
-invocations to the Virgin and the saints, they hardly
-left Jesus Christ the hundredth part of the work of
-redemption. Farel and Saunier repeated strongly that
-pardon resides wholly in the Saviour, and not in part
-only, 'at which those who heard him took great pleasure.'
-Some meditated as they went away on what
-they had heard, and that silent conversation of the soul
-speaking with its God began in the quiet chamber of
-many a house. 'By this means a goodly number of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_336" id="Page_336">{336}</a></span>
-Genevans received a knowledge of the Gospel.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_507" id="Ref_507" href="#Foot_507">[507]</a></span>
-Somenof them—Baudichon de la Maison-Neuve and Claude
-Salomon amongst others—earnestly besought Farel
-to come and explain the Scriptures in their own
-houses.</p>
-
-<p>This second meeting added considerably to the
-alarm in the catholic camp, and the commotion was
-particularly great among the women, who were at that
-time the main support of the papacy in Geneva.
-'There is not one of them,' said a reformer, 'that
-has any desire to learn the truth, so tainted are they
-with the breath, teaching, life, and conversation of
-their priests. There is a great intimacy between
-them; some are their brothers, others their friends,
-neighbours, gossips.... I shall say nothing more at
-present,' he added, 'to save the honour of the ladies.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_508" id="Ref_508" href="#Foot_508">[508]</a></span>
-The priests told their female parishioners that if they
-did not turn out these unbelievers everything was lost.
-The Genevan ladies, therefore, entreated their husbands
-and brothers to expel the heretic preachers. A few
-citizens, who cared very little about the Reformation,
-were carried away by their wives, and proceeding
-angry and heated to the Tour Perce, desired Farel
-and Saunier to leave Geneva at once, if they did not
-wish to be turned out forcibly. 'If we cannot maintain
-what we say,' replied the reformers, 'we offer
-ourselves to death.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_509" id="Ref_509" href="#Foot_509">[509]</a></span>
-Having God for the author of
-their faith, they were tranquil in the midst of tempests.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_510" id="Ref_510" href="#Foot_510">[510]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Thus, despite all the efforts of the husbands urged
-by their wives, and of the wives urged by the priests,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_337" id="Page_337">{337}</a></span>
-Farel remained. At that time a great agitation prevailed
-in Geneva: canons, rectors, monks, and curates
-ran up and down, talking with one another, 'and
-holding counsel together, asked what they should do
-with those persons.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_511" id="Ref_511" href="#Foot_511">[511]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL BEFORE THE TOWN-COUNCIL.=</p>
-
-<p>The magistrates, noticing the commotion occasioned
-by the arrival of Farel and Saunier in the city, summoned
-them to appear before the bench, and met to
-consult as to what should be said and done to them.
-The council had not made up their minds either for or
-against the Reformation, and many of the members
-arrived at the town-hall not knowing clearly what they
-ought to do. Ex-syndic Balard, who was then discharging
-the functions of vidame, a zealous Catholic
-whom Froment calls (probably with some exaggeration)
-'the head servant of the priests,' was for immediate
-repression, and a few were ready to vote with
-him. The majority, composed of men of moderate
-views, had no desire to offend the canons and priests,
-but feared still more to offend Berne. William Hugues,
-the premier syndic and Besançon's brother, was rather
-favourable to the reformers. Only a small number of
-decided huguenots were convinced that the new doctrine
-alone could free them from the bickerings of the
-bishops and the dukes. Farel and Saunier were conducted
-to the town-hall and taken into the council chamber.
-As they entered, everybody looked with curious
-eye on that man with keen look and red beard who
-was setting all the country in a blaze from the Alps to
-the Jura. One of the magistrates most devoted to the
-Church addressing Farel rudely, said: 'It is you then
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_338" id="Page_338">{338}</a></span>
-that do nothing but disturb the world; it is your
-tongue that is stirring up tumult everywhere and
-trumpeting rebellion. You are a busybody who have
-come here only to create discord. We order you to
-depart from the city instantly.' The angry looks
-of some of the councillors were at the same time
-turned upon Farel, who being regarded as the scourge
-of the priests, 'was for that reason supremely hated by them.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_512" id="Ref_512" href="#Foot_512">[512]</a></span>
-The reformer contained himself, and
-answered: 'I am not a deluder, I am not a trumpet of
-sedition; I simply proclaim the truth.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_513" id="Ref_513" href="#Foot_513">[513]</a></span>
-I am ready to prove out of God's Word that my doctrine is true,
-and,' added he in a voice trembling with emotion,
-'not only to sacrifice my ease but to shed the last drop
-of my blood for it.'</p>
-
-<p>The reformer's noble simplicity touched the members
-of the council, and supplied the huguenots with
-sufficient motives to undertake his defence. Farel's
-judges appeared to be softened by his moderation.
-Then calling to mind that St. Paul under similar
-circumstances had invoked the respected name of imperial
-Rome, the evangelist resolved to follow his
-example. 'Most honoured lords,' he said, 'are you not
-allies and co-burgesses of Berne? Know, then, that
-my lords of Berne, who have at heart to advance the
-Gospel, have given me letters wherein they bear witness
-to my innocence and doctrine, and beg you to hear
-me preach peacefully, assuring you that by so doing
-you will confer a pleasure on them.' At the same time
-Farel produced the credentials with which their excellencies
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_339" id="Page_339">{339}</a></span>
-had furnished him. The syndics took the
-letter. 'If you condemn me unheard,' continued Farel,
-'you insult God, and also, as you see, my lords of
-Berne.' The latter plea touched the magistrates of
-Geneva closely; and, accordingly, changing countenance,
-they gently dismissed Farel and Saunier without
-imposing any punishment on them, but begging
-them only not to disturb the public tranquillity by new
-doctrines. The two ministers quitted the council
-chamber.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_514" id="Ref_514" href="#Foot_514">[514]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=DELIBERATIONS OF THE CLERGY.=</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile an episcopal council was being held;
-and jurists, canons, and priests were assembling at
-the house of the grand vicar. Monseigneur de Gingins,
-abbot of Bonmont, deliberated as to what should be
-done. The Reformation and the reformers, of whom
-there had been so much talk these fifteen years, were
-in Geneva at last. The rock so long suspended over
-their heads was at length detached from the mountain,
-and threatened to destroy everything. What was to
-be done? The tumult was still greater in the city
-than in the grand vicar's house. A crowd, attracted
-by the summons of Farel and Saunier before the
-council, 'was scattered up and down the streets,' and
-priests paraded the city, 'carrying arms under their frocks.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_515" id="Ref_515" href="#Foot_515">[515]</a></span>
-The reformers had some trouble to reach
-their lodgings.</p>
-
-<p>The episcopal council prolonged its sittings. Monseigneur
-de Bonmont, a sincere but moderate and liberal
-catholic, was ill at ease. Seeing angry faces and
-flashing eyes around him, he represented that it would
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">{340}</a></span>
-be necessary to proceed cautiously and in accordance
-with justice. Some of those present were exasperated,
-for in their eyes De Gingins' moderation was flagrant
-treason. In their opinion it was necessary to prosecute
-immediately not only the foreign preachers, but 'all
-who inviting them into their houses (as Maison-Neuve
-for instance) to converse about the Gospel, wished to
-live differently from what their forefathers, pastors, and
-bishops had taught them.' The most reverend vicar
-represented that persons were not convicted without
-being heard, that they must summon these strangers
-before them, call upon them to explain their doctrine,
-and then they would be sentenced upon full knowledge
-of the facts. This alarmed the council, and Dom Stephen
-Piard, proctor to the chapter, exclaimed with a frown:<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_516" id="Ref_516" href="#Foot_516">[516]</a></span>
-'If we dispute, all our office is at an end.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_517" id="Ref_517" href="#Foot_517">[517]</a></span>
-He urged that 'to discuss theological questions was to overlook
-the authority of the church; that we must believe
-because Rome has spoken; that these people with their
-Bibles were subtle spirits and dangerous adversaries,
-... and that the authority of the chapter would be
-overthrown if they permitted any disputation.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CONSPIRACY AGAINST FAREL.=</p>
-
-<p>Dom Stephen enjoyed a certain authority; the assembly
-was about to refuse to hear Farel, when it was
-opposed by some of the members who were most
-notorious for their fanatical zeal. In the sixteenth
-century not only jurists regarded it as a duty to condemn
-heretics to death, but devout persons, laymen
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_341" id="Page_341">{341}</a></span>
-as well as priests, thought they did an acceptable thing
-to God by putting them to death. It would appear
-that these latter persons had made up their minds to
-this meritorious work. 'Having deliberated to kill
-Farel and his companion,' says a manuscript, 'they
-found the best means of getting them to come would
-be by giving them to understand that they desired to
-debate with them.' The pious sister Jeanne de Jussie
-corroborates this statement.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_518" id="Ref_518" href="#Foot_518">[518]</a></span>
-The conspirators carried
-the proposal to summon Farel. He was never to go
-out again from the vicar-general's house; but first of
-all it was necessary for him to enter it. Machard, the
-bishop's secretary, was deputed to summon Farel and
-Saunier, and also Olivetan, 'to retract publicly, or to
-explain before the episcopal council what they had
-preached in the inn.'</p>
-
-<p>Ere long something transpired of the plot of these
-fanatical ecclesiastics, and the huguenots, forming
-part of the little council at that moment assembled in
-the town-hall, represented to their colleagues that the
-priests had no other object than to draw the ministers
-into a trap. Accordingly the two chief magistrates,
-Hugues and Balard, accompanied Machard to the Tour
-Perce, to give a guarantee to Farel and his friends.
-Some persons suspected Balard of wishing to get Farel
-and Saunier into trouble. 'There is nothing more
-prejudicial to Geneva than division,' he said; 'I wish
-those who disturb us were well out of us.' But he was
-neither a coward nor a traitor; he was determined to
-send the reformers away from Geneva, but to protect
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_342" id="Page_342">{342}</a></span>
-their lives.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_519" id="Ref_519" href="#Foot_519">[519]</a></span>
-On reaching the inn the bishop's secretary
-informed the evangelists that the episcopal council
-invited them to retract the doctrines they had taught,
-the presence of Balard and Hugues giving weight to
-the request. Farel answered: 'We affirm these doctrines
-in the strongest way possible, and again offer to
-die if we cannot prove them out of scripture.' 'In
-that case,' resumed Machard, 'come before the episcopal
-council to discuss with the priests, and maintain what
-you have said.' 'No harm shall be done you,' said
-the premier syndic and the vidame, 'we pledge our
-word to it.' Farel and Saunier, delighted with this
-opportunity of announcing the Gospel, set off, accompanied
-by Olivetan. They were calm and full of joy,
-doubtless not expecting what awaited them, but ready
-nevertheless to give up their lives.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_494" id="Foot_494" href="#Ref_494">[494]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Tour Percée. The sign of this inn was in existence until recently;
-there was a <i>hole in the tower</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_495" id="Foot_495" href="#Ref_495">[495]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Olivetan's Bible, <i>Apologie du translateur</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_496" id="Foot_496" href="#Ref_496">[496]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_497" id="Foot_497" href="#Ref_497">[497]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 3.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_498" id="Foot_498" href="#Ref_498">[498]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Percrebuit rumor de Farelli adventu.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva
-restituta</i>, p. 43.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_499" id="Foot_499" href="#Ref_499">[499]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Sacrificulorum flagellum.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_500" id="Foot_500" href="#Ref_500">[500]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 46.
-Choupard MSS.; Roset MSS. liv. III. ch. 1.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_501" id="Foot_501" href="#Ref_501">[501]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 4. Galiffe, <i>Notices
-généalogiques</i>, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_502" id="Foot_502" href="#Ref_502">[502]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cives multi non inviti, etsi nounullos, non tam pietatis cura,
-quam Romanæ tyrannidis odium movebat.'—MS. of Benedict Turretini,
-entitled <i>Initium et progressus Reformationis quæ facta est
-Genevæ</i>, in the Berne Library, MS. <i>Hist. Helv.</i> v. p. 125.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_503" id="Foot_503" href="#Ref_503">[503]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Hist. de la Réf. de Genève</i>, MS. of Badollet, regent of the
-college of Geneva in the seventeenth century. Berne library, <i>Hist.
-Helv.</i> v. p. 125.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_504" id="Foot_504" href="#Ref_504">[504]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 5. Gautier MS. Spon I. p. 467. Roser
-and Choupard MSS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_505" id="Foot_505" href="#Ref_505">[505]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 3.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_506" id="Foot_506" href="#Ref_506">[506]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur de Jussie, <i>le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 46.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_507" id="Foot_507" href="#Ref_507">[507]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_508" id="Foot_508" href="#Ref_508">[508]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 4.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_509" id="Foot_509" href="#Ref_509">[509]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_510" id="Foot_510" href="#Ref_510">[510]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_511" id="Foot_511" href="#Ref_511">[511]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_512" id="Foot_512" href="#Ref_512">[512]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ruchat, III. p. 177.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_513" id="Foot_513" href="#Ref_513">[513]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Se non seditionis tubam sed veritatis præconem esse.'—Spanheim,
-<i>Geneva restituta</i>, p. 43.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_514" id="Foot_514" href="#Ref_514">[514]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS. Spanheim, <i>Geneva restituta</i>, p. 43.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_515" id="Foot_515" href="#Ref_515">[515]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 4.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_516" id="Foot_516" href="#Ref_516">[516]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Supercilio adducto.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva restituta</i>, p. 44.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_517" id="Foot_517" href="#Ref_517">[517]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Si disputetur, totum ministerium nostrum destruetur.'—Froment,
-<i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 5. This is differently reported: Froment and
-Choupard give <i>ministerium</i>: Roset and Spanheim <i>mysterium</i>. I
-have preferred the former as the better reading.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_518" id="Foot_518" href="#Ref_518">[518]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS. La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>le Levain du Calvinisme</i>,
-p. 47.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_519" id="Foot_519" href="#Ref_519">[519]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mém. d'Archéologie de la Soc. d'Hist. de Genève</i>, x. p.
-cviii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_343" id="Page_343">{343}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER VIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE REFORMERS ARE EXPELLED FROM GENEVA.<br />
- (<span class="smc">October 1532.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL BEFORE THE EPISCOPAL COUNCIL.=</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">WHILE the upper house of the clergy was sitting
-at the vicar-general's, the lower house had assembled
-in the streets. The armed curates and
-chaplains watched what was going on, and when they
-saw the premier syndic with ex-syndic Balard and
-the bishop's secretary enter the inn, they guessed
-that they were about to conduct Farel before the
-episcopal council, and had immediately made it known
-to their followers, to the women and the common
-people. When the three reformers, accompanied by
-the three Genevans, came out, there was already a
-little crowd in front of the Tour Perce. The number
-increased as they proceeded along the streets which
-lead from the banks of the Rhone to the top of the
-hill; but the populace and the women were content
-to threaten and jeer at the reformers, crying out as
-loud as they could, 'Look at the dogs, look at the dogs.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_520" id="Ref_520" href="#Foot_520">[520]</a></span>
-Thanks to the presence of the magistrates,
-the three reformers arrived safe and sound in the
-Rue des Chanoines and entered the house of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_344" id="Page_344">{344}</a></span>
-vicar episcopal. As those who were within as well as
-those who were without had equally sworn Farel's
-death, it seemed impossible for him to escape. The
-three evangelicals had to wait some time; in fact
-the syndics had preceded them, and required of the
-episcopal council that no harm should be done the
-ministers if they freely explained their doctrines.
-This engagement having been taken, Farel, Saunier,
-and Olivetan were called in, the two magistrates remaining
-in the assembly to secure order.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=VEIGY'S INVECTIVES.=</p>
-
-<p>The abbot-vicar of Bonmont presided; on his right
-and left sat the canons, the bishop's officers, and the
-head priests, all in their sacerdotal robes. The missionary,
-simply but decently dressed, came forward
-followed by his two friends, and all three remained
-standing before the assembly. The official, Messire
-de Veigy, a learned and eloquent man, was ordered
-to speak. 'William Farel,' he said, 'tell me who has
-sent you, for what reason you come here, and in
-virtue of what authority you speak?' In Veigy's
-opinion it was necessary for the preacher to be sent
-by some Romish ecclesiastical authority. Farel replied
-with simplicity, 'I am sent by God, and I am
-come to announce his word.' 'Poor wretch!' exclaimed
-the priests, as they shrugged their shoulders.
-The official resumed: 'God has sent you, you say; how
-is that? Can you show by any manifest sign that you
-are come in His name? As Moses before Pharaoh,
-will you prove to us by miracles that you really come
-from God? If you cannot, then show us the licence
-of our most reverend prelate the Bishop of Geneva.
-Preacher never yet preached in his diocese without
-his leave.'</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_345" id="Page_345">{345}</a></div>
-
-<p>Here the official paused; and then disdainfully
-scanning the reformer from head to foot, he said:
-'You do not wear the dress that is usual for those
-who are accustomed to announce the Word of God to
-us.... You are dressed like a soldier or a brigand....
-How is it you are so bold as to preach? Is it
-not forbidden by a decree of holy church for laymen
-to preach in public under pain of excommunication?
-That is contained in the decretals of our holy mother
-church.... You are, therefore, a deceiver and a bad man.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_521" id="Ref_521" href="#Foot_521">[521]</a></span>
-Farel believed that it was his duty to
-announce the Word of God, because Jesus Christ had
-said, <i>Preach the Gospel to every creature</i>. He thought
-that the true successors of the apostles were those
-who conformed to Christ's order, and that (as Calvin
-says), 'the pope of Rome and all his tribe had no
-claim to that apostolical succession which they alleged,
-since they no longer cared for the doctrine of Christ.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_522" id="Ref_522" href="#Foot_522">[522]</a></span>
-The clergy in whose presence he was standing did
-not allow him time to speak. At last they had before
-them the terrible heretic of whom they had been
-talking so many years. The official's words had still
-further aroused their passions; they could no longer
-contain themselves. Pale with anger they shuddered
-and clattered with their feet as they sat. At last the
-mine exploded; they all spoke at once, pouring insult
-and abuse on the reformer. Their excitement carried
-them away; they rose from their seats, rushed upon
-him, and pulling him now this way, now that, exclaimed,
-'Come, Farel, you wicked devil, what business
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_346" id="Page_346">{346}</a></span>
-have you to go up and down, disturbing all the world?...
-Are you baptized? Where were you born?
-Where do you come from? Why did you come here?
-Tell us by whose authority you preach? Are you not
-the man who propagated Luther's heresies at Aigle
-and Neuchatel, and threw the whole country into
-confusion? Who sent you into this city?' The noise
-and tumult would not permit either Farel or the
-grand vicar to speak; the weapons were heard to
-rattle which some of the priests carried under their
-frocks. Farel remained still and silent in the midst
-of this raging sea. At last Messire de Bonmont succeeded
-in interposing his authority, made his colleagues
-resume their seats, and silence was restored.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_523" id="Ref_523" href="#Foot_523">[523]</a></span>
-Then the reformer, nobly lifting up his head, said with
-great simplicity, 'My lords, I am not a devil. I was
-baptized in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy
-Ghost, and if I journey to and fro, it is that I may
-preach Jesus Christ—Jesus Christ crucified, dead
-for our sins, and risen again for our justification, so
-that whosoever believeth in Him shall have everlasting
-life. As an ambassador of Jesus Christ I am
-compelled to teach Him to all who are willing to hear
-me. I have, however, no other right to speak than
-that which the commandment of God gives to me
-His servant. My only aim is so to discharge my
-duty that all the world may receive salvation, and it
-is for this cause and for no other that I am come into
-this city. Having been brought before you to give
-an account of my faith, I am ready to do so, not only
-at this moment, but as many times as you please to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_347" id="Page_347">{347}</a></span>
-hear me peaceably. What I have preached and still
-preach is the pure truth and not a heresy, and I will
-maintain it even unto death. As for what you say
-about my disturbing the land and this city in particular,
-I will answer as Elijah did to Ahab, <i>I have
-not troubled Israel, but thou and thy father's house</i>.
-Yes, it is you and yours who trouble the world by
-your traditions, your human inventions, and your
-dissolute lives.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_524" id="Ref_524" href="#Foot_524">[524]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THREATS AGAINST FAREL.=</p>
-
-<p>The priests, astonished at the calm, simple, free and
-spirited language of the reformer, had listened to
-him in silence so far, but the moment they heard him
-speak of their human inventions and irregular lives,
-his words were like daggers and disturbed their
-wicked consciences. It might have been said that the
-infernal deities (it is the expression of a reformer)
-were hovering about them and left them no repose.
-'They fixed their burning eyes on Farel; they gnashed
-their teeth,' says a manuscript; and one of them
-starting up in a passion said: 'Blasphematur, non
-amplius indigemus testibus. Reus est mortis.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_525" id="Ref_525" href="#Foot_525">[525]</a></span>
-This was the signal for a scene more savage than the
-former. All rose again, some impelled by violence
-and pride, others believing they were supporting the
-cause of religion, and exclaimed: 'To the Rhone, to
-the Rhone! kill him, kill him! It is better for this
-rascally Lutheran to die than permit him to trouble
-all the people.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_526" id="Ref_526" href="#Foot_526">[526]</a></span>
-These words, without being those
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_348" id="Page_348">{348}</a></span>
-which the high-priest uttered against Christ were very
-like them. Farel was struck by the resemblance.
-'Speak the words of God and not of Caiaphas,' he exclaimed.
-At these words the exasperated priests
-could contain themselves no longer. They all started
-up together and shouted out: 'Kill him, kill the
-Lutheran hound!' Dom Bergeri, proctor to the chapter,
-still more excited than the others, urged them
-on, exclaiming in his Savoyard dialect: <i>Tapa, tapa!</i>
-(which, adds Froment, means 'Strike, strike!') The
-sentence was immediately carried into execution;
-they surrounded the three reformers; some caught
-hold of Farel, others of Saunier, and others of
-Olivetan. They abused them, beat them, spat in
-their faces, and uttered all sorts of cries, so that it
-was like a pandemonium. In the midst of all this
-uproar Farel and his companions 'preserved their
-patience and moderation.' The abbot of Bonmont,
-syndics Hugues and Balard, and even a few priests,
-ashamed of such a scene, tried to put an end to it.
-'It is not well done,' said the abbot, 'have we not
-pledged our word and honour to them?' Syndic
-Hugues, a just, quick, and energetic man, disgusted
-with the behaviour of the ecclesiastics, broke out at
-last. 'You are wicked men,' he said; 'we brought
-you these men on your promise that no harm should
-be done them, and you want to beat and kill them
-before our faces.... I will go and set the great bell
-ringing to convoke the general council. The assembled
-people shall decide.' Hugues was leaving
-the room to go and put his threat into execution,
-when Balard, the other magistrate, desiring to prevent
-anything that might compromise the cause of Rome,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_349" id="Page_349">{349}</a></span>
-endeavoured to calm him. However the syndic's
-threat had produced its effect; the priests alarmed at
-the thought of a general assembly of the citizens, and
-fearing lest it should decree their expulsion from
-Geneva, returned to their seats rather ashamed of
-themselves. The abbot, taking advantage of this new
-lull, desired Farel and his friends to withdraw, in
-order that the episcopal council might deliberate.
-Farel left the room covered with spittle and severely bruised.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_527" id="Ref_527" href="#Foot_527">[527]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL ASSAULTED.=</p>
-
-<p>While the superior clergy were behaving in this
-way, the inferior clergy were assembling, and about
-eighty priests had collected before the house of the
-vicar-episcopal, 'all well armed with clubs to defend
-the holy catholic faith and prepared to die for it.' This
-mode of defending religion, so different from that of
-the first fathers of the church, has been made known
-to us through the reverend Sister Jeanne de Jussie.
-The priests were stout, resolute men; they had
-formed a plot and were there to carry it into execution.
-'They wished,' adds Sister Jeanne, 'to put
-that wretch and his accomplices to a bitter death.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_528" id="Ref_528" href="#Foot_528">[528]</a></span>
-Such was the exploit they contemplated, and for
-its accomplishment they carefully surrounded the
-grand-vicar's house. They filled the narrow area
-of the Puits St. Pierre and the Rue des Chanoines,
-and had even penetrated into M. de Bonmont's
-courtyard and garden, so that it was impossible for
-Farel to escape. The fanatical and agitated crowd,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_350" id="Page_350">{350}</a></span>
-which had been there for some time, was beginning to
-grow impatient that the episcopal council sat so long.
-Farel and his two friends, when they had turned into
-a long gallery, could hear the raised voices of some of
-the members of the council, and the increasing noise
-of the crowd that filled the courtyard. But another
-danger threatened them.</p>
-
-<p>One of the grand-vicar's servants, Francis Olard,
-surnamed Ginin, a violent man, stood at the end of
-the gallery, having been posted there arquebus in
-hand, as a sentinel. He had listened to the tumult
-from within; the shouting from without excited and
-inflamed him. Was not this Farel the enemy of his
-masters—a heretic whom everybody wished dead?
-His weapon was ready: he levelled it at Farel and
-prepared to fire. Had the priests stationed Olard
-there for this purpose, as the chronicles say, or did he
-act of his own accord, being more fanatical than his
-masters, as the servants of political or ecclesiastical
-corporations often are? Be it as it may, the arquebusier
-pulled the trigger, the priming flashed ... but
-the gun did not go off. Farel turning to him said
-coldly: 'I am not to be shaken by a popgun; your
-toy does not alarm me.'—'Verily,' said his friends,
-'God of His mercy turned aside the blow, in order to
-preserve Farel for struggles still more formidable.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_529" id="Ref_529" href="#Foot_529">[529]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=DANGER OF FAREL AND HIS FRIENDS.=</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the council were still deliberating, and
-many wished Farel to be put to death. Heresy in
-that age, as is but too well known, was punished
-capitally; but the magistrates pointed to the danger
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_351" id="Page_351">{351}</a></span>
-of using violence towards the preacher of the lords of
-Berne. Their opinion prevailed, and the reformers
-having been brought into the room again, the grand-vicar
-said: 'William Farel, leave my presence and
-this house, and within six hours get you gone from
-the city with your two companions, under pain of the
-stake. And know that if the sentence is not more severe,
-you must ascribe it to our kindness and to our respect
-for my lords of Berne.'—'You condemn us unheard,'
-said Farel. 'I demand a certificate to show at Berne
-that I have done my duty.'—'You shall not have one,'
-the abbot hastily replied; 'leave the room all of you,
-without a word more.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_530" id="Ref_530" href="#Foot_530">[530]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The priests and people collected in front of the
-house, learning that Farel was about to appear, crowded
-one upon another, uttering angry cries. It would
-seem that the reformer heard them and stopped an
-instant, knowing full well what was in reserve for
-him. It was in truth a solemn moment, perhaps his
-last. 'The caitiff dared not come out,' said Sister
-Jeanne, afterwards Abbess of Annecy, 'for he had
-heard the noise made by the church people before the
-door, and feared they would put him to death.' Seeing
-that Farel hesitated, two of the senior canons addressed
-him coarsely: 'As you will not go out willingly, and
-in God's name,' they said, 'go out in the name of all
-the devils, whose minister and servant you are.' Thus
-spoke a few fanatical priests. Their God was the
-church, and there was no salvation for the sinner
-except in the sacrifice of the mass: in them imagination
-took the place of understanding, and passion of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_352" id="Page_352">{352}</a></span>
-judgment. They had no idea of the living faith which
-animated the hearts of Farel and his friends, and
-looked upon them as impious. Putting aside the
-holy authority and wise precepts of scripture, they
-had no other rule than strong attachment to their
-church and the excess of zeal which carried them
-away. Inflamed by violent passion they did not
-confine themselves to abuse. The sister of St. Claire
-is far from wishing to conceal their exploits: 'One
-of them,' she says, 'gave him a hard kick, the other
-struck him heavily on the head and face; and in great
-confusion they put him out with his two companions.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_531" id="Ref_531" href="#Foot_531">[531]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=ATTEMPT TO STAB FAREL.=</p>
-
-<p>Farel, Saunier, and Olivetan quitted the house,
-and thus escaped the ill-treatment of those reverend
-gentlemen. But turned out of doors by the canons,
-they fell from Scylla into Charybdis: they had to
-experience still more culpable excesses of religious
-fanaticism. The priests, chaplains, sacristans, and the
-furious populace assembled in the street, hooted, hissed,
-groaned, and howled; some threateningly flourished
-their weapons. It was like an impetuous hurricane
-that seemed as if it would sweep everything before it.
-It was a human tempest more terrible perhaps than
-that of the winds:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse indent15">Venti, velut agmine facto,</div>
-<div class="verse">Qua data porta ruunt, et terras turbine perflant;</div>
-<div class="verse">Insequitur clamorque virum stridorque rudentum.<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_532" id="Ref_532" href="#Foot_532">[532]</a></span></div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>On a sudden there was a movement in the crowd,
-those who were on the outside falling back in alarm
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_353" id="Page_353">{353}</a></span>
-upon their comrades: there was a body of armed men
-approaching. At this time up came the syndics and
-all the watch with their halberds. 'Pray, sir priests,'
-said they, 'do nothing rash.' The mob gave way.
-'We are come to execute justice,' added the magistrates.
-Upon this they took 'the caitiff,' placed him
-and his companions in the midst of the guard, and all
-marched off in the direction of the Tour Perce, the
-crowd parting right and left to make way for the
-escort. The priests, fourscore in number, kept together,
-forming a dark and agitated group, and so
-stationed themselves that the three ministers must
-necessarily pass before them on their road to the inn.
-They had heard that Farel and his friends were to
-be expelled from the city; 'but the worthy men
-could not be satisfied with this,' says Sister Jeanne.
-Considering that the syndics and even the episcopal
-council refused to do justice to them, they were resolved
-to take the matter into their own hands. Just
-as the three preachers were passing in front of them,
-one of them rushed forward sword in hand upon
-Farel 'to run him through.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_533" id="Ref_533" href="#Foot_533">[533]</a></span>
-One of the syndics
-who was at the reformer's side saw him, caught the
-assassin by the arm, and stopped him. This act of
-the magistrate seriously grieved the devout. Laymen
-who prevented the clergy from killing their adversaries
-were looked upon as impious. 'Many were
-chagrined,' says the good nun innocently, 'because
-the blow failed.' The halberdiers closed their ranks,
-thrust the priests and their creatures aside, and
-the reformers continued on their way. The mob,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_354" id="Page_354">{354}</a></span>
-finding they could not touch the Lutherans, compensated
-themselves with hooting. In every street
-through which they passed, men and women cried
-out that they ought to be flung into the Rhone.
-At length the procession reached the Tour Perce;
-the reformers entered, and the syndics left a guard.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL'S DEPARTURE.=</p>
-
-<p>They must go—of that there could be no doubt.
-Farel and his friends might have been overwhelmed
-with sorrow, and have fainted in the midst of their
-work; but their Heavenly Master had said, <i>When they
-persecute you in this city, flee ye into another</i>. (Matth.
-x.&nbsp;23.) What grieved them was the thought of
-the generous men who had listened to them; these
-Farel was determined not to abandon. If the tempest
-obliged him to depart, he would take advantage of the
-first moment of calm weather to introduce into Geneva
-that Gospel which many huguenots desired with all
-their heart. The next day (4th October) a few citizens,
-friends of the reformer, rose early, got ready a
-boat near the Molard, and went to the Tour Perce to
-fetch the missionaries, hoping that if the latter set off
-betimes they would not be observed. But the priest-party
-was quite as matutinal as they were: some of
-them were already before the door, and it is probable
-they had been there all night for fear the huguenots
-should take advantage of the darkness to get the
-ministers away. Claude Bernard, Ami Perrin, John
-Goulaz, and Peter Verne—all stanch huguenots—came
-up; they gave the signal, a door was opened, and
-they entered the inn. A few moments elapsed during
-which a number of priests and citizens assembled in
-that part of the Rue du Rhone which lies between the
-Tour Perce and the Molard. Presently the inn door
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_355" id="Page_355">{355}</a></span>
-opened again, and the four huguenots came out with
-Farel and Saunier. When they saw them the crowd
-became agitated. 'The devils are going,' shouted the
-priests, as the two evangelists and their friends passed
-along. Farel, seeing the numbers around him, wished
-to exhort them, 'as he walked along;' but Perrin
-would not permit it, representing to him that it
-was necessary to push on quickly for fear the priests
-should block the way. When the reformers reached
-the water's edge, they got into the boat with their
-defenders. The boatmen immediately began to row,
-and the crowd that lined the shore could do nothing
-but hoot. Perrin, fearing violence, would not land at
-any of the towns or hamlets of Vaud, but steered the
-boat to an unfrequented place between Morges and
-Lausanne. Here they all got on shore and embraced
-each other; after which the huguenots returned to
-Geneva, and the reformers made their way to Orbe
-and thence to Grandson.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_520" id="Foot_520" href="#Ref_520">[520]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ce sont des cagnes, ce qui veut dire (adds Froment) ce sont des
-chiens.'</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_521" id="Foot_521" href="#Ref_521">[521]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur de Jussie, <i>le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 47.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_522" id="Foot_522" href="#Ref_522">[522]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Harmonie évangelique</i>, 1. p. 757.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_523" id="Foot_523" href="#Ref_523">[523]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 5. Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_524" id="Foot_524" href="#Ref_524">[524]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 6. Choupard MS. Choupard gives some
-features that are not found in Froment.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_525" id="Foot_525" href="#Ref_525">[525]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-He hath spoken blasphemy; what further need have we of witnesses?
-He is guilty of death.—Matth. xxvi. 65, 66.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_526" id="Foot_526" href="#Ref_526">[526]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 7. 'In Rhodanum, in Rhodanum! unum hunc
-Lutherum necari præstat.'—Turretin MS. in the Berne library.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_527" id="Foot_527" href="#Ref_527">[527]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Sputis madidatus et pugnis contritus.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva
-restituta</i>. Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, pp. 5-7. Choupard and Roset, MSS.
-&amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_528" id="Foot_528" href="#Ref_528">[528]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 17.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_529" id="Foot_529" href="#Ref_529">[529]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ictus tamen divina bonitate aversus, Deo servum suum certo
-periculo eripiente.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva restituta</i>, p. 43. Froment,
-<i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 3. Roset MS. liv. iii. ch. 1.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_530" id="Foot_530" href="#Ref_530">[530]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i> p. 48.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_531" id="Foot_531" href="#Ref_531">[531]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, &amp;c., pp. 47, 48.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_532" id="Foot_532" href="#Ref_532">[532]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-fn">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="verse">The raging winds rush through the hollow wound,</div>
-<div class="verse">And dance aloft in air, and skim along the ground;</div>
-<div class="verse">The cables crack, the sailors' fearful cries</div>
-<div class="verse">Ascend.</div>
-<div class="verse indent20"><span class="smc">Dryden.</span></div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_533" id="Foot_533" href="#Ref_533">[533]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-"Pour le transpercer au travers du corps."—La Sœur de Jussie, p.
-48.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_356" id="Page_356">{356}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER IX.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">A JOURNEY TO THE VALLEYS OF PIEDMONT,
- AND STRUGGLES NEAR NEUCHATEL.<br />
- (<span class="smc">End of 1532.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="side">=FAREL AND FROMENT.=</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">FAREL expelled from Geneva, with a heart full of
-love for those whom he had been obliged to quit,
-meditated on the means of evangelising them, and
-like a skilful general, was preparing even during his
-retreat for a new and more successful struggle.
-After having saluted the Christians of Orbe and
-Grandson he departed for the village of Yvonand,
-on the southern shore of the lake of Neuchatel,
-where dwelt a youthful Christian Anthony Froment
-by name, born at Val de Frières in Dauphiny in
-1510, and consequently a year younger than Calvin
-and his countryman Farel. The reformer invited
-several evangelists to meet him in this village, and
-about the middle of October there came Olivetan, who
-had been unable to stay in Geneva after the departure
-of his two friends; Adam, Martin (probably Martin
-Gonin the Waldensian), and Guido (who must not be
-confounded with the Belgian reformer Guido or Guy
-von Brès) who with Farel, Saunier, Froment, and
-others formed a little council. Farel gave an account
-of his mission: he described his journey to the valleys
-of Piedmont, and the stormy reception he had met
-with at Geneva. They all looked with interest on the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_357" id="Page_357">{357}</a></span>
-fugitive missionary who had escaped as by a miracle
-from the violence of the Genevan priests. Froment in
-particular could not take his eyes off the reformer;
-every word of Farel's made a deep impression on him,
-and disgusted with the ministers of popery, he pitied
-the fate of the huguenots deprived of God's word by
-the intrigues of the clergy. Farel, fixing his eyes
-on him, said: 'Go and try if you can find an entrance
-into Geneva to preach there.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_534" id="Ref_534" href="#Foot_534">[534]</a></span>
-Froment was disturbed
-and speechless. He possessed learning and talents;
-but he was young and without experience, and wanted
-that perseverance and firmness by which other reformers
-were distinguished. His feelings were sensitive,
-his imagination was ardent, but his character
-was uneven and rather fickle. He is believed to have
-been drawn to the Reformation more by witnessing
-the excesses of Rome than by the inner charms of the
-Word of God.</p>
-
-<p>'Alas! father,' he said to Farel, 'how can I face the
-enemies from whom you were compelled to flee?'—'Begin,'
-replied Farel, 'as I began at Aigle, where I
-was a schoolmaster at first and taught little children,
-so that even the priests gave me liberty to preach.
-True they soon repented; and even now I seem to
-hear the curate exclaiming: "I would sooner have
-lost my hand than introduced this man, for he will
-ruin all our business." But it was too late; the Word
-of God had begun its work, and the mass and images
-fell.' Froment, who was at that time full of ardour
-and zeal, began to familiarise himself gradually
-with the idea of going to the city that drove out the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_358" id="Page_358">{358}</a></span>
-prophets. Farel, observing this, persevered, and encouraged
-his disciple by the recollection of the great
-dangers they had once incurred together. 'My dear
-Froment,' he said, 'you fear the men of Geneva; but
-were you not with me when I planted the Gospel at
-Bienne, among the mountains, in the valley of Saint
-Imier, at Tavannes, and near that mountain (Pierre
-Pertuis) which Julius Cæsar tunnelled?... Were you
-not with me when I went to Neuchatel and preached
-in the streets and market-place, and in the surrounding
-villages? Do you not remember that we very
-often received our rent (<i>censes</i>), that is, blows and
-abuse ... once in particular at Valengin, where my
-blood remained for more than four years on the pavement
-of a little chapel, near which the women and
-priests bruised my head against the walls, so that we
-were both of us nearly killed?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_535" id="Ref_535" href="#Foot_535">[535]</a></span>
-These remembrances
-were not very encouraging. Some sided with
-Farel, others thought that a man of twenty-two was
-too young to be launched into such a terrible gulf
-... for Geneva really alarmed them. Froment could
-not yet make up his mind to attempt the enterprise.
-Another thought absorbed Farel.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=OLIVETAN'S SCRUPLES OVERCOME.=</p>
-
-<p>That pious reformer's heart was still full of the
-glorious synod of the valleys at which it had been
-decided to translate the Bible. He had several times
-already entreated Olivetan to undertake that great
-work: he repeated his entreaties both in the assembly
-and in private. Near Yvonand there is a number of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_359" id="Page_359">{359}</a></span>
-hills which form a sort of labyrinth around a little
-river. Beautiful forests of majestic oaks stretch
-their branches so wide and high that it is possible to
-walk beneath their immense leafy arches—a circumstance
-which has earned for this district the name of
-Arcadia. Was it in a private room or in these woods
-that Farel urged Olivetan, as they trampled underfoot
-the dry leaves which autumn had already loosened
-from the trees? I cannot tell: in either case he no
-longer solicited, he 'importuned;'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_536" id="Ref_536" href="#Foot_536">[536]</a></span>
-but Olivetan—like
-Froment with respect to Geneva—repeated his
-unwillingness to 'venture' upon such a task. 'How,'
-said he, 'can I express Hebrew and Greek eloquence
-in French, which is but a barbarous language compared
-with them? You know it is as difficult as to
-teach the hoarse raven to sing the song of the nightingale.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_537" id="Ref_537" href="#Foot_537">[537]</a></span>
-Farel tried to encourage him: he might do
-it. Olivetan's style is, considering the time, one of remarkable
-elegance. But Calvin's cousin alleged other
-reasons: he had certain fears. 'Such an undertaking,'
-he said, 'is like a ball in a public building wherein
-everybody dances as he likes. I shall be encompassed
-with critics, correctors, and calumniators.... They
-will not be friends, I am very sure, but strangers
-devoid of charity, Christians who will philosophise
-about the dot over an <i>i</i>, and bring forward a thousand
-false imputations.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_538" id="Ref_538" href="#Foot_538">[538]</a></span>—'St.
-Jerome undertook
-a similar work,' said Farel. 'St. Jerome!' exclaimed
-Olivetan, 'he had more trouble in answering such
-people than in all his work. How could I do it—I
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_360" id="Page_360">{360}</a></span>
-who am but a petty page, a mere varlet, compared
-with such a knight?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_539" id="Ref_539" href="#Foot_539">[539]</a></span>
-But Farel pressed him so
-much that he thought himself bound to undertake it.
-He promised, and it was well known that what he
-promised he would perform.</p>
-
-<p>Farel had won a great victory. The French
-churches would have a good translation of scripture.
-But a journey was necessary. 'Cross the Alps,' he
-said to his friend; 'go to the Waldensian valleys, and
-come to an understanding with the brethren about
-the translation.' Then turning towards other members
-of the synod, he added: 'And you, Adam Martin
-and Guido, go with him and preach to them the doctrine
-that will correct all their errors.'</p>
-
-<p>This mission, which was to result in the publication
-of the Bible in French, was not without importance or
-without danger. The evangelists proposed to take
-the direct road by Mount St. Bernard; but before
-reaching the lake of Geneva they would have to cross
-a district belonging to the Duke of Savoy. Now the
-duke, the Count of Challans, and the Sieur de Bellegarde
-were not at all anxious that the Waldensians of
-the Piedmontese valleys should unite with the reformers
-of Switzerland. The four friends determined,
-therefore, to travel by night. Having supped at
-Yvonand with Farel and the other brethren, they
-began their journey immediately after. It was at the
-end of October. They travelled through the darkness,
-led by a guide who knew the country well.
-They successfully accomplished their night journey,
-and arrived at Vevey the next day before dinner-time.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_361" id="Page_361">{361}</a></span>
-They began immediately to speak of Christ, for they
-had no wish to fall into sloth and carelessness.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_540" id="Ref_540" href="#Foot_540">[540]</a></span>
-From Vevey they proceeded to Aigle, where they
-found the evangelical Christians of the place assembled
-to receive them. 'I salute you in Christ,' said Adam,
-'and exhort you to reprove one another as becomes
-brethren and ministers of the word of truth.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_541" id="Ref_541" href="#Foot_541">[541]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=A MINISTER'S HOME.=</p>
-
-<p>When they had almost reached the pretty village of
-Bex, in the midst of its orchards and walnut trees,
-in front of the picturesque Dent de Morcles, and the
-huge Dent du Midi, Martin was attacked with severe
-pains. His companions immediately looked for a
-house where they could lodge the sick man, but the
-country was so poor that they could not find a room
-fit to receive him.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_542" id="Ref_542" href="#Foot_542">[542]</a></span>
-These poor brethren were on the
-highway with their suffering friend, anxious and yet
-not knowing what to do. Some one told them that
-about a league behind them, at the village of Ollon, lived
-the minister Claude who would gladly receive them.
-They accordingly retraced their steps, and arrived at
-Ollon, a little place in the midst of the shady woods
-which extend to the foot of the mountain on which
-are situated the charming hamlets of Chesières and
-Villars. They asked for the pastor's house and it
-was shown them; they dragged their friend to it and
-knocked at the door. Claude opened it himself, and
-at the sight of a pale and fainting man invited the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_362" id="Page_362">{362}</a></span>
-strangers in. But on a sudden hasty footsteps were
-heard, a woman appeared flushed with anger and with
-fiery eyes—a violent, wicked, pitiless, scolding woman:
-she was the unfortunate pastor's wife. She screamed
-and gesticulated, and instead of being grave, as Scripture
-requires such women to be, she forgot all restraint
-and broke out: 'What's this, a sick man? If you
-receive him into the house, I will leave it.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_543" id="Ref_543" href="#Foot_543">[543]</a></span>
-Claude durst not say a word: the voice of this Xantippe
-rose higher and higher, and at last she turned her back
-on her husband and the strangers, and disappeared in a passion.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_544" id="Ref_544" href="#Foot_544">[544]</a></span>
-Poor Claude was sorely vexed and ashamed.
-'We will not be the cause of a divorce,' said Adam,
-'we will go away.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_545" id="Ref_545" href="#Foot_545">[545]</a></span>
-The pastor, a good but weak
-man, who could not keep his wife in order, let them go.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE SUFFERING MISSIONARIES.=</p>
-
-<p>Thus not a house was opened to receive an expiring
-missionary. The poor evangelists were quite disheartened.
-'Let us cheer up,' said they, 'and make
-haste to reach the Alps.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_546" id="Ref_546" href="#Foot_546">[546]</a></span>
-The four travellers resumed
-their journey, Martin probably on horseback; but
-on arriving at the foot of the mountain beyond Martigny
-his pains increased. Martin was half dead,
-Olivetan suffered from an inflammation of the bowels,
-Guido was exhausted with fatigue, and Adam alone
-was unaffected. But ere long he too was attacked.
-Seized with cholera (it is his own word<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_547" id="Ref_547" href="#Foot_547">[547]</a></span>)
-he thought
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_363" id="Page_363">{363}</a></span>
-his end was come. The four missionaries dragged
-themselves painfully along the brink of the torrent,
-whose noisy waters alone disturbed the silence around
-them. They lifted their eyes mournfully towards
-those gigantic mountains which it seemed impossible
-for them to cross, and ineffectually sought a refuge in
-the poorest of cottages. One thing, however, was
-left them—the faithfulness of their Master. They
-said to one another: 'God takes us down into the
-abyss when He pleases, but His grace is almighty to
-lift us out of it again.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_548" id="Ref_548" href="#Foot_548">[548]</a></span>
-At this moment they caught
-sight of a wretched house. They went up to it, explained
-their condition, and happily they were received
-in consideration of their money. God, whom they had
-invoked, alleviated their disorder, and the next day
-they were able to resume their journey, feebly at
-starting, but gradually the mountain air gave them
-strength.</p>
-
-<p>They had been forced to incur extraordinary expenses,
-and Adam, who held the purse, smiled as he
-saw its shrunken condition. Their good humour began
-to return: he showed his friends the lean little bag,
-and said merrily: 'Alas! our purse has been seized
-with such cruel pains in the inside that there is
-scarcely anything left in it.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_549" id="Ref_549" href="#Foot_549">[549]</a></span>
-They climbed the
-mountain, and needing rest entered an inn situated
-between Martigny and the convent of St. Bernard.
-They soon observed one of the monks, and approaching
-him desired in spite of their weakness to discharge
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_364" id="Page_364">{364}</a></span>
-their duty: they spoke to him of Jesus Christ, and of
-the grace he gives to sinners. The monk, who belonged
-to the Augustine order, listened attentively to
-their words, and began to talk with them, while the
-evangelists pressed him closely by means of the Holy
-Scriptures. He was touched and convinced. 'I will
-quit Antichrist,' he exclaimed. Adam immediately
-took paper, sat down and wrote: 'Here is a letter for
-Master Farel,' he said to the friar, 'go to him, and he
-will tell you what you have to do.' The evangelist
-and the monk separated. Even down to our days
-conversions have been effected among the brethren of
-this monastery.</p>
-
-<p>At last the four friends arrived among the Waldenses,
-who listened joyfully to their words of truth and love:
-some of these Alpine shepherds were even known to
-have gone two days' journey to hear them.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_550" id="Ref_550" href="#Foot_550">[550]</a></span>
-These poor Christians handed over to Olivetan towards the
-printing of the Bible 500 gold crowns—an immense
-sum for them, and begged that the publication should
-be hurried on.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_551" id="Ref_551" href="#Foot_551">[551]</a></span>
-Olivetan and the barbes came to
-terms. Here finishes this episode, which to some may
-have little interest except so far as it is connected
-with the history of the French protestant translation
-of the Holy Scriptures.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=DEPUTATION OF PEASANTS.=</p>
-
-<p>When this news reached Farel, his eyes were fixed
-upon another country. The young and gentle Fabri,
-whom the reformer loved as a father loves a son, was
-preaching at Neuchatel, when one day he saw some
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_365" id="Page_365">{365}</a></span>
-peasants arrive who had been deputed from the village
-of Bole in the parish of Boudry. These good people
-entreated him to come and settle among them. The
-parish priest, a worthy man by the way, looked upon
-the Gospel not as a proclamation of grace, but as a
-second law more perfect than the first. Having heard
-the reformers inveigh against the corruption that prevailed
-in the church, he had at first gone with them;
-but he soon hesitated and shrunk back, when he found
-that their new morality reposed on a new faith. In
-fact the ministers who preached in those quarters said
-that the Gospel substituted a regenerative doctrine for
-the dead ordinances of the law; that Christ's religion
-did not consist in practices commanded by the priests,
-or even in a purely outward morality, but in a new
-heart from which proceeds a new life. 'The law,'
-said Calvin in later years, 'is like grammar, which
-after it has taught the first elements, refers the learners
-to theology or some other science, in order that they
-may be perfected.' The priest of Boudry would have
-thought himself but too happy to see his parishioners
-endowed with that external morality which did not
-satisfy the evangelicals. A zealous doctor of the law,
-he turned against the doctors of grace, and hence it
-happened that a few of his parishioners hastened to
-Neuchatel.</p>
-
-<p>Fabri followed these honest people, and the gentle
-and moderate reformer was immediately engaged in a
-severe campaign. The village of Bole was for the
-reformer; the little town of Boudry for the priest.
-There were two places of worship in the parish, the
-church, and a chapel called the Pontareuse, situated in
-a low out-of-the-way place. The government decided
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_366" id="Page_366">{366}</a></span>
-that this should be for the use of both parties. Many
-catholics, more fanatical than their priest, entered
-into a plot to oppose the worship of the reformed.
-On the first Sunday in November 1532, the latter
-went down full of peace and joy into the wild valley
-through which flows the torrent of the Reuse, and where
-a few remains of the little chapel are still visible. They
-entered and took their seats on the benches, while
-Fabri went up into the pulpit. Meantime the catholics,
-girding on their swords, which was not usually
-done, entered the chapel and drew up near the altar.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_552" id="Ref_552" href="#Foot_552">[552]</a></span>
-While Fabri was preaching, all the bells suddenly
-rang out together so as to drown his voice, and the
-more he besought them to let him finish, the louder
-rang the catholics in the belfry. Then those who
-were in the church began to move, pushing and
-shouting. Fabri, seeing this disorder and profanation,
-ceased speaking, and left the church. He had hardly
-got outside when the catholics near the altar ran and
-shut the door, and fell like madmen on the surprised,
-hesitating, and unarmed congregation.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_553" id="Ref_553" href="#Foot_553">[553]</a></span>
-The confusion was very great, and it was this that saved the
-innocent. No one distinguished friends from enemies:
-each man struck the first he met. One or two evangelicals
-endeavoured to open the door, and at last
-they succeeded and rushed out, but their position
-was not bettered. 'Their adversaries, delighted at
-being able to distinguish them,' says an eye-witness,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_367" id="Page_367">{367}</a></span>
-'fell upon them like wolves upon lambs, threatening
-them with death.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_554" id="Ref_554" href="#Foot_554">[554]</a></span>
-'God help us!' exclaimed the
-poor people scattered here and there. At last they
-succeeded in reaching their homes, miraculously as it
-were, but with many bruises. They were happy at
-being in peace. 'Our heavenly Father fought for us
-mightily,' they said.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_555" id="Ref_555" href="#Foot_555">[555]</a></span>
-Clubs and swords only served
-to increase their repugnance for that theocratical
-tyranny which men had substituted for the mild
-gospel of Jesus Christ.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=A PROTESTANT RISING.=</p>
-
-<p>The next day some of the reformed went to Neuchatel
-against the advice of Fabri, who desired to
-wait for deliverance from the Lord and not from men.
-To the friends who met them on the road, they told
-the story of the plot to which they had nearly been
-victims. All the villages between Boudry and Neuchatel
-were in commotion, and the peasants of Auvernier
-and Colombier flew to arms, ready to join the
-Neuchatelans if they went to the help of their brethren.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_556" id="Ref_556" href="#Foot_556">[556]</a></span>
-The council of Neuchatel decreed that
-henceforth the chapel of Pontareuse should belong
-entirely to the reformed.</p>
-
-<p>The catholics resolved to pay no attention to this. On
-Christmas day the priest had already sung two masses
-before the hour appointed for the evangelical preaching;
-and at the moment when the reformers arrived, he
-resolutely began high mass 'with loud and long singing,'
-although there was scarcely anybody to hear it.
-The reformed waited patiently, but when the service
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_368" id="Page_368">{368}</a></span>
-was ended, and just as they were hoping that their
-turn had come, they were surprised to see the catholics
-arriving in a crowd. Fabri then wanted to go
-into the pulpit, but had great difficulty; one pushed
-him one way, and one another, and all shouted out
-against him.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_557" id="Ref_557" href="#Foot_557">[557]</a></span>
-Order being a little restored, one of
-the reformers went, as was customary, to take a
-chalice for the celebration of the Lord's Supper. The
-priest who had remained in the church, watching
-what was going on, rushed upon him and snatched the
-vessel from his hands, crying out, 'Sacrilege! Sacrilege!'
-The friends of the priests determined to put an
-end to the service once for all. 'Some of them rushed
-like raging lions upon the reformed, and hit them
-with their fists; and one of them struck a governor
-(probably one of the communal councillors) with a
-knife; but God,' says the document we quote, 'permitted
-only his clothes to be pierced.' This did not
-end the battle. Others, going to a room behind the
-altar, where they had hidden some large sticks, dealt
-their blows lustily on all sides. The women rushed
-into the vineyards, tore up the vine-props, and brought
-them to as many of their husbands as had neither
-sticks nor knives. Some of them left the chapel and
-picked up stones to throw at the minister, who was
-still in the pulpit, and kill him. From every side
-they fell upon the poor evangelicals, calling them
-'Rascally dogs!' Even the <i>sautier</i> of Boudry, whose
-duty it was to preserve order, joined in the riot, threw
-off his official robe, and loudly hooting, struck harder
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_369" id="Page_369">{369}</a></span>
-than the rest. The parish priest, who loved the law
-so much, had suddenly lost his balance. Incensed,
-and beside himself, stripped to his doublet, and 'bareheaded
-like a brigand,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_558" id="Ref_558" href="#Foot_558">[558]</a></span>
-he directed the battle. His
-friends, well provided with arquebuses, bludgeons,
-knives, and other weapons, seeing that the evangelists
-had rallied round their pastor, rushed upon them, intending
-to kill many of them; 'but it was God's will
-that this wolf should be stopped on the way,' says the
-official document, 'and be driven back into his den.'
-The reformed, who parried the blows as well as they
-could with their hands only, at last succeeded in
-reaching their houses. They told their relations and
-friends what had happened, and gave God thanks.
-'It is indeed a great miracle,' they said with emotion,
-'that there was nobody killed. But the Lord Jesus
-Christ is a Good Shepherd; he keeps his sheep so
-well in the midst of the sword, the fire, the lions,
-and even death itself, that the wolves cannot snatch
-them out of his hand.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=A PRIEST HEADS THE RIOT.=</p>
-
-<p>While these songs of thanksgiving were being
-sung in the houses of the evangelists, the curé was
-triumphing in the church. The battle was scarcely
-terminated by the retreat of the reformed, when,
-proud of the victory he had won by stones and clubs,
-he laid down the stake with which he had armed himself,
-covered his head, arranged his disordered doublet,
-put on his sacerdotal robes, and entered the church of
-Boudry with a grave and composed air. Seeing it
-full, and wishing to profit by the advantage he had
-gained, he went into the pulpit and exclaimed in his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_370" id="Page_370">{370}</a></span>
-burlesque manner: 'Some strangers have come of
-their own accord into this country. One comes from
-Paris, another from Lyons, and a third from I do not
-know where. This one is called Master Anthony, that
-one Master Berthoud, another Master William, a fourth
-Master Froment (<i>i.e.</i> <i>wheat</i>) with <i>barley</i> or <i>oats</i>....
-They carry a book in their hands and boast of having
-the Holy Ghost. But if they had the Holy Ghost,
-would they want a book? The apostles who were
-filled with the Holy Ghost understood without book
-all languages and all mysteries. My brethren, will you
-believe a stranger before a man of the country whom
-you know? Do not associate with those devils; they
-will lead you into hell; but come to confession as
-all your forefathers have done; open yourselves to me
-upon the seven deadly sins, the five natural senses, and
-the ten commandments. Do not be afraid; your consciences
-will be cleansed of all evil. Put me to death
-in case I do not prove all I have told you.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_559" id="Ref_559" href="#Foot_559">[559]</a></span>
-The catholics left the church very proud of such a fine
-discourse.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=REFORM ADVANCES AT NEUCHATEL.=</p>
-
-<p>Some of the friends of the reformed hurried off to
-Fabri, and reported to him that the priest offered to
-prove all he had said, particularly that he could absolve
-from the seven deadly sins and those of the five senses.
-Without loss of time Fabri appeared before the castellan
-and councillors of Boudry, and asked for a public
-disputation, offering to die in case he could not show
-that all he had preached was true, and that what the
-priest had said was false. The latter bluntly refused
-all public discussion; he did not like combats of that
-kind, and compensated himself in another fashion.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_371" id="Page_371">{371}</a></div>
-
-<p>One day, as he sat half undressed at his window
-watching the birds as they darted through the air, and
-the people who were walking in the street, he saw
-Fabri passing in front of his house. In great excitement
-he called to him and began abusing him:
-'Gaol-bird! forger!' he said, stretching his head out
-of window; 'tell me why you corrupt Holy Scripture?'
-Fabri, hoping the curé would grant him the discussion
-he had so much desired, made answer: 'Come
-down and bring out your Bible; we will take a clerk
-who can read it to the people, and I will show you that
-I am no forger.' At these words the alarmed priest exclaimed:
-'I have something else to do besides disputing
-with a gaol-bird like you;' and he retired hastily
-from the window. Such were the struggles the
-reformers had to go through in order to transform the
-church. This transformation was going on, and ere
-long the whole principality of Neuchatel was won to
-the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>In 1532 it penetrated into the mountain regions
-among the shepherds and hunters of Locle and Chaux
-de Fonds. Claude d'Arberg, who had so often followed
-the chase in these mountains, had built an oratory
-there to St. Hubert, the hunters' patron saint. The
-saint (says the legend) was once met by a bear, which
-killed his horse, but Hubert got on the bear's back, and
-rode him home to the great astonishment of everybody.
-A more formidable hunter was now about to tame
-the bears of these parts. Jean de Bély, the evangelist
-of Fontaine, having gone to Locle at the time of
-the fair of St. Magdalen, Madame Guillemette de Vergy
-had him seized instantly and forced him to dispute for
-two hours in her presence with the curé, Messire
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_372" id="Page_372">{372}</a></span>
-Besancenet. 'Put him in prison,' said the countess,
-who was offended at his doctrines; but whilst the high-born
-dame was so irritated at what she had heard,
-the priest, a good-natured man, interceded in the
-kindest manner in favour of the heretic. The lady released
-him, and the worthy vicar, taking Bély by the
-arm, led him graciously to the parsonage, and drank
-wine with him. Already people said that the mountain
-bears were beginning to be tamed.</p>
-
-<p>From Locle the Gospel made its way to Chaux de
-Fonds, and thence to Brenets (1534). The earnest
-mountaineers had taken the images out of the church,
-desiring to <i>worship God in spirit and in truth</i>, and
-were preparing to break them in pieces and throw them
-into the Doubs, when they saw two fine oxen approaching,
-driven by some devout inhabitants from a
-neighbouring village of Franche Comté. 'We offer
-you these beasts,' said they, 'in exchange for your
-pictures and statues.'—'Pray take them,' said the
-people of Brenets. The Franche-Comtois gathered up
-the idols, the Neuchatelans drove away the oxen, and
-'each thought they had made a fine exchange,' says a
-chronicler.</p>
-
-<p>With the exception of one village, the evangelical
-faith was established throughout the whole principality
-of Neuchatel, without the aid of the prince and the
-lords, and indeed in spite of them. A hand mightier
-than theirs was breaking the bonds, removing the
-obstacles, and emancipating souls. The Reformation
-triumphed: and after God, it was Farel's work.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_560" id="Ref_560" href="#Foot_560">[560]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_534" id="Foot_534" href="#Ref_534">[534]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 10.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_535" id="Foot_535" href="#Ref_535">[535]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 10, 11. The Choupard MS. (p.
-490) mentions Anthony Boive, also from Dauphiny, as Farel's companion.
-Did both Anthonys accompany the reformer? It is very probable. (See the
-<i>Hist. of the Reformation</i>, vol. iv. book xv. ch. 11.)</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_536" id="Foot_536" href="#Ref_536">[536]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Olivetan's Bible: <i>Apologie du translateur</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_537" id="Foot_537" href="#Ref_537">[537]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_538" id="Foot_538" href="#Ref_538">[538]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_539" id="Foot_539" href="#Ref_539">[539]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Olivetan's Bible: <i>Apologie du translateur</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_540" id="Foot_540" href="#Ref_540">[540]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ab Yvoniaco a cœna solvimus, et Viviacum venimus pransum, ubi de
-Christo locuti sumus.'—Adam to Farel from the Valleys, 5 Nov. 1532,
-Choupard MS. The letter from which we take these particulars has escaped
-notice until now.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_541" id="Foot_541" href="#Ref_541">[541]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ut si monerent invicem quemadmodum fratres et verbi veritatis
-ministros.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_542" id="Foot_542" href="#Ref_542">[542]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nullum erat cubiculum.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_543" id="Foot_543" href="#Ref_543">[543]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Verum uxor garrula et duræ cervicis, pietate vacans, cœpit minari
-marito de discessu.'—Adam to Farel, Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_544" id="Foot_544" href="#Ref_544">[544]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Furibunda abivit.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_545" id="Foot_545" href="#Ref_545">[545]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ne divortii causa essemus.'—Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_546" id="Foot_546" href="#Ref_546">[546]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Properamus ad Alpes.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_547" id="Foot_547" href="#Ref_547">[547]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Quo mærore in pede Alpium me colera tam crudeliter
-invasit.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_548" id="Foot_548" href="#Ref_548">[548]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Gratia illius, qui quum videtur nos ducit ad inferos et
-reducit.'—Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_549" id="Foot_549" href="#Ref_549">[549]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'At crumenæ nostræ linteria cœperunt laborare tam aspere, ut nihil
-prorsus in illorum corpore remanserit.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_550" id="Foot_550" href="#Ref_550">[550]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Veniunt a locis distantibus a nobis itinere duorum
-dierum.'—Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_551" id="Foot_551" href="#Ref_551">[551]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ad typographum dati sunt quingenti aurei.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_552" id="Foot_552" href="#Ref_552">[552]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Gladiis omnes ejusdem factionis præter consuetudinem
-cincti.'—Fabri to Farel, Choupard MS. The particulars, which we extract
-from this letter, were unknown until now.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_553" id="Foot_553" href="#Ref_553">[553]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Illi plusquam insani recta irruerunt in nos gladiis
-evaginatis.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_554" id="Foot_554" href="#Ref_554">[554]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Lupina rabie oviculos aggrediuntur mortem minantes.'—Fabri to
-Farel, Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_555" id="Foot_555" href="#Ref_555">[555]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Optimus pater qui pro nobis potenter adeo pugnavit.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_556" id="Foot_556" href="#Ref_556">[556]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Accincti ad arma toto spectarunt die si Neocomenses
-proficiscerentur.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_557" id="Foot_557" href="#Ref_557">[557]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Requête de MM. les gouverneurs de Bâle à MM. les maîtres bourgeois
-de Neuchatel.—Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_558" id="Foot_558" href="#Ref_558">[558]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-"Tête nue comme un brigand."—Requête de MM. les gouverneurs de
-Bâle, &amp;c.—Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_559" id="Foot_559" href="#Ref_559">[559]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_560" id="Foot_560" href="#Ref_560">[560]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Chambrier, <i>Hist. de Neuchatel</i>, p. 229.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_373" id="Page_373">{373}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER X.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE SCHOOLMASTER AND CLAUDINE LEVET.<br />
- (<span class="smc">November and December 1532.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="side">=FRESH ATTEMPTS UPON GENEVA.=</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">FAREL, seeing his labours in these different localities
-crowned with a success that promised to be
-lasting, turned his eyes with all the more ardour to
-Geneva. The numerous victories of Neuchatel and
-Vaud seemed to augur new ones to be gained in the
-city of the huguenots. There were, however, great
-obstacles. A fanatical party, directed by monks and
-priests, was opposed to all change, and even the enlightened
-catholics, who desired the abolition of crying
-abuses, kept repeating that the church ought first of
-all to be maintained, and then reformed. 'A purification
-is not enough,' said Farel; 'a transformation is
-wanted.' But who was to bring it about? He had
-been banished from Geneva, and for a time could not
-return there.</p>
-
-<p>Froment, young, poor, simple-minded, but intelligent,
-had refused to undertake so difficult a task. Farel
-tried once more. Froment did not understand how
-the attack of one of the strongest fortresses of the
-enemy could be entrusted to so young a man.
-'Fear nothing,' said Farel; 'you will find men in
-Geneva quite ready to receive you, and your very
-obscurity will protect you. God will be your guide,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_374" id="Page_374">{374}</a></span>
-and will guard your holy enterprise.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_561" id="Ref_561" href="#Foot_561">[561]</a></span>
-Froment yielded, but felt humbled; and reflecting on the task
-entrusted to him, he fell on his knees: 'O God,' he said,
-'I trust in no human power, but place myself entirely
-in thy hands. To thee I commit my cause, praying
-thee to guide it, for it is thine.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_562" id="Ref_562" href="#Foot_562">[562]</a></span>
-He did not pray
-alone. The little flock at Yvonand, affected at this call
-which was about to take away their pastor, said:
-'O God, give him grace to be useful for the advancement
-of thy Word!' The brethren embraced, and
-Froment departed, 'going to Geneva,' he tells us,
-'with prayers and blessings.' It was the 1st November
-1532.</p>
-
-<p>He reached Lausanne, whence he took his way along
-the shore of the lake towards Geneva. The poor young
-man stopped sometimes on the road, and asked himself
-whether the enterprise he was about to attempt was
-not sheer madness. 'No,' he said, 'I will not shrink
-back; for it is by the small and weak things of this
-world that God designs to confound the great.' And
-then he resumed his journey.</p>
-
-<p>The Genevese were much occupied at that time
-with signs in the heaven. A strange blaze shone in
-the firmament; every night their eyes were fixed upon
-a long train of light, and the most learned endeavoured
-to divine the prognostics to be drawn from it. 'At
-the new moon,' says a manuscript, 'there appeared a
-comet, at two in the morning, which was visible from
-the 26th September to the 14th of the following month.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_375" id="Page_375">{375}</a></span>
-About this time Anthony Froment arrived in Geneva.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_563" id="Ref_563" href="#Foot_563">[563]</a></span>
-Many huguenots, irritated at the reception given to
-Farel, despaired of seeing Geneva reformed, and its
-liberties settled on a firm basis. Some, however, who
-were adepts in astronomy, wondered whether that
-marvellous sheen did not foretel that a divine light
-would also illuminate the country. They waited, and
-Froment appeared.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FROMENT COLDLY RECEIVED.=</p>
-
-<p>The young Dauphinese was at first much embarrassed.
-He tried to enter into conversation with one
-and another, but they were very short with the stranger.
-He hoped to find 'some acquaintance with whom he
-could retire safely and familiarly;' but he saw none
-but strange faces. 'Alas!' he said, 'I cannot tell what
-to do, except it be to return, for I find no door to
-preach the Gospel.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_564" id="Ref_564" href="#Foot_564">[564]</a></span>
-Then, calling to mind the names
-of the chief huguenots, friends of Farel, who (as he
-said) would give him the warmest welcome, Froment
-resolved to apply to them, and waited upon Baudichon
-de la Maison-Neuve, Claude Bernard, J. Goulaz,
-Vandel, and Ami Perrin, ... but strange to say he
-everywhere met with embarrassed manners and long
-faces. The mean appearance of the young Dauphinese
-disconcerted even the best disposed. Farel (they
-thought) might at least have sent a scholar, and not a
-working man. Geneva was an important and learned
-city. There were men of capacity among the Roman
-clergy, who must be opposed by a minister of good
-appearance, a well-established doctor.... The huguenots
-bowed out the mean little man. 'Ah!' said
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_376" id="Page_376">{376}</a></span>
-Froment, returning to his inn, 'I found them so cold,
-so timid, and so startled at what had been done to
-Farel and his companions, that they dared not unbosom
-themselves, and still less receive me into their houses.'
-Confounded and dejected at seeing all his plans overthrown,
-he walked thoughtfully through the streets
-with his eyes bent on the ground. He entered the
-inn, shut himself up in his room, and asked himself
-what was to be done next. Those who seemed to wish
-to hear the Gospel looked at him with contemptuous
-eyes. If he spoke to any persons, they turned their
-backs on him. Not one door was opened to the Word
-of God.... His feelings were soured. Wearied and
-dejected he sank under the weight, and lost courage.
-'I am greatly tempted to go back,' he said.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_565" id="Ref_565" href="#Foot_565">[565]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Froment went to the landlord, paid his bill, strapped
-his little bundle on his shoulders, and, without taking
-leave of the huguenots, bent his steps towards the
-Swiss gate, and quitted the city. But he had not
-gone many yards before he stopped; he felt as if he
-were detained by an invisible hand; a voice was heard
-in his conscience, telling him he was doing wrong; a
-force greater than that of man compelled him to retrace
-his steps. He returned to his room, shut the
-door, and sat down; leaning on the table with his head
-in his hands, he asked what God wanted with him.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_566" id="Ref_566" href="#Foot_566">[566]</a></span>
-He began to pray, and seemed to witness in himself the
-realisation of the promise: <i>I will lead thee in the way
-in which thou shouldst walk</i>. He called to mind what
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_377" id="Page_377">{377}</a></span>
-Farel had told him, and what the reformer had done
-at Aigle. A flash of light illumined his soul. They
-will have nothing to do with him in Geneva, because
-his appearance is mean. Be it so; he will undertake
-with humility the work that God gives him; and since
-he is rejected as an evangelist, he will turn schoolmaster.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FROMENT ADVERTISES HIS SCHOOL.=</p>
-
-<p>During his walks Froment had met with one Le
-Patu, a man but little known, whom he asked if he
-could procure for him a place for a school. Le Patu
-answered that there was the great hall at Boytet's, at
-the Croix d'Or, near the Molard.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_567" id="Ref_567" href="#Foot_567">[567]</a></span>
-They went there
-together; Froment measured its dimensions with his
-eye, and hired the room. He breathed again; he had
-now one foot in the stirrup; it only remained to get
-into the saddle, and begin his course. It was necessary
-to find scholars; with God's help Froment despaired of
-nothing. Returning to the inn, he drew up a prospectus,
-made several copies in his best handwriting,
-went out with them, and posted them in all the public
-places. They ran as follows: 'A man has just arrived
-in this city who engages to teach reading and writing
-in French, in one month, to all who will come to him,
-young and old, men and women, even such as have
-never been to school; and if they cannot read and
-write within the said month, he asks nothing for his
-trouble. He will be found at Boytet's large room, near
-the Molard, at the sign of the Croix d'Or. Many
-diseases are also cured gratis.'</p>
-
-<p>These papers having been posted about the city,
-many of the passers-by stopped to read them. 'We
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_378" id="Page_378">{378}</a></span>
-have heard him speak,' said some with whom he had
-conversed; 'he talks well.' Others thought that the
-promise to teach reading and writing in a month was
-suspicious; to which more benevolent men replied,
-that in any case he did not aim at their purses. But
-the priests and devout were irritated. 'He is a devil,'
-said a priest in the crowd; 'he enchants all who go
-near him. You have hardly heard him before his
-magical words bewilder you.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_568" id="Ref_568" href="#Foot_568">[568]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The school opened, however, and he did not want
-for young pupils. Froment, who had talent (his book
-of the <i>Actes et Gestes de Genève</i> proves this), taught
-with simplicity and clearness. Before dismissing his
-scholars he would open the New Testament and
-read a few verses, explaining them in an interesting
-manner; after which (as he had some knowledge of
-medicine) he would ask them whether any in their
-families were sick, and distribute harmless remedies
-among them. It was by the instruction of the mind
-and the healing of the body that the evangelist paved
-the way to the conversion of the heart. The school
-and medicine are great missionary auxiliaries. The
-children ran home and told their parents all; the
-mothers stopped in their work to listen to them, and
-the fathers, especially the huguenots, made them
-tell it again. Some of the boys and girls were continually
-prattling about it; they even 'accosted men
-and women in the streets, inviting them to come and
-hear <i>that man</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_569" id="Ref_569" href="#Foot_569">[569]</a></span>
-In a short time the city was full of
-the schoolmaster who spoke French so well.</p>
-
-<div><a name="Page_379" id="Page_379">{379}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=FROMENT'S SUCCESS.=</p>
-
-<p>Several adults resolved to hear him, either from a
-desire to learn, or from curiosity, or in sport. Wives,
-however, stopped their husbands; jesters played off
-their jokes, and priests uttered their anathemas. But
-nothing could stop the current, for people thought
-the schoolmaster would speak against the lives of the
-priests, the mass, and Lent.... These worthy huguenots,
-as they passed through the streets, heard 'numerous
-loud jests and whispered hints' around them.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_570" id="Ref_570" href="#Foot_570">[570]</a></span>
-They took their places behind the children and listened.
-Froment began: 'He speaks well,' said his hearers.
-He did even more than he had promised; he taught
-arithmetic, which was very acceptable to the Genevese,
-who are by nature rather calculating. It was the
-sermon, however, which the hearers waited for, and
-that was very different from what they had expected—a
-homily instead of a philippic. In the course of
-his lessons Froment read at one time a story from the
-Bible, at another one of our Lord's sermons, giving
-the Scripture as the Scriptures of God, explaining as
-he went on the difficult words, and then applying the
-doctrine affectionately to the consciences of his hearers.
-They were all ears; leaning forward and with half-opened
-mouth, each one seemed afraid of losing a word.
-A few boys turned glances of triumph on those whom
-they had brought there. Froment joyfully marked
-the effect produced by his teaching. 'They were
-much astonished, for they had never heard such doctrine.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_571" id="Ref_571" href="#Foot_571">[571]</a></span>
-Some began to understand that evangelical
-Christianity did not consist in mocking the priests
-and the mass, but in knowing and loving the Saviour.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_380" id="Page_380">{380}</a></span>
-'Those who heard him conceived in their hearts some
-understanding of the truth.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_572" id="Ref_572" href="#Foot_572">[572]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In a short time the success of this simple instruction
-surpassed the hopes of the teacher. Those who
-had heard him talked of the beautiful discourses
-delivered at the Croix d'Or. 'Come,' said they,
-'for he preaches very differently from the priests,
-and asks nothing for his trouble.'—'Good,' said some
-citizens more ignorant than the rest; 'we will go and
-hear him; we will learn to read and write, and hear
-what he says.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_573" id="Ref_573" href="#Foot_573">[573]</a></span>
-Men, women, and children hastened
-to the hall, striving which should be there first.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_574" id="Ref_574" href="#Foot_574">[574]</a></span>
-The poor man whom the Genevans had repulsed had
-suddenly grown in their estimation. The disputes
-between huguenots and mamelukes, the claims of the
-Duke of Savoy and Bishop De la Baume were forgotten;
-nothing was thought of but the evangelist. At the
-epoch of the Reformation nothing was more striking
-than the great difference between the instruction
-given by the priests and that given by the reformers.
-'Their teaching,' it was said, 'is not such a cold,
-meagre, lifeless thing as that of popery. True, our
-masters sing loud enough, and preach whatever pleases
-their patrons, but they chirp out divine things in a
-profane manner; their discourses have no reverence
-for God, and are full of fine words and affectation....
-In the others, on the contrary, instead of mere words
-and idle talk, there is virtue and efficaciousness, a
-life-giving spirit and divine power.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_575" id="Ref_575" href="#Foot_575">[575]</a></span>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_381" id="Page_381">{381}</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BEWITCHED.=</p>
-
-<p>The friends of the priests could not hear such remarks
-without feeling the deepest alarm. 'Pshaw!'
-they said, 'you speak as if the man had enchanted
-you. By what sounds, figures, or magical operations
-has he bewitched you? Or is it else by fine
-words, great promises, or other means of seduction
-... by money?' From that time if they saw in
-the street a man or woman who attended the meetings
-at the Croix d'Or, they would cry out: 'Ho! ho!
-there goes one of the possessed!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_576" id="Ref_576" href="#Foot_576">[576]</a></span>
-Complaints were
-made and bitter reproaches: signs of disapprobation
-were heard; but 'notwithstanding all this contrary
-movement the number of hearers increased daily.
-Many of those whom curiosity had attracted were
-interested, enlightened, and touched, and returning
-home they praised and glorified God.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_577" id="Ref_577" href="#Foot_577">[577]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>All were not, however, won over to the Gospel.
-Certain huguenot leaders, Ami Perrin, John Goulaz,
-Stephen d'Adda, and others, took no great pleasure
-in the preacher's sermons; but believing that this new
-doctrine, which fell from the skies, would overthrow
-the dominion of the priests and mamelukes, they did
-not hesitate to range themselves among Froment's
-hearers, and to support him energetically in the city.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_578" id="Ref_578" href="#Foot_578">[578]</a></span>
-Ere long matters went still worse for Rome. Some
-of Froment's hearers invited certain priests who were
-liberally inclined, to come and hear the schoolmaster.
-The idea of sitting on the benches at the Croix d'Or
-alarmed these churchmen, the huguenots repeated
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_382" id="Page_382">{382}</a></span>
-the Frenchman's words: 'Truly,' said the priests,
-'these doctrines are good, and we should do well to
-receive them.'—'Ho! ho!' said certain of the citizens,
-'the clerks who made such a brag are now converted
-themselves.'</p>
-
-<p>The alarm increased. The most bigoted monks and
-priests entered private houses, addressed the groups
-assembled in the public places, and jeered at Froment's
-doctrine and person. 'Will you go and hear
-that devil?' they said; 'what can that little fool
-(<i>folaton</i>) know who is hardly twenty-two?'—'That
-fool,' answered Froment's admirers, 'will teach you
-to be wise.... That devil will cast out the devil
-that is in you.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_579" id="Ref_579" href="#Foot_579">[579]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=CLAUDINE LEVET.=</p>
-
-<p>In truth an astonishing work was going on in
-Geneva at this time; many souls were gained to the
-evangelical faith, and as in the times of the apostles,
-it was the women of distinction who believed first,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_580" id="Ref_580" href="#Foot_580">[580]</a></span>
-Paula, the wife of John Levet, and probably the
-same as Pernetta of Bourdigny, was daughter of the
-lord of Bourdigny, in the <i>mandement</i> of Peney. The
-members of this house had been styled nobles or
-<i>damoiseaux</i> as far back as the thirteenth century,
-and many of them had been syndics of Geneva.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_581" id="Ref_581" href="#Foot_581">[581]</a></span>
-This lady, prepared by the teachings of the evangelists
-who had preceded Froment, 'had become
-very zealous for the Word,' and earnestly desired
-to bring to the Gospel her sister-in-law Claudine,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_383" id="Page_383">{383}</a></span>
-wife of a worthy citizen, Aimé Levet. The latter,
-'an honest, devoted, and wondrously superstitious
-woman,' was upright and sincere, and more than
-once had combatted zealously her sister's opinions.
-One day when Paula was at Claudine's house, she
-conjured her to come and hear the schoolmaster. 'I
-have so great a horror of him,' replied her sister-in-law,
-'that for fear of being bewitched, I will neither
-see nor hear him.'—'He speaks like an angel,' answered
-Paula. 'I look upon him as a devil,' retorted
-Claudine. 'If you hear him, you will be saved.'—'And
-I think I shall be damned.' Thus contended
-these two women. Paula was not discouraged. 'At
-least hear him once,' she said, and then added with
-emotion: 'Pray hear him once for love of me!' She
-prevailed at last, though with great difficulty.</p>
-
-<p>Dame Claudine, although yielding to her sister's
-entreaties, resolved to protect herself thoroughly.
-She armed herself carefully with all the antidotes
-provided in such cases; she fastened fresh-gathered
-rosemary leaves to her temples, rubbed her bosom
-with virgin wax,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_582" id="Ref_582" href="#Foot_582">[582]</a></span>
-hung relics, crosses, and rosaries
-round her neck, and shielded by these amulets, she
-accompanied Paula to the Croix d'Or. 'I am going
-to see an enchanter,' she said, so deceived<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_583" id="Ref_583" href="#Foot_583">[583]</a></span>
-was she. She promised herself to lead back the Demoiselle de
-Bourdigny into the fold.</p>
-
-<p>Claudine entered the hall and sat down in front of
-the magician in mockery and derision, says the chronicle.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_384" id="Page_384">{384}</a></span>
-Froment appeared, having a book in his hand.
-He mounted on a round table, as was his custom, in
-order to be better heard, and opening the New Testament,
-read a few words, and then began to apply
-them. Claudine, without caring the least for the
-assembly, and wishing to make her catholicism known,
-crossed herself several times on the breast, at the
-same time repeating certain prayers. Froment continued
-his discourse and unfolded the treasures of the
-Gospel. Claudine raised her eyes at last, astonished
-at what she heard, and looked at the minister. She
-listened, and ere long there was not a more attentive
-hearer in all the congregation. Froment's voice alone
-would have been 'wasted,' but it entered into the
-woman's understanding, as if borne by the Spirit of
-God. She drank in the reformer's words; and yet a
-keen struggle was going on within her. Can this
-doctrine be true, seeing that the church says nothing
-about it? she asked herself. Her eyes often fell on
-the schoolmaster's book. It was not a missal or a
-breviary.... It seemed to her full of life.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CLAUDINE ALONE WITH THE BIBLE.=</p>
-
-<p>Froment having completed his sermon, the children
-and adults rose and prepared to go out. Claudine
-remained in her place: she looked at the teacher, and
-at last exclaimed aloud: 'Is it true what you say?'—'Yes,'
-answered the reformer. 'Is it all proved by
-the Gospel?'—'Yes.'—'Is not the mass mentioned in
-it?'—'No!'—'And is the book from which you preached
-a genuine New Testament?'—'Yes.' Madame Levet
-eagerly desired to have it: taking courage, she said:
-'Then lend it me.' Froment gave it to her, and
-Claudine placing it carefully under her cloak, among
-her relics and beads, went out with her sister-in-law,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_385" id="Page_385">{385}</a></span>
-who was beginning to see all her wishes accomplished.
-As Claudine returned home she did not talk much
-with Paula: hers was one of those deep natures that
-speak little with man but much with God. Entering
-her house, she went straight to her room and shut
-herself in, taking nothing but the book with her, and
-being determined not to come out again until she had
-found the solution of the grand problem with which
-her conscience was occupied. On which side is truth?
-At Rome or at Wittemberg? Having made arrangements
-that they should not wait meals for her, or
-knock at her door, 'she remained apart,' says Froment,
-'for three days and three nights without eating
-or drinking, but with prayers, fasting, and supplication.'
-The book lay open on the table before her.
-She read it constantly, and falling on her knees, asked
-for the divine light to be shed abroad in her heart.
-Claudine probably did not possess an understanding
-of the highest range, but she had a tender conscience.
-With her the first duty was to submit to God, the
-first want to resemble Him, the first desire to find
-everlasting happiness in Him. She did not reach Christ
-through the understanding; conscience was the path
-that led her to Him. An awakening conscience is the
-first symptom of conversion and consequently of reformation.
-Sometimes Claudine heard in her heart
-a voice pressing her to come to Jesus; then her
-superstitious ideas would suddenly return, and she
-rejected the Lord's invitation. But she soon discovered
-that the practices to which she had abandoned
-herself were dried-up wells where there had never
-been any water. Determined to go astray no longer,
-she desired to go straight to Christ. It was then she
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_386" id="Page_386">{386}</a></span>
-redoubled those 'prayers and supplications' of which
-Froment speaks, and read the Holy Scriptures with
-eagerness. At last she understood that divine Word
-which spake: 'Daughter, thy sins are forgiven thee.'
-Oh, wonderful, she is saved! This salvation did not
-puff her up: she discovered that 'the grace of God
-trickled slowly into her;' but the least drop coming
-from the Holy Spirit seemed a well that never dried.
-Three days were thus spent: for the same space of
-time Paul remained in prayer at Damascus.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_584" id="Ref_584" href="#Foot_584">[584]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=HER CONVERSION.=</p>
-
-<p>Madame Levet having read the Gospel again and
-again desired to see the man who had first led
-her to know it. She sent for him. Froment
-crossed the Rhone, for she lived at the foot of the
-bridge, on the side of St. Gervais. He entered,
-and when she saw him Claudine rose in emotion,
-approached him, and being unable to speak burst into
-tears. 'Her tears,' says the evangelist, 'fell on the
-floor,' she had no other language. When she recovered,
-Madame Levet courteously begged Froment
-to sit down, and told him how God had opened to her
-the door of heaven. At the same time she showed
-herself determined to profess without fear before men
-the faith that caused her happiness. 'Ah!' she said,
-'can I ever thank God sufficiently for having enlightened
-me?' Froment had come to strengthen this
-lady and he was himself strengthened. He was
-in great admiration at 'hearing her speak as she did.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_585" id="Ref_585" href="#Foot_585">[585]</a></span>
-A conversion so spiritual and so serious
-must needs have a great signification for the Reformation
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_387" id="Page_387">{387}</a></span>
-of Geneva, and as Calvin says in other circumstances
-where also only one woman seems to have
-been converted: 'From this tiny shoot an excellent
-church was to spring.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_586" id="Ref_586" href="#Foot_586">[586]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_561" id="Foot_561" href="#Ref_561">[561]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Obscuritatem nominis præsidio futuram, Deum itineri ducem et
-cœpto patronum.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva restituta</i>, p. 47.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_562" id="Foot_562" href="#Ref_562">[562]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 12.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_563" id="Foot_563" href="#Ref_563">[563]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Badollet MS. in Berne library, <i>Hist. Helv.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_564" id="Foot_564" href="#Ref_564">[564]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 13.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_565" id="Foot_565" href="#Ref_565">[565]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 13.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_566" id="Foot_566" href="#Ref_566">[566]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cum jam pedem ex urbe efferret, nescio qua vi humana majore, se
-vel reluctantem revocari sensit.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva rest.</i> p. 47;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 13.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_567" id="Foot_567" href="#Ref_567">[567]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The sign of the Golden Cross is still on the house, but it was not
-an inn, as some assert.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_568" id="Foot_568" href="#Ref_568">[568]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 14.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_569" id="Foot_569" href="#Ref_569">[569]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_570" id="Foot_570" href="#Ref_570">[570]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 14.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_571" id="Foot_571" href="#Ref_571">[571]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_572" id="Foot_572" href="#Ref_572">[572]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 14.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_573" id="Foot_573" href="#Ref_573">[573]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nous verrons ce que c'est qu'il dit.'—Froment, <i>Gestes</i>,
-p. 14.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_574" id="Foot_574" href="#Ref_574">[574]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'A viris et fœminis certatim ad Fromentium itum.'—Spanheim,
-<i>Geneva restit.</i> p. 48.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_575" id="Foot_575" href="#Ref_575">[575]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>passim</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_576" id="Foot_576" href="#Ref_576">[576]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Badollet MS. in Berne library, <i>Hist. Helv.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_577" id="Foot_577" href="#Ref_577">[577]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, pp. 14-15.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_578" id="Foot_578" href="#Ref_578">[578]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, 31 Dec. 1532.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_579" id="Foot_579" href="#Ref_579">[579]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 13.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_580" id="Foot_580" href="#Ref_580">[580]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'And some of them consorted with Paul and Silas, and of the chief
-women not a few.'—Acts xvii. 4.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_581" id="Foot_581" href="#Ref_581">[581]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Galiffe, <i>Notices Généalogiques</i>, I. p. 446.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_582" id="Foot_582" href="#Ref_582">[582]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Recente verbena tempora vincta, cera virginea pectus
-munita.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva restit.</i> p. 50.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_583" id="Foot_583" href="#Ref_583">[583]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Embabuynée,' Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 16.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_584" id="Foot_584" href="#Ref_584">[584]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 16; Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_585" id="Foot_585" href="#Ref_585">[585]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 16.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_586" id="Foot_586" href="#Ref_586">[586]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin on Lydia, Acts xvi. 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_388" id="Page_388">{388}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">FORMATION OF THE CHURCH.
- FRIENDS AND OPPONENTS.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Middle to the End of Dec. 1532.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">WHILE the Gospel was thus manifesting its power
-in Geneva, the bishop persisted in his inflexible
-hostility. The Genevan magistrates still felt great
-regard for him. On the 13th December 1532 the
-council sent a deputation to him to obtain his consent
-to a tax which was deemed to be necessary: the Sieur
-de Chapeaurouge, the ex-captain-general Philippe,
-and others appeared respectfully before him. Love of
-order and the obedience due to established authority
-were characteristics of the Genevese statesmen, and
-vexed as they were at the abuses which had their
-source in the power of the bishop, they could not
-take upon themselves to do anything without his consent.
-The bishop, flattered with these attentions,
-made the deputation very welcome for a couple of
-days, but on the third all his bad humour returned.
-When the ambassadors appeared before him again he
-said hastily: 'I will grant you nothing, not a single
-crown, and I will compel my lords of Geneva to ask
-my pardon on their bended knees.' On the 26th
-December the deputation reported this language to
-the council, who were annoyed at it; and while the
-bishop was sending these messages to Geneva which
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_389" id="Page_389">{389}</a></span>
-did not advance the cause of popery, the Reformation,
-on the contrary, was endeavouring in every way to
-enlighten men's minds and win their hearts.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_587" id="Ref_587" href="#Foot_587">[587]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=PROGRESS OF THE GOSPEL.=</p>
-
-<p>Froment being in communication with Farel and
-the reformed of Switzerland, received from them
-Testaments, tracts, and controversial works, which his
-friends and he distributed all over the city, where they
-were read with eagerness. Every day more persons
-were won over to the evangelical faith. They were of
-all conditions of life. A certain tradesman, named
-Guérin, a cap-maker, listened while working in his
-shop to all that was said around him, and thought
-seriously of religion and of the abuses of popery. One
-day he determined to visit the Croix d'Or, and the
-words he heard there touched his heart and enlightened
-his mind. Being sensible, intelligent, modest,
-and of decided character, he gave himself up with all
-his heart to God's cause, and ere long became Froment's
-helper. There were also persons of all ages
-among the converts. Claude Bernard had a daughter
-between seven and eight years old whom he early
-introduced to the knowledge of scripture. The child's
-precocious understanding was struck with certain
-simple and clear passages which condemned the popular
-superstitions; and the little controversialist (we
-are told) confounded the ignorant priests. Unable to
-answer her they spread a report that she was possessed
-of the devil. A Frenchman of distinction, passing
-through Geneva, wished to see her, and was charmed
-with her infantile graces and piety.</p>
-
-<p>It was soon apparent that there was something
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_390" id="Page_390">{390}</a></span>
-more than a new doctrine: a moral reformation
-accompanied the revival of faith. In the days of her
-bigoted Catholicism Claudine Levet had been very
-fond of dress; her conscience now reproached her with
-having been unreasonable in her love of costly attire,
-and more eager to ornament her body than to adorn
-her soul. One day she shut herself up in that room
-where she had heard the call of God, stripped off
-(says Froment) 'all superfluous bravery (<i>braveté</i>), laid
-aside those ornaments and trappings which had only
-served to show her off in a vainglorious way, as a peacock
-spreads his tail,' and from that time she wore a
-plain and becoming dress. Having sold her beautiful
-robes and other belongings, she gave the money to
-the poor, particularly to the evangelicals of France,
-who having been banished from their homes on account
-of truth had come to Geneva. All her life she loved
-to receive refugees in her house. 'Verily,' they said
-of her, 'verily, she follows the example of Tabitha who
-was called Dorcas (Acts ix.), and deserves to be kept
-in perpetual remembrance.'</p>
-
-<p>Claudine did more than this: she spoke frankly and
-meekly of the precious truth she had received, and
-'scattered it wherever she happened to be in the city.'
-The priests alarmed at such an astonishing transformation
-endeavoured to bring her back to the practices
-of the church; but Claudine 'showed them tenderly
-by scripture what was necessary' (namely, faith and
-charity). All in the city were surprised to hear her
-talk as she did.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_588" id="Ref_588" href="#Foot_588">[588]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=GENEVESE LADIES.=</p>
-
-<p>The news of her conversion made a great sensation,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_391" id="Page_391">{391}</a></span>
-particularly among the Genevese ladies. One day, when
-the most worldly of them had met together, they
-talked of nothing but Madame Levet and her estrangement
-from the mass and from amusements. They were
-Pernette Balthasarde, wife of a councillor; the wife of
-Baudichon de la Maison neuve; the wife of Claude
-Pastor, Jeanne Marie de Fernex, and many other rich
-and honourable ladies.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_589" id="Ref_589" href="#Foot_589">[589]</a></span>
-'Alas!' they said, 'how is
-it that she has changed in so short a time?' They
-had loved her, and all the more regretted that she was
-<i>lost</i>.... They vented their anger on Froment. 'She
-has heard that creature,' they said, 'and been bewitched
-by him.' These ladies resolved that they
-would see her no more.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_590" id="Ref_590" href="#Foot_590">[590]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Claudine did not despair of her friends. She continued
-to live for God, and all might see that a holy
-life, full of good works, proceeded from her faith.
-The Genevan ladies, although unwilling to visit her,
-watched her; and observing 'that she persevered in
-well-doing, and was still a constant pattern of holy
-living,' they drew near her. They were curious to
-know the cause of this singular change, and began to
-speak to her when they met her, some even going to
-see her. Claudine received them affectionately, spoke
-to them about that which filled her heart—this was
-what her friends desired—presented them with the
-New Testament, and begged them to read it and to
-love the Saviour. Several of these ladies were converted,
-especially those whom we have named. Claudine,
-who was their 'exemplar of life and charity,'
-pressed them to adopt a Christian conduct. 'Put
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_392" id="Page_392">{392}</a></span>
-aside your great display,' she said to them, 'attire
-yourselves simply and without superfluity, and give
-your minds to great charities. Faith holds the
-first place, but after that come good works.' From
-that time indeed these women showed great compassion
-for the wretched. The fame of their good deeds
-spread abroad, and the Gospel was honoured by them.
-It seemed admitted that no one could be a Christian
-<i>unless he had some poor persecuted foreigner in his house</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_591" id="Ref_591" href="#Foot_591">[591]</a></span>
-Such was the Christianity of Geneva at the
-moment when it was beginning to appear, and such it
-remained for two centuries.</p>
-
-<p>Aimé Levet, who was at first strongly opposed to
-Froment and the Gospel, gradually softened down.
-The holiness and charity of his wife made him appreciate
-the Word of God: 'thus Claudine won her
-husband to the Lord.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_592" id="Ref_592" href="#Foot_592">[592]</a></span>
-From that time she had
-more liberty, and the meetings at the Croix
-d'Or being insufficient, little assemblies were held
-at her house or at others. When there was no
-evangelist present capable of explaining the Bible,
-they begged this pious christian woman to do it, saying:
-'No one has received from the Lord greater gifts
-than you.' Claudine would then read the scripture,
-and set forth with simplicity the truths and graces
-she had found therein. The reformers remembered
-the precept of St. Paul, <i>Let your women keep silence
-in the churches</i>; but they added, 'This must be
-understood of the ordinary charge, for a case may
-happen when it will be necessary for a woman to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_393" id="Page_393">{393}</a></span>
-speak in public.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_593" id="Ref_593" href="#Foot_593">[593]</a></span>
-Ere long the modest Guérin, who
-studied his Bible day and night, and other Christians
-likewise, took an active part in the work of evangelisation.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CHURCH IN TRANSITION.=</p>
-
-<p>The church was forming. At first there were a
-few souls awakened separately here and there in
-Geneva; now with the element of individuality, which
-is the first, was combined the element of communion,
-which is not less necessary, for Christianity is a leaven
-that <i>leaveneth the whole lump</i>. Those who had begun
-to believe assembled to advance together in faith.
-Doubtless it was not yet a church in its complete
-state, with all its institutions. Believers, even without
-forming a church, may act upon one another,
-pray in common, and celebrate the Lord's Supper
-together; things ordinarily begin in this way. This
-state of transition, the lawfulness of which must be
-acknowledged, proves that the ecclesiastical organisation,
-with its ministers, elders, deacons, presbyteries,
-and synods, has not the first place in Christianity, and
-that the pre-eminence belongs to faith and christian
-sanctification. This imperfect mode of existence is
-insufficient: it has many deficiencies, and is exposed
-to many dangers. The church should be formed.
-Somewhat later, under Calvin, it attained indeed its
-complete form in Geneva. It would be foolish to
-deny man the right of being at first a child; but it
-would be no less so to refuse him the right and duty
-of becoming a man.</p>
-
-<p>Just at this time the evangelicals received an unexpected
-help. A Franciscan coming from abroad
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_394" id="Page_394">{394}</a></span>
-began to preach the Advent sermons in the Rive
-church, and this monk, Christopher Bocquet by name,
-happened to have some inclination for the Gospel.
-Being invited to preach in a city where two parties
-were at war, he abstained from both superstitions and
-abuse—frequent themes with many catholic preachers—but
-at the same time he abstained from certain
-distinctive doctrines of the Reformation which he did
-not quite understand, and keeping to a certain
-common ground of Christianity, he delivered 'moderate' sermons.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_594" id="Ref_594" href="#Foot_594">[594]</a></span>
-Dressed in his brown frock, and
-with the cord round his waist, and humbly bending
-his head, he entered the Cordeliers' church, went up
-into the pulpit, and contemplating the mixed crowd
-before him, proclaimed to all a Saviour who had come
-not in magnificent array, but in gracious love, and
-called upon every heart to rejoice at his sight. The
-evangelicals were edified, and the number of persons
-frequenting the church increased every day. But
-Friar Christopher 'had hardly finished his sermon,'
-when the huguenots hurried away to Froment's
-meeting-place, where <i>the trumpet gave no uncertain
-sound</i>. They were not the only persons who went
-thither. Many catholics having heard the reformers
-say that the monk and the schoolmaster preached
-fundamentally the same things, followed the crowd
-going to the Croix d'Or, and some of them took a
-liking for what they heard.</p>
-
-<p>Thus the people were more and more enlightened.
-The evangelicals met sometimes at one house, sometimes
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_395" id="Page_395">{395}</a></span>
-at another; they read and discussed the little
-tracts that were sent them, but above all applied themselves
-to Holy Scripture. It was there only that
-these simple Christians were willing to seek the light
-which their consciences needed. 'Let us specially
-study the sacred writings,' they said, 'in order that we
-may distinguish in religion what comes from God,
-from that which men have added to it.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_595" id="Ref_595" href="#Foot_595">[595]</a></span>
-The Genevans retired from these meetings strengthened
-and full of joy, and their love for the Word of God
-continued to increase.</p>
-
-<p>If the Reformation met with faithful adherents in
-Geneva, it also encountered resolute adversaries. The
-astonished and bewildered priests seemed to sleep.
-Contenting themselves with a war of trifles, they made
-no active and combined opposition to the evangelical
-movement. It was the laity who uttered the cry
-of alarm. Angry at the inactivity of the clergy,
-they gave the signal of a 'holy war' destined in their
-opinion to expel the infidels from their well-beloved
-Zion. Thomas Moine<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_596" id="Ref_596" href="#Foot_596">[596]</a></span>
-was at their head—a decided,
-impetuous man, a fluent speaker, and one who had
-attained great consideration in the Romish party; he
-complained that they had permitted the enemy to
-establish himself little by little in the ancient episcopal
-city. He said that it was time to wake up, and
-reproached the Genevese ecclesiastics for their cowardice.
-Moine did not speak in vain.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=SERMON AT THE MADELEINE.=</p>
-
-<p>The vicar of La Madeleine touched by his words,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_396" id="Page_396">{396}</a></span>
-determined to exalt the honour of his church and
-corporation, and gave notice that he would preach
-against the heretical schoolmaster and the foreign
-preacher. The large area was soon filled with fervent
-catholics, among whom were some of the reformed, in
-particular Chautemps, Claude Bernard, Salomon, and
-Perrin. The vicar praised the catholic apostolic Roman
-Church, extolled its head, who was (he said) the representative
-of God, and defended its worship and
-institutions. Then having praised the fold, he described
-the 'wolves' that prowled around it to devour
-the sheep. He accused Froment of ignorance and
-falsehood, and conjured his hearers not to throw themselves
-into the paws of wild beasts, thieves, and
-robbers....</p>
-
-<p>On leaving the church the four huguenots who had
-heard him met to inquire what was to be done. These
-men who at the first moment had, like the others,
-given so bad a reception to the schoolmaster, had been
-touched (three of them at least) by the simple preaching
-of the Gospel. The Bible, as we have seen, had
-become their court of appeal, which grieved the priests,
-who dared not deny the divinity of the book, but as
-they had never studied it, were much embarrassed to
-find the proof of their dogmas in it. After some deliberation
-Chautemps and his friends waited upon the
-vicar. 'Froment,' they said, 'is a good and learned
-man; you say that he has lied; prove it by Scripture?'
-The vicar having consented, the huguenots demanded
-that the discussion should take place in public, so that
-all might profit by it; but the priest desired it to be
-held at the parsonage. The champions of the Reformation
-gave way, and arrangements were made for the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_397" id="Page_397">{397}</a></span>
-disputation to take place on the last day of the year. The
-poor priest (Claude Pelliez by name) was greatly embarrassed:
-he retired to his room, took up the Vulgate,
-which he did not often open, and began to look for
-passages to oppose to the reformed doctrines; but he
-searched in vain, he could find none.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=A CONTROVERSY.=</p>
-
-<p>In the afternoon of the 31st December, St. Sylvester's
-day, Chautemps, Bernard, Perrin, and Salomon went to
-the parsonage of the Madeleine, wearing their swords
-as was customary. Some priests whom the curate
-had invited were already there, but they had to wait
-for the champion of Romanism who had not yet been
-able to find a single text. The four huguenots took
-off their belts, threw their swords on the bed, and
-sitting round the table with the priests, began to talk
-familiarly together. At last the vicar, who had had
-some trouble to tear himself away from his folios, in
-which he still hoped to find something, appeared with a
-bulky volume under his arm. The huguenots rose
-as he entered; beneath the table at which they
-were sitting stood some wine-bottles which they and
-the priests had emptied while waiting for him, and
-which Perrin had paid for. The conference now
-began. The vicar opened his big volume, in which
-some strips of paper indicated the places he thought
-favourable to him, and read a long extract opposed to
-Froment's doctrine. 'What book is that,' asked
-Perrin; 'it is not a Bible.' The huguenots added,
-'You have not been able to find in the Bible one
-word with which to answer Froment;' and laughed
-at him. 'What is that you say,' retorted the priest,
-reddening with anger; 'it is the <i>Postillæ perpetuæ in
-Biblia</i> of the illustrious Nicholas Lyra!'—'But you
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_398" id="Page_398">{398}</a></span>
-promised to refute Froment out of Scripture,'—Lyra,'
-said the priest, 'is the most approved interpreter.'
-The huguenots were determined not to accept the
-commentaries of man as if they were the very Word
-of God. The Bible incorruptible and infallible, before
-which all human systems must fall, was the only
-authority. 'Lyra is not a good doctor,' said Perrin.—'Yes!'—'No!'—'Yes!'—'You
-do not keep your
-word.' Perrin had understanding rather than real
-piety: he was a lamp, but it had no oil. Haughty,
-violent, and headstrong, he wanted everything to bend
-before him, and so did the vicar. The quarrel grew
-hot, and instead of discussing they abused each
-other. Then one of the churchmen having left the
-room stealthily, a band of priests suddenly entered
-with one De la Roche at their head, who carried a
-naked sword which he pointed in front of him.
-'What!' said Claude Bernard, 'we came in good faith,
-we four only, to your house to discuss; we have drunk
-with your friends, we have thrown our swords on the
-bed ... and you traitorously send for an armed
-band of priests. It is a trap.' With these words the
-four citizens grasped their swords, made a way through
-their opponents, got out into the street, and held their
-ground, ready to defend themselves. One of the
-priests ran to the belfry of the Madeleine and began
-to ring the tocsin.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_597" id="Ref_597" href="#Foot_597">[597]</a></span>
-Thus ended the first theological dispute at Geneva.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=TUMULT AT THE MADELEINE.=</p>
-
-<p>It was about noon—a time favourable for a riot.
-On hearing the church bell the city was thrown into
-commotion, and everybody hurried to the spot. It
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_399" id="Page_399">{399}</a></span>
-was said that the huguenots desired to get possession
-of the building so that the schoolmaster might preach
-in it. Priests came forward with their adherents to
-defend the sanctuary; huguenots took up arms to
-protect their brethren hemmed in in front of the
-church. 'Alas!' said the friends of peace, 'the priests
-are ringing the tocsin, and thus exciting the citizens
-to kill one another.' The four huguenots, with drawn
-swords and their backs to the wall, prepared to give the
-churchmen a warm reception; while their friends, as
-they arrived, drew up by their side. The tumult was
-general. 'Let us close in to the church,' said the
-priests, who wished to surround it to prevent the
-evangelicals from entering. Huguenots and catholics
-hastened from every quarter to the Madeleine. Terror
-seized the most timid. The poor ladies of St. Claire,
-who were at dinner, hearing the noise, rose from the
-table in alarm, and exclaiming, 'Alas! they have
-threatened to marry us ... they are going to put
-their abominable plot into execution,' made a procession
-round their church and garden with great
-devotion and many tears.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_598" id="Ref_598" href="#Foot_598">[598]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Just at this time the council broke up, and two of
-the syndics, Ramel and Savoie, who were going home,
-had to pass through the midst of the riot. The two
-parties were on the point of coming to blows. The
-syndics advanced, checked the combatants by interposing
-their official staves, and ordered them to lay
-down their arms, which was done. 'There was neither
-violence nor bloodshed.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_599" id="Ref_599" href="#Foot_599">[599]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_400" id="Page_400">{400}</a></div>
-
-<p>But all was not ended. Some members of the
-chapter and several priests, hearing that a fight was
-going on at the Madeleine, had collected in the
-Rue des Chanoines, where William Canal, incumbent
-of St. Germain's, harangued them. The catholic faith
-is threatened, the throne of the pope is shaken, the
-great honour due to Mary is endangered.... We
-must fall upon those who impugn it, and free the city
-from their persons and their errors. Such was the
-sum of his discourse.</p>
-
-<p>The tumult being quieted round the church,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_600" id="Ref_600" href="#Foot_600">[600]</a></span>
-the lieutenant of justice (Châteauneuf) had turned towards
-the Rue des Chanoines, where he had been told that
-the priests were in commotion. Finding them determined
-to follow Canal sword in hand to the Madeleine,
-he commanded them to stop. The priest
-of St. Germain's, unwilling to submit to the orders
-of a civil magistrate, rushed hastily towards the
-church. Châteauneuf laid his hand upon him, when
-the rebellious parson turned round and levelled his
-arquebuse at that officer; but a friendly arm prevented
-his firing. Canal ran off, and the other
-priests dispersed.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_601" id="Ref_601" href="#Foot_601">[601]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FROMENT DESIRED NOT TO PREACH.=</p>
-
-<p>The council reassembled in the evening. Each
-opinion was represented in that body, which halted between
-two opinions. After a riot like that which had
-just occurred, it was necessary to take certain precautions,
-especially as the morrow was New Year's day, and
-at such times men's minds are more easily excited. The
-council summoned the principal friends of the reform,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_401" id="Page_401">{401}</a></span>
-and Froment also was invited, although the Registers
-make no mention of his presence. 'We exhort you,'
-said the syndics, 'to make Anthony Froment cease from
-disputing and preaching, as well as the others who
-teach in private houses; and we conjure you to live as
-your fathers did.' No one would make any promise;
-on the contrary, the reformed withdrew, saying, 'We
-will hear the Word of God wherever we can: nobody
-has a right to hide it.' Then turning to Froment,
-they begged him not to be silent under such prohibition.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_602" id="Ref_602" href="#Foot_602">[602]</a></span>
-'We are constrained,' they said, 'to hear the
-schoolmaster and his friends, because the decree of the
-council ordering the Word of God to be preached in
-every parish has not been observed.' The reformed,
-while desiring before all things to obey God, put
-themselves in the right: they appealed to lawful ordinances,
-and this was the ground which they intended
-keeping.</p>
-
-<p>The council, acknowledging that this position of the
-evangelicals was impregnable, sent for the Abbot of
-Bonmont, the vicar-episcopal, and begged him to detain
-at Geneva the cordelier who had preached the Advent
-so well, and to press the Dominicans also to provide a
-preacher calculated to edify their congregation. They
-required further that there should be true preachers
-of the Word of God in every parish. The vicar-episcopal,
-being a peaceful man, promised everything, even
-to punishing Canal the priest.</p>
-
-<p>The tumult was appeased, but great agitation still
-reigned in men's minds. Some saw that the storm
-was over, others that it might easily break out again.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_402" id="Page_402">{402}</a></span>
-As it was St. Sylvester's eve, there were numerous
-meetings throughout the city, catholics and huguenots
-being equally excited, and both waiting anxiously for
-the morrow.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_603" id="Ref_603" href="#Foot_603">[603]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_587" id="Foot_587" href="#Ref_587">[587]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, 13 and 26 Dec.; Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_588" id="Foot_588" href="#Ref_588">[588]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 18.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_589" id="Foot_589" href="#Ref_589">[589]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 18.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_590" id="Foot_590" href="#Ref_590">[590]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 17.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_591" id="Foot_591" href="#Ref_591">[591]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, pp. 16-18; Roset, <i>Chron.</i> liv. x. ch. ii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_592" id="Foot_592" href="#Ref_592">[592]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 17.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_593" id="Foot_593" href="#Ref_593">[593]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, 1 Cor. xiv. 34.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_594" id="Foot_594" href="#Ref_594">[594]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Moderatas ad populum conciones habebat.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva
-restit.</i> p. 48.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_595" id="Foot_595" href="#Ref_595">[595]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-MS. erroneously ascribed to Bouivard in Berne library, <i>Hist. Helv.</i>
-V. 12.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_596" id="Foot_596" href="#Ref_596">[596]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-He signed his name <i>Mohennos</i>, which was pronounced <i>Moine</i>—the
-spelling of the public registers.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_597" id="Foot_597" href="#Ref_597">[597]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 49.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_598" id="Foot_598" href="#Ref_598">[598]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 49.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_599" id="Foot_599" href="#Ref_599">[599]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, <i>ad diem</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_600" id="Foot_600" href="#Ref_600">[600]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ab invasione per eos cœpta.'—Council Registers of 31 Dec. 1532.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_601" id="Foot_601" href="#Ref_601">[601]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Roset, <i>Chron.</i> liv. ii. ch. iv.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_602" id="Foot_602" href="#Ref_602">[602]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Berne MS. ascribed to Bonivard.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_603" id="Foot_603" href="#Ref_603">[603]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers. Roset, <i>Chron.</i> liv. ii. ch. iv.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_403" id="Page_403">{403}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE SERMON AT THE MOLARD.<br />
- (<span class="smc">New Year's Day, 1533.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">FOR nearly twenty years liberty had been clearing
-the ground on which the Gospel was to raise its
-temple. For nearly eight years a few pious voices
-had spoken of the doctrine of salvation in private
-conversations and meetings; but the Reformation had
-not yet been preached in the face of the people. The
-hour that was to make it a public and notorious thing
-was about to strike; the world was about to witness
-the birth of the principles of that moral power which
-for two centuries, whatever may have been the meanness
-of its origin, has influenced the destinies of
-christendom; which, fanning the flame, that is to say,
-inspiring the friends of the Reformation with heavenly
-courage, has waged heroic battles against the Jesuits
-and the inquisition, and preserved the Gospel and
-liberty from dangerous assaults. Geneva was about
-to hear the voice of a protestant.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=A NEW YEAR.=</p>
-
-<p>The last night of the year 1532 had passed away,
-and first of 1533 was beginning. In every house
-relations and friends were greeting the new year,
-which the reformed hoped would be better than all
-that had gone before. The family congratulations
-being over, they went to church. Bocquet was again
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_404" id="Page_404">{404}</a></span>
-preaching at the Gray Friar's monastery, where many
-evangelicals attended; but the monk had hardly
-finished, when numbers of his hearers quitted the
-chapel and hurried eagerly along the Rue de Rive to
-the Croix d'Or. There were many curious persons
-among them, who, knowing that the council had prohibited
-Froment's preaching, were all the more desirous
-of hearing him. In a moment the hall was filled, then
-the stairs and passage ... and at last the street
-in front of the house. Froment arrived with a few
-friends, and seeing the crowd, observed: 'The streets
-are so full, that it is quite a crush.' He tried however
-to make his way through the mass, and his
-friends assisted him; but do what he would, all his
-exertions were ineffectual.</p>
-
-<p>Was all this unforeseen, or was it premeditated by
-some of the huguenots? Were these energetic men
-determined at last to bring the evangelist from his
-narrow schoolroom and force him to preach in public?
-Is there not some truth in Sister Jeanne's statement
-that, on the evening before, they had desired to make
-him preach in the large area of the Madeleine? And
-may we not believe, that as they did not succeed then,
-they now desired to compensate themselves by taking
-a still larger space and making the reformer preach
-in the open air? These suppositions appear probable,
-but there is no decided evidence in their favour. At
-all events, the crowd recognized Froment, and saw
-that he could not reach the usual place of his ministrations.
-Those who were in the street perceived that if
-the evangelist succeeded in entering the Croix d'Or,
-they would be left outside, which was not agreeable to
-them. One man shouted out: 'To the Molard,' and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_405" id="Page_405">{405}</a></span>
-in a short time the cry became general: 'To the
-Molard, to the Molard.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_604" id="Ref_604" href="#Foot_604">[604]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FROMENT AT THE MOLARD.=</p>
-
-<p>The Molard was situated in the most populous
-quarter of the city, near the lake and the Rhone. It
-was a large square, about 200 yards from the Croix
-d'Or. Froment hesitated, but the crowd, getting
-into motion, carried him along with them towards
-the south-west corner of the square, where the fish
-market is still held. The fishwomen were there with
-their fresh wares displayed on their stalls. The
-huguenots, finding no other pulpit, took one of these
-stalls, and invited Froment to get on it. He was
-determined, like his master Farel, to preach the truth
-in every place.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as his head appeared above the others, the
-multitude that filled the square manifested their
-delight, and those around him shouted louder than
-ever: 'Preach to us, preach the Word of God to us.'
-Froment, who was moved, answered with a loud voice:
-'It is also the word that shall endure for ever.' The
-tumult was so great that the preacher could not make
-himself heard: 'He made a sign to them with his
-hand to keep silence, and they were still.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_605" id="Ref_605" href="#Foot_605">[605]</a></span>
-'Pray to God with me,' he said, and then getting off the stall,
-he knelt upon the ground. He was agitated: the
-tears flowed down his cheeks;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_606" id="Ref_606" href="#Foot_606">[606]</a></span>
-a deep silence prevailed
-in that square which was so often in those days
-the scene of tumultuous movements. Some knelt,
-others remained standing; all heads were uncovered,
-and even those who were strangers to the Gospel,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_406" id="Page_406">{406}</a></span>
-appeared thoughtful. Froment joined his hands, lifted
-his eyes to heaven, and speaking so distinctly that all
-could hear him, he said:<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_607" id="Ref_607" href="#Foot_607">[607]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=PRAYER AT THE MOLARD.=</p>
-
-<p>'Eternal God, father of all mercies, thou hast promised
-thy children to give them whatsoever they shall
-ask in faith, and wilt refuse them nothing that is reasonable
-and just; and hast always heard the prayers of thy
-servants, who are oppressed in divers manners. Thou
-knowest now what is the need of this people better
-than they or I do.... This need is principally to hear
-thy Word. It is true we have been ungrateful in not
-acknowledging thee as our only Father, and thine
-own son Jesus Christ, whom thou hast sent to die for
-us, in order to be our only Saviour and intercessor.
-But, Lord, thou hast promised us that whensoever the
-poor sinner draws near thee, by reason of thy Son,
-born of the Virgin Mary, thou wilt hear him. We
-know and even are assured that thou desirest not the
-death and destruction of sinners, but that they should
-be converted and live.... Thou desirest that they
-should not remain under the great tyranny of Antichrist,
-and under the hand of the devil and his servants,
-who are continually fighting against thy holy
-Word and destroying thy work.... Our Father! look
-down upon thy poor blind people, led by the blind, so
-that they both fall into the ditch, and can only be
-lifted out by thy mercy.... Lift them out by thy Holy
-Spirit, open their eyes, their ears, their understandings,
-their hearts, in order that, confessing their sins,
-they may look to the goodness of thy Son whom thou
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_407" id="Page_407">{407}</a></span>
-hast given to die for them. And since it hath pleased
-thee, Lord, to send me to them, give both them and
-me the infinite grace that by thy Holy Spirit they
-may receive what thou shalt put into the mouth of
-thy servant, who is unworthy to be the bearer of so
-great a message. But as it hath pleased thee to
-choose me from among the weak things of the world,
-give me strength and wisdom so that thy power may
-be manifested ... not only in this city but in all the
-world. How can thy servant stand in the presence
-of such a multitude of adversaries, unless thou art
-pleased to strengthen him? Show, then, that thy
-power is greater than Satan's, and that thy strength
-is not like man's strength.' Froment concluded with
-the Lord's prayer.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=SERMON AT THE MOLARD.=</p>
-
-<p>The people were touched: they had often heard
-the mechanical prayers of the priests, but not a prayer
-of the heart. They acknowledged that the reformers
-were certainly not partisans, but Christians who desired
-the salvation of all men. The evangelist rose
-and stood once more upon the stall, which was
-about to become the first pulpit of the Reformation
-in Geneva. He had heard of the proceedings of the
-vicars of the Madeleine and St. Germain's, and was
-moved by the furious opposition of the priests to the
-preaching of the Gospel. He had their swords and
-arquebuses still before his eyes, and resolved to
-oppose them with the sword of the Spirit, which is
-the Word of God. It was necessary to lead the
-Genevans away from the teachers who deceived them
-and direct them to Scripture; it was necessary to
-break with the papacy. All eyes were fixed on him:
-they saw him take a book—it was the Gospel. He
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_408" id="Page_408">{408}</a></span>
-opened it at the seventh chapter of Matthew and read
-these words: <i>Beware of false prophets, which come
-to you in sheep's clothing, but inwardly they are
-ravening wolves: by their fruits ye shall know them</i>.
-Then fixing his eyes on his numerous audience,
-Froment began by expressing his faith in the mysteries
-of God: 'Our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ,
-very God and very Man, conceived of the Holy Ghost
-and born of the Virgin Mary, knowing the things
-that were to happen, foresaw that false prophets
-would come, not with hideous faces, but with the
-most pleasing exterior in the world, under the colour
-of holiness, and in <i>sheep's clothing</i>, so that the children
-of God might be deceived. For this cause he exhorted
-his disciples to be <i>wise as serpents and harmless
-as doves</i>. Our God does not desire to have a foolish,
-giddy people, but a people endowed with great wisdom,
-who can distinguish between the doctrine of
-God and the doctrine of man. They who do not
-know it go astray, and are like swine which cannot
-discern good things from bad, and swallow everything
-indiscriminately.... Ah! if the serpent, which is
-but a brute, is so wise in his generation, if he shuts
-his ears so as not to hear the voice of the charmer,
-if he casts off his old skin when the time for doing so
-has come, shall we not fear to follow the cunningly-devised
-doctrines of men? Shall we not cast off our
-old skin to put on a new one? Yes, we must put off
-our old nature which is sin, Satan, idolatry, impurity,
-robbery, hypocrisy, pride, avarice, and false doctrine,
-and put on the new man, which is Christ.... It
-would be of no use to hear the Word of the Gospel if
-we did not change our wicked intentions, and to distinguish
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_409" id="Page_409">{409}</a></span>
-the false teachers if we did not avoid them.
-What! if we recognized venomous beasts should we
-live among them? If we saw a dish of poison should
-we not beware of eating it?</p>
-
-<p>'But Christ desires us further to be <i>harmless as
-doves</i>. Not with the simplicity of monastic hypocrisy
-or bigotry, but with simplicity of heart, without gall,
-lovely as that of doves.... If we walk in such simplicity
-we shall overcome all our enemies, as Jesus
-Christ overcame his enemies by his meekness....
-Let us not begin fighting, killing, and burning as
-tyrants do. The child of God has no other sword of
-defence than the Word of God; but that is a two-edged
-sword, piercing even to the marrow.'</p>
-
-<p>Everybody understood Froment's allusion, and
-many, as they thought of the riot of the evening
-before, looked and smiled at each other. But while
-these words, delivered with energy, were stirring the
-crowd assembled in the Molard, there was still greater
-agitation in the rest of the city. The priests were
-irritated; they had tried to shut Froment's schoolroom,
-and now he was preaching in the great square.
-They went from one to another and excited the laity.
-'The Lutherans,' they said, 'have taken their <i>idol</i> to
-the Molard to make him preach there.' The vicar-episcopal
-being instructed by them, apprised the
-syndics, who sent for the chief usher (<i>grand sautier</i>)
-Falquet, and ordered him to stop the preaching.
-That officer immediately went down to the Molard,
-the sergeants cleared a way through the crowd, and
-going up to Froment, who was then speaking with
-great boldness, he stretched out his staff towards him
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_410" id="Page_410">{410}</a></span>
-and said, 'In the name of my lords I command you
-to cease preaching.'</p>
-
-<p>Froment stopped, and turning to the chief usher
-answered him in a loud voice, '<i>We ought to obey God
-rather than man</i>. God commands me to preach His
-word, you forbid it; I am therefore not bound to
-obey you.' The presence of the public force caused,
-however, some little sensation in the audience. The
-evangelist noticing it turned to the people and said,
-'Do not be disturbed, my friends, but listen to what
-our Lord says—that we must beware of false prophets.'
-Silence was restored, everyone became calm, and Falquet,
-finding the evangelist was determined to preach,
-thought it the safest plan to refer to his masters,
-and withdrew with his officers. Froment then continued
-his discourse: 'In order to be on our guard
-against false prophets, we must know what they are,
-what is their doctrine and life, and with what they
-are clothed. When they have been described to you
-in their natural colours, you will avoid their teaching
-and their life as more deadly than the plague. The
-plagues with which God has visited you heretofore<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_608" id="Ref_608" href="#Foot_608">[608]</a></span>
-only touched you outwardly; but this, more venomous
-than all the other poisons of the earth, infects the soul,
-kills it, and casts it into perdition. With this plague
-we and our fathers have been infected for nearly a
-thousand years. Not that it came upon us suddenly,
-and in villanous and deformed appearance; no, it
-came gradually, under the colour of holiness and in
-sheep's clothing, these ravening wolves having even
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_411" id="Page_411">{411}</a></span>
-some good intentions. But although Jesus Christ had
-warned us of their coming, and had pointed them out
-to us, we have been blinded and led by the nose to
-the ditch of deceit like cattle to water.... The son
-of perdition, who sitting in the temple of God is
-worshipped as God—him you worship and keep his
-commandments. Oh! what a fine master you serve,
-and what prophets you have! Do you know them?
-Not to keep you in suspense I declare openly that I
-am speaking of the pope, and that the false prophets
-of whom I bid you beware are the priests, monks, and
-all the rest of his train.</p>
-
-<p>'But some of you, who yourselves belong to that
-band, will say: "It is you that are the false prophets!
-Our law is old, and yours is but of yesterday, and brings
-confusion among the people of every country. While
-our friends reigned, we enjoyed so much good, so many
-happy years, that it was quite marvellous; but since
-you have come to preach this new law there have
-been wars, famines, pestilences, divisions, strifes, and
-ill-will. Certainly you are not from God."</p>
-
-<p>'Well, let us examine this statement; let us find out
-who are these false prophets—we or your priests?...
-In order to discriminate in such a matter the
-two parties ought to have a competent judge, who is
-no acceptor of persons, and that the parties should not
-be judges in their own cause. For if, in civil causes,
-we need good judges, good pleadings, good witnesses,
-good reasons, and letters patent, how much more so in
-the things of God!... We shall take, therefore, a competent
-judge, and shall produce witnesses, documents,
-and ancient customs for the defence of our right.'</p>
-
-<p>Curiosity was excited; the hearers asked each other
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_412" id="Page_412">{412}</a></span>
-what was the judge's name. Hitherto the pope had
-been appealed to as sole judge of controversies: who
-was Froment going to put in his place?</p>
-
-<p>'In the first place,' he continued, 'the judge shall be—God.
-Yes, God who judges with righteous judgment,
-not regarding either rich or poor, wise or foolish,
-and who gives right to whom it belongs;—the judge
-shall be His true Son Jesus Christ, attended by His
-good and lawful witnesses the prophets and apostles;
-and here,' said he, holding up the New Testament,
-and showing it to the people, 'here are the sealed
-letters, signed with the precious blood of our Lord,
-and the cloud of martyrs who were put to death in
-order to bear this testimony. What read we there?</p>
-
-<p>'Firstly, the Lord condemns the Pharisees as <i>blind
-leaders</i>. Now, do you not think that yours (the
-Romish priests) are condemned by him?... Those
-who call themselves saints through their own merits,
-the only saints of the church, and who wish to lead
-you by their bulls, pardons, auricular confessions,
-masses, and other tricks or manœuvres which they
-have invented out of their own heads ... which the
-Pharisees never dared do.</p>
-
-<p>'Moreover, the Lord in St. Matthew bears this testimony:
-There shall arise false prophets in the latter
-days who will say unto you, <i>Lo, here is Christ or there</i>!<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_609" id="Ref_609" href="#Foot_609">[609]</a></span>
-Do they not tell you that Christ is there ... in the
-inner part of the holy house, hidden in the farthest
-place, <i>in a vessel</i>? Do not believe them. The true
-Christ is he who hath ransomed us with his blood.
-Seek him by a real faith at the right hand of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_413" id="Page_413">{413}</a></span>
-Father, and not in a house, in a cupboard, in the pyx
-... as your new redeemers and high-priests do.</p>
-
-<p>'And what says Jesus Christ to-day for the fuller
-identification of the false prophets? He not only says
-that they come in sheep's clothing, but that <i>they walk
-in long robes, devour widows' houses, and for a show
-make long prayers</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_610" id="Ref_610" href="#Foot_610">[610]</a></span>
-The Lord does not forbid wearing
-long robes for the necessities of the body, but the
-hypocritical superstitions connected with them, the
-wearers esteeming themselves holier than the laity,
-by being dressed, shaven, and shorn differently from
-us.... Yes, by such means they have devoured
-widows; I do not mean to say that they eat women;
-it is a manner of speaking, as we say of tyrants that
-they devour their people, and of lawyers that they
-devour their clients, that is to say, their substance;
-and not that they eat men's flesh, as the cannibals
-do. <i>They break their bones</i> (to get at the marrow),
-says a prophet, <i>and eat the flesh of my people, as
-flesh within the caldron</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_611" id="Ref_611" href="#Foot_611">[611]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>'Look now, O people, I pray you, and judge for
-yourselves. Tell us who are those who wear such
-clothing, such <i>long robes</i>, who <i>devour widows</i>, making
-long prayers for show.... You know very well it
-is not us, for we are dressed like other people; but
-if your priests were to dress like us they would be
-apostate and excommunicate.</p>
-
-<p>'Nay more, we do not lead poor people to understand
-that they ought to bring us a portion of their
-goods, and that then we will save them; that praying
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_414" id="Page_414">{414}</a></span>
-for them and the dead, we will bring them out of purgatory....
-But your priests do so, and under such
-pretexts they have dragged into their paws almost all
-the riches of the earth; and not a word must be said
-about it ... for whosoever speaks of it will suddenly
-be put to death, or be excommunicated, or called
-heretic and Lutheran.</p>
-
-<p>'Ah! Jesus Christ, St. Paul, and the other apostles
-paint them so truly to the life that there is no one so
-blind or stupid as not to recognise them easily, except
-those who are afraid of losing their soup-tickets. The
-Holy Scriptures call them wells without water, anti-christs,
-despisers of the Lord, and say that they <i>give
-heed to doctrines of devils, forbidding to marry, and
-commanding to abstain from meats which God hath
-created to be received with thankfulness of them which
-believe</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_612" id="Ref_612" href="#Foot_612">[612]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>While Froment was thus haranguing the people in
-the Molard, the magistrates assembled in the hotel-de-ville
-learnt from the chief usher that the sermon was
-still going on. The syndics were exasperated. The
-canons and priests argued that as the civil power was
-helpless, they ought to take the matter into their own
-hands, and, grasping their arms, prepared to descend.
-At the same time, the council being resolved to make
-an example, ordered the preachers to be apprehended
-wherever they were found; and consequently the
-lieutenant of police, the procurator-fiscal, with sergeants,
-soldiers, and priests, marched in a large body
-to the Molard, angry and indignant at the evangelist's
-boldness, and determined to throw him into prison.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_415" id="Page_415">{415}</a></span>
-If Farel had been placed beyond their reach, Froment
-at least should not escape. While this excited band
-was descending the Perron with deadly intentions,
-Froment, who either had no suspicion, or did not care
-about it, was continuing his discourse to the people
-of Geneva.</p>
-
-<p>'There are many other passages of scripture,' he
-said, 'which might be brought forward for a stronger
-proof; but these must suffice to put you in a position
-to judge whether we or your pastors are false prophets.
-There is none among you who does not know that we
-do not forbid marriage or meats; that we declare marriage
-holy, ordained from the beginning of the world
-to all such as have not the gift of continence, without
-any distinction of persons. But the pope does otherwise,
-and says that he who hath not a lawful wife may
-keep a concubine (<i>Distinctio</i> xxxiv. cap. xvi. <i>Qui non
-habet uxorem, loco illius concubinam habere potest</i>);
-for, he adds, I desire that they be holy.... Verily a
-wonderful holiness is that!... I make you all judges.
-You have long known them better than I have.</p>
-
-<p>'As for meats, we leave every man free, as our Lord
-has done, exhorting the people to use them profitably,
-without excess or superfluity, giving thanks to God....
-But these do the very opposite. Although Christ was
-sent by the Father to teach us the truth, they bring
-us lies, dreams, false doctrines, prohibitions of marriage
-and of meats, and all sorts of nonsense, as if they
-were holy things.'...</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE SERMON INTERRUPTED.=</p>
-
-<p>At this moment a confused noise was heard. Claude
-Bernard, whose eyes and ears were on the watch,
-perceived a band of armed men entering the square.
-The lieutenant of the city, the procurator-fiscal, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_416" id="Page_416">{416}</a></span>
-soldiers and the armed priests, exasperated and impatient,
-were occupying the Molard. Bernard saw
-that resistance would be dangerous and useless; besides
-the Reformation must not be established in
-Geneva by violence, it must make its way by conviction.
-There was not a moment to be lost; every one
-knew what would be the fate of the evangelist if he
-were taken.... He must be saved. Bernard therefore
-sprang from his place and rushed 'in great excitement'
-towards Froment, shouting to him at the
-top of his voice:<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_613" id="Ref_613" href="#Foot_613">[613]</a></span>
-'Here are all the priests in
-arms ... the procurator-fiscal and the lieutenant of
-the city are with them.... For the honour of God
-descend, get off the stall, and let us save your life!...
-Make your escape!' Froment would not come down:
-they entreated him in vain; his heart burnt within
-him, for he perceived that his discourse was stirring
-their souls.... How could he forsake his work at
-such a decisive moment? But the priests and arquebusiers
-were coming nearer; Some of the huguenots
-were already grasping their swords and preparing to
-resist the sacerdotal gang. There would have been
-bloodshed and death. 'Pray, for God's honour, let
-us avoid the spilling of blood,' exclaimed Bernard.
-Froment could not resist these words. Some of his
-friends caught hold of him, lifted him off the stall
-and dragged him away. They took him through a
-narrow private passage, and by this means reached
-Jean Chautemps' house. The door opened and the
-evangelist was put into a secret hiding-place. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_417" id="Page_417">{417}</a></span>
-priests and soldiers vainly endeavoured to reach him;
-the mass of hearers was between them and him. The
-lieutenant ordered the people 'under heavy penalties'
-to retire; and when the preacher was in safety, the
-assembly dispersed. The magistrates and priests
-returned angry and disappointed to report this second
-failure to the syndics. The Word had not been sown
-in vain; many of the hearers found that they had
-received a glorious new year's gift. Such was the
-first day of the year 1533 at Geneva.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FROMENT IN HIDING.=</p>
-
-<p>All the priests and their followers had not returned
-to the hotel de ville. Froment had disappeared, but
-he could not be far off. Some of them prowled about
-the adjacent streets, trying to discover the reformer's
-hiding place. At last one of them found it out.
-Chautemps was known to be a decided evangelist, and
-they called to mind that Olivetan had lived in his house.
-Several catholics stationed themselves under his windows,
-and when the night came, they began to make
-an uproar. This alarmed Froment's friends; and
-going to his hiding place they told him that 'he must
-move to the house of another citizen.' They went out
-by a back-door, and, owing to the darkness, he was
-conducted without being recognised to the house of
-the energetic Perrin, who was more dreaded than the
-honest Chautemps. Ere long, however, the priests and
-their adherents followed him there: 'Ami Perrin,'
-they shouted, 'we will pull down your house and burn
-you in it if you do not send the Lutheran away.'
-Perrin made use of stratagem: going out to the
-riotous catholics, he said: 'We have liberty to keep
-an honest servant in our houses without impediment
-from anybody.' He then said to Froment: 'You are
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_418" id="Page_418">{418}</a></span>
-my servant, I engage you as such, and you shall work
-for me.' At the same time a few of Perrin's friends,
-stanch huguenots, came up the street, presenting
-such a threatening front to the priests, that they were
-forced to retire. The syndics determined to convoke
-the great council on the morrow.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_614" id="Ref_614" href="#Foot_614">[614]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The circumstances were serious: the new doctrine
-had been preached publicly, and Froment's bold address
-had made an impression, especially on the huguenots.
-They had discovered that the surest means of guaranteeing
-their political emancipation was to establish a
-religious reformation. At the Molard, liberty and
-the Gospel had shaken hands. The catholics asked
-whether the pope's sovereignty was about to fall
-to the ground. The various parties grew warm,
-abused each other, and lively discussions took place
-between them. The politicians maintained that if the
-city was divided on such all-important matters, their
-irreconcileable enemy Savoy would plant his white
-cross on the walls he had coveted so long. Certain
-laymen, full of confidence in their own ability, doubted
-whether strangers and madmen (<i>follateurs</i>) should be
-permitted to vent their nonsense everywhere?... The
-priests spoke the loudest: they asked the Genevans if
-they would forsake the faith of their ancestors; if the
-catholic and apostolic religion, attacked, overthrown,
-and annihilated, was to give place to a new doctrine
-that would bring down the ruin of Geneva. The
-huguenots replied that if the religion announced by
-the reformers was not that of the pope, the schoolmen,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_419" id="Page_419">{419}</a></span>
-the councils, and perhaps even of the Fathers, it was
-at least that of the apostles and Jesus Christ, and consequently
-was older than that of Rome. They represented
-that as the papal government was nothing else
-than despotism in the church, it could produce nothing
-but despotism in the state. The two parties became
-more distinct every day. The syndics and councillors,
-wishing to restore concord, went from one to another,
-trying to calm down the more violent; but it was a
-very hard task.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE COUNCIL MEETS.=</p>
-
-<p>On the 2nd of January, when the council of Two
-Hundred met, the premier syndic proposed, 'that it
-should be forbidden to preach in private houses or in
-public places without the permission of the syndics or
-the vicar-episcopal,—and that all who knew of
-preachers guilty of infringing this law should be
-bound to inform against them, under penalty of <i>three
-stripes with the rope</i>.' At these words the huguenots
-exclaimed, 'We demand the Holy Scriptures;' to
-which the friends of the priests replied, 'We desire
-that sect to be utterly extirpated.' The council
-thought to restore harmony between everybody by
-carrying a resolution that Bocquet the gray friar
-should preach until next Lent.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_615" id="Ref_615" href="#Foot_615">[615]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The premier syndic, who was distressed at the strife
-and hatred by which the citizens were divided, proposed
-that 'all men, citizens, and inhabitants, should
-forgive one another.' The Genevans, who were prompt
-to anger, were equally prompt to reconciliation. 'Yes,
-yes,' they exclaimed, as they lifted up their hands, 'We
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_420" id="Page_420">{420}</a></span>
-desire to love those who are of a contrary opinion.'
-And soon bands of men might be seen parading the
-streets, in which persons of the most opposite opinions
-held one another affectionately by the arm.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_616" id="Ref_616" href="#Foot_616">[616]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Meantime Froment remained in Perrin's house and
-wove ribbons, 'otherwise he could not have stayed
-there,' as he informs us. Whilst seated in silence at
-the loom, passing the shuttle to and fro, he deliberated
-whether he should remain in hiding or again openly
-proclaim the Gospel? Having made up his mind to
-go from house to house to strengthen those who had
-believed, he went out and knocked at certain doors; a
-few of his friends, armed with stout sticks, followed
-him at a distance, without his knowledge, to prevent
-his being insulted. One day, however, a vulgar
-woman abusing him roundly, Jean Favre, a violent
-huguenot, and his body-guard, went up and gave her
-'a sound slap on the face.' Froment turned round,
-distressed at his friend's hastiness: 'It is not by violence,'
-said he, 'that we shall gain friends, but by
-gentleness and friendship.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=ATTACK ON FROMENT.=</p>
-
-<p>Another time Froment was crossing the Rhone
-bridge to go to Aimé Levet's.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_617" id="Ref_617" href="#Foot_617">[617]</a></span>
-It was a holiday, and
-the priests at the head of a procession were advancing
-on one end of the bridge as Froment arrived at the
-other. They were carrying crosses and relics, mumbling
-prayers and invoking the saints: <i>Sancte Petre</i>,
-chanted some; <i>Sancte Paule</i>, chanted others. Froment,
-being taken by surprise and embarrassed, determined
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_421" id="Page_421">{421}</a></span>
-to be moderate, and not to throw the saints into the
-river as Farel had done at Montbeliard. He therefore
-stood still, but did not bow to the images. When
-they saw this, the priests left off chanting and began
-to shout: 'Fall on him!... fall on the dog!... to the
-Rhone with him!' The devout women who followed
-them, breaking their ranks, rushed upon the reformer;
-one caught him by the arm, another by the dress,
-while a third pushed him from behind: 'To the
-Rhone' with him they cried, and endeavoured to throw
-him into the river. But his body-guard, consisting
-of John Humbert and some other huguenots, who
-were a little way off, ran up and rescued Froment
-from the hands of these furies. Upon this the women,
-priests, and sacristans, seeing that the Lutherans had
-saved their <i>idol</i>, shouted still louder than before. A
-tumultuous crowd filled the bridge. The huguenots,
-wishing to put Froment in a place of safety, hurriedly
-thrust him into Levet's house, which was situated at
-the corner of the bridge.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_618" id="Ref_618" href="#Foot_618">[618]</a></span>
-The populace, excited by
-the clergy, instantly besieged the house: they flung
-stones at the windows, threw mud into the shop, and
-at last rushed in and scattered the drugs and bottles
-upon the floor. Levet was an apothecary—a profession
-much esteemed. The huguenots, having put
-Froment in safety in a secret chamber, went out and
-assisted by a few friends drove the priests, women,
-and rioters from the bridge.</p>
-
-<p>At night Froment left his hiding-place and returned
-to Perrin's, where he assembled a few friends and told
-them that he thought it was his duty to leave the city
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_422" id="Page_422">{422}</a></span>
-on account of these 'raging tempests.' Chautemps,
-Perrin, Levet, and Guerin were much distressed, but
-they confessed that the violence of his enemies
-rendered the evangelist's longer stay in Geneva useless.
-Claude Magnin offered to accompany him, and
-when the night came Froment bade his brethren farewell.
-Proceeding cautiously, he quitted the city,
-crossed the Pays de Vaud, and arrived at the village of
-Yvonand, where he rested from his Genevese battles.</p>
-
-<p>Froment was not one of those eminent men who play
-a part because of their great character, and whose influence
-is continually on the increase. His ministry
-at Geneva during part of the winter 1532-33 was the
-heroic period of his life, after which he seldom
-appears but in the second or third rank: he was
-eclipsed by teachers who were superior to him. In
-the briefness of his ministry he resembles those
-heavenly bodies which attract all eyes for a few
-weeks, and then disappear; but he resembles them
-also by the influence which the people ascribe to their
-ephemeral passage. Froment's stay in Geneva shook
-the Romish traditions, secured the Holy Scriptures
-from oblivion, began to shed a few rays of light in the
-city, and laid the first foundations of the Church.
-Ere long the Word of God was carried thither in greater
-fulness by Farel and Calvin: the sun poured out all
-its light, and a solid majestic edifice was built on the
-foundations laid by the poor schoolmaster.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_604" id="Foot_604" href="#Ref_604">[604]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 22.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_605" id="Foot_605" href="#Ref_605">[605]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_606" id="Foot_606" href="#Ref_606">[606]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_607" id="Foot_607" href="#Ref_607">[607]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-These particulars, this prayer, and the first sermon that followed it
-have been recorded by Froment himself in his <i>Gestes de Genève</i> published
-by M. Revillod, pp. 22-42.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_608" id="Foot_608" href="#Ref_608">[608]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The plague was then pretty frequent at Geneva.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_609" id="Foot_609" href="#Ref_609">[609]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Matth. xxiv. 23.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_610" id="Foot_610" href="#Ref_610">[610]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Matth. xxiii. 14; Mark xii. 38; Luke xx. 46.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_611" id="Foot_611" href="#Ref_611">[611]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Micah iii. 3.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_612" id="Foot_612" href="#Ref_612">[612]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-1 Timothy iv. 1-3.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_613" id="Foot_613" href="#Ref_613">[613]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Anhelo pulmone, in effusissimam vocem laxato.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva
-restit.</i> p. 52.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_614" id="Foot_614" href="#Ref_614">[614]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, pp. 43, 44. La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, &amp;c.
-p. 50.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_615" id="Foot_615" href="#Ref_615">[615]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, 2 Jan. 1533; Gautier MS. Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i>
-liv. ii. ch. v. La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Hérésie de Genève</i>, p. 50.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_616" id="Foot_616" href="#Ref_616">[616]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, 2 Jan. 1533; Gautier MS. Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i>
-liv. ii. ch. v. La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Hérésie de Genève</i>, p. 50.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_617" id="Foot_617" href="#Ref_617">[617]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In Leveti ædes, in ponte quo flumen Rhodani transitur sitas, migrat.'—Spanheim,
-<i>Geneva restit.</i> p. 50.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_618" id="Foot_618" href="#Ref_618">[618]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_423" id="Page_423">{423}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">HOLY SCRIPTURE AND THE LORD'S SUPPER AT GENEVA.<br />
- (<span class="smc">January and February 1533.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="side">=THIRST FOR THE GOSPEL.=</p>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">FROMENT'S departure did but increase the love of
-the Gospel in serious minds. Deprived of what
-they considered their right—hearing the Gospel
-preached—they suffered from the want, and were
-determined to free themselves from the spiritual destitution
-to which they were reduced by the clerical
-system. Others felt no less decided aspirations for
-liberty, and were unwittingly the instruments of a
-greater revolution than they had imagined. These Genevans
-felt, as if by inspiration, that at the beginning of
-the sixteenth century society was passing through a
-crisis, and that a new phase was opening for mankind.
-They did more than observe it: they were personally
-the chief actors in the revolution that was about to
-be accomplished in the world. Leaving the barren
-nations in their lifeless stagnation, the men of this
-little city shouted 'Forward!' and rushed into the
-arena.</p>
-
-<p>Froment had hardly left Geneva before the partisans
-of the reformation raised their heads. The Romish
-Church had on its side the bishop-prince, the clergy,
-the Friburgers, and even the majority of the council
-and people; but if the friends of reform were in a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_424" id="Page_424">{424}</a></span>
-minority as regards material force, they surpassed their
-adversaries in moral strength. The historian asserts
-that from this moment the two parties were nearly
-equal in power.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_619" id="Ref_619" href="#Foot_619">[619]</a></span>
-The grey friar Bocquet, who 'had
-managed with so much address,' says a manuscript,
-'that both parties went to hear him with equal eagerness,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_620" id="Ref_620" href="#Foot_620">[620]</a></span>
-now began to preach the christian truth more
-openly. The astonished priests were still more exasperated
-against the monk than they had been against
-the reformer, and solicited that he should be silenced.</p>
-
-<p>The hands of the clergy were ere long strengthened
-by a powerful ally. On February 23, six Friburg
-councillors, stanch catholics, entered Geneva, the
-bearers of a threatening letter. 'If you wish to become
-Lutherans,' said they to the council, 'Friburg
-renounces your alliance.' The syndics answered to
-no purpose that they desired to live as their forefathers
-had done: the Friburgers made a great disturbance
-about the grey friar's sermons, and the council decided,
-'for the love of peace,' that Bocquet should leave
-Geneva.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=BAUDICHON DE LA MAISONNEUVE.=</p>
-
-<p>The friends of the Gospel, seeing that even the
-Franciscan was taken from them, did not lose heart.
-The Holy Scriptures remained: they read in their
-homes Lefèvre's New Testament, and formed meetings
-at which the Word of God was explained. The
-assemblies 'which took place in the houses here and
-there were multiplied,' and the number of believers
-increased every day.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_621" id="Ref_621" href="#Foot_621">[621]</a></span>
-They met ordinarily at the
-end of the Rue des Allemands, at the house of Baudichon
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_425" id="Page_425">{425}</a></span>
-de la Maisonneuve, who henceforward became a
-most zealous protestant. Sprung from a noble and
-powerful family in the republic, he had a decided character
-and some talent, and carried to extremes his
-convictions and his desire to make them succeed.
-Individual life had prevailed during the feudal times;
-in the sixteenth century the social element was growing
-stronger every day. There were, however, certain
-natures which still maintained their independent individualism,
-and Baudichon was one of them. Accordingly,
-so long as it was only a question of destroying
-the old order of things, he acquitted himself valiantly;
-but he was less useful, when it was necessary to build
-up the new order. He seems, however, to have been
-aware of his own insufficiency. His arms were a
-house (<i>maison</i>), and above the crest an open hand
-with these words: <i>Except the Lord build the house,
-they labour in vain that build it</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The Lord did build: assemblies were formed, and
-Baudichon's house became the <i>catacombs</i> (says an old
-author) in which the new Christians held their humble meetings.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_622" id="Ref_622" href="#Foot_622">[622]</a></span>
-They arrived, saluted each other fraternally,
-sat down in a large room, and remained a few
-moments in silence. They knew that though they
-were many, they had all one sole Mediator, present
-in the midst of them although unseen. Then one of
-them would read a portion of Scripture, another of
-the better informed explained and applied it, and a
-third prayed.... The believers departed edified
-from their meetings, 'which were so different (they
-said) from the pope's mass.'</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_426" id="Page_426">{426}</a></div>
-
-<p>Sometimes a great treat was granted them. Some
-evangelical foreigner passed through Geneva; the
-news spread immediately to every family; the
-place and time were named when he would preach,
-and the believers flocked thither from every quarter.
-'What is his name?' they asked one day. 'Peter
-Maneri.' 'What is he?' 'A minister.' 'Where is
-he staying?' 'At Claude Pasta's.' And Claude
-Pasta's rooms were filled immediately.</p>
-
-<p>These first evangelicals of Geneva were not content
-merely with being taught sound doctrine; they knew
-that a cold knowledge of God can save no man, and
-that it is necessary to live with the Spirit of Christ,
-and as He lived. They had formed a fund among
-themselves, and Salomon was the treasurer. Every
-one brought his mite for the relief of the poor,
-whether Genevans or foreigners. Thus these christians
-learnt at once to believe, to love, and to give.</p>
-
-<p>Two kinds of protestantism were already beginning,
-however, to appear in Geneva, which have not
-ceased and perhaps never will cease to exist—an
-external and an internal protestantism. The pious
-and humble Guerin had a servant who, full of admiration
-for his master's sermons, was also a great
-talker. One day, wishing to do the same as his
-master, he began to preach in the open street before
-a number of people. 'Why do you go to mass?' he
-said: 'you are idolaters.... Instead of worshipping
-God, you adore a wafer!' The poor orator was taken
-up and compelled to leave the city in consequence of
-his sermon. Another day some huguenots entered a
-pastrycook's shop: it was a Saturday in Lent. They
-asked for a plate of meat. 'Impossible,' said the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_427" id="Page_427">{427}</a></span>
-master. 'Not so much ceremony,' rudely returned
-the huguenots. The pastrycook ran off to inform
-against them, and they were condemned to pay a
-fine of sixty sous each, which occasioned some disturbance.
-'Lutherans, huguenots, heretics!' shouted
-one party; 'Pharisees, mamelukes, papists!' answered
-the other.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_623" id="Ref_623" href="#Foot_623">[623]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=OLIVETAN'S WORK.=</p>
-
-<p>In the midst of these disturbances the most important
-work of the reformation was progressing at
-Geneva. The pious Olivetan was labouring night
-and day at the translation of the Bible. He believed
-that nothing was more necessary for the Church of
-his time, and in his great love for it, he determined
-to do all in his power to supply the want. 'O poor
-little Church,' he said, 'although thou art desolate,
-mis-shapen, and rejected, and countest for the most
-part in thy family the blind, the lame, the maimed,
-the deaf, the paralytic, orphans and strangers, simple
-and foolish ... why should we be ashamed to make
-thee such a royal present? Do we not all need the
-consolation of Christ? For whom does the Lord
-destine his Scripture, if not for his little invincible
-band, to whom, as the real leader of the war, he
-desires to impart courage and boldness by his
-presence?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_624" id="Ref_624" href="#Foot_624">[624]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Nothing disturbed Olivetan so much as the sight of
-the Church of his day. The more he studied it, the
-more he was grieved by its misery and convinced of
-the necessity of a total reformation, accomplished by
-the Word of God. Never perhaps had its condition
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_428" id="Page_428">{428}</a></span>
-caused so profound and keen a sorrow in any one.
-When he was alone in his room and seated at his table,
-these bitter recollections would recur to him: 'I
-love thee,' he exclaimed; 'I have seen thee in the
-service of thy hard masters; I have seen thee coming
-and going, worried and plagued; I have seen thee
-ill-treated, ill-dressed, ill-used, ragged, muddy, torn,
-dishevelled, chilled, bruised, beaten, and disfigured....
-I have seen thee in such piteous case, that men would
-sooner take thee for a poor slave than the daughter of
-the universal Ruler, and the beloved of his only Son.
-Listen,' added he, 'thy friend calls thee; he endeavours
-to teach thee thy rights and to give thee
-the watch-word, that thou mayest attain to perfect
-freedom.... Stupified and bewildered by so many
-blows, bowed down by so many cares brought upon
-thee by thy rough masters, wilt thou persevere? wilt
-thou go thy ways and complete the foul and grievous
-task with which they have burdened thee?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_625" id="Ref_625" href="#Foot_625">[625]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=TRANSLATION OF THE BIBLE.=</p>
-
-<p>But Olivetan soon stopped in the midst of his work
-and asked himself whether 'the humble translator' (as
-he calls himself) was capable of performing such a
-task. He looked upon himself as the meanest of
-believers, 'as one of the smallest toes on the lowly
-feet of the body of the Church.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_626" id="Ref_626" href="#Foot_626">[626]</a></span>
-But his very humility induced him to increase in diligence. He
-procured the best copies of the Scriptures and compared,
-as he tells us, 'all the translations, ancient and
-modern, from the Greek down to the Italian and
-German.' Above all, he made great use of the French
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_429" id="Page_429">{429}</a></span>
-translation by Lefèvre of Etaples, but rendered certain
-passages differently. He studied the various
-texts, the use of the Masoretic points, marks, consonants,
-aspirates, and unusual expressions. He
-deliberated whether he should preserve in French
-certain Greek terms, such as <i>apostle</i> and <i>bishop</i>, or
-express them by the corresponding word in French.
-'If I preserve the Greek word,' he said, 'the thing
-which it signifies will remain unknown, just as it has
-been to the present day.' He therefore translated the
-Greek word <i>apostle</i> by the French word <i>envoyé</i> (sent);
-instead of <i>bishop</i> he wrote <i>surveillant</i> (overseer); and
-<i>ancien</i> (elder) instead of <i>priest</i>. Then he added
-mischievously: 'And if any one is surprised at not
-finding certain words in my translation which the
-common people have continually on their lips, imagining
-they are in Scripture, such as <i>pope</i>, <i>cardinal</i>,
-<i>archbishop</i>, <i>archdeacon</i>, <i>abbot</i>, <i>prior</i>, <i>monk</i>, he must
-know that I did not find them there, and for that
-reason I have not changed them.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_627" id="Ref_627" href="#Foot_627">[627]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the 13th March the printer De Vingle asked
-permission to print the Bible in French. The council
-was much divided, for the friends of the clergy
-opposed his prayer. On the one side they called out
-<i>Scripture!</i> and on the other <i>Church!</i> The syndics
-thought it their duty to steer a middle course, and
-granted permission to reprint Lefèvre's Bible without
-adding or retrenching a word. They were afraid of
-Olivetan's translation, and we shall see by and by
-where he was forced to get it printed.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_628" id="Ref_628" href="#Foot_628">[628]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_430" id="Page_430">{430}</a></div>
-
-<p>Another desire absorbed the evangelicals of Geneva
-about this time. When Guerin, Levet, Chautemps,
-and others met together in some humble room, they
-expressed the happiness they should feel at assembling
-round the Lord's table to commemorate his death.
-They had long ceased to take part in the communion
-of the Romish Church, defiled as they thought it by
-wretched superstitions; and desired earnestly to see
-the Lord's Supper re-established among them in its
-apostolic purity. The christians of Geneva asked for
-the Bible in the first place, and for the Sacrament in
-the second. That is in the regular course. The Word
-of God creates the christian: the Lord's Supper
-strengthens him. Christ first imparts to his disciples
-the knowledge of the truth, which He does by the
-ministry of the Word. Then He desires them to
-understand that he gives not only christian ideas to
-believers, but that he gives himself, his own life—that
-he comes (in his own words) to <i>abide in them</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_629" id="Ref_629" href="#Foot_629">[629]</a></span>
-This is the second phase of faith, and the Lord's Supper
-is its sign.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=GUERIN.=</p>
-
-<p>The christians of Geneva, enlightened by Scripture,
-desired the Holy Communion. But, said they, who
-will give it us? They had no ministers. Had not
-Luther declared ten years before that in order to
-avoid irregularity, the assembly, making use of its
-right, ought to elect one or more believers to exercise
-the charge of the Word, in the name of all.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_630" id="Ref_630" href="#Foot_630">[630]</a></span>
-They turned their eyes on Guerin. Few of the reformed
-were so much esteemed as he was. Being an evangelical
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_431" id="Page_431">{431}</a></span>
-christian and not a political huguenot, he had
-'an ardent love for his brethren' and a zeal full of
-boldness to profess the Gospel. It required some
-courage to preside at the Lord's Supper in Geneva in
-the presence of the Romish mass. 'The flesh is
-always cowardly,' said a christian of Geneva, 'and
-pulls backwards, like an aged ass; and accordingly
-it needs the goad and spur as much as he does.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_631" id="Ref_631" href="#Foot_631">[631]</a></span>
-Guerin possessed, moreover, a cultivated understanding,
-and was learned in theology.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_632" id="Ref_632" href="#Foot_632">[632]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>There remained one question: Where should the
-communion be held?—'At Baudichon's,' answered
-one of them. 'No,' said the more prudent; 'not in
-the city for fear of the opposition of the priests, who
-are very irritated already.' Upon this Stephen
-d'Adda said, 'I have a little walled garden near the
-city gates, where nobody can disturb us.' The place
-was selected, the day named, and an hour fixed which
-would permit them to meet without disturbance. It
-was early in the morning, as it would appear.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_633" id="Ref_633" href="#Foot_633">[633]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=FIRST SACRAMENT AT GENEVA.=</p>
-
-<p>When the day arrived, many persons went out of
-the city and quietly directed their steps towards
-D'Adda's garden, situated in a place called Pré
-l'Evêque, because the bishop had a house there.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_432" id="Page_432">{432}</a></span>
-A table had been prepared in a room or in the open
-air. The believers as they arrived took their seats in
-silence on the rude benches, not without fear that
-the priests should get information of the furtive meeting.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_634" id="Ref_634" href="#Foot_634">[634]</a></span>
-Guerin sat down in front of the table.
-Just at the moment (we are told) when the ceremony
-was about to begin, the sun rose and illumined with his
-first rays a scene more imposing in its simplicity than
-the mountains capped with everlasting snow, above
-which the star of day was beginning his course. The
-pious Guerin stood up, and after a prayer he distributed
-the bread and wine, and all together praised the Lord.
-The communicants quitted D'Adda's garden full of
-gratitude towards God.</p>
-
-<p>It was not long, however, before their peace was
-troubled. Their enemies could not contain themselves,
-and threatened nothing less than excommunication
-and imprisonment. There were disputes. The priests
-shrugged their shoulders at the sight of those paltry
-assemblies. They said that the reformed, by busying
-themselves so much about <i>Christ</i>, deprived themselves
-of the <i>Church</i>; while Olivetan and Guerin maintained
-that the catholics, by speaking so much of the <i>Church</i>,
-deprived themselves of <i>Christ</i>. The meeting of a few
-souls endowed with a lively faith, who came to glorify
-Jesus Christ, was (they believed) a truer church than
-the pope, cardinals, and all the pomps of the Vatican.
-The exasperated priests vented their anger specially
-on Guerin, and the danger which threatened him was
-so great, that he had to leave the city. Hurrying
-quickly away, he took refuge at Yvonand with his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_433" id="Page_433">{433}</a></span>
-friend Froment, from whom he had received so much
-enlightenment.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_635" id="Ref_635" href="#Foot_635">[635]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Thus Farel, Froment, and Guerin were compelled,
-one after another, to quit Geneva; but the catholics
-laboured in vain: 'the reformed met every day in
-houses or gardens to pray to God, to sing psalms
-and christian hymns, and to explain Holy Scripture.
-And the people began to dispute with the priests, and
-to discuss with them publicly.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_636" id="Ref_636" href="#Foot_636">[636]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Thus there were two winds blowing in different
-directions at Geneva—one from the north, the other
-from the south. They could not fail to come into
-violent collision and to engender a frightful tempest.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_619" id="Foot_619" href="#Ref_619">[619]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ruchat, iii. p. 186.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_620" id="Foot_620" href="#Ref_620">[620]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Berne MS., ascribed to Bonivard, <i>Hist. helv.</i> v. 12.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_621" id="Foot_621" href="#Ref_621">[621]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 47.—'Domatim conventus
-habere.'—Turretini MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_622" id="Foot_622" href="#Ref_622">[622]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'In Domonovani Baudichonii ædibus, quæ concionum ordinariarum
-<i>crypta</i> erant.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva restit.</i> p. 58.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_623" id="Foot_623" href="#Ref_623">[623]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, 4th and 26th March. Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p.
-47.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_624" id="Foot_624" href="#Ref_624">[624]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Olivetan's Bible, <i>Dedication</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_625" id="Foot_625" href="#Ref_625">[625]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Olivetan's Bible, <i>Dedication</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_626" id="Foot_626" href="#Ref_626">[626]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Comme l'un des plus petits orteils des humbles pieds du corps de
-l'église.'—Olivetan's Bible, <i>Apologie du translateur</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_627" id="Foot_627" href="#Ref_627">[627]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Olivetan's Bible, <i>Apologie du translateur</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_628" id="Foot_628" href="#Ref_628">[628]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, Bellard, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_629" id="Foot_629" href="#Ref_629">[629]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-St. John xv. 4, 5.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_630" id="Foot_630" href="#Ref_630">[630]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Wie man Kirchen Diener wählen und einsetzen soll.'—Luth.
-<i>Opp.</i> lib. xviii. p. 433.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_631" id="Foot_631" href="#Ref_631">[631]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_632" id="Foot_632" href="#Ref_632">[632]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Spon, <i>Hist. de Genève</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_633" id="Foot_633" href="#Ref_633">[633]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-It seems clear from Froment's narrative (p. 48) that the first
-communion took place before the riots (p. 51), and therefore probably
-before the middle of March. Spon confirms Froment's account (i. p. 481).
-On the other hand Sister Jeanne de Jussie says that a sacrament was
-celebrated after the first riot, on Holy Saturday, April 10th (<i>Le
-Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 61). The only way of reconciling these two
-statements is to admit (as we have done) two different celebrations (in
-March and April), and not one only.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_634" id="Foot_634" href="#Ref_634">[634]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Furtivo conventu.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva restit.</i> p. 45.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_635" id="Foot_635" href="#Ref_635">[635]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, Gestes, pp. 48-51. Gautier MS. Spon, <i>Hist. de
-Genève</i>, i. p. 481.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_636" id="Foot_636" href="#Ref_636">[636]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Vie de Farel.</i> Choupard MS.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_434" id="Page_434">{434}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XIV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">FORMATION OF A CATHOLIC CONSPIRACY.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Lent, 1533.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">EVANGELICAL zeal was the occasion of the persecution.
-Its enemies were angered; they could
-not understand the inappreciable life then fermenting
-among their people. If a meeting was suppressed in
-one house, it was held in another. 'They could not
-find any remedy against this.'</p>
-
-<p>One, however, offered itself. A dominican monk,
-an inquisitor of the Faith, had just arrived in Geneva.
-'He is a great orator,' was the report in the city,
-'a fervent catholic, just the opposite of Bocquet.' He
-had come to preach the Lent sermons in the greyfriar's
-stead, and everybody hoped he would repair the
-evil the other had done. 'Deliver us from this heresy,'
-said the heads of the Dominicans to him. The monk,
-flattered by this confidence and proud of his mission,
-prepared a fine discourse, and the next day or the
-next but one after Guerin's departure he went into
-the pulpit. St. Dominic's church was crowded, and
-a good many evangelicals, including Olivetan, were
-present. After a short introduction the monk began
-with loud voice and ardent zeal to decry the Bible, to
-abuse the heretics,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_637" id="Ref_637" href="#Foot_637">[637]</a></span>
-and to exalt the pope. 'He
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_435" id="Page_435">{435}</a></span>
-uttered without restraint all that came into his head.'
-'I will blacken them so,' he had said, 'that they shall
-never be washed clean.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=OLIVETAN BANISHED FROM GENEVA.=</p>
-
-<p>Great was the excitement among the huguenots.
-'If any one of us is so bold as to move his lips,' they
-said, 'such a little liberty makes our masters bawl out
-like madmen; but they are allowed to pour out their
-poison and infect the world with it.' Olivetan, who was
-present during the sermon, could hardly contain himself,
-but as soon as it was ended, he got upon a bench,
-thinking it would be wrong of him not to make the
-truth known. 'Master,' he said, 'I desire to show
-you honestly from Scripture where you have erred in
-your discourse.' These words created great astonishment.
-What! a layman presume to teach the Church....
-The priests and some of their creatures
-surrounded Olivetan, abused him, pushed him off the
-bench, and would have beaten him. 'Whereupon up
-came Claude Bernard, Jean Chautemps, and others,
-who took their friend away from the monks and people
-who desired to kill him.'... But he did not
-escape so easily: the council sentenced him to banishment,
-without hearing or appeal. Everyone regretted
-him: 'He was a man,' they said, 'of such learning,
-godly life and conversation!' Olivetan was forced to
-leave. Geneva, suffering under a violent commotion,
-cast off the evangelists one after another, as the sea
-casts up the fragments of a wreck.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_638" id="Ref_638" href="#Foot_638">[638]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The clerical party was beginning to doubt whether
-these banishments were enough.... When
-Farel was expelled, Froment appeared; when Froment
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_436" id="Page_436">{436}</a></span>
-had got away, Guerin presided over a Lutheran sacrament;
-when Guerin had been obliged to make his escape,
-Olivetan got upon a bench in the church and publicly
-contradicted an inquisitor! He too was gone, but
-others would not fail to come forward....
-Canon Wernli, equerry De Pesmes, the bold Thomas
-Moine, and other catholic chiefs, thought that an end
-should be put to this state of things. The reformed
-saw the danger that threatened them. Baudichon de
-la Maisonneuve consulted with his friend Claude
-Salomon. They argued that as Friburg desired to
-enslave their consciences, they ought to apply to Berne
-to deliver them. Salomon wished to consult the
-Genevese councillors favourable to the Reform. 'No,'
-said Baudichon, 'let us ask nobody's opinion; let us
-do the business alone. Which of the council would
-join us? John Philippe, John Lullin, Michael Sept,
-Stephen of Chapeaurouge, Francis Favre, Claude
-Roset? True, they are all friends of independence,
-but they have an official position. If we apply to
-them, we shall only compromise them. We are at
-liberty to expose our own lives, but not those of our
-friends. Let us go to Berne alone.' Nevertheless
-two magistrates, Domaine d'Arlod and Claude Bernard,
-were informed of their intention. They were embarrassed,
-for they knew that such a step might cost the
-lives of those who ventured it. The courage of the
-two patriots affected them. 'We believe we are following
-God's will,' said Maisonneuve. 'In that case,'
-replied Arlod, 'we shall give you no instructions
-either verbal or written, we shall only say: <i>Do whatsoever
-God shall inspire you to do</i>.' It was with these
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_437" id="Page_437">{437}</a></span>
-words, recorded in the registers, that the two Genevans
-departed for Berne.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_639" id="Ref_639" href="#Foot_639">[639]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=BERNE AND LIBERTY OF WORSHIP.=</p>
-
-<p>As soon as they arrived, they appeared before the
-council and explained how the clergy were endeavouring
-to stifle the germs of faith in their birth. The
-Bernese did not hesitate: greatly irritated by the
-violence which the Genevans had used towards Farel,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_640" id="Ref_640" href="#Foot_640">[640]</a></span>
-in despite of their letters of recommendation, they
-made answer that they would do everything to
-support the Gospel in Geneva.</p>
-
-<p>On the 25th of March the council of Geneva met.
-There was evidently something new: many of the
-members wore an anxious look; others appeared
-cheerful. Du Crest, the premier syndic, a man
-devoted to the Romish Church, announced with an
-air of consternation, that he had just received a letter
-from Berne in which the council of Geneva was
-severely reprimanded. In truth, the Bernese did
-not mince matters: they complained of the violence
-done to Farel and the persecution organised in Geneva
-against the evangelical faith. 'We are surprised,'
-they said, 'that in your city the faith in Jesus Christ
-and those who seek it are so molested.... You will
-not suffer the Word of God to be freely proclaimed,
-and banish those who preach it.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_641" id="Ref_641" href="#Foot_641">[641]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This letter troubled the council. 'If we concede
-what Berne demands,' they said, 'the priests will get
-up fresh disturbances. If we refuse, Berne will
-break off the alliance, and the reformed will revolt.'
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_438" id="Page_438">{438}</a></span>
-Whichever way they turned, danger seemed to
-threaten them. 'So that they knew not what answer
-to give,' adds the register. Almost all of them were
-enraged against Maisonneuve and Salomon. They
-were brought before the council and confessed that
-they had gone to Berne and had solicited the letter
-which had been sent. Upon this several mamelukes
-called out 'treason;' but the consciences of these two
-noble citizens bore witness that they had served the
-cause of liberty and justice. They remained firm,
-and the council, being disturbed and undecided,
-adjourned to the next day the question of what was
-to be done.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_642" id="Ref_642" href="#Foot_642">[642]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The agitation spread from the council-room to the
-chapter-house and into the city. Everyone spoke
-about Berne's demand of full liberty for the gospel.
-The canons, priests, and most devout of the laity
-were unanimous for refusing; the daring Thomas
-Moine became the soul of this movement. They
-resolved, upon his proposition, to intimidate the
-council and obtain from it the total suppression of
-the evangelical meetings. Forthwith the most zealous
-of the party went into the city and visited from house to house.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_643" id="Ref_643" href="#Foot_643">[643]</a></span>
-At the same time Moine got a few of his
-friends together and proposed to go to the council in
-a body: their numbers, he doubted not, would overawe
-the syndics, and the catholics would obtain their
-demands. This measure was resolved upon, and the
-meeting fixed for the morrow.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=PROTEST OF THE TWO HUNDRED.=</p>
-
-<p>Next day, when the council met, they were told
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_439" id="Page_439">{439}</a></span>
-that a considerable number of citizens desired an audience.
-They were admitted, to the number of about
-two hundred, including Thomas Moine, B. Faulchon,
-François du Crest, Percival de Pesmes, and Andrew
-Maillard: their countenances bore the mark of violent
-passions. 'Most honoured lords,' said Moine, who
-was a clever speaker, 'notwithstanding the edict
-which bids us live like brothers, many persons are
-endeavouring to sow disorder and dissension among
-us. Some of them have gone to Berne, and the lords
-of that place have written you a letter which disturbs
-all the city.... Who are those guilty men who go and
-denounce their country to the foreigner? Were they
-deputed by the council? What instructions did they
-receive? What answer did they bring you? We beg
-to be informed on these matters. We wish to know
-them, and whether anything has been done tending
-to the ruin of the republic.'</p>
-
-<p>The premier-syndic, amazed at such a speech,
-begged Moine and his friends to retire, and the embarrassed
-council determined to procrastinate.</p>
-
-<p>'We will do everything in the world to bring this
-difficult matter to a happy conclusion,' they answered.
-'We will assemble the Sixty, the Two Hundred, the
-heads of families, even the general council, if necessary
-... the whole republic. Rest content with
-this promise.'</p>
-
-<p>'We have been deputed,' answered Moine, 'to demand
-that you should produce before us those who
-went to Berne. We will not leave this room until
-we have seen them. If you do not summon them,
-we will go and fetch them.'</p>
-
-<p>On hearing these words the council grew alarmed.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_440" id="Page_440">{440}</a></span>
-What a disturbance and what violence there would be
-in the council-chamber if the two huguenots should
-appear before these excited catholics!... The syndics
-replied that they would return an answer. This
-procrastination put the mamelukes beside themselves.
-It was not Moine alone who protested: the two hundred
-who surrounded him raised their hands and
-shouted in menacing tones: 'Justice, justice! Let
-us keep our promise to Messieurs of Friburg—that
-Geneva would preserve the faith of its fathers.' The
-alarmed syndics endeavoured by exceeding gentleness
-of manner (says a manuscript) to appease the tumult;
-and the two hundred discontented catholics returned
-to their homes with haughty look and resolute air.
-'If the council haggles any more,' they said, 'we will
-do ourselves justice!' In the city, men said: 'We
-thought the catholics decrepid, downcast, asleep, or
-dead ... but they are opening their heavy eyes;
-their strength is returning, and the swift-flying vultures
-are about to pounce upon their prey.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_644" id="Ref_644" href="#Foot_644">[644]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In fact, two of the syndics, and several councillors,
-with other laymen of the catholic party and some
-priests, went into the city, and endeavoured to persuade
-all they met to enter into the plot formed against
-the Gospel. They told them that there was nothing
-to be expected from the council. 'If the faith of our
-fathers is to stand, by our own hands it must be supported,'
-they said. 'Hold yourselves in readiness to
-march against the Lutherans.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=AGITATION AGAINST THE LUTHERANS.=</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Lutherans</i>, they said. It was indeed the Reformation
-that was then stirring up all the wrath of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_441" id="Page_441">{441}</a></span>
-the clerical party. Some of its members, no doubt,
-hated liberty as much as the Gospel; but most of the
-catholics would have tolerated the ancient franchises
-of the people. The point on which they were all
-agreed was an unquenchable opposition to that new
-doctrine which they called <i>Lutheranism</i>, Luther being
-in their opinion its great apostle. This Lutheranism
-was fundamentally what was afterwards named Calvinism,
-for Luther and Calvin were one in the great
-evangelical principles. All the reformers preached in
-the sixteenth century, in Europe, and particularly
-at Geneva, that the pure grace of God was the only
-power of eternal salvation, and that the Church
-was composed of all those who possessed true faith,
-and not of those who slavishly adhered to a dominating
-hierarchy. The doctrines of Lutheranism and
-of the Reform<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_645" id="Ref_645" href="#Foot_645">[645]</a></span>
-might differ, in regard to certain
-abstract questions, as touching the finite and the infinite,
-for instance: Lutheranism might put in bolder
-relief the <i>immanence</i> of God, while the Reform inclined
-towards his <i>transcendance</i>, to use the language
-of philosophers and theologians; but they were and
-they are agreed in all that is essential; and it was
-these living doctrines that a powerful party was
-endeavouring to expel from Geneva.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=SECRET PLOTS.=</p>
-
-<p>On Thursday night the canons, priests, and chief
-'partisans of the papal religion,' as Wernli, De
-Pesmes, Moine, and their friends, met in the vicar-episcopal's
-great hall. They arrived one after another,
-most of them armed to the teeth, and breathing
-vengeance: the room was soon filled, and many stood
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_442" id="Page_442">{442}</a></span>
-in the courtyard. Their intention was carefully to
-arrange the plot that was to free them from the Reform.
-Some huguenots, informed of the conspiracy, drew
-near to watch their adversaries. The circumstances,
-the tumultuous crisis that was approaching, the
-interests to be discussed, the violent passions with
-which the two parties were animated, the late hour at
-which this conference was held—all combined to
-render it a solemn one. Men's minds became clouded,
-and certain huguenots of ardent imagination, who
-gazed at a distance upon the walls behind which these
-plotters were assembled, indulging in fantastic visions,
-fancied they saw the furies, torch in hand, stirring up discord;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_646" id="Ref_646" href="#Foot_646">[646]</a></span>
-but they were merely monks clad in their
-long robes, and holding the torches with which the
-hall was lighted. At length the proceedings began.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_647" id="Ref_647" href="#Foot_647">[647]</a></span>
-Some of the speakers represented that the number of
-rebels increased daily; that the sacerdotal authority
-decreased proportionately; and that if things were
-allowed to go on so, ere long nobody would take any
-account of the Church. 'Let us not lower ourselves
-to dispute with heretics. Let us not wait for help
-from the magistrates. The Council of Sixty is about
-to meet, but they will hesitate just like the ordinary
-council. Those bodies are too weak; we must act
-without the government; we are the strongest. If it
-comes to fighting, the defenders of catholicism will be
-ten, perhaps twenty, to one. When the evangelists
-are conquered, we will invite the bishop back, who
-will return with all the banished mamelukes, and
-inflict on the rebels the punishment they deserve.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_443" id="Page_443">{443}</a></span>
-Geneva, preserved from the Reformation, will no
-longer be able to spread it through the surrounding
-countries, and will be in future ages the support of the
-papacy. Let us execute justice for ourselves; let us
-fly to arms, ring the tocsin, draw the sword, and call
-upon the faithful to march against those <i>dogs</i>, and
-make a striking example of the two traitors who went
-to Berne. Let us kill all who are called Lutherans,
-without sparing one;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_648" id="Ref_648" href="#Foot_648">[648]</a></span>
-which will be doing God a
-good service. We are assured of the bishop's pardon:
-his lordship has already sent us the pardons in blank.
-At the sound of the great bell, let everyone go armed
-to the Molard, and let the city gates be shut, so that
-nobody may escape.' This is what was said in the
-vicar-episcopal's house. The leaders agreed upon the
-place of meeting, the number of the armed bands, the
-names of those who should command them, and the
-manner in which the reformed should be attacked;
-everything was arranged. The assembly applauded;
-the conspirators, raising their hands, bound themselves
-by a solemn oath to execute the plan and to secresy;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_649" id="Ref_649" href="#Foot_649">[649]</a></span>
-after which they retired to take a brief
-repose. The festival of Easter was approaching:
-more than two centuries before, the Sicilian Vespers
-had filled Palermo and all Sicily with massacre; the
-enemies of the Reformation in Geneva desired also to
-celebrate the same festival with rivers of blood.</p>
-
-<p>The Council of Sixty met the next day (Friday,
-28th March 1533). Never perhaps was there a body
-more divided. When the catholics demanded that
-the promise made to Friburg should be kept, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_444" id="Page_444">{444}</a></span>
-huguenots represented that if the council decided in
-favour of the Romanist party, not only would the
-bishop resume his former power, but that having seen
-the Reform on the brink of triumphing, he would
-throw himself into the arms of Savoy, as the only
-power capable of saving the Roman faith. The council,
-placed between these two fierce currents, remained in
-its usual indecision, and declared in favour of neither.
-This was just what the leaders of the Romanist party
-expected. Everything was prepared for carrying out
-the <i>conspiracy</i> (to use Froment's word) which had
-been planned the night before.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_650" id="Ref_650" href="#Foot_650">[650]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE PARTIES ASSEMBLE.=</p>
-
-<p>The cathedral had been selected as the place of
-meeting. The first who entered it was the valiant
-canon, Peter Wernli. He was armed from head to
-foot, and advanced into the sanctuary as a general
-goes to battle. Wernli handled the sword as well as
-his brother, who was a captain in the service of the
-king of France. Gifted with the strength of a Hercules
-or a Samson, he designed, like the first, to drive
-Cerberus out of the city; and like the second, to pull
-down the pillars of the temple. He said to those who
-had gathered round him in St. Pierre's: 'We will cut
-off the heads of those who went to Berne and of all
-their friends.' Three hundred armed canons and
-priests came after him, and then a great number of
-their lay followers. 'The Lutherans threaten us,' said
-some of these angry citizens; 'they want to rob the
-churches and convents.' Such a tale could not fail to
-excite their minds still more.</p>
-
-<p>The huguenots, informed of the plot arranged at
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_445" id="Page_445">{445}</a></span>
-the vicar-general's, and observing the catholics making
-ready for the attack, saw at once that their first act
-would be to seize Baudichon de la Maisonneuve, on
-account of his journey to Berne, and inflict on him
-the fate of Berthelier and Levrier. They therefore
-assembled to the number of sixty around their friend
-to defend his life at the price of their blood. Some of
-Moine's partisans went to inform the assemblage at
-St. Pierre's that they had seen several persons enter
-Maisonneuve's house.</p>
-
-<p>This information was a signal of battle to the conspirators.
-'Forward!' they cried: 'let us go and
-attack them!' Two catholics, friends of peace, who
-happened to be in the church (B. Faulchon and
-Girardin de la Rive), fearing a civil war, ran to the
-council. 'Both parties are under arms,' they said;
-'some at St. Pierre's, others at Baudichon's: the first
-are preparing to march down against their opponents....
-Should they do so, there will be a great disturbance:<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_651" id="Ref_651" href="#Foot_651">[651]</a></span>
-look you to it.' The council, suspending
-all other business, ordered the four syndics to proceed
-with the badges of their office, first to St. Pierre's (for
-the aggressors were there), and next to Maisonneuve's,
-and command both parties to return immediately to
-their homes.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_652" id="Ref_652" href="#Foot_652">[652]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The task was a difficult one, but the four magistrates
-did not hesitate to undertake it. Preceded by
-their ushers they entered the cathedral, with the
-syndical staff in their hands. At the sight of them
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_446" id="Page_446">{446}</a></span>
-the crowd grew calm. 'We desire to know,' said the
-premier-syndic, 'the cause of this meeting.' The
-assembly answered with one voice: 'We are going to
-fight the Lutherans who are assembled in the Rue des
-Allemands. They are always keeping us in fear, and
-we must put an end to it. We can no longer endure
-such a pest in the city.... They are worse
-than the Turks.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_653" id="Ref_653" href="#Foot_653">[653]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=VANDEL WOUNDED.=</p>
-
-<p>At this moment two of the reformed, uneasy as to
-what might happen, approached the cathedral, and
-mounting the steps before the porch, stood there some
-time, peeping into the church, undecided whether
-they should enter. The priests and mamelukes perceiving
-them, exclaimed: 'Look at the wicked
-wretches, they are come to spy the christians!' At
-last, with more zeal than prudence, the two evangelicals
-entered. They were J. Goulaz and P. Vandel,
-the latter a man of twenty-six, who had adopted the
-Reform, but always retained a great affection for his
-old catholic friends.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_654" id="Ref_654" href="#Foot_654">[654]</a></span>
-Addressing the syndics with
-great mildness, he said: 'Pray put an end to this
-disturbance, lest worse should come of it.' When the
-mamelukes heard his words, they became angry and
-drew their swords to strike the two huguenots.
-Portier, the episcopal secretary, a violent and fanatical
-man, seeing Vandel, exclaimed: 'How is it that you
-are here, traitor!' Several of them rushed upon
-Vandel, threw him to the ground, and trampled on
-him; Portier, drawing his dagger (<i>sanguidede</i>) and
-seizing the young man 'in a cowardly manner by the
-back,' (says the Council Register) stabbed him near
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_447" id="Page_447">{447}</a></span>
-the left shoulder, intending to kill him. Vandel lay
-seriously wounded on the pavement of the cathedral
-'with great effusion of blood.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_655" id="Ref_655" href="#Foot_655">[655]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>A crowd of priests immediately gathered round
-him and began to lament loudly, not because a man
-had been stabbed, but because blood had defiled the
-temple. 'Never after was bell rung or divine service
-performed in that church, or even in the other churches,
-because the mother-church was closed, until it was
-purified by My lord the suffragan,' says Sister Jeanne.</p>
-
-<p>Goulaz, it is reported, seeing his friend on the
-ground, ran off to the evangelicals and told them all.
-Some of them, notwithstanding the danger which they
-incurred, proceeded to the cathedral, and obtained the
-syndics' permission to carry Vandel away. They
-removed him to Baudichon's house, where they got
-him to bed. A few huguenots constituted themselves
-his nurses, and as they looked on their pale and
-blood-stained friend, they asked one another what
-would happen next.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_637" id="Foot_637" href="#Ref_637">[637]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Lutheranos proscindentem.'—Turretini MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_638" id="Foot_638" href="#Ref_638">[638]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 49.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_639" id="Foot_639" href="#Ref_639">[639]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, 20th March, 1533.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_640" id="Foot_640" href="#Ref_640">[640]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Violentia qua in Farellum sævitum.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva
-restit.</i> p. 57.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_641" id="Foot_641" href="#Ref_641">[641]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Letter from Berne, 20th March, 1533.—MS. Archives of Geneva, No.
-1090.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_642" id="Foot_642" href="#Ref_642">[642]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, 25th March, 1533.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_643" id="Foot_643" href="#Ref_643">[643]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Accendunt clerici plebem sibi obnoxiam.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva
-restit.</i> p. 57.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_644" id="Foot_644" href="#Ref_644">[644]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, 26th March, 1533.—Gautier MS.; Roset
-<i>Chron.</i> liv. ii. ch. ix.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_645" id="Foot_645" href="#Ref_645">[645]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The word Reform is applied exclusively to the Franco-Helvetic or
-Calvinistic portion of the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_646" id="Foot_646" href="#Ref_646">[646]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nocte furiis facibusque strenue a clero subditis.'—Spanheim,
-<i>Geneva restit.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_647" id="Foot_647" href="#Ref_647">[647]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 51.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_648" id="Foot_648" href="#Ref_648">[648]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 51.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_649" id="Foot_649" href="#Ref_649">[649]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Solenni sacramento.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva restit.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_650" id="Foot_650" href="#Ref_650">[650]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 50.—Roset MS., <i>Chron.</i> liv. ii.
-ch. x.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_651" id="Foot_651" href="#Ref_651">[651]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The register has the word <i>ovaille</i> (ovallium), Council
-Registers, 28th March, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_652" id="Foot_652" href="#Ref_652">[652]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i> liv. ii. ch. x.—Gautier MS. Council
-Register <i>ad diem</i>. La Sœur de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du
-Calvinisme</i>, p. 51.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_653" id="Foot_653" href="#Ref_653">[653]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 51.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_654" id="Foot_654" href="#Ref_654">[654]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Galiffe, <i>Notices généalogiques de Genève</i>, I. p. 80.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_655" id="Foot_655" href="#Ref_655">[655]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 52.—Froment,
-<i>Gestes de Genève</i>, pp. 50-51.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_448" id="Page_448">{448}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XV.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">FIRST ARMED ATTACK OF THE CATHOLICS
- UPON THE REFORMATION.<br />
- (<span class="smc">March 28, 1533</span>).</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THIS effusion of blood, far from calming men's
-minds, served but to inflame them. 'All good
-christians were more excited than before,' says Sister
-Jeanne. The skirmish in which, being seven hundred
-against two, they had gained the advantage, was
-an omen of victory! They looked at each other and
-counted their numbers. 'We are the majority and
-well armed,' they said; 'we must sally out boldly and
-fight these rascals.' The principal leaders, lay and
-ecclesiastic, withdrawing into a private part of the
-cathedral, held a final council. The most influential
-represented that the huguenots had celebrated the
-sacrament, that they persevered in holding their meetings
-'here and there,' that the sacerdotal authority
-was decreasing and the number of heretics increasing,
-and that there was only one means left of saving the
-Romish faith—putting every heretic to death.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_656" id="Ref_656" href="#Foot_656">[656]</a></span>
-The syndics stretched out their wands in vain, and ordered
-them to keep the peace. All was useless. 'Now is
-the time,' cried the priests; 'let us run to the great
-bell and give the signal.' At the word many hastened
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_449" id="Page_449">{449}</a></span>
-to the tower of the church and began to ring the
-tocsin. At the same time those who were in the
-church prepared to march.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=CATHOLICS PREPARE TO FIGHT.=</p>
-
-<p>Three of the syndics were devoted to the catholic
-party: Nicholas du Crest, Pierre de Malbuisson, and
-Claude Baud. Finding that they could not stop the
-riot, they determined if possible to direct it. Claude
-Baud, lord of Troches, in whose castle many a plot
-had been concocted against the independence of
-Geneva, would have desired to make an end of the
-Reform, but not by violent means. Seeing, however,
-that it was impossible to check the torrent, he put
-himself at the head of the <i>émeute</i>, but with the hope of
-restraining it, and afterwards of repressing the Reform
-by legal means. 'Shut the doors of the church,' said
-Baud. This had a surprising effect: the catholics
-on a sudden grew calmer. The syndic feared that if
-they came to blows, the two parties might become
-confused in the battle, and that friends would strike
-friends without recognising each other. He ordered
-a great bundle of laurel boughs to be brought in, and
-addressing the crowd around him, said: 'Formerly,
-citizens, they used to give garlands to the conquerors;
-I give you these laurels before the victory: they will
-distinguish you from the wicked.' The combatants
-each took a sprig and fastened it to their caps; and
-then the pious catholics who were in the crowd, wishing
-to give a religious character to the <i>émeute</i>, proposed
-that they should implore the blessing of heaven
-before they started. The ecclesiastics were silent
-immediately, and turning to the choir, prostrated
-themselves in fervent devotion before the high altar.
-All present knelt down 'with great abundance of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_450" id="Page_450">{450}</a></span>
-tears,' and sang the famous hymn of the Roman
-breviary:</p>
-
-<p class="center small">Vexilla regis prodeunt.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_657" id="Ref_657" href="#Foot_657">[657]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>As soon as the strain was ended, one of the priests
-said: 'Let us commend ourselves to the blessed
-Virgin, that she may intercede for us and for the
-holy faith!' And all, as with one voice, joined in
-the <i>Salve Regina</i>—a prayer which the people were
-accustomed to sing at the execution of a criminal.
-The echoes of this ominous chant having died away
-in the aisles of the vast cathedral, the priests rose
-from their knees: one of them took the cross, while
-some laid hold of other banners. 'Behold,' they said,
-'behold the standards of the king advancing.' The
-excitement grew greater every minute. It was
-Friday, the one before Passion Week. 'Let us this
-day call to mind the day on which our Lord was
-willing to shed his blood for us, and therefore let us
-not spare ours. Let us take vengeance on his enemies
-who crucify him anew more cruelly than the Jews did.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_658" id="Ref_658" href="#Foot_658">[658]</a></span>
-They uttered such cries that 'it was
-quite pitiful to hear them,' and 'there was no heart
-so hard as not to melt into tears.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_659" id="Ref_659" href="#Foot_659">[659]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE CORPS ARE FORMED.=</p>
-
-<p>All this emotion was not without a cause. The
-religion of the middle ages was disappearing. We
-believe that it must disappear altogether; and yet we
-are touched by the enthusiasm displayed by its adherents,
-which was worthy of a better cause. Syndic
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_451" id="Page_451">{451}</a></span>
-Baud, who wished to give an appearance of legality
-to the clerical movement, called Percival de Pesmes,
-and ordered him to go with a body of men and fetch
-the banner of the city. At length the great bell,
-which had kept on ringing, was silent; the ringers
-came down from the tower and joined the rest of
-their party. The churchmen then formed into companies
-and elected their captains; all were full of
-courage and ardour, and St. Pierre's resembled a parade-ground
-rather than a church. The companies defiled
-in front of the high altar, and the syndic, ordering
-the doors to be thrown open, all the clerical army
-quitted the temple, descended with a firm step the
-steep street of the Perron, and proceeded towards the
-Molard, which was the general rendezvous for those
-who desired on that day to destroy both the reformed
-and the Reformation in Geneva.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the tocsin was heard, the city was
-agitated to its most retired quarters, and even the inhabitants
-of the surrounding districts had listened with
-alarm to its ill-omened sound. The startled and uneasy
-citizens caught up their arms, rushed hastily from
-their houses, and ran 'like poor wandering sheep
-without a shepherd,' some one way, some another,
-not knowing where to go, what was the matter, and
-whether the enemy was within the walls or without.
-The peasants of the vicinity, forewarned by the agents
-of the canons, entered the city in arms. The confusion
-continued to increase: some cried 'Fire,' others
-'Fall on;' all shouted 'Alarm, alarm!' Some ran to the
-gates, others to the hôtel-de-ville, and others to the
-ramparts; but the priests who had contrived the
-affair, and who were marching 'in large bands' from
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_452" id="Page_452">{452}</a></span>
-different quarters towards the Molard, excited the
-ignorant people to follow them, and shouting so as to
-drown all other cries, 'Down with the Lutherans,'
-thus made it known who were the enemies to be
-attacked. 'To the Molard,' they added; 'Down
-with the dogs that want to destroy our holy mother
-Church.' No fervent catholic hesitated; all ran along
-the streets, isolated or in bands; they drew their
-swords, then arquebusses rattled.... It was like a
-flock of birds in search of their prey, opening their
-talons, and plunging swiftly upon the Molard.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_660" id="Ref_660" href="#Foot_660">[660]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE MUSTERING OF THE HOSTS.=</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the main clerical body, that which started
-from St. Pierre's, arrived. It numbered from six to seven
-hundred men—canons, priests, monks, sacristans, and
-devout laymen, all well armed, Syndic Baud marching
-at their head, and 'wearing his great hat and feathers.'
-When this body debouched on the square by the
-arcade of the Fort de l'Ecluse, the Molard and
-adjacent streets were filled with an agitated and confused
-crowd. But immediately, by the syndic's order,
-companies were formed in imitation of that of St.
-Pierre's, and all the people put themselves 'in order
-for fighting.' Baud having thus drawn out his corps,
-proceeded to count them: there were about 2,500 men,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_661" id="Ref_661" href="#Foot_661">[661]</a></span>
-not reckoning the old men, women, and
-children, who shouted and wept, and although unarmed,
-added to the tumult. The catholics were
-full of hope. To the majority of them, the struggle
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_453" id="Page_453">{453}</a></span>
-was a mere party matter; but others, better instructed
-and better theologians than the rest, felt that it was
-an effort to expel for ever from Geneva the doctrines
-of protestantism touching the pre-eminence of Holy
-Scripture, justification, works, the mass, the Church,
-and especially grace, to which alone the Reformation
-attributed salvation, while the Romish Church claimed
-a part in conversion for the natural powers of man,
-and looked upon this difference between the two
-Churches as the essential point. At the same time,
-however, it must be acknowledged that just then they
-troubled themselves very little about theology. Being
-ready to contend with the arms of men of war, the
-two bodies were especially animated by political
-passions. The catholics feared lest their enemies
-should succeed in escaping. 'Shut the gates of the
-city,' said the syndic, 'so that no one can take flight.'
-Again cries were heard: 'Forward, lead us to Baudichon's.'
-'No,' answered Baud, 'let us wait for the
-other corps before we attack.'</p>
-
-<p>There were still three bands to come: the first,
-commanded by the bishop's equerry, Percival de
-Pesmes, was to come straight from the hôtel-de-ville,
-bringing the banner, as we have said; the second,
-commanded by Canon de Veigy, descending from the
-west, was to make for the Molard by the Rue de la
-Cité; the third, coming from the suburb of St.
-Gervais, was to cross the Rhone bridge, and was commanded
-by Captain Bellessert. 'He was a stout fellow
-and like a madman,' says Froment. The band that
-he conducted was the most violent in the republic.
-These three corps united with the 2,500 men already
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_454" id="Page_454">{454}</a></span>
-at the Molard could not fail to give the death-blow
-to the reformed and the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>But as they did not appear, the catholics and
-mamelukes who were ready for fighting, zealous
-in the cause of the pope, and overflowing with
-hatred for the Reform, became impatient, and
-striking the ground with the butt-ends of their
-guns, desired to march forthwith. 'Forward!' they
-cried. 'Let us wait,' said the syndic, whether
-because he feared that 'their business would not
-take well,' as the chronicle says; or because he
-wished by an imposing force to constrain the reformed
-to surrender without fighting; or, lastly,
-because he hoped that if he procrastinated, some
-unforeseen circumstance might happen to disarm
-the combatants. 'We want artillery,' he said, 'to
-besiege Baudichon's house.' This quieted the most
-ardent, by giving them something to do; they hurried
-off to the arsenal, but it was doubtful whether it
-would be opened to them, as the captain-general was
-opposed to them. The artillery-keeper, named Bossu
-(hunchback), in consequence of his infirmity, a man
-of vulgar character and suspected morals, and a strong
-partisan of the priests, did not hesitate. He delivered
-up the artillery to the catholics, who dragged away
-the cannon with much uproar, planted them in the
-square, and loaded them.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_662" id="Ref_662" href="#Foot_662">[662]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At this moment arrived the band led by the descendant
-of the crusaders, the young and dashing
-Percival de Pesmes, eager to fight, like his fathers, for
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_455" id="Page_455">{455}</a></span>
-the pope and his Church against these new Saracens.
-He bore the great banner with pride, and, defiling with
-his corps, drew them up in line of battle. Syndic Baud
-took the banner from his hands, and planted it in the
-middle of the square. The people, electrified at the
-sight, 'raised a loud shout.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_663" id="Ref_663" href="#Foot_663">[663]</a></span>
-There is no longer any
-doubt: the republic is arming, the city banner floats
-above the catholic ranks, and the huguenots are
-only rebels.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE NUNS OF SAINT CLAIRE.=</p>
-
-<p>The monks took the most active part in this business;
-the convents were therefore empty, all but that
-of Saint Claire, which alone was not deserted. The
-nuns, however, wished to take part in the struggle:
-'Alas!' they said, 'our worthy fathers have gone to
-share in the fight with a number of monks, because
-it is in behalf of the faith.... Let us kneel before
-God that He may show mercy to the poor city.' The
-mother abbess drew a cross of ashes on the foreheads
-of the sisters, after which they marched in procession
-round the cloister, invoking in devout litanies
-the protection of the whole celestial choir. Then
-forming a cross, they took their places in the middle
-of the choir, and there, distracted and weeping, they
-fell on their knees and cried aloud: 'Mercy, O God!
-through the intercession of the glorious Virgin Mary
-and all the Saints! Give victory to the Christians,
-and bring the poor wanderers back to the way of
-salvation.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_664" id="Ref_664" href="#Foot_664">[664]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At this moment the sisters heard a noise at the
-gate of the convent: it was a few good catholic women
-who, very much afraid themselves, came to bring the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_456" id="Page_456">{456}</a></span>
-sisters tidings calculated to add to their distress. 'If
-the heretics win the day,' they said, 'they will certainly
-make you all marry, young and old—all to
-your perdition.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_665" id="Ref_665" href="#Foot_665">[665]</a></span>
-This was the customary bugbear
-of the poor nuns. They were superstitious and even
-fanatical, but nothing indicates that they were not pure.
-A tradition to the effect that there was an underground
-communication between their convent and that of the
-gray friars is a fiction as void of foundation as the
-frightful news of a <i>forced marriage</i> brought by their
-indiscreet friends. The terrified nuns crossed themselves,
-sang their litanies once more, and cried louder
-than ever: 'O holy Virgin, give victory to the
-Christians!'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=A CRUEL HUSBAND.=</p>
-
-<p>The agitation in the city was then at its height;
-the shouts of the priests were frightful,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_666" id="Ref_666" href="#Foot_666">[666]</a></span>
-They bawled lustily to those who lagged behind, exhorted
-those who appeared indifferent, and animated the
-whole body with voice and gesture, as hunters urge
-their hounds after the stag. The catholics responded
-to the tumultuous clamours of these ministers of
-disorder and strife. But the tempest was not confined
-to the streets: scenes still more harrowing were
-taking place in the houses. 'Alas!' said the wisest
-men, 'there is no humanity left, and they take no
-account of the ties of nature.' One of the most fiery
-catholics, hearing the tocsin, was hurriedly fitting on
-his armour, when his wife, a fervent Romanist like himself,
-and whose father was at the head of the Lutherans,
-was filled with terror at seeing her husband's animation,
-and looked at him with a dejected countenance.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_457" id="Page_457">{457}</a></span>
-She was Micah, daughter of Baudichon de la Maisonneuve.
-Her catholic faith did not make the young
-wife forget the sweet and holy ties that bind a child
-to her father. She shuddered at each malediction
-uttered by her husband against the author of her
-days. At length her grief broke out in a flood of
-tears. Her fanatical husband, exasperated to the
-highest degree against Maisonneuve, who was regarded
-as the main support of the heresy, turned back and,
-without showing the least pity, said: 'Wife, cry as
-much as you please. If we come to blows and I meet
-your father, he shall be the first on whom I shall try
-my strength.... I will kill him, or he shall kill me.'
-And then, callous at the sight of Micah, whose tears
-flowed faster at these words which pierced her heart,
-the barbarous husband said as he left her: 'He is a
-bad Christian, a renegade, the worst of the worst—this
-wretched Baudichon!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_667" id="Ref_667" href="#Foot_667">[667]</a></span>
-Micah was twice married:
-first to Bernard Combet, and secondly to Guyot
-Taillon. We have not been able to discover which of
-her two husbands was so cruel; probably it was
-the first.</p>
-
-<p>These distressing scenes became more heart-rending
-every moment. In the houses nothing was heard but
-the cries and groans of mothers and wives, of daughters
-and young children. The streets echoed with
-the oaths of the men who cursed <i>that law</i> (the Reformation),
-and the first man who had brought it there.
-'In truth, it is not possible,' says the chronicler, 'to
-describe the cries and tears which then filled the
-whole city.' But the mournful sounds of grief and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_458" id="Page_458">{458}</a></span>
-sorrow which rose in the air could not drown the
-fanatical and sonorous voices of the priests.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_668" id="Ref_668" href="#Foot_668">[668]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>During this time a deep and solemn awe prevailed
-in Baudichon's house. The evangelicals were not
-insensible to the hatred which was arrayed against
-them, but the greatness of the danger gave them that
-calmness which the Christian experiences in the presence
-of death. The strong encouraged the weak,
-addressing them in words of piety and feeling: 'Ah!'
-they said, 'if all the world would agree in the truth,
-we should be at peace; but as the majority fight
-against it, we cannot confess Christ without encountering
-resistance and hatred. It is the malice of the
-wicked one that divides us into contrary bands, and
-everywhere kindles strife and debate.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_669" id="Ref_669" href="#Foot_669">[669]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=NOVEL REINFORCEMENT.=</p>
-
-<p>An unexpected reinforcement added to the numbers
-of the catholic troop. The women of that party
-had not all a tender soul and bruised heart, like
-Baudichon's daughter: the virtues of the evangelical
-women, the eagerness with which they had renounced
-their jewels and dress in favour of the poor, had excited
-the displeasure of many of them; and the thought
-that they no longer came to kneel with them at the
-altar of Mary, had filled them with anger and hatred.
-The tempest then sweeping through the city
-fanned the evil passions of the weaker sex. In every
-house the wives and sisters, and even the mothers of
-the catholics got ready; they assembled the children
-from twelve to fifteen years old, and proceeded with
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_459" id="Page_459">{459}</a></span>
-them to the Place d'Armes, where they had agreed to
-meet. 'In this assemblage of women,' says Sister
-Jeanne, who was very intimate with them, 'there were
-full seven hundred children from twelve to fifteen
-years old, firmly resolved to do good service along
-with their mothers.'</p>
-
-<p>When these ladies met, they held a parliament of a
-new sort; and their speeches were far more impassioned
-than those of the men. They had no doubt
-that their husbands would put all their adversaries to
-death, but were vexed to think that their wives would
-be left alive. 'If it should happen,' said one of them,
-'that our husbands fight against the unbelievers, let
-us also make war and <i>kill their heretic wives, in order
-that the breed may be extirpated</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_670" id="Ref_670" href="#Foot_670">[670]</a></span>
-This was the only way, these pious ladies thought, of preserving Geneva
-catholic; if the wives and children were spared, the
-heresy would shoot forth again in a few years. A
-unanimous cry of approval was raised by the women,
-and even by the accompanying children, and the
-Amazons immediately prepared for the combat. They
-armed their children, distributing little hatchets and
-swords among them; when there were no more weapons
-to give out, their mothers told them to fill their
-hats and caps with stones. They, too, fiercely gathered
-up their aprons, which they filled with missiles. Sister
-Jeanne does not omit a single detail in her narrative,
-for it is of this that she is most proud. Some of
-these women had stationed themselves at the windows
-to crush the evangelicals at the moment of battle by
-pouring their missiles down upon them; but the more
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_460" id="Page_460">{460}</a></span>
-determined marched with the children to the Molard,
-where they arrived with loud shouts. Strange madness!
-as if God who requires in the Christian woman
-<i>a meek and quiet spirit</i>, and forbids her to be
-adorned 'with braided hair and costly array,' did not
-all the more forbid her to arm herself with stones and
-march to battle. Frenzied and guilty women! Some
-huguenots, observing them from afar, asked with
-astonishment what could be the meaning of such a
-singular assemblage. They seemed to resemble those
-druidesses who (as it is related) when their sanctuary
-was threatened, ran to and fro along the shore
-of the lake, in black robes with hair dishevelled, and
-waving torches in their hands.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_671" id="Ref_671" href="#Foot_671">[671]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Delighted at the sight, the priests, unwilling to be
-behindhand, exclaimed: 'We will be the first to defend
-our spouse the Church.' There were about one
-hundred and sixty armed priests in the square. If
-the clergy and women set the example, shall the citizens
-remain behind? The whole body assembled at the
-Molard shouted again and again 'Forward, forward!'
-The syndics did not incline to attack, but the excited
-crowd carried them away.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_672" id="Ref_672" href="#Foot_672">[672]</a></span>
-The plan was to
-march to Baudichon's house, where the huguenots had
-assembled, to set fire to it, and thus, having forced
-them to come out, to murder them as they were escaping
-from the flames by the doors and windows.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_673" id="Ref_673" href="#Foot_673">[673]</a></span>
-Citizens, priests, women and even children, wished to have the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_461" id="Page_461">{461}</a></span>
-privilege of being the first to strike Maisonneuve, Salomon,
-and their friends; torrents of heretical blood
-were to flow in the streets. 'Forward!' they
-repeated, but amid the general agitation the beautiful
-plumes that ornamented the syndic's hat remained
-stationary. Baud wishing to temporise, and to avoid
-bloodshed, refused to give the signal: 'To be more sure,'
-he said, 'and in order that none may escape from our
-hands, let us wait for the corps from St. Gervais.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_674" id="Ref_674" href="#Foot_674">[674]</a></span>
-The syndic still hoped that the reformed would lay down
-their arms and surrender at discretion to an imposing
-force.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FEELINGS OF THE REFORMED.=</p>
-
-<p>The reformed assembled in Baudichon's house on
-the left bank of the river, at the corner of the streets
-of the Allemands and of the Corraterie (about 450
-paces from the Molard) had gradually seen their
-numbers increase. Many of their friends, who at first
-desired to remain at home, observing the danger that
-threatened their brethren, had come to their help, determined
-to conquer or die with them. The enthusiasm
-had spread even to the children and excited
-them to acts of devotedness beyond their years. 'A
-young apprentice went there, in spite of father, mother,
-and priests, and exhorted them all to be of good cheer.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_675" id="Ref_675" href="#Foot_675">[675]</a></span>
-The elder portion were not blind to the gravity of the
-situation, but they remained firm, being full of confidence
-in God. 'As a spark,' they said, 'may suddenly
-set fire to a whole city, so Geneva has in an instant
-been stirred up to riot.... But let not our
-hearts be troubled; the Lord holds the tempests and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_462" id="Page_462">{462}</a></span>
-whirlwinds in His hand, and can appease them whenever
-He pleases.'</p>
-
-<p>Sinister omens might intimidate them. They had
-before them the unhappy Vandel, faint and bleeding....
-They approached the wounded young man
-with compassion. 'See,' they said, 'see how the bishop
-and his officers treat the best citizens.' Noticing the
-paleness of his face, they despaired of his life, and
-gloomy thoughts filled their hearts.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=PRAYER OF THE REFORMED.=</p>
-
-<p>This was not the only presage of the danger that
-threatened them; the shouts of the catholics, increasing
-in violence, reached even there. They looked at
-each other with astonishment and even with alarm.
-'What fury!' they said; 'how large a number against
-so few!' And some of them added: 'If God be not
-for us, we are undone.' But others, changing the
-words, answered: '<i>If God be for us, who can be against
-us?</i>' De la Maisonneuve was the firmest. Possessing
-a quick and even violent temper, an enthusiast for
-liberty and truth, he was at this solemn hour calm,
-thoughtful, and christianlike. No one was more exposed
-than he: his house was to be as it were the battle-field;
-but forgetful of self, he went up to such as were
-dejected and said: 'We must show our magnanimity,
-even should they drive us to despair. The wicked are
-already erecting triumphal arches ... in the air.
-God does not look to numbers, be they great or small,
-but to the cause for which they fight. If we are
-under the banner of Jesus, God will be a wall of brass
-to us.' These words encouraged such as were shaken,
-and gave joy to their afflicted hearts; and scarcely had
-Baudichon uttered them than those who stood round
-him fell on their knees and bowed before the Lord.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_463" id="Page_463">{463}</a></span>
-One of them prayed: 'O God, thou givest the rein to
-the wicked only so far as is necessary to try us. Stop
-them, therefore, and restrain them, lest they hurt us.
-Change the hearts of our enemies, and look only to
-the cause for which we are going to fight.' This
-simple prayer availed more than a <i>Salve Regina</i>.
-Rising from their knees, the friends of the Reform
-stretched out their hands and said: 'We swear to die
-in God's cause, and to keep faith and loyalty with one
-another.' And, like the martyrs of the early ages,
-they waited for the blow with which they were
-threatened, because they refused to abandon the Gospel
-which God was then restoring to Christendom.</p>
-
-<p>While the evangelicals were praying, the band so
-impatiently expected from St. Gervais began to cross
-the bridge at last. The ex-syndic Jean-Philippe, now
-captain-general, who inclined to the Reform from
-political motives, being called by his office to repress
-all disorder, had taken his post between the bridge
-and the city, near Baudichon's house, and those who
-belonged to neither party had rallied round him. Just
-as the corps from the suburb was debouching from
-the bridge and entering the city, Philippe ordered
-them to return. At these words their leader, Bellessert
-the butcher, furious at the attempt to stop him,
-flew into a passion, and with horrible oaths struck the
-captain-general so violently with his halberd that he
-fell to the ground. At the instant Claude de Genève,
-and other citizens who followed Philippe, dashed forward
-to meet the assailants; the captain sprang to his
-feet, and, turning sword in hand upon the man who
-had struck him, wounded Bellessert. At the same
-time, his followers, hitting right and left, drove the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_464" id="Page_464">{464}</a></span>
-St. Gervaisians back upon the bridge. The latter
-attempted in vain to resume the offensive; Philippe's
-troop did not give them time to breathe. Many had
-been wounded, and disorder was in their ranks; they
-were too proud and violent to give way if they had
-not suffered much loss. At last they fled and returned
-dejected to their houses.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_676" id="Ref_676" href="#Foot_676">[676]</a></span>
-The captain's followers immediately closed the bridge gate to prevent
-the people of the suburb from returning into the
-city.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_677" id="Ref_677" href="#Foot_677">[677]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This measure exposed the reformed in St. Gervais
-to some danger. Aimé Levet lived, as we have said,
-at the other end of the bridge. His wife, distressed
-at the struggle and the wounds her brethren were
-about to give and to receive, had gone out, imprudently
-perhaps, and standing in the street, tried to discover
-what was going on. At this moment, the catholic
-women of the quarter, inflamed by the sight of their
-idol Bellessert's wounds, and determined not to be
-behind the women of the city in warlike zeal, caught
-sight of Claudine Levet, to whom they attributed all
-the mischief. With a loud cry they rushed upon her,
-exclaiming: 'Let us begin the war by throwing this
-dog into the Rhone.' Claudine, seeing the furies
-coming, uttered a shriek, and 'being tricky,' according
-to Sister Jeanne, returned hastily into the house
-and shut the door. It was certainly a very lawful
-<i>trick</i>. The catholic women instantly moved to attack
-it: but much as they tried to break the door down,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_465" id="Page_465">{465}</a></span>
-they could not succeed. They then vented their fury
-on the apothecary's drugs: at first they took what
-served for show, and then entering the shop 'threw
-them all contemptuously into the street.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_678" id="Ref_678" href="#Foot_678">[678]</a></span>
-This expedition against the drugs did not calm them: leaving
-the shop and standing in front of the house, they
-turned their angry eyes to Claudine's windows and
-used insulting language. Madame Levet remained
-calm in the midst of the uproar, and 'raised her
-thoughts to heaven, where she found great matter of
-joy to blot out all her sorrows.' At last the catholics
-retired, 'very wroth because they could not get at
-this woman or any other.' Claudine was saved.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_679" id="Ref_679" href="#Foot_679">[679]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=PLAN TO BURN OUT THE HUGUENOTS.=</p>
-
-<p>While this was going on, the third band expected
-at the Molard, that headed by Canon Veigy, had
-assembled in the upper part of the city. The immobility
-of the reformers, who did not leave Baudichon's
-house, fretted the canon and those whom he commanded.
-'They keep themselves still as hares,' he
-said: 'we must compel them to leave their form.' This
-they prepared to do. It had been decided, as we
-have said, by Moine and his friends, the chiefs of the
-movement, that they should surround and set fire to
-Baudichon's house, so that the heretics should be
-stifled, burnt, driven out, and dispersed. In the
-opinion of some it was a capital idea of the huguenots
-to shut themselves up in one house, for by this means
-a single match would suffice to get rid of them....
-But the plan of fire-raising was not to everybody's
-taste. 'It cannot be done without great mischief,'
-said the wiser heads; 'the whole street might be
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_466" id="Page_466">{466}</a></span>
-burnt down.'... The barbarous plan had, however,
-been resolved on, and its execution entrusted to Canon
-Veigy's corps. It was a churchman who had been
-charged with the cruel duty. 'Canon de Veigy was
-to pass through the narrow street of the Trois Rois,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_680" id="Ref_680" href="#Foot_680">[680]</a></span>
-behind the Rhone, set fire to Baudichon's house,
-and drive <i>the others</i> into the street, so that they could
-escape nowhere.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_681" id="Ref_681" href="#Foot_681">[681]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The canon's band was preparing to descend into
-the city to perform its task, when some catholics,
-running to the hôtel-de-ville, announced the defeat of
-the troops from St. Gervais. 'We may expect a
-similar encounter,' said the canon and his subordinates;
-and being not at all eager to measure weapons
-with the captain-general, they resolved to join the
-crowd on the Molard, by passing to the east, in order
-to be out of the reach of Philippe's attack, and to
-have a reinforcement to burn the huguenots. Changing
-their direction, they descended by the Rue Verdaine.
-When they arrived at the Molard, they were
-very ill received. Everybody reproached them,
-calling them cowards and traitors. The priest-party
-were 'greatly astonished and vexed because they had
-not set fire to the house, as had been agreed upon.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_682" id="Ref_682" href="#Foot_682">[682]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=HUGUENOTS ON THE DEFENSIVE.=</p>
-
-<p>The news of this scheme for burning them out had
-reached the citadel of the reformed. Maisonneuve
-and his friends hesitated no longer. Thus far they
-had responded to the fury of their adversaries by remaining
-quiet; they desired as much as possible to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_467" id="Page_467">{467}</a></span>
-spare the effusion of blood; but now their moderation
-became useless. At first they had been only sixty,
-their numbers had increased, but they were still
-inferior to their adversaries: they determined, however,
-to repel force by force.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_683" id="Ref_683" href="#Foot_683">[683]</a></span>
-They sallied forth,
-therefore, calm and silent, for they felt the gravity of
-the moment. On arriving in the Rue des Allemands
-they drew up in line of battle five deep, according to
-the Swiss practice. The front rank was about 250
-paces from the enemy. They were determined not to
-take the offensive. 'We will wait for our adversaries,'
-they said; 'but if they attack us, we will sooner die
-than retreat a single step.'</p>
-
-<p>Although they were, as we have said, by no means
-numerous in comparison with the several catholic
-bands, they were firm and full of hope. There were
-neither priests, women, nor children with them to
-embarrass them: all were stout, resolute, disciplined
-men, who feared not to fight one against ten. They
-did not, however, place their confidence in their
-strength; they did 'not turn from one side to the
-other to set their hopes in vain things;' the most
-pious among them 'repeated that there was not one
-spark of certain help for them except in God alone.'</p>
-
-<p>The fight was about to begin. The reformed,
-knowing that the city artillery had been surrendered
-by the Bossu to their adversaries and pointed at the
-Molard, had procured some cannon, probably by the
-intervention of the captain-general. The huguenots
-marching boldly on two sides of the great square, had
-planted their guns—some in the Rue du Rhone, others
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_468" id="Page_468">{468}</a></span>
-in the Rue du Marché, only ninety paces from the
-catholics. On each side the artillery was ready to be
-discharged, the arquebuses were loaded, the spears
-and halberds were in the hands of the combatants, the
-women and children of the Romish party were bringing
-stones. There were transports of anger, cries,
-and terrible threats.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_684" id="Ref_684" href="#Foot_684">[684]</a></span>
-All were prepared for the
-onset, and a massacre seemed inevitable.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_685" id="Ref_685" href="#Foot_685">[685]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At this moment the sound of a trumpet was heard;
-it was not the signal of battle, but the prelude: the
-city crier, stopping at the corner of some neighbouring
-street, proclaimed, 'that every foreigner should retire
-to his lodging under pain of three lashes with a rope.'
-In this way they cleared the place where the battle
-was to be fought. The trumpet and the crier's shrill
-voice soon died away, and there was a deathlike silence.
-On each side there were noble souls, lovers of peace,
-who were a prey to the deepest emotions at the
-thought that brothers were about to attack brothers,
-and many turned a sorrowful look on the streets that
-were soon to be stained with the blood of their fellow-citizens.
-These compassionate men would have liked
-to restrain the fratricidal arms, but they trembled
-before the priests. 'No one,' says a contemporary,
-'dared venture to speak to the ecclesiastics to propose
-peace; the great pride of the priests intimidated them,
-and they feared to be called Lutherans.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_686" id="Ref_686" href="#Foot_686">[686]</a></span>
-To desire to prevent the shedding of blood, was to be a partisan
-of the Reformation.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_687" id="Ref_687" href="#Foot_687">[687]</a></span>
-The parties cast threatening
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_469" id="Page_469">{469}</a></span>
-glances at each other, and the two armies were about
-to come into violent collision.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=PRAYERS AND TEARS.=</p>
-
-<p>Then the agony burst forth. Some of the wives,
-mothers, and daughters, who were in the Place
-du Molard, and who up to this moment had been full
-of ardour for the combat, were moved and could not
-restrain their anguish. The tenderness of their sex
-resumed its sway: they let go their aprons, and the
-stones contained in them fell to the ground. They
-burst into tears and gave utterance to long and sorrowful
-moaning. 'Alas!' they said, 'the father is
-armed against the son, brother against brother, neighbour
-against neighbour.... They are all ready
-to kill one another.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_688" id="Ref_688" href="#Foot_688">[688]</a></span>
-The emotion became almost universal.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst many of the catholic women were thus
-transformed, the evangelical women who remained at
-home were praying. They reflected that, however the
-world may torment and vex, nothing can happen but
-what God Himself has ordained. They put the immutable
-decree of the Lord, who wills to maintain the
-kingdom of His Son for ever, in opposition to the
-wicked conspiracies by which the men of the world
-assail it, and doubted not that God would look upon
-and help them in their necessity.</p>
-
-<p>'It was God's will,' said Froment, 'to avoid bloodshed,
-and He ordained it accordingly.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_689" id="Ref_689" href="#Foot_689">[689]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_656" id="Foot_656" href="#Ref_656">[656]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 51.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_657" id="Foot_657" href="#Ref_657">[657]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'The standards of the king go forth.'—Rambach, <i>Anthologie
-christliche Gesänge</i>, i. 104. The use Dante made of the first line of
-this hymn is well known:</p>
-
-<p class="center">Vexilla Regis prodeunt Inferni.—<i>Inferno</i>, xxxiv. 1.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_658" id="Foot_658" href="#Ref_658">[658]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 53.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_659" id="Foot_659" href="#Ref_659">[659]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, &amp;c. p. 51.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_660" id="Foot_660" href="#Ref_660">[660]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, <i>ad diem</i>.—Froment, <i>Gestes de
-Genève</i>, p. 51. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_661" id="Foot_661" href="#Ref_661">[661]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 51. The
-number is probably exaggerated.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_662" id="Foot_662" href="#Ref_662">[662]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 52.—La Sœur J. de Jussie,
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 53.—Roset MS., liv. ii. ch. viii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_663" id="Foot_663" href="#Ref_663">[663]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, &amp;c. p. 53.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_664" id="Foot_664" href="#Ref_664">[664]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 57.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_665" id="Foot_665" href="#Ref_665">[665]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, &amp;c. p. 57.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_666" id="Foot_666" href="#Ref_666">[666]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_667" id="Foot_667" href="#Ref_667">[667]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, &amp;c. p. 54.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_668" id="Foot_668" href="#Ref_668">[668]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 54.—La Sœur J. de Jussie,
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 54.—Roset MS., <i>Chron.</i> liv. ii.
-ch. x.—Gautier MS.—Chonpard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_669" id="Foot_669" href="#Ref_669">[669]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_670" id="Foot_670" href="#Ref_670">[670]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, &amp;c. p. 54.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_671" id="Foot_671" href="#Ref_671">[671]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, pp. 54,
-55.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_672" id="Foot_672" href="#Ref_672">[672]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Plebs mota syndicos codem traxit.'—Turretini manuscript in the
-library at Berne.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_673" id="Foot_673" href="#Ref_673">[673]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Civis cujusdam domus concursu facto petitur; jam tormenta majora
-dirigebantur.'—Turretini MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_674" id="Foot_674" href="#Ref_674">[674]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, pp. 54,
-55.—Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 50.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_675" id="Foot_675" href="#Ref_675">[675]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_676" id="Foot_676" href="#Ref_676">[676]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 52.—Council Registers of the
-28th March, 1534.—La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>,
-p. 54.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_677" id="Foot_677" href="#Ref_677">[677]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_678" id="Foot_678" href="#Ref_678">[678]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, &amp;c. p. 57.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_679" id="Foot_679" href="#Ref_679">[679]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_680" id="Foot_680" href="#Ref_680">[680]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-The Three Kings may still be seen carved over the gate of the
-large house (called Trois Rois) in Bel Air.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_681" id="Foot_681" href="#Ref_681">[681]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 53.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_682" id="Foot_682" href="#Ref_682">[682]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS.—Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, pp. 52-54.—Gautier
-MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_683" id="Foot_683" href="#Ref_683">[683]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Erumpunt qui convenerant a protestantibus, vim vi
-repulsaturi.'—Turretini MS. at Berne.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_684" id="Foot_684" href="#Ref_684">[684]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Clamor, saxa, minæ, furor.'—Turretini MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_685" id="Foot_685" href="#Ref_685">[685]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Utrinque ad cædes in proximo.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_686" id="Foot_686" href="#Ref_686">[686]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, &amp;c. p. 54.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_687" id="Foot_687" href="#Ref_687">[687]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_688" id="Foot_688" href="#Ref_688">[688]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, &amp;c. p. 54.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_689" id="Foot_689" href="#Ref_689">[689]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 55.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_470" id="Page_470">{470}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XVI.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">TRUCE BETWEEN THE TWO PARTIES.<br />
- (<span class="smc">From March 28 to May 4, 1533.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">JUST at that time some foreigners were staying
-in Geneva, and particularly seven merchants of
-Friburg, who had come for the fair. They looked
-with sorrow on the spectacle around them, and could
-not understand how citizens could go so far as to kill
-one another, 'to satisfy the appetite of their priests,'
-says a manuscript.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_690" id="Ref_690" href="#Foot_690">[690]</a></span>
-These worthy Switzers came
-forward to mediate. The chiefs of the catholic party,
-not doubting that they were on their side, asked for
-their support. 'We do not meddle in business of this
-kind,' wisely answered the Friburgers, 'except it be
-to restore peace, since we are co-burghers and good
-friends with you as well as with the others.' They
-proceeded to the Rue des Allemands and said to the
-reformed: 'Look at the great multitude of people
-that is against you. This matter must be settled
-before worse befals you.' The reformed, who were
-ready for the battle, made answer: 'The disturbance
-did not begin with us, and we should be distressed to
-do anything to the disadvantage of the Council or of
-the people. We only ask to be left at peace and to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_471" id="Page_471">{471}</a></span>
-live according to God, obeying the magistrates, as the
-Gospel commands. We are acting in self-defence, for
-they have conspired to kill us. If so many priests
-and monks remain assembled in the square, rest
-assured that we shall defend ourselves to the last, if it
-please God to assist us. But we are not pleased at
-having to fight against fathers, brothers, relations,
-friends and neighbours to gratify the appetites of the
-priests and monks.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_691" id="Ref_691" href="#Foot_691">[691]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=MODERATION OF THE FRIBURGERS.=</p>
-
-<p>The Friburgers, encouraged by these words, returned
-to the Molard and addressing the priests, said:
-'It is neither good nor honourable, and above all it is
-not in accordance with your office, thus to excite the
-people to kill one another. It is your duty to be in
-your houses or at church praying to God rather than
-be thus in arms. When the people are at variance,
-you should reconcile them instead of exciting them to
-shed blood.' These were christian words, and the
-laymen delivered an excellent exhortation to the
-clergy; but the latter were so enraged that they
-would listen to nothing. After the pacific address of
-the Friburgers, 'they showed themselves more heated
-than ever in their desire that all should be killed.'</p>
-
-<p>These worthy merchants, astounded at finding ecclesiastics
-so eager for battle, thought that the laymen
-would be more moderate, and went off to parley with
-the magistrates. 'If there is any bloodshed,' they
-said, 'all the blame will be laid on you. Do your
-duty: it is yours to command; order the two parties
-to withdraw to their homes.' The honour of the
-magistrates, who at heart desired peace, was touched,
-and they resolved to put down the tumult. Turning
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_472" id="Page_472">{472}</a></span>
-to the priests, upon whom the whole affair depended,
-they said to them before the people: 'You must
-restore peace.' But the clergy would do nothing, and
-indeed excited the people all the more to attack the
-Lutherans. The indignant Friburgers determined to
-frighten them. 'We pray you, sirs, not to be so
-high,' they said, 'for if it should come to fighting, we
-would rather be on their side than on yours....
-They are very different soldiers from you, in better
-order and well-armed ... we have seen them.'
-Then pointing to the listening people, they continued:
-'Do you think, sir priests, that the men here, who
-have their children, parents, and friends on the other
-side, wish to kill them or to be killed by them for love
-of you?... Indeed, we pray them to withdraw.
-And if after that you desire to attack your enemies,
-think what you are about; perchance, you may not
-have the opportunity of returning.'</p>
-
-<p>The worthy Friburgers did not stop here; after
-speaking to the magistrates and priests, they began to
-harangue the people. Approaching the citizens, they
-spoke to them singly: 'You have sons, relations, and
-friends on the huguenot side; do you want to kill
-them, or be killed by them? We advise you to let
-the priests fight it out by themselves.'</p>
-
-<p>Many highly approved of this remonstrance. 'We
-are very foolish,' they said; 'why should we get
-killed for the priests?... Let them defend themselves,
-if they like. Let them contend with Holy
-Scripture and not with the sword.' Some whom
-reason could not convince were seized with fear.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_692" id="Ref_692" href="#Foot_692">[692]</a></span>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_473" id="Page_473">{473}</a></span>
-The good sense of the Friburgers dissipated the charm
-of sacerdotal fanaticism. The natural affections,
-repressed for a moment, resumed their power. 'Let
-the affair be arranged,' was the cry from all quarters;
-'Arbitrate, arbitrate.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=A CONSULTATION.=</p>
-
-<p>The magistrates, seeing the priests deserted, regained
-their courage. There was not a moment to
-be lost. The council assembled in the middle of the
-Molard, the ushers keeping off the crowd; the syndics
-were the first to protest against the spilling of blood;
-many influential councillors supported them, and the
-majority of the people seemed to declare in favour of
-peace. Then the premier-syndic, Nicholas du Crest,
-Claude Baud, and Pierre de Malbuisson, attended
-by several captains, advanced to treat with De la
-Maisonneuve and his friends. The foremost of the
-huguenots, seeing them approach, thought that the
-battle was beginning, and one of them, a prompt and
-energetic man, arranging a piece of artillery, began
-to take aim at the centre of the group, and got ready
-to apply the match. 'The shot would have made a
-terrible breach,' says Froment. This rapid movement
-alarmed those who were approaching; on all sides
-they shouted out, 'Peace is made.' At these words
-the gunner stopped, the soldiers drew back, the syndics
-came forward on one side, Baudichon and his
-friends on the other, and the two parties conferred
-together.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_693" id="Ref_693" href="#Foot_693">[693]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Confidence was not yet restored. It was agreed to
-give hostages: three notable men were given up on
-each side, and among the six was a canon named
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_474" id="Page_474">{474}</a></span>
-Guet. Immediately the sound of the trumpet was
-heard in the city, and the herald proclaimed: 'Every
-man shall lay down his arms and return quietly home,
-without quarrel or dispute, under pain of being
-hanged; and no one shall sing song or ballad, provoking
-to quarrel, under pain of being whipped and
-banished.'</p>
-
-<p>The most diverse opinions prevailed at that moment
-in the city. The priests and fervent disciples of
-Rome could find no comfort. Wishing to destroy
-the Reformation at any cost, they thought it very
-christian-like to put the reformed to death. They were
-particularly envenomed against the captain-general;
-some of them publicly called him a traitor. 'This
-peace vexes the christians sorely,' writes Sister Jeanne;
-and accordingly they were heard exclaiming: 'We
-ought now to <i>despatch them from the world</i>, in order
-to be no more frightened or vexed on their account.'
-'To say the truth,' adds the devout nun, 'it would
-have been better than letting them live.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_694" id="Ref_694" href="#Foot_694">[694]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But while some of the catholic leaders, as Wernli
-and Moine, returned home gloomy and discontented,
-hoping that the business was merely adjourned; others,
-both reformed and catholics, gladly recrossed the
-thresholds of their homes, and were welcomed with
-tears of joy. Wives embraced their husbands, the
-little children clung round their fathers, while the
-elder ones took off their swords. The politicians
-smiled as they witnessed the joy of some and the
-chagrin of others; they shook their heads and thought
-that one party or the other would break the truce as
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_475" id="Page_475">{475}</a></span>
-soon as they fancied it would be to their interest to
-do so. 'It is a sham peace,' they said.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_695" id="Ref_695" href="#Foot_695">[695]</a></span>
-But nothing could console certain of the monks. 'Alas!' they
-muttered in their convents, 'the christians would
-easily have discomfited and reduced the heretics to
-subjection, and now these wicked ones will gain the
-supremacy in the city.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_696" id="Ref_696" href="#Foot_696">[696]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=PROJECT OF RECONCILIATION.=</p>
-
-<p>On the following day (29th March) the council of
-sixty assembled 'to settle the strife of the day before.'
-The tempest was not yet entirely appeased; the
-catholic members of the council looked with threatening
-eyes on the most notable of their colleagues, Jean
-Philippe, François Faure, Claude Roset, and others.
-These were the men to be attacked, they thought, for
-the strength of the anticlerical movement lay with
-them. But for a time, reconciliation was all the
-fashion. They resolved to frame a compromise
-which would satisfy both parties; and some of the
-magistrates and principal citizens met to arrange a
-system for uniting Rome and the Gospel.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_697" id="Ref_697" href="#Foot_697">[697]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The Two Hundred, who were joined by many other
-citizens, being assembled on the 30th March, the
-premier-syndic first liberated the hostages and then
-proposed the famous project of reconciliation. The
-council having accepted it, he forwarded a copy to
-the captains of each company; and turning to the
-Abbot of Bonmont, who pretty regularly discharged
-the functions of bishop, considering the prelate's continual
-absence, the chief magistrate said to him:
-'Mr. Vicar, I shall give you also a copy of this
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_476" id="Page_476">{476}</a></span>
-decree, in order that you may take care to make your
-priests live properly.' All the laymen agreed that
-there lay the main difficulty. The sitting broke up.</p>
-
-<p>Each company was immediately drawn up on its
-Place d'Armes; the captain stood in the centre:
-huguenots and mamelukes listened to this strange
-decree which, regulating a religious matter, was
-ordered by the civil authority and proclaimed by the
-soldiers.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=ARTICLES OF PEACE.=</p>
-
-<p>'In the name of God, the Creator and Redeemer,
-Father, Son, and Holy Ghost,' read the captain, and
-all bared their heads. 'In the interest of peace, it is
-resolved,' continued the officer with sonorous voice,
-'that all anger, grudges, injuries, and ill-will between
-any soever of our citizens and inhabitants, as well
-ecclesiastic as secular, and also all battery, insult, and
-reproach, committed by one side or the other, be
-wholly pardoned.'</p>
-
-<p>The listeners appeared satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>'<i>Item.</i> That every citizen, of what state or condition
-soever he may be, live henceforward in peace,
-without attempting any novelty until it be generally
-<i>ordered to live otherwise</i>.'—'Really, here is a reform,'
-said the huguenots, 'but it is in the future.'</p>
-
-<p>'<i>Item.</i> That no one speak against the holy Sacraments,
-and that in this respect every one be <i>left at
-liberty according to his conscience</i>.'</p>
-
-<p>Liberty and conscience! what strange words. If
-the people of Geneva gained that, everything was
-gained.</p>
-
-<p>'That no one,' continued the captain, 'preach without
-the license of the superior, the syndics, and the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_477" id="Page_477">{477}</a></span>
-council; and that <i>the preacher say nothing that is not
-proved by Holy Scripture</i>.'</p>
-
-<p>No article caused greater satisfaction. 'Good,'
-said some of the reformed, 'our doctrine is that of
-Holy Scripture.'—'Good,' said some of the catholics,
-'the superior will contrive that no heretic preaches.'</p>
-
-<p>The captain added the prohibition to eat meat on
-Friday, to sing songs against one another, or to say
-'You are a Lutheran,' 'You are a papist.' Moreover
-he ordered the heads of families to inform their
-wives and children of the decree. The catholic ladies
-and their boys had been sufficiently forward at the
-time of the battle not to be forgotten.</p>
-
-<p>The captain having finished said to his company:
-'Let those who desire peace and love hold up their
-hands and make oath before God.'</p>
-
-<p>The reformers, who obtained Holy Scripture and
-liberty of conscience, held up their hands. The
-catholics seeing that the episcopal authority and fast
-days were left them, did the same; but in one of the
-companies, a huguenot who did not care for this
-mixture, said: 'I refuse!'—'To the Rhone with him,'
-exclaimed the catholics immediately; 'to the Rhone.
-Throw him into the Rhone without mercy, like a mad dog.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_698" id="Ref_698" href="#Foot_698">[698]</a></span>
-Nobody, however, was drowned, and
-next day there was a general procession through the
-city to return thanks to God for the peace.</p>
-
-<p>The catholics triumphed. Religious liberty and
-the Bible seemed such strange things that they had
-nothing to fear from them. They learnt the contrary
-afterwards; but at this time the words looked like
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_478" id="Page_478">{478}</a></span>
-a decoy, that had no reality, merely intended to
-attract and catch the huguenots. On Palm Sunday,
-a very learned dominican (as it was said) come from
-Auxerre, was commissioned to preach the victory of
-Rome. The crowd was so great that the convent
-church could not contain it. He was conducted to
-the open space in front of the building, where he got
-up into a pulpit that had been brought out for him.
-Standing proudly before his congregation, the disciple
-of St. Dominic said: 'Here I am ready to enter into
-the lists with these preachers. Let my lords of Berne
-send as many as they like, I will undertake to confound
-them all.' He had a copious flow of 'big
-words, to the great contempt of the Word of God.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_699" id="Ref_699" href="#Foot_699">[699]</a></span>
-The huguenots, scarcely able to contain themselves,
-exclaimed: 'These canting knaves desire to blindfold
-the eyes of the simple, so that they may not see the
-sun which has risen on us in his brightness.'</p>
-
-<p>The dominican continued hurling his thunderbolts
-without intermission, then suddenly the assembly
-became disturbed. The women screamed, the men
-were agitated ... it was believed that the huguenots
-were sallying from the city (for the convent was in a
-suburb) and about to fall on the congregation. 'Shut
-the gates' (of the city), cried some; and the devout
-were still more frightened at this exclamation. Some
-drew their swords, others their daggers, all got ready
-to defend themselves. The poor monk, fancying the
-Lutherans were there already and about to put him
-to death, grew frightened, turned pale ... 'and fell
-out of the pulpit in a faint.' But no huguenots
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_479" id="Page_479">{479}</a></span>
-appeared. The congregation began to enquire into
-the cause of the alarm, and discovered a young hare
-which had been let loose among the people, and was
-running here and there between the women's dresses.
-It was a trick played by some foolish jester. There
-was a good deal of laughter in the city at the intrepid
-champions of Rome who had so heroically drawn
-their daggers against a leveret.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_700" id="Ref_700" href="#Foot_700">[700]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE LORD'S SUPPER.=</p>
-
-<p>A ceremony of another kind, more serious and
-absorbing, was in preparation. It was Passion-week,
-and the evangelicals felt the necessity of meeting
-in a spirit of christian fraternity around the
-Lord's table. On Holy Thursday (10th April) fourscore
-men and several women assembled in the garden
-at the Pré l'Evêque. First, one of them washed
-the feet of the others, in remembrance of the like act
-done by our Lord. It was not an idle imitation with
-them: they understood Christ's meaning: 'reminding
-them that no one should refuse to descend to serve
-his brethren and equals, however low and abject the
-service might be;' and they felt that 'if charity is
-abandoned, it is because every one takes more than
-he wants, and despises almost all the others.' After
-the washing of the feet, the holy sacrament was celebrated.
-These energetic men humbled themselves
-like little children before God, and approaching the
-table in sincere faith, many experienced that the
-presence of the Redeemer, although spiritual, is real
-and strengthens the inner man.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the news of this celebration became
-known, all the city spoke of it, and sarcasms were not
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_480" id="Page_480">{480}</a></span>
-spared. 'These <i>Jews</i>,' they said, 'have bitten one
-after another into a slice of bread and cheese, in token
-of peace and union.... And thereupon the catholics
-laughed,' sister Jeanne informs us.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_701" id="Ref_701" href="#Foot_701">[701]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But the laughter was soon changed into fear.
-As they returned from the Pré l'Evêque, several
-huguenots (and some of the most dreaded were
-among them) walked through the streets together.
-A few silly gossips having caught sight of them in
-the distance, reported everywhere that large bodies
-of heretics were assembling in the squares and plotting
-to prevent the celebration of the mass on Easter
-Sunday. It being Holy Thursday, the communion
-was about to be administered in the churches; but
-the women, terrified by the tales they heard, did not
-dare stir out. The men grasped their arms; the
-priests and monks did the same; and both pastors
-and flocks began to celebrate the supper of peace,
-protected by breastplates, daggers, and clubs. All
-of them kept their ears on the watch; they were
-agitated at the least noise; but no one came to
-disturb them, and the communion passed off quietly.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_702" id="Ref_702" href="#Foot_702">[702]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=CONVENIENT INTERPRETATIONS.=</p>
-
-<p>'It will be on Good-Friday then,' said a few of the
-catholics; 'the huguenots, it is well known, are preparing
-to make a demonstration that day in the Dominicans'
-church, where the monk of Auxerre is to
-preach.' To prevent such a mishap it was decided
-that the good father should preach at St. Pierre's, 'the
-like of which had never been seen within the memory
-of man, on such a day.' The canons believed themselves
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_481" id="Page_481">{481}</a></span>
-safe in their cathedral, as in a fortress. For
-more security numerous bodies of men patrolled the
-city; one of the chief catholics, M. de Thorens, paraded
-proudly up and down surrounded by a troop
-of bravoes. On Friday morning, priests and worshippers
-went armed to St. Pierre's. Some of the
-reformed were astonished at seeing them under arms on
-such a day, and reminded them of our Lord's words:
-<i>Put up thy sword in his sheath</i>. That means, said the
-priests, 'that it must be kept close <i>until it is time to
-draw it</i>.' Convenient interpretations are always to be
-found.</p>
-
-<p>These good people were disquieted without a cause:
-there was not the least disturbance, and the preacher
-of Auxerre said whatever he pleased.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_703" id="Ref_703" href="#Foot_703">[703]</a></span>
-But he did not
-feel at ease in the city of the huguenots, and Easter
-Day was no sooner past than he returned 'hastily into
-his own country.' No one dared preach after his departure,
-which greatly surprised devout catholics.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_704" id="Ref_704" href="#Foot_704">[704]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The ordinance of the council had forwarded religious
-liberty in Geneva, but it was little more than in theory;
-the practice was more difficult. In the opinion of some,
-Geneva ought to be entirely reformed; in the opinion
-of others, entirely catholic: men of decision asked 'how
-long they would halt between two opinions?' and
-daring partisans repeated that the sword alone could
-cut the difficult knot. The premier-syndic, Nicholas
-du Crest, and councillor Roy started for Berne to
-pray the senate not to support the Reform; while the
-evangelicals, on the other hand, desired that it should
-be allowed to develope itself freely. Many had a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_482" id="Page_482">{482}</a></span>
-fervour of mind, a sincere hunger and thirst for
-righteousness; their souls sought after eternal salvation;
-and they were as ambitious of heavenly truth as
-conquerors are of glory and empire. The clergy, by
-depriving them of their ministers, had reduced them
-to simple attempts at mutual edification; but they desired
-the full preaching of the Gospel, without which the
-Church pines away. 'We are suffering from want,' they
-said; 'we are deprived of our rights. A bold monk is
-perpetually shouting that he is prepared to confound all
-the ministers that Berne is willing to send us....
-Well then, let us ask Berne for ministers whose learning
-and eloquence may reduce these insolent and
-prating Dominicans to silence.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=EMBASSY TO BERNE.=</p>
-
-<p>The journey of Syndic du Crest disquieted Maisonneuve.
-Who can tell but the respect due to the
-chief magistrate of the republic may induce the powerful
-canton of Berne to take a false step?...
-He will endeavour to prevent so great a misfortune.
-He communicated his intentions to the faithful
-Salomon, who being full of confidence in his friend,
-departed with him immediately on this perilous
-journey.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_705" id="Ref_705" href="#Foot_705">[705]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Du Crest and Councillor Roy, arriving at Berne on
-the 6th April, fancied one day they saw Maisonneuve
-and Salomon in the street. They stopped in surprise,
-eyed them both from head to foot, and looked as if
-petrified.... It was really the two huguenots. The
-premier-syndic was exasperated, and going up to
-them, asked rudely, 'What are you doing here?'
-'We are told that you have instructions to speak
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_483" id="Page_483">{483}</a></span>
-against us,' answered Maisonneuve: 'we are here to
-defend ourselves.' The next day, when the two
-magistrates went to the council, they were still more
-surprised to find the two reformed leaders in the outer
-hall. They hoped at least to enter the council-room
-alone; but no! the door was hardly open when the
-two huguenots went forward unceremoniously with the
-two magistrates, and sat down quietly at their left.
-Was there then a second power in Geneva, which also
-sent its ambassadors?</p>
-
-<p>Maisonneuve was in reality an ambassador; his heart
-burnt for a great cause—that of the Gospel and of the
-new times. The truth which he represented filled
-him with courage: he rose first, even before the Genevan
-magistrate had spoken, and said with holy boldness:
-'Most honoured lords, we and a great number
-of our fellow-citizens desire the pure Word of God
-to be preached in Geneva. The voice of the Gospel,
-so little heard in times of yore, is now resounding
-throughout Christendom, and we do not wish to give
-up hearing it. Neither banishment nor threats can
-reduce us to carelessness and inactivity.' And then
-without fearing the premier-syndic, who was listening,
-he continued: 'My lords, do you know to what extremity
-we are reduced? Our magistrates are making
-war upon us, and trying to drive from Geneva that
-Gospel which you have established in Berne. After
-the visit we paid you recently, they summoned us
-before them.... And this Nicholas du Crest here
-present has trampled our liberties under foot and
-spoken to us as if we were thieves.... Instead of
-answering your letters they went from house to house
-exhorting their partisans to take up arms. They rang
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_484" id="Page_484">{484}</a></span>
-the tocsin; gathered together the canons, priests, and
-common people; and contrived a wicked and bloody
-conspiracy.... And why, my lords? We must
-(they said) cut off the heads of those who went to
-Berne.... Behold, most honoured lords, the value
-they attach to your citizenship!... O liberties of
-Geneva! O alliance of the League! O justice of the
-laws!... Everything is trodden under foot by
-priests determined to leave us for our inheritance
-nothing but slavery and superstition, tears, sighs, and
-groans.... A remedy must be applied, and you
-alone can do it, most honoured lords. A fanatical
-monk, who preaches against pure religion, has offered
-to enter the lists against every minister of the Gospel
-you may send us.... Do what he asks....
-Grant to us and our brethren one of your preachers.
-Obtain for him a public place where he may freely
-declare the Word of God. Let him combat with this
-dominican in a properly regulated discussion, and thus
-ensure the triumph of the Gospel.'</p>
-
-<p>Maisonneuve knew the risk he incurred by speaking
-with so much frankness, and he therefore added:
-'Perhaps you will also see that this just request does
-not prevent our returning home and living there in
-peace.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_706" id="Ref_706" href="#Foot_706">[706]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE ENVOY'S DISCOMFITURE.=</p>
-
-<p>The syndic and the Genevan councillor, who had
-not expected such a speech, were embarrassed. Having
-come as accusers, they found themselves accused. The
-angry looks of the Bernese councillors disturbed the
-magistrate of Geneva still more than the words of the
-protestant ambassador. The avoyer, turning to the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_485" id="Page_485">{485}</a></span>
-syndic, asked him whether he had any answer to
-make. 'We have no orders on the subject, and, therefore,
-have nothing to say,' was his reply. 'Well
-then,' said the lords of Berne, 'we will send a deputation
-to Geneva shortly, to see what is going on
-there with regard to religion.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_707" id="Ref_707" href="#Foot_707">[707]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The council rose. It seemed as if a favourable
-wind was about to blow on the evangelical ship. But
-a storm was preparing, which might perhaps dash it
-to pieces.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_690" id="Foot_690" href="#Ref_690">[690]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS. <i>Vie de Farel.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_691" id="Foot_691" href="#Ref_691">[691]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 57.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_692" id="Foot_692" href="#Ref_692">[692]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_693" id="Foot_693" href="#Ref_693">[693]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 55.—Council Registers, 28th
-March 1533.—Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i> liv. ii. ch. 10.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_694" id="Foot_694" href="#Ref_694">[694]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p.
-56.—Council Registers of 28th and 29th March.—Froment, <i>Gestes de
-Genève</i>, p. 56.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_695" id="Foot_695" href="#Ref_695">[695]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 56.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_696" id="Foot_696" href="#Ref_696">[696]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, pp. 55-56.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_697" id="Foot_697" href="#Ref_697">[697]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers, 29th March.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_698" id="Foot_698" href="#Ref_698">[698]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers for the 30th March.—La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le
-Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 59.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_699" id="Foot_699" href="#Ref_699">[699]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Gautier MS. Extracted from the petition presented to Berne by
-Maisonneuve and Salomon.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_700" id="Foot_700" href="#Ref_700">[700]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers from 2nd to 11th April.—Gautier MS.—Spon,
-<i>Hist. Eccl.</i> pp. 490-492.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_701" id="Foot_701" href="#Ref_701">[701]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussieu, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 61.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_702" id="Foot_702" href="#Ref_702">[702]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 60.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_703" id="Foot_703" href="#Ref_703">[703]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, p. 60.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_704" id="Foot_704" href="#Ref_704">[704]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid. p. 61.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_705" id="Foot_705" href="#Ref_705">[705]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of the 2nd and 11th April. Gautier MS.—Spon,
-<i>Hist. Eccles.</i> I. pp. 490-492.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_706" id="Foot_706" href="#Ref_706">[706]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Requête de ceux de Genève.—Council Registers of 11th April,
-1583.—Gautier MS.—Spon, <i>Hist. Eccles.</i>, p. 491.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_707" id="Foot_707" href="#Ref_707">[707]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Requête de ceux de Genève.—Council Registers of 11th April,
-1533.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_486" id="Page_486">{486}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XVII<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">SECOND ATTACK, IN WHICH THE LEADER PERISHES.<br />
- (<span class="smc">May 4, 1533.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE Reformation of Geneva numbered in its ranks
-the friends, not only of evangelical truth, but
-of political liberty. There was both good and evil
-in this. The vigorous hand of the huguenots may
-possibly have been necessary to restrain the intrepid
-mamelukes; but it was to be regretted that the arms
-of the flesh shone beside those of the spirit. If reasoning
-by syllogism is bad in religious subjects, reasoning
-by the pike is worse still. Some partisans of the
-Reform gave a new version of the <i>Compel them to
-come in</i> of the Romish Church, by practising a little
-of the <i>Compel them to go out</i>. Both of them need a
-little indulgence. The human mind having been kept
-in darkness for ten centuries, required a lengthened
-education before it could understand that it is unholy
-to employ in religion any other weapons than those
-of free conviction.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=WAR OF THE TONGUE.=</p>
-
-<p>There was another kind of hostility, pretty frequent
-in those times, and more conformable to the
-manner of our days than swords and guns—the
-use of ridicule. The Genevans of both schools
-usually began with legitimate discussions, the catholics
-alleging the infallibility of the pope, and the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_487" id="Page_487">{487}</a></span>
-reformed opposing them with that of the Word of
-God. They debated on this subject in the streets and
-in the convents, around the fire and even in the council.
-But they often passed from discussion to ridicule.
-One day, when the priests were walking in procession
-and singing aloud the prayers for the conversion of
-heretics, some huguenots, standing at the corner of a
-street, fancying a resemblance between their harsh
-chants and the voice of a certain thick-skinned animal,
-said laughingly to one another: 'Give some thistles
-to those noisy braying donkeys.' 'Alas!' exclaimed
-the nuns in their cloister, 'they make so many jests
-that you could not write them down in a year!' It
-is Sister Jeanne who records this fact, but her narrative
-is so full of fables that we cannot guarantee
-its authenticity.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_708" id="Ref_708" href="#Foot_708">[708]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Most of the priests were stronger in arm than in
-mind, and preferred a fight with swords to one with
-words. That devout canon and valiant knight Messire
-Pierre Wernli was bursting with rage. He harangued
-in the convents, in private houses, and even in the
-streets; he wished to fight and prove, halberd in
-hand, that supreme respect was due to the papacy.
-He held frequent conferences with the heads of the
-party, both lay and ecclesiastic, at Percival de Pesmes',
-at M. de Thorens', or at the vicar-episcopal's. All kept
-their eyes and ears open, determined to take advantage
-of the first opportunity to secure the triumph of their
-cause. They thought the time for action had come
-at last.</p>
-
-<p>It was now the beginning of May, the date of the
-fair at Lyons, at that time much frequented by the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_488" id="Page_488">{488}</a></span>
-Genevans. Some of the principal huguenots hesitated,
-however, to go there. It seemed difficult for them to
-leave Geneva just at that moment, for all the indications
-of a storm were visible in the sky. They
-believed, however, they should have time to make
-the little journey before the crisis arrived. Some of
-the more daring among them posted up bills with
-the words: 'Let us go to the fair before the war
-and deliverance of Geneva.' They departed, and in
-certain secret meetings it was said that the huguenots
-who remained behind ought to be killed, and the gates
-shut against those who were away: thus the religion
-of Geneva would be saved. But in the opinion of
-others, it was proper that the pomps of religious
-worship should form a prelude to these combats of
-the faith.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=HIGH MASS.=</p>
-
-<p>Sunday, the 4th of May, was the feast of the Holy
-Windingsheet. The linen cloth, in which the body of
-Jesus Christ was buried, and on which (it was said)
-the print of his face had remained, was exhibited that
-day in Geneva, and on other days in ten or twelve
-different cities which all pretended to possess it.
-At the moment when the Reform was endeavouring
-to restore Christ's true image to the Church, such as it
-is found in Holy Scripture, the most ardent partisans
-of catholicism were found exhibiting on a sheet the
-features, which sixteen centuries, as they alleged, had
-not been able to efface. To give more importance to
-the feast, the vicar-general entrusted the service to
-Pierre Wernli, who was looked upon as one of the
-most important of the canons, and was at the head
-of the most bellicose. The congregation was large.
-Great fervour, internal emotion, and ardent prayers
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_489" id="Page_489">{489}</a></span>
-rendered the service that day more than usually solemn.
-Wernli, who had put on his finest sacerdotal
-robes, presided over the ceremony with religious enthusiasm
-and swelling pride. He was fanatical but
-sincere. His motto was: 'Everything for the honour
-of God and holy Church.' Convinced of the efficacy
-of the sacrifice of the mass, he repeated the <i>introit</i>,
-chanted the offertory, consecrated the host, and went
-through the elevation. The sympathetic accents that
-rose from his heart resounded through the arches of
-the cathedral. 'What a fine voice!' said some; 'what
-a fine man! There is not such another officiater in
-the world, and we have not seen so fine a service in
-Geneva for these ten years!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_709" id="Ref_709" href="#Foot_709">[709]</a></span>
-After the mass of the
-Holy Windingsheet, the catholics could not doubt of
-the approaching triumph of the Church.</p>
-
-<p>A new contest was about to begin. We do not
-forget the small extent of the field of battle. We
-are not describing the destinies of the empire of the
-Persians or the Romans, of the Russians or the
-Germans; but those of a little city, surrounded by
-a narrow territory. Here, everything is on a small
-scale; yet the combat of which we are about to
-speak led to the return of the prince-bishop; and if
-the plans formed between that ecclesiastical prince,
-the duke of Savoy, and the emperor himself had been
-carried into execution at that moment, as everything
-seemed to forebode, liberty and the Reformation
-would have perished in Geneva. Would that loss
-have produced no effect? Are we mistaken in thinking
-that the great battle which was to last during all
-the 16th century—a battle which the Gospel and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_490" id="Page_490">{490}</a></span>
-liberty fought against Rome, Jesuitism, and the Inquisition,
-and which is undoubtedly the most important
-of modern times—might not have had the same
-issue, if this little city, so full of living faith and
-heroic courage, had not fought in the ranks, and
-imparted to protestantism the vigour necessary to
-conquer formidable enemies? When they hear of
-these petty struggles, many of the friends of liberty
-and the Gospel perhaps may say: 'Let us not
-despise such little things. It is we whom the narrative
-concerns. These people were the first to fight
-for the precious gifts which we now enjoy in peace.'</p>
-
-<p>Wernli did not intend to remain satisfied with a
-mass: he believed a fight was necessary. He had
-hardly laid aside his robes, his cross, and stole, when
-he thought of donning his armour: this was part of
-his piety. He had no trouble in persuading his
-brethren, for the priests were more zealous than
-the laymen in these disturbances.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_710" id="Ref_710" href="#Foot_710">[710]</a></span>
-The first battle
-having proved a failure, they prepared for a second.
-In the Reformation of Geneva facts play as important
-a part as ideas. The great questions of rights,
-liberty, and truth were not elaborated simply in the
-studies of a few lawyers or divines, but were discussed
-around the hearths of burghers, at the meetings of
-evangelicals, and in the general council of the citizens,
-and were decided in the streets in the midst of formidable
-struggles. Ideas became acts; doctrines
-gave birth to events; theories set men's hearts beating,
-armed their hands, and produced great deliverances.
-There may have been some evil in this mighty
-activity, but it was an unavoidable evil.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_491" id="Page_491">{491}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the afternoon of the festival, Wernli and a great
-number of other ecclesiastics met in council at the
-vicar-episcopal's. They bitterly regretted that the
-good-nature of the Friburgers and the weakness of the
-syndics had caused the failure of their plot. They
-had lost the game, and must begin again. A project
-adjourned needs not on that account be given up.
-The catholics should take advantage of the time when
-the absence of the principal huguenots would make
-the victory easy.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=A HOLIDAY EVENING.=</p>
-
-<p>During this discussion a few citizens of both parties
-were promenading near the Rhone, apparently thinking
-only of taking a little recreation. It was the evening
-of a holiday, and the setting sun poured its rays in
-floods of flame upon the lake. The west was on fire,
-the water reflected the image of the sky, and flashed
-with bright and flickering colours. But the citizens
-thought little at this moment of the beauties of nature.
-However great the apparent calm without, their souls
-were agitated by fierce passions. By degrees they
-entered into conversation; they spoke of religion, as
-was their custom; they debated with warmth, then
-they began to dispute and to abuse each other, and
-finally hands were raised and blows were struck.</p>
-
-<p>The sun set; the brightness died away, all grew pale
-round the city, and daylight was fading into darkness.
-The hour, so favourable for walking, had attracted
-many abroad; the noise drew still more. Huguenots
-and mamelukes, catholics and reformed, hurried
-to the Molard. 'What is the matter?' they asked.
-The parties were already forming into two distinct
-groups. Every one as he arrived joined his friends;
-they arranged themselves in order, they soon counted
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_492" id="Page_492">{492}</a></span>
-their numbers, and two bands drew up face to face.
-Some of the more impetuous went in front and excited
-the crowd. The gaoler of the episcopal prisons and
-his brother, both great brawlers, who handled the
-dagger cleverly, 'very riotous men' (says a manuscript)
-thorough bravoes of the 16th century, were
-among the most violent. Monks and priests of the
-lower rank mingled with the people in the square,
-while their superiors were in consultation at the vicar-episcopal's.
-They excited the crowd, and complained
-loudly that the Friburgers had hindered them on the
-28th March from destroying the heretics, which, they
-held, would have been a necessary severity.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the two parties, though already face to
-face, apparently did not think of coming to blows.
-One Pinet, sent by the clergy 'to apply the match,
-began to work upon the people.' He glided from
-group to group, and strove to inflame the minds of
-the catholics. 'Who will fight along with me on
-behalf of his religion?' he said. Then turning
-towards the huguenots, he challenged them, shouting
-out, with an oath: 'Your creed is a rascally one, you
-Lutherans! If there is a man among you willing to
-maintain the contrary, let him come here and fight.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_711" id="Ref_711" href="#Foot_711">[711]</a></span>
-This challenge was repeated several times, but the
-reformed feared a disturbance. 'Peace has been made,'
-said they, 'do not break it.' Some of them added:
-'Be on your guard, Pinet is a sad scamp.' Nobody
-would 'take the bait.' One huguenot, however,
-the impatient Ami Perrin, could not contain himself;
-provoked by the priests' agent, he rushed upon him
-and nearly killed him. Both huguenots and catholics
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_493" id="Page_493">{493}</a></span>
-ran between them to separate them. Peace was
-restored or at least seemed to be; but a spark had
-been struck out, and the fire was about to be kindled.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_712" id="Ref_712" href="#Foot_712">[712]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=MARIN DE VERSONAY.=</p>
-
-<p>A young Catholic, Marin de Versonay, agitated
-by the scene which he had just witnessed, left the
-square and hurried up the Rue du Perron. Versonay
-was a man of narrow mind but ardent imagination,
-and fanatically attached to the Romish Church, which
-he looked upon as the sole and exclusive source of
-holiness and everlasting happiness. Moreover he
-had an unbounded affection for his cousin Percival
-de Pesmes, and the profoundest respect for the
-sovereignty of the bishop. His ancestors had conferred
-great services upon Geneva. In 1476 his
-grandfather Aymon, councillor to the bishop John
-Louis of Savoy, had lent his plate to the city to quiet
-the Swiss, who threatened it with pillage. The young
-nobleman wished to do for Geneva more than his
-grandfather had done—he wished to destroy heresy.
-His wife, with whom the priests were great friends,
-urged him on night and day.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_713" id="Ref_713" href="#Foot_713">[713]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The members of the episcopal council, the canons
-and principal priests, were all armed and waiting at
-Messire de Bonmont's house the issue of this skirmish.
-At every noise they pricked up their ears,
-fancying they heard the footsteps of a messenger;
-but none appeared, and everything seemed to betoken
-that peace would not be disturbed. Pinet had
-withdrawn in confusion, and Perrin, notwithstanding
-his natural impetuosity, knew very well that the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_494" id="Page_494">{494}</a></span>
-reformed did not wish to take the initiative and break
-the public peace. Tranquillity was restored. A few
-citizens of both parties still remained in the Molard,
-but many of the catholics and huguenots had left,
-and to seal their concord had gone to drink together,
-saying that they intended to remain friends. The
-match had gone out.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_714" id="Ref_714" href="#Foot_714">[714]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Young de Versonay and the impetuous canon were
-going to rekindle it. The former, whose imagination
-had been excited, directed his steps to De Bonmont's
-house. He knocked violently at the gate and shouted
-aloud: 'Help! help! they are killing all good christians!'
-At the sound of these imprudent words the
-canons and priests caught fire; some remained
-doubtful and motionless, but Pierre Wernli, 'that
-good knight,' immediately sprang to his feet. The
-service he had celebrated in the cathedral was hardly
-over, when he had thought of another, and said to
-himself that this very day the Reformation must be
-buried in a winding-sheet from which it should never
-rise again. Accordingly, after taking off his sacerdotal
-robes, he had put on his breastplate and
-cuishes, belted his sword to his side, seized his
-heavy halberd, and thus armed,<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_715" id="Ref_715" href="#Foot_715">[715]</a></span>
-had gone to the
-vicar-episcopal's. Immediately Wernli heard Versonay's
-voice, he thought the hour was come. Standing
-in the midst of the priests, and grasping his weapon,
-he invited his colleagues by a glance to follow him.
-Many hesitated, and then, 'burning with love of God,'
-says one of his greatest admirers, 'this good champion
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_495" id="Page_495">{495}</a></span>
-of the faith, seeing that nobody got ready for the
-fight, lost patience, would not wait for the other
-churchmen, and went out first with fiery courage.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_716" id="Ref_716" href="#Foot_716">[716]</a></span>
-The die was cast; the battle was about to begin, for
-no one was able to stop the impetuous canon.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE TOCSIN SOUNDS.=</p>
-
-<p>However, three other priests, less notable but
-quite as violent—Bertholet, Manillier, and Servant—ran
-to St. Pierre's and ordered the ringers to sound
-the tocsin loudly and hurriedly. These men, themselves
-alarmed at what was told them about the riot,
-rang immediately, 'to the great terror of Christians,'
-says sister Jeanne. Over all the city swelled the
-majestic voice of <i>Clemence</i>, an ancient bell, well
-known at Geneva, which bears this inscription on
-the rim:</p>
-
-<p class="center small">EGO VOCOR CLEMENTIA.<br />
-AVE MARIA, GRATIA PLENA.<br />
-PLEBEM VOCO, CONVOCO CLERUM,<br />
-VOX MEA CUNCTORUM<br />
-FIT TERROR DEMONIORUM.</p>
-
-<p>In truth Clemence at this moment 'was calling
-the people and convoking the clergy,' and as
-for the 'demons, whom her voice was to affright,'
-... they were the reformed—at least in the eyes
-of the priests. The huguenots who remained in the
-Molard, thought that the papists meditated returning
-to the attack and killing them in their houses. The
-darkness increased the agitation caused by the dismal
-sounds from the belfry. 'What is the matter?' said
-the citizens. 'The heretics are assembling in the
-principal square to plunder the churches,' answered
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_496" id="Page_496">{496}</a></span>
-some of the catholics. 'Let us rally on the other
-side, in front of the stalls,' was the reply. Some said
-truly that it was a false alarm; that the huguenots
-had gone to the river bank simply for a walk, as is
-everywhere customary on a Sunday evening, and that
-they were already returning home; but the more
-violent would listen to nothing; they hurried from
-all quarters, summoned by the tocsin, and displayed
-their banners. On the side of the stalls they shouted
-with all their might: 'Rally here, all Christians, and
-be of good heart in defence of holy faith.' And
-great was the tumult among them. It was quite
-pitiful to hear their cries in the streets.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_717" id="Ref_717" href="#Foot_717">[717]</a></span>
-The other churchmen, who at the first moment had hesitated to
-follow the canon, took courage, and leaving the
-vicar's house, descended to the Molard.</p>
-
-<p>In the priests' eyes it was a decisive moment. A
-great number of them, no doubt, thought only of
-their personal interests, but many believed that the
-issue of the struggle was a question of life or death
-for catholicism in Geneva. They shuddered when
-they saw those whom they termed unnatural children,
-turning away from the bosom of their mother's breast—the
-papacy. 'These curious and rebellious minds,'
-they said, 'imagine that they will overthrow the
-Church ... but the gates of hell shall not prevail
-against it.... O bride of Christ! thou who procurest
-for us the chaste and everlasting embraces
-(<i>castos æternosque amplexus</i>) of the divine Spouse,
-we are thine for ever!'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=WERNLI'S APPEAL.=</p>
-
-<p>Wernli had made up his mind to give his life, if
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_497" id="Page_497">{497}</a></span>
-necessary, for the cause of Rome. This was not
-with him the hasty resolution of a moment. Seeing
-the progress of the Reformation, he had vowed to
-sacrifice everything for its destruction, and it was
-with this intention he now descended from the neighbourhood
-of St. Pierre's to the Molard. It was
-necessary to accomplish on the 4th May what the
-28th March had been unable to do. 'Wernli desired
-to be the first,' says Froment, 'to support as a man
-of war the holy mother Church.' He was both the
-hero and the victim of this important day. Vainly
-did the people shout to him on every side that 'Peace
-was made;' ... he would hear nothing. 'He was
-the most obstinate and the maddest of the priests.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_718" id="Ref_718" href="#Foot_718">[718]</a></span>
-Full of venom and devotion for the cause of popery,
-he exclaimed: 'Ho! all good christians to my aid.'
-Many laymen and clerks joined him, and they proceeded
-hurriedly towards the square. 'The canons
-and other churchmen were the first under the flag,'
-says Sister Jeanne. In a short time fifteen hundred
-men, 'many of them priests,' were assembled.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_719" id="Ref_719" href="#Foot_719">[719]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>During this time, other ecclesiastics were gathering
-in arms in the court of St. Pierre, so as to stop the
-huguenots who might desire to go to the scene of the
-tumult. Three reformers, coming from the Bourg
-du Four, soon arrived with hasty steps in front of the
-cathedral. The sacerdotal corps immediately barred
-the way, and the priests began to attack them. One
-of them was 'unfortunate enough to receive <i>twenty-eight</i>
-wounds at their hands, and fell to the ground.'
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_498" id="Page_498">{498}</a></span>
-As for the other two, 'the dogs took flight,' says the
-bulletin of St. Claire.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_720" id="Ref_720" href="#Foot_720">[720]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=WERNLI HEADS THE FIGHT.=</p>
-
-<p>At this moment Wernli and his followers reached
-the Molard. The night was dark, the stars above
-gave a faint light; men appeared like shadows, and
-it was hard to distinguish friends from foes. Obscure
-and confused noises, inarticulate sounds, marks of
-approbation or of anger, issued from the darkness.
-It was like the hoarse roaring of the sea before the
-storm bursts forth. For a few seconds there was a
-dead silence, then on a sudden loud shouting. When
-the canon arrived, armed from head to foot, he
-heard the cries of the reformers, and, stirred with
-anger, he flourished his halberd, and pointing it in
-their direction, shouted out in his Friburg patois:
-'Dear God! where are these Lutherans who speak ill
-of our law?... God's blood! where are they?'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_721" id="Ref_721" href="#Foot_721">[721]</a></span>
-With a coarse oath, he turned round to his followers,
-and said, 'Courage, good christians! do not
-spare those rascals.' One might fancy him the giant
-Goliath, who, with a helmet of brass upon his head,
-and armed with a coat of mail, came forth, spear in
-hand, to defy the army of Israel.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_722" id="Ref_722" href="#Foot_722">[722]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The warlike canon had hardly given the signal
-when the combat began. It was a fine spring night,
-everything was pale and grey; it was, as we have
-said, easy to make mistakes; the silence and obscurity
-imparted a certain solemnity to the struggle. The
-shadows moving about the Molard became agitated;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_499" id="Page_499">{499}</a></span>
-they rushed upon each other, and dealt frequent
-blows in the darkness. One shadow ran after another,
-but on both sides they fought desperately and at
-close quarters. From time to time there was a brief
-gleam; sword met sword, and flashed fire. The
-violent Perrin and the zealous Claude Bernard
-were at the head of the huguenots, and struck stoutly.
-Among the catholics, John Rosetti and Canon Viole
-were those who rushed with greatest fury upon their
-adversaries. All four fell wounded on the spot.
-Others besides them were hit, and their blood
-flowed; but they were not noticed, and the combatants
-trampled the wounded under foot, until their
-friends, recognising them, carried them to some
-neighbouring house. A blow more famous than all
-was about to be struck; a victim more notable was
-about to bite the dust.</p>
-
-<p>Wernli, who had remained at the top of the square,
-unable to see his enemies, was challenging them with
-all the strength of his lungs. 'Where are they?' he
-kept on shouting and swearing; 'Where are these
-Lutherans who speak ill of our law?' Some huguenots
-who were not in the square, but in the Rue de
-la Croix d'Or (all the adjoining streets were full of
-catholics and reformers), answered him, 'They are
-here.' The canon, who could not see, but who could
-hear, rushed halberd in hand in the direction whence
-the reply came. He reached his enemies, striking
-them with the head and the butt of his weapon,
-which he handled as easily as his breviary. By
-killing Lutherans he hoped to kill Lutheranism itself.</p>
-
-<p>The huguenots whom he had attacked did not
-remain idle, but parried the priest's blows with their
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_500" id="Page_500">{500}</a></span>
-naked swords. At last one of them, whom the long
-and pointed blade provoked, sprang forward, caught
-hold of the halberd, broke it in two and flung the
-pieces away. The hero of the clergy, finding himself
-deprived of his favourite weapon, lost not a
-moment; he drew his two-handed sword and rushed
-upon his adversaries, cutting and thrusting like a
-Switzer of Grandson. The huguenots, finding themselves
-so vigorously attacked, no longer stood upon
-the defensive; they fell upon the champion of the
-papacy. 'They charged him,' says Sister Jeanne,
-who adds, 'but he defended himself valiantly.' His
-breastplate protected his body from the neck to the
-waist, so that all the blows aimed at him glanced off,
-'so completely and cunningly was he armed.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_723" id="Ref_723" href="#Foot_723">[723]</a></span>
-At last a man named Pierre l'Hoste, as is believed, a poor
-carman, impatient at the long struggle, looking upon
-Wernli as a soldier and not a priest, approached him,
-and, moving round him in search of the weak point
-in his armour, plunged his sword into his body. The
-canon staggered and fell. 'Thus was the blasphemer
-killed, and he lay in the square without moving hand or foot.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_724" id="Ref_724" href="#Foot_724">[724]</a></span>
-The struggle occurred in front of the
-house of Councillor Chautemps, one of the most
-zealous of the evangelicals. Wernli fell on the steps.
-<i>They that take the sword shall perish with the sword.</i><span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_725" id="Ref_725" href="#Foot_725">[725]</a></span>
-Some priests who were near, seeing their captain fall,
-fled each to his convent or to the cloister of St.
-Pierre.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_726" id="Ref_726" href="#Foot_726">[726]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=DEATH OF THE CANON.=</p>
-
-<p>The death of the general did not, however, put an
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_501" id="Page_501">{501}</a></span>
-end to the fight. Priests with their partisans, and
-huguenots, were still exchanging blows when the
-syndic of the guard, the head of the military department,
-arrived. He raised his official bâton and ordered
-the citizens to return to their houses. De Chapeaurouge,
-commander of the cavalry, zealously assisted
-him. 'Stop!' they both exclaimed. All their calling
-was useless, so great was the popular emotion, and
-so inflamed was their courage, says the chronicle.
-The syndic, advancing into the midst of the combatants,
-conjured them to separate; but he received a
-blow on the head from the hands of a priest.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_727" id="Ref_727" href="#Foot_727">[727]</a></span>
-What the canon's death had not been able to do, the magistrate's
-wound accomplished. This incident put an
-end to the contest. The reformed, full of respect for
-the syndic, sheathed their swords and withdrew to
-their homes.</p>
-
-<p>Some priests, however, with a few of their partisans,
-refused to obey. They were unwilling to fail this
-time, and did not intend that their project should
-come to nothing. They were determined to bury the
-Reform. Exasperated bands paraded the streets,
-challenging and insulting the huguenots, who refused
-to chastise the braggart priests. Even this forbearance
-did not appease the fanatics; they continued
-their provocations until daybreak. 'All night the
-christians were under arms,' says Sister Jeanne,
-'seeking those wicked dogs; but it was of no good,
-for they were all hidden!'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_728" id="Ref_728" href="#Foot_728">[728]</a></span>
-When daylight began to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_502" id="Page_502">{502}</a></span>
-appear, the clergy and their allies, fatigued with the
-tumultuous night, went off to bed, and thus ended
-their second attack. Now they will try to obtain by
-intrigue and terror, what arms have failed to procure
-them.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_708" id="Foot_708" href="#Ref_708">[708]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_709" id="Foot_709" href="#Ref_709">[709]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, p. 63.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_710" id="Foot_710" href="#Ref_710">[710]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 55.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_711" id="Foot_711" href="#Ref_711">[711]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes</i>, p. 57.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_712" id="Foot_712" href="#Ref_712">[712]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 57.—La Sœur J. de Jussie,
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 61.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_713" id="Foot_713" href="#Ref_713">[713]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Contemporary MS.—Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 58.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_714" id="Foot_714" href="#Ref_714">[714]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 57.—La Sœur J. de Jussie,
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 61.—Galiffe, <i>Notices
-généalogiques</i>, I. p. 48.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_715" id="Foot_715" href="#Ref_715">[715]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, &amp;c. p. 62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_716" id="Foot_716" href="#Ref_716">[716]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, pp. 61-62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_717" id="Foot_717" href="#Ref_717">[717]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, pp. 67-68.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_718" id="Foot_718" href="#Ref_718">[718]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 58.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_719" id="Foot_719" href="#Ref_719">[719]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p.
-61.--Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, pp. 57-58.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_720" id="Foot_720" href="#Ref_720">[720]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ces chiens prirent la fuite.'—<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>,
-p. 63. Gautier MS. Council Registers of May 11.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_721" id="Foot_721" href="#Ref_721">[721]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Char Dey, o sont tey ces toux Luthérians..... Sang Dey, o son
-tey?'—Choupard MS. Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 58.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_722" id="Foot_722" href="#Ref_722">[722]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-1 Samuel xvii.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_723" id="Foot_723" href="#Ref_723">[723]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, p. 63.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_724" id="Foot_724" href="#Ref_724">[724]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 59.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_725" id="Foot_725" href="#Ref_725">[725]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-St. Matthew xxvi. 52.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_726" id="Foot_726" href="#Ref_726">[726]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS.—Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i> liv. ii. ch. xvi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_727" id="Foot_727" href="#Ref_727">[727]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Choupard MS.—Roset MS.—<i>Chron.</i> liv. ii. ch. xvi.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_728" id="Foot_728" href="#Ref_728">[728]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p.
-63.—Council Registers of the 4th and 23rd May.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_503" id="Page_503">{503}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XVIII.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">THE CANON'S DEATH MADE A WEAPON AGAINST THE REFORM.<br />
- (<span class="smc">May to July 1533.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">WERNLI'S death was to be fruitful in serious
-consequences. The priests were about to show
-what the violent death of an ecclesiastic might mean,
-and the terrible consequences it carries with it. To
-sacrifice the liberties of Geneva and the evangelical
-Reformation on his tomb, was, in their opinion,
-the only offering that could appease heaven.</p>
-
-<p>Next morning at sunrise, a few citizens left their
-houses and proceeded towards the field of battle.
-They perceived a man, dressed like a warrior, lying
-on the steps of a house; a great sword lay a few paces
-off. They approached, stooped down and touched
-him ... he was stark dead ... it was
-the canon, Messire Pierre Wernli. His body had
-lain all night in the street, unobserved by every one.
-As Councillor Chautemps, a peaceable man, had remained
-indoors, the body had not been perceived.
-The cuirass bore the marks of the blows received by
-the champion of the priests. His garments were
-bloody and his features still wore a fierce look.
-Those who gazed upon him were moved. A canon,
-a chief of the Church, he who the day before had
-officiated with so much state at St. Pierre's, surrounded
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_504" id="Page_504">{504}</a></span>
-by all the pomps of the service, had been
-struck down by the huguenots ... and there he lay
-dead. Some ran off to spread the news: 'Messire
-Pierre lies bathed in blood near the Molard.' Canons
-and priests, monks and mamelukes, and even the
-huguenots, ran out and surrounded the dead body.
-'All the city was troubled when they found the corpse.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_729" id="Ref_729" href="#Foot_729">[729]</a></span>
-The devout knelt down, and striking their
-breasts, exclaimed with tears: 'O blessed martyr,
-sacrificed to God!' According to some good catholics,
-he took his place in the ranks of the confessors
-who, like Thomas à Becket, had been put to death
-for honouring the holy Roman Church. This species
-of canonisation disgusted the huguenots: 'What!'
-they said, 'a priest fights with the halberd and sheds
-the blood of citizens—he turns soldier, and you make
-him a saint! Rather recognise in his death the just
-judgment of God.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_730" id="Ref_730" href="#Foot_730">[730]</a></span>
-At that moment, there came up
-a woman of mean appearance, who fell shrieking
-on the body. She pressed it in her arms, with
-many sighs and groans. She was the canon's housekeeper,
-they said; but the manuscript which records
-this incident gives her a more significant name.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_731" id="Ref_731" href="#Foot_731">[731]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This death was a great event, and the members of
-the council felt the liveliest apprehensions. Wernli
-was not only a canon, but a Friburger, and belonged
-to a powerful family. What would not be the wrath
-of his fellow-citizens! 'Had we known of this murder
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_505" id="Page_505">{505}</a></span>
-last evening,' said the mamelukes, 'the sword
-would have taken vengeance on Messire Pierre's
-assassins, and the night would have been a night of
-terror and death.' Their rage would have been so
-great that they would have entered every house and
-made a general massacre. But the abler men of the
-party made less noise, and thought of the advantage
-they might derive from the catastrophe. The most
-extreme measures now became legitimate, and the
-canon's death was to result in the triumph of the
-pope. Even now, a few catholics assembling round
-the corpse, traded upon the scene, and uncovering
-Wernli's wounds, pointed them out to the people,
-and thus sought to arouse their anger. Others
-succeeded in preventing the gates from being opened,
-lest the huguenots who had crossed swords with the
-canon should escape. When the reformed learnt
-that the city was closed, although it was broad daylight,
-they asked if it was intended to murder them,
-and some immediately armed themselves and went to
-Baudichon de la Maisonneuve's house.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_732" id="Ref_732" href="#Foot_732">[732]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=BURYING THE DEAD.=</p>
-
-<p>About nine o'clock the body was lifted up and
-carried into Chautemp's house, where it was placed
-decently on a bed. The cuirass was taken off, the
-stains of blood washed away; it was arrayed in the
-priest's canonical robes, and the devout folks knelt
-around it. Every moment other catholics, men and
-women, took the places of those who left. The same
-day, at five in the afternoon, an immense procession
-descended from St. Pierre's to do honour to this
-'blessed martyr.' The priests placed the canon on a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_506" id="Page_506">{506}</a></span>
-showy bier, and when they came out of the house,
-'the people uttered a loud cry.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_733" id="Ref_733" href="#Foot_733">[733]</a></span>
-Some of the reformed
-joined in the funeral train; all enmity (they
-thought) should perish in the presence of the dead.
-The body was taken into the cathedral, and buried at
-the foot of the great crucifix. The council, wishing
-to hold the balance even, imprisoned a few men who
-passed for the most violent of both parties.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_734" id="Ref_734" href="#Foot_734">[734]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=WERNLI'S RELATIONS ARRIVE.=</p>
-
-<p>Five days later, a herald from Friburg and many
-of Wernli's relatives appeared in deep mourning, and
-demanded that the body should be given up to them;
-they also called for signal reparation. At five o'clock
-the same day, the body was exhumed in the presence
-of an immense crowd, and, wonder unheard-of! the
-canon stood upright, and the blood flowed from his
-wound as fresh as if he had been alive. 'Of a truth,'
-said those in the cathedral, 'this is a miracle, a testimony
-borne to the holy Roman faith, for the maintenance
-of which his body was mangled. His blood
-cries for revenge.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_735" id="Ref_735" href="#Foot_735">[735]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But the reformed said that popery is full of such
-cheats (<i>piperies</i>) and idle dreams, opposed to common
-sense, by means of which impostors deceive the
-simple. They believed that when the Son of God
-became man, many signs of divine power had accompanied
-that great miracle; and that if the sun acts
-upon the earth, and transforms a poor grain of wheat
-into a magnificent ear of corn, it is very reasonable
-to admit that he who created the sun exercises his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_507" id="Page_507">{507}</a></span>
-sovereign action here whenever he wills it, and effects
-transformations still more marvellous; but they
-would not suffer the tricks of men to be placed in
-the same rank with the interventions of the supreme
-power of the Creator. The miracle having been confirmed
-by <i>eight hundred witnesses</i>, says Sister Jeanne,
-the body was laid in a coffin and carried to the lake,
-all the priests singing, while the women and some of
-the devout made the air re-echo with their cries and
-groans. The coffin was placed in a boat and taken
-to Friburg.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_736" id="Ref_736" href="#Foot_736">[736]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE REFORM MUST BE CRUSHED.=</p>
-
-<p>The priests thought the moment had now come for
-getting rid of the evangelicals for ever. At first, the
-reform had been a mere thread of water, but the
-thread had suddenly increased, and become like an
-Alpine torrent, which, if it were not checked, would
-overthrow the altars and sweep away crosses, images
-and holy water, priests and prelates. Had not an
-illustrious canon been attacked and carried away by
-this devastating flood? 'Now,' said the priests,
-'must be accomplished what our Lord told the
-apostles: He that hath no sword, let him sell his
-garment and buy one. If we do not crush these
-accursed Lutherans now, they will never cease to
-trouble the churches, to plunder, beat and kill....
-Let us sell everything, even our wallets, to procure
-spears and swords.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_737" id="Ref_737" href="#Foot_737">[737]</a></span>
-They set the example; they
-never went out except well supplied with arms
-under their frocks. The sisters of St. Claire and
-all the devout women of Geneva exclaimed with
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_508" id="Page_508">{508}</a></span>
-delight on seeing the clergy so resolved: 'Ah, if the
-clerks were not so stout-hearted, these ravening
-wolves would exterminate us.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_738" id="Ref_738" href="#Foot_738">[738]</a></span>
-But the more reasonable
-of the men saw that the clubs of the priests
-would not suffice alone. 'The hour is come,' said
-they at Geneva and Friburg, at Chambery, and
-wherever Rome had faithful followers; 'the bishop
-must return to Geneva, and resume his former
-authority.' A deputation started from Friburg for
-Arbois to entreat Pierre de la Baume to return to
-his episcopal city.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BISHOP AT ARBOIS.=</p>
-
-<p>Since the death of Besançon Hugues, the bishop
-had taken no steps to recover his power. Wounded
-by what had occurred in his principality, he kept his
-vexation to himself, made up his mind to remain
-quiet, and sought consolation at Arbois in good living.
-'I have received your capons,' he wrote, 'send me
-some fish. I have been enjoying myself, and am
-much better supplied with provisions here than at
-Geneva.' He was at heart neither wicked nor cruel;
-he had taste, education, and talent, and his conversation
-abounded in wit. But he had two passions—the
-table and money, besides a weak and selfish
-temper which made him incline one time to the
-duke, another to Geneva, and appear servile or
-tyrannical according as he hoped to obtain anything
-by baseness or by despotism. The Genevans, and
-particularly the huguenots, knew him well. 'He
-wants to ride <i>one</i> and lead the <i>other</i>,' said Robert
-Vandel, 'and does nothing except for his own advantage.'</p>
-
-<p>When the Friburgers arrived at Arbois, they
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_509" id="Page_509">{509}</a></span>
-drew him from his stupid tranquillity, disturbed
-his feasting, and firmly represented to him that they
-wanted to know whether he desired to maintain
-catholicism in Geneva, or to let it perish. They even
-attacked him with personal arguments, which they
-knew must have great force for him. 'Return to
-your city, my lord,' they said, 'to recover your lost
-authority, and protect your threatened rents.' But
-La Baume was too timid, and would willingly have
-lived anywhere except in his own diocese and principality.
-He defended his absenteeism in a singular
-manner. 'Many of these heretics have uttered great
-threats against me,' he said; 'they will kill me like
-poor Wernli.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_739" id="Ref_739" href="#Foot_739">[739]</a></span>
-A mightier voice than that of Friburg
-now made itself heard.</p>
-
-<p>The condition of Geneva was known in all catholic
-countries. Men were uneasy everywhere; even Pope
-Clement VII. felt anxious. He did not admire those
-ecclesiastics who, following the example of Leo X.,
-neglected business for pleasure. In some places the
-catholics imagined that if the Reform were crushed in
-Geneva, the recoil would act on the Reformation in
-general; that the other protestant nations would feel
-its effects, and that such a defeat would be the beginning
-of the end. Representations to this effect
-reached the pope from every side, and he, being a
-skilful politician and having the saving of the Roman
-court at heart, wrote to the bishop: 'I command you
-to proceed to Geneva immediately you receive this
-bull, under pain of excommunication. Is it not
-singular that you pass your life in a foreign province
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_510" id="Page_510">{510}</a></span>
-as if you were not the pastor of that city? You, by
-your absence, are the cause of all the misfortunes
-with which it is afflicted.... Go, speak, act ...
-defend the flock which Jesus Christ and the holy see
-have entrusted to you, and rescue your sheep from
-the ravening wolf that is preparing to devour them.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_740" id="Ref_740" href="#Foot_740">[740]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The poor bishop, when he read the bull, was seized
-with the most violent emotion. He saw himself between
-two dangers almost equally great: the pope
-who threatened him with excommunication, and the
-huguenots who threatened him with death. What
-was to be done? He was urged on both sides. At
-last he formed an heroic decision and determined to
-obey the pope. He will leave Arbois and the pleasant
-life he had led there, with all its earthly advantages,
-and go to that terrible city which appears to him
-inhabited by wild beasts thirsting for his blood.
-'Only you must obtain a safe-conduct for me from
-Messieurs of Geneva,' he said to the Friburg ambassadors,
-who were greatly surprised at having to
-ask a safe-conduct for a prince who desired to visit
-his principality, for a bishop who desired to enter
-his diocese. However, they promised everything.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BISHOP INVITED TO RETURN.=</p>
-
-<p>Wernli's death had not only enraged the enemies
-of the Reformation, but had weakened its friends and
-occasioned a reaction in Geneva favourable to catholicism.
-The syndics and council now leant decidedly
-that way, and the return of the bishop seemed to
-them the only means of restoring order. 'The
-bishop does not need a safe-conduct,' they said;
-'only let him come. If anybody threatens him, we
-will punish him so severely, that Monseigneur shall
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_511" id="Page_511">{511}</a></span>
-have cause to be satisfied.'—'Let him come back,
-let him come back,' was the general cry except among
-the pious evangelicals and the proud huguenots.
-The emancipation had hardly begun, when a strong
-counter-revolution threatened to stifle it. On the
-26th May the council elected Domaine Franc, Stephen
-d'Adda, and Bon Officher to go and humbly urge
-their bishop and prince to return. Thus Geneva
-herself was preparing to bury its Reformation and
-its liberty.</p>
-
-<p>Other Genevans had arrived at Arbois before the
-deputies from the council. The principal mameluke
-chiefs, whether banished or emigrant, who found the
-bread of exile bitter, had started for Arbois as soon
-as they had heard of the canon's death. Full of that
-exasperation and agitated by those dreams which
-self-exiled and banished men ordinarily have, they
-endeavoured to make the bishop share their hopes
-and hatred. 'Nothing is juster and easier,' they
-said, 'than to put the leading huguenots into prison,
-on suspicion of being concerned in the attack upon
-Wernli. They will be executed, or if the people
-oppose, they can be transported suddenly to some
-castle in Savoy, as Lévrier was formerly, and then we
-can do our pleasure on them. After that nothing
-will be able to disturb the holy union of Geneva with
-Savoy and the pope.' But Pierre de la Baume had
-already recovered a little from the heroic resolution
-he had formed after reading the papal brief. The
-violent language of the mamelukes aroused all his
-terrors. 'The Genevans,' he said, 'are proud, independent,
-and fond of tumult; at the least word that
-displeases them, they fly to arms. No ... afraid
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_512" id="Page_512">{512}</a></span>
-as I am, I dare not go to Geneva.' 'Do not fear, we
-will accompany you,' answered the mamelukes. 'The
-Friburgers on their part will provide you with a
-guard; the Genevan catholics, who are ten to one,
-will do the same; the duke is resolved to support
-you.... It is impossible that we should not crush
-the rebels.' The calculation was correct and the
-argument unanswerable. Pierre de la Baume, finding
-himself summoned by the pope, and surrounded
-with spears and spearmen, horses and chariots, again
-resumed an heroic courage, and almost made up his
-mind to appear in the city of the huguenots.</p>
-
-<p>Just at this moment the Genevan deputies arrived,
-and the bishop-prince showed at first a
-very courteous humour, and replied with an amiable
-air that he would return to Geneva <i>in a month</i>.
-Always uneasy, he still tried to procrastinate. So
-many things may happen in a month—perhaps,
-finally, he may never return to his episcopal city.
-'I regard you as my well-beloved subjects,' he said,
-'and desire to appear as your true and good prince.'
-Stephen d'Adda, a decided member of the opposition,
-placed but little trust in these fine words. In reality
-they were playing a little comedy at the priory of
-Arbois: the bishop was afraid to go, and one or two
-of the deputies preferred that he should not come.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_741" id="Ref_741" href="#Foot_741">[741]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=A COUP D'ÉTAT NECESSARY.=</p>
-
-<p>Will he go or not? No one could tell. There
-were certain moments when La Baume felt inclined
-to cross the Jura, and then all of a sudden he felt as
-if <i>nailed</i> to his priory of Arbois. Never was it more
-difficult to arrive at a decision—it was like a nightmare.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_513" id="Page_513">{513}</a></span>
-His friends began to deliberate; they quite
-agreed with him that if he desired simply to re-establish
-his residence in the episcopal city, it would be
-better for him not to go there at all. He would
-always have to begin again with the independence of
-the huguenots and the heresy of the reformed, with
-alarms and riots. The evil would even be worse
-than before, for the cause of liberty and reform had
-made great progress since the bishop had left Geneva.
-He is compelled, therefore, to gain two victories if
-he returns: first, he must trample under foot the
-franchises of the people and get rid of the huguenots;
-and, second, he must silence the evangelical
-teaching and expel the reformers and their adherents.
-The prince-bishop and his imprudent advisers were
-convinced that a <i>coup d'état</i>, and (if we may use the
-term) a <i>coup d'église</i>, were the only remedies for the
-critical and almost desperate position of affairs.
-Geneva was to go back to the superstitions and
-servility of the middle ages. It was necessary to
-extinguish the double torch of political independence
-and christian truth which a divine hand had kindled,
-and so put Christendom beyond the reach of
-these treacherous lights. But the timid La Baume
-shrank with alarm from such a herculean task; he
-knew his own weakness, and felt the enterprise would
-be too arduous for him.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime the Friburg ambassadors in Geneva
-were preparing the way for him. They demanded
-aloud, what he proposed to do in secret. Being admitted
-to the Council on the 23rd May, they said:
-'We accuse all who were in the Molard at the time
-of Wernli's death, including the syndic of the guard
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_514" id="Page_514">{514}</a></span>
-and the commander of the cavalry.' They spoke
-haughtily, and required immediate satisfaction. A
-whole section of the population—the most innocent
-in this affair, even the party which had been attacked—was
-to be criminally prosecuted! It was a monstrous
-demand. However, the Friburgers spoke loud,
-and many of the huguenots were dejected. The
-Council, being divided and intimidated, made answer
-at last that they would authorise the lieutenant
-and the procurator-fiscal 'to arrest all whom Messieurs
-of Friburg accused.' Thus the plot was in a
-fair way: liberty and Reform had, however, a moment's
-respite.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_742" id="Ref_742" href="#Foot_742">[742]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=DECLARATION OF RELIGIOUS LIBERTY.=</p>
-
-<p>Two ambassadors from Berne, Councillor Sebastian
-de Diesbach and Banneret John de Weingarten,
-arrived at Geneva, and had conferences with the men
-of both parties. Their ideas gradually became clearer,
-and truth sprang out of the conflict of opinions.
-They saw that this position of affairs, which seemed
-an inextricable chaos, had one possible solution,
-namely, liberty. 'We have seen and heard everything,'
-said Diesbach; 'the only means of enjoying
-peace is to <i>permit every one to follow the movements of
-his conscience, so that no one be constrained</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_743" id="Ref_743" href="#Foot_743">[743]</a></span>
-Let the mass and feast-days and images remain for those who
-like them; but let the preaching of the Gospel be
-granted to those who desire it, and let one of the
-seven parish churches be assigned them for that purpose.
-Let no one be ridiculed for going to mass.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_515" id="Page_515">{515}</a></span>
-<i>Let every one abide in his own free-will and choice.</i><span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_744" id="Ref_744" href="#Foot_744">[744]</a></span>... Moreover,
-as the Old and New Testaments are
-the foundation of our faith, and as those who follow
-the Gospel cannot exist without reading them, let
-the booksellers be permitted to sell publicly the Holy
-Scriptures and any other books of piety.' Thus
-'liberty for all' was the great salutary principle
-then proclaimed in Geneva. This theory, which gives
-honour to God and independence to man, was not
-generally admitted until two or three hundred years
-later. But we take note of the epoch when the right
-was first proclaimed. It is sometimes asserted that
-the idea of liberty for all only appeared in the 18th
-century, and that it was put forward for the first time
-by the free-thinkers of England, France, and Holland.
-It is not so: religious as well as political liberty
-asserted their just and holy claims at Geneva more
-than three centuries ago. Switzerland and the Reform
-are the first in the field. These principles were
-so simple and so true that the Council was convinced;
-in the face, however, of formidable adversaries, they
-feared their own weakness. The syndics replied to the
-Messieurs of Berne: 'Stay with us to help us!' The
-27th of May, 1533, deserves a mark of honour in the
-annals of religious liberty.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_729" id="Foot_729" href="#Ref_729">[729]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 4th and 25th May.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_730" id="Foot_730" href="#Ref_730">[730]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Justa Nemesi gloriosus ille miles fœdo ictu,' &amp;c.—Spanheim,
-<i>Geneva restituta</i>, p. 60.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_731" id="Foot_731" href="#Ref_731">[731]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p.
-63.—Council Registers of 4th and 5th May.—Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i></p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_732" id="Foot_732" href="#Ref_732">[732]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 4th and 5th May, 1533.—La Sœur J. de Jussie,
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, pp. 63-64.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_733" id="Foot_733" href="#Ref_733">[733]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 64.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_734" id="Foot_734" href="#Ref_734">[734]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.—Council Registers of 2nd July, 1533.—Froment, <i>Gestes de
-Genève</i>, p. 59.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_735" id="Foot_735" href="#Ref_735">[735]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La Sœur J. de Jussie, p. 65.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_736" id="Foot_736" href="#Ref_736">[736]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 9th May.—La Sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain
-du Calvinisme</i>, pp. 64-66.—Gautier MS.—Froment, <i>Gestes de
-Genève</i>, p. 59.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_737" id="Foot_737" href="#Ref_737">[737]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 66.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_738" id="Foot_738" href="#Ref_738">[738]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 66.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_739" id="Foot_739" href="#Ref_739">[739]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Sordet, <i>Mémoires d'Archéologie</i>, ii. p. 19.—Council
-Registers, May 19.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_740" id="Foot_740" href="#Ref_740">[740]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-<i>Mémoires pour les Diocèses de Genève</i>, &amp;c. par le curé
-Besson, p. 62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_741" id="Foot_741" href="#Ref_741">[741]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 21st May, 2nd and 22nd June.—Froment,
-<i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 62.—Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_742" id="Foot_742" href="#Ref_742">[742]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 22nd May, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_743" id="Foot_743" href="#Ref_743">[743]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Permettre à chacun de suivre les mouvements de sa conscience, en
-telle sorte que personne ne soit contraint.'—Council Registers, 27th
-May.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_744" id="Foot_744" href="#Ref_744">[744]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Que chacun demeure en sa volonté et en son franc
-arbitre.'—Council Registers, 27th May.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_516" id="Page_516">{516}</a></span>
-
- <h3>CHAPTER XIX.<br />
- <span style="font-size:80%">CATASTROPHE.<br />
- (<span class="smc">Beginning of July, 1533.</span>)</span></h3>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">WHILE these fine liberal theories were being proclaimed
-at the hôtel de ville and hailed with
-joy by noble minds, some enemies of the Reform maintained
-that they were only got up for the occasion,
-because the reformed were not yet the strongest party,
-and the bulk of the people, who looked upon them as
-mere trash, was occupied with other things. The
-report grew stronger every day that the bishop had
-made up his mind at last, that his resolution was not
-to be shaken, and that in obedience to the pope he
-was about to return to Geneva. The liberty so lately
-proclaimed was, therefore, seriously endangered.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=PREPARATIONS TO RECEIVE THE BISHOP.=</p>
-
-<p>Every preparation was made for the reception of
-the prince, whose approaching arrival began to turn
-people's heads, as usually happens in such a case.
-Priests, mamelukes, and ducal partisans believed that
-the hour of their triumph was at hand, and that independence
-and Reform would be effectually buried.
-Every man who owned a horse had him dressed, as
-no one was permitted to go and meet the bishop on foot.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_745" id="Ref_745" href="#Foot_745">[745]</a></span>
-The trumpeters rehearsed, the artillerymen
-got out their guns. Jacques de Malbuisson, one of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_517" id="Page_517">{517}</a></span>
-the chiefs of the catholic party, thinking that there
-was nothing too fine for a bishop and prince, especially
-for one who was bringing to the city, as a token of
-welcome, submission to the pope in religious matters,
-and to an ecclesiastical sovereign in temporal
-matters, hung the walls of the episcopal palace
-with beautiful tapestry, covered the tables and floors
-with silk and woollen cloth, and filled the rooms with
-rich furniture. Pierre de la Baume had appointed
-him quartermaster, and the good catholic intended
-that the beauty of the decorations should make the
-Genevans comprehend the greatness of their prince.</p>
-
-<p>If a servile crowd was preparing to sacrifice to a
-priest the liberties of the people and the Word of
-God, those who esteemed these treasures far above all
-others, anticipated with sorrow that all the old vexations
-were about to be revived. The Two Hundred
-were assembled: one proud huguenot, jealous of
-the political liberties, could not contain himself, and
-rising in the Council, said: 'There is a report that
-the mamelukes who deserted the city some seven
-years ago are to escort the bishop and return with
-him: I ask if it is true?' Instantly the storm broke
-out. Some said 'Yes!' others 'No!' The debate
-grew warm; they provoked and abused each other,
-gave one another the lie, and used very irritating language.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_746" id="Ref_746" href="#Foot_746">[746]</a></span>
-At last the huguenots conquered, and the
-Two Hundred ordered that the mamelukes should not
-be allowed to enter, for fear that there should be
-discord instead of harmony in the city.</p>
-
-<p>The syndics foresaw that such a resolution would
-probably excite confusion in the procession accompanying
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_518" id="Page_518">{518}</a></span>
-the bishop; and as they wished to avoid all
-disputes, they sought an opportunity for bringing
-men's minds together. Assembling the leaders of
-the opposing parties, they entreated them, as a sign
-of peace, to dine together. Such a banquet, they
-thought, would reconcile factions and dissipate the
-fears of the prelate. It was an <i>argumentum ad hominem</i>.
-How could Pierre de la Baume be afraid of men
-who drank together? Libations were indeed copiously
-poured out in honour of concord, for the Genevans
-were always ready in this respect; but the convictions
-of the two parties remained the same. Wine had no
-power to change either the champions of the pope or
-of the people, neither the Guelphs nor the Ghibelines.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_747" id="Ref_747" href="#Foot_747">[747]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On Tuesday, 1st of July, the prince-bishop descended
-the Jura, attended by his chancellors, the
-president De Gevigny and many of the nobility, meditating
-the counter-revolution he hoped to bring about.
-The Friburg deputies, 'knowing the prelate's timid humour,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_748" id="Ref_748" href="#Foot_748">[748]</a></span>
-went to meet him at Gex, in order to
-protect his entrance. They turned back with him and
-drew near the city. This event, which filled the
-catholics with joy, was a great trouble to the proud
-huguenots and pious evangelicals, and nearly broke
-their hearts. The procession seemed to them like a
-funeral train. Were independence, liberty, the growing
-Reform—those inestimable riches which are the
-life of man—to be carried like a dead body to the
-grave? Were those bells, just beginning to ring,
-tolling a funeral knell? Everything seemed to point
-that way.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_519" id="Page_519">{519}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Just as the brilliant escort that was riding out to
-meet the bishop crossed the bridge over the Rhone,
-a troop of about fourscore catholics appeared, all
-carrying arquebuses. The premier syndic, who was
-watching them with uneasy look, ordered them to
-return. 'We are going to our prince,' answered they
-with spirit. The magistrates and their escort lost
-sight of them for a few moments, but the troop was
-again visible when the procession got out of the city.
-'They are the most violent of the party,' said some
-of the syndic's followers. 'They will play us some
-scurvy trick.' A second time the syndic ordered
-them to return, and a second time they answered,
-'We are going to our prince,' and continued their way.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BISHOP'S ENTRANCE.=</p>
-
-<p>The cortège having proceeded half a league from
-the city, waited for the bishop, who came in sight
-about four in the afternoon. By his side were the
-magistrates of Friburg, and behind him the chiefs of
-the mamelukes, banished from Geneva but proud of
-braving those who had expelled them. The intimidated
-syndics dared not forbid their entrance into
-the city. Nor was this all: the fourscore arquebusiers
-surrounded the prelate, assuming the duty of a body-guard.
-The bells rang out, the artillery roared, and
-the friends of the clergy shouted repeated <i>vivats</i>.
-The throne was regaining strength; the majesty of
-the prince enhanced its splendour, and His Highness
-inspired respect in all who saw him.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_749" id="Ref_749" href="#Foot_749">[749]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>These bursts of joy soon came to an end. The
-bishop had hardly entered the city, when its appearance
-changed. New faces were seen everywhere—faces
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_520" id="Page_520">{520}</a></span>
-which seemed to breathe of nothing but revenge.
-At night conferences were held at the palace, among
-the canons and the other partisans of despotic rule.
-Everyone talked about the horrible resolutions come
-to in these meetings—it was all the same whether
-the resolutions were true or fictitious. Many of the
-reformed were exceedingly distressed. 'The heretics
-felt great contrition,' says Sister Jeanne, 'for they
-knew full well that the bishop brought no good to
-them, but would injure them as much as he could.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_750" id="Ref_750" href="#Foot_750">[750]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The prelate was firmly resolved to have recourse,
-if necessary, to force, banishment, and death. But
-his character and interests inclined him also to
-accomplish peacefully, if he could, the great revolution
-he so strongly desired. He wished to act in such
-a way that appearances at least should be on his side.</p>
-
-<p>Desiring to give his restoration the double sanction
-of religion and policy, the bishop ordered a grand
-procession for Thursday, 3rd July, after which a
-general council of the people should be held. The
-procession took place: canons, priests, and friars,
-walking in order, sang or chanted their litanies with
-great fervour, and prayed that God and the Virgin
-would be pleased to preserve the holy Roman Catholic
-Church in Geneva. When the singing was over,
-the general council was held. The refugees, who had
-forgotten nothing and learnt nothing, would have
-preferred a prompt and vigorous repression to this
-liberal meeting; but the bishop was unwilling to
-begin by imprisoning citizens. Besides, the impatient
-exiles would lose nothing by waiting.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_751" id="Ref_751" href="#Foot_751">[751]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_521" id="Page_521">{521}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BISHOP AT THE GENERAL COUNCIL.=</p>
-
-<p>All the bishop's partisans proceeded proud and
-joyful to the council of the people; the magistrates
-with uneasiness, and a few huguenots with sad and
-suffering looks. As soon as the assembly was formed,
-the prelate appeared, attended by his nobles. He was
-determined to claim full sovereign power in Geneva,
-and to take it by force if it were disputed. Two
-great principles—the good pleasure of the prince and
-the constitutions of the people—met face to face on
-the 3rd of July, in the general council of Geneva.
-La Baume had taken his precautions; he had brought
-several distinguished men with him from Franche
-Comté, and among them the bailiff of Dôle, a learned
-and eloquent magistrate. This orator, imagining to
-win the Genevans by flattering and flowery language,
-delivered a very fine oration; but his Burgundian
-eloquence produced no great effect upon the huguenots.
-After him the prince-bishop came forward,
-and, speaking with a fine clear voice and in very
-intelligible language, he asked the syndics and the
-people whether they recognised him for their prince
-and lord. The question was skilfully put. If they
-answered <i>No</i>, they made themselves rebels, and severe
-measures became lawful; while, if they answered <i>Yes</i>,
-they surrendered to the prelate, and all was over
-with liberty and the Gospel. The magistrates, who
-were careful not to fall into a trap, saw that it was
-necessary to make a distinction. Convinced that they
-held their charters, franchises, and legislation from
-God quite as much as the prince did his power, they
-made a reserve. 'Certainly, my lord,' they replied,
-'we regard you as our prince, and are ready to obey
-you; <i>but in adopting for guide our liberties, customs,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_522" id="Page_522">{522}</a></span>
-and franchises, written and unwritten, which we beg you
-to respect, as you promised to do a long while ago</i>.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_752" id="Ref_752" href="#Foot_752">[752]</a></span>
-The embarrassed bishop-prince thought it essential
-not to open up the delicate question of the constitution
-he had ratified, and, letting alone for the moment
-all that concerned his temporal power, he spoke only
-as a bishop, and delivered to the Genevans a devout
-exhortation on the salvation of their souls. In
-reality, the great object of his terror was the Reformation;
-the great desire of his heart was the triumph
-of the papacy. 'Have the fear of God before your
-eyes,' he said, 'and keep the commandments of holy
-Church.' He knew full well that 'holy Church'
-would recommend the people to recognise his power
-without any restriction. He pronounced these words
-'in so devout and humble a manner that everybody
-wept, and the general council broke up without dispute
-or tumult, for which God be praised.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_753" id="Ref_753" href="#Foot_753">[753]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE CHARTERS CONSULTED.=</p>
-
-<p>The Genevans were not, however, ready to bend
-their necks to receive the yoke the bishop presented
-to them. The various members of the assembly had
-hardly dispersed before the agitation broke out. Huguenots
-and independent catholics declared boldly
-and with one accord that they would maintain the
-constitution; the courtiers and mamelukes alone supported
-the absolute privileges of the prelate. 'No
-despotic power,' said one party. 'No resistance to
-the orders of our prince,' said the other. Offended
-at the new pretensions of the bishop, the citizens
-resolved to oppose him with the antique monuments
-of their liberty. There was a vaulted chamber in
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_523" id="Page_523">{523}</a></span>
-the hôtel de ville called the <i>Grotto</i>, in which the
-venerable charters of the Genevan people were enclosed
-under many bolts and bars. Not suffering
-themselves to be disturbed by the arbitrariness of
-the bishop, by the eloquence of his orators, or the
-terrible bands of Friburg and Turin, the citizens
-determined to consult the sacred documents of their
-franchises. The syndics proceeded to the Grotto;
-the rusty bolts yielded to the stout arms of their
-officers; they took out the noble parchments of their
-ancestors, and all eyes were eagerly turned upon the
-title-deeds in which were inscribed the duties, rights,
-and liberties of the people. The roll was placed
-upon the table; it was unfolded, and, while the
-others listened, one of the magistrates read the words
-written therein. 'In the name of the holy, perfect,
-and undivided Trinity, Father, Son, and Holy Ghost.'
-Could the bishop trample under foot a charter which
-reposed on so sacred a foundation? The magistrate
-continued his examination. This document, drawn
-up by Bishop Adhemar in 1387, contained (to use
-its own words) 'the liberties, franchises, and immunities
-which the citizens of Geneva have enjoyed so
-long that the memory of man runneth not to the
-contrary.' The Genevans were moved, and passing
-the parchment from hand to hand, read certain portions
-of it, and swore to defend their rights.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_754" id="Ref_754" href="#Foot_754">[754]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The syndics having no doubt that these old documents
-would be received by the bishop with the
-profoundest respect, quitted the hôtel de ville, carrying
-their venerable charters with them, which they
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_524" id="Page_524">{524}</a></span>
-laid before the prelate. They pointed out to him the
-immunities that were secured to them, and withdrew
-full of hope. But Pierre de la Baume did not care the
-least for these old papers, and would not give himself
-the trouble to decipher such disagreeable documents:
-he was in a hurry to see them restored to the cellar
-where they had slept so long. He intended to govern
-after a more modern fashion. The Reformation,
-on the other hand, was about to be accomplished by
-maintaining, in opposition to episcopal usurpation,
-the most lawful rights of the most ancient liberty.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_755" id="Ref_755" href="#Foot_755">[755]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=DESPOTIC PLANS.=</p>
-
-<p>The bishop no longer hesitated. When he had
-asked the general council to recognise his sovereignty,
-the magistrates had replied by limiting it according
-to the constitutions of the people. It was necessary
-therefore to renounce all idea of reigning with mildness,
-and to govern by force. Pierre de la Baume
-was not the first bishop excluded from his episcopal
-city, who had reentered it with thoughts of violence.
-Tales of unheard-of cruelties had been imprinted on
-the memory of the people. In the tenth century,
-the bishop of Cambray having been driven from his
-city by the burgesses who were exasperated against
-him, had returned with foreign soldiers; and these
-mercenaries, the ministers of his revenge, had pursued
-the citizens even into the churches, killing some,
-cutting off the hands and feet of others, putting out
-the eyes of some, and branding many on the forehead
-with a red-hot iron.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_756" id="Ref_756" href="#Foot_756">[756]</a></span>
-About two centuries later,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_525" id="Page_525">{525}</a></span>
-another bishop also returning forcibly into his city,
-his followers had seized one of the most respected and
-wealthy citizens, notwithstanding the promise to
-spare his life, and had fastened him by the feet
-to the tail of a horse, which they forced into a gallop.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_757" id="Ref_757" href="#Foot_757">[757]</a></span>
-The bishop of Geneva did not purpose
-imitating these episcopal proceedings; manners,
-though rude, were softened; he meant to content
-himself with less. He would have the principal
-supporters of the Reformation and of Geneva seized,
-and would get rid of them simply by the sword—either
-in Geneva, as in the case of Berthelier, or in
-some lonely castle, as in the case of Levrier. Then
-the prince-bishop would exercise, without control
-and in his own way, that sovereignty which appeared
-to him absolutely necessary in order to stifle the
-protestantism of some and the independence of
-others.</p>
-
-<p>Freed from the importunate antiquarians who put
-their trust in dusty charters, the bishop began to
-prepare for the execution of his designs. He counted
-his forces and felt sure of victory. In the first place
-there was the Council, which, being mostly catholic,
-supported him at heart; then there were the priests
-and their adherents; then the Friburgers; then the
-banished mamelukes, and finally a certain class of
-people, skilful in the use of the arquebuse, 'and who
-would handle it well,' said the bishop. The total of
-his partisans being thus reckoned, the bishop enquired
-who were the huguenot chiefs he ought to get rid of.
-It is hardly probable that La Baume did this alone
-or simply aided by one of his secretaries or officers
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_526" id="Page_526">{526}</a></span>
-of justice. Weakness was one of the most marked
-features of his character; he had no energy, although
-he sometimes pretended the contrary. But those
-around him made up for it. The proscription that
-he was about to carry into execution was essentially
-due to the encouragements and solicitations of the
-enemies of the Reformation and of independence.
-'Finding himself strong and powerful,' says a contemporary,
-'both on the part of the Friburgers and
-of the enemies of God and the city (namely, the
-mamelukes) who were now within the walls, the
-bishop desired to exercise his tyranny.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_758" id="Ref_758" href="#Foot_758">[758]</a></span>
-Some of his friends shrank from such severity, and would have
-desired to divert him from it; but the most violent
-men prevailed. 'My lord,' they said, 'must exercise
-his power against certain citizens and burgesses, and
-by this means extirpate and eradicate the Lutheran
-sect and heresy.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_759" id="Ref_759" href="#Foot_759">[759]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=PROSCRIPTIONS.=</p>
-
-<p>The proscribed were selected indifferently from
-among the evangelicals and huguenots. One of the
-first pointed at was Chautemps. He was not only a
-heretic, but his children had been trained up in
-heresy, and he had kept for a long time in his house
-Olivetan, the translator of the Bible, who had dared
-reprimand a dominican preacher in full church. Aimé
-Levet came next; at his house the religious meetings
-were most frequently held. Pierre Vandel—youngest
-son of that Claude, whom twenty years before
-Bishop John of Savoy had cast into prison<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_760" id="Ref_760" href="#Foot_760">[760]</a></span>—a
-man of resolute character, readily putting himself in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_527" id="Page_527">{527}</a></span>
-foreground, was joined with the other two. Ami
-Perrin did not belong to the evangelicals properly
-so called, but he had been the chief of the four
-huguenots whose zeal for controversy had proved
-so embarrassing to the vicar of the Madeleine,
-and passed for the boldest of all the band.
-Others were afterwards pointed out: Jean Pecolat,
-an ill-sounding name in episcopal ears; Domaine
-d'Arlod, Jean Veillard, Anthonin Derbey, Henry
-Doulens, Jacques Fichet, Claude de Genève, and
-Philibert de Compey, a nobleman in high esteem.
-Although a Savoyard and of gentle birth, Philibert
-was huguenot at heart; the count of Genevois took
-advantage of the opportunity to confiscate all his
-lands and lordships, 'and the poor pervert was
-deprived of his property,' says a contemporary.
-There were still a few more whose arrest was determined
-on, and among them Pasta and Rozetta.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_761" id="Ref_761" href="#Foot_761">[761]</a></span>
-The bishop and his friends, all full of zeal, hoped
-to catch other citizens after these;<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_762" id="Ref_762" href="#Foot_762">[762]</a></span>
-but they thought it prudent not to do everything at once.
-If the first attempt succeeded, they would follow
-it up by a second, and would lay their hands
-upon such citizens as they had not thought of at
-first. 'I have proscribed all those whom I can
-remember; those whom I have forgotten I will proscribe
-as they recur to my mind.' This saying of
-a great master in the art, found its application
-in Geneva.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_763" id="Ref_763" href="#Foot_763">[763]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The bishop, having ended his first task, began to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_528" id="Page_528">{528}</a></span>
-consider how he could lay hold of the proscribed,
-which was no easy matter. The most natural way
-would have been to capture each of them in his own
-house; but he feared, that if he went to work in
-that fashion, some would hide themselves, others
-would escape, and others would be rescued in the
-streets. The alarm would spread in a moment, and
-the daring huguenots would entrench themselves in
-Baudichon de la Maisonneuve's house. Above all,
-Pierre de la Baume was wanting in frankness; he
-excelled, whenever he pleased, in appearing amiable to
-those whom he hated. He resolved to give them an
-invitation, and to hold out his hand graciously to the
-men whose death he was plotting. He will invite
-them to his palace, 'trusting in his faith,' but without
-keeping it.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_764" id="Ref_764" href="#Foot_764">[764]</a></span>
-He will thus take them all by one cast
-of the net, then he will tie the knot, and the poor
-wretches shall leave the saloons of the palace only to
-descend to its dungeons. It was thought an excellent
-stratagem, and preparations were made for carrying
-it out.</p>
-
-<p>The next day, July 5th, the bishop's officers called
-on the citizens entered in the black list, and in his
-name gave them an invitation, which must have appeared
-to them either a great honour or a treacherous
-snare. If any of them raised objections, the messengers
-assured them, in the prelate's name, that no
-harm would come to them. Some through candour,
-others from ignorance, and others also from rashness,
-proceeded to the episcopal palace. They had put on
-their finest suits and wore their swords. What could
-the bishop want with them?... Probably to obtain
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_529" id="Page_529">{529}</a></span>
-some concessions, and they were firmly decided not
-to make any.</p>
-
-<p>Others, who were more clear-sighted or more prudent,
-took to flight. The clerical riots which had
-preceded the bishop's coming, the unsatisfactory
-company by which he was surrounded, and the
-demands he had made—all combined to give food for
-thought to minds possessed of any discernment.
-Women, more keen or more timid, generally see
-clearer in such cases than men: their conjugal love
-takes the alarm. It would appear that Claudine
-Levet and Jaquéma Chautemps felt all the tender
-solicitude of their sex, and conjured their husbands
-not to place themselves in the cruel hands of the
-bishop, and to quit their homes, their children, and
-their country which they could now serve better
-abroad. These two excellent christians were among
-the number of those who escaped. Maisonneuve,
-against whom the mamelukes were much irritated,
-set out for Berne, full of indignation against the
-bishop's tyranny. To this city, next to God, he
-always looked for deliverance. Several others also
-quitted Geneva.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_765" id="Ref_765" href="#Foot_765">[765]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=HUGUENOTS ENTRAPPED.=</p>
-
-<p>Meantime Perrin, D'Arlod, Vandel, and their
-friends proceeded to the palace. The gates opened
-before them and they entered my lord's antechambers.
-But they had hardly arrived, reckoning on
-the gracious audience that had been promised them,
-when they were seized, heavily fettered, and led
-away to the episcopal prison.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_766" id="Ref_766" href="#Foot_766">[766]</a></span>
-The impetuous Perrin
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_530" id="Page_530">{530}</a></span>
-and the courageous Vandel were compelled to yield
-to force. The bishop's officers took them down into
-the dungeons, and as if cords, iron doors, and bolts
-were not enough, their feet were set in the stocks
-and their hands were manacled.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_767" id="Ref_767" href="#Foot_767">[767]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=CONJUGAL DEVOTION.=</p>
-
-<p>When the news was told the prince-prelate, it was
-the pleasantest tidings he had ever received. He
-breathed again, and yet he was not entirely satisfied:
-he wanted some prisoners whom he had especially
-set his heart upon—particularly Levet and Chautemps.
-But if the husbands had disappeared, their
-wives might suffer for them. Pierre de la Baume
-ordered Jaquéma Chautemps to be seized, but Claudine
-Levet remained at liberty. Claudine was a pious
-christian woman, firm in faith but of gentle character,
-and she was spared; but Jaquéma, who it will be remembered
-was taught by Olivetan, possessed perhaps some
-of that courageous decision which was found in
-Calvin's cousin and in Calvin himself. Claudine was
-the woman of the New Testament; Jaquéma seems
-rather to remind us of the heroines of the Old. It
-is to be regretted that we have not the same information
-about her as about Claudine. At all events she
-paid for her husband. The delicate woman, the wife
-of one of the chief persons in the city, accustomed
-to the comforts of life, used to the company of
-one of the most original French writers of the day,
-the tutor to her children, was shut up in a narrow
-cell, and treated roughly like a conspirator. Ancient
-and modern times have witnessed more than one instance
-of conjugal devotion. Many wives, seeing
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_531" id="Page_531">{531}</a></span>
-their husbands threatened with a cruel death, have
-been able to say to them:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse">. . . . . . Et quel autre que moi</div>
-<div class="verse">A le droit d'y prétendre et de mourir pour toi?<span
- class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_768" id="Ref_768" href="#Foot_768">[768]</a></span></div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Reformation also has furnished many similar
-examples.</p>
-
-<p>As part of the huguenot leaders were now in
-prison, the bishop and his confidants deliberated what
-should be done with them. It was quite out of the
-question to put them to death publicly in Geneva,
-like Berthelier. The simplest way would be to behead
-them secretly in their dungeons; but that would be
-known immediately, and would create terrible excitement.
-'They durst not kill them in the city for fear
-of the people.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_769" id="Ref_769" href="#Foot_769">[769]</a></span>
-The bishop's councillors proposed
-to send them out of Geneva in a boat by night, and
-convey them either to Friburg, which was calling for
-victims to avenge Wernli's death, or to the castle of
-Chillon, where Bonivard was shut up, or to Jussy
-near Mount Voiron, or lastly to the strong castle of
-Gaillard at the foot of the Salève, 'and there do
-as they pleased with them.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_770" id="Ref_770" href="#Foot_770">[770]</a></span>
-They decided on the
-last plan, and orders were given for carrying it out.</p>
-
-<p>Thus everything proceeded to the bishop's satisfaction.
-As some of the principal huguenots were
-about to be sent out of Geneva, it became necessary
-'to catch other citizens after them and serve them
-the same,' that is, carry them also out of the city;
-for the fear of the people continually pursued the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_532" id="Page_532">{532}</a></span>
-bishop. He was planning how to continue the
-work he had undertaken, when news was brought
-him which greatly troubled him.</p>
-
-<p>One of his agents, commissioned by him to take
-note of everything that occurred in the city, came and
-told him that not only Baudichon de la Maisonneuve
-had escaped, but that he had gone to Berne to demand
-help.... What a check! what danger! If the fugitive
-brings back the Bernese, they will undertake the
-defence of heresy ... it will triumph. The harder the
-blow which La Baume desired to strike, the more
-dangerous would it be if it failed. He was therefore
-in great alarm and in a great passion also. He ordered
-his officers to pursue those who had escaped, to take
-horses so as to catch them up, and to bring them
-back bound to prison where their friends awaited
-them. But he did not rest satisfied with sending after
-the fugitives such persons as were under his own
-orders, he wanted others to track them down, to
-catch them in the rear or in front: this induced
-him to make a very extraordinary demand.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the syndics had heard of the arrest of
-some of the most notable of the citizens, they had
-summoned the council. Astounded at the tyrannical
-act, and alarmed for the future of the republic, they
-deliberated what was to be done. Should they abandon
-their fellow-citizens to the illegal vengeance of the
-bishop, or should they revolt against their prince?
-They were plunged into silent stupor when a messenger
-from the bishop appeared. No doubt he had
-come to give some explanation, to make an excuse,
-and perhaps to declare that the bishop would withdraw
-his fatal decree! No such thing: the council
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_533" id="Page_533">{533}</a></span>
-soon learnt that he was charged with an extraordinary
-message.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=STRANGE REQUEST OF THE BISHOP.=</p>
-
-<p>The episcopal messenger, having made the customary
-salutations, said: 'My lord has decided to
-send his officers beyond the frontiers to take certain
-<i>criminals</i> (this was the term he applied to those
-noble citizens). Our very reverend prince therefore
-requires the council to lend him some of the city
-officers to accompany his own and pursue the fugitives
-in the territory of Savoy.' This was too
-much. De la Baume required the magistrates of
-Geneva to employ in oppressing citizens the power
-they had received to defend them. Such an audacious
-proposition disgusted the syndics; they did not
-hesitate to refuse his demand; desiring, however, to
-keep on good terms with him to the last, they gave
-a specious motive for their refusal. 'Pray pardon
-us,' they answered the bishop, 'if we cannot do it;
-we should be afraid lest the duke, whose territories
-our officers would have to enter, should be angry
-with us for violating the treaties.' This refusal
-threw him into a great passion. He believed, perhaps
-not without reason, that the duke of Savoy would
-overlook the violation of territory, as its object was
-to catch huguenots. 'Return,' he said to his officer,
-'and tell those gentlemen to do justice, and that if
-they do not, there are fourscore in the city who will
-help me to do it. Add, that they are to act straightforwardly.'
-The magistrates remained firm. But
-the prelate found some little consolation in the
-cooperation of people better disposed than the syndics
-of Geneva to subserve his anger.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_771" id="Ref_771" href="#Foot_771">[771]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_534" id="Page_534">{534}</a></div>
-
-<p>Aimé Levet, instead of escaping by the right bank,
-on which his house was situated, had chosen the
-left bank, and thrown himself into that beautiful
-country which extends between the Rhone and the
-lake on one side, and Mount Voiron and Mount
-Salève on the other, and where the wide opening
-which these two mountains leave between them, permits
-the traveller to contemplate the magnificent
-range of the Alps of Mont Blanc. Was it Levet's
-wish to avoid taking the usual road of the fugitives,
-on which he was sure to be arrested; or did he intend
-hiding in the mountains, as the fine month of July
-invited him, to climb the easy and graceful slope of
-the Voiron, or to scale, by the road called l'Echelle
-(the ladder), the abrupt walls of Salève, whose enormous
-rocks overhang the plain? That is possible;
-other fugitives had done so. Levet wandered for
-some time in that part of the valley where the sandy
-torrent of the Arve utters a low murmur; but,
-thinking only how he should escape his persecutors,
-he had no leisure to contemplate the dazzling vision
-of the Alps lighted up by a July sun, which made so
-striking a contrast with the gloomy paths he was then
-traversing. He knew that mamelukes, priests, ducal
-partisans, and above all, the Sire de Montagny,
-castellan of Gaillard, would follow in his track. How
-strange his destiny! Only a few months ago he had
-been a zealous catholic, and then the surprising conversion
-of his wife had led to his.... Now, he
-was wandering about as a fugitive, without a place
-where to lay his head. We cannot tell all the
-anguish he went through, and all the groans he
-uttered. He did not lose courage, however, for he
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_535" id="Page_535">{535}</a></span>
-knew Him who was his protector, and who maintains
-the right. He was assured of being able to
-stand before God and His angels at the very moment
-when men were hunting him down. He had wolves
-behind him eager to tear him in pieces, but 'God
-saves His poor sheep, even out of the jaws of the
-lions.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_772" id="Ref_772" href="#Foot_772">[772]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=LEVET PURSUED AND TAKEN.=</p>
-
-<p>They were indeed in pursuit of him. Messire de
-Charanzonay, a canon of Geneva, had kept his eye on
-Levet: he knew that he had made off in the direction
-of the mountains, and that he must be found
-either in the bailiwick of Gaillard, or in the parish
-of Bonne. He had an interview, therefore, with the
-castellan of Gaillard, M. de Montagny, a good catholic
-and Savoyard, who furnished him with aid; a band of
-men left the castle, and the chase began, the canon
-leading the way. Erelong, poor Levet heard the
-footsteps of the people in search of him: he was
-seized. The canon, eager to vent his anger, had him
-scourged without any form of trial, and after he had
-been soundly beaten, sent him off to the castle of Gaillard.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_773" id="Ref_773" href="#Foot_773">[773]</a></span>
-Levet, encompassed by guards, was conducted
-to that fortress, situated at the point where
-the Arve, issuing from the mountains, enters the
-plain, and where many an innocent man had been imprisoned.
-The drawbridge fell and rose again, the
-massive gates opened, the armed sentinels halted to see
-the huguenot pass, and at last Levet, doubly guilty, as
-a liberal and as an evangelical, was thrown into a deep
-dungeon. From that moment the husband's captivity
-assured the liberty of the wife.</p>
-
-<div class="pagenum"><a name="Page_536" id="Page_536">{536}</a></div>
-
-<p class="side">=FRIBURG DEPUTIES CALL FOR REVENGE.=</p>
-
-<p>Other circumstances happening on the same day
-(6th of July) rejoiced the bishop and his court, and put
-to the proof the firmness of the council as well as the
-tranquillity of the citizens. A man sent from the
-Pays de Vaud reported that a number of well-armed
-Friburgers had arrived at Nyon and threatened Geneva.
-They were the avengers of Wernli's blood.
-'Go and tell the captain-general,' said the syndics,
-'and bid him look to the safety of the city.' Shortly
-after this, a citizen told the council that the Friburgers
-who were in Geneva were preparing to set
-out for the castle of Gaillard. Presently a third
-person came and informed the syndics that the Friburgers
-were crossing the lake from Nyon, and that
-their boats could be clearly distinguished from the
-upper part of the city, making for the south. Finally,
-news came from Gaillard that Wernli's relations,
-accompanied by a great number of Friburg men-at-arms,
-had entered the fortress, vowing they would
-wash their feet in the blood of the evangelicals. The
-council did not know what to do, and the city was
-filled with apprehension.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_774" id="Ref_774" href="#Foot_774">[774]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The extremes of anguish were felt in the homes of
-the prisoners. The most sinister stories were propagated
-through the city as to the severity employed
-by the bishop towards his captives. Some began to
-lose courage and to ask—it was a question often put
-in the time of the Reformation—why the disciples of
-the Gospel had to endure not only the afflictions
-common to all men, but calamities from which their
-enemies were exempt? 'Ah!' replied the wiser ones,
-'the corn is first threshed in the barn along with the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_537" id="Page_537">{537}</a></span>
-straw; but afterwards it is pressed and crushed alone
-on the millstone.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_775" id="Ref_775" href="#Foot_775">[775]</a></span>
-All were not to be comforted,
-and from many an afflicted house the cries of sorrow
-rose to heaven.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, the avoyers of Friburg pressed the
-council to grant to Wernli's relations the justice they
-demanded, and insisted that the Genevans arrested
-on the 23rd May and 4th June should be brought
-to trial immediately. The mamelukes cried still
-louder than the Friburgers, and demanded the trial
-of the eleven persons imprisoned on the 5th July.
-While the case of the Friburgers was entirely judicial,
-that of the mamelukes was political: they wished to
-take advantage of a trial to effect a revolution. The
-council instructed the procurator-fiscal to have the
-accused brought before him, as the Genevan constitution
-required; but the fiscal declared he could not
-do so on account of the order of the prince, who had
-cited the case before himself. The bishop meant to
-be at once judge and interested party, and to substitute
-clerical despotism for the protecting forms of the
-lay tribunals. The alarmed magistrates immediately
-waited on the prince to make their humble but resolute
-protest.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_776" id="Ref_776" href="#Foot_776">[776]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Pierre de la Baume had just dined when the
-syndics appeared. 'I have cited the cause before me,'
-he said: 'I have my reasons.' The syndics represented
-to him that he might pardon men after
-sentence, but not try accused persons, who must
-necessarily appear before the lawful tribunals. 'I
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_538" id="Page_538">{538}</a></span>
-cite the case before me,' repeated the bishop. The
-indignant syndics bowed and withdrew. Sebastian
-de Diesbach, the banneret of Weingarten and other
-deputies from Berne, had arrived at Geneva, and
-Baudichon de la Maisonneuve, as it seems, had returned
-with them. The syndics prayed their intervention,
-and the Bernese spoke to the bishop; but the
-passionate headstrong churchman would not listen to
-them. He stretched the cord at the risk of breaking
-it. 'I have cited the case before me,' he said again.</p>
-
-<p>The spirit of blind fanaticism was felt in other
-places besides the palace: it agitated the mamelukes,
-carried away the episcopalians and even a few of the
-Friburgers. They had sworn the death of liberty
-and the Reformation, and were already planning the
-means of preventing for ever their return to Geneva.
-They went up and down the city, and were quite
-indefatigable. As you looked at them you would
-have said—the comparison was made at the time—that
-coming after the deluge, and wishing to prevent
-the waters from invading their dwellings again, they
-had said to one another: 'Let us build a tower whose
-top may reach unto heaven.' 'They built the tower
-of Babel,' says a contemporary, 'presuming, like the
-giants, to fight against God.'</p>
-
-<p class="side">=ATTACKS ON HUGUENOTS.=</p>
-
-<p>They did indeed come to blows. On that very day
-(7th July) some horsemen of the episcopal party who
-were riding at Plainpalais in front of the convent of
-their friends the Dominicans, saw three of the most
-considerable of the Genevese citizens go past: they
-were Philippe the captain-general, John Lullin afterwards
-syndic, and Francis Favre who was a member
-of the ordinary council in the following year. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_539" id="Page_539">{539}</a></span>
-cavaliers immediately rode at them, calling them
-traitors and Lutherans. The three huguenots were
-hated and feared by the mamelukes, who knew them
-to be men ready to sacrifice their lives for the ancient
-liberties of their country. If they had not been
-included in the first proscription, it was partly through
-fear, for their boldness was indomitable; and also
-because it had been preferred to begin with pious
-evangelicals like Chautemps and Levet. True, Ami
-Perrin had been arrested; but without having undergone
-the great change which Scripture calls 'a new
-birth,' he was still in the front rank whenever the
-cause of the Reformation was in question. It was he
-who had actively protected Farel. Besides the episcopal
-<i>sbirri</i> could not well distinguish between protestants
-who were such inwardly and those who were so
-outwardly only. However, neither persecution nor
-insult abated the courage of the citizens. They knew
-that God often suffers the wicked to act for a few
-days, and permits them to raise high towers against
-his elect. Then on a sudden he strikes the huge
-mass, he loosens the joints and scatters the materials,
-so that the mighty edifice whose summit was to rise
-to heaven falls into dust, and is scattered to the
-winds.</p>
-
-<p>The syndics, being determined to resist the bishop
-and his usurpations, convened the council of Sixty
-on the 8th July, and explained to them how he purposed
-to place Geneva under the government of his
-good pleasure, and by way of beginning, was preparing
-to try in his own court the noblest of the
-citizens. The future that threatened Geneva filled
-the assembly with emotion and fear. What was to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_540" id="Page_540">{540}</a></span>
-be done? Resort to force, policy, or diplomacy?
-The Genevans, in self-defence, looked for simpler and
-more affecting means; they had recourse to one of
-those measures which are almost unique in history,
-and exhale a perfume of antiquity.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=ELDERS OF GENEVA BEFORE THE BISHOP.=</p>
-
-<p>There were in Geneva certain Nestors of liberty,
-who, uplifting their hoary heads among three generations
-of their children, gave utterance to words of
-wisdom. To these they had recourse. Councillors—their
-sons probably—went to fetch them, and these
-venerable witnesses of the ancient liberties entered the
-presence of the council, where seats were placed for
-them. Although the vigour of their bodies was
-weakened, their hearts now beat stronger for their
-country than in their younger days, and their memory
-recalled to them distinctly the times of yore. Accordingly,
-when they heard of the dangers by which
-the republic was threatened, and of the bishop's
-intention to usurp judicial power, they were filled
-with sadness and alarm. 'Criminal causes,' they
-said, 'belong to the civil magistrate; the practice has
-never varied in that respect, and the bishop's claim
-to hear them himself is a novelty without precedent.'
-The council of sixty resolved to send a deputation to
-the prince, composed of the four syndics and six
-of these aged citizens, who felt happy to bear, before
-they died, a last testimony to the liberties of their
-country. If the bishop laughed at the ancient papers
-of ancient Geneva, would he also laugh at these
-ancient men?</p>
-
-<p>The deputation, proceeding slowly through the
-streets, took its way towards the palace. The fathers
-of the country walked with tottering steps, supported
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_541" id="Page_541">{541}</a></span>
-by the younger ones, and advanced towards the
-residence of the haughty priest whom Rome had sent
-to the shores of the Leman, and who was trampling
-under foot the most venerable rights. Never had
-men going to plead the independence of a nation
-inspired more tenderness, sympathy, and respect.
-People watched and blessed them as they passed, and
-prayers were raised to heaven that God would accompany
-with his strength this extraordinary step in
-favour of liberty.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_777" id="Ref_777" href="#Foot_777">[777]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The bishop, informed of the movement, had desired
-to surround himself with all that could give a specious
-appearance to his usurpations. And accordingly,
-when they entered the hall, the deputation found not
-only the prelate sitting in pomp—not only his councillors,
-officers, and the ambassadors of Berne and
-Friburg ranged around him,—but also the relatives of
-the canon. Pierre de la Baume paired the suppliants
-of Friburg against the elders of Geneva. The syndics
-respectfully expressed to him their surprise that he
-should appear to look upon the council with suspicion,
-that several citizens of note had been thrown into
-prison, and lastly that his lordship, contrary to the
-laws, had cited the case before his own tribunal.
-But, while the elders turned a look at once mild and
-penetrating upon the prince, and their hoary heads
-seemed, as it were, to bring the old times before him,
-Wernli's relatives, shaking their black garments,
-again called for vengeance, declaring that the prince
-had promised to do them justice, and praying upon
-him to be faithful to his word. 'Yes,' said the bishop
-immediately, 'yes, I cite the cause before me.' The
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_542" id="Page_542">{542}</a></span>
-syndics, determined not to give up the most venerated
-laws of the State, placed before him the ancient constitution
-of the people, and pointing to the twelfth
-article, read as follows: 'That no inquisition upon
-lay malefactors, or other process whatsoever, can or
-shall be held, except by summoning the four syndics
-and four citizens of the said city of Geneva, who shall
-be chosen by the other citizens.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_778" id="Ref_778" href="#Foot_778">[778]</a></span>
-And that the trial
-and sentence of the afore-named malefactors belongs
-and shall belong to the aforesaid citizens, and not to
-any other persons whatsoever.' The constitution
-having thus spoken, the syndic ceased.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE BISHOP WILL NOT YIELD.=</p>
-
-<p>Then the elders, who had hitherto kept silent, and
-whose grave, modest, and firm looks inspired respect,
-came forward. One of them, speaking for all, raised
-his trembling hands, 'and declared that such had
-always been the law of Geneva, and that never in the
-course of their long lives had they had the pain to
-see the prince trample it under foot.' The feeble
-voices and calm looks of these venerable men added
-a strange, and one might almost say a heavenly, force
-to their testimony. That humble speech in favour
-of liberty possessed an eloquence more penetrating
-than the most admirable orations of a Cicero or a
-Demosthenes. But, if liberty had never been more
-touching, despotism had never been more obstinate.
-The syndics conjured the bishop in vain, in the name
-of the laws and of God, to surrender the prisoners to
-them, according to the law, so that they might try
-them conformably with their office; Pierre de la
-Baume kept repeating: 'I cannot, I have cited the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_543" id="Page_543">{543}</a></span>
-cause before me.' The Friburg ambassadors begged
-the syndics to consent to the episcopal citation, 'for
-this time only,' but the magistrates of Geneva were
-unwilling that the franchises of the city should be
-violated either now or later. They quitted the bishop's
-palace with sorrow, and the six elders followed them.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_779" id="Ref_779" href="#Foot_779">[779]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>When they arrived at the hôtel-de-ville, the council
-of sixty was still sitting. They gave a faithful account
-of their mission. They reported that the
-bishop-prince persisted in his iniquitous <i>non possumus</i>,
-and although the council felt deep pain at hearing the
-statement, no one flinched. These Genevans knew
-the fidelity that freemen owe to the institutions of
-their ancestors. The ambassadors of Berne then
-asked to be admitted. Importuned by their allies,
-the Friburgers, and by the councillors of the bishop,
-these haughty Bernese, unfaithful to their renown, had
-come to imagine that the Genevans might very well,
-for <i>once</i>, on this solemn occasion, renounce their
-charter and their rights. Sebastian de Diesbach
-therefore invited the council to try if they could not
-'consent to this citation, which the prelate positively
-would not recal.' Thus the only allies of Geneva
-solicited them to enter voluntarily upon the path of
-concessions.... The council deliberated, and
-the Sixty were unanimous. Here is the resolution
-which the secretary entered upon the register: 'Ordered
-to reply to My Lords of Berne, that we will
-not consent to this citation, as it is entirely contrary
-to our franchises, and resolved to ask them to be
-pleased to aid us with their advice.' My Lords of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_544" id="Page_544">{544}</a></span>
-Berne did not like to see their advice rejected, but as
-they withdrew they said that such men deserved to
-be free.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_780" id="Ref_780" href="#Foot_780">[780]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This new refusal exasperated the mamelukes. They
-were determined to use Wernli's death as an instrument
-of war to beat down the ancient edifice of
-Genevese liberties, to root up the foundations of the
-Reformation, and to establish on the ruins their
-own theories concerning the absolute power of the
-pope and the prince. Consequently they demanded
-the convocation of the Two Hundred, hoping to find
-favourable voices among them. The great council
-met the next day, and the Friburg ambassadors
-appeared before it, attended by a great number of
-the relations and friends of the canon—all dejected,
-gloomy, and silent, like the suppliants of ancient
-times. It was not fanaticism which animated the
-greater part of them. They had played with Wernli
-in their childhood; they had loved him in their
-youth; they venerated his memory now that a
-terrible catastrophe had stretched him dead in the
-streets of the city. If they had been unable to defend
-him in the hour of danger, they wished to do
-everything now the hour of vengeance was come.
-It was not sufficient to have sprinkled his body with
-their tears, the blood of victims must flow in the very
-spot where the martyr had been struck down. 'Most
-honoured lords,' said the canon's brother, 'the justice
-which men owe to one another is written on earth in
-the hearts of the just; why, then, should you trample
-it under foot? You have not yet done justice for the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_545" id="Page_545">{545}</a></span>
-death of him who was our brother and our friend; on
-the contrary, you left the criminals free to come and
-go for six weeks. His body lies in the grave, but
-his blood, sprinkled on the stones of your city, calls for
-vengeance. If you are armed with the sword, it is not
-for mere show but to strike malefactors. And yet your
-tribunals are dumb, and your sword slumbers in the
-sheath. Permit my lord bishop to cite the case before
-him. If you refuse, you may rest assured that
-we shall seek other means of avenging the death of
-our friend, and we shall drown our sorrow and anger
-not in the waters of justice but in blood.' The
-Friburgers spoke as if it were a murder: they
-forgot that the canon had put on a cuirass, that
-he had grasped the halberd, that he had gone fully
-armed to the scene of tumult, that he had rekindled
-the dying flames, and attacked the huguenots, who
-had only used their arms in legitimate self-defence.
-The avoyer of Friburg seconded the eloquent menaces
-of Wernli's brother.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_781" id="Ref_781" href="#Foot_781">[781]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=REFUSAL OF THE TWO HUNDRED.=</p>
-
-<p>The Two Hundred saw that a war with Friburg
-and Savoy would be the consequence of their refusal,
-but they had taken their stand on the rock of right
-and were not to be moved. 'We do not know of any
-guilty persons who have been allowed to come and go
-freely in the city,' they said. 'If it be so, the blame
-lies with the procurator-fiscal whose duty it was to
-apprehend them, and not with us who are judges.
-As for permitting my lord to cite the cause before
-him, we cannot do so; it would be a violation of the
-franchises, for which we and our forefathers have
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_546" id="Page_546">{546}</a></span>
-often risked our bodies and our goods.' The syndic
-added that the council would consent to the bishop's
-naming two persons to be present at the examination,
-but on condition that they had no deliberative
-voice. The Friburgers and mamelukes could not
-make up their minds to accept this proposition. They
-were specially vexed that Coquet, syndic of the guard,
-whom they looked upon as devoted to the reform,
-should be among the number of the judges, whilst
-in their opinion he ought to be in the prisoner's
-dock.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_782" id="Ref_782" href="#Foot_782">[782]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=ARGUMENTS FOR THE TEMPORAL POWER.=</p>
-
-<p>If it had been a mere question of punishing the
-author of the canon's death, the prelate would perhaps
-have trusted to the syndics; but he aimed at
-destroying both liberty and the Reformation in
-Geneva, and for that he trusted to himself alone.
-To supplications, threats, and violence some consented
-to add reasons. There was a kind of argument used
-only in scholastic debates to prove that priests were
-the best judges both in civil and political matters.
-This strange proposition was demonstrated by syllogism.
-The major was: 'He is the best fitted to
-judge who is nearest to God.' The minor this:
-'Ecclesiastics are nearer to God than laymen.' The
-conclusion is evident. They had recourse also to
-arguments derived from astronomy. 'As there are
-two great lights in the universe,' it was said, 'so
-there are also two in society. The Church is the sun
-and the State is the moon. Now the moon has no
-light of her own; all her light is derived from the
-sun. It is evident, therefore, that the church possesses
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_547" id="Page_547">{547}</a></span>
-in itself, formally and virtually, the temporal
-jurisdiction of the state.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_783" id="Ref_783" href="#Foot_783">[783]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Such arguments had great strength in the prelate's
-eyes: he appointed two deputies, his bailiff and his
-attorney, and sent them to the Two Hundred with
-orders to defend the rights of the sun. The union
-of the two powers in a single individual supplied them
-with their principal argument. The <span class="smc">bishop</span> was
-hardly mentioned in their speech but only the <i>prince</i>.
-'The bishop is your prince,' they declared; 'and you,
-the syndics, are his officers. He may therefore
-command you as his subjects, and when he transfers
-to his tribunal a cause which is in your hands, you
-have only to obey.' This theory of absolute power
-could not pass in Geneva. 'We are not the prince's
-officers,' replied the magistrates, 'but syndics of the
-city, elected by the people and not by my lord. He
-has no power to institute us, and even his own
-officers, nominated by himself, make oath to us,
-whilst we make oath to nobody.' Then the syndics,
-turning to the Friburg deputation, continued: 'Sirs,
-you helped us in the time of Berthelier, help us again
-now. It is not we, but the bishop and his officers
-who alone occasion the delay of which you complain.
-Let two deputies from the bishop, two from Berne,
-and two from Friburg, assist at the trial, and be
-witnesses of our uprightness.'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_784" id="Ref_784" href="#Foot_784">[784]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The bishop persisted in his demand: the deputies
-from Berne, desiring to terminate the difference, proposed
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_548" id="Page_548">{548}</a></span>
-that the cause should be remitted to two judges
-nominated by the council, two by the bishop, two by
-Berne, and two by Friburg. The Genevans replied
-that a people were not at liberty to sacrifice the
-smallest portion of their rights; and fatigued with
-these endless importunities, they added: 'If our offer
-is refused, we will convoke the general assembly of
-the people and do what it shall ordain.' The Bernese,
-knowing very well that if the matter was referred to
-the people no arrangement would be possible, exclaimed:
-'Pray do nothing of the kind.'</p>
-
-<p>Whilst even Berne was soliciting the syndics to
-give way, the wives, relations, and friends of the
-prisoners conjured them to persevere in their resistance.
-They feared to hear every morning that it
-was too late to act. 'It is time to bring the matter
-to an end,' said the syndics to the Bernese. 'The
-prisoners are only accused; is it just to make them
-suffer as if they were guilty? Go and speak plainly
-to the prince; make him comprehend the duty which
-our liberties impose upon us.' The Bernese went to
-the episcopal palace, but neither the bishop nor the
-Friburgers who were with him would yield an inch.
-'Messieurs of Geneva will not do otherwise than
-they have said,' coldly answered Pierre de la Baume.
-'Very good! and we for our part will not do otherwise
-than we have declared.' The Friburgers added
-with a menacing tone: 'We are about to return
-home and there ... we shall consider another
-remedy.' This remedy was war: the Friburg deputies
-would return with an army.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_785" id="Ref_785" href="#Foot_785">[785]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="side">=THE PRISONERS IN THEIR CELLS.=</p>
-
-<p>While these things were going on, the huguenots
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_549" id="Page_549">{549}</a></span>
-and evangelicals, seized by the bishop's order, were
-still in prison bound hand and foot. Pierre Vandel,
-Claude Pasta, the Sire de Compey, Domaine D'Arlod,
-the energetic Ami Perrin and others, not forgetting
-Jaquéma, awaited their fate in the gloomy vaults of
-the episcopal residence. In every house in Geneva
-and at the town-hall people were constantly talking
-of them. 'The prisoners,' they said, 'are kept in close
-confinement.' Such severity excited universal compassion,
-and the secretary of council mentions it
-in the Registers.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_786" id="Ref_786" href="#Foot_786">[786]</a></span>
-However if the bishop had been
-able to deprive them of freedom of motion, there
-was another he could not take from them, which
-was a sweet consolation for those who had received
-the gospel in their hearts. 'Though they were
-bound and made fast in the stocks,' says Calvin, 'still
-while praying they praised God.' It is of Paul and
-Silas, shut up in the prison at Philippi, of whom
-the reformer is speaking; but what he says of the
-liberty of prayer, which exists even in spite of
-chains, may be applied to some of those who were
-now in the prelate's dungeons.</p>
-
-<p>Just at this time a report circulated through the
-city that the bishop was secretly preparing boats for
-the removal of the prisoners to some castle. It was
-said that certain stout watermen were ready to grasp
-the oar, that an armed force would accompany the captives,
-and that as soon the episcopal officers were
-upon the open lake they would laugh at the syndics
-and the huguenots. These reports still more excited
-the anger of the citizens. One of them, a daring
-man named Pierre Verne, watching the boats moored
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_550" id="Page_550">{550}</a></span>
-on the shore, sought the means of preventing this
-unlawful abduction: he thought he had found one,
-simple and in his opinion infallible, and waited (as
-we shall see presently) until the veil of night concealed
-him from the eyes of the enemy.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_787" id="Ref_787" href="#Foot_787">[787]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>If the prince's councillors were contriving how
-to get the huguenot captives away, certain of the
-mamelukes were vexed that there were still so many
-at liberty, and that the bishop was so slow in apprehending
-them all without exception. It seemed
-to them that the <i>coup d'état</i>, or rather <i>coup de main</i>,
-of which they had dreamt was long in coming; and
-they knew that if a bold stroke is to succeed, the
-execution must be prompt. Some of them began
-therefore to make amends for official slowness by
-separate acts of violence.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=ATTEMPT TO MURDER CURTET.=</p>
-
-<p>It was harvest time, and Jean Ami Curtet or
-Curteti, a man well disposed towards the Gospel and
-belonging to a family which Duke Philibert le Beau
-had ennobled, had gone out in the morning to visit
-a field which he possessed on the banks of the Arve.
-He examined the ears and the stalks: everything
-promised a fine harvest. Knowing that when wheat
-is once ripe, there should be no delay in reaping it, he
-ordered the labourer who accompanied him to begin
-to cut it. But he was destined to fall before his corn,
-and on that very spot.... A sudden noise was
-heard, some men in disguise fell upon him, knocked
-him down, beat him and left him for dead in his
-own field. The news soon reached the city. 'It is
-some gentlemen in disguise who have murdered him,'
-said the people. On hearing the mournful news, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_551" id="Page_551">{551}</a></span>
-relations and friends of Curtet seized their arquebuses,
-and about forty of them hastened towards the Arve
-bridge. They raised the poor man who was seriously
-wounded, and bearing their sad burden returned slowly
-into the city, their hearts bursting with anger. As
-the procession passed in front of a house where some
-Friburgers lodged, one of the Genevans called them
-'Rascals and traitors!' The Friburgers, innocent of
-the attempt, swore that they would demand satisfaction
-for such an outrage; but the sad procession, passing
-slowly through the principal streets of Geneva,
-under the windows of the chief citizens, called up very
-different thoughts. Men asked each other whether
-the partisans of the prince-bishop intended to add
-murder to illegal arrest; whether it was sufficient to
-wear a mask and strange garments to deprive citizens
-of their lives, without any risk to the murderers; and
-whether every huguenot, as he was engaging in
-the most innocent occupations, might be suddenly
-laid dead by a masked enemy in the fields bequeathed
-to him by his ancestors?<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_788" id="Ref_788" href="#Foot_788">[788]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>While these dangers were accumulating on the
-heads of the friends of the Reformation in Geneva
-itself, perils not less great were gathering round
-the city. People arriving from the country on the
-left bank of the Rhone and of the lake reported that
-armed Friburgers and Savoyards were assembling in
-great numbers at the castle of Gaillard, and that one of
-the Wernlis commanded a part of them. It was well
-known that this person, exasperated by the death of
-his relative the canon, combined in his heart, along
-with the love and respect he bore to his memory, a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_552" id="Page_552">{552}</a></span>
-more energetic sentiment—that of revenge. The
-knights and soldiers who gathered round him caught
-the infection of his anger. But not at Gaillard only
-were armed men assembling, according to the reports
-of the country people: there were some higher
-up, in the direction of the mountains, at Etrembières,
-where there was a ferry over the Arve to the <i>mandement</i>
-of Mornex. Others were assembling higher still
-around the picturesque hill of Montoux, and especially
-at the village of Collonges, at the foot of the
-hill. At the same time, the people who came to
-Geneva from the right bank of the Rhone and the
-lake, from the side of the Jura, brought similar
-tidings, and spoke of armed men in the Gex district,
-and particularly at the Grand Saconnex, three-quarters
-of a league from Geneva. The city was
-beginning to be surrounded by its enemies.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_789" id="Ref_789" href="#Foot_789">[789]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The time seemed near when the projects conceived
-by the bishop at Arbois were about to be realised.
-That prelate, who reproached his friend Besançon
-Hugues for not having '<i>barked</i>' loud enough to prevent
-the fall of his authority, proposed not only
-to bark himself against the '<i>wolves</i>,' but also to bite
-them. One of those priests whom Rome had raised
-to the rank of princes of nations had said: 'I am
-accustomed to act vigorously.... I shall consider
-what it must be.' The pontiff was preparing to fulfil
-his own prophecies.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=GENEVA AND CALVIN.=</p>
-
-<p>The future of Geneva was indeed threatening.
-On the 10th of July a gloomy veil seemed to be
-closing over that noble city. A fanatical party was
-preparing the shroud in which it designed to bury
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_553" id="Page_553">{553}</a></span>
-the independence of the citizens and the Reformation
-of the Church. That city, for which many persons
-had already anticipated a more glorious destiny, was
-about to be reduced to a mere provincial town, occupying
-an undistinguished place in the world, and
-subject to the enervating influence of Rome, without
-life and without liberty.</p>
-
-<p>But other things were written in heaven. God
-was preparing both Geneva and Calvin to deliver
-battle together, on the result of which was to depend
-the triumph of the Gospel and the liberty of modern
-nations. And to prepare for these glorious events,
-the steps of the great reformer were soon to be
-directed, undesignedly on his part, towards that
-small but energetic city, unique of its kind in Europe,
-and of which the man of God was not then thinking.</p>
-
-<p>We shall not forget that other nations have also
-added their stone to the edifice of civil and religious
-liberty. From Switzerland, Germany, the Low
-Countries, the British Isles, France, and afterwards
-America, as well as other countries, were to proceed
-some of the acts destined to secure the triumph
-of God's right and man's liberties.</p>
-
-<p>And yet Calvin and Geneva did something. Calvin
-possessed an inflexible resolution. God had said to
-this man as he had said of old to one of his prophets:
-<i>As an adamant harder than flint have I made thy
-forehead; fear them not, neither be dismayed at their
-looks, though they be a rebellious house</i>.<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_790" id="Ref_790" href="#Foot_790">[790]</a></span>
-It was not by chance, as it is termed, that such a character was
-called to the midst of a people who had shown
-in terrible struggles, watered with the blood of their
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_554" id="Page_554">{554}</a></span>
-best citizens, an indomitable resistance to absolute
-power. At the period of history we are describing
-God was preparing Calvin and Geneva each apart;
-but the union of those two natures, predestined (if I
-may say so) for each other, could not fail to produce
-remarkable effects in the world. The reformer was
-about to concentrate in this little corner of earth a
-moral force which would contribute to save the
-Reformation in Europe, and to preserve in a few
-more favoured spots those precious liberties to which
-all nations have equal rights.</p>
-
-<p>It was necessary in the 16th century that a great
-man and a little people should serve as a centre to
-the Reformation. The firmness of the one, the energy
-of the other, tempered like steel in the waters of the
-Gospel, were to give the tone to nations that were
-greater though possibly less decided, and to impress
-the seal of unity on other energies. <i>Behold how
-great a matter a little fire kindleth!</i></p>
-
-<p>While waiting for this new dawn, sorrow reigned in
-Geneva. The reformers were expelled, their most
-fervent disciples were in prison, or wandering through
-the country; and the sword was suspended over the
-heads of all the friends of God's word. The mamelukes
-triumphed. The friends of the Gospel and of
-liberty asked with anguish if the day of great tribulation
-was come at last.... The wives of the
-prisoners and of the fugitives expected to hear every
-moment of some new tragedy. Children called for
-their fathers, who came not to the call. Groans and
-lamentations, apprehension and even cries of anger,
-prevailed everywhere.</p>
-
-<p class="side">=FAITH AND HOPE.=</p>
-
-<p>Only a few souls, putting their trust in God, preserved
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_555" id="Page_555">{555}</a></span>
-some little hope. Knowing that 'God is not God
-unless He is on a throne, that is, unless he governs
-the world, they feared nothing, however terrible it might be,'<span
-class="fnanchor"><a name="Ref_791" id="Ref_791" href="#Foot_791">[791]</a></span>
-from the hands of the powers of the earth.
-In the midst of agitated hearts and dejected faces,
-there were eyes which, though dimmed with tears,
-were raised towards heaven with a glance of hope
-and faith.</p>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_745" id="Foot_745" href="#Ref_745">[745]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Pedestris benda.'—Council Registers of 22nd and 30th June.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_746" id="Foot_746" href="#Ref_746">[746]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Valde irritatoria.'—Council Registers of 22nd and 30th June.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_747" id="Foot_747" href="#Ref_747">[747]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 22nd and 30th June. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_748" id="Foot_748" href="#Ref_748">[748]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Mémoires du diocèse de Genève, par le curé Besson, p. 63.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_749" id="Foot_749" href="#Ref_749">[749]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 1st, 2nd, and 3rd July. Froment, <i>Gestes de
-Genève</i>, p. 61. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_750" id="Foot_750" href="#Ref_750">[750]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La sœur Jeanne de Jussie, <i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 67.
-Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_751" id="Foot_751" href="#Ref_751">[751]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 2nd and 3rd July, 1533. La sœur J. de Jussie,
-<i>Le Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 67. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_752" id="Foot_752" href="#Ref_752">[752]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 3rd July, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_753" id="Foot_753" href="#Ref_753">[753]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-La sœur J. de Jussie, <i>Le Levain</i>, p. 68.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_754" id="Foot_754" href="#Ref_754">[754]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Senatus, sua libertate subnixus, jus suum strenue
-tuetur.'—Spanheim, <i>Geneva restituta</i>, p. 62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_755" id="Foot_755" href="#Ref_755">[755]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Libertates, franchesiæ, immunitates, usus, et consuetudines
-civitatis Gebennensis.'—<i>Mémoires d'Archéologie de la Soc. d'Hist. de
-Genève</i>, tome ii. p. 312. Council Registers of 4th July, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_756" id="Foot_756" href="#Ref_756">[756]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Alios interfecerunt, alios truncatis manibus et pedibus
-demembraverunt; quibusdam vero oculos fodiebant, quibusdam frontes ferro
-ardente notabant.'—<i>Scriptur. gallic. et franc.</i>, viii. p. 281.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_757" id="Foot_757" href="#Ref_757">[757]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Ad equi caudam pedibus alligatus . . . . vir dives et probus.'—G.
-de Noviguto, <i>Op.</i> p. 510.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_758" id="Foot_758" href="#Ref_758">[758]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 61.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_759" id="Foot_759" href="#Ref_759">[759]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_760" id="Foot_760" href="#Ref_760">[760]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Vol. i. p. 73.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_761" id="Foot_761" href="#Ref_761">[761]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Their names are given by Froment in his <i>Gestes de Genève</i>,
-pp. 61-62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_762" id="Foot_762" href="#Ref_762">[762]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_763" id="Foot_763" href="#Ref_763">[763]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-See Plutarch's <i>Life of Sylla</i>. Council Registers of 5th
-July.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_764" id="Foot_764" href="#Ref_764">[764]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 61.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_765" id="Foot_765" href="#Ref_765">[765]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 5th July. La Sœur Jeanne de Jussie, <i>Le
-Levain du Calvinisme</i>, p. 64. Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, pp.
-61, 62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_766" id="Foot_766" href="#Ref_766">[766]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_767" id="Foot_767" href="#Ref_767">[767]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_768" id="Foot_768" href="#Ref_768">[768]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-fn">
-<div class="poetry">
-
-<div class="verse">... Who besides me</div>
-<div class="verse">Can claim the right to die for thee?—<i>Alceste.</i></div>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_769" id="Foot_769" href="#Ref_769">[769]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Froment, <i>Gestes de Genève</i>, p. 62.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_770" id="Foot_770" href="#Ref_770">[770]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Et illec en faire à leur plaisir.'—Ibid.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_771" id="Foot_771" href="#Ref_771">[771]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 5th July, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_772" id="Foot_772" href="#Ref_772">[772]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_773" id="Foot_773" href="#Ref_773">[773]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 5th July and 6th August, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_774" id="Foot_774" href="#Ref_774">[774]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 6th and 7th July.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_775" id="Foot_775" href="#Ref_775">[775]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin, <i>Op.</i> passim.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_776" id="Foot_776" href="#Ref_776">[776]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 6th and 7th July, 1533. Roset MS. liv. iii.
-ch. xiv. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_777" id="Foot_777" href="#Ref_777">[777]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 8th July, 1533. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_778" id="Foot_778" href="#Ref_778">[778]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Nisi vocatis sindicis et quatuor civibus dictæ
-civitatis.'—Mémoires d'Archéologie de la Société d'Histoire de Genève,
-ii. p. 323.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_779" id="Foot_779" href="#Ref_779">[779]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 8th July, 1533. Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i> liv.
-iii. ch. xiv. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_780" id="Foot_780" href="#Ref_780">[780]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 8th July, 1533. Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i> liv.
-iii. ch. xiv. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_781" id="Foot_781" href="#Ref_781">[781]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 9th July, 1533. Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i> liv.
-iii. ch. xiv. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_782" id="Foot_782" href="#Ref_782">[782]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 9th July, 1533. Roset MS. <i>Chron.</i> liv.
-iii. ch. xiv. Gautier MS.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_783" id="Foot_783" href="#Ref_783">[783]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-'Cum tota claritas lunæ sit a sole, patet quod jurisdictio
-spiritualis, quæ comparatur soli, habet in se formaliter vel virtualiter
-jurisdictionem temporalem.'—Goldasti, <i>Monarchia</i>, ii. p. 1461 et
-seq.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_784" id="Foot_784" href="#Ref_784">[784]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 9th July, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_785" id="Foot_785" href="#Ref_785">[785]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 9th July, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_786" id="Foot_786" href="#Ref_786">[786]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 12th July, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_787" id="Foot_787" href="#Ref_787">[787]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 12th July, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_788" id="Foot_788" href="#Ref_788">[788]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 14th July, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_789" id="Foot_789" href="#Ref_789">[789]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Council Registers of 10th July, 1533.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_790" id="Foot_790" href="#Ref_790">[790]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Ezekiel, iii. 9.</p>
-
-<p class="nodent"><a name="Foot_791" id="Foot_791" href="#Ref_791">[791]</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;
-Calvin.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="gap-above2 center small">END OF THE THIRD VOLUME.</p>
-
-<p class="gap-above2 center x-small">LONDON<br />
-PRINTED BY SPOTTISWOODE AND CO.<br />
-NEW-STREET SQUARE</p>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of History of the Reformation in Europe
-in the time of Calvin, Volume 3 (of , by Merle d'Aubigne
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HISTORY OF REFORMATION IN EUROPE, VOL 3 ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60774-h.htm or 60774-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/7/7/60774/
-
-Produced by Brian Wilson, David Edwards, Colin Bell, Chris
-Pinfield and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-
-</html>
-
-
diff --git a/old/60774-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/60774-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b76ab4b..0000000
--- a/old/60774-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ